This is a work of fiction. All the characters and events portrayed in this
book are fictional, and any resemblance to real people or incidents is purely
coincidental.
Copyright © 2003 by S.M. Stirling & David Drake. The Anvil © 1993 by David
Drake & S.M. Stirling; The Steel © 1993 by S.M. Stirling & David Drake;
The Sword © 1995 by S.M. Stirling & David Drake.
All rights reserved, including the right to reproduce this book or portions
thereof in any form.
A Baen Books Original
Baen Publishing Enterprises
P.O. Box 1403
Riverdale, NY 10471
www.baen.com
ISBN: 0-7434-3594-X
Cover art by David Mattingly
First omnibus printing, March 2003
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Stirling, S. M.
Conqueror / by S.M. Stirling & David Drake.
p. cm.
"The General series was originally published as five separate novels: The
Forge, The
Hammer, The Anvil, The Steel, and The Sword. Conqueror is the second and
concluding
part of the Raj Whitehall saga, which began in the first compendium volume,
Warlord."
Contents: The anvil — The steel — The sword.
ISBN 0-7434-3594-X
1. Whitehall, Raj (Fictitious character)—Fiction. 2. Life on other
planets—Fiction. 3.
Science fiction, American. 4. Space warfare—Fiction. 5. War stories, American.
6. Generals-
Fiction. I. Drake, David. II. Title.
PS3569.T543 C63 2003
813'.54—dc21
2002038394
Distributed by Simon & Schuster
1230 Avenue of the Americas
New York, NY 10020
Production by Windhaven Press, Auburn, NH
Printed in the United States of America
The General series:
Warlord, with S.M. Stirling (omnibus)
Conqueror, with S.M. Stirling (omnibus)
The Forge, with S.M. Stirling
The Chosen, with S.M. Stirling
The Reformer, with S.M. Stirling
The Tyrant, with Eric Flint
Hammer's Slammers
The Tank Lords
Caught in the Crossfire
The Butcher's Bill
The Sharp End
Paying the Piper
RCN series
With the Lightnings
Lt. Leary, Commanding
Independent Novels and Collections
Seas of Venus
Foreign Legions (edited by David Drake)
Ranks of Bronze
Cross the Stars
The Dragon Lord
Birds of Prey
Northworld Trilogy
Redliners
Starliner
All the Way to the Gallows
Grimmer Than Hell
The Undesired Princess and The Enchanted Bunny
(with L. Sprague de Camp)
Lest Darkness Fall and To Bring the Light
(with L. Sprague de Camp)
Armageddon
(edited with Billie Sue Mosiman)
Killer
(with Karl Edward Wagner)
The Belisarius series
(with Eric Flint):
An Oblique Approach
In the Heart of Darkness
Destiny's Shield
Fortune's Stroke
The Tide of Victory
"Raj!" Thom
Poplanich blurted.
Raj Whitehall's mouth
quirked. "You sound more shocked this time," he said.
The way you
look, I am more shocked, Thom thought, blinking and stretching a little.
There was no physical need; his muscles didn't stiffen while Center held him in
stasis. But the psychological satisfaction of movement was real enough, in its
own way.
The silvered globe in
which they stood didn't look different, and the reflection showed Thom himself
unchanged—down to the shaving nick in his chin and the tear in his tweed
trousers. A slight, olive-skinned young man in gentleman's hunting clothes,
looking a little younger than his twenty-five years. He'd cut his chin before
they set out to explore the vast tunnel-catacombs beneath the Governor's Palace
in East Residence. The trousers had been torn by a ricocheting pistol-bullet,
when the globe closed around them and Raj tried to shoot his way out.
Everything was just as it had been when Raj and he first stumbled into the
centrum of the being that called itself Sector Command and Control Unit
AZ12-bl4-cOOO Mk. XIV.
That had been years ago,
now.
Raj was the one who'd
changed, living in the outer—the real—world. That had been obvious on the first
visit, two years after their parting. It was much more noticeable this time.
They were of an age, but someone meeting them together for the first time would
have thought Raj a decade older.
"How long?"
Thom said. He was half-afraid of the answer.
"Another year and a
half."
Thom's surprise was
visible. He's aged that much in so little time? he thought. His friend
was a tall man, 190 centimeters, broad-shouldered and narrow-hipped, with a
swordsman's thick wrists. There were a few silver hairs in the bowl-cut black
curls now, and his gray eyes held no youth at all.
"Well, I've seen
the titanosauroid, since," Raj went on.
"Governor Barholm
did send you to the Southern Territories?"
Raj nodded; they'd
discussed that on the first visit. After Raj's victories against the Colony in
the east, he was the natural choice.
"A hard campaign,
from the way you look."
"No," Raj
said, moistening his lips. "A little nerve-racking sometimes, but I
wouldn't call it hard, exactly."
observe, the computer said. The
walls around them shivered. The perfect reflection dissolved in smoke, which
scudded away-
* * *
—and returned as a
ragged white pall spurting from the muzzles of volleying rifles. From behind a
courtyard wall, Raj Whitehall and troopers wearing the red and orange
neckscarves of the 5th Descott shot down an alleyway toward the docks of Port
Murchison. Each pair of hands worked rhythmically on the lever, ting, and
the spent brass shot backward, click, as they thumbed a new round into
the breech and brought the lever back up, crack as they fired.
There were already
windrows of bodies on the pavement: Squadron warriors killed before they knew
they were at risk. Survivors crouched behind the corpses of their fellows and
fired back desperately. Their clumsy flintlocks were slow to load, inaccurate
even at this range; they had to expose themselves to reload, fumbling with
powder horns and ramrods, falling back dead more often than not as the
Descotter marksmen fired. A few threw the firearms aside with screams of
frustrated rage, charging with their long single-edged swords whirling. By some
freak one got as far as the wall, and a bayonet punched through his belly. The
man fell backward off the steel, his mouth and eyes perfect O's of surprise.
A ball ricocheted from
one of the pillars and grazed Raj's buttock before slapping into the small of
the back of the officer beside him in the firing line. The stricken man dropped
his revolver and pawed blindly at his wound, legs giving their final twitch.
Raj shot carefully, standing in the regulation pistol-range position with one
hand behind the back and letting the muzzle fall back before putting another
round through the center of mass.
"Marcy!"
the barbarians called in their Namerique dialect. Mercy! They threw down
their weapons and began raising their hands. "Marcy, migo!" Mercy,
friend!
* * *
Both men blinked as the vision
faded—Raj to force memory away, Thom in surprise.
"You brought the
Southern Territories back?" Thom said, slight awe in his voice. The Squadrones-the
Squadron, under its Admiral—had ruled the Territories ever since they came
roaring down out of the Base Area a century and a half ago and cut a swath
across the Midworld Sea. The only previous Civil Government attempt to
reconquer them had been a spectacular disaster.
Raj shrugged, then
nodded: "I was in command of the Expeditionary Force, yes. But I couldn't
have achieved anything without good troops—and the Spirit."
"Center isn't the
Spirit of Man of the Stars, Raj. It's a Central Command and Control Unit from
before the Collapse—the Fall, we call it now."
Neither of them needed
another set of Center's holographic scenarios to remember what they had been
shown. Earth—Bellevue, the computer always insisted—from the holy realm of
Orbit, swinging like a blue-and-white shield against the stars. Points of
thermonuclear fire expanding across cities . . . and the descent into savagery
that followed. Which must have followed everywhere in the vast stellar realm
the Federation once ruled, or men from the stars would have returned.
Raj shivered
involuntarily. He had been terrified as a child, when the household priest
told of the Fall. It was even more unnerving to see it played out before the
mind's eye. Worse yet was the knowledge that Center had given him. The Fall was
still happening. If Center's plan failed, it would go on until there was
nothing left on Bellevue—anywhere in the human universe—but flint-knapping
cannibal savages. Fifteen thousand years would pass before civilization rose
again.
Thom went on:
"Center's just a computer."
Raj nodded. Computers
were holy, the agents of the Spirit, but Thom's stress on the word meant
something different now. Different since he'd been locked in stasis down here,
being shown everything Center knew. Nearly four years of continuous education.
"You know what you
know, Thom," Raj said gently. "But I know what I know." He shook
his head. "We slaughtered the whole Squadron," he went on. Literally.
"Made them attack us, then shot the shit out of them."
"And how did
Governor Barholm react?" Thom asked dryly. By rights, Thom Poplanich
should have been Seated on the Chair; his grandfather had been. Barholm
Clerett's uncle had been Commander of Residence Area Forces when the last
Governor died, however, which had turned out to be much more important.
"Well, he was
certainly pleased to get the Southern Territories back," Raj said, looking
aside. That was hard to do inside the perfectly reflective sphere. "The
expedition more than paid for itself, too—and that's not counting the tax
revenues."
observe, Center said.
* * *
—and men in the black
uniforms of the Gubernatorial Guard were marching Raj away, while the leveled
rifles of more kept Suzette Whitehall and Raj's men stock-still-
—and Raj stood in a
prisoner's breechclout and chains before a tribunal of three judges in
ceremonial jumpsuits and bubble helmets-
—and he sat bound to an
iron chair, as the glowing rods came closer and closer to his eyes-
* * *
Raj sighed. "That might
have happened, yes. According to Center, and I don't doubt it myself. I was
a little . . . apprehensive . . . about something like that. I'm not any
more; the Army grapevine has been pretty conclusive. In fact, when the Levee is
held this afternoon, I'm confident of getting another major command."
"The Western
Territories?"
"How did you
guess?"
"Even Barholm isn't
crazy enough to try conquering the Colony. Yet."
"Yes." Raj
nodded and ran a hand through his hair. "The problem is, he's probably too
suspicious to give me enough men to actually do it."
Thom blinked again. Raj
has changed, he thought. The young man he had known had been
ambitious—dreaming of beating back a major raid from the Colony, say, out on
the eastern frontier. This weathered young-old commander was casually confident
of overrunning the second most powerful realm on the Middle Sea, given adequate
backing. The Brigade had held the Western Territories for nearly six hundred
years. They were almost civilized . . . for barbarians. Odd to think that they
were descendants of Federation troops stranded in the Base Area after the Fall.
"Barholm," Raj
went on with clinical detachment—sounding almost like Center, for a
moment—"thinks that either I'll fail—"
observe, Center said.
* * *
Dead men gaped around a
smashed cannon. The Starburst banner of the Civil Government of Holy Federation
draped over some of the bodies, mercifully. Raj crawled forward, the stump of
his left arm tattered and red, still dribbling blood despite the improvised
tourniquet. His right just touched the grip of his revolver as the Brigade
warrior reined in his riding dog and stood in the stirrups to jam the lance
downward into his back. Again, and again . . .
* * *
"—or I'll succeed,
and he can deal with me then."
observe, Center said.
* * *
Raj Whitehall stood by
the punchbowl at a reception; Thom Poplanich recognized the Upper Promenade of
the palace by the tall windows and the checkerboard pavement of the terrace
beyond. Brilliant gaslight shone on couples swirling below the chandeliers in
the formal patters of court dance; on bright uniforms and decorations, on the
ladies' gowns and jewelry. He could almost smell the scents of perfume and
pomade and sweat. Off to one side the orchestra played, the soft rhythm of the
steel drums cutting through the mellow brass of trumpets and the rattle of marachaz.
Silence spread like a ripple through the crowd as the Gubernatorial Guard
troopers clanked into the room. Their black-and-silver uniforms and
nickel-plated breastplates shone, but the rifles in their hands were very
functional. The officer leading them bowed stiffly before Raj.
"General
Whitehall—" he began, holding up a letter sealed with the purple-and-gold
of a Governor's Warrant.
* * *
"Barholm doesn't deserve
to have a man like you serving him," Thom burst out.
"Oh, I agree,"
Raj said. For a moment his rueful grin made him seem boyish again, all but the
eyes.
"Then stay
here," Thom urged. "Center could hold you in stasis, like me, until
long after Barholm is dust. And while we wait, we can be learning everything.
All the knowledge in the human universe. Center's been teaching me things .
. . things you couldn't imagine."
"The problem is,
Thom, I'm serving the Spirit of Man of the Stars. Whose Viceregent on
Earth—"
bellevue, Center said.
"—Viceregent on
Bellevue happens to be Barholm Clerett. Besides the fact that my wife and
friends are waiting for me; and frankly, I wouldn't want my troops in anyone
else's hands right now, either." He sighed. "Most of all . . . well,
you always were a scholar, Thom. I'm a soldier; and the Spirit has called me to
serve as a soldier. If I die, that goes with the profession. And all men die,
in the end."
essentially correct, Center noted,
its machine-voice more somber than usual. restoring interstellar civilization on bellevue and to humanity in
general is an aim worth more than any single life. A pause, more than any million lives.
Raj nodded. "And
besides . . . in a year, I may die. Or Barholm may die. Or the dog may learn
how to sing."
They made the embrhazo
of close friends, touching each cheek. Thom froze again; Raj swallowed and
looked away. He had seen many men die. Too many to count, over the last few
years, and he saw them again in his dreams far more often than he wished. This
frozen un-death disturbed him in a way the windrows of corpses after a battle
did not. No breath, no heartbeat, the chill of a corpse—yet Thom lived. Lived,
and did not age.
He stepped out of the
doorway that appeared silently in the mirrored sphere, into the tunnel with its
carpet of bones—the bones of those Center had rejected over the years as it
waited for the man who would be its sword in the world.
Then again, he thought,
stasis isn't so bad, when you consider the alternatives.
* * *
"Bloody hell,"
Major Ehwardo Poplanich said, sotto voce. "How long is this going to take?
If I'd wanted to sit on my butt and be bored, I would have stayed home on the
estate." He ran a hand over his thinning brown hair.
He was part of the
reason that Raj Whitehall and his dozen Companions had plenty of space to
themselves on the padded sofa-bench that ran down the side of the anteroom.
Nobody at Court wanted to stand too close to a close relation of the
last Poplanich Governor. Quite a few wondered why Poplanich was with Raj; Thom
Poplanich had disappeared in Raj's company years before, and Thom's brother Des
had died when Raj put down a bungled coup attempt against Governor Barholm.
Another part of the
reason the courtiers avoided them was doubt about exactly how Raj stood with
the Chair, of course.
The rest of it was the
other Companions, the dozen or so close followers Raj had collected in his
first campaign on the eastern frontier or in the Southern Territories. Many of
the courtiers had spent their adult lives in the Palace, waiting in corridors
like this. The Companions seemed part of the scene at first, in dress or
walking-out uniforms like many of the men not in Court robes or religious
vestments. Until you came closer and saw the scars, and the eyes.
"We'll wait as long
as His Supremacy wants us to, Ehwardo," Colonel Gerrin Staenbridge said,
swinging one elegantly booted foot over his knee. He looked to be exactly what
he was: a stylish, handsome professional soldier from a noble family of
moderate wealth, a man of wit and learning, and a merciless killer.
"Consider yourself lucky to have an estate in a county that's boring; back
home in Descott County—"
"—bandits come down
the chimney once a week on Starday," Ehwardo finished. "Isn't that
right, M'lewis?"
"I wouldna know,
ser," the rat-faced little man said virtuously.
The Companions were
unarmed, despite their dress uniforms—the Life Guard troopers at the doors and
intervals along the corridor were fully equipped—but Raj suspected that the
captain of the 5th Descott's Scout Troop had something up his sleeve.
Probably a wire
garrote, he thought. M'lewis had enlisted one step ahead of the noose, having made
Bufford Parish—the most lawless part of not-very-lawful Descott County—too hot
for comfort. Raj had found his talents useful enough to warrant promotion to
commissioned rank, after nearly flogging the man himself at their first
meeting—a matter of a farmer's pig lifted as the troops went past. The Scout
Troop was full of M'lewis's friends, relatives and neighbors; it was also known
to the rest of the 5th as the Forty Thieves, not without reason.
Captain Bartin Foley
looked up from sharpening the inner curve of the hook that had replaced his
left hand. His face had been boyishly pretty when Raj first saw him, four years
before. Officially he'd been an aide to Gerrin Staenbridge, unofficially a
boyfriend-in-residence. He'd had both hands, then, too.
"Why don't
you?" he asked M'lewis. "Know about bandits coming down the chimney,
that is."
Snaggled yellow teeth
showed in a grin. "Ain't no sheep nor yet any cattle inna chimbley,
ser," M'lewis answered in the rasping nasal accent of Descott. "An'
ridin' dogs, mostly they're inna stable. No use comin' down t'chimbly then, is
there?"
The other Companions
chuckled, then rose in a body. The crowd surged away from them, and split as
Suzette Whitehall swept through.
Messa Suzette Emmenalle
Forstin Hogor Wenqui Whitehall, Raj thought. Lady of Hillchapel. My wife.
Even now that thought
brought a slight lurch of incredulous happiness below his breastbone. She was a
small woman, barely up to his shoulder, but the force of the personality behind
the slanted hazel-green eyes was like a jump into cool water on a hot day.
Seventeen generations of East Residence nobility gave her slim body a greyhound
grace, the tilt of her fine-featured olive face an unconscious arrogance. Over
her own short black hair she was wearing a long blond court wig covered in a
net of platinum and diamonds. More jewels sparkled on her bodice, on her
fingers, on the gold-chain belt. Leggings of embroidered torofib silk made from
the cocoons of burrowing insects in far-off Azania flashed enticingly through a
fashionable split skirt of Kelden lace.
Raj took her hand and
raised it to his lips; they stood for a moment looking at each other.
A metal-shod staff
thumped the floor, and the tall bronze panels of the Audience Hall swung open.
The gorgeously robed figure of the Janitor—the Court Usher—bowed and held out
his staff, topped by the star symbol of the Civil Government.
Suzette took Raj's arm.
The Companions fell in behind him, unconsciously forming a column of twos. The
functionary's voice boomed out with trained precision through the
gold-and-niello speaking trumpet:
"General the
Honorable Messer Raj Ammenda Halgern da Luis Whitehall, Whitehall of
Hillchapel, Hereditary Supervisor of Smythe Parish, Descott County! His Lady,
Suzette Emmenalle—"
Raj ignored the noise,
ignored the brilliantly-decked crowds who waited on either side of the carpeted
central aisle, the smells of polished metal, sweet incense and sweat. As
always, he felt a trace of annoyance at the constriction of the formal-dress
uniform, the skin-tight crimson pants and gilt codpiece, the floor-length
indigo tails of the coat and high epaulets and plumed silvered helmet. . . .
The Audience Hall was
two hundred meters long and fifty high, its arched ceiling a mosaic showing the
wheeling galaxy with the Spirit of Man rising head and shoulders behind it. The
huge dark eyes were full of stars themselves, staring down into your soul.
Along the walls were
automatons, dressed in the tight uniforms worn by Terran Federation soldiers
twelve hundred years before. They whirred and clanked to attention, powered by
hidden compressed-air conduits, bringing their archaic and quite nonfunctional
battle lasers to salute. The Guard troopers along the aisle brought their
entirely functional rifles up in the same gesture. They ignored the automatons,
but some of the crowd who hadn't been long at Court flinched from the awesome
technology and started uneasily when the arclights popped into blue-white
radiance above each pointed stained-glass window.
The far end of the
audience chamber was a hemisphere plated with burnished gold, lit via mirrors
from hidden arcs. It glowed with a blinding aura, strobing slightly. The Chair
itself stood four meters in the air on a pillar of fretted silver, the focus of
light and mirrors and every eye in the giant room. The man enchaired upon it
sat with hieratic stiffness, light breaking in metallized splendor from his
robes, the bejeweled Keyboard and Stylus in his hands. From somewhere out of
sight a chorus of voices chanted a hymn, inhumanly high and sweet, castrati belling
out the chorus and young girls on the descant:
"He intercedes for us-
Viceregent of the Spirit of Man of the Stars!
By Him are we boosted to the Orbit of Fulfillment-
Supreme! Most Mighty Sovereign, Lord!
In His hands is the power of Holy Federation Church-
Ruler without equal! Sole rightful Autocrat!
He wields the Sword of Law and the Flail of Justice-
Most excellent of Excellencies! Father of the State!
Download His words and execute the Program, ye People-
Endfile! Endfile! Ennd . . . fiiille."
On either side of the
arch framing the Chair were golden trees ten times taller than a man, with
leaves so faithfully wrought that their edges curled and quivered in the slight
breeze. Wisps of white-colored incense drifted through them from the censers
swinging in the hands of attendant priests in stark white jumpsuit vestments,
their shaven heads glittering with circuit diagrams. The branches of the trees
glittered also, as birds carved from tourmaline and amethyst and lapis lazuli
piped and sang. Their song rose to a high trilling as the pillar that supported
the Chair sank toward the white marble steps; at the rear of the enclosure two
full-scale statues of gorgosauroids rose to their three-meter height and roared
as the seat of the Governor of the Civil Government sank home with a slight
sigh of hydraulics. The semicircle of high ministers came out from behind their
desks—each had a ceremonial viewscreen of strictly graded size—and sank down in
the full prostration, linking their hands behind their heads. So did everyone
in the Hall, except for the armed guards.
The Companions had
stopped a few meters back. Now Raj felt Suzette's hand leave his; she sank down
with a courtier's elegance, making the gesture of reverence seem a dance. He
walked three more steps to the edge of the carpet and went to one knee, bowing
his head deeply and putting a hand to his breast—the privilege of his rank, as
a general and as one of Barholm's chosen Guards. It might have done him
some good to have made the three prostrations of a supplicant; on the other
hand, that could be taken as an admission of guilt.
You never know, with
Barholm, Raj thought. You never know. Center?
effect too uncertain to usefully calculate, the passionless
inner voice said. After a pause: with barholm even chaos theory is becoming of limited predictive
ability.
Raj blinked. There were
times he thought Center was developing a sense of humor. That was
obscurely disturbing in its own right. Dark take it, he'd never been much good
at pleading anyway. Flickers of holographic projection crossed his vision;
Barholm calling the curse of the Spirit down on his head, Barholm pinning a
high decoration to Raj's chest-
Cloth-of-gold robes sewn
with emeralds and sapphires swirled into Raj's view. The toes of equally lavish
slippers showed from under them. A tense silence filled the Hall; Raj could
feel the eyes on his back, hundreds of them. Like a pack of carnosauroids
waiting for a cow to stumble, he thought. Then:
"Rise, Raj
Whitehall!"
Barholm's voice was a
precision instrument, deep and mellow. With the superb acoustics of the hall
behind it, the words rolled out more clearly than the Janitor's had through the
megaphone. Behind them a long rustling sigh marked the release of tension.
Raj came to his feet,
bending slightly for the ceremonial embrace and touch of cheeks. He was several
centimeters taller than the Governor, although they were both Descotters.
Barholm had the brick build and dark heavy features common there, but Raj's
father had married a noblewoman from the far northwest, Kelden County. Folk
there were nearly as tall and fair as the Namerique-speaking barbarians of the
Military Governments.
The two men turned, the
tall soldier and the stocky autocrat. Barholm's hand rested on his general's
shoulder, a mark of high favor. Behind them the bidden chorus sang a high
wordless note.
"Nobles and clerics
of the Civil Government—behold the man who We call Savior of the State! Behold
the Sword of the Spirit of Man!" The orator's voice rolled out
again. The chorus came crashing in on the heels of it:
"Praise him! Praise
him! Praise him!"
Raj watched the throng
come to their feet, putting one palm to their ears and raising the other hand
to the sky—invoking the Spirit of Man of the Stars as they shouted,
"Glory, glory!" and "You conquer, Barholm!"
Every one of them would
have cheered his summary execution with equal enthusiasm—or greater.
Suzette's shining eyes
met his.
not quite all, Center reminded him.
Behind Suzette the Companions were grinning as they cheered, far less than all.
The cheering died as
Barholm raised a hand. "On Starday next shall be held a great day of
rejoicing in the Temple and throughout the city. For three days thereafter East
Residence shall hold festival in honor of General Whitehall and the brave men
he led to victory over the barbarians of the Squadron; wine barrels shall stand
at every crossroads, and the government storehouses will dispense to the
people. On the third day, the spoils and prisoners will be exhibited in the
Canidrome, to be followed by races and games in honor of the Savior of the
State."
This time the cheers
were deafening; if there was one thing everyone in East Residence loved, it was
a spectacle. The chorus was barely audible, and the sound rose to a new peak as
Barholm embraced Raj once more.
"There'll be a
staff meeting right after all this play-acting," he said into Raj's ear,
his voice flat. "There's the campaign in the Western Territories to
plan."
He turned, and everyone
bowed low as he withdrew through the private entrance behind the Chair.
So passes the glory of
this world, Raj thought. Death or victory, and if victory—
observe, Center said. Holographic
vision shimmered before his eyes, invisible to any but himself:
* * *
It took a moment for Raj
to recognize the naked man: it was himself, his face contorted and slick with
the burnt fluid of his own eyeballs, after the irons had had their way with
them. Thick leather straps held his wrists and ankles splayed out in an X.
The hooded executioners
were just fastening each limb to the pull-chain of a yoke of oxen. The crowd
beyond murmured, held back by a line of leveled bayonets.
Governor Barholm stood
while the servants stripped off his heavy robes. The Negrin Room dated to the
reign of Negrin III, three centuries before; the walls were pale stone, traced
over with delicate murals of reeds and flying dactosauroids and waterfowl;
there was only one small Star, a token obeisance to religion as had been common
in that impious age. The heads of the Ministries were there, and Mihwel Berg as
Administrator of the newly-conquered Southern Territories and representative of
the Administrative Service; Chancellor Tzetzas, of course; General Klostermann,
Master of Soldiers, Bernardinho Rivadavia, the Minister of Barbarians, and Lady
Anne Clerett as well, the Governor's wife. She gave Raj a sincere smile as they
waited for the Governor to finish disrobing.
There's one real
friend at court, he thought. Suzette's friend, actually.
Barholm sat, and the
others bowed and joined him.
"Well,
messers," he said abruptly, opening the file an aide placed before him.
"It's time to deal with the Western Territories and the barbarians of the
Brigade who impiously hold the Old Residence, original seat of the Civil
Government of Holy Federation—since we've reduced the Southern Territories
quite satisfactorily, thanks to the aid of the Spirit of Man of the Stars, and
Its Sword, General Whitehall."
There was a murmur of
applause, and Raj looked down at his hands. "I had good troops and
officers," he said.
"Your
Supremacy," Tzetzas said. "We all give praise to the
Spirit"—there was a mass touching of amulets, most of them genuine ancient
computer components, in this assembly—"and to our General Whitehall, and
to your wise policy, that the barbarian heretics were defeated so easily. Yet I
would be remiss in my duties if I failed to point out that the Civil Government
is still reeling from the expense of the southern campaign—completed less than
a year ago. Which has, in fact, so far served to enrich only the officers
involved in the operation."
observe, Center said:
* * *
Muzzaf Kerpatik was on
the docks in Port Murchison, capital of the reconquered Southern Territories.
He was a small dark man from Komar, near the Colonial border; once a merchant
and agent of Chancellor Tzetzas, until the latter's schemes had grown too much
for even his elastic conscience. Since then he'd proven himself useful to Raj
in a number of ways . . . although Raj hadn't known about this one, precisely.
He was overseeing the loading of a ship, a medium-sized three-masted
merchantman. Bolts of silk were going aboard, and burlap sacks filled with
crystals of raw saltpeter, bales of rosauroid hides, and slatted wooden boxes
stuffed with what looked like gold and silver tableware. A coffle of women
chained neck-and-neck waited to board later: all young and good-looking, some
stunningly so, and in the remnants of rich clothing in the gaudy style of the
Squadron nobility—families of those barbarian nobles who'd refused to yield to
the Spirit of Man of the Stars or missed the amnesty after the surrender,
headed for Civil Government slave markets.
Raj thought he could
place the time: about a month after the final battle on the docks. It had taken
that long, and repeated scrubbings, before the rotting blood stopped drawing
crawling mats of flies.
I'd heard about
streets running with blood, he reminded himself. Never seen it until then. Vice-Admiral
Curtis Auburn had landed ten thousand Squadron warriors on those docks, unaware
that the main Squadron host was defeated and Raj in control of the city. Curtis
had been lucky enough to be captured almost immediately, but less than one in
ten of his men had survived the day.
The vision couldn't be much
more than a month after that, because Suzette was riding up and leaning down to
examine the checklist in Kerpatik's hand, and both Whitehalls had sailed home
when Raj was recalled in quasi-disgrace.
* * *
"Should we not
pause and recoup our resources?" the Chancellor concluded.
"Especially when our internal situation is so delicate."
Due in no small
measure to Your Most Blatant Corruptibility, Raj thought ironically.
There was a popular East Residence legend that a poisonous fangmouth had once
bitten Tzetzas at a garden party, the unfortunate reptile was believed to have
died in horrible convulsions within minutes. The Chancellor had raised enormous
sums for Barholm's wars and public works projects, and a good deal of it had
stuck to his own beautifully manicured fingers.
Raj's expression was
blandly respectful and attentive. On the expedition to the Southern
Territories, Tzetzas had seen that Raj sailed with weevily hardtack and bunker
coal that was half shale; Raj had returned the favor in his last stop in Civil
Government territory by exchanging the goods for replacements from Tzetzas's
own estates and mines, at full book price.
observe, Center said.
* * *
Sesar Chayvez stood
before his patron. The plump little man was sweating as Tzetzas sat leafing
through the documents in the file before him.
"And here, my dear
Sesar, we come to your signature, right next to that of then-Brigadier
Whitehall and Mihwel Berg of the Administrative Service, on the bottom of this
requisition order. Authorizing the exchange of worthless trash for goods from
my estates in Kolobassa District."
His voice was light,
even slightly amused. "An exchange which, since the hardtack in question
was useful only for pig feed and the coal unsalable in an exporting center like
Hayapalco, cost me approximately fourteen thousand gold FedCreds. Not to
mention the expenses for repairing estates ruined when Whitehall quartered
Skinner mercenaries on them to . . . shall we say, motivate the staff to
cooperation."
"Your Most
Excellent Honorability," Chayvez said, twining his fingers together.
His eyes flicked around
the room, on the cabinets of well-thumbed books, the curios, the restrained
elegance of the mosaic floor. Oddly, that was mostly covered with a square of
waxed canvas on this visit. He swallowed and forced himself to continue:
"The . . . the
hill-bandit of a Descotter occupied my headquarters with troops loyal only to
him!" he burst out. "One of his thugs started to strangle me
with a wire noose until I signed. What could I do?"
"Oh, I can
understand your fears," Tzetzas said, waving a deprecatory hand. Chayvez
began to relax. "In fact, it isn't the first time that Whitehall and those
ruffian Companions of his have caused me substantial trouble. They brutalized a
number of my placemen and employees in Komar, when stationed there. Brutalized
them so thoroughly—I believe they began to skin one of them—that they
revealed far, far too much, and I was forced to turn over all my investments in
the province to the Chair to avoid serious disfavor."
Barholm had been quite
annoyed. The scheme had involved holding up the landgrants usually given to
infantry garrison troops, and then pocketing the revenues from the State farms.
It might have gone unnoticed if Raj Whitehall hadn't been sent to bolster that
particular frontier against the Colony.
Chayvez nodded
enthusiastically. "The man is a menace to peace and orderly government,
Your Most Excellent Honorability," he said.
"True. You will
understand, then."
"Ah . . ." The
plump provincial governor hesitated. "Understand, Your—"
"Yes, yes. That I cannot
have my servants more afraid of Whitehall than of me. I believe his tame
thug began to strangle you?"
A shadow moved from a
corner of the darkened room. It grew into a man, a black man in a long dark
robe. Not from one of the highly civilized city-states of Zanj; his tribal
scars showed him to be from much farther south and west, from the savannahs of
Majinga. The slave was nearly two meters tall, with shoulders like a bull
moving beneath the cloth of his kanzu. His tongueless mouth gobbled in
thick joy as he closed his fingers around the little man's neck and lifted him
clear of the floor. Chayvez's arms and legs thrashed for a moment, beating at
the boulder-solid form of the black and then twitching helplessly. The massive
hands clamped tighter and tighter, closing by increments. When the neck snapped
at last the bureaucrat had been still for several minutes. Urine and other
fluids dripped to the waxed canvas on the floor.
"Wrap the body, and
drop it in an alley," Tzetzas said, in a language quite unlike the
Sponglish of civilization. The mute bowed silently and bent to his task as the
Chancellor turned up the coal-oil lamp and took another file from the
sauroid-ivory holder on his desk.
* * *
Raj met Tzetzas's eyes
and inclined his head. The Chancellor matched the gesture with one almost as
imperceptible and far more graceful.
Barholm explained to
Raj: "There's been another outbreak of the anti-hardcopyist heresy down in
Cerest. It's nothing serious; just a boil. When you've got a boil on your bum,
you lance it and ignore it."
There were shocked
murmurs; Raj touched his own amulet, a gold-chased chipboard fragment blessed
by Saint Wu herself. "Wasn't that heresy anathematized two centuries
ago?" he said.
"Yes, but it's like
black plague, always breaking out again," the Governor said. "This
time they're taking a new tack; calling circuit diagrams themselves 'false
schematics' and corrupted data, not just denouncing allegorical
representations. We can't afford trouble in Cerest—"
Raj nodded; a good deal
of the capital's grain was shipped from there, and the Tarr Valley was the
trade route to the rich tropical lands of the Zanj city-states. Or at least the
only route that didn't run through the hostile Colony.
"—so I'm sending a
brigade and a Viral Cleanser Sysup to purge their subroutines of heresy for
good and all." He shook his square-jawed head; there was more silver in
the black hair than Raj remembered. Being Governor was a high-stress occupation
too.
observe, Center said.
* * *
Blinding sunlight in the
main square of Cerest, a prosperous-looking provincial capital. A domed Star
Temple, with the many-rayed symbol atop it; the square bulk of a regional
Prefect's palace across from it, fountains and arcades all about. A crowd
filled most of the open paved space. It moaned as men—and a few women—were led
out to a long row of iron posts set deep in the pavement. They shook their
heads and refused the offered Headsets, symbolic connection to the Terminals of
confession; two spat at the officiating priests. The soldiers hustled them on,
supporting as much as forcing. Most of the prisoners' bare feet showed oozing
sores where their toenails should have been.
The iron posts were
joined in a complete loop by thick copper cables; the ends of the cables
disappeared into a wagon-mounted box with an external flywheel belt—driven by
the power take-off of a steam haulage engine. As the steel chains bound them to
the posts, the prisoners began to sing, a hymn in some thick local dialect Raj
couldn't follow. Out in the crowd others took it up, men in the rough brown
robes of desert monks, women in the archaic jumpsuits and tunics of Renunciate
Sisters, then the ragged dezpohblado crowd of town laborers. An officer
barked an order and the troops blocking off the execution ground formed, the
first rank dropping to one knee, both leveling their rifles.
The belt drive to the
generator whined, and a hooded executioner put his hand on a scissor-switch.
The Sysup in his gold-embroidered overrobe stood in the attitude of prayer—one
hand over his ear, the other stretched up with its fingers making keying
motions—and then swept it down. The man in the leather hood matched his gesture
with a showman's timing, and blue sparks popped from the dangling cables. The
prisoners stopped singing, but they could not scream with the DC current
running through their bodies, only convulse against the iron poles.
A rock arched through
the air and took one of the soldiers in the mouth. He collapsed backward
limply; there was no motion from the others besides a ripple of movement as
they closed ranks. They were Regulars, dragoons. . . .
More rocks flew. Raj
could see the officer's lips move silently, in a prayer or curse. Then he
shouted an order:
"Volley fire!"
An endless line of white puffs, and the crowd recoiled, all but those smashed
off their feet by the heavy bullets. The soldiers worked the levers of their
rifles, reloaded. Another order, and they began to advance in a serried line,
bayonets advanced.
* * *
Raj blinked. As always,
the holographic vision lasted far less time than it seemed. Chancellor Tzetzas
was steepling his fingers:
". . . necessary
measures, true. Cerest Province is far too valuable to risk."
Especially with what our
dear Chancellor makes from the chocolate, torofib and kave monopolies, Raj
thought ironically. And I'll bet he fiddles on the share the fisc is supposed
to get.
probability 97% ±2%, Center said. however, total receipts to the fisc have
increased while he holds the monopolies, due to volume growth.
"Still, undertaking
another campaign at this time—when, as I mentioned, we have yet to recoup the
expenses of the last, well . . ." There was a spare gesture of the long
hand.
Mihwel Berg, now
Administrator of the Southern Territories, sniffed; he was a mousy little man,
and watching him defy Tzetzas was like seeing a sheep turn on a carnosauroid.
"Your Excellency, I might point out that all out-of-pocket expenses for
the Expeditionary Force have already been recouped, with plunder, sale of
prisoners, and other cash receipts alone leaving a surplus of no less than
seven hundred fifty-four thousand FedCreds to the fisc. Gold."
Barholm sat straighter,
casting a sidelong glance at his Chancellor. That was a considerable sum even
by the Civil Government's standards. The Governor might be obsessed with
reclaiming the territories lost to the Military Governments centuries ago, but
he was keenly aware of financial matters.
"Furthermore, and
even without the invaluable services which Your Excellency's tax-farming
syndicates provide to the fisc, the first six months' revenues from the
Southern Territories under Administrative Services control, annualized, are
tenth out of the twenty-two Counties and Territories currently under effective
Civil Government control.
"And," Berg
went on, warming to his topic, "that does not include the revenues
from estates confiscated from deceased or captured members of the
Squadron—which amount to nearly half of the arable land in the district, if we
include the one-third confiscation of Squadron nobles who surrendered before
the collapse and, of course, the Admiral's own lands. Ex-Admiral, that is. That
revenue alone will double the overall receipts from the Territories, and this
is after we deduct lands to be deeded to peasant militia, infantry garrison
plots, and estates to support the Church. Furthermore, the Territories have
much untapped potential neglected under the Admirals. If our Sovereign Mighty
Lord will examine the proposals—"
He slid a package of
documents across the table; Barholm untied the ribbon and began riffling
through them with interest. Tzetzas's fingers crooked like talons. The
Chancellor usually had a say in what reached the Governor's desk, and he valued
that power. Governor Barholm was a hard-working administrator, and an
enthusiast for useful public works.
"—a railway to the
saltpeter mines alone would increase the total yield of the Territories by
fifteen percent"—saltpeter was a Chair monopoly, and the deposits south of
Port Murchison were the richest in the known world—"besides making
economical the copper and zinc deposits there, closed for three generations.
There are also irrigation works to be brought back into operation, road repairs
. . . Your Supremacy, launching the Expeditionary Force was the most lucrative
stroke of policy any Governor has made in two hundred years."
Klosterman pulled at his
muttonchop whiskers. "Still, even if the Colony is quiet, I'd not like to
take too many troops away from the border," he said. The Master of
Soldiers' last regional field command had been of Eastern Forces. "Ali's
no fool, but he's vain, and he's vicious as a starving carnosauroid to
boot."
Barholm shrugged.
"He may have killed his brother Akbar, but they'll take a while to recover
from their civil war."
Good fortune had given
the Civil Government four strong Governors in a row, with no usurpations or
civil conflicts—the primary reason for its current strength and unprecedented
prosperity—but disputed successions were a problem both the Civil Government
and the Colony were thoroughly familiar with.
observe, Center said.
* * *
A one-eyed man stood
among burned-out ruins. Raj recognized him instantly: Tewfik bin-Jamal, son of
the late Settler of the Colony, and commander of all his armies. Raj had lost
one minor battle to him, and won a major one by a thin margin; and every day in
his prayers the general thanked the Spirit of Man for the Colonist superstition
that made Tewfik ineligible for the Settler's throne because he lacked an eye.
The stocky, muscular
body filled the regulation crimson djellaba with a solid authority, and the
Seal of Solomon marked his eyepatch. Officers of the Colonial regulars and
black-robed personal mamelukes followed the Muslim general as he stalked
through the shattered building. He kicked at a frame of cindered boards; they
slid away in ash that drifted ghostly under the bright sun, revealing the
warped brass and iron shape of a lathe. Other machines stood amid the ruins, as
did the cast-iron poles that had carried the drive shaft from a steam engine.
Tewfik's face was
impassive beneath his spired spike-topped helmet, but the grip of his left hand
on the plain wired brass hilt of his scimitar was white-knuckled with the
effort of controlling his rage. The Colony armed its forces with lever-operated
repeating carbines, and the machine shops that turned them out were a rare and
precious asset. Now there was one less.
He turned; the viewpoint
turned with him, staying behind his left shoulder. Beyond the fallen door-arch
of the factory were more ruins, then intact buildings, and a long slope down to
a great river. Flat roofs and minarets, smokestacks, towers glinting with
colored tile, narrow twisting streets and irregular plazas around splashing
fountains: Al Kebir, the capital of the Colony and the oldest city on Bellevue.
Half a dozen huge bridges crossed the river, and the water was thronged with
lateen-sailed dhows and sambuks, with barges and rafts and steamboats. Across
the river was a burst of greenery, palms and jacaranda trees, and a great
interlinked pile of low, ornately carved marble buildings taking up scores of
hectares before the sprawl of the city resumed. An endless low rumble carried
through the air, the sound of a million human beings and their doings, pierced
through with the high wailing call of a muezzin.
The robed men sank to
their knees in prayer; Tewfik waited an instant as his attendants spread a
prayer rug before he bent his head towards the distant holy city of Sinnar,
where the first ships to reach Bellevue had carried a fragment of the Kaaba
from burning Mecca.
When he rose he turned
to the man in a civilian outfit of baggy pantaloons, sash, turban and curl-toed
slippers. At his finger's motion two of the mameluke slave-soldiers—one blond,
one black, both huge men moving as lightly as cats—stood behind the civilian.
The heavy curved swords in their hands rested lightly on his shoulders.
"Sa'id—" the
man began.
Prince. That much Raj
would have known, but as always Center somehow provided the knowledge that made
the Arabic as understandable as his native Sponglish.
"Prince," the
man went on, "what could we do? Your brother Akbar's followers came and
demanded the finished arms; then the household troops of your brother Ali
attacked them. We are not fighting men here."
Tewfik nodded, his hand
stroking his beard. "Kismet," he said: fate. "When the kaphar,
the infidels of the Civil Government, slew our father, it was Akbar's fate
to reach for power and fail"—and leave his head on a pole before the Grand
Mosque—"and yours to repair the damage as quickly as may be. If I thought
you truly responsible, I would not threaten."
The manager nodded
unconsciously; if Tewfik thought that the staff were dragging their feet, there
would have been another set of heads on a pole some time ago.
"How long?"
Tewfik asked, his voice like millstones of patience that would grind results
out of time and fate by sheer force of will.
"If the Settler
Ali, upon whom may Allah shower His blessings, advances the necessary funds, we
will be turning out carbines again in six months," he said.
Tewfik's right hand
rested on the butt of his revolver. One index finger gestured, and the
mamelukes pressed the factory manager to his knees with the blunt back edges of
their scimitars. The blades crossed before his neck, ready to scissor through
it like a gardener's shears through the stem of a tulip.
"Six months!"
the man cried; he ripped open his jacket to bare his breast in token of his
willingness to die. "Prince Tewfik, we are adepts of the mechanic arts
here, not dervishes or magicians! Machine tools cannot be flogged into
obedience—six months and no more, but no less. May I be boiled alive and my
children's flesh eaten by wild dogs if I lie!"
"That can be
arranged . . . if you lie," Tewfik said somberly. The man met his eyes,
ignoring the blades so near his flesh. The Colonist general sighed and signed
the swordsmen back. "There is no God but God, and all things are
accomplished according to the will of God. In the name of the Merciful, the
Lovingkind, I shall not make you bear the weight of an anger earned elsewhere.
Come, my friend; rise, and we will speak of details over sherbert with my staff.
Soon the Dar 'as-Salaam will need the weapons. There is a great stirring in the
House of War."
* * *
Raj nodded. "Ali
will wait; a year, maybe two if he has enough sense to listen to Tewfik.
"Still," he
went on, "the Brigade's a more serious proposition than the Squadron was.
They've been in contact with civilization longer, and they do have a standing
army of sorts; plus they've some recent combat experience."
Mostly against the
Stalwarts in the north; those were savages, but numerous, vicious and treacherous
to a fault.
"Also the Western
Territories are bigger—not just in raw area, the population. Not so much
desert. I'd say for a really thorough pacification . . . forty thousand troops.
Fifteen thousand cavalry."
There were outraged
screams around the table. "Out of the question!" Tzetzas barked,
startled out of his usual suavity, and Barholm was looking narrow-eyed.
"That would be
a little large," he said carefully. "Particularly as we're hoping
that General Forker won't fight."
"Sovereign Mighty
Lord, Forker may not fight but I doubt the Brigade will roll over that
easily," Raj said.
"Fifteen thousand
is about as much as we could spare," Barholm said, tapping a knuckle
against the table to show that the question was closed. "That proved ample
for the Squadron. Another battalion or two of cavalry, perhaps more guns."
The ruler leaned back.
"Besides that," he went on, "General Forker—" the Brigades
ruler kept the ancient title, although in the Western Territories it had come
to mean king rather than a military rank "—is by no means
necessarily hostile to the Civil Government. He spent better than a year
negotiating for help while he was maneuvering to replace the late General
Welf."
"He managed to do
that without our aid, though, didn't he, Sovereign Mighty Lord?"
The Minister of
Barbarians shuffled through his notes. "Yes, General Whitehall. In fact,
he showed an almost, well, almost civilized subtlety during the
negotiations. Then he married Charlotte Welf, the late General's widow. That
made his election to the General's position inevitable. We were, I confess,
surprised."
"Not as surprised
as she was when he murdered her as soon as he was firmly in power,"
Barholm said, grinning; there was a polite chuckle.
observe, Center said. A brief
flicker this time; a woman in her bath. Handsome in a big-boned way, with grey
in her long blond hair. She looked up angrily when the maidservant scrubbing
her back fled, then tried to stand herself as she saw the big bearded men who
had forced their way through the door. They wore bandanas over their lower
faces, but the short fringed leather jackets marked them as Brigade nobles.
Water fountained over the marble tiles of the bathroom as they gripped her head
and held it under the surface. Her feet kicked free, thrashing at the water for
a moment until the body slumped. Then there were only the warriors' arms, rigid
bars down through the floating soapsuds. . . .
Chancellor Tzetzas
raised an index finger in stylized horror. "Quite a gothic tale," he
said. "Barbarians."
Raj nodded. "We can
certainly spare seventeen or eighteen thousand men," he went on. "The
Southern Territories are fairly quiet, all they need is garrison forces to keep
the desert nomads in order. The military captives sent here will more than replace
any drawdown. We could ship a substantial force into Stern Island—" that
was directly north of the reconquered Southern Territories, and the easternmost
Brigade possession "—and . . . hmm. Don't we have some claim to it, being
heirs to the Admirals? It would make a first-rate base for an advance to the
west."
The Minister of
Barbarians leaned forward. "Indeed," he said, pushing up his glasses.
"The former Admiral of the Squadron—ex-Admiral Auburn's predecessor's
father—married Mindy-Sue Grakker, a daughter of the then General of the
Brigade, and acquired extensive estates on Stern Island as her dower. The
Brigade commander there has refused to turn over their administration to the
envoys I sent."
"Excellent,"
Barholm said, leaning back and steepling his fingers. He might be of Descotter
descent, but his fine-honed love of a good, legally sound swindle was that of a
native-born East Residencer. "From there, we can exploit opportunity as it
offers."
"Your
Supremacy," Raj said in agreement. "We could move most of the troops
up from the Southern Territories? They're surplus to requirements, closer, and
I know what they can do. It's going on for summer already, so there's a time
factor here."
"Ah," Barholm
said, giving him a long, considering look. "Well, General, I'll certainly
withdraw some of those forces . . . but it wouldn't be wise to make it appear
that you have some sort of private army of your own. People might
misunderstand. . . ."
Raj smiled politely.
"Quite true, Your Supremacy," he said.
Everyone
understands that it's the Army that disposes of the Chair, in the end. Three
generations without a coup would be something of a record—if you didn't
count Barholm's own uncle Vernier Clerett. He hadn't shot his way onto the
Chair, strictly speaking, but he had been Commander of East Residence
Forces when the last Poplanich Governor died of natural causes.
Probably natural causes.
"We certainly don't
want people to think that," Raj went on. "Half the cavalry
battalions from the Southern Territories, then?" Barholm nodded.
"And the
infantry?"
"By all
means," the Governor said, slightly surprised Raj would mention the
subject. Infantry were second-line troops, and Barholm saw little difference
between one battalion of them and another.
You haven't seen
what Jorg Menyez and I can do with them, Raj thought. "I'll
draw the other cavalry battalions and artillery from the Residence Area Forces
Group, then?"
Barholm signed assent.
"I'll be sending along my nephew Cabot Clerett, as well," the
Governor said. "He's been promoted to Major, in command of the 1st
Residence Battalion." A Life Guards unit; they rarely left East Residence,
but many of the men were veterans from other outfits. Of late, most had been
from the Clerett family's estates. "It's time Cabot got some military
experience."
Raj spread his hands.
"At your command, Your Supremacy. I've met him; he seems an intelligent
young officer, and doubtless brave as well." A subtle reminder: don't
blame me if he stops a bullet somewhere.
"Indeed. Although I
hope he won't be seeing too much action." An equally subtle hint: he's
my heir. Barholm was nearly forty, and he and Lady Anne hadn't produced a
child in fifteen years of marriage. The Governor smiled like a shark at the
exchange. It was worth the risk, since he had other nephews. A Governor didn't have
to be a general, but he did need enough field experience for fighting men
to respect him. He continued:
"In fact—this
doesn't go beyond these walls—we are, in fact, negotiating with General Forker
right now. The, ah, death of Charlotte Welf . . . Charlotte Forker . . .
aroused considerable animosity among some of the Brigade nobles. Particularly
since Forker's main claim to membership in the Amalson family was through her.
General Forker has expressed interest in our offer of a substantial annuity and
an estate near East Residence in return for his abdication in favor of the
Civil Government."
"He may abdicate,
Sovereign Mighty Lord, but I doubt his nobles would all go along with it. The
Brigade monarchy is elective within the House of Theodore Amalson. The Military
Council includes all the adult males, and they can depose him and put someone
else in his place."
"That,"
Barholm said dryly, "is why we're sending an army."
Raj nodded. "I'll
get right on to it, then, Your Supremacy, as soon as the Gubernatorial
Receipt—" a general-purpose authorizing order "—comes through. It'll
take a month or so to coordinate . . . by your leave, Sovereign Mighty
Lord?"
How utterly
foolish of him, Suzette Whitehall thought, looking at the petitioner.
Lady Anne leaned her
head on one hand, her elbow on the satinwood arm of her chair. Her levees were
much simpler than the Governor's, as befitted a Consort. Apart from the Life
Guard troopers by the door, only a few of her ladies-in-waiting were present,
and the room was lavish but not very large. A pleasant scent of flowers came
through the open windows, and the sound of a gitar being strummed. The
cool spring breeze fluttered the dappled silk hangings.
Despite that, the
Illustrious Deyago Rihvera was sweating. He was a plump little man whose
stomach strained at the limits of his embroidered vest and high-collared
tailcoat, and his hand kept coming up to fiddle with the emerald stickpin in
his lace cravat.
Suzette reflected that
he probably just did not connect the glorious Lady Anne Clerett with Supple
Annie, the child-acrobat, actress and courtesan. He'd only been a client of
hers once or twice, from what Suzette had heard—even then, Anne had been
choosey when she could. But since then Rihvera had been an associate of
Tzetzas, and everyone knew how much the Consort hated the Chancellor. To
be sure, the men who owed Rihvera the money he needed so desperately—to pay for
his artistic pretensions—were under Anne's patronage. Not much use pursuing the
claims in ordinary court while she protected them.
". . . and so you
see, most glorious Lady, I petition only for simple justice," he
concluded, mopping his face.
"Illustrious
Rihvera—" Anne began.
A chorus broke in from
behind the silk curtains. They were softer-voiced, but otherwise an eerie
reproduction of the Audience Hall singers, castrati and young girls:
"Thou art flatulent, Oh Illustrious Deyago
Pot-bellied, too:
Oh incessantly farting, pot-bellied one!"
Silver hand-bells rang a
sweet counterpoint. Anne sat up straighter and looked around.
"Did you hear
anything?" she murmured.
Suzette cleared her
throat "Not a thing, glorious Lady. There's an unpleasant smell,
though."
"Send for
incense," the Consort said. Turning back to Rihvera, her expression
serious. "Now, Illustrious—"
"You have a toad's mouth, Oh Illustrious Deyago-
Bug eyes, too:
Oh toad-mouthed, bug-eyed one!"
This time the silver
bells were accompanied by several realistic croaking sounds.
I wonder how
long he can take it? Suzette thought, slowly waving her fan.
His hands were trembling
as he began again.
* * *
"Are you well, my
dear?" Suzette asked anxiously, when the petitioners and attendants were
gone.
"It's
nothing," Anne Clerett said briskly. "A bit of a grippe."
The Governor's lady
looked a little thinner than usual, and worn now that the amusement had died
away from her face. She was a tall woman, who wore her own long dark-red hair
wound with pearls in defiance of Court fashion and protocol. For the rest she
wore the tiara and jewelled bodice, flounced silk split skirt, leggings and
slippers as if she had been born to them. Instead of working her way up from
acrobat and child-whore down by the Camidrome and the Circus . . .
Suzette took off her own
blond wig and let the spring breeze through the tall doors riffle her
sweat-dampened black hair. It carried scents of greenery and flowers from the
courtyard and the Palace gardens, with an undertaste of smoke from the city
beyond.
"Thank you,"
she said to Anne. There was no need to specify, between them.
Anne Clerett shrugged.
"It's nothing," she said. "I advise Barholm for his own good—and
putting Raj in charge is the best move." She hesitated: "I
realize my husband can be . . . difficult, at times."
He can be
hysterical, Suzette thought coldly as she smiled and patted Anne's
hand. In a raving funk back during the Victory Riots, when the city factions
tried to throw out the Cleretts, Anne had told him to run if he wanted to, that
she'd stay and burn the Palace around her rather than go back to the docks.
That had put some backbone into him, that and Raj taking command of the Guards
and putting down the riots with volley-fire and grapeshot and bayonet charges
to clear the barricades.
He can also be a
paranoid menace. Barholm was the finest administrator to sit the Chair in
generations, and a demon for work—but he suspected everyone except Anne. Nor
had he ever been much of a fighting man, and his jealousy of Raj was poisoning
what was left of his good sense on the subject. A Governor was theoretically
quasi-divine, with power of life and death over his subjects. In practice he
held that power until he used it too often on too many influential subjects,
enough to frighten the rest into killing him despite the dangerous uncertainty
that always followed a coup. Barholm hadn't come anywhere near that.
Yet.
"Besides,"
Anne went on, "I stand by my friends."
Which was true. When
Anne was merely the tart old Governor Vernier Clerett's nephew had
unaccountably married, the other Messas of the Palace had barely noticed her.
Except in the way they might have scraped something nasty off their shoes.
Suzette had had better sense than those more conventional gentlewomen. Or
perhaps just less snobbery, she thought. Her family was as ancient as any
in the City; they had been nobles when the Cleretts and Whitehalls were minor
bandit chiefs in the Descott hills. They had also been quite thoroughly poor by
the time she came of age, years before she met Raj. The last few farms had been
mortgaged to buy the gowns and jewels she needed to appear at Court.
"You'll be
accompanying Raj again?" Anne asked.
"Always,"
Suzette replied.
Anne nodded. "We
both," she said, "have able husbands. But even the most able of
men—"
"—needs help,"
Suzette replied. The Governor's Lady raised a fingertip and servants appeared
with cigarettes in holders of carved sauroid ivory.
"I may need help
with young Cabot," Suzette said. "He hasn't been much at Court?"
"Mostly back in
Descott," Anne said "Keeping the Barholm name warm on the ancestral
estates."
Which were meagre things
in themselves. Descott was remote, a month's journey on dogback east and north
of the capital, a poor upland County of volcanic plateaus and badlands. Mostly
grazing country, with few products beyond wool, riding dogs and ornamental
stone. Its other export was fighting men, proud poor backland squires and their
followings of tough vakaros and yeoman-tenant ranchers, men born to the
rifle and saddle, to the hunt and the blood feud. Utterly unlike the tax-broken
peons of the central provinces. Only a fraction of the Civil Government's
people lived there, but one in five of the elite mounted dragoons were
Descotters. Most of the rest came from similar frontier areas, or were
mercenaries from the barbaricum.
It was no accident that
Descotters had held the Chair so often of late, nor that the Cleretts were
anxious to keep first-hand ties with the clannish County gentry.
"Seriously, my
dear," Anne went on, "you should look after young Clerett. He's . . .
well, he's been champing at the bridle of late. Twenty, and a head full of
romantic yeast and old stories. Quite likely to get himself killed—which would
be a disaster. Barholm, ah, is quite attached to him."
The two women exchanged
a look; both childless, both without illusion. It said a great deal for Anne
that Barholm had not put her aside for not giving him an heir of his body,
which was sufficient cause for divorce under Civil Government law.
"I'll try to see he
comes back, Anne," Suzette said. If possible, she added to herself
with clinical detachment. Romantic, ambitious young noblemen were not difficult
to control; she had found that out long before her marriage. They could also be
trouble when serious business was in question, such as the welfare of one's
husband.
"I'm sure you can
handle Cabot," Anne said. That sort of manipulation was skill they shared,
in their somewhat different contexts.
"Poplanich needn't
come back," Anne went on.
She smiled; Suzette
looked away with a well-concealed shudder. A strayed ox might have noticed an
expression like that on the last carnosauroid it ever saw.
Anne clapped her hands.
"Thom Poplanich, Des Poplanich—Ehwardo would make a beautiful matched set,
don't you think?" And it would leave the Poplanich gens without an
adult male of note. Thom's grandsire had been a well-loved Governor.
"Des was a
rebel," Suzette said carefully. "I've never known what happened to
Thom. Ehwardo is a loyal officer."
"Of course, of
course," Anne said, chuckling and giving Suzette's hand a squeeze.
Raj's wife chuckled
herself. There's irony for you, she thought: I really don't know what happened
to Thom.
Raj simply refused to
discuss it, and he had been different ever since he came back from the
tunnels they'd gone exploring in; the ground under East Residence was
honeycombed with them. Suzette might have advised quietly braining Thom
Poplanich and leaving him in the catacombs, as a career move and personal
insurance—except that she knew that Raj would never have considered it. He had
changed, but not like that.
You are too good for
this Fallen world, my angel, she thought toward the absent Raj. It is not made
for so honorable a knight.
Then Lady Clerett's
mouth twisted; she covered it with her palms and coughed rackingly.
"Anne!"
Suzette cried, rising.
"It's
nothing," she said, biting her lip. "Go on; you'll have a lot to do.
Just a cough, it'll pass off with the spring. I'll deal with it."
There was blood on her
fingers, hidden imperfectly by their fierce clench. Suzette made the minimal
bow and withdrew.
"At the narrow
passage there is no brother, no friend," she quoted softly to herself.
And no allies against some enemies.
* * *
"So, what do we
get?" Colonel Grammeck Dinnalsyn said; the artillery specialist had seen
to his beloved 75mm field-guns, and was ready to take an interest in the less
technical side of the next Expeditionary Force.
Raj and the other
officers were riding side-by-side down the Main Street of the training base, in
the peninsula foothills west of East Residence.
"5th Descott
Guards, 7th Descott Rangers, 1st Rogor Slashers, 18th Komar Borderers, 21st
Novy Haifa Dragoons, and Poplanich's Own from the cavalry in the Southern
Territories. And all the infantry and guns."
"Jorg will be glad
to get out of the Territories. Spirit knows I went and Entered my thanks when I
got the movement orders for home. Not much happening there now, except that
idiot they sent to replace you giving damn-fool orders."
"I'm glad
we're getting Jorg. Nobody else I know can handle infantry like Menyez."
Most commanders didn't
even try; infantry were used mainly for line-of-communication and garrison work
in the Civil Government's army. Jorg had had his own 17th Kelden Foot and the
24th Valencia under his eye since Sandoral, nearly four years ago. Raj and he
had done a fair bit with the other infantry battalions during the Southern
Territories campaign, and Menyez had been working them hard in the year since.
"Then for the rest
of the cavalry, the 1st and 2nd Residence Battalions, the Maximilliano
Dragoons, and the the 1st and 2nd Mounted Cruisers from here." The
artillery specialist raised an eyebrow at the last two units.
"Yes, they're Squadrones-but
coming along nicely. Full of fight, too—for some reason they don't seem to
resent our beating the scramento out of them. Quite the contrary, if
anything. Eager to learn from us."
observe, Center said:
* * *
"Right, ye horrible
buggers," the sergeant said. "Who's next?"
He spun the rifle in his
hands into a blurring circle; the bayonet was fixed, but with the sheath wired
on to the blade. The three big men lying wheezing or moaning on the ground
before the stocky Descotter had been holding similar weapons. The company behind
them were standing at ease in double line with their rifles sloped. None of
them looked very enthusiastic about serving as an object lesson. . . .
"Ten-'hut!"
the sergeant said. The men were stripped to their baggy maroon pants, web-belts
and boots; he was wearing in addition the blue sash, sleeveless grey cotton
shirt and the orange-black checked neckerchief of the 5th Descott. "Now,
we'uns will learn how to use the fukkin' baynit, won't we?"
"YES
SERGEANT!" they screamed.
"Right. Now, yer
feints to the eyes loik this, then gits 'em in t'belly loik this. Baynit
forrard! An' one an' two-"
* * *
"Eager to learn
from you, sir, actually," the artilleryman said. He was a slim man
of medium height, with cropped black hair and black eyes and pale skin, and a clipped
East Residence accent.
"It soothes their
pride," he went on. "They call you an Avatar of the Spirit. And what
man needs to be ashamed of yielding to the Spirit Incarnate? Not that I'd
dispute you the title myself."
Raj frowned, touching
his amulet. Dinnalsyn's casual blasphemy was natural enough for a man born in
the City, but Raj had been raised in the old style back home on Hillchapel. A
soldier of the Civil Government was also a warrior of the Spirit.
the ex-squadron personnel are undergoing
transference, Center said, a common psychological phenomenon, and technically, you are an avatar.
"Speak of the
Starless," Dinnalsyn noted.
He and Raj turned their
dogs aside as a battalion came down the camp street toward them. First the
standard-bearer, the long pole socketed to a ring in his right stirrup; the
colors were furled in a tubular leather casing. Then the trumpeters and
drummers, four of them. The battalion commander and his aides in a clump with
the Senior Sergeant of the unit; then the six hundred and fifty men in
column-of-fours, each man an exact three meters from the stirrups of his
squadmates on either side, half a length from the dog before and behind. Triple
gaps between companies, the company pennant, signaler and commander in each. An
Armory rifle in a scabbard before each right knee, and a long slightly-curved
saber strapped to the saddle on the other side.
The men wore round
bowl-helmets with neckguards of chainmail-covered leather, dark-blue
swallowtail coats, baggy maroon pants tucked into knee boots. Their mounts were
farmbreds, Alsatians and Ridgebacks for the most part, running to a thousand
pounds weight and fifteen hands at the shoulder. Everything regulation and by
the handbooks, all the more startling because the men wearing the Civil
Government uniforms were not the usual sort. The predominant physical
type near East Residence was short, slight, olive to light-brown of skin, with
dark hair and eyes. There were regional variations; Descotters tended to be
darker than the norm, square-faced and built with barrel-chested solidity,
while men from Kelden County were taller and fairer. The troops riding toward
Raj and his companion were something else again. Big men, most near Raj's own
190 centimeters, and bearded in contrast to local custom; fair-skinned despite
their weathered tans, many with blond or light-brown hair.
The massed thudding of
paws and the occasional whine or growl was the only sound until a sharp order
rang out:
"2nd Mounted
Cruisers—eyes right. General salute!"
A long rippling snap
followed, each man's head turning sharply and fist coming to breast as they
passed Raj. Raj returned the gesture. It was still something of a shock to see
the barbarian faces in Army uniform. Even more shocking to remember the
Squadron host as it tumbled toward the line of Civil Government troops;
individual champions running out ahead to roar defiance, shapeless clots around
the standards of the nobles, dust and movement and a vast, shambling chaos . .
.
The ones who couldn't
learn mostly died, he thought.
The battalion commander
fell out and reined in beside them as the column passed in a pounding of pads
on gravel and a jingle of harness.
"Bwenya dai,
seyhor!" Ludwig Bellamy said.
He's changed
too, Raj thought, offering his hand after the salute. Karl Bellamy had
surrendered early to the Expeditionary Force, to preserve his estates and
because he hated the Auburns who'd usurped rule of the Squadron. His eldest son
had gone considerably further; the chin was bare, and his yellow hair was cut bowl-fashion
in the manner of Descotter officers. His Sponglish had always been good in a
classical East Residence way—tutors in childhood—but now it had caught just a
hint of County rasp, the way a man of the Messer class from Descott would
speak. Much like Raj's own, in fact. The lower part of the Squadron noble's
face was still untanned, making him look a little younger than his twenty-three
years.
"Movement
orders?" he said eagerly. "I'm taking them out—" he tossed his
head in the direction of his troops "—on a field problem, but we
could—"
"No es so
hurai," Raj said, fighting back a grin: not so fast. He had
been a young, eager battalion commander himself, once. "But yes, we're
moving. Stern Isle, first. You'll get a chance to show your men can remember
their lessons in action."
"They will,"
Bellamy said flatly. Some of the animation died out of his face. "They
remember—they know courage alone isn't enough."
They should, Raj
thought.
Their families had been
settled by military tenure on State lands as well, which meant their homes were
here too.
"And they're eager
to prove themselves."
Raj nodded; they would
be. Back in the Southern Territories, they'd been members of the ruling
classes, the descendants of conquerors. Proud men, anxious to earn back their
pride as warriors.
I just hope they
remember they're soldiers, now, Raj thought. Putting a Squadrone
noble in command had been something of a risk; he'd transferred a Companion
named Tejan M'Brust from the 5th Descott to command the 1st Cruisers. So far the
gamble with the 2nd seemed to be paying off.
Aloud: "Speaking of
education, Ludwig, I've got a little job for you, to occupy the munificent
spare time a battalion commander enjoys. We'll be having a young man by the
name of Cabot along."
The fair brows rose in
silent enquiry.
"Cabot Clerett. I'd
like—"
The longboat's keel
grounded on the beach, grating through the coarse sand. Sailors leaped overside
into water waist-deep, heaving their shoulders against the planks of its hull.
Raj vaulted to the sand, ignoring the water that seethed around his ankles, and
swept his wife up in his arms to carry her beyond the high-tide mark. Miniluna
and Maxiluna were both up, leaving a ghostly gloaming almost bright enough to
read by even as the sun slipped below the horizon.
Offshore on a sea
colored dark purple with sunset the fleet raised spars and sails tinted crimson
by the dying light. Three-masted merchantmen for the most part, with a squadron
of six paddle-wheel steam warships patrolling offshore like low-slung wolves.
Not that there was much to fear; unlike the Squadron, who had been notable
pirates, the Brigade didn't have much of a navy. Some of the smaller transports
had been beached to unload their cargo; the rest were offloading into skiffs
and rowboats. Except for the dogs. The half-ton animals were simply being
pushed off the sides, usually with a muzzle on and fifteen or twenty men doing
the pushing. Mournful howls rang across the water; once they were in, the
intelligent beasts followed their masters' boats to shore. A few who'd been on
the expedition against the Squadron jumped in on their own.
As Horace did; the big
black hound shook himself, spattering Raj and Suzette equally, flopped down on
the sand, put his head on his paws and went to sleep. Raj laughed; so did
Suzette, close to his ear. He jumped when she ran her tongue into it briefly.
"When you start
ignoring me even when I'm in your arms, my sweet . . ." she said
playfully.
He walked a few steps
further and set her down. In linen riding clothes, with a Colonial-made
repeating carbine across her back, Suzette Whitehall did not look much like a
Court lady of East Residence. But she looked very good to Raj, very good
indeed.
"To work," he
said.
The camp was already
fully set up, a square half a kilometer on a side and ringed with ditch and
earth embankment, and a palisaded firing-step on top. Within was a regular
network of dirt lanes, flanked by the leather tents of the eight-man squads
which were the basic unit of the Civil Government's armies. Broader lanes
separated battalions, each with its Officers Row and shrine-tent for the unit
standards. The two main north-south and east-west roadways met in the center at
a broad open plaza, and in the center of that was a local landowners
house that would be the commander's quarters. Dog-lines to the east, thunderous
with barking as the evening mash was served; artillery park to the west; stores
piled up mountainously under tarpaulins . . .
"Nicely done,"
he said. And exactly where we camped the last time, he thought, with a
complex of emotions.
A tall rangy man with a
moustache pulled up—on a riding steer, an unusual choice of mount. Especially
for a man with a Colonel's eighteen-rayed gold and silver star on his helmet
and shoulder-patches. The inflamed rims around his eyes told why; he was
violently allergic to dogs. A misfortune for a nobleman, disastrous for a
nobleman set on a military career. Unless one was willing to settle for the
despised infantry, of course. Probably a source of anguish to the man, but
extremely convenient to Raj Whitehall. Usually the infantry got the dregs of
the officer corps, men without either the connections or the ability to make a
career in the mounted units.
"Nicely done,
Jorg," Raj repeated, as the man swung down.
Jorg Menyez shrugged.
"We've had three days, and I haven't wasted the time we spent stuck down
there around Port Murchison," he said. They saluted and exchanged the embhrazo.
"Spirit of Man but I'm glad to be out of the Territories! Nineteen
battalions of infantry, five of cavalry, thirty guns, reporting as ordered, seyhor!
And campgrounds, food, fodder and firewood for five more battalions of
mounted troops." He bowed over Suzette's hand. "Enchanted,
Messa."
"Excellent,"
Raj said again. It was damned good to have subordinates you could rely
on to get their job done without hand-holding. That had taken years.
indeed, Center said.
"All the old kompaydres
together again, eh?" Jorg went on, as Gerrin Staenbridge came up. His
eyes widened slightly as Ludwig Bellamy joined them, dripping.
"Sinkhole,"
the ex-member of the Squadron said, and sneezed.
"Make that sixty
field guns, now," Grammek Dinnalsyn noted. "We brought another
thirty, and some mortars. They may be useful."
"Staff meeting at
dinner," Raj said. He toed Horace in the flank. "Up, you son of a
bitch."
The hound sighed, yawned
and stretched before rising.
* * *
"To fallen
comrades," Bartin Foley said, rising and offering the toast as junior
officer present. The remainder were battalion commanders and up, two dozen men
who would form the core of the Western Territories Expeditionary Force from
this day on. Plus the Honored Messer Fidal Historiomo, the head of the
Administrative Department team who would handle civil control, but he had been
notably quiet.
"Fallen
comrades," the others replied, raising their wineglasses as the servants
cleared away the desserts which had followed the roast suckling pig and
vegetables.
Raj rose in his turn.
"Messers, the Governor!"
"The
Governor!" Then they all stood. "To victory!" At that the
wineglasses went cascading out the tall glass doors which stood open around
three sides of the commandeered villa's dining room. A mild curse from one of
the sentries followed the tinkle and crash of shattering crystal. A louder one
followed, from his NCO.
The ladies withdrew in a
flutter of fans and lace-draped headdresses; ladies by courtesy, for the most
part, of course. Except Suzette, and she stayed. Nobody looked surprised at
that, except possibly Cabot Clerett, and he had been looking at her with
a sandbagged expression all evening as she teased him gently out of shyness.
The servants set out liqueurs and kave, and withdrew.
Raj rose and walked to a
map-board on an easel that had probably served the local squire's daughter when
she dabbled in watercolors, before the Civil Government armada landed. Now it
held a tacked map of Stern Isle, a blunt wedge shape of about thirty thousand
square kilometers. The bottom of the wedge pointed south, and the Expeditionary
Force was encamped on the northern coast. It was an excellent map; the Civil
Governments cartographic service was one of its major advantages over its
barbarian opponents. Center could give him more data, in any form it pleased .
. . although some of it was a thousand years old, the time-lag since Bellevue's
surveillance satellites had died.
Silence fell as he took
up a pointer. "All right, messers," he said quietly. "Most of
you have campaigned with me before; those who haven't, know my
reputation."
Which was why there had
been a flurry of resignations and shifts of posting among the commands of units
assigned to him. The first time he'd led an army in the field he'd broken one
in six officers out of the service before the campaign even started. This time
there had been plenty of officers volunteering for the slots opened; in fact,
there had been duels and massive bribery to get into the Expeditionary
Force. That had not happened the first time, out on the eastern frontier. The
type who wanted to join a field force under Raj Whitehall's command
presented their own problems, of course.
Better to be forced to
restrain the fiery war-dog than prod the reluctant ox, he thought, and went on:
"Let me sketch out
the general situation. We have eleven thousand Regular infantry, about seven
thousand Regular cavalry, since some of the battalions are overstrength, and
about a thousand tribal auxiliaries. Mostly mounted. Including six hundred
Skinners, who will be useful while there's fighting and a cursed nuisance
the rest of the time." There were a few chuckles at that. "The
Skinners will join us when and if we move to the mainland—leaving them on this
island for any length of time would wreck it.
"The Brigade
territories have a total population of about thirty million." Less than a
third what the Civil Government did, but still a vast number for thirty-one
battalions to attack. "Of those, the overwhelming majority are
civilians."
Worshippers of the
Spirit of Man of the Stars, and closely related to the population of the Civil
Government proper. In theory, they—more importantly, the landowners, priests
and merchants among them—would be on the invaders' side.
"One and a half
million are Brigaderos. Unlike the late unlamented Squadron, the Brigade
has a regular army, besides the private retainers of noblemen—some of whom have
whole regiments, by the way. Fifty thousand of the General's troops are under
arms at any one time; they have a system of compulsory service. Another two
hundred thousand can be called out at need, not counting mercenaries—and all of
them will have some military experience. The Brigade has strong enemy
tribes on its northern frontiers, and most of their standing army has seen
action.
"Furthermore,"
he went on, "also unlike the Squadron, the Brigade troops are not armed
with flintlock smoothbores." Raj nodded to the orderlies standing in the
back of the room. The men laid half-a-dozen long muskets on the table among the
kave-cups.
"An external
percussion cap fits under the hammer," he said, as the officers examined
the enemy weapons. "It's loaded with a paper cartridge and a hollow-base
pointed bullet, from the muzzle. Two rounds a minute, but the extreme range is
up to a thousand meters. Note the adjustable sights. At anything under six hundred
meters, it's man-killing accurate against individual targets. The Brigaderos
are landed men, mostly, even those who aren't full-time soldiers. They like
to hunt, and most of them are crack shots."
Which was more than
could be said of the Civil Government force, especially the infantry, even
after more than a year under Jorg Menyez' training.
Cabot Clerett stirred.
Like his uncle, he was a square-faced, barrel-chested man. Unlike him he had
the weathered look of an outdoorsman despite being in his twenties.
"The Armory rifle
fires at better than six rounds a minute," he said. "Twelve, in an
emergency."
"I'm aware of that,
Major Clerett," Raj replied dryly. A flush spread under the natural olive
brown of the younger man's skin. Suzette leaned close to whisper in his ear,
and he relaxed again.
"However, it means
we're not going to be able to stand in full sight and shoot them down outside
the effective range of their weapons, the way we did with the Squadrones. Nor
can we count on them simply rushing at us head-on, like a bull at a gate.
They're barbarians and will fight like barbarians—"
They'd better, he added
to himself, or Center or not we're fucking doomed.
"-but they
won't be that stupid."
observe, Center said.
* * *
Rat-tat-tat beat the drum.
The line of blue-coated Civil Government infantry stretched across the fields,
wading through the waist-high wheat and leaving trampled desolation behind
them. The battalion colors waved proudly ahead of the serried double rank of
bayonets; officers strode before their units, sabers sloped over their
shoulders. Sun glinted on edged steel, hot and bright. Shells went by overhead
with a tearing-canvas sound, to burst in puffs of dirty-white smoke and plumes
of black earth at the edge of the treeline ahead. Apart from the shelling and
the crunching, rustling sound of the riflemen's passage, the battlefield was
silent.
Then malignant red
fireflies winked in the shadow of the trees. Thousands of them, through the
offwhite smoke of black powder rifles. Men staggered and fell down the Civil
Government line, silent or screaming and twisting. The Armory rifles jerked up
in unison in response to shouted orders and volley-fire crashed out; then the
bayonets leveled and the men charged forward with the colors slanting down ahead
of them. More muzzle flashes from the treeline and the snake-rail fence that
edged it, again and again, winking through the growing cloud of powder smoke
and tearing gaps in the advancing line. It wavered, hesitated—trapping itself
in the killing zone, caught between courage and fear.
* * *
Raj blinked. The
audience was still attentive; it had only been a few seconds, and men were used
to Raj Whitehall's peculiar moments of introspection. Night had fallen, and
glittering six-winged insects flew in through the opened windows to batter
themselves against the coal-oil lanterns along the pilastered wall.
"—so we have two
problems, tactical and operational." I get the strategic worries.
"Tactically, we're
going to have to make use of our strong points. Artillery, and we've twice the
guns a force this size usually does. The Armory rifle's higher rate of fire
and, even more important, the fact that it can be loaded lying down. Field entrenchments
wherever possible; you'll note the number of shovels which have been issued.
You'll also note that the cavalry have been ordered to hang their sabers from
the saddle, not their belts. The cult of cold steel is strictly for the barbs,
messers—I want nobody to forget that.
"Our true advantage
is our discipline and maneuverability, and that applies to tactics and operations.
I intend to move fast, keep the enemy off balance, and never fight except at a
time and place of my own choosing. I need to know-must know that
my orders will be obeyed with speed and precision and common sense, at
all times. Against an enemy with respectable weapons and reasonable
organization who outnumbers us eight or more to one, we cannot afford to lose a
battle, we cannot afford to lose even a major skirmish . . . and since
we can't possibly win a war of attrition, we can't be excessively cautious,
either. Is that clear?"
Nods, and a few
uncomfortably thoughtful faces. "Good." Because it's all right if the
men think I'm invincible, but the Spirit help us if you do.
With Center whispering
in his mind's ear, he was unlikely to fall victim to that illusion himself.
Occasional doubts about his own sanity were another matter. Night sweats when
he thought about the Spirit having a direct link to his own grimy soul were
part of it, too—although come to think of it, everyone had a Personal
Computer, according to orthodox doctrine.
"Which brings
us," he went on, balancing the pointer with an end in each palm, "to
Stern Isle. I regard this as in the nature of a training exercise—assuming that
the negotiations with the Brigade leaders fail and we have to conquer the
mainland. Because, gentlemen, if we can't take this island from the Brigade
with dispatch, then we'd cursed well better blow our own brains out and send
the troops home before we do real damage to the Civil Government.
"According to the
Ministry of Barbarians' files and Colonel Menyez' scouting
reports"—collated and interpreted by Center—"there are about twelve
thousand Brigaderos males of military age on the island. No more than
three thousand are actual professional fighting men, including those in the
service of individual nobles. We'll snap the rural nobles and their retainers
up with mobile columns. I want you messers to pay particular attention to
perfecting movement from battalion to company columns and from column into
line-of-battle in any particular direction. The enemy are fairly slow at that,
and we'll need any advantage we can get.
"We'll then move
the main body of the army south"—he traced the route across the center of
the island—"to the provincial capital at Wager Bay. The city itself
shouldn't be much of a problem; the enemy doesn't have enough men to hold the
walls."
He flipped the map,
revealing another of Wager Bay itself. Over it Center painted a holographic
diagram, rotating it to show different angles. Raj blinked back to the flat
paper his officers would see. The city was a C with the open end pointing south
at the ocean, around a harbor that was three-quarters of a circle.
"Wager Bay; most of
the island's trade goes through here. About forty thousand people, virtually
none of them Brigaderos. So, no problem . . . except for the
fortress."
His pointer tapped the
irregular polygon which topped the hill closing the east flank of the harbor.
Raj had memorized schematic drawings of all the major fortresses within the
Civil Government, and quite a few without. Center amplified that knowledge with
three-dimensional precision. Deep stone-lined moats all around and a steep drop
to the shingled beaches on the water side where an arc of cliffs fronted the
sea. Low-set modern walls of thick stone and earthwork behind the moats, built
to withstand siege guns. They mounted scores of heavy built-up smoothbore guns,
able to sweep the bay. Bastions and ravelins, outworks giving murderous
crossfire all along the landward side, a smooth sloping approach with neither
cover nor dead ground.
"We're certainly
not going to take that with a rush. But take it we must, and soon."
observe, Center said.
* * *
—and ships sailed into
Wager Bay, their blunt wooden bows casting back plumes of white spray from blue
ocean; whitecaps glittered across the broad reach of the harbor. There was a
stiff breeze, enough to belly out the brown canvas of the sails and snap the
double lightning flash flag of the Brigade from every masthead. The decks were
black with troops, dozens of ships, thousands of men.
A Civil Government steam
ram came butting through the waves, water flinging back in wings from the steel
beak just below the surface at its bows, frothing away from the midships
paddle-boxes. Black coal smoke streamed from its funnel, and five more rams
followed behind. Behind them the city rose from the waterside in whitewashed
and pastel-colored tiers, its tile roofs glowing in the sun. The fortress on
its headland was built of dun-colored rock, squatting like a coiled dragon on
the heights. No cannon fired from the water could reach that high, and the
walls were broad and squat and sunken behind their ditch, built to resist fire
from guns far heavier than the converted fieldpieces the rams carried on their
decks.
Guns as heavy as the
ones mounted in the fort's casements. The first of them boomed like distant
thunder, a long rolling sound that echoed from the cliffs and the facing
buildings across the bay. The sound of the shell passing was like thick
sailcloth ripping, tearing the sky. A long plume of smoke with a red spark at
its heart blossomed from the bay-side wall of the fortification. The
forty-kilogram cast-iron cannonball was a trace of blur in the air, and then a
fountain of spray near one of the rams. The ships ignored the shot—the ranging
shot, it must be—and kept on toward the Brigade transports a kilometer away.
Their formation began to open out, as each steamship picked a target and fell
out of line behind the leading vessel. A whistle screeched a signal, and the
flat huffchuff of their engines blatted louder as they went to ramming
speed.
Staccato thunder rolled
across Wager Bay. BOOM-BOOM-BOOM-BOOM as the cannon fired one after
another at two-second intervals, then bambambambambambambmmmm-as the
echoes slapped back and forth across the water. The whistling shriek of the
projectiles was a diminuendo under the coarser sounds of the discharge. Suddenly
the warships were moving amid a forest of waterspouts, dozens of them . . .
except for the two ships that were struck.
The heavy cannonballs
had been fired from mounts over a hundred meters above sea level. They were
plunging almost vertically downward when they struck the plank decks of the
ships. They went through the inch-thick decking without slowing perceptibly,
sending lethal foot-long splinters of wood spinning like shrapnel across both
flush decks.
One ship was struck near
the stern. Some of the splinters flicked through the vision slit of the
sheet-iron binnacle that was raised and bolted about the wheel and slashed the
face off the steersman there. His convulsing body spun the wheel, but the ship
was already turning so rapidly that it heeled one paddle almost out of the
water; the cannonball had snapped and jammed the underdeck chains that
connected wheel to rudder. The captain clinging to the bridge that crossed the
hull between the paddle boxes could only watch in horrified fascination as the
vessel's ram drove at full speed into the hull of the warship next to it—aimed
with an accuracy no deliberate skill could have equaled. He was flung high by
the impact, an instant before the steel tip of the ram gashed open the
steamer's boiler. Beams, bodies and pieces of machinery fountained skyward.
The other ship hit by
plunging fire had been struck amidships; its paddles froze in their boxes as
the boiler rang and flexed and cracked along a rivet-line. Superheated steam
flooded the tween-decks spaces, scalding men like lobsters in a pot. Water from
the boiler shell cascaded down onto the glowing-hot coal fires in the brick
furnaces beneath. It exploded into steam. That and the sudden flexing as
ceramic shed heat into the water ripped the iron frames of the firebrick ovens
apart like the bursting charge of a howitzer shell, sending them into the backs
of the screaming black gang as they ran for the ladders. It also ripped ten
meters of hull planking loose from the composite teak-and-iron frame of the warship;
the vessel stopped dead in the water, heeled, and began to sink level as
seawater gurgled into the engine room.
The cannon began to fire
again, more slowly this time, and a little raggedly with the different
reloading speeds of their crews. Another ship was struck, this time twice by
rounds that crashed straight through the decking and deflected off major
timbers to punch out through the hull below the waterline.
One of the warships
turned back; the captain reversed one paddle-wheel and kept the other at full
ahead, and the vessel spun about in almost its own length. The lead ram plunged
forward into the midst of the Brigade ships. They were backing their sails to
try and steer clear of it, but the Civil Government warship pirouetted with the
same swift-turning grace that its sister had shown in fleeing. Cannon spoke
from the bow as it lunged for the flank of a transport, and canister chopped
the Brigaderos warriors along the near rail into a thrashing chaos. Then
the whole transport surged away as the steel beak slammed home below the
waterline.
Just before it struck,
the Civil Government ram had backed its paddles, trying to pull the beak free.
This time the heavy sailing transport rocked back down too quickly, and its
weight gripped the steel of the underwater ram, pushing the warship's bow down
until water swirled across its decks. Brigade marksmen picked themselves up and
crowded to the rail, or swarmed into the rigging to sweep the steamer's decks.
Beyond, the rest of the
relief force sailed forward to anchor under the fort's walls, protected by its
guns, and men and supplies began to swarm ashore.
observe, Center said, and the
scene changed:
—to night. Dark, with
both moons down and only the stars lighting the advancing men. They moved
silently up the long slope toward the landward defences of Fort Wager, carrying
dozens of long scaling ladders and knotted ropes with iron grapnel hooks.
Silent save for the click of equipment and breathing, and the crunch of
hobnailed boots on the coarse gravel soil beneath them.
Arc lights lit along the
parapet with a popping crackle and showers of sparks. Mirrors behind them
reflected the light into stabbing blue-white beams that paralyzed the thousands
of advancing troops as thoroughly as the carbide lanterns hunters might use to
jacklight a hadrosauroid. Less than a second later, nearly a hundred cannon
fired at once, from the main fort wall, from the bastions at the angles and
from the triangular ravelins flung out before the works. Many of the guns were
of eight-inch bore, and they were firing case-shot, thin tin sheets full of
lead musket balls. Multiple overlapping bursts covered every centimeter of the
approaches, and most of the Civil Government troops vanished like hay struck by
a scythe-blade. . . .
* * *
"We'll deal with
the fortress when we come to it," Raj concluded. Acid churned in his
stomach. "In the meantime, it's an early day tomorrow. Gerrin, you'll take
half the 5th Descott and the 2nd Cruisers—"
* * *
"You think too
much, my darling," Suzette whispered in the dark.
"Well, Starless
Dark take it, somebody has to," he mumbled, with an arm thrown over
his eyes. The bedroom was dark anyway, and the arm could not block out the
visions Center sent; nor the images his own mind manufactured.
They've got artesian
water and supplies for a year in there, he thought. How—
"I can't tell you
how to take the fort," Suzette said. "But you'll think of a way, my
heart. Right now you need your sleep, and you can't sleep until you stop
thinking for a while," Suzette's voice said, her voice warm and husky in
the darkness, her fingers cool and unbearably delicate, like lascivious
butterflies. "That I can do."
And for a while, thought
ceased.
"Surely 'tis brave
to be a king, And ride in triumph through Persepolis," Bartin Foley quoted
to himself.
"Ser?" his
Master Sergeant said.
"Nothing," the
young officer replied; it was unlikely that the NCO would be interested in
classical Old Namerique drama.
He bowed left and right
and waved to the cheering citizens of Perino. Sprays of orange-blossom and
roses flew through the air, making the dogs of the 5th Descott troopers behind
him bridle and curvette; two hundred men and a pair of field-guns followed at
his heels, less those fanning out to secure the gates and the warehouses.
Perino was a pleasant little town of flat-roofed pastel-colored houses sloping
down to a small but snug harbor behind a breakwater, and backed by lush
vineyards and sulphur-mines in the hills. The walls were old-fashioned, high
narrow stone curtains, but the inhabitants hadn't shown any particular desire
to hold them against the Civil Government anyway—even the few resident Brigaderos
had mostly been incoherent with joy when they realized the terms allowed
them to retain their lives, personal liberty, and some of their property.
The town councilors had
been waiting at the open gates, barefoot and with ceremonial rope nooses around
their necks in symbol of surrender. The clergy had been out in force, too,
spraying holy water and incense—orthodox clergy, of course, not the Spirit of
Man of This Earth priests of the heretical Brigade cult, who were staying
prudently out of sight—and a chorus of children of prominent families singing a
hymn of welcome. One of them was riding on his saddlebow at the moment, in
point of fact, held by the crook of his left arm. She was about eight, flushed
with joy and waving energetically to friends and relatives; the wreath of
flowers in her hair had come awry.
"Stop
wriggling," he mock-growled under his breath. "That's an order,
soldier."
The girl giggled, then
looked at his hook. "Can I touch it?" she said.
"Careful, it's
sharp," he warned. Children weren't so bad, after all. For that matter, he
was the father of two himself, or at least had a fifty-fifty chance of being
their father. It wasn't something he had expected so soon, not being a man much
given to women. He grinned to himself; you couldn't exactly say he'd saved
Fatima from a bunch of troopers bent on gang-rape and revenge for a foot in the
testicles and an eye nearly gouged out, back at the sack of El Djem. More in
the nature of the Arab girl insisting on being rescued, when she came running
out ahead of the soldiers and swung him around bodily by the equipment-belt. It
had been Gerrin who talked the blood-mad trooper with the bayonet in his hand
into going elsewhere, with the aid of a couple of bottles of slyowtz; he'd
wanted Bartin to get used to women, since he'd have to marry and beget for the
family honor, someday.
Somehow the girl had
kept up with them during the nightmare retreat from El Djem after Tewfik
mousetrapped the 5th Descott and wiped out the other battalion with them; and
she helped him nurse the wounded Staenbridge back to health in winter-quarters
outside Sandoral. She'd been pregnant, and Gerrin—whose wife back home in
Descott was still childless, despite twice-yearly duty-inspired visits—had
freed her and adopted the child. Both children, now.
"Did you kill him
with your sword?" the awestruck child went on with bloodthirsty
enthusiasm, after touching the hook with one finger. They were nearly to the
town plaza. "The one who cut off your hand."
"Possibly,"
Bartin said severely.
Actually, it had been a
pom-pom shell, one of the last the enemy fired in the battle outside Sandoral.
That had been right after he led the counterattack out of the command bunker,
past the burning Colonist armored cars. Probably the enemy gun-crew had been
slaughtered as they tried to get back to the pontoon bridge across the
Drangosh.
Who can tell? he thought.
There had been so many bodies that day; dead ragheads, all sizes and shapes,
all dead; dead Civil Government soldiers too, piled in the trenches. Bartin
Foley had been on a stretcher travelling back to the aid station in town.
"Right,
we'll—" he began to the NCO beside him.
Crack. The bullet went
overhead, far too close. Crack. Crack. Crack. More shots from the
building to his left—the heretic Brigaderos church, it must be fanatics,
holdouts.
Someone was screaming; a
lot of people were, as the crowd scattered back into the arcades. The child
whimpered and grabbed at him. Foley kicked his left leg over the saddle and
vaulted to the ground.
"Take cover!"
he shouted. "Return fire! Lieutenant Torridez, around and take them from
the rear."
Armory rifles crackled,
their sounds crisper than the Brigaderos' muskets. Foley dashed to the arcade
opposite, his dog following in well-trained obedience; the officer shoved the
girl into the arms of a matron with a lace mantilla who was standing quietly
behind a pillar—unlike most of the civilians, who were running and shrieking
and exposing themselves to the ricochets that whined off the cobblestones and
the stucco of the buildings around the square. Without pausing he ran around
the other side of the pillar and back into the square, pulling free the
cut-down shotgun he wore in a holster over his right shoulder.
"Stay!" he
ordered the animal. Then: "Follow me, dog-brothers!" A fat lead slug
from an enemy musket plucked at the sleeve of his jacket as he ran, opening it
as neatly as a tailor's scissors, and then he was in the shadow of the church
portico.
A dozen troopers and an
NCO were close behind him; the rest of the detachment were circling 'round
behind the building, or returning fire on the roof and upper story from behind
watering-troughs, treetrunks, overturned carts or their own crouching dogs.
Bullets spanged and sparked off the stone overhead, and sulfur-smelling
gunsmoke drifted down the street past the trampled flowers and discarded hats
that the crowds had been waving a moment before.
Idiots, he thought.
Sniping from a bell-tower; downward shots were difficult at best, and stood no
chance of hitting another man behind your target.
"One, two, three!"
he said.
Two of the troopers
blasted the lock; metal whined across the colored tile of the portico, and
someone shouted with pain. Foley ignored him, ignored everything but the tight
focus that pulled everything into crystalline clarity in a tunnel ahead of him.
They smashed through the tall olivewood doors of the barbarian church. He'd
closed his eyes for just a second, and the gloom inside didn't blind him. A
long room with wooden benches and a central aisle, leading up to an altar with
the blue-and-white globe that the heretics substituted for the rayed Star of
the true faith. Reliquaries along the walls under small high windows, holding
the bones of saints or holy computer equipment from before the Fall.
And men coming down the
stairs at either far corner of the room; evidently somebody had had a rush of
intelligence to the head, a few minutes too late. Ten men, the leader in the
blue jumpsuit and ear-to-ear tonsure of the Earth Spiritist clergy.
Foley took stance with
his left arm tucked into the small of his back and the coach gun leveled like a
huge pistol. Whump, and the hate-filled face of the Brigadero priest
disappeared backward in a blur of red that spattered over the whitewashed
walls. Buckshot shattered glass and peened off silver and gold around the
altar; the Earth-Sphere tumbled in fragments to the floor. The massive recoil
jarred at his leather-strapped wrist, and he let it carry the weapon high
before gravity dropped it back on target. Two of the enemy returned the fire,
the only ones with loaded muskets; one had been reloading, and his shot sent
the iron ramrod he'd forgotten to remove spearing across the church to lance
into a bench like a giant arrow. Neither hit anything, not surprising since
they were snapshooting in a darkened room. The bullet thudded into wood.
Another man leaping over
the dead priest, charging down the aisle with clubbed musket. Careful, a
corner of Foley's mind thought. Long musket, big man. Three-meter swing. He
waited, you were never too close to miss, and fired the left barrel of the
coach gun into his belly. Whump again, and the man folded backward a
meter, sprawling in a puddle of thrashing limbs and blood and intestines that
spilled out through the hole the buckshot ripped. A swordsman leaped forward
with his long single-edged broadsword raised; Foley threw the coach gun between
his feet, and the man tripped—as much on the body fluids that coated the slick
marble floor as the weapon. His blade clanged off the young officer's hook;
then he spasmed and died as he tried to rise, the point of the hook going thock
into the back of his skull.
Muzzle flashes strobed
from around Foley, the troopers with him firing aimed rounds toward the
stairwells. The last Brigadero tumbled, the revolvers falling from his hands
before he could shoot.
Foley put a boot on the
shoulder of the dead man before him and freed his hook with a grunt of effort.
Overhead, on the second floor, came another crash of Armory rifles; screams, a
spatter of individual rounds, then Torridez' shout:
"Second story and
tower clear, sir!"
Foley took a long
breath, and another; a band seemed to be locked around his chest. His throat
was raw, but he knew from experience that taking a drink from his canteen would
make him nauseous if he did it before his muscles stopped their subliminal
quivering. The air stank of violent death, shit and the seaweed smell of blood
and wet chopped meat, all underlain by decades of incense and beeswax from the
church. It was a peculiarly repulsive variation on the usual battlefield
stench.
Join the Army
and see the world; then burn it down and blow it up, he thought with weary
disgust. His aide picked up the coach gun and wiped it clean with his bandana.
"Cease fire!"
Foley called out the door as he flicked the weapon open and reloaded from the
shells in his jacket pocket; that was a knack, but you learned knacks for doing
things if you lost a hand. "Cease fire!"
Soldiering wasn't a safe
profession, but he didn't intend to die from a Civil Government bullet fired by
accident. The plaza had the empty, tumbled look of a place abandoned in a
hurry—although, incredibly, some civilians were drifting back already, even
with the last whiffs of powder smoke still rising from the gun muzzles.
"Torridez?"
"Sir," the
voice called down from overhead. "I've got men on the roofs, the whole
area's under observation. Looks like it was only these barbs . . . their
families are in the back rooms up here. Couple of men prisoner."
"Keep them under
guard, Lieutenant," Foley called back. "Post lookouts at vantage
points from here to the town wall. Sergeant, get me the halcalde and
town councilors back here, and—"
A man came running down
the arcade before the town hall, with several others chasing him. He was a
Brigadero by the beard and short jacket; the pursuers looked like prosperous
townsmen, in sashes and ruffled shirts and knee-breeches with buckled shoes.
All of them had probably been standing side by side to greet him fifteen
minutes ago.
"You! You
there!" he called sharply, and signed to a squad seeing to their dogs.
The would-be lynch mob
skidded to a halt on the slick brown tiles of the covered sidewalk as crossed
rifles swung down in their path and the dogs growled like millstones deep in
their chests; the Brigadero halted panting behind them. He blanched a little as
Foley came up, and the young man holstered his coach gun over his shoulder and
began dabbing at his blood-speckled face with his handkerchief.
"You've nothing to
fear," he said, cutting off the man's terrified gabble.
"Corporal," he went on, "my compliments to Senior Lieutenant
Morrsyn at the gate, and I want redoubled guards on all Brigadero houses;
they're to fire warning shots if mobs approach, and to kill if they
persist."
He glanced around; the
woman he'd handed off the child to was still pressed tightly into the reverse
of her pillar, standing with the girl between her and the stone to protect the
child from both sides.
Sensible, Foley thought.
"You know her family?" he said.
"My cousins,"
the woman said quietly.
Foley followed her well
enough, the Spanjol of the western provinces was closely related to his native
Sponglish, unlike the Namerique of the barbarians . . . although he spoke that
as well, and Old Namerique and fair Arabic.
"Take her home.
You, trooper—escort these Messas." He stepped over the back of his
crouching dog, and the animal rose beneath him. "Now, where the Dark are
those—"
The halcalde-Mayor,
the word was alcalle in Spanjol—and the councilors came walking gingerly
back into the plaza a few minutes later, as if it were unfamiliar territory.
They shied from the bodies laid out before the Brigade church, and the huddle
of prisoners.
As they watched,
troopers of the 5th were shaking loose the lariats most of them carried at
their saddlebows and tossing them over limbs of the trees that fringed the
plaza. Others pushed the adult males among the prisoners under the nooses; most
of them were silent, one or two weeping. One youngster in his mid-teens began
to scream as the braided leather touched his neck. Foley chopped his hand
downward. The troopers snubbed their lariats to their saddlehorns and backed
their dogs; the men rose into the air jerking and kicking. Nobody had bothered
to tie their hands. One managed to get a grip on the rawhide rope that was
strangling him, until two of the soldiers grabbed his ankles and pulled. Others
tied off the ropes to hitching-posts.
Foley waited until the
bodies had twitched into stillness before turning his eyes on the town
notables. His dog bared its teeth, nervous from the smell of blood and taking
its cue from its rider's scent; he ran a soothing hand down its neck. An
irritable snap from a beast with half-meter jaws was no joke, and war-dogs were
bred for aggression.
"Messers," he
said. "You realize that by the laws of war I'd be justified in turning
this town over to my troops to sack? I have a man dead and four badly wounded,
after you yielded on terms."
The halcalde was
still wearing the noose around his neck; he touched it, a brave man's act when
a dozen men swung with bulging eyes and protruding tongues not a dozen meters
from where he stood.
"The responsibility
is mine, seynor," he said, in the lisping western tongue. "I
did not think even Karl Makermine would be so foolish . . . but let my life
alone answer for it."
Foley nodded with chill
respect. "My prisoners—" he began; a long scream echoed from the
church, as if on cue. "My prisoners tell me this was the work of the
heretic priest and his closest followers. Accordingly, I'm inclined to be
merciful. Their property is forfeit, of course, along with their lives, and
their families will be sold. The rest of you, civilian and Brigaderos, will
have the same terms as before-except that I now require hostages from
every one of the fifty most prominent families, and the Brigaderos of
Perino are to pay a fine of one thousand gold FedCreds within twenty-four
hours. On pain of forfeiture of all landed property."
Some of the heretics
winced, but the swinging bodies were a powerful argument; so were the Descotter
troopers sitting their dogs with their rifles in the crook of their arms, or
standing on the rooftops around the square.
"Furthermore, I'm
in a hurry, messers. The supplies I specified—" to be paid for with chits drawn on the
Civil Government, and you could decide for yourself how much they were really
worth "—had better be loaded and ready to go in six hours, or I won't
answer for the consequences. Is that clear?"
He watched them walk
away before he rinsed out his mouth and then drank, the water tart with the vinegar
he'd added. Another old soldier's trick.
"I should have gone
into the theatre," he muttered.
* * *
"Tum-ta-dum,"
Antin M'lewis hummed to himself, raising the binoculars again. The air was hot
and smelled of dust and rock, coating his mouth. He spat brownly and squinted;
with the wind in their favor, there wasn't much chance of being scented by the
enemy's dogs.
There wasn't much ground
cover here, in the center of the island. The orchards and vineyards that
clothed the narrow coastal plain to the north, the olive groves further inland,
had given way to a high rolling plateau. In the distant past it had probably
been thinly forested with native trees; a few Terran cork-oaks were scattered
here and there, each an event for the eyes in the endless bleakness. Most of it
was benchlands where thin crops of barley and wheat were already heading out,
interspersed with erosion-gullies. There were no permanent watercourses, and
the riverbeds were strings of pools now that the winter rains were over.
The manor houses which
dotted the coastlands were absent too; nobody lived here except the peon serfs
huddled into big villages around the infrequent springs and wells. Like the
grain, the profits would be hauled out down the roads to the port towns, to
support pleasant lives in pleasant places far away from here. Flowing
downhill, like the water and topsoil and hope.
Pleasant places like
Wager Bay, which was where the long column ahead of him was heading, southeast
down the road and spilling over onto the fields on either side in milling
confusion. Dust smoked up from it, from the hooves of oxen and the feet of dogs
and servants, and from the wheels of wagons and carriages.
"There goes t' barb
gentry," M'lewis muttered to himself, adjusting the focusing screw.
Images sprang out at
him; the heraldic crest on the door of a carriage drawn by six pedigree
wolfhounds, household goods heaped high on an ox-wagon. Armed men on good dogs,
in liveries that were variations on a basic gray-green jacket and black
trousers; some were armored lancers, others with no protection save
lobster-tail helmets, and all were armed to the teeth. He saw one with
rifle-musket, sword, mace, lance and two cap-and-ball revolvers on his belt,
two more thrust into his high boots, and another pair on the saddle. He made an
estimate, scribbled notes—he had been a literate watch-stander even before he
met Raj Whitehall and managed to hitch his fortunes to that ascending star.
Behind him, a man
whispered. One of the Forty Thieves, a new recruit from back home.
"D'ye think we'll
git a chanst at t'women?"
A soft chuckle answered
him. "Chanst at t'gold an' siller, loik."
M'lewis leopard-crawled
backward, careful not to let the morning sun catch the lenses of his
binoculars. The metalwork on the rifle slung across his elbows had been browned
long ago and kept that way.
"Ye'll git me boot
upside yer head iff'n ye spook's 'em," he said with quiet menace.
"Ser," the man
whispered, and shut up.
M'lewis' snaggled,
tobacco-stained teeth showed; he might not be messer-born, but by the Spirit
he could make this collection of gallows-bait obey. Not least because the
veterans had spent the voyage vividly describing all the booze, cooze and
plunder they'd gotten in the last campaign to the recruits. He looked along the
northeast-trending ridge that hid most of his command. The dogs hidden in the
gully behind him were difficult to spot amid the tangled scrub, even knowing
where to look. Most of the men were invisible even to him, spread out with
nearly a hundred meters between each pair. He slid down to the brown dusty
pebbles of the gully bottom; a little water glinted as his feet touched.
"Cut-nose,
Talker," he called, very softly. There was a trick to pitching your voice
so it carried just so far and no further. One of the many skills his father had
lessoned him in, with a heavy belt for encouragement.
Two other men crawled
backward out of a thicket, then stepped down from rock to rock, raising no
dust. Cut-nose had lost most of his to a knife when he tried to sell a
saddle-dog back to the man he stole it from, which was an example of the
unwisdom of drinking in bad company; he was a second cousin of M'lewis, and
looked enough like him to be a brother. Talker was huge, taller than a Squadrone
and broad with it. A bit touched, perhaps— he'd pass up lifting a skirt or
a purse to kill—but he knew his business.
And he was devoted to
Raj, in his way. Where Messer Raj led, death followed.
"Here. Git
thisshere t' the Messer, an' tell him. Quiet an' fast."
* * *
"Is this report
completely reliable, sir?" Ludwig Bellamy asked.
Raj and Gerrin
Staenbridge looked at him, blinking with almost identical expressions of
surprise. Raj held out a hand to stop Gerrin from speaking, asking himself:
"Why would you
doubt it?"
"Ahh—" Bellamy
cleared his throat. "Well, this man M'lewis, he was a bandit. A man
like that—how can we be sure he didn't take the easy way out and go nowhere
near the enemy? Men steal because it's easier than working, after all."
Both the older men
grinned, not unkindly. Raj gripped him companionably on the shoulder for an
instant; Gerrin forbore, since he'd noticed his touch made the ex-Squadrone nervous.
"Oh, M'lewis was a
bandit, all right—it's virtually hereditary, where he comes from," Raj
explained. "It's just . . . well, he was a bandit in my home County."
Gerrin chuckled.
"And if you think stealing sheep from Descotters is an easy living, Major
. . . let's put it this way, I don't know any better preparation for
hostile-country reconnaissance."
Bellamy smiled back.
"If you say so, sir." He turned his attention to the map. "What
are your plans, General?"
Raj looked up. Four
companies of the 5th Descott, only half the unit since it was at nearly double
strength, the whole of the 2nd Cruisers, and four guns; the dogs were crouched
resting, and the men mostly squatting beside them. A few were watering their
animals, drinking from their own canteens, or enjoying a cigarette. There was
little shelter on this scorched plain, none at the dusty crossroads where they
had halted. Nearly a thousand men, more than enough . . .
"Let me hear your
plan, Major Bellamy," he said formally.
The younger man halted
in mid-swallow, lowering the canteen and looking up sharply. Raj met his gaze
with bland impassiveness, and Ludwig nodded once.
"Sir." He
traced the line of the road with his finger. "Two thousand fighting men,
according to the report. Say six thousand people in all, proceeding at foot
pace. Hmmm . . . we don't summon them to surrender?"
Raj shook his head. Most
of these were from the western end of the island, around the towns of Perino
and Sala. He'd sent out flying columns to round up those willing to give in
without a fight, promising to spare the lives, personal liberty and one-third
of the landed wealth of anyone on the Brigade rolls who'd swear allegiance to
the Civil Government. These Brigaderos ahead had heard the terms and decided to
make for Wager Bay and the illusory security of its walls instead. Showing too
much mercy was as bad as too little; he didn't need Center to show him the
endless revolts he would face behind his lines, if men thought they could defy
him and get amnesty for it. He had seventeen thousand troops to conquer a
country of half a million square kilometers, full of fortified cities and
warlike men. Best to begin as he meant to go on.
"They've had their
chance," he said.
"Well, then,"
Bellamy nodded. "We don't want any of the men to get away even as
scattered individuals; they might make it to Wager Bay. That column has to go here.
They're not going to get wheeled vehicles across this ravine without using
the bridge. We could—"
* * *
Henrik Carstens looked
back over his shoulder. The dust-clouds were growing larger, three of them—one
to either side of the road, one on it. About four, maybe five clicks, he
decided, and a couple of hundred mounted men each at least. Distances were
deceptive in these bare uplands, what with the dry air and heat-shimmer. Coming
up fast, too; they were going to reach the column of refugees well before they
crossed the bridge. Nothing it could be but enemy cavalry. He cursed tiredly
and blinked against the grit in his bloodshot blue eyes, fanning himself with
his floppy leather hat. Sweat cooled for a second in the thinning reddish hair
of his scalp, then the sun burned at his skin and he put it back on. The helmet
could wait for a moment, he needed his brains functioning and not in a stewpot.
It was a pity. The
bridge would have made a perfect spot for a rearguard to hold them off while
the families and transport reached Wager Bay, or at least got within supporting
distance of the patrols operating out of the city.
Of course, Captain of
Dragoons Henrik Carstens would have ended up holding that rearguard anyway. He
hawked and spat dust into the roadway. A man lived as long as he lived, and not
a day more. Forty-five was old for someone who'd been in harm's way as often as
he had, anyway. His battered pug-nosed face set, jaw jutting out under a
clipped beard that was mostly gray.
The problem was that now
he couldn't just hold a defensive line. The open wheatfields were no barrier to
men on dogback, or even to field guns, not anywhere short of the bridge over
the Trabawat. He'd have to maneuver to hold the enemy off the refugees long
enough for them to get over the bridge.
And damn-all to maneuver
with, he thought.
A hundred of the fan
Morton family retainers, whom he'd managed to lick into some sort of shape
since he signed on here. He'd expected a Stern Isle noble's household to be a
good place for a nice quiet retirement, Stardemons eat his soul for a fool. The
rest were fairly numerous, but they were odds-and-sods, household troopers more
like guards and overseers than soldiers. Pinchpenny garrisons from here and
there thrown in. None of them were worth the powder to blow them away!
Carstens was from the northwest part of the Brigade territories, where many of
the folk were pure-bred Brigade and only serfs spoke Spanjol. Hereabouts, some
so-called unit brothers barely knew enough Namerique for formal occasions. To
his way of thinking, even the Brigade members on the Isle were little better
than natives.
His employer included.
Fortunately Jeric fan Morton was in Wager Bay on business when the alert came,
and his wife was worth two of him for guts and brains. Between them, she and
Carstens had gotten most of the household out before the grisuh cavalry
arrived, and the neighbors too.
"Gee-up, Jo,"
he said; the brindled Airedale bitch he rode took her cues from balance and
voice, spinning and loping back down the column of fleeing Brigade members. The
gait was easy, but the small of his back still hurt and the sun had turned his
breastplate into a bake-oven, parboiling his torso in his own sweat.
Grisuh, he thought.
Civvies, natives. Nobody in the Military Governments had taken them very
seriously; hadn't their ancestors overrun the whole western half of the Civil
Government without much trouble? Natives were fit only for farming, trading and
paying taxes to their betters. The Civil Government made fine weapons, but
they'd as soon pay tribute as fight. Heretic bastards besides. Carstens had
fought the Squadron—not too difficult, they had more balls than brains—and the
Guard, who had started out as a fragment of the Brigade who stayed in the north
instead of migrating into the Midworld Sea lands generations ago. And the
Stalwarts, who'd moved south from the Base Area in his grandfather's time; so
primitive they were still heathen and fought on foot with shotguns and throwing
axes, but terrifyingly numerous, fierce and treacherous. This would be the
first time he'd walked the walk with civvie troops.
From what the bewildered
Squadron refugees had been saying over the past year, counting out the grisuh
was a thing of the past. Especially under their new war-leader, Raj
Whitehall. Come to think of it, Whitehall had a Namerique sound to it . . .
He pulled up beside the
fan Morton carriage. Lady fan Morton was in there with her teenage daughter and
the other children. She shielded her eyes against the sun with her fan and
leaned out to him, still dressed in the filmy morning gown she had worn when
the courier had come into the manor on a dog collapsing from exhaustion.
"Captain?" she
said.
"They're coming up
on us fast, ma'am. We've got to get moving, and I'd appreciate it kindly if
you'd talk to the other brazaz-" officer-class families
"—because I need some men to slow them up."
Sylvie fan Morton's
nostrils flared; she was still a fine-looking woman at thirty-eight, and
Carstens had thought wistfully more than once that it would be nice if her
husband fell off his dog and broke his neck. Which wasn't unlikely, as often as
he went hunting drunk. She would make a very marriageable widow.
"I don't like the
thought of running from natives, Captain," she said.
"Neither do I,
ma'am," Carstens said sincerely. "But believe me, we don't have much
time."
* * *
In the event, it took
nearly half an hour to muster a thousand men, all mounted and armed—more or
less armed, since some of the landowners skimped by equipping their hired
fighters with shotguns instead of decent rifles. Good enough for keeping peons
in order, but now they were going to pay in spades for their economizing. Or
rather their men would pay, which was usually the way of it. That left a
thousand or so to shepherd the convoy on.
"Spread out, spread
out!" he screamed, waving his sword. The fan Morton men did, lancers to
the rear and dragoons forward. For the others it was a matter of yelling,
pushing and occasionally whacking men and dogs into position with the flat of
his sword and the fists of his under-officers. Only the manifest presence of
the enemy saved him from a dozen death-duels, and that barely. Two young
noblemen did promise to call him out, when he had to pistol their dogs
after the beasts lost their heads and started fighting. In the end, the Brigade
men were deployed north-south. That gave him more than a kilometer of front at
right-angles to the road, but it was thin, men stretched like a string of dark
or steel-shining beads across the rolling cropland. He had no confidence in
their ability to change front, and the worrisome clouds of dust to his right
and left could still curl in behind him and strike for the refugees.
For the moment he had
only the dust-cloud coming straight up the road. They ought to reach him first;
if he could see them off for a while, he might be able to turn and counterpunch
one of the side-columns before they could coordinate.
A man had to hope.
"Here they
come," his second-in-command grunted beside him, pulling at his grizzled
beard. "Still say we should have signed on for another go at the
Stalwarts, boss."
"Shut up."
Carstens raised his brass telescope, squinting through the bubbled, imperfect
lenses. "Damn, they've got a cannon." Rolling along behind a six-dog
hitch, with men riding several of the draught-dogs, on the carriage, and beside
it. The rest of them in their odd-looking round helmets with the neck-flaps,
riding in a column of fours. "No more'n a hundred. Must be their
vanguard."
He licked his lips,
tasting salty sweat and dust; Jo was panting like a bellows between his knees,
and the day was hot. A brief vivid flash of nostalgia for the rolling green
hills and oakwoods and apple-orchards of his youth seized him; he pushed it
away with an effort of will and swung his own helmet on. The felt-and-cork
lining settled around his head, the forehead band slipping into the groove it
had worn over the years, and he pulled the V-shaped wire visor down and
fastened the cheek-flaps. Those and the lobster-tail neckguard muffled sound
and sight, but he was used to that. It would come to handstrokes before the day
was over. He took a moment to check his pistols and carbine and glance back.
With men prodding the oxen with sword-points, the convoy had gotten up some
speed at the cost of shedding bits of load and stragglers.
An enemy trumpet-call,
faint and brassy, answered by the whirring roar of his own kettledrums. Ahead
the Civil Government column split; a moment later there were four smaller units
coming at him, holding to a slow canter. Another movement, and the platoon
columns swung open like the back of a fan. Less than two minutes, and he was
facing a long line. Another trumpet, and the enemy stopped stock-still, the
dogs crouched beneath the riders, and the men stepped forward with their rifles
at the port. Muffled with distance, the actions went clickclack as the
troopers worked the levers and reached to their bandoliers for a round. Clack
in unison as they thumbed a round home and loaded, marching without
breaking stride. Tiny as dolls with distance, like toy soldiers arranged with
impossible neatness.
"Shit,"
Carstens mumbled into his beard. That was as smooth as the General's Life
Guards on the parade-ground in Carson Barracks. Faster, too—Brigade troops
would have stopped and countermarched to get into position. Aloud, he shouted:
"Dragoons, dismount
to firing line!" The fan Morton men did, swinging out of the saddle and
forming up two deep, one rank kneeling and one standing. Few of the others did
anything but watch.
"Martyred Avatars
bleeding wounds!" he screamed, riding out in front of the
straggling line. "Everyone with a fucking rifle, get ready to shoot!"
He sheathed his sword
and pulled out his own carbine, thumbing back the hammer. He also heeled his
dog behind the firing line; no way was he going to have his ass out in front of
this lot when they pulled their triggers.
"Wait for the word
of command. Set your sights, set your sights!"
A rifle could kill at a
thousand meters, but only if you estimated the range right—the natural
trajectory of the bullet was above head-height past about three hundred, so you
had to elevate the muzzle and drop the bullet down on your target. That
was why some commanders preferred to wait until two-fifty meters or less;
Carstens did himself, unless he were facing one of the huge densely-packed
Stalwart columns where a bullet that missed one man would hit another. Here-
Shots banged out along
the line. "Hold your fucking fire," he screamed again. At nine
hundred meters distance the Civil Government line was utterly undamaged. A
shouted order, and the enemy all went to ground, first to one knee and then
prone. Carstens felt his testicles drawing up. He'd been in this position
before from the other side, facing Stalwart warbands with greater numbers but
no distance weapons. The enemy rifles could be loaded while a man was flat on
his belly, while his rifle-muskets had to have the shot rammed down their
muzzles.
As if to punctuate his
thought, a volley crashed out from the enemy, BAM-BAM-BAM-BAM as the
platoons fired in unison. Greasy off-white smoke curled up from their
positions, then drifted away in the scudding breeze. Something went whirrr-brack
past his ear. Dogs and men screamed in pain and shock, mostly among those still
mounted, but a few in the firing-line as well.
"Fire!"
An unnecessary order,
and a ragged stutter sent demon-scented fog back into his face. His men had
barely grounded their muskets and reached for a paper cartridge when the next
enemy volley came. Another after they'd bitten open the cartridges and poured powder
and minié bullet down the barrels; a third as they pulled out their ramrods.
Just then a dull POUMPF came from the enemy field-gun, fifteen hundred
meters back and well out of small-arms range. A tearing whistle and a crack of
dirty smoke in mid-air, not twenty meters ahead of his riflemen; half a dozen
were scythed down by the shrapnel. Then the Brigade warriors were capping their
weapons and firing again—he ground his teeth as he saw a few ramrods go flying
out toward the enemy—and beginning the cumbersome task of loading once more.
Three more enemy volleys cut into his makeshift command; he could see men
looking nervously backward out of the corners of his eyes.
He wasn't particularly
worried about that, though. Raw courage was not the quality in short supply
here today, and he'd also loudly ordered his lancers to ride down any man who
fled without permission.
"Remember it's your
families we protect," he called, keeping his voice calm. "One more
volley and we'll—"
POUMPF. This time the
tearing-canvas sound went right overhead, and the shell went crack sixty
meters behind him. Dogs reared, then whimpered as their riders sawed on reins
that connected to levers on the bridles, pressing steel bars against the
animals' heads.
One under, one
over, and I know what comes next, Carstens thought. His head
whipped from side to side; the dust-columns weren't closing in as fast as he'd
feared, and neither was the one behind the enemy vanguard. That heartened him,
since it was the first mistake the civvies had made.
"—one more volley
and we'll give them the steel."
He touched toes to Jo's
forelegs, signaling her to stock-stillness, and fired his own rifled carbine.
More as a gesture than anything else, but it made him feel better. A little.
"Everybody mount
up," he called, riding out in front again. Enemy bullets pocked the earth
around him.
POUMPF-crack.
This time the shell burst right over the position he'd been in a few minutes
before. Shrapnel skeened off body armor and tore into flesh; pistol-shots
followed as injured dogs were put down. The wounded men probably wished they
rated the same mercy, but needs must. Jo hunched her back slightly and laid her
ears down at the sounds of pain.
"Easy, girl,
easy," he said. He drew a revolver in one hand and his basket-hiked broadsword
in the other. No sense in getting too subtle, just get out in front and wave
them forward. "Charge!" he shouted, and the ancient Brigade
warcry: "Upyarz!"
His legs clamped on the
barrel of his dog. Jo howled and leaped forward off her hindquarters, building
to a flexing gallop. From the chorus of shrieks behind him, human and canine,
most of the scratch force were following. The grisuh dragoons rose and
fired a volley standing; then half of them turned and trotted back to their
dogs. Another volley, and they were all mounted and wheeling away. Behind them
the gunners were adjusting their weapon, and a shell raced by to throw up a
poplar-tall column of black dirt with a spark at the center. Men and dogs and
parts of both pinwheeled away from it. The gun crew fired a final round of
canister that cut a wedge out of the Brigade line as cleanly as a knife. The
Civil Government troops were trotting to the rear now, heeling their mounts
into a canter and then a gallop with the same fluid unison that had disturbed
him before. The gunners snatched up the trail of their fieldpiece as it
recoiled, running it back onto the caisson and jumping aboard as the
team-master switched his mount into motion.
"Shit,"
Carstens said again. Lanceheads were bristling down on either side of him, but
the enemy had had plenty of warning, and their dogs were fresher and less
heavily burdened. The distance closed to a hundred meters, still beyond mounted
pistol shot—and several of the blue-coated, dark-faced troopers turned in their
saddles to pump fists at the Brigade troops with an unmistakable single finger
raised. Then the gap began to grow again, with increasing speed. The fieldgun
was a little slower, but it had had an extra half-kilometer of distance to
start with.
He looked left and
right, standing in the stirrups. Yes. Those tell-tale dust-clouds were closing
in, moving fast past him on either side. He could catch the first winks of sunlight
on metal from both directions. Plus the men he was chasing were retreating
toward a force of unknown size.
"Halt, halt!"
he shouted. The fan Morton house-troopers halted as the family pennant did,
beside Carstens . . . but big chunks of the motley host kept right on pursuing.
"Tommins, Smut,
Villard," Carstens snapped to his under-officers. "Stop 'em, and
fast."
He spurred his dog out
ahead of the closest pack, curving in front of them and waving his sword in
their faces. That made some of them pull up, at least.
"Ni, ni!"
a Squadron refugee-mercenary shouted in their thick guttural dialect of
Namerique. "No! The cowards flee!"
The man was literally
frothing into his beard; Carstens wasted no time. The point of his broadsword
punched into the man's stomach through the stiff leather and doubled him over
with an ooff of surprise. His dog started to snap in defense of
its master, but Jo already had her jaws around its muzzle; it whined and licked
hers in surrender as the Squadrone fell to the ground vomiting blood.
Carstens felt no regret;
you had to stop a rout before it got started, and a rout forward was just as
bad as one going to the rear. No wonder they lost, he thought of the
Squadron. Although the mindset was not unknown among the Brigade, either. He'd
just had too much experience to keep up that sort of illusion.
"How many have
we?" he asked his second-in-command, when they had the band mostly turned
around and trotting to the rear.
"Seven hundred,
maybe fifty more," the man said. "Fifty dead 'r down, and two hundred
kept after the civvies."
Carstens grunted,
grunted again when rifle fire broke out anew over the rise a kilometer to their
rear where the pursuit had gone. What the incurably reckless had thought was a
pursuit, at least. More rifle fire than before, much more, twice as many guns.
"We won't be seeing them again," he said.
"Nohow," the
other man agreed. "But the civvies will be up our ass again in half an
hour."
Carsten pushed back his
visor and looked northeast and southwest. Then he blinked dust out of his eyes
and unlimbered the telescope again, on one flanking force and then the other.
"Suckered, by the
Spirit!" he said.
At a soundless question,
he went on: "Fucking grisuh were dragging bush to make more
dust—look, there's troops there, but not anything like what they seemed. Eh
bi gawdammit! Now they've dropped it and they're making speed, see the
difference in the dust-plume? I thought they were co-ordinating too
slow."
The Civil Government
company had been dangled out like a chunk of meat in front of a carnosauroid,
and now a much bigger set of jaws were closing on the outstretched head. On his
whole force, if he hadn't pulled back.
"We still delayed
them," his second said.
Faint thunder rolled
from a dear sky. Coming from the southeast, down the road toward the bridge.
Field guns; Carstens' trained ear counted the tubes, separating the sound from
the echoes.
"Four guns,"
he said hollowly. Men were shouting and calling questions to each other all
along the rough column. The alarm turned to panic as a burbling joined the
deeper sound of the cannon. Massed rifles volleying.
"Bastards are ahead
of us," the second-in-command said. His voice was calm, the information
had sunk in but not the impact. "At the bridge, waiting at the
bridge."
"Hang on,
Sylvie!"
The Brigade warriors
rocked into a gallop behind him.
* * *
"Well done, Major
Bellamy," Raj Whitehall said, clapping him on the back. He raised his
voice slightly. "Very well done, you and your men."
The headquarters company
of the 2nd Cruisers raised a roaring shout at that, Bellamy's name and Raj's
own, crying them hail.
"And you too,
Gerrin," Raj went on, as the three senior officers and their bannermen
turned to ride down the length of the refugee column.
One or two of the wagons
were burning—that always seemed to happen, somehow—but most were in place,
looking slightly forlorn with their former owners sitting beside them with
their hands clasped behind their necks under guard. Or off digging hasty mass
graves for the tumbled bodies, stacking captured weapons, the usual
after-battle chores. The smoke smelled of things that should not burn, singed
hair and cloth.
"It was young
Bellamy's plan," Gerrin said. "And a damned sound one, too." He
nodded to where a priest-doctor and his assistants were setting up, with a row
of stretchers beside them. As they watched, the first trooper was lifted to the
folding operating table. "Not many for the butcher's block, this time."
Ludwig flushed with
pleasure and grinned. "The 5th carried off the difficult part, drawing
away their rearguard," he said. "My boys just had to stand in the
gully and shoot over the edge when they tried to rush the bridge."
A dispatch rider pulled
up in a spray of gravel, his dog's tongue hanging loose. He wore the checkered
neckcloth of the 5th Descott over his mouth as a shield against the dust. When
he pulled it down the lower part of his face was light-brown to the caked
yellow-brown of his forehead.
"Ser!" he
saluted.
Staenbridge took the
papers, opened them at Raj's nod. "Ah, good" he said. "From
Bartin. Perino and Sala are secured. A few minor skirmishes; terms of
surrender, hostages, supplies on the way—the usual."
He flipped to the other
papers. "And the same from Ehwardo, Peydro and Hadolfo," he said,
listing the other flying-column commanders. "The cities of Ronauk and
Fontein opened their gates and tried to throw a party for the troops. Jorg back
at base reports civilian and Brigaderos landowners coming in by the dozens to
offer submission."
They were coming up to
the head of the refugee column; the smell of powdersmoke still hung here, and
of death. Flies swarmed in black mats, drawn by the rotting blood and meat
already giving the hot day a sickly odor; hissing packs of waist-high bipedal
scavenger sauroids waited at the edge of sight for living men to depart, their
motions darting and impatient. Leathery wings soared overhead, spiralling up
the thermals, and the ravens were perched on wagons. An occasional crack came
as riflemen finished off wounded dogs, or Brigade warriors too badly hurt to be
worth the slave-traders' while. Nearly to the front of the column was a huge
tangle of dead men and mounts, with lances and broken weapons jutting up from
the pile. Near the center was a man in three-quarter armor, lying with his
sword in hand and his drying eyes peering up at the noonday sun. Lead had
splashed across his breastplate, and blood from the three ragged holes
that finally punched through the steel.
That armor really did
seem to offer some protection, at extreme range and against glancing shots. Raj
reflected it was just as well he'd ordered brass-tipped hardpoint rounds for
this campaign as well as the usual hollowpoint expanding bullets. Generally
those were sauroid-hunting ammunition, but they'd serve very well.
"They died fairly
hard, here," he said. "What's your appraisal, messers?"
Bellamy shrugged.
"Up at the bridge they charged us and we shot them," he said.
"When they ran away, we chased them and shot them." He waved a hand
at the scattered clumps of Brigaderos dead out over the fields. The ones away
from the convoy were already seething with winged and scaled feasters.
Gerrin ran a thoughtful
finger over his lips. "Rather better at my end," he said. "Those
rifle-muskets of theirs do carry. And their unit articulation was much better
than the Squadrones-particularly considering this was a thrown-together
job lot of landowners' household troops. Some of the individual units worked
quite well; they all stood fire, and some of them even managed a retreat
when it seemed called for. Which is why I didn't get the whole of their
rearguard."
He paused. "That
was this fellow, I think," he said, nodding at the armored corpse and the
banner that lay across his legs. "From the way they acted, I'd say their
usual tactic was to push their dragoons forward to pin you with fire and hit
you in the flank with the cuirassiers. I wouldn't like to take a charge of
those lancers while I was in the saddle, my oath, no. The damned things are
three meters long. And that heavy cavalry would be a nasty piece of work
in a melee. They didn't have enough drilled troops to do it here, but I doubt
we'll have as easy a time in the west."
Raj nodded. "That's
about what I thought," he said. "Remember the old saying: a
charging Brigadero would knock down the walls of Al Kebir." A little
of the animation died out of Bellamy's face.
"Still, a good
day's work," Raj said judiciously. "Ludwig, I'm leaving you this
sector; push some patrols down the road, and find out how much of a perimeter
whoever-it-is in Port Wager is trying to hold. I doubt he'll even try to hold
the city. We've taken the island in less than four days; these here were the
only ones we'd have had to worry about, and they make a good negative example
to contrast with those who surrendered in time."
Some of the Scout Troop
were living up to their informal name; the loot in the bulk of the column was
being tallied for later distribution, but several of the Forty Thieves were
slitting pouches and pulling rings off fingers—or cutting off the fingers, and
ears with rings in them—as they moved among the enemy dead. Men riding to what
they think is sanctuary will take all their ready cash with them. One big Scout
was ignoring the dead. Every time he came to a man still breathing he took him
by the chin and the back of the head and twisted sharply. The sound was a
tooth-grating crunch.
Several other troopers
surrounded a carriage at the very front of the column; beyond it was only the
drift of enemy dead where they'd charged for the stone-built bridge, and
gunners policing up their shell casings. Those around the coach were a mixed
group from the 5th Descott and the 2nd Cruisers. Dead wolfhounds lay in the
traces, and a cavalryman was sitting at some distance having a gunshot wound in
one shoulder bandaged. Another jumped up to the running board and ripped open
the door, then tumbled backward with a yell as the pointed ferrule of a parasol
nearly gouged out his eye.
"Scramento,"
the man yelled, clapping a hand to the bleeding trough in his face.
His comrades laughed and
hooted. "Hole for the pihkador, Halfonz!" one of them cried,
slapping his thigh. "Lucky fer ye t'hoor didn't hev anither
derringer."
A huge 2nd Cruiser
trooper batted the parasol aside with one hand and reached in with the other to
pitch the wielder out; she was a tall buxom woman in her thirties, richly
dressed in layers of filmy silk. A teenager followed her, shrieking like a
rabbit as the big soldier's strength tore loose her frantic grip on the
carriage and set it rocking.
He looked inside,
holding the girl three-quarters off the ground despite her thrashing. "Ni
mor cunne," he grunted in Namerique. "Kinner iz."
"Ci, just
kids," a Descotter said, and slammed the door shut again.
The older woman was
hammering at the Cruiser with two-handed strokes of her umbrella. The man she
had nearly blinded came up behind her and ripped her gown down to the waist,
pinning her arms and exposing her breasts, then kicked her feet from under her.
"Hold 'er legs, ye
dickheads," he said irritably. Two did, spreading them wide and back as he
tossed up her skirts and ripped off the linen underdrawers. Blood from his face
wound spattered her breasts as he knelt, but she did not begin to scream until
her daughter was thrown down beside her.
Raj heeled Horace to one
side with a slight grimace of distaste. War was war, and soldiers soldiers.
He'd had men hung for murder and rape in friendly territory, or towards enemies
who'd surrendered on terms—crucified men for plundering a farm on Civil
Government territory, once. Very bad for discipline to let anything like that
go by. The sullen resentment he'd meet if he tried to deprive men of their
customary privileges towards those who hadn't surrendered on terms would
be even worse for order and morale. Besides which, of course, all the prisoners
in this convoy were going to the slave markets—to domestic service or a textile
mill if they were very lucky, more probably to die in the mines or building
Governor Barholm's grandiose new temples, dams, railroads and irrigation
canals.
"Shall I send
everything back to base, then?" Staenbridge said, waving a hand toward the
convoy.
"No," Raj
said. "We'll be moving to someplace with a harbor soon. Just take them
back a village or two, somewhere with good water; we'll pass you by and pick
you up with the baggage train. And it'll be a good object lesson for the
district."
"Ci,"
Ludwig Bellamy said. "When Messer Raj offers you terms, you take them. Or
get your lungs ripped out your nose. Sure as fate; sure as death." Gerrin
nodded somberly.
Raj looked up. Perfect
sincerity, he thought. Center confirmed it wordlessly with a scan of
face-temperature, bloodflow, voice-tension and pupil dilation.
It bewildered him
sometimes, that such men would move so willingly into his orbit and live for
his purposes. He could understand why someone like M'lewis followed him,
more-or-less. But Ludwig Bellamy could have gone home to the Territories and lived
like a minor king on his estates, and Staenbridge had more than enough in the
way of charm and connections to get a posting in East Residence, not too far
from the bullfights, the opera and the better restaurants. Raj knew why he did
what he did; he would always do what he thought of as his duty to the Civil
Government of Holy Federation and the civilization it protected. He also knew
that that degree of obsession was rare.
i know the reason, raj whitehall, Center said. but although you know what you do, you will
never understand all the effect it has on others, and while i can analyze it, i
cannot duplicate it. for this, as much as any other factor, i chose you and
trained you to be what you are.
Raj neck-reined Horace
about. The escort platoon fell in behind him. The day was getting on for
half-done, with a mountain of work yet to do, he should look in on the wounded,
they liked that, poor bastards—and Suzette was waiting for him back at
base-camp.
"Ah, general,"
Bellamy said. Raj leaned back in the saddle and Horace halted with a resentful
wuffle. He tried to sit, too, until Raj gave him a warning heel. The blond
officer's voice dropped, even though nobody else was within normal hearing.
"You remember you
told me to strike up an acquaintance with young Cabot?"
Who is fully three years
your junior, Raj thought "Yes?" he said.
"I did. A very . .
. energetic young man. Intelligent, I'd say. Brave, certainly."
"And?"
"And . . . we were
drinking one night on the voyage. He commiserated with me, saying he knew how
it was, to be forced to serve an enemy of one's family."
"Ah," Raj
said. "Thank you again, Ludwig."
"I'll probably
hoist a few with him again, sometime, Messer." A shrug. "He knows
some remarkably good filthy drinking songs, too."
"Thank you, thank
you," Suzette said. Her servants bore out the glittering heap of gifts.
"You have nothing to fear, messas, nothing at all. The proclaimed terms
are open for everybody."
The crowd of women
looked at her desperately, willing themselves to believe. Most of them were
civilian landowners' wives, with a fair sprinkling of Brigaderos magnates'
spouses; they came in a clump, for mutual protection. She smiled at them,
willing gracious reassurance. They seemed to take some comfort that the
fearsome Raj Whitehall had brought an actual wedded wife along with him; it
made him seem less of the ogre who had slashed the neighboring Squadron into
oblivion in one summer's campaign.
"But," she
went on, "your husbands really will have to come in themselves. Or I can't
answer for what will happen to you and your families. And that is the final
word."
Suzette sighed and sank
back on her chair as the whispering clump left the room; it was an upper
chamber of the little manor house. She fanned herself against the mingled odor
of perfume and fear, until the sea-breeze dispelled it and left only a hint of
camp-stink in its place. This was the second time the Whitehalls had stayed
here. The jumping-off camp for the Southern Territories campaign had been on
this spot, although the Brigade had been neutral in that war. Those memories
were far from uniformly happy.
At her feet, Fatima cor
Staenbridge strummed her sitar. The cor meant that she had been
legally freed from chattel-slave status; it was followed by her patron's name,
because that relationship carried a number of obligations.
"Strange," she
said, in Sponglish that now carried only a trace of throaty Arabic accent
"They come to plead for their men, yes?"
"Yes," Suzette
said. "It's a tradition, rather out of date, but the customs here on Stern
Isle are like the clothes, a generation behind East Residence. I take it they
wouldn't have done so back in the Colony?"
Fatima laughed. She was
dressed in the long pleated skirt, embroidered jacket and lace mantilla of an
East Residence matron of the middle classes, but she had the oval face and
plump prettiness of Border Arab stock from the desert oases south of Komar.
After two children, only her consistent practice of her people's dancing—what
outlanders called belly-dancing—kept her opulence within bounds.
"Muslim general
throw them to his men as abandoned women," she said. "Muslim man cut
off his wife's nose rather than take life from her hands after she see enemy
with face uncovered."
"Interesting,"
Suzette said.
And rather
appalling. Our own men are bad enough, most of them, sometimes.
One of the few men she
knew who had little or no false pride of that sort was Gerrin Staenbridge—which
was understandable, all things considered. It made him disconcertingly hard to
fool, more so even than Raj, and Raj had grown disturbingly, delightfully
insightful over the past four years. She glanced down at Fatima; the Arab girl
had had an interesting life so far as well. The rather bizarre menage a
trois she'd fallen into seemed to suit all parties, though. Gerrin got the
children he'd wanted, and which a nobleman needed; he and Bartin both got a
willing woman at the very, very occasional times they desired one—Bartin more
often than Gerrin, but then he was much younger; and Fatima acquired the legal
status of an acknowledged mistress and mother of acknowledged heirs to a
wealthy nobleman.
Certainly better than
what the other women of El Djem were undergoing now; most of them were probably
dead. If Fatima ever desired something more passionate than the
avuncular/brotherly relationship she had with Gerrin and Bartin, she never
showed it. Of course, she was harem-raised. And the despised daughter of
a minor concubine at that.
"I have a
problem," she said. "With young Cabot."
Fatima sat erect,
bright-eyed. Suzette and Raj had stood Starparents to her children, a close
bond, and had sponsored her into the Church. "Anything I can do, my lady.
I poison his food?"
"No, no,"
Suzette laughed. Actually, my dear, when I need poisons I have Ndella or
Abdullah. "I need advice about him. He grovels at my feet, but
he talks to you, occasionally; you're more nearly his age, and you aren't born
Messa."
"He want you, and
he hate Raj," Fatima said. "His uncle would send Raj the
bowstring—" she fell back into Arabic for that phrase "—if he did not
need him so much."
Suzette nodded. The Arab
girl continued more slowly: "His uncle hate and fear Raj. Cabot, he hate
and envy Raj. Envy his victory in war, envy that the soldiers love and fear Raj
as he were All—, ah, as he were the Spirit of Man." She frowned. "He
would not be bad young man, if he not an enemy."
The East Residence
patrician chuckled: "My dear girl, you've lived among us of the Civil
Government for years and not noticed that the definition of a bad man is
someone who belongs to the other faction?"
"Oh," Fatima
said, with her urchin grin, "Arab think that way too." More
seriously, she continued: "The Sultan al'Residance, he would kill
Raj for spite. Young Cabot, he would be Raj if he could. Want his fame,
want his glory, his followers. Want his woman—not just open her legs, but have
her love. He want all. That why he must think bad of Raj, but can't be away
from him either; he think to learn from him, then take all that is his. But
maybe in deepest heart, he love Raj like other soldiers do, and hate himself
for love."
"You," Suzette
said, chucking Fatima under the chin, "are a remarkably perceptive young
lady."
"I learn from you,
Lady Whitehall. Gerrin talk to me a lot too, and I learn," she replied.
Her head tilted to one side. "Why is it, lady, that man who want bed woman
all the time, very much, what's the word?"
"Muymach."
"Ah. Muymach man,
often not want to talk to woman? Like, oh, Kaltin?"
"Kaltin Gruder's a
loyal Companion," Suzette said. Who hates my guts, but that's neither
here nor there. Kaltin Gruder had lost a brother and acquired scars
external and mental in Raj's service, but he remained very . . .
straightforward. Intelligent, but not subtle.
"Yes, a man-of-men.
I friend with his concubine; they say he like bull in bed, but they lonely—he
never talk to them. Back home," she went on, "man never talk
to woman, not even father to daughter."
"And I have the
best of both worlds," Suzette said with a fond smile for an absent man.
"Do keep talking to Cabot," she went on. "You've been very helpful."
She touched a handbell.
The door opened and a man looked through; for effect with the locals, he was
dressed in his native costume of jellabah and ha'aik, with a long curved dagger
and sheath of chased silver thrust through his belt. The Star amulet around his
neck was protective camouflage; Abdullah al'Azziz had been born a Druze, and
was authorized by the tenants of his own faith to feign the religion of any
region in which he lived. Suzette had seen him imitate an Arab sheik of Al
Kebir, a Sufi dervish, a fiercely orthodox Star Spirit-worshipping Borderer
from the southeastern marchlands of the Civil Government, an East Residence
shopkeeper, and a wandering scholar from Lion City in the Western Territories.
No, not imitate, be those things. Though she had saved him and his
family from slavery, she suspected that the man served her as much for the
opportunity to use his talents as from gratitude.
"Who's next,
Abdullah?" She switched to Arabic; hers was far better than Fatima's
Sponglish, and the tongue was little known this far west outside enclaves of
Colonial merchants.
"A lord of the
Brigade, saaidya," he said. "And the merchant Reggiri of Wager
Bay."
"Ah," Suzette
said, frowning. "The Brigadero, my Abdullah; does he give his
name?"
"No, lady. He is of
middle years, with more grey than black in his beard, and wears a bandana,
thus." The Druze covered his lower face. "He seeks to show humility
but walks like a man of power; also a man who rides much. The guards hold him
in an outer room."
"I'll bet they
do," Suzette murmured.
Reggiri has the
information we need, she thought. He'd been most generous with information
before the invasion of the Southern Territories, information he'd gotten
through his trading contacts. Crucial information about Squadron movements. Of
course, she thought coldly, he was paid in full, one way or another,
after that little supper-party of his I attended. Doubtless he'd like another
installment.
Decision crystallized.
"Bring the Brigadero. Send refreshment and entertainment to Messer Reggiri
and tell him . . . ah, tell him my chaplain and I are Entering my sins at the
Terminal." He would laugh at that. Let him. He would be far from
the first man she'd had the final and most satisfying laugh on.
The Brigadero entered
between three of the 5th Descott troopers assigned as her personal bodyguards.
He was a stocky man, not tall for one of the barbarians, and wrapped in a long
cloak. Together with the bandana and broad-brimmed leather hat, it was almost
comically sinister. Conspicuous, but effective concealment for all that.
"Thank you,
Corporal Saynchez," she said. "You searched him for weapons, of
course."
"Yis, m'lady,"
the noncom said in thick County brogue. "Says ye'll know him an' wouldna
thank ussn fer barin' his face."
"You can leave,
now. Wait outside."
"No, m'lady,"
the man said. He stood three paces to the rear of the stranger, with drawn
pistol trained. The other two rested their bayoneted rifles about a handspan
from his kidneys.
A dozen generations of
East Residence patricians freighted her words with ice:
"Did you hear me,
corporal?"
"Yis, m'lady."
"Then wait out in
the hall."
"No, m'lady. Might
be 'n daggerman, er sommat loik that. Messer Raj, he said t' see ye safe."
The stolid yeoman face
under the round helmet didn't alter an iota in the searchlight of her glare.
Suzette sighed inwardly; she was part of the 5th's mythology now, the Messer's
beautiful lady who went everywhere with him, bound up troopers' wounds . . . flattering
as hell and extremely confining. This bunch would obey any order except one
that put her in danger.
"Very well,
corporal . . . Billi Saynchez, isn't it? Of Moggersford, transferred from the
7th Descott Rangers last year?" She smiled, and the young trooper
swallowed as if his collar was too tight as he nodded. "Now, if you would
stand off to one side, in the corner there? And you, messer, whoever you are,
pull up that stool."
She rang the handbell
again; her servants came and placed kave, biscuits and brandy. Fatima looked up
at her for a moment with shining eyes; she'd told her patroness once that the
cruelest thing about harem life was that nothing ever happened.
Softly, she began to
sing to the sitar, a murmur of noise that would drown out the conversation to
anyone more than a few paces away. It was a reiver's ballad from the debatable
lands below the Oxhead mountains, the long border between the sea and the
Drangosh where Borderer and Bedouin fought a duel of raid and counter-raid
nearly as old as man on Bellevue. Suzette had heard a version sung in
south-country Sponglish with the names and identities reversed. The Colonial's
started:
O woe is me for the merry life
I led beyond the Bar
And trebble woe for my winsome wife
That weeps at Shalimar.
"The girl speaks no
Namerique," she said in that language. "And I don't speak to men with
masked faces."
"Lady
Whitehall," the man said. He lowered the bandana; the hat would hide him
from view from the rear. "A pleasure to see you once again."
"And the same for
me, Colonel Boyce," she said softly. The square-cut beard was greyer than
she remembered, but the little blue eyes were still cool and shrewd.
"No names . . . and
the circumstances are less fortunate than our last meeting." Boyce had
been rather more than a friendly neutral as commander of the Brigade forces on
Stern Isle when Raj passed through to the Southern Territories.
"I've been relieved
of command, as of last week. Colonel Courtet is now in charge of Stern Isle, or
at least of Wager Bay, since that's all the idiot has been able to keep."
"Would you have
been able to hold more, against my husband?"
"No, I would have
surrendered on demand," Boyce said. "Which is why the local command
council deposed me, the fools. The Stern Isle garrison was here to keep the
natives down and guard against Squadron pirates. With the Southern Territories
in Civil Government hands, we're indefensible against a determined attack.
Outer Dark, we're an island with no naval protection!"
They have taken away my long jezail,
My shield and saber fine,
I am sold for a slave to the Central Bail
For lifting of the kine.
"Do have some
kave," Suzette said, pouring for them both. "That's very intelligent
of you, I'm sure," she went on. "I expect you'll be taking the
amnesty, then?"
"Only if nothing
better offers," he said. "Two sugar, thank you. The terms of the
amnesty specify that those who surrender don't have to take active part in
operations against the Brigade."
"I take it you also
object to the provision for the surrender of two-thirds of landed
property?" she murmured, taking a brandy snifter in her other hand.
"By the Spirit of
Man of . . . the Spirit, I do, Messa! So will my sons, some day; they'll find
that real estate wears better than patriotism."
"Let me see if I
understand you, Messer Boyce," Suzette said. "Your main properties
lie on the mainland, don't they?" He nodded. "If the Brigade wins
this war, you stand to recover the mainland properties at least—even if you
take the amnesty, and even if we retain this island. On the other hand, if you
aid us openly, those lands will be forfeit to the General. Unless we win.
You're telling me you expect us to win? And want to be on the winning
side, of course."
"Of course."
Boyce sat silent for a moment, and the throaty Arabic music rang louder.
The steer may low within the byre
The serf may tend his grain,
For there'll be neither loot nor fire
Till I escape again.
"Messa," he
went on slowly, "I know you call my people barbarians. The Squadron
are—were, rather. The Guards are, since they haven't had our contact with the
Midworld Sea; the Stalwarts most assuredly are. We of the Brigade have
ruled the Western Territories for a long, long time, though. Give us credit for
learning something. Give me credit, at least.
"Yes," he
continued, "I think your Messer Raj—" he used the troops'
nickname "—may win this war. May. It seems unlikely from the
numbers, but I've visited the Civil Government. I know its potential strength
when there's a strong Governor with an able commander. That's happened now, and
we, well, I wouldn't trust General Forker to lead a sailor into a whorehouse,
to be blunt. Most of the possible replacements are worse, we've managed to turn
Carson Barracks into a stew of intrigue as bad as East Residence, only with
less sense of long-term interests. Most of all, I've seen Raj Whitehall. I've
studied his campaigns in the east, and I had a ringside seat for the
destruction of the Squadron.
"You may win.
Even if you don't, the war will be long and bloody. If we kick you out, we'll
still be so weakened the Stalwarts will roll over us like a rug. We're having
more and more trouble holding the border against them anyway."
He leaned forward, the
blunt swordsman's fingers incongruous on the delicate china.
"And win or lose,
the worst thing that could happen to us is a long war. If we win, the Stalwarts
will pick our bones. If we lose, the Western Territories may be so weakened
that you can't hold them against the northern savages either. And in any case,
if we lose after a long struggle we may just . . . vanish as a people, the way
it's happening to the Squadron. Ordinary nations can lose their nobles and
soldiers and priests—" he snapped his fingers "—and they'll produce a
new set of 'em in a few generations, even if they have to throw off a foreign
yoke first. We of the Brigade, we haven't had a peasant class of our own since
we left the Base Area. If we lose our lands and positions, we lose everything."
And God have mercy on the serf
When once my fetters fall
And Heaven defend the noble's garth
When I am loosed from thrall.
Suzette looked at him
with new respect "So since you know that General Whitehall can't be
beaten easily, you think a swift Civil Government victory is the best thing for
your people?"
"Exactly, my lady.
You'll need us. Need our fighting men, not least. In a generation or
two, who knows?" He hesitated. "I wouldn't describe myself as an
idealist, Lady Whitehall. Let's say I value civilization, if nothing else
because it's so much more comfortable than sitting in a drafty log hall eating
bad food and listening to worse poetry. The more thoughtful members of the
Brigade have always considered themselves guardians of the culture we took
over. General Whitehall claims to be defending civilization by uniting it. The
Stalwarts have taken a third of our mainland possessions since my grandfather's
time—they're like ants. As I said, I'm interested in preserving my sons'
heritage."
"And your
lands," Suzette said.
It's woe to bend the stubborn back
In a coal-mine's inky bourne
It's woe to hear the leg-bar clack
And jingle when I turn!
"And my lands. All
of them, not one-third. The information I have is worth it."
"Why come to
me?"
"Too many eyes on
your husband, my lady. Too many patriotic fools ready to kill a middle-aged
traitor; my excessively honorable sons, for starters. I don't want to see them
buried in a ditch and my grandchildren sold as slaves; on the other hand, I don't
want them to kill me, either. They'll quiet down when it's over."
Suzette sat in silence,
setting down the empty kave cup and sipping at her brandy. Beads of sweat ran
down from the Brigade noble's hairline, but his features were very steady.
But for the sorrow and the shame,
The brand on me and mine,
I'll pay you back in the leaping flame
And loss of the butchered kine.
"Corporal!"
she called. The Descotter gunmen came over at the trot, weapons poised.
"M'lady,"
Saynchez said, bracing to attention.
"This man is to be
put under arrest . . . there's a vacant room with an iron door in the cellars
here, isn't there?"
"Yis, m'lady."
For every sheep I spared before-
In charity set free-
If I may reach my hold once more
I'll reive an honest three.
"Take him there.
Let nobody see his face. He's to have food, water and bedding, but nobody, and
I mean nobody, is to enter his cell or have conversation with him until
I or General Whitehall authorize it. You will see that he's guarded by men who
know how to keep their mouths shut. Do you understand?"
"Yis, m'lady."
Corporal Saynchez quivered with eagerness, like a war-dog just before the
charge is sounded "T'barb 'ull vanish offn t'earth."
For every time I raised the lowe
That scarred the dusty plain,
By sword and cord, by torch and tow
I'll light the land with twain!
"Abdullah,"
she called, when the soldiers had gone. Not quite at a run, and their hobnails
grinding on the pavement.
"Saaidya."
"Messer Whitehall
should be back in—" she looked out the window; Miniluna was
three-quarters, and a hand's breadth above the horizon "—five hours.
Please set a table for three in the lower alcove in time for him. Serve us
yourself, please." That room had a stair to the cellars. "And take
this to Messer Reggiri."
She pulled a ring from
her finger; it was in the shape of a serpent biting its own tail, ruby-studded.
"Tell him," she went on, after a pause for thought, "that I will
give him a better gift than this, and a sweeter. But not here, in Wager Bay;
and that I trust his discretion absolutely."
The dog runs
better if you dangle the bone, she thought coolly. Her mind felt sharp as
crystal, completely alive. The puzzle in her brain was not solved, but the
pieces were there, and she could feel her consciousness turning and considering
them. She had no genius for war; that was Raj's domain, and no human living
could match him. At plot and counterplot and the ways of devious treachery, she
was his third arm. She would give him what he needed to know, and he would
wring victory out of it.
Spur hard your dog to Abazai,
Young lord of face so fair-
Lie close, lie close as Borderers lie,
Fat herds below Bonair!
"And Cabot?"
she said, in answer to an unasked question. "I don't know. There's a great
many things I don't know."
The one I'll shoot at the twilight-tide,
At dawn I'll drive the other;
The serf shall mourn for hoof and hide
The March-lord for his brother.
"But I do know what
my Raj can do, if he has the tools he needs to work with. What he needs. And
I'll bring him what he needs, whether he knows it or not."
'Tis war, red war, I'll give you then,
War till my sinews fail;
For the wrong you have done to a chief of men,
And a thief of the Bani Kahil.
And if I fall to your hand afresh
I give you leave for the sin,
That you cram my throat with the foul pigs flesh
And hang me in the skin!
"Not as
enthusiastic as they were in Port Murchison," Raj said.
The capital of the
Southern Territories had greeted his army with flowers and free wine; the men
still talked about it with wistful exaggeration. Here the streets were mostly
empty, save for a few knots of men standing on streetcorners watching the Civil
Government's army roll by. The ironshod wheels of guns on the cobbles and the
thunder-belling of nervous dogs rattled oddly through the unpeopled streets, a
night-time sound on a bright summer's morning. Hobnailed boots slammed in
earthquake unison as the infantry marched; he was keeping most of his cavalry
bivouacked outside, in villages and manors in the rich coastal countryside.
Less chance of disease breaking out, and better for the dogs.
"They're not as
sure we're going to win as they were in Port Murchison," Kaltin Gruder
pointed out.
They all snapped off a
salute as the banner of the 24th Valencia Foot went by, and the standard dipped
in response. The Companion considered them with a professional eye.
"Their marching's
certainly sharp," he said dryly; cavalry in general and Descotters in
particular didn't spend much time on it.
Raj shrugged. "It
helps convince them they're soldiers," he said.
The foot-soldiers were
mostly conscripted peons from the central provinces, several cuts below the
average cavalry recruit socially. You just have to know how to treat
them, he thought. Tell a man he's worthless often enough, and he'd act like
it. For initiative and quick response, the infantry were never going to match a
mounted unit like the 5th or Kaltin's 7th Descott Rangers. But they could be
solid enough, if you handled them properly.
His eyes went back to
the fort. "Well, the good citizens certainly got some evidence for
doubting our chances," he pointed out.
The main north gate of
Wager Bay gave them a good view downslope and to the east, where Fort Wager sat
atop its headland. Every ten minutes or so a cannon would boom out, and a few
seconds later a heavy roundshot would crash through a roof in the town below.
Mostly they were falling in the tenement-and-workshop district of the town,
narrow streets flanked by four-storey limestone apartment blocks, soap works,
olive-oil plants and sulfur-refineries. Columns of black smoke marked where
fires had started.
"Kaltin, see to
getting those out, would you? There's a working aqueduct here, so it shouldn't
be so difficult. Coordinate with the infantry commanders if you need more
manpower."
The Companion nodded.
"At least we know that they're not short of powder," he went on.
"That and a good
deal else," Raj said absently.
He trained his
binoculars on the harbor, studying the narrow shelf below the bluff and the
fort. There were piers at the cliff-face nearest the harbor, but the ground
rose steeply, no access except by covered staircases in the rock. Impossible to
force; the defenses were built with that in mind. The main guns of the fort
couldn't bear on the beach, but anyone trying to climb the cliff would face
streams of burning olive oil out of force-pumps, at the very least. Further on,
the cliffs bent sharply to the east; even steeper there, and waves frothed in
complicated patterns on rock and reef further out.
following changes since last data update, Center said.
I hate it when
you suddenly drop into Church jargon, Raj grumbled. He counted
himself a pious man, but he'd never understood why the priests had to call
commonplace facts "data." It wasn't as if they were speaking of
something from the Canonical Handbooks, for the Spirit's sake. Center had the
same unfortunate habit at times. One had to make allowances for an angel, of
course. . . .
thank you. The water vanished from
his sight, leaving the pattern of underlying rocks clear; then schematics
snowed the flow of currents.
"Hand me that map,
would you?" he asked A clipboard braced against his saddlebow, and he
sketched without looking down. "There."
"Also the Brigade's
not as unpopular with its subjects as the Squadron was," Muzzaf Kerpatik
said as he reclaimed the papers.
"Details?" Raj
said.
"I have used my
contacts," the little man said; he seemed to have an infinity of them,
from Al Kebir and the Upper Drangosh to all the major ports of the Midworld
Sea. As usual, he was dressed in dazzling white linen, a long-skirted coat
after the fashion of Komar and the southern border Counties; he was one of the
new class of monetary risk-takers growing up there in recent years. The white
cloth and snow-white fur of the borzoi he rode contrasted with the carefully
curled blue-black hair and goatee and the teak-brown skin.
The pepperpot revolver
tucked into his sash had seen use, however.
"The Brigade
commanders here have followed general policy; no persecution of Spirit of Man
of the Stars clergy unless they meddle in politics."
Raj nodded; the Brigade
depended on the old civilian power structure to maintain administration, and
the civilian magnates stubbornly refused to abandon the orthodox faith for the
heretical This Earth cult. Down in the Southern Territories the Squadron had
run a purely feudal state; they had dispossessed the native aristocracy
completely, and didn't much care if urban services went to wrack and ruin.
They'd had a nasty habit of burning Star Spirit churches with their clergy in
them, too. The piratical heritage of old Admiral Geyser Ricks, and one which
had simplified Raj's task.
"In fact, there are
large colonies of Colonial Muslim merchants, and even Christos and Jews, here
and in most Brigade-held port cities. Merchant guilds are in charge of
collecting the customs dues and urban land-tax, since the Brigade commanders
care little as long as the money comes in. This arrangement is less, ah, rigorous
than that common in the Civil Government."
Raj nodded again. The
Civil Government's bureaucracy was corrupt, but that was like caterpillars in a
fruit tree, tolerable if kept under reasonable control. What was important was
that it worked, which gave the State a potentially unbeatable advantage.
The laxness of the Military Governments was a compound of sloth and
incompetence, not policy—they couldn't tighten up much no matter what the
emergency.
"Speaking of
religion, Messer . . . a delegation of priests in East Residence has presented
a petition to the Chair and the Reverend Hierarch Arch-Sysup Metropolitan of
East Residence, protesting your policy of toleration towards This Earth
cultists in the Southern Territories."
"Damn!"
Raj bit out. Barholm took his ecclesiastical duties as head of Holy Federation
Church quite seriously. Theology was a perennial hobby of Governors, Church and
State being as closely linked as they were. He didn't need Center to tell him
what the consequences would be if the Chair tried to reunite the faiths by
force and overnight-
revolt in former military government
territory, probability 72% ±5, Center said. mutiny among ex-squadron personnel with expeditionary force,
probability 38% ±4. mutiny among ex-squadron troops elsewhere in civil
government area, probability 81%±2.
And there were six
battalions of former Squadrones on the eastern frontier, keeping watch
on the Colonists. Wouldn't that be a lovely gift to Ali, hungry for
vengeance for his dead father! The Fall seemed to continue by mere inertia.
There were times when he felt like a man condemned to spend eternity trying to
push an anvil up a slope of smooth greased brass.
indeed, i have
done so for a thousand years.
"Tzetzas," he
said aloud.
"The Chancellor may
have been involved in gathering the petition," Muzzaf said, and grinned
whitely.
Back when he'd been the
Chancellor's flunky and accomplice he had lived in terror, and in the certain
knowledge that Tzetzas would throw him aside like a used bathhouse sponge
whenever he ceased to be useful. Now he was one of the Companions of Raj
Whitehall, and he knew with equal certainty that Tzetzas would have to come through
Raj and every one of the Companions to get him—and had better make sure that
none of them survived to avenge him, either. That didn't make him feel
immortal; the casualty rate among the Companions was far too obvious. It did
make him feel just as dangerous as Chancellor Tzetzas, which was better than
feeling safe. If he'd wanted to be safe, he would have stuck to running a
date-processing business like his father.
"However," he
went on, "Governor Barholm has stated that any reversal of policy is premature."
Raj relaxed.
"Not until we've
got the Brigaderos safely under his thumb," Kaltin said with cold
cynicism. "Then he'll send in the Viral Cleansers."
probability 96% ±2 within five years of
successful pacification, Center said, consequences-
I can imagine.
"We'll take the problems one at a time," Raj said.
Muzzaf turned pages.
"The soldier's market will be held in the main square," he went on.
Troopers were generally expected to buy their own rations out of their pay when
the army wasn't on the march, and an efficient market was important to morale
and health. More armies had died from bad food and runny guts than all the
bullets and sabers ever made. The markets Muzzaf supervised were generally very
efficient. "Bulk supplies are coming in with acceptable speed, since we
pointed out that the Government receipts used to pay for them are exchangeable
against taxes. In fact, a secondary market in receipts has arisen."
Raj blinked in
bewilderment, then waved aside the explanation. He'd abandoned attempts to
understand that sort of thing when Kerpatik tried to tell him how you could
make money by buying tobacco that hadn't been planted yet on land you didn't
own and then selling it before it was harvested. Every word he'd said had been
in Sponglish, but it might as well have been an Azanian witch doctor explaining
the esoterica of his craft. The cobbler should stick to his last, and I to
the sword, he thought.
"And I have
coordinated the six-month receipts for your personal accounts with Lady
Whitehall and your clerks."
Raj accepted the paper,
raised his brows at the total, and handed it back. For himself he'd as soon
have just bought land with his share of the plunder; it was the traditional
safe investment, even successful merchants always tried to buy an estate.
Kerpatik had convinced him—convinced Suzette, actually—that it would be better
to spread it out in part-shares of the new combined capital ventures all over
the Civil Government. It certainly seemed to work, and was less trouble even
than collecting rents. For that matter, he'd be content to live from his pay
and the income from Hillchapel, the Whitehall estate in Descott. Wealth was a
tool, occasionally useful but not central to his work.
"And the special
equipment will arrive from Hayapalco within the month."
"Good work, Muzzaf.
My thanks."
"Oh, and
Kaltin," Raj said.
They heeled their dogs
out to follow the last infantry unit; the 7th Descott Rangers were bringing up
the rear, and the troopers raised a baying cheer to see their Major and Raj fall
in below their banner, a running war-hound over the numeral seven and the unit
motto: Fwego Erst-Shoot First. The dogs joined in, a discordant but
somehow musical belling.
"Suzette and I are
having a small get-together tonight," Raj went on. "Provided we can
get those imbeciles—" he nodded toward the fortress "—to stop showing
how brave they are by shelling the slums. The usual thing, reassure the local
grandees; we need them cooperative. I know you're busy, but why don't you drop
by?"
Gruder looked over at
him; the left side of the Companion's face was lined with parallel white scars,
legacy of the Colonial pompom shell that had also scattered his younger
brother's brains across his torso.
"I, ah, have—"
"A billet that just
happens to contain a pretty young widow?" Kaltin Gruder was not nicknamed
"The Rooster" by his men for nothing.
Kaltin coughed into one
hand. "Grass widow, actually."
"Leave her or bring
her," Raj said offhand. The Companion eyed him narrowly. "Everyone
will be there. Old friends, like Messer Reggiri."
They were passing a lone
Star Spirit priest, come out to bless the representatives of Holy Federation
Church. Kaltin's sudden clamp of legs around the barrel of his dog made the
animal skitter sideways in an arc that nearly smashed the unfortunate cleric
against the wrought-iron grillwork of a courtyard door.
"Sorry, Reverend
Father," the Descotter cast over his shoulder, as his usual skills
reasserted themselves and the mount went dancing back in a sidling arc to Raj's
side.
"I don't need a new
dog, or a slavegirl," Gruder said. Kaltin had led the escort party that
took Suzette to Reggiri's manor for a dinner-party Raj was too busy to
attend. The officers in that escort had all been sent off with lavish gifts; it
was notable that Kaltin Gruder had sold the dog immediately. Although he'd kept
the girl, a redhead of Stalwart background named Mitchi.
"Oh, I somehow
suspect Messer Reggiri will be giving us all gifts," Raj said
quietly.
The two Descotters met
each other's eyes. After a moment, they began to smile.
* * *
"Why thank you,
Cabot," Suzette said, fanning herself and taking the glass of punch.
The ballroom was bright
with oil lanterns and hot, despite the tall glass doors that stood open to the
early summer night Couples swirled across the marble, bright gowns and jewels
and uniforms glittering under the chandeliers. A band of steel drums, sitars
and flutes filled the room with soft music; few of the revellers bothered to
look up at the fortress on the bluffs, silhouetted against the great arc of
Maxiluna. Suzette sang softly to the slow sweep of the music:
"If every man does all he can-
If every man be true
Then we shall paint the sky above
In Federation blue . . ."
"Are those the
words to that tune?" Cabot asked.
They were leaning on the
railing just outside the windows, looking down over the city. There were fewer
lights than usual, except the reddish glow of the fires that persisted long
after the shelling had ceased in accordance with the twenty-four hour truce.
The flames gave a brimstone tinge to the air, under the breeze coming in from
the sea and the gardens of the Commander's palace.
"Very old words,
but old songs are a hobby of mine," Suzette said, leaning a little closer.
"Very true,
too," Cabot replied. He looked up at the fortress, and his strong young
swordsman's hands closed on the fretted bronze and iron of the rail. "If
we'd all just work at it, that barb wouldn't be up there laughing at us."
Suzette put a hand on
his forearm. "I rather think Colonel Courtet is feeling more inclined to
gnash his teeth, at the moment, Cabot. Since this is his residence we're
dancing in."
The young man shook off
his mood. "Another dance?" he said.
She shook her head,
laughing and tapping him on the shoulder with her fan. "Do you want the
other ladies to scratch my eyes out? Four quadrilles in a row with the
Governor's nephew! Poor things, it's not often they get the chance to whirl in
the arms of a handsome gallant from the capital, and here I'm monopolizing you."
"Provincial
frumps," Cabot said, bowing over her hand "Let them suffer—and make
me happy."
"Later, you scamp.
Let an old woman have a chance to catch her breath."
"Old!" he said
breathlessly, tightening his grip on her hand "You—you're as ageless and
as beautiful as the Stars themselves."
"Now you'll get me
in trouble with the Church."
Not to mention that at
several years short of thirty it was early days to be calling her ageless.
"Nonsense; I'll
proclaim a new dispensation from the Chair."
Don't let your uncle
hear you talking like that, she thought. He doesn't have much of a sense of
humor.
"Later, Cabot. I
really do need some rest and it's a sin for a dancer like you to be wasted even
for an hour. I'll meet you later by the fountain."
She watched him go,
tapping her chin thoughtfully with the fan. "Hello, Hadolfo," she
said, as Reggiri leaned against the railing in turn.
The black and silver of
his jacket and breeches made a contrast with her white-on-white torofib silk
and the platinum-and-diamond hairnet that drifted in veils of mesh around her
bare shoulders. He had a weathered seaman's tan, and there were calluses on the
hand that held hers as he made his bow.
"You seem to be
seeing a lot of that young spark," he said.
"Well, he is
the Governor's nephew, Hadolfo. I can scarcely throw a drink in his face."
"My dear, you not
only could, you could make him—or any man—thank you for it."
She laughed, a low
musical chuckle, and tucked her arm through his. "Maybe I should work my
witchery on Colonel Courtet," she said, nodding toward the fort.
"You might,"
he said. "I've had considerable dealings with the good Colonel, and in my
experience he's extremely susceptible to feminine charm; unfortunately, also to
Sala brandy and to whoever talked to him last."
"You know a great
deal about affairs here," she said.
"I try to keep
informed . . . as you may remember, dear Suzette."
"Then why don't we
go somewhere a little more private for conversation, Hadolfo?"
He looked at her
sharply, flushing. "Here?" he said.
"Well, not exactly
here," Suzette replied, steering him around the couples sitting out
the dance and crowding to the punchbowls and buffets. "But it is a fairly
large mansion, and one learns the way of things at Court; there's far less
privacy in the Governor's Palace, believe me."
She snapped open her
fan, and flicked a breeze across his neck. "You're glowing, Hadolfo. Now
stroll along with me, and tell me all the gossip, and we'll find a sofa
somewhere for a cosy chat."
* * *
Hadolfo Reggiri felt
himself flushing and fought not to stammer as they pushed open the doors to the
lower room; it was a storey down from the ballroom and across a courtyard,
close enough to hear the music, but shadowed with the black velvet curtains.
His tongue felt thick, far more so than a few glasses of wine would account
for, caught between memory and desire.
Get a grip on yourself,
man! he thought. You're not Spirit-damned sixteen any more!
He could see how the
witch kept the great General Whitehall dangling at her skirts. He could almost
feel sorry for the man.
The glow of two
cigarettes in the far corner of the darkened room was like running into a wall
of cold salt water. He stopped dead, his hand tightening unconsciously on
Suzette's where her fingers rested on his right arm. She rapped him sharply
across the knuckles with her fan, and walked to the waiting men with the same
slender swaying grace, her gown luminescent against the dark woodwork and
furniture. Reggiri kept walking numbly forward, because there simply didn't
seem to be much else to do. His mind was like a ship he had once seen, whose
cargo shifted during a storm. Staggering, everything out of alignment suddenly.
He recognized the men as
he approached; Raj Whitehall, and one of his officers, Kaltin Gruder. The
scar-faced one he'd been convinced for a moment was going to shoot him last
year, until Suzette's voice whipped him into obedience like a lash of ice. The
self-appointed guardian of his master's honor.
Both the officers were
wearing long dark military-issue greatcloaks, probably to disguise the fact
that they were also wearing saber and pistol—real weapons, not the fancy dress
cutlery appropriate at a ball. Behind them were four cavalry troopers;
they'd been washed up and their uniforms were new, but they carried rifles in
their crossed arms. Bull-necked, bow-legged Descotters, as out of place at a
party in the mansion as a pack of trolls at an elf convention. Their eyes
stayed fixed on the merchant, more feral than any barbarian of the Brigade he'd
ever seen.
Hadolfo Reggiri was a
good man of his hands; nobody could trade so long in the wilder parts of the
Midworld Sea and survive unless he was. He also had no illusions about his own
chances with Raj Whitehall or one of his picked fighting comrades; the troopers
were a message, not a precaution. They paced out behind him now, hobnails
grating on the parquet, looming presences at his back.
"Bwenyatar,
heneralissimo," he said, sweeping a bow. "Good evening, Most
Valiant General. I've been hoping you'd have the time to speak to me for
several days; as a loyal man, I've information on the enemy—"
"I don't doubt you
do," Raj said. He flicked at his cigarette and considered the ember.
"Eighteen hundred men in the fort, half regular gunners, about four
thousand refugees . . ."
It was considerably more
complete than the file Reggiri had been compiling.
"Then, if I can't
be of assistance, and since you're undoubtedly very busy," he began.
Raj drew another puff.
"Actually, messer, there is something you could help the war effort with.
My aide Muzzaf Kerpatik tells me you have four ships currently at Sala."
"Preparing to load
sulphur, ornamental stone and fortified wine for East Residence," he
confirmed.
"They're needed for
the war effort. I'd appreciate it if you'd send orders to their captains.
They're to report to my base on the north coast and place themselves under the
orders of Colonel Dinnalsyn of the Artillery Corps."
"Artillery,"
Reggiri whispered. "You're going to waste my ships against that bloody
fort!"
"That's Messer
General, t'yer," one of the troopers growled. Raj waved him to
silence.
"What," Kaltin
said, "would be the penalty, sir, for denying aid to officers of the Civil
Government in time of war?"
"Oh,
crucifixion," Raj said pleasantly, "for treason. But that doesn't
arise, I'm sure. Not waste, Messer Reggiri. Use. But I do think they'll
be used up. War does that; ships, ammunition, men."
"My ships,"
Reggiri said. They didn't carry insurance against war losses or acts of
government; losing them would wreck him. "You can't steal my ships! Messer
General," he added hastily as the soldiers stirred behind him. "I
have friends at court."
"I wouldn't dream
of stealing them," Raj said. Beside him Suzette pulled a document from her
reticule and handed it to her husband. He extended it to the merchant.
Reggiri strained to read
it; one of the troopers helpfully lit a match against his thumbnail and held it
over his shoulder. The hand stank of dog and gun-oil.
Three thousand
gold FedCreds, he read. Not quite robbery, but not replacement value for
the ships either. And-
"This is drawn on
Chancellor Tzetzas!" he blurted. "I've a better chance of getting the
money out of Ali of Al Kebir!"
"Not
satisfactory?" Raj said.
He plucked it back out
of the other man's fingers and tore it in half. Suzette produced another sheet
of parchment, and handed it to Raj. Reggiri took it with trembling fingers. It
was identical to the first, except that the amount had been reduced to
twenty-five hundred.
Reggiri looked up at
Suzette; she stood beside her husband, one delicate hand touching fingertips to
his massive wrist. Her eyes had seemed like green flame earlier; now they
reminded him of a glacier he had seen once, in the mountains of the Base Area
in the far north.
"Bitch," he
said, very softly. Then: "Unnhh!" as a rifle-butt thudded over
his kidneys. White fire turned his knees liquid for a moment, and ungentle
hands beneath his arms steadied him.
"Watch yer
arsemouth!" the trooper barked "Beggin' yer pardon, messer,
messa."
"Kaltin," Raj
went on, his expression flat. "Messer Reggiri seems to have had a bit too
much to drink, since he's forgotten how one addresses a messa. I think he needs
an escort home."
Gruder nodded:
"Well, he is a slave-trader," he said in a pleasant tone.
"Probably learned his manners pimping his sisters as a boy."
Reggiri's hand came up
of its own volition. Gruder's face thrust forward for the slap that never came,
the scars that disfigured half of it flushing red.
"Please," he
said, his voice husky and earnest. His lips came back from his teeth. "Oh,
please. One of my men will lend you a sword."
Raj touched his elbow.
"Major," he said, and Gruder's hand dropped from the hilt of his
saber. "I really do think Messer Reggiri needs that escort. And a guard
for the next week or so, because he seems to be remarkably reckless in his
cups."
"I gave you Connor Auburn
on a platter!" Reggiri burst out. The troopers fell in around him, as
irresistible as four walking boulders.
"And you're not
dying on a cross right now," Raj said in the same expressionless tone.
Only his eyes moved, and the hand bringing the cigarette to his lips. "Now
leave."
* * *
Suzette's fingers
unfastened the buckle of Raj's military cloak and tossed it on the
chaise-lounge behind them. She backed a step and curtsied deeply; Raj replied
with an equally deep bow, making a courtiers leg. Music drifted through the
open windows behind the black-velvet curtains, and the fading tramp of boots
through the door.
"Messa Whitehall,
might I have the honor of this dance?" he said.
"Enchanted, Messer
Whitehall."
Their right hands
clasped, and she guided his left to her waist before they swirled away, alone
on the dim-lit floor.
"I told you these'd
come in useful," Grammek Dinnalsyn said.
The weapon in the
revetment of sandbags, timber and sheet-iron on the forecastle of the Chakra
was a stubby cast-steel tube nearly as tall as a man, joined to a massive
circular disk-plate of welded wrought iron and steel by a ball-and-socket
joint. It was supported and aimed by a metal tripod, long threaded bars and
handwheels to turn for elevation and traverse. The bore was twenty centimeters,
more than twice that of a normal field-gun, and rifled. Beside the weapon was a
stack of shells, cylinders with stubby conical caps and a driving band of soft
gunmetal around their middle; at the rear of each was a perforated tube. The
crews would wrap silk bags of gunpowder around the tubes before they dropped
them down the barrel, a precise number for a given range at a given elevation.
The base charge was a shotgun shell; when it hit the fixed firing pin at the
bottom of the barrel, it would flash off the ring charges around the tube.
One thing Boyce had told
them was that the casements of Fort Wager had no overhead protection. None was
needed with normal artillery, given the placement of the fort.
"I know they're
useful, Grammeck," Raj said. "Their little brothers were extremely
handy in the Port Murchison fighting." It had been more like a massacre,
but never mind. "They're also extremely heavy. Get me one that can
move like a field gun, and I'll take dozens of them with me wherever I
go."
He walked down the deck
of the Chakra, striding easily; it had been two days from the north
coast to Port Wager, more than time enough to get his sea legs back. Many of
the platoon of 5th Descott troopers aboard were still looking greenly
miserable, landsmen to the core. They'd do their jobs, though, puking or not,
and he intended to give them a stable firing platform. The huge sails of the
three-master tilted above him; she was barque-rigged, fore-and-aft sails on the
rear mast and square on the other two. Water, wind and cordage creaked and
spoke; he squinted against the dazzle and made out the tall headland of Fort
Wager to the north. There was a brisk onshore breeze, common in the early
afternoon. Center had predicted it would hold long enough today-
probability 78% ±3, Center corrected him. i am not a prophet. i merely estimate.
—and at worst, they
could kedge in the last little way, hauling on anchors dropped out in front by
men in longboats.
He leaned on the
emplacement. The crew looked up from giving their weapon a final check and
braced; most of them were stripped to boots and the blue pants with red-laced
seams of their service.
"Rest easy,
boys," he said, returning their salute.
Artillerymen were mostly
from the towns, and their officers from the urban middle classes; both unlike
any other Army units in the Civil Government's forces. Many cavalry commanders
barely acknowledged their existence. Pure snobbery, he thought, they're
invaluable if you use them right. Their engineering skills, for example,
and general technical knowledge. Far too many rural nobles weren't interested
in anything moving that they couldn't ride, hunt or fuck, like so many
Brigaderos except for basic literacy.
"This one's all up
to you," he went on to the gunners. "Infantry can't do it, cavalry can't
do it. You're the only ones with a chance."
"We'll whup 'em for
you, Messer Raj!" the sergeant growled.
"So you will, by
the Spirit," he replied. "See you in the fort."
Inwardly, he was a
little uneasy at the way that verbal habit had caught on; Master Raj was
the way a personal retainer back on the estate would have addressed him. His
old nurse, for example, or the armsmaster who'd taught him marksmanship and how
to handle a sword. Curse it, these men are soldiers of the Civil Government,
not some barb chief's warband! he thought.
you are right to be concerned, Center said. however, the phenomenon is useful at present.
He took a slightly
different tack with the cavalry troopers waiting belowdecks. The ship's
gunwales had been built up and pierced with loopholes, but there was no sense
in exposing the men or hindering the sailors before there was need.
"Day to you,
dog-brothers," he said with a grin, slapping fists with the lieutenant in
command. "Done with your puking yet?"
"Puked out
ever-fukkin'-thin' but me guts, ser," one man said.
"It'll be tax-day
in Descott when you lose your guts, Robbi M'Teglez," Raj said. He'd always
had a knack for remembering names and faces; Center amplified it to perfection.
The trooper flushed and grinned. "You're the one brought me that wog
banner at Sandoral, aren't you?"
"Yisser, Messer
Raj," the man said. "Me Da got it, an' the carbine 'n dog ye sent. 'N
the priest back home read t' letter from the Colonel on Starday 'n all."
The troopers comrades
were looking at him with raw envy. Raj went on: "We'll be sailing in
through the barb cannonade; oughtn't to be more than twenty minutes or so. Not
much for those of you who saw off the wogboys at Sandoral. For those who weren't
there—well, you get to learn a new prayer."
"Prayer, ser?"
one asked.
He had the raw look of a
youth not long off the farm, barely shaving, but the big hands that gripped his
rifle were competent enough. Most yeomen-tenants in Descott sent one male per
generation to the Army in lieu of land-taxes. There were no peons in Descott,
and relatively few slaves. Widows, however, were plentiful enough.
A squadmate answered
him. "Per whut weuns about t'receive, may t'Spirit make us truly
thankful," he said. "Don't git yer balls drawed up, Tinneran.
Ain't no barbs got guns loik t'ragheads."
That brought a round of
smiles, half tension and half anticipation. Those who'd waited all day in the
bunkers while the Colonist guns pounded them, waiting for the waves of troops
in red jellabas to charge through rifle-fire with their repeating carbines . .
. they'd know. Those who hadn't been there couldn't be told. They could only be
shown.
"Once we're
through, the gunners have their jobs to do. It's our job to make sure the barbs
don't come down the rocks, wade out and take 'em the way the wild dog took the
miller's wife, from behind. You boys ready to do a man's work today?"
Their mounts were back
at the base-camp, but the noise the men made would have done credit to the
half-ton carnivores they usually rode.
"So commend your
souls to the Spirit, wait for the orders, and pick your targets, lads," he
finished. "To Hell or plunder, dog-brothers."
"I thought they
were about to mutiny, from the sound," Dinnalsyn said as Raj came blinking
back into the sunlight on the quarterdeck.
"Not likely,"
Raj said.
The headland was coming
up with shocking speed and the four ships were angling in on the course he'd
set, the one that would expose them to the least possible number of guns as
they cut in toward the cliffs. Spirit of Man, but I feel good, he
thought. Frightened, yes. Harbors attracted downdraggers, and he still had bad
dreams about the tentacles and gnashing beaks and intelligent, waiting eyes
crowding around the wharfs when they tipped the Squadron dead into the water
after Port Murchison. Eight thousand men dead in an afternoon; the sea-beasts
had been glutted, dragging corpses away to their underwater nests when their
stomachs wouldn't take any more flesh.
So he wasn't easy about
the chance of going into the water here, no. But after the grinding anxiety of
high command, the prospect of action on this scale made him feel . . . young.
Starless Dark, he told
himself. I'm not thirty yet!
"You shouldn't be
here, sir," Dinnalsyn said, lowering his voice.
"You aren't exactly
the first one to tell me that, Colonel," Raj said. His exuberance showed
in the light punch he landed on the East Residencer officer's shoulder.
"But I have to take it when my wife says it. Let's get on with the
job, shall we?"
The Chakra was
commanded from the stern, where the quarterdeck held the tall two-man wheel
that controlled the rudder and the captain could direct the first mate. Nothing
could be done about the vulnerability of the deck crew, who trimmed the lines
and climbed into the rigging to wrestle with canvas in response to orders
bellowed through a megaphone. Dinnalsyn had seen to putting a C-shaped iron
stand around the helm itself, though, with overhead protection and
vision-slits, boiler-plate mounted on heavy timbers.
The captain turned to
Raj. "Rocks 're bad here," he said. In Spanjol, with a nasal accent;
he was a tall ropey-muscled man with flax-pale hair shaven from the back of his
head and long mustaches. The tunic he wore was striped horizontally with black
and white, heavy canvas with iron rings the size of bracelets sewn to it. With
fighting possible, he had shoved the handles of short curve-bladed throwing
axes through the rings, and had two long knives in his belt.
A Stalwart wandered down
from the north, one of the latest tribe of barbarians to move south out of the
Base Area. Possibly the fiercest of all; they would have been much more
dangerous if fratricide and patricide hadn't been the national sport of their
kings. The day one of them managed to kill off all his rivals and unite the
tribe would be a dangerous one for the world.
Raj was not particularly
worried about treachery from Captain Lodoviko; offshore, the black plumes
showed where the Civil Governments steam rams waited. They were too deep-draught
to do this job themselves, but he'd given instructions that any ship which
turned back without orders was to be sunk and everyone knew it. He'd also
promised every man on board a bonus equivalent to a year's pay, with new berths
and commands for the mates and captains and enough to buy a share in their
ship. Plus, of course, he had forty of his own troops on each ship, ready to
shoot down any man who abandoned his station. Everyone knew that, too.
"Steer this
course," Raj said. A colored grid dropped down before his eyes, and he
swung his arm to align with the pointer Center provided. "Precisely that
course, Captain Lodoviko, and change precisely when I tell you.
Understood?"
Lodoviko squinted at
him, and murmured something in his dialect of Namerique; probably an invocation
to one of the dozens of heathen gods the Stalwarts followed. Glim of the Waves,
perhaps, or Baffire of the Thunder. Then he grunted orders to the helm and his
first mate. The wheel swung, and feet rushed across the deck. Men swarmed into
the ratlines, agile as cliff-climbing rogosauroids.
The ship's bow swung and
its motion altered as it took the waves at a different angle. The three ships
behind swung into line, following as nearly as they could in line astern.
"We're going too fast,"
Raj said again, his tone remote. "Reduce by . . . two knots, please. Make
ready to turn the boat to the left."
"Ship to port. This
ain't steered from the same end as a dog, General." Another set of orders
from the megaphone, and canvas was snatched up and lashed to spars.
"Whatever. That's
right. Now turn to this angle." His arm swung.
Ahead, they were close
enough to see the tall cream-colored limestone cliffs, scarred and irregular
but nearly vertical; the stone of the fort was the same color, only the
smoothness and block-lines marking where it began and the native rock left off.
Surf beat on the shingle beach below, and more white water thrashed over rocks
and reefs further out. Any one of them could rip the timber bottom of the Chakra
open the way a bayonet did a man's belly.
I don't envy
Gerrin trying to make them think he's going to do a mass attack in broad
daylight, Raj thought, at some level not occupied with his passionless translation of
Center's instructions.
Dinnalsyn and his aide
had quietly drawn their revolvers, standing behind the binnacle that held the
wheel. "Spirit, it's really working," the gunner whispered, in the
abstracted tones of a man speaking to himself. "Spirit, maybe he is a
bleeding Avatar."
"This heading. Keep
this heading."
They were slanting in
towards the cliffs at a sixty-degree angle, still more than a kilometer
out. The breeze freshened. A cannon boomed, and everyone except Raj jumped. He
was too fixed in the strait world of lines and markers Center had clamped over
his vision.
"Colonel
Staenbridge is demonstrating against the fort, and they're warning him
off," he said calmly. "They don't have enough men to crew all their
guns. They'll see we're coming in soon enough."
The path to the little
pier around the harbor-side angle of the cliffs was much easier sailing, but
the last thing he wanted was to be right at the foot of the covered staircase
up to the fort. For one thing, small-arms fire from the ramparts could reach a
ship there; for another, he was fairly sure the garrison wasn't going to let
him sit and shell them without trying to pay a visit.
His back was to the
stern rail; he drew his own pistol and thumbed back the hammer. Lodoviko
scratched his ribs; he might not have been toying with the haft of one
of his axes.
BOOM. Smoke vomited
from an embrasure on the seaward side of the fort.
"Think they've seen
us," Dinnalsyn said. The air ripped, and water fountained white two
hundred meters off the Chakra's bow.
BOOM. It went overhead
this time, and the ball struck rock barely submerged a few hundred meters to
their left, with a sound like an enormous ball-peen hammer on granite. It
bounced back into the air and wobbled another hundred meters to splash in
deeper waves.
"Yep, they've seen
us all right," the gunner went on dispassionately. "Undershot and
overshot. Tricky, with a moving target like this."
"Turn right. This
far."
"Y'heard the
lubber, port ten!" Lodoviko snapped. Sweat was running down his
boiled-lobster face and soaking his tunic, but his directions were precise.
BOOM. BOOM.
BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM.
A wall of smoke along
the gunports of the fort where the wall faced them.
Inside, the gunners
would be leaping through their intricately choreographed dance. Swabbers to
push sponge-tipped poles down the barrels to quench the sparks. Gunner standing
by with his leather-sheathed thumb over the touch-hole to keep air out. Linen
bags of gunpowder rammed down the muzzle next. The gunner lifting his thumb and
jabbing the wire pricker down the hole to split the fabric. A wad going in, a
heavy circle of woven hemp rope. Then the ball—four men with a scissor-grip
clamp, on guns this heavy. Ram another wad on the ball, as the gunner pushed
home the friction fuse and clipped his lanyard to it. Men heaving at ropes and
the block-and-tackle squealing as the long black pebbled surface of the
cast-iron barrel came back to bear, and the gunner standing on the platform at
the rear to aim as the officer called the bearing and men spun the screws.
Fire, as the
crew sprang back from the path of recoil, mouths open and hands over their
ears. Noise and choking smoke, and the whole thing to do again and again. . . .
BOOM. BOOM.
BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM.
"Turn right. Hard
right, for the beach," Raj said.
He shook his head as the
visions faded, and had to grab the captain and scream the directions into his
ear; the man turned eyes gone almost black as the pupil swallowed the iris, but
he shouted in his turn—then cuffed the helmsman aside and spun the wheel
himself, ropy muscle bulging on his bare arms. This time the ripping-cloth
noise was much louder, almost shrill, and water splashed across the deck as
spouts half as high as the masts collapsed onto them. Instinct made him cover his
revolver with his hand as the salt water drenched him.
Dinnalsyn was looking
aft. "Damnation to the Starless Dark," he said. "They got the Ispirto
dil Hom."
The next ship in line
was turning around the pivot of the toppled mainmast, a tangled mass of wood
and canvas leaning over the side into the waves. As he watched two more balls
struck. One into the deck, but the next was a very lucky accident. It hit the
mortar tube square-on, and the piled ammunition went up in a ball of orange
fire. When it cleared the whole front of the ship was missing; the stern slid
forward on the same course. Men climbed frantically as the rudder flapped into
view; then the merchantman slid out of sight. The water was scattered with
flotsam, some of which screamed for help to the next vessel through.
Smooth flukes tossed
water upward as the downdraggers came, the only help those men would receive
today. Tentacles lashed around a floating spar and the men clinging to it.
Their shrieks carried a long way over the water.
Raj turned, stomach
knotting. Lodoviko was screaming to the sailors in the rigging to drop sail;
the bow rose and fell in a choppy motion as the spars came down in a controlled
disaster of crashing weight.
"We have to get
in," Raj said, grabbing the man by the shoulder.
"We will, you
lubber of a soldier! Double-moon tide and an onshore breeze: if we come in too
fast, the masts'll come down on your precious popgun when she grounds her
belly."
Lodoviko seemed to be an
intelligent savage. If that mortar didn't work, they would all be joining the
crew of the Spirit of Man very soon.
BOOM. BOOM.
BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM.
"Over,"
Dinnalsyn said, tracing the trajectories. "Over, over, over . . . over . .
. over, over! Overshot, by the Spirit! Their guns can't depress
this far."
Raj cast a look back.
The next ship, the Rover's Bane, was coming through the gauntlet of
waterspouts. Crack. Not undamaged; the top of the middle mast—mainmast,
he reminded himself—went over the side, and broken staylines snapped across the
deck like the whips of a malignant god. They were turning, now, turning
straight in for the beach. City of Wager right behind.
BOOM. BOOM.
BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM. BOOM.
"Hit, she's
hit," Raj said, peering through distance and spray.
"Took out her wheel
and the second one smashed her rudder," Dinnalsyn said grimly. Then:
"She's still steering, Spirit bugger me blind!"
Lodoviko showed teeth
like an ox's, yellow and strong. "Florez. That he-whore is a seaman, by
Glim. He takes her in with the sails alone—onshore wind, it can be done. He has
balls, that one."
The Stalwart drew two of
his axes and turned, clashing them together over his head at the fortress. He
brayed out a long war-cry, the overhanging yellow fuzz of his mustache standing
out from his lip in food-stained glory with the volume.
"Come out and
fight, you Brigade heroes! You pussy-whipped suckers of priest's cocks! Come
out of that stone barn and fight-everyone grab a line."
The final rush to the
cliff was shocking; a pitching glide, and the rough stone rising to blot out
the sky above. The keel caught and grated, then caught again in a chorus of
groans and snaps and rending noises. Rigging gave way with sounds like gigantic
lute-strings, but none of the masts went over. The impact seemed slow and
gentle, but Raj felt his feet jerked out from under him by inertia, and only
the iron grip of his sword-hand on the tarred cordage by his side kept him from
falling forward. One seaman still in the rigging screamed as he described a long
arc shorewards, ending in abrupt silence as he impacted on the cliff and fell
limply to the narrow strip of stony beach.
Silence fell for an
instant, and then the ship quivered as it settled. The hulls of all four—all
three—were U-shaped in section with edge-keels rather than a single deep
keelson-mounted fin. The Chakra ground her way down into the loose rocks
of the shore and settled almost level. The comparative absence of noise seemed
unnatural, like a ringing in the ears. Off to the left the other two ships were
grounded rather further out; there was twenty meters of water between the Chakra
and dry land, twice that for each of the others.
Dinnalysn picked himself
up. "We made it," he said. "They can't touch us now."
"Professional
tunnel-vision, Grammeck," Raj said with a grim smile. He checked the loads
in his pistol and wiped the surfaces dry with the tail of his uniform jacket.
"You mean their artillery can't touch us," he went on, and
pointed to their left. The rock bulged out and then curved away; most of Port
Wager was hidden by it.
"Nothing to prevent
them coming down the stairways around that corner of the cliff and trying their
best to beat us to death. Nothing at all."
* * *
"No, up two more
turns with the same charge," Raj said.
The mortarman looked at
him with awe and spun the elevating screw. The four loaders lifted the heavy
shell with its sausage-rings of gunpowder at the base and eased it into the
muzzle. Everyone else in the sandbagged emplacement on the forecastle bent
away, closing their eyes and opening their mouths, jamming thumbs against their
ears.
"Fire in the
hole!"
Fffumph. The 20-cm tube
belched a blade of fire taller than a man; everyone was coughing and waving to
clear the dense cloud of smoke. The projectile was visible as a dark blur
through the air, then a dot that hesitated high above, and then a blur again.
crump. Muted, because
it was exploding within the walls of Fort Wager, but still loud. The shells had
a ten-kilogram bursting charge, and their target—the land-facing guns of the
fort—had no overhead protection. Only thin partitions between each of the guns
on the firing deck, as well. The seaward-facing guns might as well be in Carson
Barracks for all the good they were doing the Brigade now.
The problem was that
there was no way to observe the fall of shot from the ships; the target was not
only half a kilometer north, it was three hundred meters higher up and behind a
thick stone wall. The main Civil Government force, massed just out of
cannon-shot of the fort walls on the other side, could observe roughly
where the shells landed. The signals were rough as well, color-coded rockets;
green for "too far," red for "short," white and black for
"left" and "right." Even with Center to help with the
calculations it was taking time to walk the shells of each gun onto the target.
Time they might not have.
"Ser! Here t'barbs
come agin!"
Raj vaulted over the
sandbags, pivoting on his left hand, and landed in a crouch on the deck. That
put him below the level of the built-up railings, which were turning out to be
a very good idea. The cluster of boulders at the bulge of the cliff was four
hundred meters away. The Brigaderos had gotten set up in there, and proved to
be deadly accurate. Not very fast, but there were a lot of them, and they
tended to hit what they aimed at. Tinneran, the recruit with the big hands, had
found out the hard way when he stood up to get a better shot; he was lying
wrapped in canvas and out of the way, with a round blue hole in his forehead
and the back blown out of his head. The lieutenant was dead, too. Exactly
according to the odds. The two most dangerous positions in a cavalry platoon
were junior officer and raw recruit.
Two other fatals, and
two too badly hurt to shoot even kneeling and through a loophole. That left him
thirty rifles. The loopholes had saved their butts. It was a good thing
there was no way to hide coming down the cliff directly overhead, and a man
rapelling down on a rope had proved to be a very good target.
He duckwalked to the
side of the ship and squinted through a narrow slit in the wooden barricade.
Bullets made their flat crack overhead, or thocked into the ship's
timbers, or peened as they struck metal. Puffs of smoke rose from the rocks as
the marksmen increased their covering fire; at a guess, each was a picked man
with two or three others passing him loaded rifle-muskets. The 5th troopers
kept hunched down behind the bulletproof sheath of planking that Center had
added to Raj's plan. It wasn't worth the risk to stick their rifles out the
firing slits until they had better targets.
Which would be shortly.
None of the bodies from the last attack was floating; the downdraggers had
gotten them all. They'd even gone for the ones on the narrow strip of beach,
until both sides shot half a dozen of the repulsive beasts while they dragged
themselves half out of the water to seize their prey.
"Here t' bastids
come," called the NCO.
"Pick your
targets," Raj said, loud but calm. "Fire low."
A first wave came
pelting up the beach beneath the cliffs. They wore green-gray jackets and black
pants, lobster-tail steel helmets with nasals and cheek-flaps. General's
Dragoons, part of the Brigade's regular army. Their rifles were slung, and they
carried short ladders.
"Now!"
The Armory rifles began
to speak, a steady beat. Men fell, others picked up their ladders and came
forward again. Another hundred and another, and the third had no ladders but
waded out into the water directly towards the Chakra. The bow was
thigh-deep, but there was another four meters or so of sheer hull to climb if
they made it that far. The midships railing was half a deck lower than the
forecastle, but the water there was waist to chest deep.
Damn, but those are
brave men, he thought.
The downdraggers were
out there; the men had to come in a dense phalanx and prod with their bayonets.
Even so some went down in the tentacles at the edge or rear of the formation,
and more stayed to stab and hack at the smooth grey flesh of the predators. For
a moment, because the water was being whipped to froth by fire from the Chakra
and the other two ships. They were too far out to be attacked, but they
could support their sister.
A slapping sound and a
grunt. Just down from him a trooper slumped backwards twitching and coughing
out sheets of blood from a soft-lead slug through the upper chest. Bullets were
cracking into the planking like hail, and if enough came your way one was going
to get through the loophole. He switched positions. The hundred men in the
first wave were more like thirty now; one turned and tried to run back the way
he'd come, and an officer shot him at point-blank range with his pistol. Now
they were level with the Chakra's bow and curving out into the water
with their ladders, knees coming up high as if in unconscious reluctance to let
their feet touch the surface.
"First squad, follow
me!" he called, and led them to the bows.
Past the mortar, where
another shot came, and another—they were firing for effect, how had he missed
the signal they were on target? Up to the bows, and the rough pole ends of an
improvised ladder slapping against the boards. He stuck his revolver over the
edge and squeezed off three shots; somebody screamed, and a dozen bullets
hammered the edge of the planking as he snatched the hand back. Good.
Decoyed, by the Spirit. There might be something in the world more futile
than trying to reload a musket while standing in a meter of monster-haunted
water, but he couldn't think of it offhand.
A Brigadero head came
over the rail. He shot, and the bullet keened off the lobster-tail helmet; the
man's head jerked around as if he'd been kicked by a riding dog, and he
vanished to splash below. One more shot; it missed, but the trooper beside him
didn't. The Brigade warrior folded around his belly and jackknifed, flopping
across the rail. Raj holstered his revolver and swept out his saber.
"Come on!" he
said, and set the point against the ladder.
The trooper did
likewise, putting the tip of his long bayonet against the other upright. They
pushed—sideways, not straight back. The ladder slid out of sight, and the
timbre of the screams below changed from fury to terror. Raj risked a look;
something like a mass of animated worms around a serrated beak the length of an
arm had the man who'd held the ladder at the base. It was pulling him seaward
and biting chunks out of him at the same time; three of his comrades were
hacking at it with their swords although the victim was obviously dead; even following
it. Which he wouldn't have believed, if he hadn't seen some of the things
men would do in combat . . . The squad with him fired point-blank at the next
set of men with a ladder.
"Ser."
He whipped around. A
Brigadero had gotten to the deck, twenty feet away where the sailors were
holding a section with cutlass and boarding axe. Down in the waist of the ship,
the ones who'd come without ladders must be climbing over each other's
shoulders to get on board. The first man on jerked two revolvers from crossdraw
holsters. Raj and the trooper beside him ran back toward him. The Brigade
warrior took a careful stance and shot the trooper. The man went over with a
yell, clutching his thigh as if to squeeze out the pain and rolling into a
tangle of sailcloth and rope hanging to the deck. Raj dove forward over the
edge of the forecastle half-deck, kept hold of his saber but landed with his
ribs on something hard, and came up wheezing.
Not ten feet from the
Brigadero. The man was grinning, or snarling, impossible to say. He aimed with
care, as much outside the range of Raj's saber as if he'd been on Maxiluna or
lost Earth itself-
Something bright flashed
by, rotating into a blur. It stopped at the pistoleer, turning into one of
Lodoviko's axes. The bit took the Brigadero at a flat angle between neck and
shoulder. Blood jutted through the cut cloth and flesh, spurting; shock
convulsed both the mans hands, and the pistols fired. By luck, good or bad, one
barked into the deck-planking by Raj's foot, turning a thumb-sized patch into a
miniature crater.
He hurdled the dying
man's body and turned the next stride into a full-sweep kick at the next man
coming over the low rail. The steel-reinforced toe of Raj's riding boot thudded
into his chest with an impact that brought a twinge of pain to Raj's lower
back. The Brigadero toppled backward and splashed into the water. He came up
bent over and gasping with his mouth barely above the surface, wading back
towards shore with empty hands. Raj leaned over the rail.
He met the eyes of the
man there, the one who had been standing chest deep so his comrades could climb
up him and onto the ship. The bearded snarling face showed only an intense
concentration; his right hand went back for the sword slung over his shoulder.
Raj could see something else; a smooth upwelling in the water, a track heading
straight for the enemy soldier's back. He leaned and thrust; the point punched
into the standing man's neck. His eyes were turning up as he slid off the
point.
A mercy, Raj
thought.
Fdump. Much louder than
the previous mortar-shells. A column of black smoke atop a dome of fire rose
over the edge of the cliff, over the barely-visible wall of the fort beyond.
Red dots trailing smoke and sparks shot skyward, and heavier debris tumbled
briefly into sight.
secondary explosion, Center said. gun bay three, frontal sector to the right of
the main gates.
Then something much
heavier went off. Shards of rock as big as dogs quivered loose from the cliff,
and the noise thumped at his face.
Raj nodded, wheezing
back his breath. A fragment of red-hot iron slicing into a bagged charge . . .
ripple effect. Massive guns flipping out into the air, and pieces of the crews
with them. Chunks of rock and concrete blasting in all directions.
A yell went up from the
sandbagged mortar enclosure. Nobody noticed along the sides of the ship for an
instant. There was a final snarling fury of shots fired with the muzzles
touching flesh and bayonet clashing on swords. The enemy fell back, realizing
by instinct that there were too few of them to push home their attack. They saw
the pillar of fire as they retreated, and ran.
Then the crew and
soldiers were cheering too; another trio of mortar shells puffed upwards, and
the sound of their firing slapped back from the cliffs like the applause of
giants.
"Cease fire,
riflemen," Raj croaked, keeping well down—the marksmen among the tumbled
boulders could shoot again now, with their own men dead or out of the way.
Lodoviko looked up from bandaging a gash in his hairy thigh and hooted
laughter; Raj nodded.
"Ser?" the
platoon sergeant said. "We could git sommat more of 'em—"
"No," Raj
said. He remembered the man standing in the water, waiting while others climbed
to safety over him. Or at least out of reach of the tentacles. "I need men
like that. All I can get."
as do i, raj whitehall, Center said. as do i.
* * *
Colonel Courtet had
probably been a fine figure of a man, back before twenty years of inactivity
and Sala brandy took their toll; the vast bush of beard that hid his face was
probably a mercy. He hadn't been drinking recently, but that probably only
worsened the trembling of his liver-spotted hands. His body was large and soft,
straining against the silvered armor he wore, and his dog shifted as if sensing
its rider's unease.
"Colonel Gerrin
Staenbridge," the Civil Government officer said, saluting crisply.
The other man's reply
was a vague wave followed by silence. Gerrin was in no particular hurry, within
reason. The two parties were meeting under a white flag in the cleared
no-man's-land in front of the fort, which gave a wonderful view of the tumbled
ruin of the main defensive bastion beside the gate. Eroded-looking stumps stood
up above rubble that had filled in the moat and made a perfect ramp up into
Fort Wager. In fact, it even looked accessible on dogback. Every minute that
Courtet had to watch it from this angle was a blow struck at his morale, which
looked none too steady to begin with. According to the intelligence, he'd been
pushed forward by the local military council because he was the only officer of
sufficient birth and rank who wasn't as defeatist as Colonel Boyce.
As completely defeatist
as Boyce. Senior officers with military ability or ambition didn't come to
Stern Isle.
Besides, Courtet's aide
was worth a little attention: he looked the way a noble Military Government
warrior was supposed to in the legends and so rarely did in practice. Twenty,
broad in the shoulders and narrow in the hips, regular bronzed features and
tourmaline eyes, long blond hair flowing to his shoulders and close-trimmed
barley-colored beard. Uniform of beautiful materials, elegantly understated,
but the breastplate commendably hacked, battered and lead-splashed.
Gerrin fought down a
friendly smile; besides, Bartin was acting as his aide. The senior
officer, a junior, and a bannerman, as was traditional.
"There's no point
in wasting time," Staenbridge went on, when it was plain Courtet would not
speak. Possibly could not. "You're getting the third and last chance to
surrender."
"Ah . . ."
Courtet coughed rackingly. "Same terms?" He wet his lips, visibly
thirsty. Out of the corner of his eye, Gerrin could see the fine-drawn lip of
the Brigadero aide curl.
"Of course
not," Staenbridge snapped. "You know the laws of war concerning
fortified places, colonel. We summoned you first when we invested the fort, and
again before we commenced firing. Terms become more strict with each
refusal."
He pointed with a
gauntleted hand. "Now we've put a workable breach in your defenses. If you
refuse and we storm the position, your lives are forfeit. And believe me, if
you force us to take unnecessary casualties, we'll throw any survivors over the
cliffs and their families will be turned over to the men. Who will not be
in a gentle mood."
Courtet looked from one
Civil Government officer to the other, from the dark suave face of a killer to
the cheerful, handsome young man with the razor-edged steel hook for a left
hand. The flower tucked behind his ear made the sight worse, not better.
"What terms,
gentlemen?" he said hoarsely.
"Personal liberty
for your families. All able-bodied males and their households to be sent to
East Residence, men to be enrolled in our forces under the usual provisions—no
service against the Brigade. The remainder to be released after giving their
parole never to bear arms against the Civil Government. Personal property
except arms to be retained by the owners, and officers' sidearms and dogs for
those discharged. Forfeiture of real property beyond one house and forty
hectares. And if that seems harsh, messers, consider the alternatives."
"Can I, ah, consult
with my officers?"
"With this
gentleman and no others." Although I wouldn't mind consulting with him
myself, under other circumstances. "Are you in command, Colonel
Courtet or not?"
Probably not but he
could lead his men in the obvious direction. There was nothing more
demoralizing than being shelled without a chance to reply, except possibly
knowing your family was there with you. The blond aide drew Courtet aside and
whispered urgently in his ear.
When he turned back, the
Brigade commander's face was like gelid fat. His aide dismounted and helped him
to the ground; they both drew their swords and offered them hilt-first across
their forearms.
A huge roaring cheer
rose from the Civil Government troops downslope, in their hasty fieldworks.
Even with the mortars in support, taking the fortress would enact a big enough
butcher's bill to daunt anyone. The fort's ramparts were black with watchers as
well, and the sound that came up from them was a long hollow groan, the sort of
noise you hear on a battlefield after dark when the wounded lie out. Calling
for water, or their mothers, or in wordless pain.
The Civil Government
officers each took his counterpart's blade, flourished it overhead, and
returned it. Then Staenbridge pulled out his watch.
"My felicitations
on an honorable but difficult decision," which you should have made
yesterday, you butchering moron. "Colonel Courtet. Your men will march
out within twenty minutes and stack arms," he said, "or you'll be in
violation of the truce. Colonel, you'll remain with me until that's done.
Sooner begun, the sooner we can get the wounded attended to and your women and
children settled."
Courtet nodded heavily,
resting one hand on the saddle of the dog beside him.
"Where's
Whitehall?" he burst out.
The two Descotters
looked at him expressionlessly. He blinked, and amended: "Where's Messer
General Whitehall? They say," the Brigadero went on, "the demons
fight for him. I could believe that."
"General Whitehall
is where he thinks best," Staenbridge said. And I violently disagree;
he should be here, and I on that boat. "And the holy Avatars fight for
him, Colonel. He is the Sword of the Spirit of Man—hadn't you heard?"
Courtet was silent but
his aide bowed courteously. "I had heard that, sir," he said, in fair
if slow Sponglish. "We yield our swords to the might of the Spirit, then,
to take them up again against Its enemies, heathen and Muslim." He turned and
spurred for the gates.
They opened, and
remained that way. A squad came forward to put Courtet under guard; Bartin
Foley murmured to the lieutenant in charge, and a table, chair and tumbler of
brandy appeared. The fat old man in too-tight armor looked at them and then put
his face in his hands, his shoulders heaving.
Staenbridge heeled his
dog off to one side. Bartin leaned toward him.
"You said that as
if you meant it," the younger man said. "About Messer Raj being the
Sword of the Spirit; and here I thought you were a sceptic."
"I find myself
growing less sceptical, comrade of my heart. Less sceptical than I would
wish."
"Envious?" Bartin
grinned.
Gerrin Staenbridge
shuddered elaborately and began stripping off his gloves. "Merciful
Avatars—if there are any—no! Plenty of fame in being one of the selfless,
faithful Companions, as I don't doubt the lying histories will call us all,
forgetting we're each the central characters of our own stories." He
thought for a moment, watching the screeching gulls and cawing dactosauroids
over the harbor.
"Bad enough to be a
hero, and carry the burdens of human expectations. To shoulder those of Something
Else . . . even a soul like Raj's will crack under the burden in the end. No
matter that all of us do what we can to help."
He looked at the younger
officer and smiled. "The flower's charming, by the way. And since it's on
the left today . . . ?"
Raj Whitehall looked
past his booted feet where they rested on the table, down the long conference
chamber and out the french doors and balcony at the other end. From here you
could just see the blue-and-silver Starburst banner of the Civil Government
floating over Fort Wager against the violet morning sky and the pale
translucent globe of Maxiluna. Soon to be renamed Fort Tinneran, for all the
good it would do. There was something satisfying in the sight. Also in
getting some honest work done. This meeting was informal, the Companions and
one or two others, but there were things that needed doing.
Grammeck Dinnalsyn
ruffled a stack of papers. "Just mason's work for now, general," he
said. "The fort's sound."
"Not until it gets
overhead protection for the guns, and something that can drop plunging fire on
the beach," Raj said crisply. "Cursed if I'll see it taken back by
the same tricks I used, Grammeck."
Although that
would be a lot more difficult without Center. It had been close enough
even with the Spirit lending a direct hand.
i am not god.
No, but you're the
closest approximation available within current parameters, Raj thought.
"I do have an idea
about that," the gunner said. "It'll be a while before we can get
real howitzers or mortars there; they'll have to be ordered from East Residence
Armory or the Kolobassian forges. Which requires formal funding from the Master
of Ordnance . . ."
Half a dozen people
groaned. "Exactly. You can steal money for yourself, but Star Spirit help
you if you spend money irregularly for the State. What we can do, is
take some of the surplus smoothbores, cut them down, and mount them in pits.
Some sort of turntable, but that's blacksmith level work. Then timber-and-earth
covers, with removable sections. Solid shot, and time-fused shell, of sorts. I
wouldn't care to have forty kilograms of either dropped on my head."
Raj nodded. Spirit,
but I like a man who can think for himself. With Center's matchless ability
to store and sort information, he really didn't need all that much of a staff.
He had set himself to train one anyway; the Civil Government needed something
better than ad-hoc organizations whenever a field army was set up. There was a
big gap in the table between the administrators who saw to pay and garrison
work, and the battalion-level unit organizations.
a deliberate one, Center observed. Field
armies made coups easier.
We get the coups anyway,
Raj replied.
"Draw up the
plans," he said. "We may not have time for it, but at least our
successors will get some help. How are the public works, town water supplies,
that sort of thing?"
"In fair-to-good
shape, no new work but maintenance is sound. Nothing like the pigsty we found
down in Port Murchison; but the roads are pretty bad."
"See if you can get
the same organization working on transport, then," Raj said.
"Sir," Ludwig
Bellamy cut in, "speaking of Port Murchison—"
Raj nodded, and the ex-Squadrone
went on, "I've had a letter in from my father."
He smoothed the sheaf of
crinkled pages out; they were covered with a thick quasi-literate scrawl. Karl
Bellamy had had expensive tutors shipped in from East Residence for his son, as
he might have had a concubine or swordsmith. In fact, most Squadrone fathers
would much rather have spent the money on girls or guns than possibly
sissifying grisuh learning. The elder Bellamy had seen no need for such
polish for himself, and the letter was too confidential for secretaries.
"Colonel Osterville
has been removed as Vice-Governor of the Territories," he said.
There was a general
murmur of satisfaction around the table. Osterville was one of Barholm's
Guards—a semi-official group of troubleshooters-cum-enforcers of good birth,
usually men with few prospects save the Governor's favor. Raj had been a Guard,
to begin with. Osterville still was, and he'd been sent to relieve Raj at the
end of the reconquest under what looked suspiciously like official disfavor.
"The man's got the
soul of a pimp," Kaltin Gruder said flatly. "I had to spend six
months under his command, and the Spirit spare me any such service again. Who
got him, Ludwig?"
"Administrator
Berg," Ludwig said, raising his brows. "Malfeasance in office,
peculation, suspicion of usurpation of Gubernatorial honors." The last
would be the decisive one. Far more dangerous to wear the wrong color shoes
than to strip a province bare. "He's being posted as garrison commander to
. . . ah, Sandoral."
More satisfied smiles. A
hot, dusty town uncomfortably close to the Colony. None of them expected
Osterville to shine if it came to serious skirmishing.
observe, Center said. A brief
flash; Osterville's face streaked with sweat and dust, bracing himself against
the rocking of a railway car. The view out the window was not unlike central
Stern Isle, but Raj recognized it as the plateau north of the Oxheads, east of
salt-thick Lake Canpech. On Governor Barholm's new Central Railway, heading
east away from East Residence and the rich lands of the Hemmar River country.
"Hingada Osterville,"
Hadolfo Zahpata said, in his sing-song southern accent; he was from northwest
of Sandoral, and so were most of his 18th Komar Borderers. "I would wish a
more able man in the post, though. Ali will be moving sometime. Malash; the
Spirit appoints our coming up and our going down."
"Endfile," Raj
said, and rapped his knuckles on the table. That was pleasant news, but not
strictly germane. "Now, Muzzaf?"
The Komarite cleared his
throat. "There is a machine shop which can do the work you
requested," he said, setting a Brigade cap-and-ball revolver down on the
table. It was a five-shot weapon, loaded with paper cartridges from the front
and with nipples for the percussion caps on the back of the cylinder.
"The original
design was copied from the Civil Government model," he went on, "so
the calibre and pitch of the rifling are the same. Once the cylinder is bored
through and tapped, and the hammer modified, it will accept the standard brass cartridge
case—and ammunition is available in sufficient quantity if we indent for it
now. I, ah," he coughed, "know of certain channels to expedite
matters."
"Go for it,"
Raj said. "Initial order of six thousand, we certainly captured enough. I
want every cavalryman to have one by the time we ship out of here; we don't
want melee actions, but I'm damned if I'm going to have my lads facing a man
with four revolvers and them with nothing but a sword. Messer Historiomo?"
"I see no reason
not to authorize the expenditure," the Administrative Service
representative said cautiously; but then, he did everything cautiously.
"Which brings
us," Raj went on, "to the fund. My lady?"
"Every battalion
has agreed to contribute in proportion to their losses," she said. "I
talked to the officers' wives . . ."
"Good, very
good." The Civil Government made little provision for the families of
casualties, or for men rendered unfit-for-service. He'd established a tradition
of using plunder to set up a pension fund; the men trusted him not to steal it.
"Muzzaf, put it in something suitable. Land, I suppose, or town
properties. Arrange for trustees, trustworthy ones."
"My love?"
Suzette went on.
He nodded. Some people
found his conferences a trifle eccentric—Fatima, for example, was acting as
secretary to Suzette and had her nine-month-old daughter, named Suzette for her
patroness, in a cradle beneath the side table they were using—but they got the
work done.
Raj's wife produced a
list of her own. "We have about fifty troopers who've got injuries that
make them unfit-for-service but not really incapacitated—ones without somewhere
to retire to back home, that is. I've looked up about the same number of young
Brigaderos widows or orphaned maidens of good reputation and appropriate rank
who were covered by the amnesty; there were a fair number of men with
medium-sized farms held in fee simple, here. Widows and daughters wouldn't
inherit in the absence of male offspring under Brigade law but would under
ours; the ones I've talked to are willing and ready to convert to orthodoxy to
avoid ending up as spinsters living on their relatives. For that matter, there
are a couple of hundred who'll settle for a man on active service; that's a
Brigade tradition too. If you know some unmarried troopers you'd like to see
get a farm to come back to eventually . . ."
Raj nodded. The same
thing had happened spontaneously in the Southern Territories after the
conquest, and worked out surprisingly well. Soldiers and their relatives had
solid legal status under the Civil Government, and could hold land under
low-tax military tenure; desirable qualities in a husband, in uncertain times.
Having a farm to retire to after mustering-out was the dream of most troopers
who didn't stand to inherit one or a good tenancy. It was a good way to start
integrating new territory into the Civil Government as well.
"See to it, then,
my sweet. Ah—we could hold a mass ceremony here. The men would like that, and
it'll make them remember they're soldiers first and foremost, active or on the
invalid list."
Kaltin laughed.
"Advise the active-service men to get the brides pregnant before they
leave," he said.
"I don't doubt
they'll try, Kaltin," Gerrin said. "The dispositions, Raj? We're
still scattered to hell-and-gone."
He swung his feet down
as servants brought in the breakfast trays. "That is next," he said,
accepting a plate and shoveling it in without looking. After a moment he tasted
what he was eating and looked over at his wife. "How do you manage
to dig up a good cook wherever we go?" he asked. Their regular was an East
Residence native who refused to leave the walls for whatever reason.
"Hereditary talent,
my sweet."
"Well. Now, I'm
sure all you gentlemen are having a wonderful time relaxing, but we've got to
get Kaltin back into the field before he fades to a sylph and gets worn down to
a nub."
"You underestimate
me, sir. It's only been a week."
"Nevertheless.
Gerrin, you are hereby appointed Purple Commander." He slid a clip of
papers down to the other Descotter, who looked through them and began to hand
them out to the men who would be his subordinates for the field maneuvers.
"I will be Orange
Commander," Raj said, and did likewise.
"Jorg, you'll be in
charge of the referees, and I want it as realistic as we can get without
massive casualties. We'll do a thorough briefing this afternoon, but in essence
I want to get us better at marching divided—" he held out a hand, fingers
splayed "—and fighting united." The hand closed into a fist.
"Oh, and we'd
better arrange some sort of substantial prize for the best units; the men are
starting to think this is going to be a military picnic like the
Southern Territories."
"I doubt many who
were in those boats with you think that, Raj," Gerrin said soberly.
"Learning by
experience can be prohibitively expensive," Raj said. "Next, the Brigaderos
we sent back to East Residence. They'll need to be retrained, and then
they'll need officers. We won't be in charge of that, but between us I think we
can have some influence, and it'd be a shame to waste material that good under
incompetents. Messers, I'd appreciate it if you'd each prepare me a list of men
you think suitable, and we'll see what we can do. Next, promotions, demotions,
and gold-of-valor awards."
They worked their way
through the huwacheros, toast and kave, then through a round of kave and
cigarettes. He saved the disagreeable signing of death-warrants for last. There
was always someone who didn't believe the stories about how hard-ass Messer Raj
was about mistreating locals. None from the 5th Descott this time, thank the
Spirit . . .
"Does that wrap up
the military end of it?" Raj said. He looked out the window; with a little
luck, he could get his butt into the saddle this afternoon and do some hands-on
work. A chance to avoid Bureaucrat's Bottom a little while longer.
"All but the Star
question, oh Savior of the State," Gerrin said. "When do we get on
with the rest of the bloody campaign?"
"According to the
latest dispatches from East Residence," Raj said judiciously,
"negotiations between the Ministry of Barbarians and General Forker are
proceeding, mmmm, in an orderly but discreet fashion due to turbulent
elements in Carson Barracks. Interpret that as you will."
"Meaning,
Messer," Dinnalsyn said sourly, with the experience of a man brought up in
East Residence, "that Forker can't decide whether to crap or get off the
pot, because the barb commanders are running around rubbing their heads and
wondering what hit them. And the Ministry bureaucrats are sending each other
memos consisting of competitively obscure literary allusions and strings of
references to precedents back six hundred years. Which is probably what their
predecessors were doing six hundred years ago when we lost the Old Residence to
the Brigade in the first place."
"Pen-pushers,"
Zahpata said, striking his forehead with his palm.
"I'm assured that
the relevant experts are working earnestly for a peaceful solution to the
issues in dispute," Raj went on dryly.
"That bad?"
Kaltin said. He tore open a roll. "With the relevant experts working for
peace, you know we're going to have war, Messer—but not until the worst
possible time."
"Bite your tongue,
major," Raj said. "My estimation is that between them Forker and the
Ministry will do exactly that, string things out until the onset of the winter
rains and then decide to fight after all. Decide that we should fight."
This time the curses
were genuine and heartfelt. With local variations the whole Midworld basin had
a climate of warm dry summers and cool-to-cold wet winters. The northerly
sectors of the Western Territories got snow, and the whole area had abundant
mud. On the unmaintained roads of country under barbarian rule that meant
morasses that clogged dogs' feet, sucked the boots off men and mired guns and
wagons. Plus foraging would be more difficult, that long after harvest, and
even hardy men were more likely to sicken with chest fevers if they had to
sleep out in the rains. Disease had destroyed more armies than battle, and they
all knew it.
Spring and fall were the
best seasons for campaigning; early summer after the wheat harvest was
tolerable, although bad water meant cholera unless you were very careful about
the Church's sanitation edicts. High summer was bad. Winter was a desperation-only
nightmare.
"Nevertheless, if
it has to be done, we'll do it," Raj said. He quoted from an ancient Civil
Government military handbook: "Remember that the enemy's bodies too are
subject to mortality and fatigue; they are initiated also into the mysteries of
death, as are all men. And even their rank-and-file include a good many landed
men, their reservists particularly, who won't be used to living hard. I want us
ready.
"Ehwardo," he
went on. The last living Poplanich looked up. Raj tapped several red-covered
ledgers beside him. They had the Ministry of Barbarians seal on their covers,
with the odd grain-sheaf subseal of the Foreign Intelligence division.
"Coordinate with
Muzzaf and see what you can do about these intelligence reports. I want
digests, including what new information you can get from local sources. Chop
out the political bumpf and verbiage and the unfounded speculation; give me
hard information. Manpower, weapons, road conditions, weather patterns,
regional crops and yields and foraging prospects, what railroads the barbs have
running, local landowners and Sysups and how they lean."
"General,"
Ehwardo said, already looking still more abstracted. Raj nodded; Thom's cousin
was one of the few noblemen he knew who really appreciated numbers and their
uses.
"Messers . . . to
work."
The room felt larger
after the officers had left, with a clack of the heel-plates of their boots and
a jingle as they hitched at their sword-belts. Historiomo cleared his throat
and glanced at Suzette and her protege.
"Messa Whitehall
has my complete confidence," Raj said.
"Ah. So I was given
to understand." A long pause. "I am to understand, then, that the
Most Valiant General is pleased with mine and my colleagues' work?"
"Pleasantly
surprised," Raj said. "It's important to this war that we have a
secure and productive forward base; Stern Isle is the obvious candidate."
He ran his hand over a
preliminary report on land tenure on Stern Isle as it had been under the
Brigade and would be with the massive transfers of ownership following the
conquest. Dry stuff, but crucially important. Cities and trade were the way a
few people made their living and the odd merchant grew rich, but land was
absolutely crucial to everything. Not just that the overwhelming majority
everywhere were peasants, land tenure was the foundation of revenue and
political and military power. His own studies, his instincts, and everything
Center had taught him agreed that there was nothing more useless than an
unconsolidated victory. Conquest without follow-up would crumble away behind
him.
The problem was that he
was to expert administration what say, Colonel Boyce was to combat command—he
could recognize it when he saw it, but lacked inclination and talent himself
for anything but the rough-and-ready military equivalent. Which was to the real
thing as military music was to music.
"Yes."
Historiomo pushed his silver-rimmed glasses up his nose. He was the sort of
soft little man you saw by the scores of thousands on the streets of East
Residence, with carefully folded cravats and polished pewter buckles on their
shoes and drab brown coats. So nondescript it was always a bit of a surprise to
see him, as if you'd never met him before.
"Yes, Chief
Administrator Berg did tell us that you and your household were not the general
run of military nobility, Most Valiant—"
"Messer will
do."
"Messer General,
then."
"Berg," Raj
said with a cold smile, "struck me as being not in the ordinary run of
bureaucrat. Once he'd been convinced that I wanted him to cooperate, but
intended to get the job done whether he did or not."
"Indeed."
Historiomo took the glasses off again and polished them. His voice grew a touch
sharper, as if the blurring of vision removed some constraint. "You find
us of the Administrative Service, ah, excessively cautious, do you not, Messer
Whitehall?"
Raj shrugged. "I
have a job of work to do in this world," he said. "To do it, I have
to take men as I find them."
"We're used to
being despised," Historiomo said with polite bitterness. "The
military nobility always have; it's find us supplies for twenty thousand
men, or why aren't the roads ready? But do they listen when we
explain? Never. They worship action at the expense of thought, and think that
you can overcome any problem with a sword and willpower. They impose solutions
that make problems worse and we have to work around the wreckage. Or a
Governor shoots his way to the Chair and then thinks he can order us to do the
impossible. We're the ones who have to tell them no.
"The
patricians—" he cast a cautious look at Suzette; the urban nobility was
her class, and that of Chancellor Tzetzas "—make an art of intrigue and a
god of form at the expense of content. They monopolize the great offices of
State and plunder them without shame or thought for long-term consequences, and
we take the blame. And everybody mocks us, our forms and paperwork, our
fussy little precedents. Yet who is it that preserves the institutional memory
of the State, who keeps the Civil Government from turning into another feudal
hodgepodge of squabbling barons? Who keeps things together and the public
services functioning through defeats and civil wars and bad Governors? We
do."
"Agreed," Raj
said.
Historiomo started,
cleared his throat and fiddled with his pen-case.
"Messer, I'm called
the Sword of the Spirit of Man. That means I know what you can't do with
a sword. I'm not the pen, the voice, or the conscience of the Spirit.
I'm the Sword; I chop obstacles out of the way; I keep the barbarians from
burning the cities around the ears of people like you. I do my job; and when I
find someone else who can do his, then I don't care if they're nobleman,
patrician, clerk, merchant. Starless Dark, I don't give a damn if they're
Colonists or barbs."
"Most Valiant
General," Historiomo said, rising and neatly stacking his document boxes
before fastening them together with a leather strap, "I won't say it's a
pleasure to work with you. Alarming, in fact. But it is a relief, I
assure you. Messa Whitehall."
He bowed deeply and
walked out with the strap over his shoulder.
"Well, that'll
teach us not to judge a scroll by the winding-stick," Suzette said. She
bent over the crib beneath her table. "I think this young lady needs to be
changed, Fatima."
When they were alone,
she smiled at Raj. "And what, my darling, is my function with the
Sword of the Spirit?"
"You keep him from
going completely fucking insane," Raj said, smiling back.
"So far."
"So far."
"You are all
conspiring to drive me mad," Filip Forker said, pulling off the
light ceremonial helmet and throwing it to the floor with a clang. "Mad,
mad!" Shocked murmurs rolled for a moment down the long chamber, until the
armored guards along the walls thumped their musket-butts on the floor. Once,
twice, three times; when they returned to immobility, the silence was complete.
Attendants closed in
around the Brigade monarch; one passed a damp cloth over his face, and another
got in a lick with a polishing cloth at the thin silver breastplate the slight
little man wore. A minister murmured in his ear; after a while Forker's face
set in an expression of petulant resignation, and he sat again.
"Go on, go
on."
Even the high arched
ceiling and meter-thick walls of the Primary Audience Hall couldn't take any of
the muggy heat out of a Carson Barracks summer. The temperature outside was
thirty Celsius, and the city was built out of dark basalt blocks and set in the
middle of a swamp; in winter the building would be chilly and dank instead, for
all the great arched fireplaces at either end of the Hall. The skylights sent
shafts of light ten meters down into hot gloom, with the wings of insects glittering
as they crossed from shadow into sun. Very little light or air came in through
the narrow slit windows.
The men who had
built—ordered the building—of the Hall hadn't exactly intended it as a
fortress. If anything, it had originally been designed to hold large assemblies
for public address, and incidentally to intimidate petitioners. Standing off
attackers had not been far from the builders' minds, though, and ordinary
comfort just wasn't something to which they had attached much importance.
The Civil Government
embassy rose from their stools below the Seat and bowed, hands on chests.
"If Your Mightiness
will deign to examine these documents once again," their leader began
again, with infinite patience. "Much will be made clear, as clear as the
Operating Code of the Spirit."
His Namerique so
perfectly adjusted to upper-class Brigade ears that it was more conspicuous
than an accent, coming from a dark clean-shaven man in a long embroidered robe.
A gesture suggested the age-yellowed papers on a side table below the Seat
without the vulgarity of actually pointing.
"You will see that
by agreement between your . . . predecessor His Mightiness General Oskar
Grakker and the then Admiral of the Squadron Shelvil Ricks, in the time of our
Sovereign Lord and Sole Autocrat Laron Poplanich, Governor of the Civil
Government of Holy Federation, may the Spirit upload the souls of the worthy
dead into Its Nets, the bulk of Stern Isle was granted as dower property to
Mindy-Sue Grakker and the heirs of her body and Shelvil Ricks. Which is to say,
the Admirals of the Squadron, which is to say—since ex-Admiral Connor Auburn
has been persuaded by grace of the Spirit to lay down the unseemly usurped
sovereignty which Geyser Ricks unrighteously seized—which is to say, the heir
is our Most Sovereign Mighty Lord Barholm Clerett, Viceregent of the Spirit of
Man upon Earth. In no way, most Mighty General, could the repossession of Stern
Isle therefore be held a usurpation or aggression; for on the contrary
righteousness consists of acting rightly—"
The voice droned on for
another twenty minutes of rhetorical strophe and antistrophe, spiced out with
appeals to truth, justice, reason and comparisons to events that no Brigade
member in the Hall besides Forker himself had ever heard of. Unlike most of his
nation, General Forker had had a comprehensive classical education; it was one
major source of his unpopularity.
At last he broke in
peevishly: "Yes, yes, We will read your position paper, Ambassador Minh.
At our leisure. These matters cannot be settled in a day, you know."
"Your
Mightiness," Minh said, bowing again in profound agreement.
"Who's next?'
Forker asked, as the Civil Government ambassadors bowed themselves backward, as
neatly choreographed as dancers. Despite the heat and the prickly rash under
his ceremonial uniform, the sight mollified him a little.
They know how to serve,
he thought.
"Your Mightiness, the
inventor and newsletter producer Martini of Pedden, currently dwelling in Old
Residence, desires—"
"No!" This
time Forker brushed aside the helping hands as he rose. "When will you
learn not to waste my time with trivialities?" The minister leaned close
again, but the Brigade ruler interrupted him: "I don't care how much
he paid you. This audience is at an end. We will withdraw. Send the Chief
Librarian Kassador to my quarters, after I've had a bath."
Stentor-voiced, a
Captain of the Life Guards called: "Hear the word; this audience is at an
end. So orders our General, His Mightiness Filip Forker, Lord of Men."
The great hall echoed,
cracking as the guards stamped their musket butts again on the floor and then
brought the long weapons to port arms. Two platoons along either wall marched
up to the Seat and out across the vacant space between the petitioners and the
commander's dais, then did a left-wheel to face the crowd. The captain snapped
another order, and they began to march forward in slow-pace: with the foot
remaining poised for an instant before it came down in a unified hundredfold
crash. It was a showy maneuver and perfectly timed. It also let everyone get to
the big doors at the rear in an orderly fashion, without allowing any
loitering. Nobody who saw the Life Guards' faces doubted that getting in their
way would be a bad idea.
Forker and his entourage
left by exits in the high arch behind the Seat. The remaining men were officers
and nobles too important to be hustled out with the bulk of the petitioners and
not close enough to Forker to leave by the VIP entrance within the royal
enclosure. They made their own way out the main doors, as the Guards
countermarched back to the walls and settled into position again. Footsteps
echoed, with most of the sound-muffling human bodies out of the barn-like
structure. Banners hung limp above their heads in the still, musky air. The
bronze clamps that held ancient energy-weapons to the walls were green with
verdigris; the lasers themselves were as bright as the day reverent hands had
set them there, down to the stamped 591st Provisional Brigade on the
stocks.
"What do you know,
Howyrd," Ingreid Manfrond said, lowering his voice slightly as they walked
out past another line of guards onto the portico. "His Maybeness actually
made a decision without countermanding it."
"Wrong,
Ingreid," Howyrd Carstens replied.
His friend wore the
fringed jacket and tweed trousers of an off-duty noble, the leather strips
ending in gold beads; there were gold plaques on his sword-belt, rubies on the
elaborate basket guard around the hilt, and his spurs were platinum. The
sword-hilt and the hand that rested on it had both seen real use. Carstens was
in the green-grey-black uniform of the General's Dragoons, with Colonel's
insignia.
"He must've settled
something with the grisuh last night," the officer said. "This
was to confirm it publicly. And he chickened out; probably afraid we'd hack him
to pieces on the Seat." A rare occurrence but not entirely unknown in
Brigade history.
They paused and lit
their pipes, two gentlemen with gray in their beards and long clubbed hair
talking idly in the shade of the portico on a hot summers day, beneath one of
the three-story columns hewn in the shape of a Federation assault landing boat.
Ushers came and returned their revolvers: nobody but the Life Guards carried
firearms inside the Hall.
The parade square ahead
of them was five hundred meters on a side; the black bulk of the Palace behind
them, the four-square Cathedron of the Spirit of Man of This Earth to their
left, with its facade of glass mosaic, and the Iron House of War to the right.
Dead ahead to the north was a gap, where the road ran down off the artificial
mound into the main part of the city. Canals were as numerous as roads, and the
houses were squat two-story structures with few exterior windows but a good
deal of carving and terracotta-work painted in bright colors. Carson Barracks
was the only major town in the Western Territories built wholly since the
Brigade arrived down from the Base Area two centuries after the Fall.
The low-sunk defenses
were a lip in the earth from here; they'd been modernized a century or so ago.
Carson Barracks didn't really need walls. It stood at the center of several
thousand square kilometers of marsh and bog, hardly a hectare of it capable of
bearing a man's weight and much of it quicksand. Melancholy wastes of swamp
were visible from where they stood, with only the arrow-straight causeway and
canal that led north to the railhead on solid ground near the Padan river to
vary the landscape. Waving reddish-green native reeds, the green-green Terran
variety, an occasional glint of water through the thick ground-haze. The air
stank of vegetable decay and the sewage that drained into the swamp and moved,
very slowly, downslope toward the river.
Not many Brigade members
lived in Carson Barracks by choice, although duty brought many there for a
time. Most of the permanent population were slaves, or administrators drawn
from the old native upper classes.
"It's probably a
good thing fuckin' Forker waffled again," Ingreid went on. "The only
thing he could make up his mind on would be to sell us out to the
civvies."
"Yeah. What we ought
to be doing is mobilizing. You remember my cousin Henrik?"
Ingreid rubbed his
bearded chin. Hairs caught in the thick layer of horny callus that ringed the
thumb and forefinger of his right hand where it controlled his sword.
"Bit younger than
you? Had a captaincy in the regulars, then killed . . . shit,
what's-his-name—"
"Danni Wimbler's son
Erik."
"—over a woman, had
to make tracks. Good man, as I remember." Ingreid snapped his fingers.
"I do remember. He's the one cut the head off that Stalwart chief at, oh,
up near Monnerei."
"Yeah; good man,
but no luck. The grisuh killed him on Stern Isle."
"Spirit of Man of
This Earth download his core," the other man said.
Howyrd touched a lump of
blessed agate he wore around his neck. "Yeah. Thing is, one of his men
lived, knocked out by a shell. Got shipped out on a slaver after the grisuh caught
him, then pirates jumped the ship and sold crew and cargo in Tortug. This guy,
Eddi, he killed a guard and stole a sailboat, turned up half-dead . . . anyway,
he told me about the fighting. More like what a sicklefoot pack does to a herd
of sheep. The Squadron wasn't any accident. Ingreid, we ought to be mobilizing.
Right now."
The other noble shook
his head. "Damned if I thought we'd ever be running scared of the
civvies," he mused.
"More like running
scared of this Whitehall."
"Think he's really
got the Outer Dark workin' for him?"
They spat and made a
gesture with their left hands. "Ni, he's just one grenade-on-toast
of a fighting man," Howyrd said. "They say when he had some Skinners
fighting with him, he hung one for killing a civvie trooper, then rode into
their camp alone—and they made him a blood-brother or something."
Ingreid winced. "I
fought the Skinners once. In maybe a hundred years, I'll want to do that again."
He shook his head. "Tell you what I'm going to do, I'm going to hire and
outfit another regiment of guards, and start buying powder and lead, and check
that all my tenants-in-chief and freeholder-vassals have their rifles ready and
their swords sharp. And I'll tell everyone I know to do the same, down
to the petty-squires and fifty-hectare men. And if Forker doesn't like it,
Forker can go suck a dead dog's farts. He's not going to have me drowned
in my bath like he did Charlotte Welf."
Carstens sighed and
knocked the dottle out of his pipe against his heel; the spur jingled sweetly
as he did. "Watch out you don't get a native uprising," he cautioned.
His friend was wealthy even by the upper nobility's standard, but he would have
to squeeze his serfs fairly hard to support an extra twelve hundred men and
their dogs and gear.
"Then we get
practice whipping peon butt," Ingreid snorted. "Heretic bastards
deserve it, anyway. They're all civvie-lovers, from the ploughboys to the
so-called gentry—whatever they say to your face. He's no better,"
he went on, jerking a thumb over his shoulder at the Palace. "Books,
librarians, it's enough to make a real man puke. Outer Dark, he's got to look
at some book before he knows what hole to put it in. If he's got anything to
put."
"Yeah, and I've got
to waste my time and my regiment's back on the border," Howyrd said.
"They're not coming
by land?"
"Ni. Nothing
but rocks up there, or swamps worsn' this."
As if to counterpoint
his words, a distant honking roar came out of the reedbeds. A hadrosauroid herd
by the sound; the big grazers had been preserved around Carson Barracks for
hunting and as emergency food supplies. Hadrosauroids ranged up to four or five
tons each, and they flourished on the reeds. Howyrd flipped a finger at an
entirely different sort of sauroid tooth hanging on his amulet chain, a curved
cutting dagger serrated on both sides and long as a woman's hand.
"Only there's still
a lot of big meat-eaters around there, so you have to build palisaded camps.
Not enough cleared land or farmers for major campaigning; most of what the
civvies've got there is tribal stuff, mercs. Naw, when they come, they'll come
by sea."
Grooms brought up their
dogs, big glossy mastiffs standing chest-high to a tall man at the shoulder. A
squad of Carsten's dragoon Regulars rode up as escorts for their colonel, armed
with rifle, broadsword and revolver; they had the worn look of a weapon that
fits a man's hand easily when he reaches. Ingreid's guards were in the buff and
gray of his household regiment; half the hundred-man detachment were dragoons,
half heavy cavalry on Newfoundlands, with steel back-and-breasts, helmets,
arm-guards and thigh-tassets. They carried twelve-foot lances as well as the
usual swords and firearms, and the long slender ashwood poles stood like a
steel-tipped thicket above the square.
"Off to see
Marie?" Howyrd said.
Ingreid gathered his
reins. "No such luck. Marie Welf tells me that I'm old enough to be her
father—my sons are older than her—and I should go looking for a nice
widow of forty with tits like pillows if I want to marry again."
They exchanged a look.
Whoever married Marie Welf would be technically an Amalson, and eligible for
the Brigades elective monarchy. Those elections were settled by weight of shot
as often as numbers of votes, but that was one rule always observed. Forker was
childless and getting old. Any sons Marie bore . . .
Ingried shook his head.
"She's got guts, have to say that for the bitch."
"Not the only thing
she's got, by the Spirit," Carstens said with a man-to-man grin. More
harshly: "And she'd better get a protector soon. Does she think she can
breathe bathwater, just because her momma got the chance to try?"
"Women,"
Ingreid said. "Hail and farewell, friend. See you on the
battlefield."
* * *
"And some people
think he's a simple soldier," Cabot Clerett said bitterly, beside her on
the church steps.
Fatima wiped at her eye
with a lace handkerchief, managing a final sniffle. Civil Government convention
was for ladies to weep when a guest at other peoples weddings; it seemed
bizarre to her, but custom was custom. The ceremony had been beautiful, she had
a lovely new dress of light-blue silk, torofib woven in Azania, and Gerrin and
Bartin—she smiled to herself—had promised her another present as well, fitting
to the occasion. It was hard to cry under those circumstances.
The newly married
couples were parading two by two out of the high brass-and-steel doors of the
Wager Bay Cathedron, newly converted back to the Spirit of Man of the Stars;
only fair, since there had been barely enough Earth Spirit cultists in town for
a congregation. The newlyweds passed beneath an arch of sabers held by their
comrades, on to awnings and trestle tables. Whole oxen and pigs were roasting
over portable grills; there was to be a feast for the battalions of the men
concerned, courtesy of the commanding officers of the units and Messer Raj.
"They are simple
soldiers, Messer Cabot," Fatima pointed out ingenuously.
It was just going on for
sundown, but the post-siesta crowds of townsfolk were kept out of the square by
pickets tonight. Both moons were up, and paper lanterns had been strung from
the official buildings which ringed the plaza. A breeze from the sea tempered
the days late-summer heat to a languorous softness.
The troops were on their
best behavior, with detachments in guardia armbands to see that they
stayed that way later after the wine had flowed. The wedding songs they were bawling
out ranged from the bawdy to the obscene, but that was customary in most
places. That the couples had barely met before the ceremony was also common
enough; and if the grooms had been among those who slaughtered the brides'
fathers or former husbands in the fighting around Fort Wager, that too was not
unknown among a warrior people like the Brigade. Nobody knew for sure who had
killed who . . . and life would not be easy for Brigade women without
protectors among a hostile native populace, in a province newly conquered by
aliens of a different faith.
"No, not
them," Cabot said. "The men are all right; good soldiers, they
deserve a holiday, they've been working hard."
"Too hard,
some," Fatima said.
She generally helped out
in the 5th's field hospitals, and there had been a full complement of broken
bones and heatstroke during the field exercises. Moving thousands of men at
speed through rough country was dangerous even without live ammunition. Plus
cracked heads and ribs from over-enthusiastic encounters with practice sabers,
sheathed bayonets and rifle butts during the melees. Especially between units
with a history of bad blood like the 5th Descott and the Roger Slashers.
"Well, if they
didn't like to fight they wouldn't be much use, would they?" Cabot said.
His voice was friendly
in a patronizing way. Fatima suspected he talked to her only because he was
fairly sure she didn't understand him most of the time; doubly sure, since she
was both a woman and a Colonist. Also he was lonely in the Expeditionary Force,
close only to Ludwig Bellamy and constrained with him. Most of the men of
comparable rank were either Companions or professionals deeply respectful of
the General's abilities; they were older, too. For all that, he was a nice
enough young man, she thought. No problems after her firmly polite refusal of a
pro forma attempt at seduction, the sort most men felt obliged to make
toward another's mistress. Of course, Fatima was often near Lady Whitehall. . .
.
"No, it's the land,"
Cabot Clerett said. "I can't think what Historiomo is thinking of, to let
him distribute land to men under his command! Cash donatives are bad
enough, but if you give a man a farm you've got him for life. And it
makes all the others hope for the same thing." The faint hope of saving
enough for a homestead out of plunder was one major reason so many younger sons
of yeoman-tenants and freeholders joined the cavalry.
"Government would
give them farms?" Fatima asked, making her eyes go wide. Suzette had shown
her how to do that.
"Ah, no." His
face lit. "There's Lady Suzette—"
His eyes sought her out.
Raj and his wife were strolling between the tables, exchanging a word here and
there and toasting the couples. It wouldn't be appropriate or dignified for a
man of his rank and birth to actually sit at table with enlisted men in a
social gathering, unlike a campfire on a battlefield. The first table started
to raise a cheer, then quieted at a single motion of Raj's hand. The singing
immediately grew less raucous when Suzette came by; two of her maidservants
followed her with sacks, and she was handing gifts to the brides, small things
like shawls or brooches. Words of reassurance probably meant more, to young women
now alone with men with whom they might not even share a common language beyond
a few words of the Spanjol foreign to both.
"I don't understand
it," Cabot muttered, half to himself. "One minute he's trying to buy
their favor, and then . . . He works them like peons right after they've won a
battle; he keeps the strictest discipline I've ever seen, flogs and hangs for
minor offenses against peasants—"
"He make them
win," Fatima said.
"Yes," Cabot
said; again to himself. "He's got guts and he knows his trade, I'll grant
him that. And he wins. That's what makes him dangerous."
"General who lose
is not dangerous to his Sultan?" Fatima asked. Cabot shot her a
sharp glance, then relaxed at her palpable innocence.
"Yes, Fatima,"
he said. "That's the problem, you see. Bad generals may ruin you; good
ones may overthrow you. Now, a Governor who was a successful general . .
."
"Besides,"
Fatima went on, frowning, "I think—thought—Lady Whitehall have the idea
for the weddings."
"Oh, Lady
Suzette," Cabot said, the throttled anger in his voice vanishing.
"Suzette. She's an angel. I'm sure she didn't have anything in mind but
helping—"
"Excuse me, Messer
Clerett," Gerrin Staenbridge said. "I've come to collect my
mistress."
"Of course,"
Cabot said, bowing. "And I complement you on your taste, Messer
Staenbridge . . . in this at least."
Gerrin's grin was
toothily insincere as he bowed the other man on his way. "No style at
all," he murmured to himself after the Governor's nephew had moved out of
earshot. "Bottom like a peasant, to boot. Very boot-able, in fact."
Fatima was thinking over
Cabot's last remark to her. "Gerrin," she said, "tell me: why
smart young man stupid about a woman?" My lady Suzette is a djinni, not
a houri, she thought in her mother tongue.
"What was that?"
Bartin Foley said, coming up on her other side.
"I ask why all
young men so stupid," Fatima said, taking his arm as well.
"Imp," he
said. She stuck out her tongue at him.
* * *
"Are you sure you
will not need me more here, saaidya?" Abdullah said.
Suzette looked around
her sitting room; while she did, her hands straightened the pile of papers
before her. The punkah overhead made a languid attempt to stir the air, and hot
white light speared in through the slats of the shutters. A cat on a pile of
silk cushions beneath writhed in its slumber, spreading a paw. From the
courtyard garden came the sound of splashing water and a rake slowly, very
slowly, gathering leaves.
"We won't be here
much longer, my faithful one," she said.
"Now: here is the
report from Ndella. Read and destroy it."
"Ah, that
one," Abdullah said with professional appreciation.
Ndella cor Whitehall had
been born in the Zanj city of Liswali and trained as a physician, before being
captured by Tewfik's men and sold north to Al Kebir. As a freedwoman of Suzette
Whitehall she plied her old trade and a more discreet one among the servants of
the Gubernatorial Palace.
"Men tend to ignore
women and servants," Suzette said judiciously.
"Fools do,"
Abdullah conceded. "But then, most men are fools. Even the wise among us
can be led into folly by the organ of generation. Or so my wife claims."
"So I've
found," Suzette agreed. "Now, there are some juicy details in there
on just how far along Forker went toward surrender at one point. Use them with
extreme discretion, but anyone who knows him will probably believe it.
"Here," she
went on, "are ayzed and beyam." Zanj, an abortificant
and poison respectively; brewed from native Bellevue herbs known only in the
far south and utterly untraceable in the western Midworld. Suzette sighed:
"I only wish there were two of you, Abdullah."
The Druze smiled.
"Am I not multitudes, saaidya?"
Right now he was a
Spanjol-speaking merchant of Port Murchison; down to the four-cornered hat with
modest plume, green linen swallowtail jacket with brass buttons, striped cravat
and natty chiseled-steel buckles on the shoes below his knee-breeches. He made
a flourish with the hat, bowing and letting his hand rest on the hilt of a
plain sword.
"I shall be welcome
in Lion City." Particularly bringing a sloop with a cargo of Stern Isle
sulfur and Southern Territories saltpeter. Both restricted cargoes in time of
war, of course, but a few hundred pounds would make no real difference.
"Less so in Carson
Barracks," she said. More briskly:
"Now: unless I miss
my woman and your reports are false, Marie Welf is well aware that she's the
sheep at the carnosauroid's congress. Forker and half the nobles in the Brigade
want to murder her, the other half to marry her and father an heir to the
Seat—and once she's had a male child, she's an inconvenience and danger. None
of the prospects pleases, and most of the men are vile.
"You will approach
her only when she's desperate. This isn't a girl who waits for a
rescuer, but she's inexperienced. She'll jump at a way out. Forker keeps her
isolated, but she has friends, and the Welfs have partisans. Investigate them
also."
"Ah, saaidya,"
Abdullah said, tucking the small case of vials into an inside pocket of his
tailcoat. "Were you a man, what a ruler you would be!"
"Were I a
man," Suzette said tartly, "I'd have better sense than to want to be
a ruler."
"As I said, my
lady."
She extended a hand, and
Abdullah bent over it in the style of the Civil Government. Suzette dropped
back into Arabic:
"Go, thou Slave of
God," she said, which was what his name meant. "May my God and thine
go with thee."
"May the
Beneficent, the Lovingkind, be with thee and thy lord."
Alone, Suzette picked up
a packet of letters—they were copies of Cabot's reports to his uncle—and put
them down again. Raj was out with most of the Expeditionary Force, on maneuvers
again. Cabot and she were to meet at a little cove, where the swimming was
safe. Quite respectable, since several of her women would be along; the Civil
Government had a nudity taboo but not during bathing.
"Some men,"
she murmured, stroking the cat, "are governable by the fulfillment of
their desires, and some by their frustration." For the present, Cabot
Clerett wanted to worship from afar; his concubine was probably sitting
down rather carefully these days.
How long he could be
controlled that way was another matter, of course. A man who knew himself able,
but also knew he owed everything to his uncle's preferment. Wild to accomplish
something of his own . . . and dangerously reckless in his hate, from the
evidence in the letters. Far too dangerous to Raj to be tolerated.
* * *
"That Bureaucrat's
Bottom is slowing you down, Whitehall," Gerrin Staenbridge taunted, and lunged.
Clack. The
double-weight wooden practice sabers met, touched. Lunge, parry from the wrist,
feint, cut-stamp-cut. They advanced and retreated across the carefully uneven
gravel-rock-earth floor of the salle d'armes. The scuff of feet and slamming
clatter of oak on oak echoed from the high whitewashed walls. For a moment they
went corps-a-corps.
"Save your breath .
. . old man," Raj grunted. A convulsive heave sent them to blade's length
again.
In fact, neither man was
carrying an ounce of spare flesh, something fully apparent since they were
stripped to the waist for the exercise, with only face-masks as protection.
Staenbridge was a little thicker through the shoulders, Raj slightly longer in
the arm; both big men and hugely strong for their size, moving with the
carnivore grace of those who had killed often with cold steel and trained since
birth. Raj was drilling hard because it was a way to burn out the poisons of
frustration that were worse with every passing week. Staenbridge met the fury
of his attack with six extra years of experience. Sweat hung heavy on the dry
hot air, slicking down torsos marked with the scars of every weapon known on
Bellevue.
"Ahem." Then
louder: "Ahem!"
They disengaged, leaped
back and lowered their blades. Raj ripped the face-mask off and turned, chest
pumping like a deep slow bellows. The salle d'armes of the Wager Bay
commandants seemed frozen for a moment in time; Ludwig Bellamy practicing forms
before a mirror, Kaltin Gruder on a masseurs table; Fatima on a bench keeping a
careful grip on young Bartin Staenbridge, the three-year-old was supposed to be
getting his first taste of training but showed a disconcerting tendency to run
in wherever there was action. Outside in the courtyard Suzette wrote a letter
at a table beneath a trellis of bougainvillea. Her pen poised over the paper.
The slapping of the masseurs' hands ran down into silence.
Bartin Foley was
sweating too, as if he had run some way in the heat.
"Far be it from me,
Messers, to disturb this tranquil scene—"
Raj made a warning sound
and snatched at the paper that the younger man pulled out of his helmet-lining.
Everyone recognized the purple seal. Raj's hands shook very slightly as he
broke it.
He looked up and nodded,
then tossed the Gubernatorial Rescript back to Foley and accepted the towel
from the servant
"The Brigaderos won
some skirmish on the frontier," he said. "A regiment of their
dragoons whipped on some tribal auxiliaries of ours. Forker is claiming that
indicates who the Spirit of Man favors. The Governor has ordered me to reduce
the Western Territories to obedience, commencing immediately. With full
proconsular authority for one year, or the duration of the war."
A sigh ran through the
room. "Everything but the men, the dogs and a change of underdrawers is on
the ships," Staenbridge said.
Raj nodded again.
"Tomorrow with the evening tide," he said softly.
* * *
The main municipal
stadium of Port Wager had superb acoustics; it was used for public speaking and
theatre, as well as bullfights and baseball games. It was well into the morning
when the last unit filed in; since there were so many This Earth cultists in
the ranks now, Raj had held religious services by groups of units rather than
for the whole force. And dropped in on every one of them personally, and be
damned what the priests would say back in East Residence.
He knew what the
Spirit of Man, of This Earth and the Stars, needed. What his men needed.
Silence fell like a
blade as he walked out. The tiers of seats that rose in a semicircle up the
hillside were blue with the uniform coats of the troops; the paler faces turned
toward him like flowers towards the sun as he walked up the steps of the timber
podium. The blue and silver Starburst backed it; beyond that was the harbor and
the masts of the waiting ships. In front the unit banners of thirty battalions
were planted in the sand.
Raj faced his men, hands
clenched behind his back.
"Fellow
soldiers," he began. A long surf-wave of noise rose from the packed ranks,
like a wave over deep ocean. The impact was stunning in the confined space. So
was the response when he raised a hand; suddenly he could hear the blood
beating in his own ears.
"Fellow soldiers,
those of you who've campaigned with me before, in the desert, at Sandoral where
we crushed Jamal's armies, in the Southern Territories where we broke a kingdom
in one campaign—you and I, we know each other."
This time the sound was
white noise, physically painful. He raised his hand again and felt it cease,
like Horace answering to the rein. The raw intoxication of it struck him for a
moment; this was true power. Not the ability to compel, but thousands of armed
men willing to follow where he led—because he could lead.
remember, you are human, Center's voice
whispered. They would follow; and many would die. Duty was heavier than
mountains.
"You know what's
demanded of you now," he went on.
"For those of you
who haven't been in the field with me before, only this: obey your orders,
stand by your comrades and your salt. Treat the peasants kindly; we're fighting
to give them right governance, not to oppress them. Treat captive foes
according to the terms of their surrender, for my honor and yours and the sake
of good faith between fighting men.
"And never, never
be afraid to engage anyone who stands before you. Because nowhere in this world
will you meet troops who are your equal. The Spirit of Man marches with
us!"
The shouting started
with the former Squadrones, the 1st and 2nd Cruisers.
"Hail! Hail!
Hail!"
Their deep-chested
bellows crashed into the moment of silence after Raj finished speaking. The 5th
Descott and the 7th, the Slashers—one by one they rose to their feet, helmets
on the muzzles of their rifles.
"RAJ! RAJ!
RAJ!"
* * *
"By the Spirit,
these are good troops," Gerrin Staenbridge said, watching the troopers
lead their mounts onto a transport. The big animals walked cautiously onto the
gangplanks, testing the footing with each step.
"About the best
fighting army the Civil Government's ever fielded," Raj said.
using reasonable equalizing assumptions, that
statement is accurate to within 7%, Center observed.
Staenbridge rapped his
knuckles on the helmet he carried in the crook of his arm. "My oath, with
sixty thousand like them we could sweep the earth."
bellevue, Center corrected in
Raj's mind, so restated, and
speaking of the main continental mass, probability of victory for such a force
over all civilized opponents would be 76% ±3, under your leadership, Center said.
"Unfortunately,
Gerrin," Raj said, settling his own helmet and buckling the chinstrap.
A groom brought up
Horace; was towed up by Horace, rather, when the hound scented its master. He
put a hand on the smooth warm curve of the black dog's neck.
"Unfortunately, the
question isn't whether we can conquer the world with sixty thousand—it's
whether we can conquer two hundred thousand Brigaderos warriors with less than
twenty thousand."
probability of successful outcome 50% ±10,
with an exceptionally large number of overdetermined individually contingent
factors, Center admitted, in
colloquial terms, too close to call.
Raj took Horace's reins
in his hand below the angle of his jaw. Suzette was coaxing her palfrey Harbie
towards the gangplank as well; the mounts knew they would be separated from
their riders for the voyage, and were whimpering their displeasure. That was
why it was best for the owner to settle the dog, if their primary bond was to
the rider and not the grooms.
He took a deep breath.
"Let's go find out."
Sixty or so dogs waded out
on the beach in a group; they shook themselves in a salt-water thunderstorm and
fell to greeting each other after the voyage in an orgy of tail-wagging,
behind-sniffing, muzzle-licking, growling and stiff-legged hackle-showing.
"Just like a bunch
of East Residence society matrons at a ball," Suzette observed in passing,
shouldering her Colonial-made carbine.
The command group gave a
harsh collective chuckle and turned back to the map pinned to the stunted
pricklebark tree.
"Landing's going
well," Jorg Menyez observed.
"Ought to, the
practice we've had," Raj said.
The Civil Government
fleet lay off a low coastline of sand, scree, heather and reddish native
groundrunner; inland it rose to clumps of dark oakwood separated by meadows
where the grass was thigh-high and straw yellow. Sandspits a kilometer offshore
broke the force of the surf, and a gently shelving sandy bottom made it easier
to beach the smaller vessels. Those had been run in at high tide a few hours
ago, and a steam ram was already towing an empty one off stern-first to make
room for the others. Piles of bales and crates and square-sided, rope-handled
ammunition boxes were going up above the high-water mark; there were even a few
determined camp-followers, soldiers' women and servants—cavalry troopers were
allowed one per eight-man squad—wading ashore already as well.
A 5th master-sergeant
and two other troopers came up to the dogs; they each bridled the dominant
animal in a platoon-pack and led it off after a few warning nose-thumps with
the handles of their dogwhips convinced the beasts that it was time to go back
to work.
"Follow t'heel, ye
bitches' brood!" the noncom shouted, and set off at a trot upslope to the
perimeter the first-in units had established. Cavalry might fight mostly on
foot, but they felt extremely uncomfortable without their mounts to hand. The
rest of the giant carnivores followed along after, heads up and sniffing the
wind blowing from inland. More dogs were swimming for the shore; from the way a
few pursuing longboats darted about out by the skerries, the usual scattering
of animals determined to try swimming back to their last port of call were
being rounded up.
The larger ships, four
hundred to eight hundred tons, were anchored offshore. Cargo nets swung stores
and equipment down to boats; or a field-gun down to a stout raft of barrels and
timbers Dinnalsyn's men had knocked together. Rowboats towed it toward the
shore, the brass fittings of its breech glittering in the morning sun, as
bright as the droplets of spray cast up by the oars. Company after company of
infantry scrambled down nets from the grounded ships, fell in to the shouts and
whistles of their officers, and marched upslope. The
metal-leather-sweat-dogshit smell of an Army encampment was already overlaying the
clean odors of sea and heath.
Twenty thousand humans
and ten thousand dogs were coming ashore, and Raj intended to have the whole
process completed by nightfall.
"Jorg," he
went on. The infantry colonel sneezed and nodded. "I want your infantry
to—"
"Make the standard
fortified camp, I know," he said. "We also serve who only dig
ditches." The ground was fairly flat, so the men would scarcely need the
artillery to drive stakes for layout; they could make a standard camp in their
sleep, and sometimes did after a forced march. He looked around; there were no
large Brigade settlements within a day's march, by the map.
"Since we're only
staying a few nights, is that entirely necessary? There's a great deal else for
the men to do."
Raj grinned like a
carnosauroid. "That's what I thought at Ksar Bourgie," he said.
"And nearly got converted to a hareem attendant by Tewfik. Dig in, if you
please. The men can set up their tents or not, the weather looks to stay fine,
but I want the firing parapet, the pit-latrines and the water supply laid on as
if we were going to be here a month."
"Ci, mi
heneral."
"The armored cars
are coming ashore," Dinnalsyn noted. "Do you want them
assembled?"
The artilleryman sounded
slightly ambivalent. Raj knew how he felt. The vehicles were boiler-plate boxes
on wheels, propelled by the only gas engines in the Civil Government,
expensively hand-made. They were temperamental and delicate, required constant
maintenance, and had to be hauled by oxen if they moved any distance overland.
They were a hell of noise and fumes and heat for the crews in operation. Still,
with riflemen or light cannon firing from behind bulletproof cover, they could
be decisive at a critical point—and that made up for the endless bother of
hauling them around.
Raj nodded. "Just
the frames and shells," he said. The engines and armament could be fitted
in a day or two and the empty shells were much easier to transport.
"Right," Raj
went on, "this is the Crown Peninsula." He tapped the thumb-shaped
outline on the map; it stuck out from the main coast of the Western Territories
on the eastern fringe. "We're here." On the west coast, a hundred
kilometers up from Lion City, the provincial capital, and across five hundred
klicks of open water from the coast nearest the Old Residence.
"We'll secure the
Crown and Lion City, then advance north"—he traced a line
northwestward—"cross the Waladavir River at the bridge here or here where
it's fordable, then move southeast toward Old Residence. What exactly we do
then depends on opportunity and the enemy, but I intend to have the city before
the winter sets hard.
"Our immediate
objective is to pacify the Crown outside Lion City. The city has the only real
garrison, about four thousand of the General's regulars; for the rest, it's the
landowners' household troops we'll be facing. I expect most of them to give up,
but don't count on it in any particular case.
"Gerrin, you take
two-thirds of the 5th, the 2nd Residence Battalion and two guns, and head
northwest up the coast road." His other hand pointed inland.
"Hadolfo, your Borderers and the 1st Cruisers, two guns, northeast.
Kaltin, you take the 7th Descott and three guns—you've got a couple of
crossroads towns and may need them—and head directly east. Ehwardo, you've got
Poplanich's Own and the Maximilliano Dragoons and a battery. Go southeast, to
the other side of the Crown, down the main spinal road. Ludwig, you take the
2nd Cruisers and the Rogor Slashers and two batteries. Head straight south down
to the gates of Lion City, and make sure nobody gets in or out. The city's
going to be enough of a problem without too many household units stiffening
their defense."
Suzette returned, with a
string of HQ servants bearing trays of grilled sausages in split rolls.
Everyone grabbed one; Raj used his to gesture between bites.
"You've all seen
the sicklefoot and trihorn matches?"
A chorus of nods.
Trihorns were browsing sauroids with bone armor on their head and shoulders, up
to six tons of vile temper, common in thinly-peopled wilderness. Sicklefeet
were smallish carnosauroids, a little more than man-size with a huge curved
dewclaw on their hind feet, usually held up against the leg; they hunted in
packs, vicious and incredibly agile, leaping in the air to extend their claws
and kick-slash their prey to death. The two species rarely interacted in their
natural habitats, but they were often matched in large city stadiums in the
Civil Government.
"We're the
sicklefeet, the Brigaderos are the trihorns. If we let them use their strength,
they'll crush us. We slash and move and let them bleed to death."
Raj put his hand on the
map, palm on the landing ground and fingers splayed out across the map. Then he
rotated the hand, pulling the fingers together as they approached Lion City.
"You'll move south
clockwise, sweeping the countryside repeatedly; Ludwig, you're the anvil for
any who filter past. Speed and impact, everyone—don't pee on them, boot their
heads. If we give them time to catch their breath, we'll have bands of them
hiding in the woods for years, and we do not have enough troops to
garrison. Stamp on anyone who actively resists; stamp hard, strike terror.
Strip those who surrender of every weapon down to their belt-knives and every
man who even looks like a soldier and send them back to base; we'll run them to
East Residence in the returning transports and commandeered shipping. I don't
want an ounce of powder or lead left available, either. Destroy whatever
weapons you can't easily cart away; once we've got the area pacified,
Administrator Historiomo will be raising a police and militia from the native
population, and we can use the captured weapons to arm them.
"Again, messers,
the only way we can dominate so large an area with so few troops is to
roll them up before they realize what's hit them. If we look like winners, the
native population will also rally to us, and we need their active
support against the Brigaderos. What happens in the Crown will be crucial to
the whole campaign.
"Jorg, there's
going to be plenty for you to do as well. All the flying columns will be sending
back prisoners by the hundreds; they'll also be calling on you for temporary
infantry garrisons to hold confiscated supplies, weapons, and strategic spots.
"You've all got the
intelligence reports," he went on. "I've noted the magnate families I
want hostages from. We'll move them back here on a temporary basis until we
have something better available, along with the soldiers, but they can't be
mixed in. Suzette—"
"I'll see to
it," she said.
Keeping the hostages—not
happy—but not impossibly demoralized would be difficult, with the stringent
limits on resources available. A dead hostage was worse than a dead loss, and a
mistreated one could provoke suicidal resistance among the Brigade nobility.
Most of them would be women and children, and of noble birth; Lady Whitehall
would sooth some of the fears and prickly status-conciousness. Thus keeping
them out of his hair, and the families they stood surety for quiet as well.
That could be worth more than battalions of troops in garrisons in pacifying
the area.
"Muzzaf?" Raj
went on. The Komarite had been ashore for a day, operating under cover.
"Seyor, I've
already contacted some of the local merchants in the farm-towns. We can expect
them, and local peasants and native landowners, to be bringing in supplies
within a day at any point we designate. I didn't tell them where, of
course."
Raj nodded approval.
"Do so now. What with prisoners, camp followers and troops we'll have to
feed forty thousand or better soon. Now, you may all have noticed that it's
cooler here." They all nodded; the temperature was warm-comfortable,
rather than the blazing heat of Stern Isle in late summer. "The rains
start earlier here—and it rains more than back home. We're racing against time.
Questions?"
"Sir," Cabot
Clerett said "My mission?"
Raj looked at him for a
moment, then slid his finger up the map. "Major Clerett, I'm giving you a
rather different role. You'll take your 1st Residence Life Guards, and the 21st
Novy Haifa, and move right up here to the Waladavir River."
Clerett looked crisp and
warlike in the bright sun, helmet tucked under one arm and black curls tossing.
"I'm to perform a screening function, sir?"
"Rather more than
that," Raj said. "I want you to secure the bridge over the Waladavir
at Sna Chumbiha and the fords—put in earthworks and your guns—then send
appropriately-sized raiding parties from the two cavalry battalions over the
river westward to attack the magnates' estates and small garrisons. Colonel
Menyez will be moving four battalions of infantry up to occupy the bridge and
the fords and relieve your men; they and the 21st Novy Haifa will anchor our
line of advance.
"We want to conceal
our intentions, and hopefully to panic every Brigadero between the Waladavir
and the Padan River into thinking we're on their doorstep. I want them running
for Carson Barracks, carrying the family silver and howling about the
boogeyman. Don't try to hold territory west of your bridgeheads; kill and burn,
but selectively, just the Brigaderos and men only as much as you can. I don't
want to have to march across a desert in a couple of weeks. Make the refugees
overestimate your numbers by moving quickly so they think you're everywhere at
once. With luck the natives will rise on their own."
"Sir!" Cabot
was quivering with surprise and suspicious delight. It was an assignment with
plenty of opportunities for dash and daring; he'd expected to be kept to
something dull and safe.
"Major
Clerett," Raj went on. "Pay careful attention." He waited an
instant. "I'm confident of your courage and your will to combat; a cavalry
officer without aggression is a sorry thing. This mission will also test your
skills; I'm familiar with the weaknesses of aggressive young commanders, having
been one myself back in the dawn of time."
There were grins at
that; Raj Whitehall was the youngest general in five hundred years, and his
battalion commanders were nearly a decade below the average age. Only two of
the Companions were over forty.
"Remember that the
Brigaderos are thicker on the ground the further west you go; some of the great
nobles have private armies of battalion size or better. Do not get out
of touch, do not go too far in, and do not let your men get out
of hand—a raid makes discipline difficult but more essential than ever. Colonel
Staenbridge will be in constant communication, and he's your reserve if you run
into something bigger than the intelligence reports indicate; do not hesitate
to call for help if you need it. You're being sent to give an appearance of
strength, so if any of your units is mousetrapped we'll have a real problem
up there. Give them the taste of victory, however small, and they'll be
attacking us instead of running away. We can beat any nobleman's following, but
that would take time. Keep your men moving, and don't let yourself get
bogged down."
Which meant, among other
things, keeping them from burdening themselves with too much loot; a real test
of command skills, when they'd be fanning out on razziah across rich
countryside.
Suzette spoke softly.
"I'm sure Major Clerett won't disappoint us, Raj."
probability clerett will act according to
instructions within acceptable parameters, 82% ±4 based on voice-stress and
other analysis, Center said.
And Barholm
can't complain I'm not giving his nephew an opportunity to shine.
Cabot clicked heels.
"Rest assured, Messa."
Raj nodded. "I'm
giving you no more than one week of raiding," he went on. "Then I'll
need you back at Lion City. Throw out a wide net of scouts west of the
river—the native locals will probably give you information enough, especially
with some—" he rubbed finger and thumb together "—but you'll have to
check. Then turn over command to Major Istban and make tracks for the city,
which will be invested.
"This is a complex
set of movements, gentlemen, to be carried out at speed, but you're all big
boys now. Exercise your initiative."
Gerrin cleared his
throat. "What'll you be doing, Raj?"
"Ah, well, our
tribal auxiliaries have arrived. Including eight hundred Skinners."
"The gentle,
abstentious people," someone muttered.
"A two-edged sword,
but a sharp one," Raj admitted. "They, and the two companies of the
5th, will form a central reserve under my direct command. When you run into
anything unusual, gentlemen, tell me and I'll bring them up. After that happens
once or twice, even the most onerous surrender terms will start looking very
good indeed.
"No more questions?
Then let's get our men together and be about our business." The Companions
and a few of the other battalion commanders stepped closer, and they slapped
their raised fists together in a pyramid. The leather of their gauntlets made a
hard cracking sound.
* * *
"Hell or plunder,
dog-brothers."
"Anither seven in
t' trees, ser," M'lewis said, without turning his head. "Half a
klick, loik."
"Good eyes,
Lieutenant," Raj nodded.
Skinners didn't set
lookouts, really. It was just that there were always groups of men lying-up
around one of their camps, and they saw and heard and probably scented
everything. At home on the plains of the far northeast they lived by hunting
sauroids. All shapes and sizes, from sicklefoot packs to the big grazers to
carnivores ten meters tall. Bellevue's sauroids hadn't had a million years of
exposure to hominids to give them an instinct to avoid men. Most inhabited
areas had to be kept shot out of all the larger types; the Skinners lived among
the native life, and throve.
"Trumpeter, sound
the canter. Remember the instructions."
The cool brassy notes
sounded, and the two hundred men broke into a swift lope, the butts of their
rifles resting on their thighs. As they broke through the screen of brush
around the big meadow, they raised them and fired them into the sky, then
flipped the long weapons down and sheathed them in the scabbards before their
knees. A gesture of contempt, not reassurance . . . a statement: you're not
worth carrying a loaded gun to meet.
There was an etiquette
to dealing with Skinners.
Nobody got up as the
soldiers approached, unless they happened to be standing at the moment. Those
who wanted to stare did; those who were sleeping or drinking kept on doing so.
One man did amble out, peering as if in surprise.
"Eh, mun ami!"
Chief Juluk Paypan said. He turned and shouted in Paytoiz, the Skinner tongue:
"Iles de Gran'
wheetigo! E' sun bruha. L'hum qes' mal com nus!"
Many of the Skinners
looked up at that; a few gave quick yelping barks of greeting, and started
drifting toward their chief and the general who was—theoretically—their
commander.
"Which means?"
Suzette asked. She had ridden into a near-riot in the Skinner camp with him on
the last campaign, to face down their chiefs after Raj hung two Skinners for
murder. This was her first glimpse of them in a peaceful mood.
Of course, on that
occasion they'd had four battalions with leveled rifles and a battery of
artillery behind them.
Raj translated:
"It's The Big Devil and his witch. The man who's bad like us."
"Is that a
compliment?"
Raj grimaced. "To a
Skinner."
He had never learned the
Skinner tongue, not himself—the knowledge had the ice-edged hardness of
something Center had implanted. Thinking about that always gave him a queasy
feeling, like a mental image of bad pork.
It was not a good idea
to think of smells when you were around Skinners. The bandy-legged little
nomads had only been ashore a day, but the stink of their camp was already
stunning. One man was standing in his sketchy saddle to urinate as they
entered; he waved cheerfully and readjusted his breechclout without
embarrassment, then rode off with a whoop. A few of them had put up leather
shelters on poles, but most of the nomad mercenaries slept as they ate,
defecated and fornicated—as and where the impulse took them. Dung, human and
canine, and bits and scraps of things unidentifiable dotted the encampment. A
monohorn carcass lay in the center of a ring of fires; those were medium-sized
browsers, about twice the weight of a large bull, with columnar legs and a bone
shield that extended from the long horn on their nose to the top of their
humped shoulders. A single round hole above one eye showed what had killed it;
the Skinners had probably camped where it died. The body and the ground for
meters around was black with a carpet of flies.
As Raj watched, a
Skinner backed out of its stomach cavity with a length of huge glistening
purple-grey intestine in his teeth. He sawed it free a foot or so from his
mouth, then threw back his head to swallow it without chewing. A visible bulge
went down his throat to the already rounded stomach as they watched.
Juluk was grinning from
ear to ear. He was fairly typical of his race, shorter than Suzette but twice
as broad, a normal man compressed halfway down to dwarf size. Face and body
were the color of old oiled leather; it was difficult to tell what his shaven
scalplocked head and round button-nosed face would have looked like naturally,
because of the mass of scar tissue. About half of it was tribal markings. He
wore fringed leggings and breechclout of soft-tanned sauroid leather, with long
knives on his thighs; crossed belts on his chest held shells for the two-meter
tall rifle he leaned on, and each brass cartridge was longer than a man's hand,
each bullet bigger than Raj's thumb. His hound lay at his feet; it cocked an
eye up at Horace and went back to sleep.
Only Skinners habitually
rode hounds, and entire males at that. Horace was one reason they regarded Raj
as a human being. Most of it was the number of bodies his battles had piled up,
impressive even to the tribes the Church called the Scourge of the Spirit's Wrath.
Juluk drank and passed
him up the leather flask. "Hey, mebbe we kill you now, sojer-man, wait too
long anyway. You come to hang more of mes gars for killing farmers? That
why you bring half-men?"
He jerked his head at
the two companies of the 5th sitting their dogs behind Raj and Suzette.
Half-men was a compliment; the Skinners had a quasi-respect for Descotters.
Their name for themselves translated into Sponglish as Real Men. Or The Only
Real Men.
Raj took a long swig of
the arrak, date gin yellow with distilling byproducts and spiked with
cayenne peppers, chile and gunpowder. Then he leaned over and spat half of it
on the nose of the Skinner's dog. The big animal leapt to its feet, growling:
Raj's boot and stirrup-iron met its nose with a nicely-timed swing, and Horace
showed teeth as long as a man's fingers centimeters from the other animal's
throat. It reconsidered, turned its back and ambled off, dishcloth-sized ears
flapping.
"I only keep you
alive to make me laugh, Juluk," Raj said, drinking again. He'd eaten half
a loaf of bread soaked in olive oil just before coming to the Skinner camp.
"I brought real men here to show your little boys how to fight. Where'd
you get this sauroid-vomit? I piss it out on your bitch-mother's grave."
This time he swallowed
most of it, forcing himself not to gag. To his surprise, Suzette took the skin
next and managed a healthy swallow. Some of the Skinners frowned at her
presumption, and one or two shook medicine bags at her, but most of them
laughed uproariously, Juluk included. A woman with baraka, spirit-power,
was an even bigger joke than a non-Skinner with real balls. His necklace of
finger-long sauroid fangs clattered against his bandoliers.
"Eh, even your
woman got balls, sojer-man! Big stone-house chief, he tell me you make war on
the long-hairs of the west. Good fighting where you make war."
"Where's your
friend Pha-air?" There had been two chiefs with this band on the last
campaign.
"Oh, I kill him a
season ago," the Skinner chief said with a shrug. "He give me
this—good man with knife." A grimy thumb traced a new scar, still shiny,
across the chief's belly.
Raj raised his voice:
"Are you women ready to go fight, or are you only good for drinking and
eating sauroids that die of disease?"
More hoots and trills of
laughter; the Skinners looked and smelled like trolls but their voices had the
high pitch of excited schoolgirls.
Juluk fired the huge
rifle over his shoulder without bothering to move it. The brass-cored 15mm slug
cracked by within a meter of Raj's head, but he was as safe as if the weapon
had been in East Residence. The Skinner chief would slit his own throat in
shame if he ever shot a man without intending to.
Men and dogs boiled out
of the camp, and out of thickets roundabout. It was chaos, an instant change
from sleepy lethargy to whooping, screeching tumult—but in less than
five minutes the liquor and ammunition had been thrown on spare dogs, and the
warriors were mounted and ready to move.
Center had taught him
Paytoiz, but Raj had always been able to get on with the Skinner mercenaries.
"Are they really
worth the trouble?" Suzette asked, as her escort fell in around her for
the short journey back to the base camp.
"My sweet, you've
only seen them twice, and in camp," Raj said. "As soldiers, they're a
disaster—they devastate any place you station them, and you might as well try
to discipline sauroids, and when they're drunk, which is usually . . . But if
you could see them fight-" He shook his head. "Yes, they're
worth the trouble."
* * *
"Why's the road so
far inland?" Bartin Foley asked.
"Pirates,"
Gerrin Staenbridge replied. "More profit in longshore raiding than
attacking ships, if you've got a target that doesn't have signal heliographs, a
fleet of steam rams and quick-reaction forces the way the Civil Government
does."
Company A of the 5th was
lead unit on the ride north, next to the battalion banner and the HQ squad.
They were staying in column, for speed's sake, with outriders flung out ahead
and to either side; they could see them dodging into small woods and jumping
fences occasionally, off at the edge of sight.
"Squadrone pirates?"
Bartin went on.
"Probably not the
last generation, but there are plenty of freelancers operating out of islands
like Blanchfer and Sabatin, just south of here . . . Ah, that should be our
Hereditary Colonel Makman's place, coming up."
The maps said this was a
main military highway; in the Civil Government, even in Descott, they'd have
called it a track and left it at that. Mostly it was beaten earth, possibly it
had been graded with an ox-drawn scraper within the last couple of years, and
somebody had scattered gravel on the low points at some time in the past.
Snake-rail fences edged it on either side; inland of the belt of forest along
the coast the country opened up into rolling fields. Small shaws of oak,
hazelnut and some native tree with hexagonal-scaled bark and scarlet leaves
topped an occasional hill. The wheatfields were long since reaped, but there
were many fields of mais—kawn in Namerique and gruno in
Spanjol—full of dry, rustling stocks chest-high to a rider.
A hogback ridge rose
ahead and to the right, eastward of the road. The two officers raised their
binoculars; the manor was a big foursquare building, whitewashed stone, with a
squat tower rising from one corner flying the double lightning flash banner of
the Brigade and a personal blazon of complicated interwoven loops, white on
dark gray. The lower story was pierced only by narrow windows, but the upper
had balconies and broad stretches of glazing. A number of long low structures
stood nearby; stables undoubtedly, and the barracks.
"Almost
homelike," Gerrin said dryly.
Descott architecture had
some of the same features and for the same reason, except that things had never
been either peaceful or prosperous enough for long enough to widen the
second-story windows.
Staenbridge threw up a
hand, and the trumpet sounded. "Battalion—"
"Company—"
"Walk-march . . . halt."
"Let's hope Makman
sees sense," the commander of the 5th said.
"I hope so
too," Foley replied. He turned in the saddle: "Flag of truce,
Lieutenant, and follow me if you please." He turned back to Staenbridge.
"Probably won't, though. Not the first one we call on."
* * *
"You what?"
the old man roared.
"Summon you to
surrender in the name of the Civil Government of Holy Federation," Foley
said tightly.
His hand was on his
pistol, but he was fully conscious of what a sniper could do. The white pennant
snapped from his bannerman's pole. That had been cold comfort to poor Mekkle
Thiddo last year, after he'd delivered Connor Auburn's head to his brother the
Admiral. His mind tried to replay scenes of the Squadron blunderbusses belching
smoke, the white flag falling . . . and instead it insisted on showing him Raj
Whitehall's face, as he rode down the row of thirty-one crosses, each bearing
the twisting body of one of the men responsible for that violation of the laws
of war.
That had probably been
cold comfort to Thiddo too.
A bell was tolling in
the tower of the estate; frightened faces peered out at him from the
second-story window, and dogs were yowrping in the stables as men
rushed to saddle them. Behind him the platoon's mounts shifted and growled
softly, conscious of the aggression of intruding on another pack's territory
but trained out of instinctive reluctance. The gravel of the driveway crunched
under their paws; the smell of their massed breath was rank, overpowering the
scents of woodsmoke and garden.
Hereditary Colonel
Makman was tall, about a hundred and ninety centimeters, with little spare
flesh on his heavy bones, and his red face contrasted violently with the white
muttonchop whiskers that framed it. The unexpected visitors had evidently
surprised him at lunch, and a napkin was tucked into the collar of his shirt.
He glared at Foley.
"Grisuh, you've got your nerve, coming on to my land with a
story like this," he snapped, in the tones of a man who hasn't been
contradicted in a very long time.
Foley smiled and raised
his hook. "Messer, that term grisuh is impolite, not to mention
inappropriate. The last man to use it to me was one of Curtis Auburn's
house-troops, and he came to a bad end." Sudden doubt washed over Makman's
face.
"Seyor,"
the platoon commander said. Sir.
Foley turned his head; a
group of men was double-timing up the grassy slope to the right. In bits and
pieces of hastily-donned uniform, but all carrying rifles and wearing their
swords. They checked at the sight of the mounted men, then came on again at a
more measured pace.
The young captain
nodded. The lieutenant barked an order, and half the platoon turned their dogs
with a touch of the foot. Another, and the animals crouched; the men stepped
forward with their rifles at port
"Slope arms! Fix
bayonets!" Smooth precision as butts thumped and hands slapped the hilts,
not parade-ground stiffness but the natural flow of actions performed as part of
a way of living, a trade practiced daily. The bayonets came out, bright and
long as a man's forearm, and rattled as they clipped to the ring-and-bar
fasteners. "Shoulder arms—front rank, kneel—ready—present—pick your
targets—prepare for volley fire. On the word of command!"
Hands slapped iron and
the long Armory rifles jerked up to shoulders. Behind the kneeling riflemen the
second file drew their sabers and sloped them back, resting on their shoulders.
The dogs barred their teeth and growled like boulders churning in a flooded
river, long strings of slaver running from their opened half-meter mouths.
Makman surprised Foley;
he spoke quietly. "You came under a flag of truce."
Bartin Foley's face had
been delicately pretty once; it was still slim-lined and handsome in an ascetic
fashion. Black eyes met blue, and the Brigade nobleman's narrowed in memory.
From the battered look of his thick-fingered hands he had seen action enough
once; enough to recognize the look of a man poised on the edge of killing violence.
"Messer, I also
once saw an officer murdered under flag of truce by the barbarians of the
Squadron," the young man said.
Makman snatched the
handkerchief from his shirt and half-turned. "Siegfrond!" he snapped.
"Ground arms, you fool."
The Brigadero troopers
had formed a ragged firing line. Now their muzzles came down; there were about
thirty of them, with more straggling up from the barracks by ones and twos,
like crystals accreting in a solution.
"And somebody stop
that damned bell."
A servant from the crowd
around the Brigade nobleman scampered away, and the bronze clanging faded away
to silence.
A woman came out onto
the broad verandah of the fortified manor; she was in her twenties, in a long
white dress with a yoke of pearls, and a child of four or five was by her side.
"Grandfather,"
she began, "what's—oh!" She swept the child behind her and put one
hand to her throat.
Makman was studying the
soldiers before his house, seeing them for the first time, Foley
suspected. "Gubernio Civil, right enough," he said, and looked
up at their officer. "Is this some sort of raid? You've a good deal of
brass, young man, coming this far inland with less than forty men."
"This is the
vanguard of General Raj Whitehall's army," Foley said, with a coldly
beautiful smile. The woman gasped, and Makman's ruddy face paled.
"He's on Stern
Isle," he whispered.
"Was,"
Foley corrected. "The Sword of the Spirit of Man is swift. And in case you
doubt that there are more of us here—"
He drew his saber and
turned in the saddle, waving the blade slowly overhead. Downslope of the house
gardens was an open field, full of black-coated cattle grazing. Beyond that was
cultivated land, with a scattering of small half-timbered thatched cottages,
and a line of trees. Red light winked from the edge of the forest Half a second
later the flat poumpf of a 75mm field gun came, and the ripping wail. A
tall bottle-shape of dirt fountained out of the pasture; cattle were running
and bawling, except for three that lay mangled, blood red and intestines pink
against their black hides. Steel twinkled all along the distant field edge as
five hundred men stepped into the open and the sun caught their bayonets. A
frantic voice called from the tower that more were in sight behind the manor, among
the peon village.
2nd Residence, right on
time, Foley thought.
"What . . ."
Makman rasped. "What are your terms?"
"General
Whitehall's terms are these; you are to take oath of obedience to the Civil
Government and cooperate fully with all its officers and administrators in
furnishing supplies and war levies. All arms and armed men to be surrendered;
soldiers to be sent to East Residence for induction into our army. You
personally will accompany our troops to encourage surrender among your military
vassals and neighbors. In return your life and liberty, and one-third of your
real property, are spared."
"One-third!"
"It's a great deal
more than you'd enjoy in the grave, Messer. Because my orders are that if you
refuse this place will be sacked and any survivors sold as slaves." He
looked up at the young woman. "I doubt your granddaughter would find life
as a whore in a dockside crib in East Residence very pleasant." He cut off
the beginnings of a roar. "I've seen it, Messer. I've done it.
Believe me."
The old man slumped.
Foley's voice went on inexorably; "You will also deliver a hostage of your
immediate family as surety for your good behavior."
"Who?" Makman
said, scrubbing a hand over his face. "My son is ten years dead, my
daughters with their own husbands, and my grandson holds a commission with the
Makman Mounted in Carson Barracks—" He halted, frowning.
The young woman turned
white and glared at Foley, and Makman's great age-spotted hands clenched. The
young man almost laughed, but managed to keep his face grave. Things were not quite
out of the woods yet; these were barbarians, after all.
"Your
granddaughter-in-law and great-grandson will be under the protection of Lady
Suzette Whitehall," he soothed. "She may take one maidservant and a
suitable chaperone, and since you'll have to come in to swear allegiance with
General Whitehall, you may deliver her to Lady Whitehall yourself. And rest
assured, on my word as a gentleman and officer, that her honor is safe with
me."
If you only knew how
very safe, he thought.
* * *
"Upyarz!
Upyarz!"
The Brigaderos roared as
they fought. Clerett's Life Guards used their sabers with bleak skill; the
Governor had carefully picked the men to send to war with his heir. Steel
crashed on steel across the fields, pistols banged, dogs howled and men
shrieked in sudden agony too great for flesh to bear. The failing light of
sundown was blood-red, but the true red of blood was turning to black despite
the flames from the burning farmhouse on the north side of it. The wagons the refugees
had tried to draw into a circle for defense burned too. Powder-smoke drifted
pink-tinged over the heads and thrashing blades of four hundred men. The air
smelled of sulphur and feces, the wet-iron stink of blood, and burning thatch.
Cabot Clerett watched
narrowly. His hand chopped down, and his heels clapped to his dog's ribs; with
a hundred men behind him he swept out of the timber and put his mount at the
rail fence. The big mastiff gathered itself and soared as its rider leaned
forward in the saddle. The banner of the 1st Residence Life Guards streamed at
his side, and all around him the blades of the sabers snapped down in unison to
lie along the necks of the dogs, point toward the enemy. They were turning to
meet him, a lancepoint flashed by, trannggg and a breastplate shed the
point of his Kolobassian blade and nearly dragged him out of the saddle. The
Civil Government line smashed into the melee.
A dismounted trooper was
before him, backing with sword working while a Brigadero lancer probed for his
life and another kept the soldier's dog at bay.
Cabot spurred forward
again. This time the enemy warrior could not turn in time, the inertia of his
lance too much for his arm. The young officer poised his hilt over his head and
stabbed, down into the neck past the collarbone to avoid the armor. The
resistance was crisp and then heavy-soft; he wrenched the blade free and the
barbarian reeled away on a bolting dog, coughing blood in sheets down his
breastplate. The loose Life Guard's dog snapped, its neck extending like a
snake and closing on the lance-shaft below the steel lappets. Ashwood crunched
and the Brigadero was backing and cursing as he drew his sword. Cabot let him
escape, dropped his reins, and clamped the bloody saber to his side while he
drew his pistol and tossed it to his left hand.
"Thankee,
ser!" the trooper yelled, straddling his dog as the animal crouched for
him to mount.
Cabot flourished the
saber with a grin. I'm not afraid, I'm not afraid! he realized
exultantly. A sword flickered in the corner of his eye; he blocked the blow
with his own near the hilt. The force of it slugged him to one side, leaning
far over; he pointed the revolver under his own armpit and fired into the
Brigadero's torso. The enemy dog locked jaws with his dog's, both animals
slamming at each other's legs with clawed paws the size of plates. Cabot heaved
himself back erect and leaned forward to fire again with the muzzle half an
inch from the other dog's eye. It collapsed in mid-growl, falling with a thump
that made his own mount jump backwards.
The HQ group had caught
up with him, stabbing and shooting; the enemy were recoiling under the weight
of the flank charge, but they still had numbers and weight of metal on their side.
He signaled the trumpeter and the brassy notes rang out over the lessening
clamor. Almost as one man the Civil Government troops turned and fled in a
rout, pouring across the meadow and into the narrow road that spiked into the
forest on the south.
The Brigaderos,
household guards and part of a dragoon garrison regiment, scrambled after them
four hundred strong. Here the lighter gear of the easterners was their
advantage; the big Airedales and Newfoundlands were fast enough, but slower off
the mark than the rangy Descotter farmbreds and Colonial-style Banzenjis the
invaders rode. Slather flew from the mouths of the dogs as they lunged for the
shadowing trees. The narrow wedge of open land at the road's mouth squeezed the
larger Brigade force harder than their quarry, and for a moment the whole mass
of men and dogs slowed as the warriors on the outside pressed inward.
Four hundred riflemen
volley-fired from the edge of the woods into the clumped Brigade troops. In the
dusk the muzzle-flashes were long and regular, like spearheads of fire along an
endless phalanx. Crisp orders sounded, pitched high to carry. Platoon volleys
slammed out like a crackle of very loud single shots, each one a comb of flame
licking toward the enemy. Bullets hammered into dogs and men; a few spanged off
armor, red sparks flicking up into the gathering night, but the range was
close—and for this campaign, half of the standard-issue hollowpoints had been
replaced with rounds carrying a pointed brass cap. Four companies of trained men
with Armory rifles could put over three thousand rounds in a single minute.
None of the Brigaderos was more than a hundred meters from the forest edge when
the firing started, and the barricade of burning buildings and wagons was less
than six hundred meters away. At that distance a bullet aimed level would
strike a mounted man anywhere along its flight path.
The trumpet rang again
in darkness, behind the firefly glimmer of the crossfire raking the Brigade men
from two sides of a triangle. Panting dogs and cursing men sorted themselves
into ranks. Snarls and snaps like wet coffin-lids falling punctuated the
jostling, until men soothed their mounts to obedience.
"Damned if it
didn't work, sir," the Senior Captain of the 2nd said in Cabot's ear.
He jumped slightly, glad
of the darkness; he could feel the glassy stare of his eyes. His hands were
steady as he reloaded.
"I rather thought
it would, Captain Fikaros," the Governor's nephew said hoarsely. "I
rather thought it would."
Both moons were up,
enough to see a few survivors scattering across the meadow. Few made it past
the burning buildings on the other side, although a number of riderless dogs
with jouncing stirrups did.
"Let's collect our
wounded and head for the river," Cabot said. "This bunch were a little
too numerous for my taste."
"Sir!"
The men cheered as he
rode past with the unit banner and the trumpeter.
Wait until Uncle hears
about this, he thought. Wait until Suzette hears.
Glory!
Major Ehwardo Poplanich
looked up at the row of shackles that rattled along the stone wall of the
courthouse, below a bricked-in sign reading runaway in Spanjol and
Namerique. The cuffs hung at about two meters off the ground. A meter and a
half below each set the stucco was scored with a half-moon of smooth wear from
flailing feet. A man hung by his hands with no support beneath cannot draw air
into his lungs if he lets his full weight fall on his wrists; his chest crushes
the diaphragm with the weight of his lower body. He must haul himself up at least
a little with every breath. Once fatigue sets in, suffocation follows—a slow,
gradual suffocation, as each despairing effort brings less oxygen and burns
more.
"Well, that's one
way to make sure a serf regrets it if he leaves the estate," he said
mildly.
The set smile of the
Brigadero magistrate did not alter; he bobbed his head in agreement, as he
would have to anything Poplanich said at that moment. A big burly man, he was a
noble by courtesy under Brigade law because he was on the muster rolls, but most
of the native members of the town council had owned more land than he. Town
marshall was not a rank true nobles, the brazaz officer class of the
Brigade, aspired to. Now the councilors owned much more, and what had
been a substantial farm if not an estate for the magistrate would shrink to a
smallholding as soon as the new administration produced a cadastral survey.
With a battalion of
Poplanich's Own in town, he wasn't going to object very forcefully. A few had
tried, and their bodies hung from the portico of the This Earth church as a
warning.
Ehwardo looked at the
fetters again. A strong man, or a light wiry one, could probably live quite a
few hours hanging there. I shouldn't be upset, he told himself.
Serfdom—debt-peonage—was close to a universal institution around the Midworld
Basin; back home a runaway who couldn't pay his impossible, hereditary debts
would be flogged and turned back to his master. That had started long ago to
prevent peasants from absconding from their tax obligations; and Spirit knew
there didn't seem to be any other way to keep civilization going in the Fallen
world. Not that anyone had told him, at least . . . but there was nothing like
this on the Poplanich estates. A landlord who was willing to stand between his
people and the tax farmers didn't have to flog much to keep order.
And where was that
damned infantryman? He had better things to do than stand here talking to a
gang of provincial boobies. He was supposed to be turning everything over to an
infantry battalion so he could move on south, and it was taking a cursed long
time.
In normal times he
supposed Maoachin was a pleasant enough little place, a market town for the
farms and estates roundabout. There was a large, gaudily decorated church for
the This Earth cultists, and a more modest one for the Star Spirit worshippers;
a few fine houses behind walls, a few streets of modest ones mixed with shops
and artisan crafts, cottages on the outskirts. No fountain in the plaza, but
the streets were cobbled and lined with trees.
Now the streets were
jammed solid. With oxcarts full of grain in sacks and flour and cornmeal in
barrels, and sides of bacon and dried beef and turnips and beans. Furniture and
silverware too, and tools; many, many wagons of swords and rifle-muskets and
shotguns and revolvers, ammunition, kegs of powder and ingots of lead. Riding
dogs on leading chains, muzzled with steel-wire cages over their jaws and
driven frantic by stress, and palfreys for the hostages. Hundreds of prisoners,
Brigaderos fighting men going back to be packed into transports and shipped
across the Midworld and inducted into the Civil Government's army. They walked
with their eyes down, avoiding looking at the smaller groups, battered and
bloody and in chains, who'd tried to fight. They and their families were
headed for slave markets.
The noise and dust, the
howls of dogs and sobbing of children, were beyond belief; the harsh noon sun
beat down without mercy.
He looked back down at
the magistrate standing at his stirrup, and the town councilors. Most of them
were natives, Spanjol-speaking followers of the orthodox faith they shared with
the Civil Government. More than a few of them were smiling at the magistrate's
discomfort They had kept two-thirds of their land, and had pleasure of seeing
the bottom rail put on top, as well. When the confiscated Brigade estates came
on the market, they would be positioned to expand their holdings in a way that
would more than make up for the initial loss.
"But, ah, with
respect—" the bearded judge-gendarme said, his Sponglish clumsy and full
of misplaced Spanjol endings "—you then leave me at all no armed men, how
do I under put native risings?"
A councilor did laugh
at that. The magistrate whirled on him, frustration breaking through in a
scream as he dropped back into Spanjol. Ehwardo could follow that well enough.
Out of sheer inertia the Civil Government had maintained it as a second
official language all these centuries, and he had been trained to public
service.
"Iytiote!"
he screamed: fool. "Do your peons love you because you have the
same priest and demand your rent in the same tongue? How many have I scourged
back to their plows for you? If they taste a master's blood and he is a Brigade
noble, won't they want yours?"
The councilors' smiles
disappeared, to be replaced with thoughtful expressions.
"Don't worry,
Messers," Ehwardo said. "The Civil Government will keep order."
It had to. Unless the
peasants paid their landlords a share of their crop and forced labor, they
would eat everything they produced. How could the armies and cities be
supported then? Not to mention the fact that landlords were the ruling class at
home, as they were everywhere. Still . . .
"Did you
know," he went on in the local language, "that my great-uncle was
Governor in East Residence?" They hadn't, and breath sucked in; he waved
away their bows. "Listen carefully, then, to a story Governor Poplanich
told my father, and my father to me.
"Once there was a
mighty king, who ruled broad lands. His minister read the king's plans for the
coming year, and went to his lord.
"'Lord,' the
minister said, 'I see you spend millions on soldiers and forts and weapons, and
not one senthavo to lighten the sufferings of the poor.'
"'Yes,' said the
king. 'When the revolution comes, I will be ready.'"
A color-party of the
17th Kelden Foot was forcing its way through the press toward him; Ehwardo
sighed with relief. He smiled down at the councilors, and tapped a finger
alongside his nose.
"A wise man, my
great-uncle," he said, grinning. "Vayaadi, a vo, Sehnors."
* * *
The narrow forest lane
was rutted even by Military Government standards, but the ground on either side
was mostly open, beneath huge smooth-barked beech trees ten times taller than a
man. Green gloom flickered with the breeze sighing through the canopy, but it
was quiet and very still on the leaf-mould of the floor. The two companies of
the 5th were spread out on either side of the road in platoon columns, moving
at a brisk lope; the Skinners trickled along in clumps and clots around them,
ambling or galloping. Three field-gun carriages followed the soldiers, with
only half the usual six-dog teams; despite that they bounced along at a fair
pace. The moving men started up a fair amount of game; sounders of half-wild
pigs, mono-horns, a honking gabble of some sort of bipedal greenish things that
stopped rooting for beech-nuts and fled with orange crests flaring from their
long sheep-like heads and flat bills agape.
Luckily, there were no
medium-to-large carnosauroids around; those were mostly too stupid to be
afraid, although there was nothing wrong with their reflexes, bloodlust or
ferocious grip on life even when mangled. Killing one would be noisy.
Sentinels with the
shoulder-flashes of the 7th Descott stepped out from behind trees.
"What've you got
for me, Lieutenant?" Raj asked their officer, pulling up Horace in a
rustle of leaves.
"Seyor," the
man said, casting an eye at the Skinners who kept right on moving as if the
sentry-line did not exist. "Major Gruder's got a pig-farmer for you."
* * *
"Took a while to
get someone who could understand him, General," Kaltin Gruder said.
"I think he's giving us pretty detailed directions to those
holdouts."
The peasant—swineherd by
profession—had an iron thrall-collar around his neck and a lump of scar tissue
where his left ear should have been. His long knife and iron-shod crook were
the tools of a trade that took him into the woods often, and his ragged smock
and pants and bare calloused feet wouldn't have been out of place in most
villages in the Civil Government.
Raj listened closely to
the gap-toothed gabble. The language problem was a little worse than he'd
anticipated. Spanjol and Sponglish were very different in their written forms
and grammar, but the most basic terms, the eight hundred or so words that
comprised everyday speech, were quite similar: blood in Sponglish was singre
and in Spanjol sangre, for instance, quite unlike the Namerique blud
or Skinner zonk.
The trouble was that
neither the local peasants nor most of his soldiers spoke the standard versions
of their respective national languages. When a Descotter trooper tried to talk
to a Crown Peninsula sharecropper, misunderstanding was one of the better
alternatives. Starless Dark, some of his Descotters had trouble in East
Residence!
"Yes, that's what
he's saying," Raj said after a moment. There was an icy feeling behind his
eyes, more mental than physical, and the mouthings became coherent speech.
"They're about . . . ten klicks that way. There's a valley . . . no, it
sounds like a collapsed sinkhole. 'Many' of them—at least two thousand guns,
I'd say. Possibly twice that; I doubt he can count past ten even
barefoot."
Kaltin ran a hand through
his dark bowl-cut hair. "Lucky thing I didn't go in with only the
7th," he said. "I thought I'd been running into an awful lot
of empty manors." He looked up sharply. "If he's telling the truth,
of course."
probability of 92% ±3, Center said.
"He is," Raj
replied flatly. "Let's see exactly where." That was an
exercise in frustration, even when they brought in others from the circle of
charcoal-burners and swineherds. They were eager to help, but none of them had
even heard of maps; they could describe every creek and rock in their home
territories—but only to a man who already knew the area that was their whole
world.
"All right" he
said at last. "It's about three hours on foot from here; call it ten
kilometers. There's a low range of hills; in the middle of it's a big oval
area, sounds like fifteen to thirty hectares, of lumpy ground with a rim all
around it and a stream running through—it's limestone country, as I said. The
axis is east-west. Natural fortress. Only one real way out, about two thousand
meters across, on the eastern side of the oval. Evidently some native
bandits—or rebels, depending on your point of view—used it until this man's
father's time, then the Brigaderos finally hunted them down and hung
them."
As he spoke, Raj
sketched, tracing over the projection Center laid on the pad; training in
perspective drawing was a part of the standard Civil Government military
education, and he had set himself to it with unfashionable zeal as a young man.
Kaltin whistled through
his teeth as he looked at the details. "Now that's going to be something
like hard work, if we want to do it quick," he said. "Plenty of
cover, lots of water, getting over the edge just won't do much good, not with
all those hummocks. And if they're determined—well."
Which they would be,
having refused the call to surrender. The problem with making examples was that
it worked both ways; having looked at the alternatives, these Brigaderos had
evidently decided that at seventh and last they'd rather die.
In which case they were
going to get their wish.
"Then we'd better
move quickly, before they have a chance to get set up," he said, with a
slight cold smile. "We certainly can't afford to take a week winkling them
out, or bringing up a larger force. The garrison in Lion City might sally if we
did—four thousand trained men, and far too mobile for my taste if we let them
loose."
Kaltin raised an
eyebrow. "You think there's enough of us?" Slightly over six hundred
in the 7th Descott, two companies of the 5th, and the Skinners. "For
storming a strong defensive position, that is."
"Oh, I think so.
Provided we're fast enough that they don't realize what's happening."
"Can we get the
guns in there?"
"We can try; it's
open beech forest for the most part, nearly to the sinkhole area. I'm certainly
bringing those. Take a look; the ship missed us in Port Wager and pulled in
here a few days ago."
Raj nodded toward three
weapons on field-gun carriages, standing beside the rutted laneway. Kaltin
looked them over, puzzled. At first glance they were much like the standard
75mm gun. At second, they were something very different.
"Rifle-barrels
clamped together?" he said.
"Thirty-five of
them, double-length," Raj said. "Demonstrate, Corporal."
The soldier threw a
lever at the rear of the weapon, and a block swung back horizontally, like the
platen of a letterpress. Another man lifted out a thin iron plate about the
size of a book-cover with a loop on the top. The plate was drilled with
thirty-five holes, and an equal number of standard 11mm Armory cartridges stood
in them.
"Dry run,
please," Raj said.
The crew inserted an
empty plate; the gunner pushed the lever sharply forward and the mechanism
locked with a dunk sound. He crouched to look through the rifle-type
sights, spun the elevation and traverse screws, and turned a crank on the side
of the breech through one complete revolution. A brisk brttt of clicks
sounded. Then he threw the lever back again; the crew repeated the process
another four times in less than thirty seconds.
"Three hundred and
twenty-five rounds a minute, with practice," Raj said. "I know it
works—that is, it'll shoot. Whether it's as useful as appearances suggest, the
Spirit only knows and experience will show. I'm certainly not counting on it
this time, not during the field-test, but it can't hurt."
Kaltin whistled again.
"Turning engineer, Messer Raj?" he said. That would be beneath the
dignity of a landed Messer and cavalry officer, but Raj's eccentricities were
legend anyway. "No, a friend suggested it."
provided schematic drawings suitable to
current technological levels, Center corrected pedantically. after correcting certain design faults in the
original.
Thank you, Raj thought.
you are welcome.
"It looks
handy," the other officer said appraisingly. "No recoil?" Cannon
bounced backward with every shot and had to be manhandled back into battery.
"None to speak of,
and it's less than a quarter the weight of a field gun. Muzzaf had some of his
innumerable relatives run it up—in Kolobassia district, but out of the way.
We're calling it the splat-gun, from the sound."
The other man nodded;
that southwestern peninsula was one of the primary mining and metalworking
areas in the Civil Government.
"Don't tell me you
got the Master of Ordnance to spring for this," he said.
The last major
innovation had been the Armory rifle, nearly two hundred years before. The
Civil Government quite literally worshipped technology—but technology was what
the miraculous powers of the UnFallen could accomplish, flying faster than
sunlight from world to world and inspired by the indwelling Spirit of Man.
Ironmongery did not qualify.
Raj's grin grew savage.
"Tzetzas paid for it," he said. "I used some of the surplus we
got from his estates when we sold him back his rotten hardtack and waste-dump
bunker coal."
He turned back to the
map. "Let's get to work."
* * *
Hereditary Major Elfred
Stubbins bent to look through the telescope. One of his neighbors was an
amateur astronomer, and had imported the thing from East Residence at enormous
expense years ago; most thought it mildly disgraceful, even religiously
suspect—wasn't the Spirit of Man of This Earth alone? Why look at a heavens
which held only the Outer Dark? Stubbins considered himself an up-to-date and
broad-minded man, able to both read and write. He had remembered the instrument
when his neighbors met in hasty conclave to plan their flight to the Crater,
and it was proving very useful. Clumsily, his sword-calloused hands turned the
focusing screw.
A man leaped out at him,
brought from two thousand meters to arm's length. Round and brown and
button-nosed, with a tuft of scalplock on the crown and bracelets of brass wire
up the forearms. The rifle he balanced across a bronze-shod shooting stick was
a joke, longer than the man aiming it. What in the Outer Dark was-
CRACK.
The 15mm bullet drove
the narrow final segment of the telescope four inches into Stubbins' brain. He
pitched backward onto the gritty surface of the limestone block, limbs
thrashing like a pithed frog, beating out a tattoo on the dusty stone. Men
exploded from all around him, to stand staring as the body stilled, lying
spread-eagled with a four-inch stub of tattered brass protruding from one
eye-socket
CRACK. A man's head
splashed away from the monstrous sauroid-killing bullet.
The Brigade warriors
didn't need a third prompt. Every one of them was down behind cover within a
few seconds.
"What the fuck is
happening here?" someone cried. "Is it the civvies?" Kettledrums
began beating the alarm in the camps below them where the refugee households
had set up.
A few muskets crashed,
firing blind towards the hills to the north, then fell silent. The small
figures moving out of the low scrub there on the karstic hills were plainly
visible, but they were scattered, too far for any effective fire from the
rifle-muskets that most of the men carried. More and more of the strangers were
strolling forward; not looking in any particular hurry, calling to each other
in high mild voices, yipping and hooting.
A Brigade officer came
panting up the rocky way; there was a faint path worn just enough to be visible
through the thirst-tolerant native vegetation that drove tendrils into the
rock. Limestone drains freely; down lower where there was soil, trees grew.
Many of them were fruit trees run wild, others spiky red-green Bellevue
vegetation. Men had lived here before, the native forest-thieves of a generation
ago, before that others from time to time, from century to century. The Brigade
fugitives had found scraps of PreFall plastic and ancient charcoal beneath a
deep overhang. Troops followed the officer, and further back women with their
skirts kirted up and loads in their hands.
"Skinners,"
the officer said, as he stoop-crawled around the block Stubbins had used to set
up his telescope. A ripple of curses ran along the waiting riflemen; most of
them had heard of the tribe, at least. They were childhood boogies among the
more northerly of the Brigade.
Another savage crack,
and a man who had raised himself to fire slid backward with the top taken off
his head the way a spoon does a hard-boiled egg. Freshly exposed brain oozed
pink out of the shattered bone and white lining tissue; the limbs twitched for
a second, the body hung in equipose, then began sliding further down the slope.
Some of the women screamed as it bounced and rolled by, but they kept coming.
"Nomads from up
northeast of the Stalwarts, east of the Base Area," the officer went on,
for the benefit of those who hadn't heard of the Skinners. Few of their
raids had penetrated to the edge of Brigade territory, although their pressure
was one factor forcing the Stalwarts south.
"Spread out there,
and keep your heads down. Adjust your sights for maximum and don't forget to
shorten 'em again when they get closer."
The men obeyed, as they
might not have the retainer of another landowner; the officer was a General's
Dragoon. There was still a snarl in the voice of one who asked:
"What're they doing
here? And what are those gawdammit women doing?"
"Coming up to
load," the man called, raising his voice so everyone on the knoll could
hear. "We're going to try and hold these high spots along the crater wall.
Three women are going to load for each of you. Remember to check the sights.
Shift rocks—they'll be looking for your powder-smoke."
"You can't bring
women into a battle zone!" one man protested; a prosperous freeholder by
his cowhide jacket.
"Fuckhead!" the
officer screamed, frustration suddenly snapping his control. "Fuckhead!
D'you think the Skinners will kiss their hands if they get through? They'll cut
their throats and rape the dead bodies, you shit-eating civvie-breed. I've fought
them before. The grisuh've brought them as mercs, Spirit eat
their eyes for it.
"All of you!"
he went on. "The only way we're gonna stop them is kill every one of them,
because otherwise they'll keep coming till they blow away every swinging dick
in this valley. Get ready!"
The Skinners ambled
forward, climbing nimbly over the tumbled whitish-grey rock. Some of them were
smoking pipes, and now and then one would stop to adjust his breechclout or
take a swig of water from a skin bag. Big flop-eared brindled hounds walked
behind them, some riding animals, some with wicker panniers of extra
ammunition. Those came forward whenever a Skinner whistled, and the man would
grab another handful of the carrot-sized shells. They were firing more often
now; a nomad would stop, let the shooting stick swing down, aim, fire, reload,
and start forward again in ten seconds or less. Most of them were catching
their spent brass and tucking it into belt pouches. A Brigade warrior lurched
back screaming with his hands to his face as rock-fragments clawed across his
eyeballs from one near-miss.
The women had made it to
the top of the trail, scurrying along well below the crestline to take
positions below each rifleman before they set down their burden of
hundred-round ammunition boxes. The men with them were carrying several muskets
each; they used their swords to pry open the lids of the boxes and then handed
out the weapons. Many of the women's palms were bleeding from the rough hemp of
the rope handles, and some were crying silently, but they started loading
immediately. More slowly than a trained fighter, but there were many of them.
Two older women travelled from one clump of loaders to another, distributing
small leather boxes of percussion caps they held in a fold of their skirts.
"Let 'em have it!"
the officer shouted, as the Skinners came to about a thousand meters, maximum
effective range.
Smoke jetted from
hundreds of muzzles. Half a dozen of the Skinners were hit, of the hundreds
swarming down the slope; some of those rose again. Some of those too badly
wounded to rise—even a Skinner could not force a shattered thighbone to
function no matter how indifferent to pain—tied rough bandages or tourniquets
and started firing from a prone position. The rest of the Skinner force slowed
their advance; not from fear, but because this was the optimum range. Their
rifles were more accurate than their enemies', and nearly every Skinner could
use his to the limit of the weapon's capacities.
The Brigade men reached
behind for new weapons thrust into their hands, fired, fired again. Any man who
raised his upper body for a better shot died, and many who showed only
an eye and a rifle-barrel through a crack in a boulder did too. The
iron-and-shit stink of death began to hang heavy; bodies bled out quickly when
fist-sized holes were blasted through their torsos. Blood sank quickly into the
porous rock, turning the surface slick and greasy. Screams and moans from men
blinded or flayed by rock-fragments were continuous. The women dragged wounded
men backward, and fresh riflemen—many of them boys and white-bearded
grandfathers, now—climbed the trail to take their places. After a while, some
of the women themselves climbed up to take the spots of men who'd been killed
and not replaced. Few of them were as accurate as the men, but the Skinners
were much closer now. Everyone could hear them hooting and laughing as they
walked forward, laughing and killing with every shot.
The officer who had
fought Skinners before lay behind a rock; the tourniquet which had saved his
life let only a dribble of blood out of the shattered stump of his left
forearm. He kept his head well down the rock; his face was mud-grey with shock
and covered with fat beads of sweat. His lip bled too, where he had bitten it
to make himself stay conscious. Four revolvers lay conveniently near his right
hand, and his unsheathed sword.
* * *
"Halt," Kaltin
Gruder said, as the rise steepened to twenty degrees, fissured water-rotted
rock beneath their feet.
No point in taking the
dogs forward further. They were sure-footed, much more so than a hoofed animal,
but size and the stiff backbone needed to bear the weight of a man exacted its
price in agility. A saddle-dog had to watch its step on going like this, and
there was worse ahead. Mice can fall hundreds of feet and walk away; a cat may
or may not escape with bruises or break a bone; a man dropped from the same
height will almost surely die. A twelve-hundred-pound wardog would splash.
The officers and
noncoms passed it down the line verbally; the Brigaderos would probably realize
they were here soon, despite the continuous crackle of firing and thick pall of
smoke from the far northern side of the crater, but there was no point in
advertising with a trumpet-call designed to carry. The action was about three
long rifle-shots from the southern rim, and as many more from his present
position. The long slopes were thick with scrub oak, chinquapin, and
witchhazel, too thin-soiled to support the big beeches that predominated
further south. Ahead the scrub thinned to occasional patches dominated by
reddish-green native climbers and many-stalked bushes. The slope was also
littered with boulders from head-size to twice man-height, almost all the way
up to the notched rim that stood like a line of decaying teeth a hundred meters
high.
The dogs crouched, and
men stepped out of the stirrups and loaded their rifles.
"Fix
bayonets." Rattle and snap, and a subtle change in attitude. There was
nothing like that order to drive home that it was about to hit the
winnowing-fan. "Company A in reserve. B, C, and D will advance in extended
skirmish order, by squads."
Eight-man squads moved
forward cautiously, covered by the next; they took firing positions behind
cover and waited alertly while their comrades leapfrogged forward. It was part
of the drill, albeit not one used all that often. The dark blue of their
jackets and the dull maroon of their pants blended well with the shade and
varied colors of vegetation, soil and rock. In a minute or two nothing remained
but an occasional glimpse, a stirring of leaves against the wind, or the clink
of metal on stone. Back here the lines of dogs waited motionless, the riderless
whining softly and staring with fixed attention at the direction their masters
had taken.
Kaltin Gruder was
nervous. Not about his men's performance. Even if this wasn't the most common
form of combat, they'd trained for it . . . and they were all hunters at home,
skirmishers when they or their squire had a quarrel with the neighbors. His own
first smell of powder had come that way, stalking through a maze of gullies and
canyons after a sheep-lifter, and you could die just as dead as in a major
battle.
What worried him was the
loss of control. He couldn't see more than a few of the men. In most
situations a battalion commander expected to keep his whole force under
observation, or at least ride around to his company-level officers checking on
things. In this scrub even the lieutenants wouldn't have direct control
over their units. Shouldn't be a problem keeping the advance going unless it
got real sticky, no—although he pitied an infantry commander with a job like
this. Men didn't join or stay in the 7th Descott Rangers unless they could be
relied on to keep moving toward the sharp end without someone prodding them up
the arse. The troops wouldn't stand for anyone like that, and they had emphatic
and very practical ways of making it known.
The other thing that
worried him was that his men knew the Skinner attack had got in before theirs.
That was fine, keep the barbs' attention pinned one way, they'd still have men
on the south fringe but not as many or as alert. But the Spirit of Man with a
nuke in Its hand couldn't stop Skinners from lifting everything worth taking if
they got into the refugees' stores first. His men wouldn't endanger the mission
for loot . . . but since they were supposed to attack in that direction anyway,
he knew they'd move faster than they should. Some of them, and the rest would
keep up with their friends.
Everything's a
tradeoff. Soldiers were useless without the will to fight. But men trained to kill
and too proud to show fear in the face of fire were never easy to control.
Starless Dark
with this, he thought. He certainly wasn't going to maintain control
if they couldn't see him.
"Captain."
Company A was always overstrength and commanded by a captain rather than a
senior lieutenant. "I'm taking the HQ squad forward. You'll act to prevent
a breakthrough if the barbs counterattack, and advance on order or signal"—a
red rocket—"or at your discretion after one hour."
"Yes, sir,"
Captain Falcones said with notable lack of enthusiasm.
"Your turn will
come, Huan. You men, follow me!"
The signaler brought his
trumpet, but he licked his thumb and wet the foresight of his rifle as they
moved forward. A crackle of shots broke out, nearer than the slamming firefight
along the north edge of the crater. Echoes slapped back and forth from the
rocks.
"This way."
* * *
Braaaaaaaap.
The splat-gun to Raj's
left fired. Thirty-five rounds slapped into the Brigaderos rush, and men went
tumbling. Only five or six out of nearly sixty, but the rest stopped to shoot
back—exactly the wrong thing to do. Bullets cracked through air, dipped leaves
from the bushes, sparked and pinged off stones. Few of them were aimed in his
direction anyway, and if his luck was that bad he'd better get it over with.
He looked right and
left; the two companies of the 5th were advancing in staggered double line,
with five meters between platoons. Thin, but he didn't have very many men with
him to cover over a kilometer of front. North and south of that the ground got
too rugged for easy movement and the barbs didn't look to be in any mood for
fancy flanking maneuvers; clots and dribbles of them were filtering through the
narrower neck of the exit and attacking as they came without waiting to mass.
Bad tactics, but they were being squeezed forward toward him like a melon-seed
between two hard fingers.
"Platoon will
advance with volley fire," the lieutenant of the platoon he had with him
shouted, pointing with his saber. The front rank went to one knee, dipping in
unison. Their rifles steadied.
"Fire!"
BAM. Greasy gray-black
smoke spurted. The spent brass went flying backward as they worked the levers,
and the bolts retracted and slid down; one man had a jam, the thin wrapped
brass cartridge heat-welded to the walls of the chamber and the iron base torn
off by the extractor.
"Scramento,"
the trooper muttered, snatching out his boot-knife and ignoring everything
around him as he probed delicately to peel the foil away from the steel.
Braaaaaaaap. Another splatgun
fired, chewing into the stationary Brigaderos as they frantically bit open
cartridges and dumped the powder down the barrels of their rifles. Ramming,
withdrawing the rod, fumbling at their belts for a cap . . .
The second rank of 5th
troopers walked through the first, knelt, fired.
BAM.
Click. From the first
rank. Rounds pushed down the grooves on top of the bolts and into the chamber
with the thumb. Clack. Levers pulled back to lie along the stock, the
same motion locking the bolts into the lugs at the rear of the chamber and
cocking the internal firing pins. They rose, trotted through the reloading
second rank, knelt, fired.
BAM.
Braaaaaaaap.
The lieutenant looked up
and down the line, where variations on the same scene were happening. Most of
the enemy in front of him were still loading.
"Charge!" he
shouted.
One of the Brigaderos
fired from the hip, his ramrod still in his rifle. By a chance someone who'd
never seen a battlefield wouldn't have believed it speared through the chest of
the Descotter charging him. Both men wore identical expressions of surprise,
until the Civil Government trooper went to his knees and then his face, the
iron rod standing out behind his back. The Brigadero was still gaping when the
trooper's squadmate fired with his muzzle not two feet away. The barbarian flew
backward, punched away as much by gasses that had no chance to dissipate as by
the bullet, his leather jacket smouldering in a circle a foot wide over his
belly.
The rest clubbed their
muskets or drew swords; the Brigaderos carried bayonets but evidently didn't
much like to use them. The troopers fired again at point-blank range and then
there was a brief flurry of butt and bayonet, the ugly butcher's-cleaver sound
of steel parting flesh.
More rifle fire from
ahead, from behind a boulder. Two or three men . . .
"Prone!" the
lieutenant snapped; he stayed on one knee, as did Raj and his HQ group.
"Somebody get—"
Braaaaaaaap. The surface of
the boulder sparked and spalled under the impact of another thirty-five rounds.
Something hit; a rifle-barrel jerked up over the squarish boulder and stayed
there.
"Forward," Raj
said, and then to his trumpeter: "Sound maintain advance."
Behind them he could
hear the ground crunching as the splatgun's crew manhandled it up at a trot. That
solves that problem, he thought; he'd been wondering if the new weapon was
more like close-range artillery or small arms. They were best deployed well
forward, probably in the gaps between units, to shoot men onto their
objectives. Maybe an iron shield on either side of the barrel?
"Mi heneral?"
the lieutenant asked, hopping a step to keep up with Raj's longer stride.
The men were moving
forward again, the line of bayonets glittering . . . or in some cases, dull.
Nothing ahead for the moment, but the burbling echoes of the firefight in the
crater were getting closer. So far they'd seen the ones the enemy had stationed
here, or the quickest-witted and fastest on their feet. A serious attempt to
force the gap could come any moment.
"Yes?" Raj
asked, startled out of a world of lines and distances, alternatives and
choices.
"Why are we
attacking the enemy, sir? Not that I mind—but wouldn't it be tactically sound
to make them come to us? We're across their line of retreat."
Raj looked at the
painfully earnest young face. He nodded in recognition; he'd always wanted to
know how to do his job better too.
"Son, if we had
four or five companies, yes. As it is, we can't hold this width of front, even
with those little beauties." He gestured back at the splatguns with his
revolver. "There are probably still enough of them to pin us down while a
lot of the rest get through and scatter into the hills.
"But. We're not
really attacking them, we're hustling them, they're bouncing around like bees
in a bucket and we're not going to give them time to sit down and
organize a breakout attack. Defeat takes place in the mind of the enemy."
The puppy awe in the young man's face was embarrassing. "We'll hold a bit
further forward, where the chokepoint narrows."
"Watch it!"
They crouched slightly,
instinctively, and ran forward. There had only been one Brigadero behind the
boulder, and a girl loading for him. The man lay dead, slumped back against the
stone with his brains leaking down the rough surface. The girl was lying curled
on her side, a dagger with a gold-braid hilt and gold pommel sunk to the guard
under her ribs. Her mouth was a soundless O, her eyes round and dark as her
body shuddered.
Missed the
kidney, Raj knew. It might take her some time to bleed out, blood leaking into her
stomach cavity like water around a badly packed valve.
"Kicked t'rifle
outta her hands, but t'cunt cut belly affore I could stop her, ser," the
corporal said apologetically.
The girl made a small
sound; the lieutenant looked at her and swallowed. The older man knew it was
because he'd suddenly seen her as a person, not a target, not another
barb; perhaps because she'd done pretty much what a Descotter woman would have
in her place. Raj moved forward and put his revolver to the back of her neck,
squeezing the trigger carefully; even touching was far enough away to miss, if
you jerked. The body bucked once, but the sound of the shot was almost lost in
the noise of battle.
He looked up. The
entrance to the crater was narrowing here, and there was less in the way of
large boulders for cover.
"All right,"
he said to his runners. "My compliments to Captains Fleyez and Morrisyn,
and we'll hold here—men to take cover. Get that splatgun up here, this is a
good position for it."
The trumpet sounded, and
the long line of blue-coated men sank into the ground; hands shifted rocks to
give good firing rests and make improvised sangars. The splatgun came bounding
up under the hands of its enthusiastic crew, one wheel crunching over the
Brigadero woman's legs before the weapon settled into the depression behind the
boulder. That put its muzzle at waist height above the ground.
"Ah, good,"
the artillery corporal in charge of it said. He noticed the gold-chased dagger
and pulled it out, wiping the blade on the girl's stockinged leg and checking
the metal of the blade by flicking it with a thumbnail before sticking the
knife into his boot-top.
Raj moved a few meters to
another boulder, sat and uncorked his canteen. "The 7th and the Skinners
will drive them to us," he said, half to himself. From the volume of fire,
within a few minutes.
"Drive them to us,
sir?" the lieutenant said. "The 7th is finally doing the 5th a
favor?" His color was returning, a little.
Raj looked over at the
boulder, where the gunners were piling head-sized stones in front of their
weapon. They'd tossed the bodies out to have more room; the girl's long black
hair hid what was left of her face.
"Nobody's doing
anybody any favors here today, Lieutenant," he said. "Nobody."
"Here theyuns come,
tall's storks n' thick as grass!"
* * *
Kaltin Gruder had a girl
on the saddlebow before him when he rode up to the command-station at the exit
to the crater. That might have been expected—although it was a bit early for an
officer as conscientious as Gruder to be looting, with the odd shot still going
off behind him. Except that she was about eight years old, a huge-eyed creature
with braided tow-colored hair in a bloodied shift.
"Took her away from
a Skinner," he said, at Raj's raised eyebrows, his voice slightly
defensive.
Embarrassed at impulse
of compassion, something as out of place here as a nun in a knockshop, Raj
supposed. Feelings were odd things. Antin M'lewis had adopted a three-legged
alley cat that spring and lugged it all the way from East Residence.
Gruder shrugged:
"Well, Mitchi"—the slave-mistress Reggiri had given him last
year—"can use a maidservant, or whatever. There, ah, weren't many
prisoners. Most of the Brigaderos civilians killed themselves before we broke
through, when they could tell nobody was getting out."
Raj nodded. That
simplified things for him . . . and for them, come to that, if they felt like
that about it. He could understand that, too.
Gruder was looking
around at the number of bodies lying in the five hundred meters before the
final stop-line the 5th's two companies had established. A D-shape of corpses,
two or three deep in spots, a thick scattering elsewhere.
"Hot work," he
said.
"The
splatguns," Raj said. "We put them on the flanks and had the
Brigaderos in a crossfire; they were worth about another company each, in sheer
firepower on the defensive."
Kaltin frowned, stroking
the whimpering girl's head absently. She clung to the cloth of his uniform
jacket, although the right-hand sleeve was sodden and streaking her bright hair
with blood.
"This was certainly
more like a battle than most of what we've seen this campaign, Messer," he
said. "I've got twenty dead, and as many again badly hurt."
"Ten from the
5th," Raj confirmed. Spirit dump Barholm's cores into the Starless Dark, I
told him to give me forty thousand men. Even thirty thousand—
He sighed and rose,
swinging into Horace's saddle. "Let's see if there's some wheeled
transport for our wounded."
Chief Juluk was riding
up, seven-foot rifle over his shoulder. He looked as if he'd waded in blood,
and quite possibly had; one of the subchiefs behind him had managed to cram his
body into a ball-gown covered in ruffled lace and had a bearded head tied to
his saddlebow by its long hair. That must have been a brave man, to be worth
preserving.
The Skinner looked
around at the carnage. "Bad like us!" he giggled. "You one big
devil, sojer-man. Bad like us!"
Raj felt his head
nodding in involuntary agreement.
no, raj
whitehall, you fight for a world in which there will be no men like him at all.
Or like me, he thought.
Or like me.
"Lion City
next," he said aloud. "Spirit of Man, I hope they have sense
enough to come to terms."
Kaltin had been trying
to disengage the girl's hands so that he could turn her over to an aide, but
she clung desperately and tried to keep him between her and the Skinners.
"What do we do if
they don't accept terms?" he said with professional interest, giving up
the attempt. "We've nothing that'll touch their walls."
"Do?" Raj
said. He reached out and touched the girl's hair with careful tenderness; she
buried her head in Gruder's shoulder. "Anything we have to. Anything at
all."
"Excellent work,
Abdullah," Raj said.
The maps were sketched,
but accurate; street-layouts, the location of listed merchants' and landowners'
mansions, the waterworks, warehouses, estimates of food-reserves, number of men
in the militia and their commanders. A little of it overlapped with the Ministry
of Barbarians' reports, somewhat more with Muzzaf Kerpatik's data from his
merchant friends, but a good deal was new—particularly the information on the
large Colonist community that controlled Lion City's grain trade. He flicked
through; faster than he could read, but Center was looking out from his eyes
and recording. He'd have to go over it again; Center's knowledge was not
accessible to him in really useful form most of the time, not directly. Center
could implant it; without the learning process it was there, but not
understood.
The man bowed, touching
brow and lips and chest; it looked odd, when his appearance was so thoroughly
Southern Territories.
"Saayid," he
said.
"Your family is
still living in that house in the Ox-Crossing, isn't it?" Raj asked.
That was a suburb of
East Residence, outside the walls and across the bay. Abdullah nodded.
"It's yours, and
the grounds," Raj said, and waved away a pro-forma protest. "Don't
deprive me of the pleasure of rewarding good service," he said.
"Thank you,
saayid," Abdullah said. "And now . . . I think the merchant Peydaro
Blanhko—" he touched his chest "—should vanish from the earth. Too
many people will be asking for him."
Raj looked at Suzette as
the Druze left the tent. "Someday I'm going to get the whole story of that
one out of you," he said.
"Not with wild
oxen, my love."
Raj stepped up to the
map and began sketching in the extra data. "No, but I suspect that if I
tickle you around that tiny mole, you'll tell all. . . . Right, that's the
shipyard. Now—"
* * *
The flap of the command
tent had been pinned up, leaving a large three-sided room open to the west. In
full dark the camp outside the walls of Lion City was a gridwork of cooking
fires and shadowed movement; Raj could hear the tramp of feet in the distance,
howling from the dog-lines, and a harsh challenge from a sentry on the rampart.
They can
probably see our fires from the walls, Raj thought, standing
with his hands behind his back; the center of the camp was slightly higher than
the edges, and he could make out the pale color of the city walls.
Lantern-lights starred it. Much brighter was the tall lighthouse, even though
it was on the other side of the city. The light was a carbide lamp backed by
mirrors, but the lighthouse itself was Pre-Fall work, a hundred meters tall.
There were probably
plenty of nervous citizens on the ramparts, besides the civic militia. Looking
out at the grid of cooking fires in the besieger's camp, and thinking of what
might happen in a sack.
Then they'd
bloody well better give up, hadn't they? He turned back to the
trestle table. "First, gentlemen," he said to the assembled officers,
"I'd like to say, well done. We've subdued a province of nearly a million
people in less than two weeks, suffered only minor casualties"—every one
of them unpleasantly major to the men killed and maimed, but that was part of
the cost of doing business—"and your units have performed with efficiency
and dispatch.
"Colonel
Menyez," he went on, "you may tell your infantry commanders that I'm
also pleased with the way they've shaken down. Their men have marched, dug—and
shot, on a couple of occasions—in soldierly fashion."
A flush of real pleasure
reddened Menyez' fair complexion. "I've had them under arms for a full
year and a half or more now," he said. "Sandoral, the Southern
Territories and this campaign. I'd back the best of them against any cavalry,
in a straight stand-up firefight."
Civil Government
infantry usually lived on State farms assigned to them near their garrisons,
and were paid cash only when on field service away from their homes, unlike the
cavalry. The farms were worked by government peons, but it wasn't uncommon in
out-of-the-way units for the enlisted men to be more familiar with agricultural
implements than their rifles. Menyez's own 17th Kelden County Foot had been in
continuous field service since the Komar operation four years ago, and many of
the other infantry battalions since the Sandoral campaign on the eastern
frontier. The fisc and Master of Soldiers' office had complained mightily;
finding regular hard cash for the mounted units was difficult enough.
Raj went on: "I'd
also like to particularly commend Major Clerett for his management of the
preemptive attack over the Waladavir; a difficult operation, conducted with
initiative and skill."
Cabot Clerett nodded.
Suzette leaned to whisper in his ear, and he nodded again, this time letting
free the boyish grin that had been twitching at his control.
"And now, Messers,
we get the usual reward for doing our work."
"More work,
General?" somebody asked.
"Exactly. Lion
City, which we certainly can't leave in our rear while we advance. Colonel
Dinnalsyn?"
The artillery commander
rose and walked to the map board. "As you can see, the city's a rectangle,
more or less, facing west to the sea. Here's the harbor." A carrot-shaped
indentation in the middle with semicircular breakwaters reaching out into the
ocean and leaving a narrow gap for ships.
"The breakwaters,
the lighthouse, and the foundations of the sea walls are adamantine."
Pre-Fall work; the material looked like concrete but was stronger than good
steel, and did not weather. "The walls are about four hundred years old,
but well-maintained—blocks up to two tons weight, height five to ten meters,
towers every hundred-and-fifty meters or so. The main gate was modernized about
a century ago, with two defensive towers and a dog-leg. There are heavy pieces
on the sea walls, and four- and eight-kilogram fortress guns on the walls, some
of them rifled muzzle-loaders firing shell. They outrange our field guns."
"Appraisal,
messer?"
"The sea approaches
are invulnerable. Landward, my fieldpieces could peck at those walls for a
year, even with solid shot. I could run the wheels up on frames or earth ramps
to get elevation and put shells over the walls . . . except that the fortress
guns would outrange my boys. That goes double for the mortars. The only
cheering word is that there's no moat. If you want to bring the walls down,
we'll have to ship in heavy battering pieces—the ones from Fort Wager would
do—and put in a full siege."
Everyone winced—that
meant cross- and approach-trenches, earthworked bastions to push the guns
closer and closer to the walls, artillery duels, then however long it took to
knock a suitable breach. Desperate fighting to force their way through into the
town.
observe, said Center.
* * *
—and powder-smoke nearly
hid the tumbled rabble of the shattered wall. Men clawed their way upward,
jerking and falling as the storm of bullets swept through their ranks. Another
wave drove upward, meeting the Brigaderos troops at the apex of the breach.
There was a brief point-blank firefight, and then the Civil Government soldiers
were through.
They charged, bayonets
levelled and a tattered flag at their head. But beyond the breach was a C of
earthworks and barricades taller than a man, thrown up while the heavy guns
wrecked the stone wall. Cannon bucked and spewed canister into the advancing
ranks-
—and Raj could see Lion
City ringed by circumvallation, lines of trenches facing in and another line
facing out. Beyond the outer line sprawled the camps of the Brigade's relieving
armies, improvised earthworks less neat than the Civil Government's but effective
enough, and stunning in their number.
A sentry leaned against
the parapet of the outer trench. His face had a bony leanness, and it was
tinged with yellow. His rifle slid down and lay at his feet, but the soldier
ignored it; instead he hugged himself and shivered, teeth chattering in his
head.
* * *
"Thank you,
Colonel," Raj said, blinking away the vision. Dinnalsyn resumed his seat
with the gloomy satisfaction of a man who had told everyone what they were
hoping not to hear.
"The
garrison," Raj went on, "consists of a civic militia organized by the
guilds and cofraternities, and the household guards of merchants and
town-dwelling landowners, about five thousand men of very mixed quality, and a
force of Brigaderos regulars of four thousand—they were heavily reinforced
shortly before we landed. Nine thousand, including gunners, behind strong
fortifications. They've ample water in cisterns if we cut the aqueduct, and
this city exports foodstuffs—there's probably enough in the warehouses for a
year, even feeding the Brigaderos' dogs.
"I don't
want to lose either time or men; but at this point, forced to chose, I'll save
time and spend men. Colonel Menyez, start putting together scaling ladders of
appropriate size and numbers for an assault force of six thousand men. As soon
as some are ready, start the following battalions training on them—"
He listed them; about
half and half cavalry and infantry. Everyone winced slightly. "Yes, I
know. We'll try talking them into surrender first."
* * *
Filipe de Roors was alcalle
of Lion City because of a talent for dealing with his peers among the
merchant community. Also because he was very rich, with ships, marble quarries
outside the city and the largest shipyard within, lands and workshops and
sawmills; and because his paternal grandfather had been a member of the
Brigade, which the other merchants thought would help when dealing with the
local brazaz military gentry and the authorities in Carson Barracks. The
post of mayor usually combined pleasure, prestige and profit with only a
modicum of effort and risk.
Right now, de Roors was
silently cursing the day he decided to stand for the office.
After the tunnel gloom
of the main gate, even the orange-red light of a sun not yet fully over the
horizon was bright, and he blinked at the dark shapes waiting. He added another
curse for the easterner general, for insisting on meeting at dawn. The air was
a little chill, although the days were still hot.
"Messer de
Roors?"
De Roors jerked in the
saddle, setting the high-bred Chow he rode to curvetting in a sidle that almost
jostled one of the soldiers' dogs. The Civil Government cavalry mounts didn't
even bother to growl, but the civilian's dog shrank back and whined
submissively.
"Captain Foley, 5th
Descott Guards," the young officer said.
Raj Whitehall's name had
come west over the last few years, and something of the men who accompanied
him. The 5th's, especially, since they had been with him since the beginning;
he recognized the blazon fluttering from the bannerman's staff, crossed sabers
on a numeral 5, and Hell o Zpalata beneath-Hell or Plunder, in
Sponglish. De Roors looked at the smiling, almost pretty face with the
expressionless black eyes and then at the bright-edged hook. The dozen men
behind him sat their dogs with bored assurance; they weren't tasked with
talking to him, and their glances slid across him and his followers with an
utter indifference more intimidating than any hostility.
"This way, if you
please, Messer," the officer said.
Watching the invaders
build their camp had been a combination of horror and fascination from the
walls; like watching ants, but swarming with terrible mechanical precision.
Closer up it was worse. The camp was huge, there must be twenty thousand
people inside, maybe twenty-five, more than half the number in Lion City
itself. A road had been laid from the main highway southeast, graded dirt with
drainage ditches, better than most highways on the Crown Peninsula. Around the
camp was a moat, one and a half meters deep and two across at the top; the
bottom was filled with sharpened stakes. Inside the ditch was a steep-sloped
earthwork of the reddish-brown soil thrown up by the digging, and it was the
height of a tall man. On top of it was a palisade of logs and timbers, probably
taken from the woodlots and cottages that had vanished without trace.
At each corner of the
camp and at the gates was a pentagonal bastion jutting out from the main wall;
the bastions were higher, and their sides were notched. Through the notches
jutted the black muzzles of field guns, ready to add their firepower to the
wall or take any angle in murderous crossfire. The gate bastion had a solid
three-story timber observation tower as well, with the blue and silver
Starburst banner flying from the peak.
All of it had been
thrown up in a single afternoon.
"Ah . . . are you
expecting attack, then?" he asked.
The captain looked at
him, smiling slightly. "Attack? Oh, you mean the entrenchments. No,
messer, we do that every time we camp. A good habit to get into, you
understand."
Spirit.
The escort had shed
traffic along the road to the encampment like a plough through thin soil, not
even needing to shout for the way. Things were a little more crowded at the
gate, although the barricades of spiked timbers were drawn aside; nobody got in
or out without challenge and inspection, and the flow was dense and
slow-moving. De Roors was riding at the head of the little column, with the
officer and banner. A trumpet rang out behind him, loud and brassy. He started
slightly in the saddle, humiliatingly conscious of the officer's polite scorn. Puppy,
he thought. No more than twenty.
Another trumpet answered
from the gate parapet; an interplay of calls brought men out at the double to
line the road on either side and prompt the other travellers with ungentle
haste.
A coffle was halfway
through, and the officer threw up his hand to stop the escort while the long
file of prisoners got out of the way. There were forty or so men, yoked neck to
neck with collars and chains and their hands bound together; many of them were
bandaged, and most were in the remnants of Brigade uniform. The more numerous
women wore light handcuffs, and the children trudging by their stained and
grimy skirts were unbound. None of them looked up as they stumbled by, pushed
to haste by armed and mounted men not in uniform but dressed with rough
practicality.
"Apologies, Messer
Captain," said one, as the captives stumbled into the ditch to let the
troopers through. He didn't seem surprised when Foley ignored him as if he were
transparent.
"Slave
traders," the captain said, when they had ridden through into the camp.
"They follow the armies like vultures."
Maybe that was staged
for my benefit, de Roors thought. The ancient lesson: this is defeat. Avoid it.
But the Brigaderos were real.
Inside the camp was
nothing of the tumult or confusion he'd expected from experience with Brigade
musters. Instead it was like a military city, a regular grid of ditched
laneways, flanked by the leather eight-man tents of the soldiers. Most of them
were still finishing their morning meal of gruel and lentils and thin flat
wheatcakes, cooked on small wrought iron ybatch grills. Every occupied
tent—he supposed some men were off on fatigues and so forth—had two wigwams of
four rifles each before it, leaning together upright with the men's helmets
nodding on them like grain in a reaped field. The men were wiry olive-skinned
eastern peasants for the most part, with cropped black hair and incurious
clean-shaven faces. Individually they didn't look particularly impressive.
Together they had shaken the earth and beaten nations into dust.
The Captain drew closer,
courteously pointing out features: De Roors was uneasily aware that the hook
flashing past his face was sharpened on the inner edge.
"Each battalion has
a set place, the same in every camp. There are the officer's tents—"
somewhat larger than the men's "—and the shrine for the unit colors. This
is the wia erente, the east-west road; the wia sehcond runs
north-south, and they meet in the center of camp, at the plaza commanante, with
the general's quarters and the Star church tent. Over there's the artillery
park, the dog lines—" a thunder of belling and barking announced feeding
time "—the area for the camp followers and soldiers' servants, the—"
De Roors' mind knew the
Brigade's armies were vastly more numerous. His emotions told him there was no
end to this hive of activity. Men marching or riding filled the streets,
traffic keeping neatly to the left and directed at each crossroads by soldiers
wearing armbands marked guardia. Wagon trains, supply convoys, officers
riding by with preoccupied expressions, somewhere the sound of hundreds of men
hammering wood.
The commander's tent was
large but not the vast pavilion he expected; the canvas church across the open
space from it was much bigger, and so was the hospital tent on the other side
of the square.
His escort split and
formed two lines, facing in. The guard at the door of the tent presented arms
to Foley's salute, and the young officer dismounted and stood at parade rest
beside the opened door flap.
"The Heneralissimo
Supremo; Sword-Bearing Guard to the Sovereign Mighty Lord and Sole Autocrat
Governor Barholm Clerett; possessor of the proconsular authority for the
Western Territories; three times hailed Savior of the State, Sword of the
Spirit of Man, Raj Ammenda Halgren da Luis Whitehall!" he called formally,
in a crisp clear voice. Then:
"The Alcalle of
Lion City, Messer Filipe De Roors." A murmur from within. "You may
enter, Messer."
De Roors was dimly
conscious of his entourage being gracefully led away. The tented room within
was lit by skylights above; there was a long table and chairs, and a map-board
with an overhead view of Lion City. Nothing of the splendor that a high Brigade
noble would take on campaign, nothing of what was surely available to
the conqueror of the Southern Territories. Nothing but a short forged-steel
mace inlaid with platinum and electrum, resting on a crimson cushion. Symbol of
the rarely granted proconsular authority, the power to act as vice-governor in
the barbaricum.
The man sitting at the
middle of the table opposite him seemed fairly ordinary at first; certainly his
uniform was nothing spectacular, despite the eighteen-rayed silver and gold
star on either shoulder, orbited by smaller silver stars and enclosed in a gold
band. A tall man, broad in the shoulders and narrow-hipped, with a swordsman's
thick shoulders and wrists. A hard dark face with startling gray eyes, curly
bowl-cut black hair speckled with a few flecks of silver. Looking older than
the young hero of legend—and less menacing than the merciless aggressor the
Squadron refugees and Colonist merchants had described.
Then he saw the eyes,
and the stories about Port Murchison seemed very real.
You've met hard
men before, de Roors told himself. And bargained them into the
ground. He bowed deeply. "Most Excellent General," he said.
* * *
This one could
sell lice to Skinners, Raj thought a few minutes later. A digest of Lion City's
internal organization, constitutional position in the Western Territories, and
behavior in previous conflicts rolled on, spiced with fulsome praise,
references to common religious faith, and earnest good wishes to the Civil
Government of Holy Federation.
"Messer, shut
up," he said quietly.
De Roors froze. He was
plump, middle-aged and soft-looking and expensively dressed, a
five-hundred-FedCred stickpin in his lace cravat. Raj didn't think the man was
consciously afraid of death, not after coming in under a flag of truce and
guarantee of safe-conduct. He knew the impact his own personality had, however,
and that it was magnified in the center of so much obvious power. Yet de Roors
was still bargaining hard. There were more types of courage than those required
to face physical danger, and they were rather less common.
"Contrary to what
you may have heard, messer, not everyone in the Gubernio Civil is in
love with rhetoric. I'll put it very simply: Lion City must open its gates and
cooperate fully with the army of the Civil Government. If you do, I'll not only
guarantee the lives and property of the civilian residents; Lion City will be
freed from external tax levies for five years—and you'll get a fifty-percent
reduction in harbor dues and charges at East Residence."
He leaned forward
slightly. "If you don't . . . they call me the Sword of the Spirit,
messer alcalle, but I'm not the Spirit Itself. If my troops have to
fight their way in, they're going to get out of hand—soldiers always do, in a
town taken by storm." De Roors blanched; a sack was any townsman's worst
nightmare. "Furthermore, in that case I'll have to confiscate heavily for
the customary donative to the men. Those aren't threats, they're analysis.
"Messer, I want Lion
City to surrender peacefully, because I'd prefer to have a functioning port
under my control in the Crown. I will have the city, one way or
another."
De Roors mopped his
face. There was a moment's silence outside as a gong tolled, and then the
chanting of the morning Star Service. Raj touched his amulet but waited
impassively.
"Heneralissimo
supremo, I can't make such a decision on my own initiative." At Raj's
blank lack of expression he stiffened slightly. "This isn't the east,
Excellency, and I'm not an autocrat—and the General of the Brigade couldn't
make a decision like that by himself.
"And there's the
garrison to consider. Usually we have a few hundred regular troops here, enough
to, ah—"
Raj nodded. Keep the
city from getting ideas. Free merchant towns were common on some of the
islands of the Midworld. A garrison reminded the impetuous that Lion City was
on the mainland and accessible to the General's armies.
"After the news of
Stern Isle came through, the General sent three regiments from Old Residence,
more than thirty-five hundred men of his standing troops under High Colonel
Piter Strezman. A famous commander with veteran troops. They won't
surrender."
"Quite a few Brigaderos
around here have," Raj pointed out.
"They weren't
behind strong walls with a year's supplies, your Excellency," de Roors
said. "Furthermore, their families weren't in Old Residence standing
hostage for them."
What a splendid way to
build fighting morale, Raj thought. I'll bet it was Forker came up with that
idea; he's had too much contact with us and went straight from barbarism to
decadence without passing through civilization.
"As you say, this
isn't the east," he said dryly. De Roors flushed, and Raj continued:
"Let's put it this way: you open the gates, and we'll take care of the
garrison."
De Roors coughed into
his handkerchief. Raj raised a finger; one of the HQ servants slid in,
deposited a carafe of water, and departed with the same smooth silence.
"That might be
possible, yes," de Roors said. He drank and wiped his mouth again.
"The problem with that, Excellency, is, ummm, you understand that we're
not encouraged to meddle in military matters, and—might I suggest that Lion
City is of no real importance in itself? If you were to pass on, and either
defeat the main Brigade armies, or take Old Residence, we'd be delighted to
cooperate with you in a most positive way, most positive, you'd have no cause
to complain of our loyalty then. Until then, well, it really would be imprudent
of us to—"
Raj grinned. De Roors
flinched slightly and averted his eyes.
"You mean,"
Raj said, his words hard and cold as the forged iron of a cannon's barrel,
"that if you open the gates and we lose the war later, the Brigade will
slaughter you down to the babes in arms. Quite true. Look at me, messer."
Reluctantly, de Roors'
eyes dragged around again. Raj went on:
"I and my men can't
hedge our bets, messer alcalle; neither can the Brigaderos, and neither
of us will let you hedge, either, and thereby encourage every village
with a wall to try and sit this war out in safety. If you try to straddle this
fence you'll end up impaled on it. No doubt that strikes you as extremely
unfair, and no doubt it is; it's also the way this Fallen world is and will
continue to be until Holy Federation is restored. Which, as Sword of the
Spirit, it is my duty to accomplish."
"I'll certainly,
ah, certainly present your views to my colleagues, Excellency—" de Roors'
fear was breaking close to the surface now, not least from the realization that
what might be a religious platitude in another man was deadly serious intent in
this.
"Oh, you'll do
better than that," Raj said.
* * *
"The man is
mad!" de Roors said, as his party rode back towards the city gates.
Considerably more slowly, as there was no escort to part the traffic ahead of
them this time.
"What will you do,
master?" his chief steward said. The iron collar had come off his neck
many years ago, but some habits remained.
"Prepare to hold a
town meeting," de Roors snarled. "Precisely as the Heneralissimo
supremo demanded."
"Barholm's nephew .
. ." the steward shook his head and leaned closer, putting the dogs close
enough to sniff playfully at each other's ears. "What a hostage!"
De Roors cuffed the man
alongside the head with the handle of his dogwhip. "Shut up. If we touched
one hair on the Clerett's head after giving safe-conduct to address the
meeting, Whitehall would sow the smoking ruins with salt."
He paused, thoughtful;
the other man rubbed the side of his head where the tough flexible bone had
raised a welt.
"And High Colonel
Strezman would nail us up on crosses to look at it; you know how some of these
Brigade nobles are about oaths, and he's worse than most."
"If you say so,
master."
"No, our only hope
is that he'll march on rather than waste time with us . . . if we could open
the gates he'd keep his . . . no, too risky—and the others would never go along
with it, they haven't met him and they don't, they don't—" de Roors shook
his head. "He really believes it, he thinks he's the Sword of the
Spirit."
The chief steward looked
at his patron with concern, the blow forgotten. His fortunes were too closely
linked to the merchant's in any case; they had been so for many years. He had
never seen him so shaken in all that time. De Roors' hands were trembling where
they fumbled with whip and reins.
"Maybe," he
said, trying humor, "he really is, master. The Sword of the Spirit,
that is."
De Roors looked at him
silently. After a while, the steward began to shake as well.
* * *
"He's cheating me
again!" Cabot Clerett broke out. "First he makes a great noise about
rounding up and slaughtering some refugees in a hole, while I was fighting real
Brigade soldiers. Now this!"
I wonder if it's
hereditary? Suzette thought. Barholm Clerett never forgot a slight
either, real or imagined. Men who'd wronged him when he was in his teens had
discovered that with painful finality when he was enchaired as Governor thirty
years later.
"Your uncle might
well feel he's endangering you needlessly," she said in cautious
agreement.
"Oh, it's not
that!" Clerett said. He smiled. "I'm glad you care for my safety, of
course, Suzette. But I can't be too cautious, or . . . It's this mission. He's
going along to spoil any chance I have of a real success."
Suzette sank down beside
him on the bench and took his hand. "Oh, Clerett," she said. "I
thought he was going incognito?"
He took the hand in both
of his. "Sometimes you seem so wise, Suzette, and sometimes so innocent,
like a girl. Of course it'll come out that he went along. And since he's not
covered by name in the safe-conduct, it'll look as if he were doing the
real, the risky work. He'll be the hero, and I'll be the flunky with the
walk-on part."
The young man brooded
for a moment. "And that—that fellow Staenbridge."
"Cabot, you will
have to learn to work with all sorts of men when you're Governor." She
smiled and patted his cheek. "And women, but you'll find that much easier,
I'm sure."
He flushed, grinned, and
raised the hand to his lips. "Thank you. And," he went on,
"you're right about working with all types. Although," he said
thoughtfully, "the first thing I'll do is kill Tzetzas, if Uncle doesn't
do it first. With all he's stolen, it'll fill the fisc nicely."
Suzette nodded.
"You'll make a great Governor, Cabot," she said, her voice warm. Paranoid
ruthlessness is an asset in that job, most of the time.
Cabot half-rose from the
bench, and dropped to one knee. "Oh, Suzette," he said, his voice
suddenly stumbling over itself. "You're the only one who really understands.
Could I—could I have something of yours, to carry into battle? A pledge . .
."
A few of the oldest
stories, old even before the Fall, told of such things. Suzette reached into a
pocket of her campaign overalls and drew out a handkerchief. Cabot Clerett
received it as if it were a holy relic, a circuit board or rolldown screen,
then tucked it into an inner pocket of his uniform jacket.
"Thank you,"
he breathed.
I wonder, she thought,
as he left, if he minds that it's used?
Probably not. In fact,
that might make it seem more valuable. She shook her head. They let that boy
read too much old poetry, she thought. Being so close to the Chair could
restrict a child's social contacts. Far too much.
* * *
The final kilometer or
so of the main road into Lion City was paved. The original surface had been
stone blocks of uniform size set in mortar from the time the Civil Government
ruled this area; that had been long before the development of coal mining made
concrete cheap enough to use for surfacing. When one side wore too much under
the continual pounding of hooves and paws and wheels, the blocks could be
turned over, leveled on a bed of gravel and remortared into place. That had
happened often enough for the remaining to be lumpy from having been turned
several times. Holes in the paving had been patched, with flagstones and spots
of brick and gravel set in cement.
The paws of the
detachment's mounts made a thud-scuff sound on the hard, slightly uneven
surface. Light from the setting sun cast their shadows behind them, and a
blackness from the walls and gates loomed ahead. The arch of the gate glowed
yellow with the coal-oil lanterns hung within the arch; that light glinted off
edged metal within.
"This is extremely
foolish of you, Whitehall," Gerrin Staenbridge said.
They were both riding
behind the color party, dressed in ordinary troopers' uniforms with the 1st
Lifeguards' Vihtoria O Muwerti and leaping sicklefoot on the shoulder
flashes, and Senior Sergeant chevrons on the sleeves. Suzette's retainer
Abdullah had given them a few tricks, a gauze bandage liberally sprinkled with
chicken blood for the side of Raj's face, and two rubber pads to alter the
shape of Gerrin's. Mostly they relied on the fact that few outside their own
force had ever seen them closely, and more important, that few men of
importance looked at common soldiers. They could both give a fairly
convincing imitation of a pair of long-service Descotter NCOs. Which was, Raj
reflected, probably what they'd both have been, if they'd been born
yeoman-tenants instead of to the squirerarchy.
Raj clicked his tongue.
"I need to know exactly what we're up against, and if we can find a deal
acceptable to the citizens, or most of them."
From de Roors'
description, Lion City was accustomed to a fair degree of autonomy in internal
affairs. The ways they had of settling policy sounded odd—more like a
prescription for standing in circles shouting and waving their arms and hitting
each other—but that was the way most large towns were managed, here in the
west.
"We need the active
support of the townsmen," he went on, "if we're going to get anything
done with inadequate forces. Now, you coming along is stupid. You're my
right-hand man."
"Exactly."
Gerrin's grin was white in the shadows. "Look, you're the one who'd invade
Hell and fight the demons of the Starless Dark if Barholm said he needed the
ice for his drinks. Damned if I am going to be left holding the ball if
they shorten you, Whitehall. I know my limitations; we all should. I'm a better
than competent commander, but I do best as a number two—when you found me, I
was so bored I'd nothing better to do than diddle the battalion accounts, for
the Spirit's sake. You might have some chance of pulling this campaign off; I
wouldn't, and worse still, I might be expected to try. Jorg or Kaltin could
hold the Crown easily enough, with the Expeditionary Force—and nobody would
expect them to do more."
Raj nodded tightly. The real
problem was that Barholm might send someone like Klostermann out to take
over if he died . . . but he certainly couldn't win by playing safe, in any
event. They fell silent as the embassy approached the gate.
There was an exchange of
courtesies at the entrance; then General's Dragoons fell in around the Civil
Government party. Raj looked them over, a perfectly natural thing for his
persona to do. They were well mounted and well-equipped, with sword, two
revolvers and a percussion rifle-musket in a boot on the left side of the
saddle; they all wore similar lobster-tail helmets and grey-and-black uniforms.
The officers wore breastplates as well, and the unit had maneuvered neatly to
shake itself out beside his party. Altogether better-ordered than the Squadrones
had been, and just as tough; the Squadrones had been down from the
Base Area only a century and a half, but they'd spent most of that sitting on
their plundered estates watching the serfs work with no strong enemies near
them. The Brigade had an open frontier to the north, exposed to the interior of
the continent. These men all looked as if they'd seen the titanosauroid more
than once.
If their leadership were
as good as their troops, we'd be fucked, Raj thought.
correct, Center acknowledged, enemy weakness in that regard was one factor
among many in my decision to activate my plan in your time, raj whitehall.
The main gate of Lion
City was a massive affair, four interlinked towers in pairs on either side of
the passageway with a squarish platform twenty feet thick joining them at
third-story level. The main defenses were old-style curtain walls with round
towers, running straight into the ground. Up until a couple of centuries ago
cannon had been too feeble to threaten a stout stone wall, so defenses went
high, to deter attempts at storming. Since heavy battering guns came into use
the preferred solution was to dig a broad deep moat and sink the walls on the
other side until they were barely above the outer lip. That way little of the
wall was exposed to artillery, it could be backed with heavy earthworks and so
support massive guns of its own, and a storming force still had to climb out of
the moat and up the protected wall. Someone had done some work on the gate,
though: the tower bases were sloped backward at a sharp angle to shed solid
shot.
The gateway looked like
a compromise, avoiding the horrendous expense of modernizing the whole city
wall, which was still perfectly adequate against pirates or raiding savages.
Raj looked up with professional interest as they passed in; first heavy timber
gates strapped with iron and over half a meter thick, then a portcullis of
welded iron bars thick as a man's arm. The arched ceiling overhead held
murder-holes—gaps for shooting and dropping unpleasant things on anyone coming
through—and there was a dogleg in the middle of the passageway to further
hinder invaders.
Eyeballs glittered in
the torchlight as the embassy came through at a walk; the gaslights common in
the east were unknown here, but there were enough burning pine-knots to
compensate tonight. Somebody had been busy, and piles of flimsy lath marked
where the reserved area within the walls had been swept clear of sheds and
shacks. The citizens crowded it, waiting to see their fates decided; there were
more all along the road to the central plaza, which was not far from the gate.
The usual buildings stood around it; a cathedron, here with the round planet
rather than the rayed Star at its dome, a porticoed city hall, mansions. A
speaker's podium had been erected in the center around the sculptured fountain,
and several thousand men stood in front of it. Pretty well all men, as opposed
to the crowd back along the streets, and many of them armed.
He sized up the group on
the dais. A tall thin-featured man in three-quarter armor; that would be High
Colonel Strezman. Blade features framed by long white hair streaked with black,
penetrating blue eyes, and about a company of his dragoons on the pavement
below, apart from a clump of officers. The syndics of the town had as many of their
militia with them, and they stood on the opposite side of the
podium—interesting evidence of a potential split. The heads of the guilds were
there as well, each with his entourage behind him and supporters clumped on the
cobblestones—merchants, artisans, and big clumps of ragged dezpohblado laborers
ranged beside the laborers' chiefs. Many of the individual magnates had their
guards with them as well, variously equipped; there was a big clump of men in
robe and ha'ik, or turbans and long coats and sashes, also armed. The Colonial
merchants.
Sure to be
against us, Raj thought. The Colony and the Civil Government
routinely used economic sanctions and outright attacks on each others' resident
citizens as part of their ongoing struggle.
De Roors came to the front
of the podium as soon as the greeting rituals were out of the way. He raised
his hands to still the low murmurs and spoke:
"Citizens of Lion
City! We are here to listen to the embassy of General Whitehall and the Civil
Government army camped outside the walls of our city. To do us honor, General
Whitehall has sent the noblest of his officers to treat with us; none other
than the Most Excellent Cabot Clerett, nephew to the Governor of the Civil
Government himself!"
Another long rustle and
hum from the crowd. "As courtesy and the ancient customs of our community
demand, The Most Excellent Major Clerett will speak first, listing the terms
and demands of the Civil Government. The heads of the guilds, and High Colonel
Strezman, will reply and the guilds will express their will to the
syndics."
More ceremonies
followed; blessings from Star Spirit and This Earth priests—the liturgies
differed only in detail, but the Brigade cult was given pride of place—before
Cabot Clerett stepped to the speaker's position.
He paused to remove his
helmet and tuck it under one arm, then lifted the other palm out, slowly. It
was an effective gesture, but he had the benefit of training by the best
rhetoricians available in East Residence. He looked down on the sea of upturned
faces, face underlit by the torches that brought out highlights in his curly
black hair, face stern and sharp-boned.
"People of Lion
City!" he called, in a voice pitched slightly higher than usual to carry.
Training put the full power of strong young lungs behind it, and kept it from
sounding shrill; his Spanjol was accented but fluent. "Hear the terms
which are most generously granted to you; for wisdom lies not in rash fury, but
in reasoned council and moderation. I offer—"
Gerrin stirred behind
him; that was supposed to be General Whitehall offers. The young
emissary was sticking to the agreed text, but substituting his own name or
something like "the Civil Government" or "His Supremacy, my
uncle" whenever Raj's name was called for. They were flanking Cabot to the
left and right and a step to the rear, leaving the bannerman directly behind
him to show the Civil Government's flag. Heavy silk hissed against the polished
stanauro wood of the pole; the breeze was from the ocean, carrying scents of
tar and stagnant water and a hint of clean seawater beyond. Out beyond the
seawall to their left red lights glowed, reflected furnace-light on the smoke
from the war-steamers' furnaces.
Raj kept his attention
on the crowd and the leaders, checking only that the terms were as he'd
specified. Cabot's voice rose in an excellent imitation of passion at the
conclusion; Bartin Foley had written it, cribbing from his studies of Old
Namerique classical drama. Not much of that had survived the Fall—most of the
stored data had died with the computers—but fragments had been written down
from memory by the first generation, and fragments of that had survived the
eleven hundred years since. He finished the promises; now on to the threats.
"Therefore, you men
of Lion City, take pity on your town, and on your own people, while yet my
soldiers—" Cabot's voice rolled out.
"My soldiers,
you little fastardo?" Gerrin muttered. His voice was almost
inaudible, but Raj was very close. Close enough to nudge the other man with his
boot unnoticed.
"—are in my
command; avoid deadly murder, spoil and villainy, such as accompany a sack;
yield peacefully. For if not, look to see the blood-drenched soldiers with foul
hands defile the thighs of your shrill-shrieking daughters; your fathers taken
by the silver beards, and their most reverend heads dashed to the walls; your
naked infants spitted on bayonets; while the mad mothers with their howls break
the clouds in anguish!"
Cabot stopped, clicked
heels and stepped back. The sea of faces rippled as men turned to speak to
their neighbors. A voice called out from the ranks of the laborers:
"It ain't our war!
This General Raj, he's treated peaceful people right well out in the country,
from what they say. What have we ever got from the Brigade but taxes and a boot
up our bums? Open the gates!"
"Open the gates!
Open the gates!" A claque took up the chant.
Out of the corner of his
eye Raj could see High Colonel Strezman's tight-held jaw. He murmured an order
to an aide, who hopped off the podium; seconds later a squad of Brigade
soldiers was heading for the man who'd spoken. There was a moment's commotion
as the laborers closed ranks, and then thrust the man scrambling backward
between their legs to lose himself in the crowd. Before the rifle-butts could
force a way, a squad of civic militia shifted nearer. The Brigadero officer
in charge of the squad looked over his shoulder at Strezman, then turned his
men around and retired, followed by jeers and catcalls, but not by rocks.
Not yet, Raj thought.
Strezman shifted, and de
Roors led him to the speaker's position.
"Silence!" he
shouted.
When the murmuring grew,
Strezman signed to the aide and a ten-man section of dragoons threw their
rifles to their shoulders and fired into the air. And immediately reloaded, Raj
noted.
Silence came at last.
"Civilians of Lion City," Strezman began. His Spanjol was more
heavily accented than Cabot's had been, with a Namerique clang to it.
Not too tactful,
Raj thought. Civilian meant "second-class citizen" at best in the
Brigade lands. Only slightly more polite than grisuh, civvie.
"In his
wisdom," Strezman continued, "His Mightiness, General Forker, Lord of
Men—" that fell flat, and he ignored scattered jeers.
I imagine
Strezman isn't too thrilled about Forker's little hostage play, Raj thought. The
man seemed to be something of a soldier, in his way, and the intelligence
report indicated he was a Brigade noble of the old school.
"—has sent a strong
garrison to defend your city from the butcher Whitehall and his host."
More murmurings from the crowds, and a voice called:
"Yeah, he butchered
a whole lot of you dog-sucker barbarians down in the Southern
Territories." Another, from a different section of the crowd:
"And restored Holy
Federation Church, you heretic bastard!"
The crowd's growl was
ugly. The militia shuffled, looking to the syndics. The armed retainers of the
rich and the Colonists closed around their masters. Spots of red burned on
Strezman's cheeks; this time there was a flash of armored gauntlet as he gave
his orders. The Brigade troops marched out in front of the podium and brought
their rifles up to face the crowd in a menacing row. Men surged away from their
aiming point.
De Roors walked hastily
to the High Colonel's side and waved his arms for silence. Strezman gave
him a curt nod and went on, as the soldiers went to port arms.
"We have four
thousand men, all veterans of the northern frontier, and plenty of powder and
shot for small arms and the cannon on the walls both. Whitehall can't stay here
long; the Brigade's armies are mustering, and they outnumber his pitiful force
by five or ten to one. Unless he moves, he'll be caught between the relieving
armies and the walls of Lion City."
Accurate enough,
Raj thought. If hostile. He hoped there weren't too many more like
Strezman in the Brigade's upper ranks.
"Whitehall will
have to march away soon, if we defy him. He doesn't have heavy guns either.
"The Brigade—His
Mightiness the General—have allowed you a high degree of self-government within
these walls," Strezman went on; from his tone, he thought that a mistake.
"In order that the walls and your civic militia could be of help in time
of war. That you are even entertaining this madman Whitehall's offer is a sign
that policy may have been mistaken. If you were so foolish as to accept
it, after the war is over and the Civil Government's little force is crushed, you
will be next. His Mightiness won't leave one stone standing on another, or
one citizen alive. Furthermore, I and my command will fight regardless of your
decisions, so all that treason would gain you is to transfer the battle from
outside the defenses to your own hearths."
Strezman stood for a
moment, the firelight breaking off his armor, then stepped back. "Carry
on," he said to de Roors; gesture and voice were full of contempt for
civilian sloppiness and indecision.
Speaker followed
speaker; most seemed to be for holding out, although quite a few hedged so
thoroughly that it was impossible to tell which course they favored. A few were
so incoherent or drunk that the maundering was inadvertent. At last the
representative of the Colonists took the podium; he was a plump man in a
dazzling turban of torofib, clasped with a ruby and a spray of iridescent
sauroid feathers. A scimitar and pistol were thrust through the sash of his
long coat, but the voice that addressed the crowd was practiced and smooth.
"Fellow
citizens," the Colonist began. "Let me assure you that the
Jamaat-al-Islami—"
League of Islam, Raj
translated mentally. That would be the local association of Colonists.
"—will fight by
your side. We know this banchut Whitehall, our kin have told us of
him—bandit, murderer, defiler of holy places! Our warehouses contain enough
food to feed the whole city for a year and a day. There is nothing to fear from
siege. We must defy the infi—the invader Whitehall. Were his followers within
the walls, no man's goods would be safe, nor the honor of his women."
A man walked into the
light below the podium; he was dressed in workman's clothes, old but not
ragged, and there were bone buckles on his shoes. An artisan, not wealthy but
no dezpohblado either.
"Your goods will be
safe, you mean, Haffiz bin-Daud," he said. "I—" de Roors was
making motions. "I'm one of the Sailmaker's Syndics, Filipe de
Roors," the man on the pavement snapped. "I've as much right to talk
as any riche hombe." His face went back to the Arab. "And as
for the honor of our women, how safe was Therhesa Donelli from your man Khaled
al'Assad?"
Another of the
dignitaries on the dais pushed forward; he was an old man, richly dressed, with
a nose like a beak and wattles beneath his chin. He waved his three-cornered
hat angrily.
"Mind your place,
Placeedo, and stick to the issues," he warned. "That case was settled
and compensation awarded."
The sailmaker Placeedo
crossed his arms and looked over his shoulder. Voices out of the darkness spoke
for him:
"Compensation? Our
daughters ain't hoors!"
"You riche
hombes is in bed with the Spirit-deniers and the barb heretics too!"
"Riche hombe bastards
squeeze us and use the barb soldiers if we complain; now they expect us to die
to keep them in silk."
"Yes, and they
bring in slaves and peons to do skilled work against the law, to break our
guilds!"
Evidently that was a
long-standing sore point; the bellow of the crowd rilled the night, and de
Roors had to wave repeatedly to reduce the noise enough that he could be heard.
"Citizens! An army
is at our gates, and we must not be divided among ourselves. Syndic Placeedo
Anarenz, is there anything more you wish to say?"
"Yes, alcalle de
Roors. My question is addressed to syndic Haffiz bin-Daud of the Jamaat-al-Islami.
He says his countrymen have enough in the warehouses. Will he give his word
of honor that the grain will be dispensed free during the siege? Or even at the
prices of a month ago? Will the city feed the families of men thrown out of
work because the gates are closed and the Gubernio Civil's fleet
blockades the harbor? There are men here whose women and children go hungry
tonight because trade is disturbed. Poor men have no savings, no warehouses of
food and cloth and fuel. Winter is coming, and it's hard enough for us in
peacetime. Well?"
Haffiz made a
magnificent gesture. "Of course we—"
Before he could speak
further, a rush of other men in turbans and robes surrounded him, arguing
furiously and windmilling their arms. From the snatches of hissed Arabic Raj
could tell that whatever politic generosity he'd had in mind was not
unanimously favored by his compatriots.
The sailmaker's syndic
smiled and turned, gesturing to the crowd. A chant came up:
"Open the gates!
Open the gates!" Anarenz grinned broadly; that turned into a frown and
frantic waving as other calls came in on the heels of the first.
"Kill the rich!
Kill the rich! Dig up their bones!"
"Down with the
heretics!"
This time a scattering
of rocks did fly. Amid the uproar and confusion, Raj saw the old syndic go to
the edge of the platform. He gave an order to a man standing there, a Stalwart
mercenary in a livery uniform. The man slipped away into the night. A few
seconds later, something came whirring in out of the dark and went thuck into
Anarenz' shoulder-blade: it was a throwing axe, the same type that Captain
Lodoviko had used to save his life back on Stern Isle. This one would end the
sailmaker's, unless he got to a healer and soon.
Shots rang out, and the
voices rose to a surf-roar of noise. Many of the dignitaries on the podium deck
dove to the floorboards, and some ran around the other side of the fountain
that protruded through the middle, taking shelter behind its carvings of
downdraggers and sea sauroids. Cabot Clerett stayed statuesquely erect, his
cloak held closed with one hand. As would have been expected of any escort, Raj
and Staenbridge closed up around the bannerman and the officer.
"This may be about
to come apart," Gerrin said tightly.
Raj shook his head, eyes
moving over the tossing sea of motion below. The militia had—mostly—turned
about and faced the crowd with their weapons. Bands of house retainers made
dashes into the edge of it, arresting or clubbing men down, apparently
according to some sort of plan; he saw Anarenz carried off in a cloak by a
dozen men who were apparently his friends, and the crowd slowing pursuit enough
for him to escape.
"I think they'll
get things back under control," Raj said.
"Silence in the
ranks," Cabot said distantly, his eyes fixed on something beyond the
current danger.
A kettledrum beat, and
there was a massed thunder of paws. A column of Brigaderos cavalry burst into
the square, with men scattering back ahead of it; they spread out along one
edge facing in, their dogs snarling in a long flash of white teeth and their
swords bright in their hands.
Silence gradually
returned, with the massed growling a distant thunder in the background. De
Roors stepped up to the podium. "Let the vote be tallied!" he said.
It went swiftly; votes
were by guild, with the rich merchant and manufacturer guilds casting a vote
each, as many as the mechanics' organizations with their huge memberships, and
the single vote of the laborers. Those whose leaders were absent were voted
automatically by de Roors, as alcalle of the town.
He turned to Cabot and
bowed. "Most Excellent, with profound regret—I must ask you to leave our
city. March on, for Lion City holds its walls against all attack."
* * *
"Move it up to a
trot," Raj said, as soon as they were beyond the gate.
"Sir," Cabot
replied stiffly. "Our dignity—"
"—isn't worth our
asses," Raj said, grinning. "Trot, and then gallop, if you please,
messers."
He touched his heels to
Horace. The Civil Government banner flared out above them, the gold and silver
of the Starburst glowing beneath the moons.
Fatima cor Staenbridge
twisted her hands together in the waxed-linen apron that covered the front of
her body. The operating tent was silent with a deep tension, a dread that knew
what it awaited. Doctors, priests and Renunciate Sisters, waited with their assistants
beside the tables; beside them were laid out saws and chisels, scalpels and
curiously shaped knives, catgut and curved needles and piles of boiled-linen
bandages. Jars of blessed distilled water cut with carbolic acid waited beside
the tables, and more in sprayers along with iodine and mold-powder. And bottles
of liquid opium, with the measuring-glasses beside them. Most battalions had
priest-healers attached. The ones with the Expeditionary Force had served
together long enough that General Whitehall had organized them into a corps
under a Sysup-Abbot.
"Will it be
bad?" Mitchi asked. "Kaltin told me not to worry."
Kaltin Gruder's
concubine was about nineteen, with long bright-red hair now bound up on her
head; the milk complexion, freckles and bright-green eyes showed it was
natural. She and Fatima waited at the head of the other helpers; Civil
Government armies had fewer camp followers than most, and those led by Raj
Whitehall fewer still—one servant to every eight cavalry troopers, others for officers,
and the inevitable spill-over of tolerated non-regulation types. Raj insisted
that everyone without assigned military duties do something useful, and
Suzette had organized the more reliable women for hospital duty in the past two
campaigns, with Fatima as her deputy.
"It will be worse
than last year," Fatima said. Mitchi had been a gift from the merchant
Reggiri just before the Expeditionary Force left Stern Isle for the Squadron
lands. The casualties in the Southern Territories had been light. Light for the
Civil Government force.
"I hope, not as bad
as Sandoral," Fatima went on. Softly: "I pray, not so bad as
that." The tubs at the foot of the operating tables had been full that
day, full of amputated limbs.
She knew the litany now,
from experience; bring the wounded in, and sort them. A dog-sized dose of opium
for the hopeless, and take them to the terminal section. Bandage the lightly
wounded and put them aside for later attention. For the serious ones—probe for
bullets, debride all foreign matter out, suture arteries and veins, disinfect
and bandage. Sew flaps of muscle back into place and hope they healed straight.
Compound fractures were common, bone smashed to splinters by the heavy fat lead
slugs most weapons used. For those, amputate and hope that gangrene didn't set
in. Dose with opium before surgery, but there was no time to wait and sometimes
it didn't work. Then strong hands must hold the body down to the table, and the
surgeon cut as fast as possible, racing shock and pain-induced heart failure as
well as blood loss.
A hand tugged at
Mitchi's sleeve. "Is there going to be shooting?" a small voice asked
in Namerique.
They both looked down in
surprise. It was the girl Kaltin had brought back. She'd been very quiet and
given to shivering fits and nightmares and didn't like to be alone.
"Not near here,
Jaine," Fatima said gently. "We safe here."
The child blinked,
looking around as if fear had woken her from a daze. "There was a lot of
shooting when Mom and Da went away," she said. "We left the farm and
went to a place in the woods with a lot of other people. Da said we'd be safe
there, but then there was shooting and they went away. They told me to wait and
hide under the bundles."
Mitchi met Fatima's eyes
over the child's head, then lifted her into her lap. "Shhh, little
one," she said, holding her close.
"They're not coming
back, are they?" Jaine asked solemnly. Fatima shook her head. The child
sighed.
"I didn't think
they were, really," she said. Her face twitched. "Then the Skinner
came. I thought Skinners only came and got bad children, but I wasn't
bad. I stayed real quiet like Da said. Honest I did." Tears began to leak
out of the corners of the blue eyes.
Allah—Spirit of
Man—why now? Fatima thought. Or maybe it was a good time. Gerrin wasn't
out of the city yet. Men were watching for the embassy to reach safety, that
was the signal. Raj and Gerrin were in there in disguise, among the enemy.
Anything was better than waiting with nothing else to think of.
The child went on:
"He didn't skin me and eat me the way Skinners are supposed to eat bad
children. He tried to get up on top of me as if I were a big grown-up
lady." Her voice was still quiet, but a little shrill. "He hurt me."
"Nobody can hurt
you here, little sparrow," Fatima said, stroking the girl's face.
"I know,"
Jaine nodded. "Master Gruder came in and shot him." Her face relaxed
slightly. "Then he kicked him off and shot him lots more times."
The two adults exchanged
another glance; nobody had told them that.
The noise of the camp was
subdued, but the roar from the city was like distant surf. Fatima shivered
again, remembering the sound when the 5th broke into El Djem like water over a
crumbling dam. It had been dawn then, just the start of another day like every
other. The day when everything changed.
A few minutes passed and
then Jaine spoke again, smearing the half-dried tears off her face with the
heels of hands: "Are you slaves?" she said, and raised her hand to
touch her neck. Mitchi understood the gesture: Brigade law required chattel
slaves to wear metal collars.
"Yes, I am—we don't
have to wear collars in the Gubernio Civil," she said. "Fatima
used to be a slave, but she's a freedwoman now."
The girl frowned.
"Am I a slave now too?" she said. "Da—Da used to hit the slaves
sometimes."
Mitchi hesitated. Fatima
nodded and spoke soothingly. "You belong to Messer Gruder, but
don't worry, little one. He's a very kind man. If you're a good girl and do
what Mitchi and Messer Gruder tell you, you'll be fine."
Out through the entrance
flap of the big tent, she could see a rocket arch into the night. It burst with
a loud pop and a red spark.
"Mitchi, take Jaine
over to the children's area," Fatima said tightly. It has begun.
The child began a pout;
Fatima forestalled it. "I want you to help look after little Bartin and
baby Suzette, all right?" she said.
Jaine nodded, and put
her hand in Mitchi's.
From beyond the
encampment's trench, man-made thunder boomed. Something in Fatima's stomach
clenched as she recognized the sound, but her primary emotion was relief.
Gerrin would be safely beyond range; that had been the signal.
* * *
"Let's go,
men!" Colonel Jorg Menyez called. "Show the dog-boys what you're made
of. Forward the 17th!"
The six hundred men of
the 17th Kelden County Foot rose from the ground and roared, dashing forward to
the bugle's call. They kept their alignment, running in a pounding lockstep;
the lines wavered but didn't break up into clots as untrained men might have.
The colonel ran with them, under the flapping banner. Ahead, the southside
walls of Lion City gleamed pale under the moons. Even in the dark of night, it
had been a major accomplishment to get so many men so close to the defenses
without attracting attention. Even militiamen, however, weren't going to
overlook two battalions of men running full-tilt toward them. Not even with the
surf-roar of the assembly-cum-riot still sounding through the night.
A ladder passed him, on
the shoulders of the grunting, panting men who bore it. Their boots struck the
ground in unison, free hands pumping in rhythm. The stolid peon faces were set
in grimaces of effort, the rictus of men who are pacing themselves strictly by
the task in hand. The colonel was only a little over thirty and in hard
condition, but it was far from easy to keep up with his men.
Spirit, he thought. He'd
seen men run less eagerly toward a barrel of free wine.
* * *
Major Hadolfo Zahpata
swung his saber forward. "Dehfenzo Lighon!" he called. Defend
the Faith. The motto of the 18th Komar Borderers.
"Aur! Aur!"
his men screamed, as they advanced at the run. "Despert Staahl!"
It was the ancient war-cry of the southern borders of the Civil Government: Awake
the iron!
Zahpata grinned as he
ran, feeling the chainmail neck-guard of his helmet beat on his shoulders.
Jorg's idea had been a good one; he could hear officers and non-coms shouting
to the men:
"Will you let
infantry reach the wall ahead of you?"
The ladders they carried
were ten meters long and broad enough for two men abreast to climb. Hasty
training had taught the men to relieve the squads bearing the burden of the
clumsy, heavy things while at full speed. That way they could be carried all
the way to the wall at a running pace, despite their weight.
Zahpata grinned again,
this time a baring of the teeth that had nothing to do with amusement. Two
battalions of grown men were racing toward guns stuffed with grapeshot and exposing
their defenseless bodies to enemies protected by a stone wall, for the honor of
seeing who would put a cloth flag on top of that wall first.
Faith is a wonderful
thing, he thought, legs pumping. I have faith in you, Dinnalsyn. Do not
disappoint me.
* * *
"Now!"
Grammeck Dinnalsyn said, and clapped heels to his dog.
Thirty guns sprang
forward; they had approached at a slow walk, with muffled wheels and brightwork
covered by rags. Now they pounded forward at a lunging gallop, the crews
leaning forward in the saddle. At twelve hundred meters from the walls they
halted and swung into battery. Teams wheeled, so sharply that they were just
short of turning the guns over in a disastrous spin. Sparks shot out into the
night as the men on the caissons pulled brake levers. Dogs squatted on their
haunches to shed momentum as soon as the muzzles turned; there was a man on the
last dog in each team as well as the first, and he pulled the cotter pin
linking the chain traces to the caisson. The teams trotted forward another five
meters, enough to be out of the way but close enough for a quick getaway, then
crouched to the ground in their traces.
The gunners jumped down
and flung themselves at their weapons; an iron clangor filled the air as they
unlocked and pulled the locking rod and lifted each trail off its limber. This
time they did not let the ends of the trails thump to the ground. The caissons
each carried two iron triangles tonight, with one side curved inward. They
hammered them home with stakes, one in front of each wheel, and then hauled the
wheels upward and held them to the top of the curve. Others swung hasty picks
and shovels behind, digging pits for the end of the pole trails. When the
trails dropped into the holes, the guns could not run backward down the iron
surfaces. Breachblocks clanged and rang as the loaders shoved home rounds and
levers pushed the blocking wedges behind them.
Dinnalsyn winced as he
cursed his men to speed. This was one way to get extra range or elevation out
of field guns, whose normal job required long flat trajectories. It also
subjected the frames to wracking stresses, because they weren't able to recoil
backwards in the usual fashion. We ought to have more howitzers, light ones,
he thought: the stubby high-elevation weapons were officially considered
useful mainly for siege work, and built heavy in large calibres.
Other gunners were
setting up heavy carbide lamps on tripods, with curved mirrors behind them;
signalling equipment in normal times, but modified for tonight. The beams came
on with a hiss and sputter and chemical stink, bathing the ramparts in harsh
yellow-white light. It shone eerily on the backs of hundreds of Skinners who
were loping their dogs past the artillery, then dismounting and ramming their
cross-topped shooting sticks into the dirt.
Similar floodlights were
opening up on the city walls, amid a chaotic noise of drums and horns and
hand-wound sirens. A cannon boomed with a long white puff of smoke, and a solid
iron ball ploughed into the ground a few dozen meters in front of the foremost
troops. Dinnalsyn swept his saber downward.
"Fire,"
he shouted.
A huge POUMPF, thirty
times repeated. Shells ripped out over the heads of the troops—contact fused,
nobody was in a mood for accidents tonight. Some sailed over the wall, to raise
flickering crashes in the city beyond. Others plowed short, gouting up
poplar-shapes of dirt and rock. Most hit the wall; the explosive charges did no
more than scar it, but they would shake the men on the firing platforms above.
A few struck exactly where aimed, along the row of gunports and the
crenellations of the wall itself. One was uncannily lucky, and punched right
through a gunport just as the cannon there was about to fire. A giant belch of
yellow flame shot out through the port as the piled ammunition beside the gun
went up, and chunks of stone flew skyward. Bits and pieces of the crew did as
well; the cast-iron barrel probably went out backwards off the wall.
Some of the gunners
cheered. "Man your fucking guns," Dinnalsyn screamed, trotting
his dog down the gunline. "That was a fucking miracle."
Cottony clouds of
brimstone-stinking gunsmoke drifted around the position. The first few ranging
shots were critical, because after that you were often firing blind into your
own smoke.
"Mark the fall of
shot, it's right in front of you. Battery three—you're all short. Elevation,
elevation, Spirit eat your eyes!"
The crews in question
spun the elevating screws beneath their weapons. Their next salvo was high,
screeching at head-level over the crenellations and into the city. The guns
bucked wildly on the pivot-lever formed by the trail, swinging nearly upright
with the muzzles pointing at the sky, then slamming back down with an
earsplitting anvil chorus of iron-shod wheels on iron frames. Every time he
heard it, Dinnalsyn felt his hand clench involuntarily on the hilt of his
saber, waiting for the loud unmusical twang-crunch of a trail breaking,
a wheel shattering or—Spirit forbid—a trunnion cracking and sending the barrel
pinwheeling off the carriage and into the crew. Every one of those rounds was
taking more off the service life of the gun than fifty normal firings.
More cannon were firing
from the wall. Solid shot, many of them, and aimed at him. That was the
plan. He had a fair degree of respect for town-militia gunners; they practiced
on fixed pieces with a single range of ground before their muzzles, and they
could get to know both quite well. They didn't have the wide range of skills
and adaptability that the full-time professionals in his crews did, but they
didn't need them. Still, they were amateurs and their instinct would be to
strike at the weapons that were firing at them, not at the far more
dangerous infantry. He couldn't possibly win a counter-battery shoot with the
guns on the walls: they were protected by stone, and his men were as naked as
so many table-dancers in a dockside bar.
He was a sacrificial goat,
by the Spirit.
Ahead of him the
Skinners opened fire; not a volley, but the two-meter rifles were all firing at
a steady four or five rounds a minute. The long muzzle flashes of the giant
sauroid rifles were crimson and white spears through the night; within seconds,
every searchlight on the walls and towers ahead had died. Then the nomad
mercenaries shifted their aim to the firing-slits and gunports; they began
drifting forward to keep out of their own gunsmoke, firing every dozen paces.
The stone sparked and spalled around the targets, but not very often. Most of
the shots were going through, peening off the metal of cannon, ricocheting on
stone, ripping through flesh and shattering bone.
Cannon still boomed from
the ramparts. Some of them were firing round shells whose crude fuses traced
red lines through the night until they burst and showered the ground with
splinters. A roundshot smashed into one of the Civil Government's fieldpieces
with a giant clung sound; the noise of men screaming came a minute
later, as the smashed cannon and the pieces of the roundshot scythed through
the crew. Stretcher-parties were running forward . . .
"Come on,"
he whispered to himself. "Move. Damn you, move." Another
fieldpiece was out of action, canted off the triangular braces with a cracked
trail, toppling backward as the crew dove out of the way.
The first ladder went up
against the wall.
"Maximum
elevation," Dinnalsyn called, loud but calm. The battery commanders
repeated it. "Maximum elevation, three-quarter charge." They'd made
up the charges for that earlier today. Just enough to lob the shells over the
wall and into the cleared space beyond.
* * *
"Come on, lads,
keep it moving!" Jorg Menyez shouted.
Grapeshot plowed through
the ranks near him, near enough to hear the malignant wasp-whine of the lead
balls. Men flopped, shredded by dozens of hits. Others staggered at the edge,
called out in pain, toppled or kept moving forward. A roundshot hit just short
of a file carrying a ladder and skipped forward along the ground, knocking the
men over like bowling-pins . . . except that it shattered legs and ripped them
off at the knee, ten men down and their comrades on the other side of the
ladder untouched except for the torque that slapped the wood out of their
hands. An officer raised his sword to wave his men forward; an instant later he
was staring in disbelief at the stump of his arm, the ragged humerus showing
pink for an instant before the welling blood covered it.
Shit and blood
and sulfur, it's always the same, Jorg thought. He stood with the saber sloped over
his shoulder and the banner of the 17th beside him, watching up and down the
line. There would be a first foothold, and there . . .
"Up with it, up
with it!"
They were below the
walls now. A ladder started to rise. Hand-thrown bombs fell sputtering, one at
the foot of the ladder; it burst and the wood exploded out in splinters. Sickly
yellow light mixed with the red glare of cannon to pick out eyeballs, bared
teeth, the edges of the long bayonets. The cannon above fired continuously,
amid the whirring crash of the Civil Government shells hammering the wall and
then lifting over it. The Skinners were firing all along their support line,
heedless of anything but their aiming points—heedless of the ricochets that
rebounded into the Civil Government soldiers below. Men were shrieking, in pain
or raw terror or a perverse exultation.
"Volley fire.
Fire."
More and more ladders
were going up against the wall. The men not lofting them stood and fired
upward, aiming for the slits in the parapet where defenders were leaning over
to fire rifles and big siege-shotguns down into the storming parties. The
ladders rattled on the stone, braced far out at the base. Men in fanciful
militia uniforms leaned over with hooked poles to try and push them down, and
toppled from the wall as Skinner or infantry bullets struck them. The carbide
searchlights played over their faces, blinding them but lightening the darkness
for the attackers. More hand-bombs arched over; one exploded in midair as a
Skinner struck it in flight in a miracle of marksmanship. Most landed below. An
explosion on the parapet sent a dozen men somersaulting through the air, as a
grenadier was brain-shot as he drew his arm back to throw and the missile
landed beneath his crumpling body.
"Come on,
17th!" a Captain called, scrambling up a ladder.
His trumpeter stood at
its foot, sounding charge over and over. A roar, and the burly
peons-in-uniform were following him, climbing with both feet and one hand and
holding their rifles in the other, a wave of blue coats and bowl helmets and
steel points. Up to the top, and the officer was falling backwards, time enough
to twist head-over-heels before he struck the ground. The men following him
were on the top rungs, shooting and then exchanging bayonet-thrusts with men on
the parapet—gunners there too, swinging their rammers like giant clubs. Men in
the second rank on the ladders were firing past their comrades, and he hoped to
hell they were picking their targets. A lieutenant shouldered his way
up, emptied his revolver into the press and jumped up . . . over the parapet
and down onto the fighting platform, by the Spirit, and the company pennant
waving over him!
Not so bad for
the bloody infantry, Menyez thought, grinning like a shark.
He looked left and
right. Three quarters of the ladders were up, in his sector. About the same to
his right, where Zahpata's 18th Komar were making their tooth-gritting yelping
screech and climbing up even as bodies fell down past them.
Menyez looked up again.
Men were still climbing up the ladder beside him, the pennant was still waving
from the ramparts . . . and he could see shoulders and rifle-butts above the
crenellations as they struggled to expand their foothold.
He took a deep breath.
"We're going to plant the 17th Kelden's banner on the walls," he
shouted, and drew his pistol. The bark of the rough pine logs that made up the
ladder was rough and sticky under his hand. "Follow me!"
* * *
"Sir!"
Raj was still in his
noncom's tunic, but the staff, signallers and couriers were accreting around
him like coral around a shell as he pulled up Horace behind the gun-line that
supported the escalade against the city wall. He stood in the stirrups and levelled
his binoculars.
"That's a battalion
flag on the ramparts, by the Spirit of Man!" he said exultantly. The 17th
. . . Hadolfo's got the 18th Komar up there too!"
"Shall I send in
the reserve battalions?" someone asked behind him. One of Jorg's
subordinates . . .
"No, of course
not," Raj said, controlling his desire to turn and clout the man over the
head with the glasses. "There's no room until they get a foothold over the
wall." And absolutely no point in cramming men into a killing zone without
room to deploy, either.
A dispatch rider reined
in. "Ser. Major Gruder says sally-ports're openin' on t'main gate 'n
t'north gate both, ser. Sally in battalion force from each, he says, er mebbe
more."
Scramento! Raj thought.
Close under the protection of the wall and its guns, the Brigaderos dragoons
could mass and then try to strike at the flanks of his attack. Not
successfully, but . . .
"High Colonel
Strezman thinks entirely too fast," he said grimly. "Gerrin. The 5th
and the 7th, and see them off."
Now it all depended on
what happened on the wall. The flame-shot darkness stretched out ahead of him;
there were still enemy cannon firing from the towers and from the wall to the
left and right of his salient. The frustration was unbearable, the desire to
get out there and lead . . . but if he put his banner on that wall
nothing could prevent the whole army from following him. A milling mass of
flesh for the enemy to shoot into. No.
no, Center agreed. defeat followed by destruction of the
expeditionary force probability of 79% ±3 in that eventuality.
"Get me a beachhead
over the wall, Jorg," Raj said softly. "Give me room."
* * *
Jorg Menyez ducked
behind the cannon on the fighting platform of the city wall. Bullets went
crack-tinng off the scorching-hot metal, and it put him right next to
the face of the dead militia gunner lying over it. He looked around the breach;
another squad was trying to get the satchel charge to the iron-faced door of
the tower that dominated this stretch of wall. A man fell, but another hurdled
him and snatched it up. Tongues of fire licked out from the loopholes around
the door, and infantrymen outside fired back from the cover of the guns or from
behind bodies. The ricochets were probably as much danger to the running man as
the riflemen within. He jerked, hit once, then again, went to his knees,
pitched the bundle of gunpowder sacks the last two meters.
CRUMP. Most of the
explosion was outward, in the line of least resistance. Enough of it hit the
door to smash the sheet-iron and thick wood behind into a splintered wreck . .
. that was still not enough ajar to admit a man. Hand-bombs arched down from
the tower summit, and small-arms crackled from the firing slits. Civil
Government infantry rushed up to the shattered door, firing through the
wreckage-
"Back!"
Menyez shouted. Too late, or the huge racket of battle overrode his voice.
Above them the stream of
burning tallow cascaded down from the tower-top. It struck and clung like
superheated glue; even in the middle of the melee, the screams of men who
leaped from the wall burning were loud.
Menyez's head turned to
the city. Between the wall and the houses was a clear strip fifty meters wide.
Until recently it had been built over in patches, with flimsy hutments and
corrals that could be passed off as temporary. Now the area was clear,
and the rubbish and scrap lumber from the demolished shacks was piled up along
the inner edge, a chest-high barricade. Beyond that were the streets; he could
see mounted men there, a column of them. Shells were falling and fires burning
in the cleared space, in the edge of housing beyond it. The column halted and
dismounted, running forward to form up behind the barricade. The firelight
shone on their helmets; General's Dragoons, not town militia.
He looked left and
right. Men down, men firing at the towers, or at the approaching dragoons. The
problem wasn't manpower, it was the towers and the lack of cover on the
parapets from the rear—designed in for situations just like this. If he tried
to send men down on ropes, they'd be vulnerable to the towers and the
dragoons; he couldn't feed them in fast enough through this narrow lodgement.
Not fast enough to do anything but the piecemeal the way they were doing now.
Tears cut runnels
through the powder-smoke on his face. Of grief, and pure rage.
* * *
"Sor."
The runner from the 17th
Kelden Foot was clutching his left arm with his right, to try to stop the
bleeding.
"Sor, Colonel
Menyez says, can't get a lodgement past the wall. Brigaderos dragoons behind
barricade, too many of 'em. Can't take the towers either, not just from the
parapet."
Raj sat silent for a
moment, watching the flickering muzzle flashes on the parapet, like fireflies
in spring.
"Go get that
treated, soldier," he said. Then: "Sound retreat. Colonel Dinnalsyn,
prepare to open up on the parapet again; I want their heads down while we pull
our people out."
* * *
The soldier arched up
off the operating table with a cry of pain that drove a spray of blood from scorched
lips.
"Hold him,
damn you," the doctor snapped.
Fatima grabbed the arm
and weighed it down through the padding she clutched in both hands. Mitchi
refastened the strap, her natural milk-white complexion gone to a grave-pallor
that made her freckles stand out as if they were burning. The opium wasn't
doing this patient much good at all; the mixture of burning pitch and tallow
had caught him across most of his torso, with spatters up and down from there.
One had turned his whole forehead into a blister that had burst and shed a
glistening sheet of lymph across his face. The doctor was using a scalpel to
separate the remains of the tunic from the skin and cooked meat to which it had
been melded by the fire—this one had been a marginal, nearly triaged into the
terminal section.
The doctor's hands moved
with infinite deftness, swift and sure, although sweat ran down his cleric's
shaven scalp into the linen of his face mask.
"More
carbolic," he said.
Fatima seized the moment
and slipped a leather pad into the soldiers mouth to replace the one he'd
screamed out. When the antiseptic struck the burned surfaces, the young man on
the table went into an arch that left him supported only by heels and the back
of his head. Muscles stood out like iron rods in his cheeks, and he might well
have splintered teeth or bitten out his tongue without the pad.
He fainted.
"Good," the doctor said. "More carbolic. Wet him down here. Now
the scissors. Spirit. We'll have to cut this tissue, debride down to
living flesh."
On the next table, the
grating sound of a bone saw hammered at her ears. A pulsing shriek rose further
down the big tent, and a sobbing that was harder to bear.
The smell was what made
her swallow a rush of sick spit. Fatima had managed to make herself eat roast
pork, since she'd converted to the Star faith. She didn't think she could ever
do that again.
"Damn, damn,"
Jorg Menyez said. It might have been the pain of his shoulder, dislocated when
he went back down the ladder, but Raj doubted it.
"Sit still,"
Raj replied.
I hate the
hospitals, he thought. Visiting the wounded was about the worst
chore there was; and it bewildered him a little that the men liked it—seeing
the author of their pain. Perhaps it gives them a focus. Something to concentrate
the will on.
It was a smoky dawn in
the command tent; there was still a bit of noise from the hospital pavilion
across the plaza commanante, but most of the severely wounded had either
died or been doped to unconsciousness by now. The burn victims were the very
worst, the pain seemed to be so bad that even opium couldn't do much.
"Damn," Menyez
said again.
Hadolfo Zahpata was in
the hospital tent himself, with two broken legs. Clean fractures of the femur,
likely to heal well, but he was in plaster casts and suddenly primary contender
for commander of Crown garrison forces when the rest of the Expeditionary Force
moved on.
"I lost a hundred,
hundred and twenty men—and we were so close, if we'd gotten up just a
little sooner—"
Raj made a chopping motion
with his hand, as he stood at the head of the table looking out the opening.
"If's the
most futile word in Sponglish," he said. "There was nothing wrong
with the execution of the plan, Jorg—the plan was wrong, and that's my
responsibility. You pulled out at the right moment; if you hadn't, you and
Hadolfo would have lost your battalions."
"A broader
attack—"
"—would have
repeated the same failure on a larger scale." He sighed wearily. "The
fact of the matter is, I was relying too much on the militia being disorganized
by the town meeting. Maybe a lot of them wanted to open the gates, but they didn't
want our men coming over the wall with blood in their eyes, not with their
families behind it.
"And Strezman was
waiting for us—a force ready to sally and another in central reserve to punch
back anyone who got to the top of the walls. High bloody Colonel bloody
Strezman is just too good to bamboozle easily—we've been fighting dumb barbs
too long. I underestimated him."
He quirked a smile and
lit two cigarettes, handing the other to Menyez. "If it's any
consolation"—which it wasn't, he knew—"the force that sallied against
our flank got cut up pretty badly before they made it back to cover. Good work,
by the way, Gerrin."
Staenbridge shrugged;
his eyes were red-rimmed by exhaustion as well. "Standard little
affray," he said. "Incidentally, I was right back on Stern Isle.
Their regular army is a different proposition from the landholders' retainers.
A bit slow to deploy, though, too reluctant to get out of the saddle."
"As to what we do
next—" Raj began.
observe, Center said.
* * *
This time the vision was
of Lion City before the Fall. He hadn't known there was a city here back that
far. Low colorful buildings, a few towers, streets of greenery with vehicles
floating through on air cushions. More such advanced craft at the docks behind
the same adamantine breakwaters as today, and others that had sails in bright
primary shades and seemed to serve no purpose but pleasure. Yet there were so many
of them, as if the city held hundreds of nobles wealthy enough to maintain
a yacht. People strolling along the tree-shaded avenues, richly dressed in
alien fashions, all healthy and well-fed and unconcerned, none bearing arms
save a hunter with the head of a carnosauroid floating behind him on a robot
platform. People bathing nude in the harbor itself, away from the docks, in
water that was crystal clear and free of downdraggers. How could harbor water
not stink and attract scavengers?
The view stabilized
overhead and then flashed to a schematic of the city's hydraulic system. Water
flowed in through pipes from the sea, flashed into vapor in a processing plant,
flowed out through distributor pipes to every house, however humble. Even while
he focused his attention on the overall view Raj marvelled at that. The
lowliest peasant with hot and cold water running in any room he chose, like a
great lord! With no need to send his wife to the public fountain for water or
with the slops bucket to a sewer inlet—and only wealthy, civilized towns in
these Fallen times had even so much. Waste water collected in a giant pipe that
struck north to a mysterious factory that seemed to do nothing but sterilize
the water, even though the whole ocean was nearby for dumping.
The Fall came. Most of
the bright airy structures fell swiftly, to fire or hammered apart as salvage;
they were uninhabitable for folk with nothing but fire to heat with, and they
had been built of perishable materials. For generations only a small farming
and fishing village stood on the site of Lion City. Rich land and a fine
self-scouring harbor with a lighthouse brought growth. When men were numerous
enough for their wastes to be a problem, a long ditch was built and connected
to the storm-drains that flowed at low tide through the adamantine seawall;
rainwater flushed it, now and then. A later generation covered the ditch with
brick arches and built drains down individual streets connecting to it. The old
sewer outlet was forgotten, deep underground. When men built the city wall,
they built it over the pipe, to defend a smaller, more densely packed
settlement.
A final vision: the
outlet pipe ending in a gully north of the town, with a projection of Raj
standing next to it.
* * *
1.5 meters in diameter, Center said.
For a moment all Raj
could feel was incandescent anger. You let my men die when there was a
better way? he thought. Not even the Spirit-
i am not god, Center said. the pipe may be blocked, is probably blocked
where the weight of the wall rests on it. or the inlet may not connect to the
surface within lion city. in
any case, "supernatural" interventions such as this increase the
amount of noise in the system and reduce the reliability of my predictive
function. nor did i select you to be the puppet of my tactical direction.
"Raj?" Suzette
said with concern.
He shook back to
himself. The Companions were used to his moments of introspection, but not to
one accompanied by the expression he could still feel twisting his face.
furthermore the
attention of the garrison will now be firmly riveted on the walls.
Shut—up, he thought
savagely. Perhaps that was reckless disrespect to an angel, but at the moment
he didn't much care.
Raj looked up at the
walls of Lion City. "They're really going to regret burning my men,"
he said softly.
Jorg Menyez was normally
a mild and considerate man. At that moment his battered face resembled the
surface of an upraised maul—also battered, but poised to smash anything in its
path, stone and iron included. It matched his commander's expression quite
closely.
"Oh, my oath,
yes," Gerrin Staenbridge, almost whispering. A rustle of carnivore
alertness went through the circle of commanders.
"Ehwardo," Raj
began. "Move the cavalry around outside the walls—make it look as if
you're setting up dispersed camps." An essential step in keeping dogs
healthy over a long stay in a confined spot. "Jorg, starting at dawn, give
the best imitation you can of a man starting massive siege works; parallels,
the whole show."
"I gather it's a
ruse, Whitehall?" Gerrin Staenbridge said.
"Correct. The rest
of you are to prepare for a general assault—if and only if something I . . .
have in mind succeeds. Colonel Dinnalsyn, get those damned armored cars ready,
too. If you'll excuse me, Messers? And Gerrin," he went on, "send me
M'lewis."
* * *
Antin M'lewis usually
blessed the fate that had thrown him into Raj Whitehall's path. Since then life
had never been boring, and it had been lucrative—if not beyond his wildest
dreams, then beyond all reasonable expectation. Particularly after he happened
to be one of the two men with Raj when he put down the botched coup attempt
that used Des Poplanich as its front-man. Governor Barholm had been hysterical
when he promised to make the two Companions present the richest lords in the
Civil Government if they saved him. He'd remembered enough afterwards to
translate one Antin M'lewis, free commoner and soldier of watch-stander rank,
into the Messer class and to deed him a thousand hectares of land—and not in
stony, desolate Descott County, either. Good fat riverside fields, near the
capital. Yes, usually he blessed the day then-Major Raj Whitehall had hauled
him up on charges for stealing a shoat.
Then again, there were
times when he wished he'd let the peons keep their damned pig.
The pipe was tall enough
for him to stand in if he stooped a bit. The greasy-smooth material it was made
of was like nothing he'd ever seen outside a shrine, and it led downward into
the earth—into the Starless Dark, the freezing hell of the orthodox. Where the
Spirit of Man of the Stars cast the unregenerate souls not worthy even of lowly
rebirth, dumping their core programs into chaos.
Good thing me ma
were a witch, he thought. This might be a real problem for a pious
respectable yeoman, but everyone in the M'lewis family accounted themselves
probably damned anyway and certainly hung if found out. So were the Forty
Thieves, but even they looked queasy at the arguably supernatural and
definitely menacing passageway into the earth.
They watched him
silently as he stripped off his uniform jacket and boots; unlike most enlisted
men, who preferred sleeveless vests of unbleached cotton beneath in summertime,
he wore a shirt. Unlike most officers, his was dyed rusty black. Through the
back of his belt he tucked a sheathed skinning knife, and tested that the
wooden toggles of his garotte were ready to his hand for the quick
snatch-and-toss. Then he tied a plain brown bandana over his hair and palmed
mud over his cheeks.
"Yer nivver goin'
t'leave yer gun, ser?" one of the men whispered.
It was the young
recruit; M'lewis remembered him from the action on Stern Isle, where he'd
wondered if he'd have a chance at the women in the refugee convoy.
"Son—" M'lewis
began. Which was just possible; they were certainly cousins, and he'd
been friendly with that branch of the family as a lad. "—whin yer
sneakin', yer sneaks quiet. With t'gun, all I could do 'd be ter bring
four thousand barbs down on me head. Jist noise an' temptation, onna sneak loik
this."
Spirit. Then again, he'd
probably have drunk and fucked himself into an early grave by now if he'd
retired to rusticate on the new estate. Certainly the other Messers wouldn't
accept him socially there, a stranger of common birth. His sons, probably, when
he got around to having them, but not him. And it would be dull.
Raj stepped up and
gripped forearms. "Careful and slow, M'lewis," he said. "Don't
let them hear you."
The snaggled teeth
showed in a grin, and he offered a fist to slap—a trifle familiar perhaps, but
then, what could you do to a man on a suicide mission?
"Nao clumpin'
barb'll hear this mither's chile, ser," he said.
His bare feet were
noiseless on the plastic. The soft cold of it was like nothing he'd ever
touched as he walked forward and down, crouching.
* * *
Raj Whitehall was
motionless beside his dog. Less bound by need than the man, Horace shifted
uneasily from foot to foot to foot, whining slightly. His hand soothed the
animal automatically, gauntleted fingers scritching in the slight ruff at the
back of the neck, just forward of the saddlebow. Other dogs shifted and murfled
in the darkness, two kilometers from the main gates of Lion City. Fifteen
thousand men waited, gripping their rifles or the ladders, wondering if the
next hour would bring a ladle of burning pitch in the face, a limb lost, eyes,
genitals, whatever their particular dread might be. The air was full of the
smell of rank sweat and dog, men and animals both full of knowledgeable fear
and suppressed eagerness.
Everyone thought it was
payback time. Everyone, Spirit help them, thought Messer Raj would pull another
miracle out of the hat.
It was full dark;
neither moon would be up for another hour. Watchlights burned on the walls of
Lion City, but experience had taught them that Skinners could shoot out any
reflector-backed searchlight from a comfortable range . . . and the men manning
it.
It was also long after
he should have received word from Gerrin. When the dispatch rider reined in, he
forced himself not to whirl.
"Ser," the man
said.
Something's
wrong.
"Spit it out,"
Raj said. Nightmares—the 5th destroyed in a trap, burning pitch and tallow
pumped down on them in the tunnel while they died helpless-
"Ser," the
rider said, his eyes fixed over the general's head. "Captain Suharez
reports . . . beggin' yer pardon, ser . . . Cap'n reports the 5th has retreated
from the tunnel."
Raj stalked over to the
rider and slapped the muzzle of his dog. "Down," he said. The
animal crouched obediently. That put his eyes on a level with the man's.
"From Captain Suharez?"
he said, in a calm voice. The man flinched. That was the second-ranked company
commander in the unit.
"Yesser. Colonel
Staenbridge an', an' some members went beyond the second dip—there was 'n
other, ser, ten meters beyond t'one Lieutnant M'lewis found. The rest . . . the
rest turned back, ser."
Raj pivoted on his heel,
ignoring the dispatch rider. "Major Bellamy," he said. Wide eyes
stared at him out of darkness as he stepped over Horace's saddle. "Up, boy
. . . Major Bellamy, you will accompany me with the 2nd Cruisers. Major Gruder,
you're in charge of the gate. Colonel Menyez, you're in overall command. Await
the signal, then proceed as planned."
He kicked heels into his
mount. Horace leaped forward, and Ludwig Bellamy and the bannerman of the 2nd
fell in beside him. Behind them the massed paws of the 2nd Mounted Cruisers
beat a tattoo through the night.
* * *
The ravine where the old
sewer outlet surfaced was packed with men; the dogs were crouched a few hundred
meters further north, together with those of the ex-Squadrone soldiers
Raj had brought. He could see the 5th only as a shadowy presence, a sullen mass
that recoiled slightly as he walked up to them.
"You retreated
without orders?" he asked the Captain.
"Yes, sir,"
the man said. He was braced to attention and staring ahead.
At least he
isn't offering excuses, Raj thought. He was moving carefully, very
carefully so that he wouldn't shatter the ice surface of control that bound
him.
"Ser," a voice
from the dark mass said. "Ser . . . 'tis damnation there! 'T road to
t'Starless—"
"Silence in the
ranks," Raj said. His voice was as clear and precise as water is when it
falls over a ledge of stone, before the spray and thunder. "You," he
went on to the unit bannerman. "Did you turn back?"
"No ser," the
man said.
He was a grizzled
veteran, a thirty-year man; carrying the battalion standard was a jealously
guarded privilege, open only to men three times awarded the Gold of Valor.
"Colonel
Staenbridge, he ordered t'color party to remain here. Seein's t'colors wouldn't
fit, ser."
"Then you may carry
the colors back to the central Star shrine in camp," Raj said. "Where
they will be safe from men unworthy of them."
A low moan broke from
the assembled ranks of the 5th, and the bannerman sobbed, tears running down
his leathery cheeks as he turned smartly and trotted for his dog. Nor was he
the only one weeping.
"Tears are for
women," Raj went on in the same glass-smooth tone. "Senior Captain
Suharez, take this unit and report to Major Gruder, placing yourself under his
orders. For whatever tasks he judges it fit for."
Suharez' face might have
been carved from dark wood. "Yes, sir." He saluted and wheeled.
Raj turned toward the
tunnel mouth. Behind him there was a forward surge among the ranks of the 5th
Descott. He wheeled again, flinging out his hand and pointing silently back
towards the main force. An officer broke his saber over his knee, and the men
fell into their ranks and trotted forward behind Suharez.
Faint starlight sheened
on the eyes and teeth of the 2nd Cruisers. Ludwig Bellamy stepped forward and
saluted smartly.
"I'm ready to lead
my men through, sir," he said.
"No, Major,"
Raj said. "You'll bring up the rear. Nobody is to turn back,
understood?"
He raised his voice
slightly, pitching it to carry in the heavy-breathing hush. "As I have
kept faith with you, so you with me. Follow; quietly, and in order."
Raj turned and stooped,
entering the tunnel.
* * *
The men's hobnailed
boots clattered on the surface of the pipe; the sound was dulled, as if they
were walking on soft wood, but the iron left no scratches on the plastic of the
Ancients. The surface beneath the fingers of his left hand might have been
polished marble, except for the slight trace of greasy slickness. There was old
dirt and silt in the very bottom of the circular tube, and it stank of decay;
floodwater must run down from the gutters of Lion City and through this pipe
when the floods were very high.
Behind him the rustle
and clank of equipment sounded, panting breath, an occasional low-voiced curse
in Namerique. Earth Spirit cultists didn't have the same myth of a
plastic-fined tube to Hell; the center of the earth—This Earth—was their
paradise. This particular tunnel was intimidating as Hell to anyone, though.
Particularly to men reared in the open air, there was a touch of the
claustrophobe in most dog-and-gun men. There certainly was in him, because
every breath seemed more difficult than the last, an iron hoop tightening
around his chest
this is not an illusion, Center said
helpfully. the oxygen content
of the air is dropping because airflow is inadequate in the presence of over
six hundred men. this will not be a serious problem unless the force is halted
for a prolonged period.
Oh, thank you,
Raj thought.
Even then, he felt a
grim satisfaction at what Army discipline had made of last year's barbarian
horde. Vicious children, he thought. Vicious grown-up children whose
ancestors had shattered civilization over half a continent—not so much in
malice as out of simple inability to imagine doing anything different. Throwing
the pretty baubles into the air and clapping their hands to see them smash,
heedless of the generations of labor and effort that went into their making. Thirteen-year-olds
with adults' bodies . . . but they can learn. They can learn.
The roof knocked on the
top of his helmet. "Halto," he called quietly. The column
rustled to a halt behind him.
A quick flick of the
lens-lid on his bullseye lantern showed the first change in the perfect
regularity of the tunnel. Ahead of him the roof bent down and the sides out,
precisely like a drinking straw pinched between a man's fingers.
you are under the outer edge of the town wall
on the north side, Center said. .63 of a kilometer from the entrance.
M'lewis had come this
far on his scout; he'd checked that the tunnel opened out again beyond this
point, and then returned. Raj had agreed with the decision, since maximum
priority was to avoid giving the entrance away. And the little Scout had been
right, air was flowing toward him, he could feel the slightly cooler
touch on his sweating face.
Of course, the air might
be coming through a hole the size of a man's fist.
"Crawl
through," he said to the man behind him, clicking off the light.
"Turn on your backs and crawl through. There's another pinch in the tunnel
beyond. Pass it down."
He dropped to the slimy
mud in the bottom of the tunnel and began working his way further in. The
plastic dipped down toward his face, touched the brim of his helmet. Still
smooth, still untorn. The weight of the city wall was on it here, had been for
five hundred years. Mud squished beneath his shoulderblades, running easily on
the low-friction surface of the pipe. The weight of a wall fifteen meters high
and ten thick at the base, two courses of three-by-three meter stones on either
side, flanking a rubble-concrete core.
Do not tell me how much
it weighs, he thought/said to Center.
Now he was past the
lowest point, and suddenly conscious of his own panting. Something bumped his
boots; the head of the man following. One man following, at least. At least two
or three more, from the noise behind. No way of telling what was further back,
how many were still coming, whether the last five hundred or five hundred and
fifty had turned and trampled Ludwig in a terror-filled rush out of this
deathtrap, this anteroom to hell. The plastic drank sound, leaving even his breath
muffled. Sweat dripped down his forehead, running into his eyes as he came to
hands and knees. He clicked the bullseye open for a look when the surface began
to twist beneath his feet. Another ten meters of normal pipe, and then-
Spirit, he thought What could
have produced this?
the pipe crosses under the wall at an angle
of forty degrees from the perpendicular, this section is under the edge of a
tower, Center said with dispassionate accuracy.
The towers were much
heavier than the walls. The sideways thrust of one tower's foundations had
shoved the pipe a little sideways . . .
and squeezed it down so that only a triangular hole in the lower
right-hand corner remained. This time the fabric had ruptured, a long
narrow split to the upper left. Dirt had come through, hard lumpy yellow clay,
and someone recent had dug it out with hands and knife and spread it backwards.
Raj waited until the man
following him came up behind. "No problem," he said, while the eyes
in the bearded face were still blinking at the impossible hole.
"Come through one at a time; take off your rifle, helmet and webbing belt,
then have the man behind you hand them through. Pass it on."
He kept moving, because
if he didn't, he might not start again. One man panicking here and the whole
column would be stalled all night.
He took off the helmet
and his swordbelt, snapped the strap down over the butt of his revolver and
dropped the bundle to the floor.
"Keep the lantern
on," he said to the soldier behind him.
Right arm forward. Turn
sideways. Down and forward, the sides gripping him like the clamps of a grab
used to lift heavy shells. Light vanishing beyond his feet; they kicked without
purchase, and then the broad hands of the trooper were under them, giving him
something to push against. Bronze jacket buttons digging into his ribs hard
enough to leave bruises. Breathe in, push. Buried in hell, buried in
hell . . .
His right hand came
free. It groped about, there was little leverage on the smooth flaring sides of
the pipe, but his shoulders came out, and that was the broadest part of him.
For an instant he lay
panting, then turned. "Through," he called softly. "Pass my
gear, soldier." A fading echo down the pipe, as the man turned and
murmured the news to the one behind him.
It had only been a
little more than his body length. Difficult, but not as difficult as concrete
would have been, or cast iron, anything that gripped at skin and clothing. The
light cast a glow around the slightly curved path of the narrow passage.
Again he waited until
the first man had followed, grabbing his jacket between the shoulderblades and
hauling him free.
"Second
birth," he said.
The Squadrone trooper
shook his head. "The first was tighter, lord," he said. His face was
corpse-pallid in the faint light, but he managed a grin. Then he turned and
called softly down the narrow way:
"Min gonne,
Herman."
Not much
further, Raj thought, looking ahead. Darkness lay on his eyes like thick velvet.
.21 kilometers.
* * *
"I'll have them decimated,"
Gerrin Staenbridge hissed.
Raj didn't doubt that
the other man meant exactly what he said; that he'd line up his battalion and
have one man in ten taken out of the ranks and the others forced to beat him to
death with rods. It was the traditional penalty for mass cowardice in the face
of the enemy.
"I don't think that
will be necessary," he said, his voice remote.
Gerrin turned and began
a motion that would have slammed his fist into the concrete wall.
"Neither will
that," Raj said, catching the thick wrist. "We have a job to do,
Major."
"Yes, sir,"
Staenbridge said, straightening and running a hand under the neck-guard of his
helmet. His hand kneaded brutally at the muscles at the base of his skull.
"We've improvised, as you can see."
There were a little over
a hundred men of the 5th Descott in the huge underground chamber, most of
Company A and the twenty men of the Scouts who'd gone in first. It was large
enough that they didn't crowd it, even with more and more of the 2nd Cruisers
coming out of the pipe, jumping down the two-meter drop to the floor or
lowering themselves by their hands. Not quite jet-black, the risk of a covered
lantern was worth the lessened noise when men could see what they were doing.
The chamber was nearly
twenty meters across and about three high. Originally it had been domed, but
the roof had buckled at some unknown time. Bent and twisted rods of metal
protruded from the concrete, and the huge writhing shape of a large tree's
taproot. Staenbridge had been busy; the men must have made a human pyramid to
lift one up, and he had hitched a rope made from buckling rifle slings together
to one of the steel rods. Beyond that a darkness gaped.
"That connects to
an old storm drain," the Major said, pointing. "Beyond that, an exit
onto a street. M'lewis is there with a couple of his scouts, keeping it warm.
Fairly deserted."
"It should be, it's
past midnight," Raj said.
He walked over to the
dangling slings; they were of tough sauroid hide, supple and very strong—the
Armory tested them by hanging a hundred-kilo weight to one end and rejecting
any that stretched or cracked.
"Send everyone on
up, and then follow," he said.
He bent his legs and
jumped, his sword-hand clamping down on a buckle hard enough to bend it. Arm
over arm, he pulled himself smoothly upward toward the light.
* * *
The streets of Lion City
had been laid out by cows. Quite literally, back in the days when it had been a
little farming village where the odd ship called. When stone buildings went up,
they stood by the sides of laneways worn by herdsmen driving their beasts back
to their paddocks at night, and once the pattern was set it was too difficult
to change. Too difficult for the people who'd run Lion City; back in the Civil
Government a town this size would have had at least some semblance of a
gridwork imposed at one time or another. If nothing else, a spiderweb of narrow
streets flanked by three to five-story buildings was simply too easy for
rioters to hold against troops, throwing up barricades and dropping roof-tiles
down on stalled columns.
I've got
something of the same problem, Raj thought. Maxiluna was up, but it was still
dark in the alleyway; Lion City didn't run to gaslights, either, and even in
East Residence a neighborhood like this wouldn't have been lit. Dark and very
quiet, only the squall of an alley-cat breaking the silence. With the militia
standing watch-and-watch on the walls and their families laboring to carry them
food and water and do whatever else a city under siege needed, most folk would
be well and truly asleep when they could find the time. Probably a few eyes
were peering at him from behind shuttered windows, but men—and women—see what
they expect. It would take a while for anyone to realize that this was not
another unit of Brigade troops going out to relieve a section of wall.
He had just that long,
and enough more for the damnably alert High Colonel Strezman to receive the report
and get his garrison moving. If that happened before he was where he had to be,
then he and everyone with him was dead.
Center's street-map of
Lion City was eleven hundred years out of date, but the machine intelligence
had seen everything he had. With his own eyes, and through reports—Muzzaf's,
Abdullah's, the Ministry's. A glowing hologram opened before his private
vision, and a green thread showed him the closest route to the gates. Not so
good, they had to jink around the easternmost tip of the harbor.
"Gerrin,
Ludwig," he said.
The two men were at his
side; one dark, one fair, but otherwise much of a size.
"We're going to
form up in column of fours—" all that could get through many of these
streets, with the sleeves of the outer men brushing the brick and half-timber
buildings on either side "—and head straight for the main gates at a run;
I'll lead."
The two battalion
commanders glanced at each other. How anyone could lead through this
blacked-out maze was a question, but they'd learned that this man didn't claim
what he could not do.
"Gerrin, you take
the right-hand tower complex. Ludwig, give me your Company A; I'll take the
left. You deploy in the main plaza just inside the gates and keep the reaction
force off our backs—because they will hit, soon and hard. Understood?"
Two sharp nods, and they
turned away to pass the orders to their subordinates.
Raj raised his voice
slightly. "Keep it quiet, men, and keep it fast, and don't stop for
anything at all."
Pavement racketed
beneath their feet, echoing as they pounded into a run. Raj held his
saber-sheath in his left hand to keep it from slapping him as he loped. This
wasn't all that subtle a way to manage the movement, but at present subtle
mattered a lot less than quick; seven hundred foreign soldiers were a big
conspicuous object in any town, much less one under siege. Streets went by,
narrowing or widening, cobbles or brick or occasionally hard-pounded dirt
underfoot. Now and then a ragged beggar woke in a doorway and fled squalling;
the normal Watch would be on the walls with everyone else. Buildings looming on
either side, mostly dark, once a yellow blaze as a window was thrown open
above. He caught a moment's glimpse of a woman holding a candlestick in one
hand, catching her nightgown at the throat with the other, her face a study in
shocked surprise.
"Faster!" he
called.
He was breathing deeply;
it had been a long hard day already, but a run of a klick or so didn't bother a
man in good condition. It had better not bother any of his troopers,
dog-soldiers or no.
"Halt!"
A bit of jostling as
some of the rear didn't get the word. The plaza stretched ahead of him, the
wooden platform still around the fountain; that was dry, with the city's
outside water supply cut. For a moment he wondered what had happened to the
Syndic of the Sailmakers, the man who'd wanted to open the gates. Only a single
street of houses on the other side before the cleared space that ringed the
wall, and a broad street through them from plaza to gates.
"At a quick
walk," he said to Staenbridge. "Try out your Namerique, Gerrin.
Captain Hortez—" one of the Descotter officers he'd posted to the 2nd
Cruisers as company commanders "—tell the men to fix bayonets, load and
shoulder arms. Sling their helmets." That would show their barbarian
haircuts and coloring. "Follow me."
The towers bulked ahead,
squat pairs on either side of the gate joined by a bridge over the arch itself,
making the gateway into a huge block of masonry twenty meters high. There were
lights there, one above the gate itself, another over each tower door on the
rear. Not many lights inside, because the troops would be peering out at the
encircling army and wouldn't want to destroy their night vision. The door to
each tower was half a story up, with a staircase leading to an arched door wide
enough for two men. Those were open, with soldiers lounging on the stairs.
Gerrin's company peeled
off to the right. Ignore them, Raj told himself. Nothing he could do,
and if he couldn't count on Gerrin Staenbridge he didn't have a single
competent man with him and might as well die anyway. . . .
Closer. The soldiers
were in General's Dragoon uniforms. Damn. He'd been hoping for city
militia, but High Colonel Strezman had done the sensible thing. Certainly what
Raj would have done, were he holding a city whose leaders had publicly
considered surrender. He was willing to bet the other three gates were in the
hands of Brigaderos regulars as well.
His mouth was dry with
the running. He worked it to moisten it, concentrating on marching. Not stiff,
just a company of soldiers going where they were told to, with the easy swing
of men who'd done the same thing a thousand times before and would again.
Really not much light, only a single kerosene lamp over the doorway, far too
little to see details. The civic militia wore dozens of different outfits or
their street-clothes according to whim and the depth of their pockets, so the
distinctive Civil Government uniform might pass, would pass until it was
too late.
"Whir dere ko?"
a man challenged in Namerique. Who goes there? A young man's voice,
probably a noncom. Strezman would be stretched thin, watching his putative
allies along kilometers of city wall and keeping a big enough reaction force
ready as a reserve.
The men at the gate
scooped up their dice and stood, buttoning their jackets. They reached for
their weapons, not concerned, just veterans' reflexes.
"Captain of Guards
Willi Kirkin," Raj said.
His Namerique had
something of a Squadron accent, and he let the harsh syllables roll across his
tongue. There were quite a few Squadron refugees serving as mercenaries among
the household troops of the magnates of Lion City.
The other man's reply
sounded nervous, which was to be expected after the riot of the previous
evening.
"What're you doing
here, then, southron? Halt. Halt, I said!"
"Ni futz,
greunt," Raj went on in a bored voice. Don't get upset, trooper. "The
Colonel thinks the grisuh may try something tonight, and we've been sent
to reinforce the gate. Better us than those chicken-hearted civvies."
Raj was at the foot of
the stairs. He pulled a piece of folded paper from his pocket. Time slowed as
the corporal reached for the note, then got his first good look at Raj's face.
His beardless, brown-tanned Descotter face, with the cold gray eyes like
slitted ice under the brim of the bowl helmet.
The young Brigadero had
only a ginger fuzz on his own cheeks. His eyes were green and very wide. They
bulged as Hortenz' pistol bullet took him under the angle of the jaw and
snapped him around like the kick of a plow-ox.
"Go!"
Raj screamed.
His shoulder hit the
door to the tower as his hand came clear of the holster with his revolver. Raj
was no gunman, no pistol-artist, just a fair to middling shot. The sword had
always been his personal weapon of choice, and with that he was very good.
There was a ready room
beyond the door, with five men in it—three sitting around a plank table playing
cards, another two lying on benches. A grid flashed over Raj's vision, and the
outline of one man glowed. The man with the pistols already nearly out
of the holsters strapped to his thighs as he surged backward from the table. The
one good enough to fill the doorway with bodies while his comrades rushed to
swing the iron-strapped teak closed again.
A green dot settled on
the man's chest as Raj swung the pistol toward him. The weapon bucked and
roared, and the gunman's chest blossomed with a red flower exactly where the
dot had rested. Dust puffed from the grey-green cloth around the impact point,
the man was falling and Raj wheeled. The dot slid across a face. Crack, echoing
within the stone walls. An eye erupted. On a neck. Crack. Arterial blood
spouted against the whitewashed wall and ceiling as the brigadero spun. Against
ribs. Crack. Another man had rolled behind a bench, fumbling with the
hammer of his rifle. Crack through his pelvis.
The hammer clicked twice
more by reflex. Raj staggered for a moment, wheezing in the fetid air through
his mouth: he had ample strength and speed for that three-second burst of
gunplay, but the skill was as much beyond him as a circus juggler's talents.
The first kill's body was still twitching in a great pool of spreading blood.
The men on his heels hesitated for a second, awe on their faces.
"Go, go,"
Raj ordered, over the moaning of a dying Brigadero.
His hands clicked open
the revolver, dumped the spent brass, reloaded. Hortenz dashed by, through the
ground-level door to secure the first floor of the towers and the exterior
gunslits. Another squad of 2nd Cruiser riflemen went past to the staircase in a
bristle of bayonets, behind a lieutenant. Raj tossed his revolver into his left
hand and drew his sword with his right. One part of his mind was still
shuddering with the icy feeling of . . . otherness, of being a weapon, pointed
like a rifle by a directing hand. He'd use the trick again if he had to, as
he'd use anything that came to hand. That didn't mean he had to like it.
The stairs were a narrow
spiral, almost pitch-black. Iron hobnails and heel-plates gritted and clanged
on the stone, from the squad ahead and the men following close behind. It would
be a great pity if he slipped and toppled back onto their bayonets. The thought
twitched at the set grin that rippled his lips back from his teeth. Gunfire
crashed ahead of him, red muzzle flashes blinding in the dimness. Men shouted;
he kept going past the door, past the tumbled bodies of Brigaderos and a
trooper of the 2nd. All the enemy bodies had multiple bayonet wounds; the 2nd
had learned to make very sure of things.
"Get those charges
up here," he shouted down.
Men came back into the
stairs, their rifles slung and their arms full of linen powder-bags for the
light swivel guns on the second level of the tower; one of them had a coil of
matchcord around his neck. Remember that face. That's a sergeant, if he
lives. More gunfire slapped at his ears, echoes bouncing through the narrow
corridors, screams, shrieks of fury and fear and raw killing-lust.
"GITTEM,
GITTEM!" That was his ex-Squadrones forgetting themselves, giving
the Admiral's war shout.
The stair gave out at
the third-story landing. Only a ladder led above to the top of the tower; he
snapshot, and a man tumbled down it and halted halfway, his legs tangled in the
rungs. Blood spattered across Raj's face. He stepped aside, swearing mildly to
himself, and let the next dozen or so behind him take the ladder without
pausing, ripping the corpse free and bursting out onto the tower roof. More
followed, including an officer; he could hear orders up there, and then a staccato
volley.
"Quick," he
said to the man with the charges.
The door opening right
into the rooms above the arch of the gateway was barred. Raj thrust his pistol
into the eyeslot and pulled the trigger; there was a scream, and somebody
slammed an iron plate across it. The cloth bundles of gunpowder tumbled at his
feet.
"Good man,"
Raj said "Now, pack them along the foot of the door, in between the stone
sill and the door. Cut them with your knife and stick the
matchcord—right." He raised his voice; more men were crowding up the
stairs, some to take the ladder and others filling the space about him. "Everyone
down the corridor, around the corner here. Now!"
The quick-witted trooper
and he and another lieutenant—Wate Samzon, a Squadrone himself—played
out the cord and plastered themselves to the wall just around from the door.
The matchcord sputtered as it took the flame. Raj put his hand before his eyes.
White noise, too loud for sound. He tensed to drive back around to the door-
—and strong arms seized
him, body and legs and arms.
"Ni, ni," a
deep rumbling voice said in his ear. "You are our lord, by steel and salt.
Our blood for yours."
Lieutenant Samzon led
the charge. A second later he was flung back, hands clapped to the bleeding
ruin of his face, stumbled into the wall and fell flat. The men who followed
him fired into the ruins of the door and thrust after the bullets, bayonets
against swords, as their comrades reloaded and fired past their bodies close
enough for the blasts to scorch their uniforms. When they forced through the
shattered planks the men holding Raj released him and followed them, with only
their broad backs to hold him behind them.
The only Brigaderos left
in the big rectangular room were dead, but the troopers of the 2nd Cruisers
were still looking terrified—of the winches and gear-trains that filled the
chamber. A year ago, anything more complicated than a windmill had seemed like
sorcery to them, and some had screamed with fear at their first sight of a
steam engine. They'd gotten over that, but they had to do something with
these machines, these complex toothed shapes of black iron and brass.
Raj knew fortifications
and their ancillary equipment from years of study. "You, you, you,"
he said crisply. "Take that maul and knock those wedges loose. Pull those
lockbars out—those long iron rods through the wheels with the loops on the end.
The rest of your squad, grab that crank and get ready to put your backs into
it. Those winches too."
The inner gates were not
held by a bar across the leaves. Instead, thick iron posts ran down from this
chamber through loops on their inner surfaces into deep sockets set in the
stone beneath, covered with wooden plugs when the gates were open. Toothed
gearwheels raised and lowered the massive posts, driving on notches cut into
their sides. Metal clanked and groaned as the troopers heaved at the
crank-handles. Winches running iron chains lifted the portcullis into a slot
just in from the channels for the bars. The chain clacked over the drums, making
a dull ringing as the great iron gridwork rose over the tunnel way.
"Ser!" A
panting trooper with the 5th's shoulder flashes. "Colonel says they've got
the outer gateway."
Which was controlled
from the right-hand towers, as this inner one was from the left. Raj nodded
curtly and stepped out of the chamber, calling up the ladder to the top of the
tower:
"Two white
rockets!"
General assault, all
around the circuit of the walls. Back inside the lifting room, gunfire blasted,
needles of pain in the ears in such a confined space. A duller explosion
followed.
"Shot through the
door," the sergeant of the platoon said, as Raj returned. "It started
to open."
He nodded to the door at
the outer side of the room; that would give to the middle section of the arch
over the gate, a series of rooms above the roadway where the murder-holes gave
onto the space below. It was wood and iron; there were lead splashes on the
planks and frame where the soft hollowpoint bullets had struck—they had
terrible wounding power but no penetration. The brass-tipped hardpoints had
punched through, and then an explosion from the other side had buckled the whole
portal.
"Thought they was
goin' to chuck a handbomb through," the sergeant said. A few of his men
were down, wounded by ricochets from their own weapons. "Must've gone off
in their hands," he went on with satisfaction.
Raj nodded. "Get
those prybars and open the door," he said. "Quickly, now."
They'd have to clear out
the men there, or the troops coming through the tunnel would get a nasty
surprise. Gerrin would be working his way in as the men under Raj's command
worked out through the line of rooms over the tunnel.
And it was time he
checked on Ludwig. Now that the focus of concentration was relaxing a little,
he could hear a slamming firefight going on out in the plaza. No point to the
whole thing if the Brigaderos broke through to the towers before his men got
here.
* * *
"Prepare to receive
cavalry!"
The company commander
was down with a sucking chest wound, and Ludwig Bellamy was doing his job as
well as trying to oversee the battle.
The Brigaderos cavalry
were charging again, straight down the street. It was wide, by Lion City
standards, which meant they were coming in six abreast and three ranks deep.
The front rank of 2nd Cruisers knelt with their rifles braced against the
cobbles and the points of their long bayonets at chest height. Two more ranks stood
behind them with rifles levelled. It seemed a frail thing to oppose to the big
men on tall dogs that raced toward them, the shouting and the long swords
gleaming in the pale moonlight—but the pile in front of the position gave the
lie to that: dead men and dogs lying across one another in a slithering heap.
Once Ludwig Bellamy had
believed that nothing on foot could stand before brave men charging with steel
in hand. Messer Raj had disabused him of that notion, him and what was left of
the Squadron.
The charge slowed at the
last instant. War-dogs were willing to face steel, but their instincts told
them to crouch and leap, not impale themselves in a straight gallop.
"Fire!"
The sound crashed out,
like one giant shot impossibly long and loud. The muzzle flashes lit the dim
street with a light as bright as a red day for an instant. It lit the edges of
the Brigaderos swords and the fangs of their dogs like light flickering from
hell. A hundred heavy 11mm bullets drove into the leading rank of the charge. All
of the first mounts were struck, most of them several times, and the muscular
grace of the wardogs turned to flailing chaos in a fraction of an instant.
Half-ton bodies cartwheeled into the barricade of flesh, or dove head-first
into it if they had been brainshot, as several had. The sounds of impact were
loud but muffled. Few of the men had been shot, but they parted from their
tumbling animals, arcing to the pavement or disappearing under thousands of
pounds of writhing flesh.
Their screams were lost
in the sounds of the wounded dogs. One came over the bodies, its hind legs limp
and with an empty saddle, dragging itself up to the soldiers. It was still
snarling when two bayonets punched through its throat.
"Reload!"
The Brigaderos in rear
ranks had managed to halt their dogs in time. They tried to come forward at a
walk, levelling their revolvers. Men fell in the front rank of the Cruiser line
as the pistols spat. Behind him a shout rose, and rockets soared from the gate
towers.
"Fire!"
The Brigaderos turned
and spurred their dogs, turning aside into alleys as soon as they could. Behind
them was a solid block of dismounted dragoons, filling the roadway from side to
side and coming on at the quickstep. The 2nd Cruiser lieutenants shouted:
"Prone, kneeling,
standing ranks." The first line of men propped their rifles over dead
Brigaderos and dead wardogs. "By platoon sections, volley fire,
fire."
BAM. BAM. BAM. BAM.
The enemy raised a shout
and charged, rifles at the port, leaning forward as if against rain. Men from
the rear ranks pushed forward to fill the gaps each volley blasted, and they
came on. Not pausing to fire until they were close, not when they loaded so
much more slowly.
"This is it,
boys—they're going to run over us or die trying. Make it count, aim low. Fire!"
BAM. BAM. BAM. BAM.
Bellamy skipped back to
view the rest of the action. Holding the roadways into the plaza wasn't too
much trouble, no—but it tied down too many of his men. Even with all five
hundred, minus Company A, he wouldn't have enough to hold the whole perimeter
of the plaza, and Strezman was sending in everything he had. More than three
thousand men, coming through the houses and mansions around the square, firing
from windows and rooftops. Ignoring everything else to retake the main gate
before the assault force reached the wall.
Just what Messer
Raj told me he'd do.
Any second now he'd have
to pull back to prevent his men being overrun in detail. How long a battalion
line would last in the open against five times its numbers the Spirit alone
knew.
They'd last as long as
they lived.
* * *
"Damnation to
Darkness," Raj swore softly.
Cannon were going off
all along the walls of Lion City, shaking the stone beneath his boots. But
raggedly, and fewer than he would have thought. A lot of them could see the
open gates, and more could see the glare of fire shining from the gate-tower
windows, or hear the firing from within the walls.
The room with the
winching material was full of smoke; powder-smoke, and from the barricade of
burning furniture the holdouts were defending one room in. Wounded men were
coming out of the door, and more troopers of the 2nd Cruisers forced their way
toward the action. His eyes watered and he coughed as he leaned out the slit
window, but the breath of air on his sweat-sodden skin was like a shock of
cold. So was what he could see. The bulk of the 2nd Cruisers were withdrawing
across the plaza toward him, backing three steps and volley-firing, backing
again; the stuttering crash of their rifles carried even over the cannonade
from the walls. Their line had bent back into a C-shape as Brigaderos swarmed
after them, thrown into confusion by their passage through house and alley, but
attacking relentlessly despite gruesome casualties.
The light was bad and
his eyes were watering, but he could see the battalion flag of the 2nd Cruisers
in the center of the bowing line. The enemy were pressing in, a reckless
close-range exchange of slamming volleys that no troops could stand for long.
The ex-Squadrones' rate of fire was much higher, but there were so many
of the enemy. Their firepower was diffuse, but it was enormous in relation
to the target, and they were swarming around the flanks. In minutes the 2nd
would be forced to form square, and hundreds of enemy troops would pour past
them to hold the gate. And the gatehouse was still not clear.
A solid pulse of noise
bounced through the gate towers: men and dogs howling. Raj stiffened, gripping
the stone sill and craning to see. He could just make out the opened inner
gate. Red flashes came through it, and then a sudden sullen wash of
fire—handbombs and burning pitch being poured into the roadway. Not as much as
there would have been if the gate towers were fully manned, but too much, too
much. Some of the first men through were reeling with wounds, and others rode
dogs with burning fur that streaked off across the plaza or rolled whether
their riders jumped free in time or not.
Yet the troops were in
hand, not panicking. Those hale enough spilled through and then formed on
either side of the gate in three-deep lines, then trotted-cantered-galloped
into the plaza in response to trumpet calls. Split into two rectangles of men
and dogs and bright swords, and charged for the flanks of the 2nd Cruisers,
where the Brigaderos lapped around them like waves eroding sand at high tide.
The enemy were unformed, focused on the single task of driving toward the
gates. They had no chance of forming to receive a mounted charge; and when they
saw the line of saber-points and snarling wardogs coming out of the darkness
and firelight their will broke. Screaming, they turned and ran back for the
shelter of the buildings, running across the hundreds of their dead.
"The 5th, by
the Spirit," Raj said softly. His voice was hoarse from the smoke. Mostly
from the smoke.
More men were riding
through the gate-mouth, in pulses like water pouring through a hole in the hull
of a sinking ship. They dismounted, the dogs peeling off as the handlers led
them, the men fixing bayonets. Trumpet calls and shouted orders sent them
forward at the double, with a long ripple down their line as the files closed
around the places of absent men. An armored car followed with a mechanical
pig-grunt from its engines that racketed back off the stone; a splatgun jutted
from the bow, in place of the usual light cannon. The brass hubs of the tall
wire-spoked wheels shone as it rattled off across the uneven pavement in the
gap between two companies of the 5th Descott. Seconds later the rolling crash
of a full battalion's platoon volley-firing echoed back from the plaza, and the
savage braaaaaaap of the new weapon. The cannonade from the walls had
stopped. A moment later an explosion somewhere deep in the gate towers punished
his eardrums and made the stonework shudder under his feet. The flash of
handbombs from the murder holes stopped; to either side of the towers, he could
see pennants waving as the assault force gained the walls, and some were
already sliding down ropes to the inner side. A column of men on foot broke out
of the gate below him, and then a pair of guns rumbling along behind their
dog-teams.
The firing was dying
away, but lights were going on all across the town amid a bee-hum of civilian
panic; down by the harbor, ships were casting loose from the docks to try their
chances with the steam rams outside the breakwater—they must have been ready
and waiting for the signs. With a roar like heavy surf collapsing a breakwater
in a storm, the army of the Civil Government broke over the walls and flowed in
to the helpless city behind.
"This's as far as
it's safe," Gruder said.
* * *
All the other towers had
surrendered quickly enough, when Civil Government troops came calling at the
back entrance with field guns for doorknockers. Some of them were empty even
before the soldiers arrived, their militia defenders tearing off their uniforms
and running back towards their homes. All except those here on the northeast
quadrant, where the men holding them had hauled down the Lion City banner of a
rampant cat and left their own flag of white crescent on a green field flying
defiantly.
"Hate to waste men
on the rag-heads," Gruder said, scratching at a half-formed scab on his
neck.
Raj's smile was bleak as
the dawn still six hours away. "I don't think that will be
necessary," he said quietly. "I've sent—ah."
Juluk rode up, his pipe
between his teeth. His men ambled behind him, their dogs wuffing with interest
at the smells on the night air.
"Hey, sojer-man,
you do wheetigo trick, fly over walls, eh?"
"I didn't want to
stay home scratching my fleas with you sluggards," Raj replied. Horace and
the Skinner chief's dog eyed each other.
He pointed at the towers
ahead. "Know who's there?" he said.
Juluk stretched and
belched, knocking the dottle out of his pipe against one bare horn-calloused
heel. "Wear-breechclout-on-heads," he replied.
The Skinners' home range
touched on the Colony's northeast border. That was their name for the Arabs;
they called the people of the Civil Government the sneaks, and the
western barbarians long-hairs. Or they just used their generic term of
contempt, farmer.
"They think they're
heroes," Raj said. "I say that if any of them are alive when the sun
comes up, your women will laugh you out of the camps when you go home. They'll
offer you skirts and birthing-stools."
Juluk's giggle broke
into a hoot. He turned to his followers: "L'gran wheetigo konai nus!
Eel doni l'bun mut!"
The big devil
knows us! He's given us the good word!
"And that,"
Raj said as the nomad mercenaries pounded by, screeching like powered saws in
stone, "takes care of that."
* * *
"Further resistance
is hopeless," Raj called up toward the second-story window. "Colonel
Strezman, don't sacrifice brave men without need." Not least because
the Civil Government can use them, he thought. Whatever happened here in
the west, there would be war with the Colony again within two years.
His skin prickled. He
was quiet sure High Colonel Strezman wouldn't order him shot down under a flag
of truce. He wasn't at all sure that one of his men might not do it anyway.
The last of the
Brigaderos regulars had holed up in several mansions not far from the plaza.
Like most rich men's homes throughout the Midworld basin they were courtyard-centered
dwellings with few openings out to the world; their lives were bent inward,
away from noise, dust, thieves and tax-assessors. Their thick stone walls would
turn rifle bullets, and the iron grills over the windows might make them forts
in time of riot. How little they resembled real forts was shown by the smashed
courtyard gate and the rubble beside it, where a single shell from the
field-gun back down the road had landed. Most of the windows were dark, but
there was enough moonlight for the riflemen crouching there to see the street
quite well; also a building was burning not too far away.
A long silence followed.
The street-door of the central house creaked open, and Strezman walked out
surrounded by a knot of his senior officers.
"My congratulations
on a brilliant ruse of war," he called, stopping ten meters away.
"Your reputation proceeded you, Messer Whitehall, and now I see that it is
justified."
He spoke loudly, a
little more loudly than the distance called for. There was blood on the armor
covering his right arm, and on the blade of his single-edged broadsword. He
wore no helmet, and his long white hair fluttered around an eagle's face in the
hot wind from the fire. Torchlight painted it red, despite his pallor.
"My
congratulations, High Colonel, on a most skillful and resolute defense,"
Raj said sincerely.
Given the cards he was
dealt, Strezman had played them about as well as he could—as well as anyone
could without Center whispering in their ear.
"Will you surrender
your remaining men?" Raj asked formally. "Your wounded will be cared
for, and the troopers and junior officers given honorable terms of enlistment
in the Civil Government forces on another front. Senior officers will be
detained pending the conclusion of the war, but in a manner fitting to their
rank and breeding."
Strezman swallowed, and
spoke again. Still louder, as if for a larger audience.
"My orders from His
Mightiness are to resist to the last man," he declaimed. "Therefore I
must decline your gracious offer, Messer Whitehall, although no further military
purpose is served by resistance. To honor the truce, I hereby warn you of
my intention to attack."
Their eyes met. The
hostages, Raj knew. The lives of these mens' families were forfeit, if they
surrendered . . . or if they were known to have surrendered. Even though
a stand to the death here accomplished nothing, not even much delay.
The officers with
Strezman drew their swords and threw away the scabbards. They raised the blades
and began to walk forward, heads up and eyes staring over the massed rifles
facing them.
Raj chopped his hand
down. Smoke covered the scene for an instant as a hundred rifles barked; when
it cleared every man in the Brigaderos party was down, hit half a dozen times.
The High Colonel was on his knees; blood pulsed through teeth clenched in a
rictus of effort and he collapsed forward. The tip of his sword struck sparks
as it left his hand and spun on the cobbles, a red and silver circle on the
stones.
Raj flung up his hand to
halt the fire. In a voice as loud as the Brigadero colonel's a moment before,
he called:
"Let the bodies of
High Colonel Strezman and his officers be returned to their households—"
the servants who followed their masters to war "—to be delivered to their
prince, in recognition of how their men—how all their men—died with them
in obedience to General Forker's orders."
The vicious
little sod, he added silently. He hoped the Brigade didn't depose
Forker any time soon; the man was worth five battalions of cavalry to the Civil
Government all by himself. If shame didn't keep him from harming the garrison's
families, fear of his other commanders probably would, after Strezman's final
gesture. Although if there was any justice in this Fallen world, the Brigade
would chop him, and soon.
"Gerrin," he
went on in a normal voice. The other man's torso was bound with bandages over
ribs that might only be cracked, but he was still mobile.
"Get the rest of
them out; there must be eight hundred or so. Down to the docks before daylight,
suitable guards, and onto those two merchantmen Grammeck commandeered. Have
someone reliable, Bartin say, handle it. The ships can pick up pilots and a
deck officer apiece from the rams, they've come into the harbor. I want them
sailing east by dawn, understood?"
* * *
No need for a
decimation, Raj thought grimly. The 5th Descott had lost more than that,
running the gauntlet of the murder-holes of the gatehouse and in the headlong
charge that cleared the plaza for the men behind them.
He looked down once more
from the podium around the fountain; only a day and a night since the town
meeting gathered here . . . now the square was filled with soldiers. The 5th
and the 2nd Cruisers still in neat ranks before him; many of the others mixed
by the surge over the walls and the brief street-fighting that followed. Many
missing, already off among the houses. The only firing came from the sector of
wall still held by the Colonial merchants, the burbling of their repeater
carbines and jezails as an undertone to the savage hammering of Skinner long
rifles. He didn't think that would take long; he could see one of the towers
from here, and squat figures made stick-tiny by distance capered and danced on
its summit, firing their monstrous weapons into the air.
Every once and a while,
a figure in Colonist robes would be launched off the parapet to flutter in a
brief arc through the air. Some of the screams were audible this far away.
"Fellow
soldiers," Raj said. "Well done." A cheer rippled across the
plaza, tired but good-natured. "A donative of six months' pay will be
issued." The next cheer had plenty of energy. "I won't keep you,
lads; just remember we need this place standing tomorrow, not burnt to the
ground. You've done your jobs, now the city—and all in it—is yours until an
hour past dawn. All units dismissed!"
Behind them the
gate-tower he'd stormed was fully involved, a pillar of flame within the round
stone chimney of the building. With luck it wouldn't go beyond that . . .
The 5th Descott still
stood in ranks before him, immobile as stone. Certain things had to be done by
the forms. He nodded, and spoke again:
"Colonel
Staenbridge."
"Sir."
"I have need of
trustworthy men to guard key locations and apprehend certain persons tonight."
Thus missing the sack,
one of the rare pleasures of a common soldiers' hard, meagre and usually boring
life. Most of the troopers would think of it as a far worse punishment than
being the lead element through the gate—which Kaltin Gruder had assigned the
5th on the unanimous insistence of officers and men.
"Are the 5th
Descott Guards ready to undertake this duty?"
"Mi heneral, the
5th is always ready to do its duty." The sound that came from the ranks
was not a cheer; more like a short crashing bark.
"Excellent,
Colonel." He paused. "I see that the 5th's banner is absent. Please
see that it is returned to its proper place immediately."
"Mi heneral!"
* * *
Mitchi sat and held up
the hand-mirror and preened, throwing a hand behind her tousled mass of red
hair and arching her back. The necklace of gold and emeralds glittered in the
lamplight between her full pink-tipped breasts. The tent was a warm cave in the
night, light strong panels of tanned and dyed titanosauroid gut on a framework
of skeelwood and bronze. All the furniture was similar, including the bed she
and Kaltin Gruder shared, expensive and tough and very portable.
"You're vain as a
cat," Gruder said, running a hand up her back. He was lying with one arm
beneath his head. She shivered slightly at the calloused, rock-hard touch.
"Aren't you ever going to take the damned thing off?" There were red
pressure-marks beneath it.
"I may be vain, but
you stink of dog and gunpowder, Kaltin," she said tartly.
"Mmmmm." He began kneading the base of her slender neck between thumb
and forefinger.
"Well," he
said reasonably, "I fought a murthering great assault action last night,
did some hard looting, then worked my arse off all day keeping the city from
burning down and getting the men back in hand. A busy man doesn't smell like a
rose."
"Not too busy to
find this," she said, turning and lying on his chest. She propped her chin
on her elbows, and the jewels swung between them. "Or that little dog you
found for Jaine."
"Or a good deal
else," he agreed, chuckling. "Professional soldier's instincts.
She'll need a riding dog on the march . . . How's she settling?"
"Jaine? Very well;
she's got neat hands with my hair and clothes, she's clean and biddable. Sweet
little thing, too, everyone likes her." She moved a leg over his hips and
giggled. "You're not settled at all. I'd have thought you'd be worn out on
the town matrons."
"I like my women
smiling and running toward me, not screaming and running away," he said,
putting his hands around her narrow waist and lifting her astride him. Her
breath caught as she sank back on her heels and began to move.
"Besides," he
went on, running his hands up and gripping her breasts, "as the wog saying
goes: Stolen goods are never sold at a loss. Hard loot looked like a
better way to spend the time, with fifteen thousand men inside the walls and
running loose. Lineups."
Mitchi gave a complex
shudder and threw back her head, stroking the hands that caressed her.
"What's that sound?" she asked.
"That?" Gruder
said.
A roar like angry surf
was coming from Lion City. Louder than the town meeting had been, since all the
gates were open. "That's a rarity, wench—some people getting what they
deserve. Now shut up."
* * *
Syndic Placeedo Anarenz
looked as if he was going to survive the wound the throwing-axe had put in his
back, although the left arm might never be as strong again. Right now it was
strapped to his chest by the Army priest-doctor's bandages. He stood as
straight as that allowed, meeting Raj's eyes. The general's face might have
been a Base Area idol rough-carved out of old wood, his eyes rimmed and red
with fatigue.
"Your tame prince
certainly predicted our fate accurately, heneralissimo supremo,"
Anarenz said bitterly.
Raj rubbed his chin;
sword-callous rasped on blue-black stubble. "I don't think many
infants were tossed on bayonets," he said mildly.
Or that many
silver-haired elders got their brains beaten out, he thought. Not unless
they were foolish enough to get between a soldier and something he fancied.
Lion City was orderly
now, with infantry in guardia armbands on every corner seeing that their
comrades went nowhere but to authorized taverns and knocking shops. Little
remained from the previous night of rape, pillage and slaughter but the
occasional gutted building, and not many of those. Guards had kept the major
warehouses from damage, and the shipyards and other critical facilities; the
rest of the town was missing most of its liquid wealth and small valuables, and
several hundred young women smuggled out to the camp. They would probably be
sold in a few days, at knock-down prices along with the households of the
Colonial merchants and the magnates he'd put under proscription.
"Also," he
went on, "I saw how your own guild reacted to my warning."
Placeedo Anarenz started
slightly, and stared for a moment. "You," he breathed. "You were
one of the guards?"
Raj nodded.
"This—" he indicated the podium and the plaza "—is something of
a reunion. Even the syndics are here."
They were
standing under guard in front of the assembled citizens. It was a larger crowd
than the town meeting, most of the adult population of Lion City. Much quieter
as well, ringed with troops holding their bayoneted rifles as barricades;
battered-looking men, many in remnants of militia uniform. Equally
battered-looking women, in ripped and stained clothing hastily repaired or
still gaping. Torches on poles lit their upturned faces, staring at him with
dread.
Another building-block
in the reputation of Raj Whitehall, he thought bitterly.
"I was a
syndic," Anarez said. "Why aren't I down there with them?"
"Because you argued
for opening the gates," Raj pointed out. "Also you're the next
Mayor."
Anarenz grunted in
shock, staggering until the two burly sailmakers at his side steadied him. Pain-sweat
glistened on his forehead from the jostling that gave his wound.
"Why me?"
he said. "I thought you'd have some bureaucrat ready . . . or one of our
local arse-lickers who'd buy his way into your favor the way he did with the
Brigade. De Roors is good at that."
Anarenz was a brave man.
He still shivered slightly at Raj's smile.
"You actually care
about the welfare of the citizens," the general said. "That makes you
more predictable; men like de Roors don't stay bought. I'm going to need
stability here. I'll be leaving plenty of the Administrative Service to oversee
you, don't worry. Messer Historiomo to begin with, but he'll be taking over all
occupied territory, and I've advised him to consult you."
Raj turned to face the
wounded man. "There's a saying, Goodman—Messer Alcalle-Anarenz,
back in the east. That the Governor's Chair rests on four pillars of support: a
standing army of soldiers, a sitting army of bureaucrats, a kneeling
army of priests, and a creeping army of informers. It's a settled
way of doing things, and it functions . . . but here I need the active support
of the people I'm liberating from the Brigade."
He nodded to the huddle
of Syndics below the podium. "After this, I don't think the magnates of
other cities will try to sit things out."
Aloud, he went on:
"Citizens of Lion City!"
A signal, and the
soldiers ripped the rich clothing from the former oligarchs of the town,
leaving a group of potbellied or scrawny older men edging away from the bright
levelled menace of the bayonets, and a few others trying hard to look brave—a
difficult task, naked and helpless. There were a hundred or so of them, all the
adult males of the ruling families.
"Here are the
men," Raj went on, pointing, "who are the true authors of your
misfortunes. Here are the men who refused to open the gates peacefully and
exposed your city to storm and sack."
An animal noise rose
from the crowd. Oligarchs were not popular anywhere, and right now the commons
of Lion City needed a target for their fear and fury, a target that wasn't
armed. De Roors turned and knelt toward the podium, bawling a plea for mercy
that was lost in the gathering mob-snarl. A rock hit the back of his head and
he slumped forward. The old Syndic who'd had his guard try to assassinate
Anarenz spat at the mob, lashing out with his fists as work-hardened hands
cuffed him into the thick of it. A knot of women closed around him, pried-up
cobblestones flailing in two-handed grips. The others disappeared in a surge of
bodies and stamping feet, dying and pulping and spreading as greasy stains on
the plaza pavement.
"Spirit of Man,"
Anarenz shouted, pushing forward. "Stop this, you butcher! Hang them
if you want to, that'll terrify the syndics of the other cities."
"No," Raj
replied.
His voice cut through
the noise much better than the sailmaker's did, and the mob were recoiling
now—from themselves, as much as from what remained of the city's former rulers.
"No, doing it this
way is better. The magnates elsewhere will know I've a much more terrible
weapon to use against them than my army." He nodded to the crowd.
"And they will know there's no going back; if the Brigade wins,
it'll make an example of Lion City."
Anarenz looked at him
with an expression more suitable for a man who'd stumbled across a pack of
carnosauroids devouring an infant.
"For the Spirit's
sake, is there anything you won't do to win your bloody war?"
he shouted. "Anything?"
Raj's head turned like a
cannon moving with a hand on its aiming-wheel. "No, Messer Alcalle,"
he said. "There's nothing I won't do to unite civilization on
Bellevue, and end things like this forever. For the Spirit's sake."
* * *
Suzette sank down beside
Raj and leaned her head against his shoulder. "You did what you had to do,
my love," she said softly.
His hands knotted on the
table, and the empty bottle of slyowtz rolled away. The spray of
plumb-blossom on the label curled about a stylized H; it was the Hillchapel
proprietary brand. How long was it since he'd been home?
"Only what you had
to do."
Raj's arms groped
blindly for his wife. She drew his head down to rest on her bosom, rocking it
in her arms.
lady whitehall is correct, Center said. observe-
I know! Raj cut in. Lion
City rising behind him, other cities closing their gates. Costing him men,
costing him time, neither of which he had to spare.
"I know," he
said aloud.
"Shhhh, my
love." The commandeered room was quiet, only the light hissing of the
lantern breaking the silence. "You're with me now. No need to be the
General. Peace, my love. Peace."
For a moment the hard
brilliance of another image gleamed before Raj: the Old Residence seen in the
near distance, its wall towers and walls silent but threatening simply for
their enormous extent.
The vision faded, yes, said Center. peace, for now.
Thom Poplanich floated
through infinity. The monobloc exploded outward, and he felt the
twisting of space-time in its birth-squall. . . .
I think I understand
that now, he thought.
excellent, Center said. we will return to socio-historical analysis:
subject, fall of the federation of man.
He had been down here in
the sanctum of Sector Command and Control Unit AZ12-b14-c000 Mk. XIV for years,
now. His body was in stasis, his mind connected with the ancient battle
computer on levels far broader than the speechlike linkage of communication. It
was no longer necessary for him to see events sequentially. . . .
Images drifted through
his consciousness. Earth. The True Earth of the Canonical Handbooks, not this
world of Bellevue. Yet it was not the perfect home of half-angels that the
priests talked of, but a world of men. Nations rose and warred with each other,
empires grew and fell. Men learned as the cycles swung upward, then forgot, and
fur-clad savages dwelt in the ruins of cities, burning their books for winter's
warmth. At last one cycle swung further skyward than any before. On a small
island northwest of the main continent, engines were built. Ones he recognized
at first, clanking steam-engines driving factories to spin cloth, dragging
loads across iron rails, powering ships. The machines grew greater, stranger.
They took to the air and cities burned beneath them. They spread from one land
to the next, springing at last into space.
Earth floated before
him, blue and white like the images of Bellevue that Center showed him—blue and
white like all worlds that could nourish the seed of Earth. One final war scarred
the globe beneath him with flames, pinpoints of fire that consumed whole cities
at a blow. Soundless globes of magenta and orange bloomed in airless space.
the last jihad, Center's voice said. observe.
A vast construct drifted
into view, skeletal and immense beside the tubular ships and dot-tiny suited
humans.
the tanaki spatial displacement net. the
first model. Energies flowed across it, twisting into dimensions
describable only in mathematics that he had not yet mastered. The ships
vanished, to reappear far away . . . here, in Bellevue's system. The Colonists,
first men to set foot on this world. They landed and raised the green flag of
Islam.
even more than the jihad, the net made the
federation of man essential, Center said. the empire that rose this time expanded until it covered all the Earth,
and leaped outward to nearby stars. a century later, its representatives landed
on distant Bellevue, much to the displeasure of the descendants of the
refugees, and the net was its
downfall. expansion proceeded faster than integration. Long strings of
formulae followed. once the
tipping point was reached, entropic decay accelerated exponentially.
The higher they rise,
the harder they fall, Thom thought.
true. There was a slight
overtone of surprise in Center's dispassionate machine-voice.
More images. War
flickering between the stars, mutiny, secession. Bellevue's Net flaring into
plasma. The remnants of Federation units turning feral when they were cut off
here, bringing civilization down in a welter of thermonuclear fire. Swift decay
into barbarism for most areas, a pathetic remnant of ancient knowledge
preserved in the Civil Government and the Colony, degenerating into
superstition. Now a thousand years and more had passed, and a tentative rebirth
stirred.
cycles within cycles, Center said. the overall trend is still toward maximum
entropy, unless my intervention can alter the parameters. fifteen thousand
years will pass until the ascendant phase of the next overall historical
period.
An image eerily familiar,
for he had seen it with his own eyes as well as through Center's senses. Two
young men out exploring the ancient catacombs beneath the Governor's palace in
East Residence. Unlikely friends: Thom Poplanich, grandson of the last
Poplanich Governor. A slight young man in a patrician's hunting outfit of
tweed. Raj Whitehall, tall, with a swordsman's shoulders and wrists. Guard to
the reigning Barholm Clerett, and like him from distant Descott County, source
of the Civil Government's finest soldiers. Once again he saw them discover the
bones outside the centrum, the bones of those Center had considered and
rejected as its agents in the world.
Raj will do it, Thom
thought. If any man can reunite the world, he can.
if any man can, Center agreed. the probability of success is less than 45%
±3, even with my assistance.
He's already
beaten back the Colony. The battle of Sandoral had been the greatest
victory the Civil Government had won in generations. Destroyed the Squadron.
The Squadron and its Admirals had held the Southern Territories for more
than a century, the most recent of the Military Governments to come down out of
the barbarous Base Area. And he's beating the Brigade. The 591st
Provisional Brigade were the strongest of the barbarians, and they held Old
Residence, the original seat of the Civil Government at the western end of the
Midworld Sea.
to date, Center acknowledged, he has taken the crown peninsula and lion
city. the more difficult battles remain.
Men follow Raj, Thom
said quietly. Not only that, he makes them do things beyond themselves. He
paused. What really worries me is Barholm Clerett. He doesn't deserve a man
like Raj serving him! And that nephew he's sent along on this campaign is
worse.
cabot clerett is more able than his uncle,
and less a prisoner of his obsessions, Center noted.
That's what
worries me.
The cavalry were singing
as they rode; the sound bawled out over the manifold thump of paws from the
riding dogs, the creak of harness and squeal of ungreased wheels from the
baggage train:
Oh, we Descoteers have hairy ears-
We goes without our britches
And pops our cocks with jagged rocks,
We're hardy sons of bitches!
"Hope they're as
cheerful in a month," Raj Whitehall said, looking down at the map spread
over his saddlebow. His hound Horace shifted beneath him from one foot to the
other, whining with impatience to be off at a gallop in the crisp fall air. Raj
stroked his neck with one gauntleted hand.
The commanders were
gathered on a knoll, and it gave a wide view over the broad river valley below.
The hoarse male chorus of the cavalry troopers sounded up from the fields. The
Expeditionary Force snaked westward through low rolling hills. Wagons and guns
on the road, infantry in battalion columns to either side, and five battalions
of cavalry off to the flanks. There was very little dust; it had rained
yesterday, just enough to lay the ground. The infantry were making good time,
rifles over their right shoulders and blanket-rolls looped over the left. In
the middle of the convoy the camp-followers spread in a magpie turmoil, one
element of chaos in the practiced regularity of the column, but they were
keeping up too. It was mild but crisp, perfect weather for outdoor work; the
leaves of the oaks and maples that carpeted the higher hills had turned to gold
and scarlet hues much like the native vegetation.
The soldiers looked like
veterans, now. Even the ones who hadn't fought with him before this campaign; even
the former Squadrones, military captives taken into the Civil Government's
forces after the conquest of the Southern Territories last year. Their uniforms
were dirty and torn, the blue of the tailcoat jackets and the dark maroon of
their baggy pants both the color of the soil, but the weapons were clean and
the men ready to fight . . . which was all that really mattered.
"Looks like more
rain tonight," Ehwardo Poplanich said, shading his eyes and looking north.
"Doesn't it ever not rain in this bloody country?"
The Companions were
veterans now too, his inner circle of commanders. Like a weapon whose hilt is
worn with use, shaped to fit the hand that reaches for it in the dark. Ehwardo
was much more than a Governor's grandson these days.
"Only in high summer,"
Jorg Menyez replied. "Rather reminds me of home—there are parts of Kelden
County much like this, and the Diva River country up on the northwestern
frontier."
He sneezed; the infantry
specialist was allergic to dogs, which was why he used a riding steer, and why
he'd originally chosen the despised foot-soldiers for his military career,
despite high rank and immense wealth. Now he believed in them with a convert's
zeal, and they caught his faith and believed in themselves.
"Good-looking
farms," Gerrin Staenbridge said, biting into an apple. "My oath, but
I wouldn't mind getting my hands on some of this countryside."
And Gerrin's
come a long way too. He'd commanded the 5th Descott before Raj made them his
own. Back then garrison-duty boredom had left him with nothing to occupy his
time but fiddling the battalion accounts and his hobbies, the saber and the
opera and good-looking youths.
There were a good many
orchards hereabouts; apple and plum and cherry, and vineyards trained high on
stakes or to the branches of low mulberry trees. Wheat and corn had been cut
and carted, the wheat in thatched ricks in the farmyards, the corn in long
rectangular bins still on the cob; dark-brown earth rippled in furrows behind
ox-drawn ploughs as the fields were made ready for winter grains. Few laborers
fled, even when the army passed close-by; word had spread that the eastern
invaders ravaged only where resisted . . . and the earth must be worked, or all
would starve next year. Pastures were greener than most of the easterners were
used to, grass up to the hocks of the grazing cattle. Half-timbered cottages
stood here and there, usually nestled in a grove, with an occasional straggling
crossroads village, or a peon settlement next to a blocky stone-built manor
house.
Many of the manors were
empty; the remaining landlords were mostly civilian, and eager to come in and
swear allegiance to the Civil Government. Here and there a mansion stood burnt
and empty. Ill-considered resistance, or peasant vengeance on fleeing masters.
Some of the peons abandoned their plows to come and gape as the great ordered
mass of the Civil Government's army passed, with the Starburst fluttering at
its head. It had been more than five hundred years since that holy flag flew in
these lands. Raj reflected ironically that the natives probably thought the 7th
Descott Rangers' marching-song was a hymn; there was much touching of amulets
and kneeling.
We fuck the whores right through their drawers
We do not care for trifles-
We hangs our balls upon the walls
And shoots at 'em with rifles.
"Area's too close
to the Stalwarts for my liking," Kaltin Gruder said. His hand stroked the
scars on his face, legacy of a Colonial shell-burst that had killed his younger
brother. "Speaking of which, any news of the Brigaderos garrisons up
there?"
"The Ministry of
Barbarians came through on that one," Raj said, still not looking up from
the map. "The Stalwarts are raiding the frontier just as we paid them to,
and most of the enemy regulars there are staying. The rest are pulling back
southwest, toward the Padan River, where they can barge upstream to Carson
Barracks."
Bribing one set of
barbarians to attack another had been a Civil Government specialty for
generations. Cheaper than wars, usually, although there were dangers as well.
The Brigade had come south long ago, but the Stalwarts were only down from the
Base Area a couple of generations. Fierce, treacherous, numerous, and still
heathen—not even following the heretical This Earth cult.
"Right," Raj
said, rolling up the map. "We'll continue on this line of advance to the
Chubut river—" he used the map to point west "—at Lis Plumhas.
M'Brust reports it's opened its gates to the 1st Cruisers. Ehwardo, I want you
to link up with him there—push on ahead of the column—with two batteries and
take command. Cross the river, and feint toward the Padan at Empirhado. It's a
good logical move, and they'll probably believe it. Engage at your discretion,
but screen us in any case."
The Padan drained most
of the central part of the Western Territories, rising in the southern
foothills of the Sangrah Dil Ispirito mountains and running northeast along the
range, then west and southwest around its northernmost outliers. Empirhado was
an important riverport, and taking it would cut off the north from the
Brigadero capital at Carson Barracks.
"Actually,"
Raj went on, "we'll cut southeast again around Zeronique at the head of
the Residential Gulf and come straight down on Old Residence. I want them to
come to us, and they'll have to fight for that eventually—it is the ancient
capital of the Civil Government. At the same time, it's accessible by sea up
the Blankho River, so we've a secure line of communications to Lion City.
Strategic offensive, tactical defensive."
Everyone nodded, some
making notes. Lion City was a very safe base. Its ruling syndics had
tried to resist the Civil Government army, fearful of Brigade retaliation and
confident in their city walls. Raj had found an ancient Pre-Fall passageway
under them and led a party to open the gates from within. After the sack, the
syndics who'd counselled resistance had been torn to bits—quite literally—by
the enraged common folk of the city. The commoners' only hope now was a Civil
Government victory; if the Brigade came back they'd slaughter every man, woman
and child for treason to the General . . .
and for the murder of their betters.
"Meanwhile, I'm
going to keep five battalions of cavalry with the main column and send the rest
of you out raiding. Round up supplies, liberate the towns and incidentally,
knock down the defenses—we don't want Brigaderos occupying them again in our
rear. Be alert, messers, there'll probably be more resistance soon. I've
furnished a list of objectives of military significance. Grammeck?"
"I don't like these
roads," the artilleryman-cum-engineer said.
Like most of his branch
of service, Grammeck Dinnalysn was a cityman, from East Residence. Unlike most
of the military nobility, Raj Whitehall had never hesitated to use the
technical skills that went with that education.
"They're just
graded dirt, and it's clay dirt at that. Much more rain, and it's going to turn
into soup."
Raj nodded again.
"Nevertheless, I intend to make at least twenty klicks per day,
minimum."
Jorg Menyez shrugged.
"My boys will march it," he said and sneezed, moving a little aside
to get upwind of the dogs. "I'm surprised we haven't seen more resistance
already," he added. "We're well beyond the zone Major Clerett
raided."
Raj grinned. "A
little dactosauroid flew in and whispered in my ear," he said, "in
the person of the Esteemed Rehvidaro Boyez—he was one of the Ministry
talkmongers at Carson Barracks, bribed his way out—that the Brigade has called
a Council of War there."
Harsh laughter from the
circle of Companions. The Council of War included all male Brigade adults, and
decided the great issues of state in huge conclaves at Carson Barracks, the
capital the Brigade had built off in the swamps. Or to be more accurate, debated
the issues at enormous length. To men used to the omnipotent quasi-divine
autocracy of the Civil Government, it was an endless source of amusement.
"No, no—it's
actually a good move. They have to decide on their leadership before they can do
anything. Filip Forker certainly won't." Forker was a mild-tempered
scholar, very untypical of the brawling warrior nobility of the Brigade; he was
also a defeatist who'd been in secret communication with the Civil Government.
"So they have to
get rid of him and elect a fighting man as General. Of course, they have left
it a little late."
The troopers below
roared out the last verse of their marching song:
Much joy we reap by diddlin' sheep
In divers nooks and ditches
Nor give we a damn if they be rams-
We're hardy sons of bitches!
"Let's get moving,
gentlemen. I expect some warm welcomes on the way to Old Residence."
* * *
"Compliments to
Captain Suharez, and Company C to face left, on this line," Gerrin
Staenbridge said. He sketched quickly on his notepad, and tore off the sheet to
hand to the dispatch rider. The man tucked it under his jacket to shelter the
drawing from the slow drizzle of rain.
Gerrin raised his
binoculars. The lancepoints of the Brigaderos cuirassiers were clearly visible
behind the ridge there, four thousand meters out and to the west. From the way
the pennants whipped backward, they were moving briskly. Bit of a risk to
spread his front, but the fire of the other companies should cover it. Better
to stop the flanking movement well out than to simply refuse his flank in
place.
"And one gun,"
he added.
The messenger spurred,
and the trumpet sounded. Men moved along the sunken lane to his front, where
the main line of the two battalions faced north. A company crawled back and
stood, then double-timed west in column of fours. Water spurted up from their
boots, and squelched away from the gun that followed them, its dogs panting and
skidding on the surface of wet earth and yellow leaves as they trundled out of
sight to meet the enemy's flanking attack. The remaining men moved west to
occupy the vacant space, spreading themselves in response to barked orders.
The paws of the
colonel's dog squelched too as he rode down the lane; it was barely nine meters
wide, rutted mud flanked on either side by tall maple and whipstick trees.
North beyond that was a broad stretch of reaped wheat stubble with alfalfa
showing green between the faded gold of the straw. Beyond that was a line of
orchard, and the Brigaderos, those whose bodies weren't scattered across the
field between from the first failed rush.
"That's right,
lads," Staenbridge called out, as he cantered toward the center of the
line, where the standards of the 5th Descott and the 1st Residence Life Guards
flew together, beside the main battery. "Keep those delectable buttocks
close to the earth and pick your targets."
The men were prone or
kneeling behind the meter-high ridge that marked the sunken lane's northern
edge. The trees and the remains of a rail fence gave more cover still; there
were a scatter of brass cartridge cases and the lingering stink of sulphur
under the wet mud and rotting leaf smell. Most of them had gray cloaks spread
over their backs; Lion City had had a warehouse full of them, woven of raw wool
with the lanolin still in them, nearly waterproof. Staenbridge had thoughtfully
posted a guard on that when the city fell, and lifted enough for all his men
and a margin extra. Raindrops glistened on the wool, sliding aside as the men
adjusted sights and reloaded. The breechblock of a gun clanged open and the
crew pushed it forward until its barrel jutted in alignment with the muzzles of
the riflemens' weapons.
He drew up beside the
banner. "Captain Harritch," he went on, "shift a splatgun to the
left end of the line, if you please."
The commander of the two
batteries shouted, and the light weapon jounced off down the trail, the crew
pulling on ropes; there was no need to hitch the dog team for a short move, but
it followed obediently, dragging the caisson with the reserve ammunition.
"We could put a
mounted company behind the left and countercharge when those lobster-backs are
stalled," Cabot Clerett offered.
It was the textbook
answer, but Staenbridge shook his head. "Fighting barbs with swords,"
he said, "is like fighting a pig by getting down on your hands and knees
and biting it. I prefer to keep the rifles on our firing-line. We'll see if
they come again."
"These're going
to," Bartin Foley said emotionlessly.
He was peeling an apple
with the sharpened inner curve of his hook; now he sliced off a chunk and
offered it. Staenbridge took it, ignoring Cabot Clerett's throttled impatience.
It was crisper and more tart than the fruit he was used to. Probably the
longer winters here, he thought.
Cabot Clerett probably
resented the fact that Bartin Foley had started his military career as a
protegee—boyfriend, actually—of Staenbridge's. Although the battles that had
taken the young man's left hand, and the commands he'd held since, made him
considerably more than that.
"Look to your
right, Major Clerett," Gerrin said. "They may try something there as
well."
Long lines of helmeted
soldiers in gray-and-black uniforms were coming out of the orchard three
thousand meters to their front. Serried lines, blocks three deep and fifty men
broad all along the front, then a gap of several minutes and another wave, but
these in company columns.
"Two thousand in
the first wave," he said. "A thousand in column behind. Three
thousand all up."
"Plus their
reserve," Foley noted, peering at the treeline.
Clerett snorted.
"If the barbs are keeping one," he said.
"Oh, these are, I
should think . . . this is Hereditary High Colonel Eisaku and . . ."
"Hereditary Major
Gutfreed," Foley completed. "Thirty-five to forty-five hundred in
all, household troops and military vassals."
To the right a battery
commander barked an order. The loader for the guns shoved a two-pronged iron
tool into the head of a shell and turned, adjusting the fuse to the distance he
was given. Within the explosive head a perforated brass tube turned within a
solid one, exposing a precise length of beechwood-enclosed powder train.
Another man worked the lever that dropped the blocking wedge and swung the
breechblock aside, opening the chamber for the loader to push the shell home.
The blocks clattered all along the line, five times repeated. The gunner
clipped his lanyard to the release toggle and stood to one side; the rest of
the crew skipped out of the path of recoil, already preparing to repeat the
cycle, in movements better choreographed than most dances. The battery
commander swung his sword down.
POUMPF. POUMPF.
POUMPF. POUMPF. POUMPF. Five blasts of powder smoke and red light, and the
guns bounced backward across the laneway, splattering muddy water to both
sides. Crews heaved at their tall wheels to shove them back into battery, as
the loaders pulled new shells out of the racks in the caissons.
The crack of the
shells bursting over the enemy followed almost at once. Men died, scythed down
from above. Staenbridge winced slightly in sympathy; overhead shrapnel was any
soldier's nightmare, something to which there was no reply. The Brigaderos came
on, picking up the pace but keeping their alignment. The columns following the
troops deployed in line were edging toward his left; he nodded, confirmation of
the opposing commander's design. It was a meeting of minds, as intimate as a
saber-duel or dancing. Closer now, it didn't take long to cover a thousand
meters at the trot. A thousand seconds, less than ten minutes. The Brigaderos
dragoons had fixed their bayonets, and the wet steel glinted dully under the
cloudy sky. Their boots were kicking up clots of dark-brown soil, ripping holes
in the thin cover of the stubblefield.
POUMPF. POUMPF.
POUMPF. POUMPF. POUMPF. More airbursts, and one defective timer that
plowed into the dirt and raised a minor mud-volcano as the backup contact fuse
set it off.
Nothing like the
Squadrones, Staenbridge thought. The barbarians of the Southern
Territories had bunched in a crowded mass, a perfect target. These Brigaderos
were much better.
POUMPF. POUMPF.
POUMPF. POUMPF. POUMPF. Powder smoke drifted along the firing line, low to
the ground and foglike under the drizzle.
At least the
Southern Territories were dry, he thought. Descott County got colder than this in
midwinter, but it was semi-arid.
"I make it eleven
hundred meters," Foley said. Getting on for small-arms range.
"Ready,"
Staenbridge called. Officers and noncoms went down the firing line, checking
that sights were adjusted. "I wonder how the left flank is making
out."
* * *
"Did ye load
hardpoint?" Corporal Robbi M'Telgez hissed.
The rifleman he
addressed swallowed nervously. "Think so, corp," he said, looking
back over his shoulder at the noncom.
Company C were kneeling
in a cornfield, just back from the crest of a swell of ground. The corn had
never been harvested, but cattle and pigs had been turned loose into it. Most
of the stalks were broken rather than uprooted, slick and brown with decay and
the rain; they formed a tangle waist-high in wavering rows across the lumpy
field. Just ahead of the line of troopers was the company commander, also down
on one knee, with his signallers, and a bannerman holding the furled unit
pennant horizontal to the ground. The field gun and its crew were slightly to
the rear.
"Work yer
lever," M'Telgez said.
The luckless trooper
shoved his thumb into the loop behind the handgrip of his rifle and pushed the
lever sharply downward. The action clacked and ejected the shell directly to
the rear as the bolt swung down and slightly back. The noncom snatched it out
of the air with his right hand, as quick and certain as a trout rising to a
fly. There was a hollow drilled back into the pointed tip of the lead bullet.
"Ye peon-witted
dickehead recruity!" the corporal said. "Why ain't ye in t' fukkin' infantry?
Ye want one a' them pigstickers up yer arse?" Hollowpoint loads
often failed to penetrate the body-armor of Brigaderos heavy cavalry.
He clouted the man
alongside the head, under his helmet. "Load!"
The younger man nodded
and reached back to his bandolier; it was on the broad webbing belt that
cinched his swallowtail uniform coat, just behind the point of his right hip.
The closing flap was buckled back, exposing the staggered rows of cartridges in
canvas loops—the outer frame of the container was rigid sauroid hide boiled in
wax, but brass corrodes in contact with leather. This time there was a smooth
pointed cap of brass on the lead of the bullet he thumbed home down the grooved
ramp on the top of the rifle's bolt. Hunting ammunition for big thick-skinned
sauroids, but it did nicely for armor as well.
"Use yer brain,
it'll save yer butt," the corporal went on more mildly.
He sank back into his
place in the ranks, watching the platoon's lieutenant and the company
commander. The lieutenant was new since Stern Isle, but he seemed to know his
business. The platoon sergeant thought so, at least. They'd both behaved as
well as anybody else in that ratfuck in the tunnel. M'Telgez smiled, and
the young trooper who'd been looking over to him to ask a question swallowed
again and looked front, convinced that nothing he could see there would be more
frightening than the section-leader's face. M'Telgez was thinking what he was
going to do if—when—he found out who had started the stampede to the rear in
the close darkness of the pipe tunnel. There'd been nothing he could do,
nothing anyone could do, once it started. Except move back or get
trampled into a pulp and suffocated when the pipe blocked solid with a jam of
flesh.
The 2nd Cruisers,
jumped-up Squadrone barbs, had gone in instead of the 5th Descott. With Messer
Raj. The stain on the 5th's honor had been wiped out by their bloodily
successful assault on the gates later that night . . . but M'Telgez intended to
find out who'd put the stain there in the first place. The 5th had been with
Messer Raj since his first campaign and they'd never run from an enemy.
The gunners were rolling
their weapon forward the last few meters to the crest of the slight rise, two
men on either wheel and three holding up the trail.
"On the word
of command," the lieutenant said, watching the captain. A trumpet sounded,
five rising notes and a descant.
"Company—"
"Platoon—"
"Forward!"
One hundred and twenty
men stood and took three paces forward. The lieutenants stopped, their arms and
swords outstretched to the side in a T-bar to give their units the alignment.
To the Brigaderos, they
appeared over the crest of the dead ground with the suddenness of a
jack-in-the-box.
Five hundred meters
before them about a quarter of the Brigaderos column was in view, coming over a
slight rise. They rode in a column six men broad; expecting action soon, they'd
brought the three-meter lances out of the buckets and were resting the
butt-ends on the toes of their right boots. The dogs they rode were broad-pawed
Newfoundlands, shaggy and massive and black, weighing up to fourteen hundred
pounds each. They needed the bulk and bone to carry men wearing back and
breastplate, thigh-guards and arm-guards of steel, plus sword and lance and
firearms and helmet. Their usual role was to charge home into Stalwart masses
already chopped into fragments by their dragoon comrades' rifle fire. Sometimes
the savage footmen absorbed the charge and ate it, like a swarm of lethal bees
too numerous for the lancers to swat. More often the cavalry scattered the
Stalwarts into fugitives who could be hunted down and slaughtered . . . as long
as the lancers went in boot to boot without the slightest hesitation.
It was a style of
warfare that had ended in the eastern part of the Midworld basin two centuries
ago, when breechloading firearms became common. The Brigaderos were about to
learn why.
Of course, since there
were nearly a thousand of the cuirassiers, the Civil Government troops might
not survive the lesson either.
POUMPF.
The field gun recoiled
away from the long plume of smoke. The first shell exploded at head-height a
dozen yards from the front of the column; pure serendipity, since the fuses
weren't sensitive enough to time that closely. It was canister, a thin-walled
head full of lead balls with a small bursting charge at the rear. The charge
stripped the casing of the shell off its load and spread the balls out, but the
velocity of the shell itself made them lethal. The first three ranks of the
lancers went down in kicking, howling confusion. The commander of the
cuirassier regiment had been standing in his stirrups and raising the
triangular three-bar visor of his helmet to see what had popped up to bar his
command's way. Three of the half-ounce balls ripped his head off his torso and
threw the body in a backwards somersault over the cantle of his saddle.
Behind him the balls
went over the heads of the rear of the column, protected by the dip in the
field in which they rode. The projectiles struck the upraised lances instead,
the wood of the forward ranks and the foot-long steel heads of those further
back and lower down. The sound was like an iron rod being dragged at speed along
the largest picket fence in the universe. Lances were smashed out of hands or
snapped off like tulips in a hothouse for a dozen ranks back. Men shouted in
fear or pain, and dogs barked like muffled thunder.
The cuirassier regiment
was divided into ten troops of eighty to ninety men each, commanded by a
troop-captain and under-officers. None of them knew what was happening to the
head of the column, but they were all Brigade noblemen and anxious to close
with the foe. They responded according to their training, the whole mass of
lancers halting and each troop turning to right or left to deploy into line.
When the Civil Government or Colonial dragoons deployed for a charge under fire
they did so at the gallop, but the Brigaderos were used to fighting men
equipped with shotguns and throwing-axes. Used to having plenty of time to
align their lines neatly.
M'Telgez watched his
lieutenant's saber out of the corner of his eye. It swung to the right. He
pivoted slightly, taking the general direction from the sword as his squad did
from him; a group of lancers opening out around a swallow-tail pennant, borne
next to a man whose armor was engraved with silver, wearing a shoulder-cape of
lustrous hide from some sauroid that secreted iridescent metal into its scales.
The corporal picked a target, a lancer next to the leader—no point in shooting
the same man twice, and he knew someone wouldn't be able to resist the
fancy armor. The rear notch settled behind the bladed foresight, and he lowered
his aiming-point another few inches—six hundred meters, the bullet would be
coming down from the top of its arch at quite an angle.
"—volley
fire—"
He exhaled and let his
forefinger curl slightly, taking up the trigger slack. The strap of the rifle
was wound round his left hand twice, held taunt with the forestock resting on
the knuckles. He might not know who'd fucked up in the tunnel, but at least he
was going to get to kill somebody today.
"Fire!"
* * *
Bullets went overhead
with an unpleasant wrack sound. Down the line from the command group a
trooper slumped backward with his helmet spinning free to land in the mud and
the top taken off of his head. He'd been holding two rounds in his lips like
cigarettes, with the bases out ready to hand; they followed the helmet, a dull
glint of brass through the rain.
Gerrin Staenbridge
looked back and forth down the sunken lane. Stretcher-bearers—military
servants—were hauling men back, crouching to carry them without exposing
themselves over the higher northern lip of the laneway. Other bearers and
soldiers were carrying forward ammunition boxes, ripping the loosened tops off
and distributing handfuls to the troopers on the firing line. Ahead the
Brigaderos were advancing again, one line running forward and taking cover
while the second fired and stood to charge their clumsy muzzle-loading rifle
muskets. He checked; yes, the company and platoon commanders were dividing
their fire, keeping both segments under fire and not letting the men waste
bullets on prone targets.
"Hot work,"
Bartin Foley said beside him. He gave the—literal—lie to his words by shaking
his head and casting a scatter of cold rain from his helmet and chainmail
neck-flap.
"Bloody hell,"
Staenbridge replied, raising his voice slightly. "Fight in the desert, and
you want rain. Fight in the rain and you want the sun. Some people are never
satisfied."
He lit two cigarettes
and passed one to the young captain. A lot of the enemy rifle-muskets were
misfiring; percussion caps were immune to rain, but paper cartridges were not.
Another line of the Brigaderos rose to advance, and a crashing stutter of
half-platoon volleys met them. At three hundred meters more shots hit than
missed, but the remnants came on and stood to fire a return volley of their
own. Wounded men screamed and cursed down the lines of the 5th and the Life
Guards; but they were protected, all but their heads and shoulders. The enemy
were naked. The Civil Government's rifle was a single shot breechloader; not
the least of its blessings was that it could be loaded lying down.
Off to the east the
firing line was thinner, where Company C had been detached; the 5th was still
overstrength, but not so much so since Lion City. The splatgun there gave its braaaaak
sound, thirty-five rifle barrels clamped together and fired by a crank. A
Brigaderos column was caught six hundred meters out, as it began the ponderous
countermarch they used to get from marching column into fighting line. Seconds
later two field-gun shells arrived at the same target, contact-fused; they
plowed up gouts of mud and toppled men with blast and heavy casing fragments.
Staenbridge stepped off his crouching dog and walked down behind the line, the
banner by his side. It had a few more bulletholes, but the bannerman kept it
aloft in the gathering rain.
"Ser, would ye mind
inspirin' ussn where ye won't draw fire?" a sergeant called back to him.
"Inspiration be
damned, I'm checking that your leatherwork is polished," Staenbridge said.
A harsh chuckle followed
as he strolled back to the center. Spirit, the things one says under stress,
he thought.
A runner squelched up, a
Life Guardsman. "Ser," he said to Cabot Clerett. "Barb movement
in t'woods. Mounted loik."
Staenbridge nodded at
the Governor's nephew's glance. "We're holding here," he said.
"Take a company . . . and the other two splatguns."
"Whitehall's
toys," Clerett said.
"Useful toys. Take
them, and use them."
Clerett nodded and
turned, calling out orders. He straddled his dog and the animal rose, dripping;
the rain was coming down harder now, a steady drizzle. Water sizzled on the
barrels of the splatguns, and the gunners left their breeches locked open as
they hitched the trails to the limbers and wheeled. Men on the far right of the
2nd Life Guard's section of the line fired one more volley and fell in behind
him, reloading as they jogged. There was a slapping sound, and the 2nds
bannerman gave a deep grunt and slumped in the saddle. Cabot reached out and
took the staff, resting the butt on his stirrup-iron as the other man toppled.
"See to him,"
he said. "You men, follow me." He kept the dog to a steady quick walk
as they moved in squelching unison behind him.
"Spread it out
there," Foley said sharply. The rightmost company of the 5th and the
leftmost of the 2nd shifted to fill in the gap, ducking as they moved to keep
under cover.
"He's got
nerve," Staenbridge murmured. "Still, I'm happier seeing his back
than his glowering face."
"I could resent
that remark," Foley said, sotto voce. Aloud: "Lieutenant, they're
clumping to your left. Direct the fire, if you please."
* * *
"Fire!"
M'Telgez straightened
from his crouch and fired. The Armory rifle punished his shoulder, the barrel
fouled from all the rounds he'd put through it this afternoon. This was the fifth
charge, and looked to be the worst yet. A hundred yards to the front dogs went
over and men died; they were close enough that he could hear the flat smacking
of bullets hitting flesh and the sharper ptung of impacts on armor. He
worked the lever and snatched a round he was holding between the fingers of his
left hand, thumbing it home.
"Here they
come!" he snarled.
The Brigaderos were
getting smarter; they'd dismounted some of their men behind the ridge over
there to use their rifles for a base of fire. The commander of Company C had
backed his troopers half a dozen paces, so that they could load crouching and
pop up to fire, but they were still losing men. The enemy were also still
trying to charge home; expensive, but although they might win a firefight, they
couldn't win it in time to affect the main action half a klick away—and the
lancers had been supposed to sweep down on the flank of the 5th's position.
Below in the slight
swale between the low ridges the lancers came on in clumps and as stragglers.
Their dogs' feet were balls of sticky mud, and the cornstalks there had been
trampled into a slippery mass that sent some riders skidding in disastrous
flailing tumbles even if the bullets missed them. More came on, though,
laboring up the slope.
"Fire!"
The corporal fired
again. A ragged volley crashed out around him, the muzzle-blasts
deafening—particularly the one from the man behind, whose muzzle was nearly in
his ear.
"Watch yer dressin',
ye dickead!" he screamed, jerking at his lever, and the man shuffled a
few steps right. At least the rifle wasn't jamming; there was some benefit
to the cold rain that was hissing down into his eyes.
He could see the dogs
snarling, and the men behind their visors. Mud flew chest-high on the dogs as
they came closer at a lumbering gallop.
"Fire!"
More died and half a
dozen turned back, some as their dogs bolted to the rear despite sawing hands
on the reins and the pressure of bridle-levers on their cheeks. The rest came
on, those who still had lances leveling them. The shafts were tapered and
smooth, save for a grapefruit-sized wooden ball just in front of the handgrip;
the heads were straight-sided knives a foot long, honed and deadly, with steel
lappets another two feet down the shaft on either side. M'Telgez' fingers had
to hunt for a second to find a cartridge in his bandolier; the upper rows were
empty. He clicked it home just as the straggling charge reached the Civil
Government line.
The lieutenant
pirouetted aside from a point like a matador in the arena. His saber slashed
down on the shaft behind the protective steel splints that ran back from the
head, and the razor edges tumbled. He let the motion spin him in place, and
shot the rider in the back point-blank with the revolver in his left hand.
M'Telgez had lost
interest in any lance but the one pointed at his chest. His lever clicked home
when it was only a couple of meters away; the corporal threw himself on his
back in blind instinct, falling with a thump as the steel dipped. It passed a
hand's breadth over his head and he shot with the butt of his rifle pressed to
the earth by his side. The bullet creased the Newfoundland's neck, cutting a
red streak through the muddy black fur. The animal reared and then lunged, the
huge jaws gaping for his face in a graveyard reek of rotting meat. M'Telgez
screamed and flung up his rifle; the dog shrieked too, when its jaws closed on
two feet of bayonet. The weapon jerked out of the Descotter's hands and the mud
sucked at his back. The Brigadero was standing in his stirrups, shouting as he
shortened the lance to stab straight down from his rearing mount.
The young trooper
M'Telgez had disciplined for misloading stepped up on the other side and fired
with his bayonet touching the Brigadero's armored torso. It didn't matter what
he had up the spout at that range. The lancer pitched out of the saddle as the
bullet punched in under his short ribs. The armor served only to flatten it
before it buzzsawed up through liver, lungs and heart to lodge under his
opposite shoulder. Blood shot out of his nose and mouth. He was dead before his
corpse hit the ground with a clank of steel.
The dog was very much
alive. Its huge paws stamped down on either side of the recumbent Descotter;
they were furnished with claws and pads rather than a grazing animal's hoof,
but they would still smash his ribs out through his spine if they landed. The
great loose-jowled jaws were open as the beast shook its head in agony,
splattering rainwater and blood from its cut tongue. The trooper shouted and
drove his bayonet toward its neck as the fangs turned toward the man on the
ground. The human's attack turned into a stumbling retreat as the dog whirled
and snapped, the sound of its jaws like wood slapping on wood.
M'Telgez remembered his
pistol. Most of the troopers had strapped the new weapons to holsters at their
saddlebows—they were supposed to be for mounted melees. He'd stuffed his down
the top of his riding boot when they dismounted, on impulse. Now he snatched it
free and blazed away at the furry body above him, into the belly rear of the
saddle's girth. The dog hunched up in the middle and ran, its rear paws just
missing him as it staggered a dozen paces and fell thrashing.
"Fastardos!"
he wheezed, picking up a dead man's rifle and loading as he rolled erect.
The Brigaderos were
retreating across the swale, many of them on foot—dogs were bigger targets than
men.
"Bastards!"
M'Telgez fired, reloaded, fired again. "Bastards!"
Shots crackled out all
down Company C's line, then the beginnings of volley-fire. It slammed into the
retreating men, killing nearly as many as had died in the attack before they
made it back to the dead ground behind their starting-point. The field gun elevated
and began dropping shells behind the ridge, the gunners and half a dozen
troopers as well slipping and sliding in the muck as they ran it back up the
slight rise until the muzzle showed.
Return fire was coming
in as well; retreat unmasked the Civil Government line to the Brigaderos across
the swale. M'Telgez went back to one knee as the minié bullets crackled
overhead and jerked the trooper beside him by the tail of his jacket.
"Git yer head down,
ye fool," he growled, looking around.
Not far away a man
writhed with a broken-off lance through his gut, whimpering and pulling at the
shaft. It jerked, but the steel was lodged in his pelvis far beyond the
strength of blood-slippery hands to extract. Another fumbled at his belt for a
cord to make a tourniquet; his arm was off above the elbow. The blood jetted
more slowly as the man toppled over. M'Telgez knew there was nothing anyone
could do for either of the poor bastards. When it was your time, it was time .
. . and he was very glad it hadn't been his.
"Kid," he went
on, as the young man obediently dropped to one knee and looked at him
apprehensively. "Kid, yer all right."
"Will theyuns be
back then, corp?" he asked.
M'Telgez wiped rain and
blood out of his eyes—none of the blood his, thank the Spirit.
"Nao," he
rasped.
The low ground ahead of
him was thick with corpses of armored men and dogs. Particularly in front of
the Company pennant; the Brigaderos had clumped there, driving for the
center—and also for the gun, meeting point-blank blasts of case shot.
"Nao, they won't be
back." He looked up and down the line. "Dressin'!" he barked
sharply. What was left of his section moved to maintain their line.
M'Telgez grinned, an
expression much like that the lancer's dog had worn when it lunged for his
life. "Hoi, barbs!" he shouted at the distant enemy. "Got any
messages fer yer wives? We'll be seein' 'em afore ye do!"
* * *
Cabot Clerett caught the
bayonet on his sword. It was a socket bayonet, offset from a sleeve around the
muzzle so that the musket could be loaded and rammed while it was fixed. Metal
grated on metal; he fired into the Brigadero's body beneath their linked arms.
The man pitched backward as the H-shaped wadcutter bullet put a small hole in
his stomach and a much larger one in his back.
"Forward!" the
governor's nephew said. "Vihtoria O Muwerti!" The motto of the
Life Guards. Or victory and death, but nothing came free.
Braaaaap. The splatgun
fired from not far behind, to his right. Bullets sprayed down the aisles
between the trees; this was a planted oakwood, regular as a chessboard. About
sixty or seventy years old, from the size of the trees, and regularly thinned
as they grew. Water dripped down from the bare branches. Dim figures in
gray-and-black uniforms were running back. A few paused to reload behind trees,
but they were only protected from directly ahead. Life Guardsmen strung out to
either side picked them off, mostly before they could complete the cumbersome
process.
Men flanked him as he
walked forward, the new bannerman holding the battalion flag. The company
commander was out on the right flank with the other splatgun. He could hear it
firing, trundled forward like the one with him to support the advance. Men
walked on either side of him, reloading as they dodged the trees. They were
cheering as they shot; the platoon commanders turned and flung out arms and
swords to remind them to keep their line.
"Runner,"
Cabot said. "To Colonel Staenbridge; enemy were advancing in column on our
right flank. I've driven them back and will shortly take them in enfilade all
the way back to their original startline."
The splatguns were useful.
It took less than ten seconds to replace each iron plate with thirty-five
rounds in it, better than three hundred rounds a minute. With them and a
hundred-odd riflemen, he would shortly be in a position to rake the front of
the Brigaderos firing line from the right side and chop up any reserves they
still held in the orchard.
Let that marhicon see
how a Clerett managed a battle, by the Spirit!
* * *
"So we moved forward
and caught them on the other side of the orchard as they tried to break
contact," Staenbridge said. "Cut them up nicely, then pursued
mounted, stopping occasionally to shoot them up again. They retreated to a
large fortified manor house, which burned quite spectacularly when we shelled
it, rain or no. The outbuildings had some very useful supplies, which will be
arriving shortly at ox-wagon pace along with the noncombatants.
"Major
Clerett," he went on, "led the right wing with skill and dash."
Raj nodded to the
younger officer. "The supplies will be useful," he said.
"Difficult to get enough in, when we're moving at speed."
He inclined his head
downslope. Most of the troops were trudging by with their rifles slung
muzzle-down; their boots had churned the fields on either side of the road into
glutinous masses. Some of them were wearing local peasant moccasins; the thick
mud rotted the thread out of issue boots and sucked off the soles. Further out
the cavalry plodded on, stopping occasionally to scrape balls of mud off their
mount's feet; the dogs whined and dragged, wanting to stop and groom. On the
roadway itself men—infantry and military servants, with gunners acting as
foremen—labored in mud even deeper, laying a corduroy surface of logs and beams.
As the officers watched a gun-team came up with its draught chain looped around
a hitch of fresh-cut logs. They rumbled down the slope to general curses as men
dodged the timber.
"I hope," Raj
went on, "that you kept me some Brigaderos prisoners of rank. We need more
information about what's happening at Carson Barracks."
A hereditary officer
from just west of the Waladavir River was speaking:
". . . a dozen
farms and a village burned, my manor looted—only by the grace of the Spirit of
Man of This Earth and the intervention of the Merciful Avatars did I and my
household escape the devil Whitehall. What does His Mightiness intend to do
about it?"
The Hall of Audience was
lit by scores of tapers in iron sconces, above the racked battle lasers of
antiquity. They cast unrestful shadow across the crowd that packed it, nearly a
thousand men. Light glittered restlessly from swordhilts, from the jeweled
hairclasp of one lord or the platinum beads on the jacket-fringe of another.
The air was cold and dank with the autumn rains that fell outside, but it
smelled powerfully of sauroid-fat candles and male sweat. An inarticulate growl
rose from the crowd; these were each powerful men in their own right, nobles
who commanded broad acres and hundreds of household troops.
Their like crowded
Carson Barracks, filling housing blocks that usually echoed emptily at this
time of year; the petty-squires and military vassals and freeholders who had
come as well camped in the streets. Right now they filled the vast parade
square outside the Palace. Crowd-noise came through the stone walls like an
angry humm, occasionally breaking into a chant:
"Fight! Fight!
Fight!"
General Forker rose from
the Seat to reply. The light glittered coldly on the engraved silver of his
ceremonial armor, and on the vestments of the Sysups and councilors grouped
around his throne.
"We have suffered
grievously with the sufferings of our subjects," he began.
A snarl rose from the
crowd, and he swallowed nervously as he continued.
"That is why we
have summoned you, my lords, to share your council with Us. Our diplomacy at
least delayed this attack, and now the rains are upon us, and winter comes on.
We will have ample time to prepare—"
Another lord stalked
into the speaker's position, on the floor below the Seat and just outside the
line of Life Guards.
"We've had time;
Stern Isle fell five months ago!" he bit out. "All we did was
to throw High Colonel Strezman and his men into Lion City—just enough to hurt
us if they were lost, and not enough to halt the enemy. Now Strezman and his
men are dead!
"Lord of Men,"
he went on, his tone cold, "you may not wish to campaign in winter but the
enemy don't seem to share your delicate sensibilities. Whitehall is over the
Waladavir, and his men have been sighted not three days' ride from
Empirhado."
A roar swelled across
the hall; the banners hanging from the rafters quivered.
"Rumors!"
"Truth!" the
noble shouted back. "This is no raid, no border war for a province or an
indemnity. The Civvies mean to grind us into dust the way they did the
Squadron, kill us and take our lands, throw down our holy Church and enslave
our women and children. They're coming, and the natives have already risen in
half a dozen provinces."
A ripple of horror went
through the hall. It was six hundred years since the Brigade came down out of
the Base Area and conquered the Spanjol-speaking natives of the Civil
Government's western territories, but the peoples were still distinct in blood
and language and faith, and the natives were overwhelmingly in the majority.
Like the Civil Government, they followed the cult of the Spirit of Man of The
Stars, rather than of This Earth as the Brigade and its cousins did.
The nobleman turned his
back on the Seat, a breach of protocol that stunned the watchers into silence.
"We need a fighting
man to lead us. Not this book-reader who's plotting with the enemy behind our
backs. I move for impeachment."
Forker's face was
working with rage and a trapped-beast fear. He forced his voice, turning it
high and shrill.
"You are out of
order. Arrest that man!"
The guards started
forward, but a score of nobles grouped around the speaker drew their swords.
The edges threw the light back as the heavy blades rose warningly.
"I am not out of
order," the noble replied. "As Hereditary High Major, I have the
right to call for impeachment before this assembly."
"I, Hereditary
Brigade-Colonel Ingreid Manfrond, second the impeachment." Another man
stepped into the speaker's circle, thick-set and muscular and grizzled.
"And place my name in nomination for the position of General of the
Brigade."
"You!" Forker
hissed. "You're not even of the House of Amalson."
"Collateral
branch," Ingreid said. "But tomorrow I wed Marie Welf, daughter of
General Welf—which makes my claim strong as iron." He turned to the
assembly. "And as General, my first act will be to mobilize the host. My
second will be to lead it to crush the invaders of our land!"
Forker signed to his
guard. There was a pause, one that made the light parade breastplate feel as if
it were squeezing his heart up into his mouth. Then they thumped their
rifle-butts on the floor. It took a moment for the rumbling to quiet enough for
him to speak.
"You lie, Ingreid
Manfrond. The hand of Marie Forker, my step-daughter, is mine to give or
withhold—and she rests content under the guard of my household
troops."
Another man shouldered
forward to stand beside Ingreid. "My name," he shouted in a
commander's trained bellow, "is Colonel of Dragoons Howyrd Carstens.
Forker lies. My own men guard Marie Welf, and she has agreed to marry our next
General, Ingreid Manfrond—worthy heir to the great General Welf. And as bridal
gift, she asks for the head of Filip Forker, murderer of her mother.
Woman-killer and coward!"
He raised his sword.
"Hail General Ingreid!"
"Hail! Hail!
Hail!"
* * *
"I'd rather rut
with a boar and farrow piglets!" Marie Welf shouted through the locked
door.
She gripped the pistol
more firmly. On either side of the door one of her gentlewomen waited, one with
a tall brass candlestick in her grip, the other with a jewel-hilted but
perfectly functional stiletto.
"Please, Mistress
Fo—ah, Mistress Welf." The house steward's voice quavered, his Spanjol
accent stronger than usual. "The soldiers say that you must open
the door."
"I'll kill the
first five men to step through it," Marie said. Nobody listening to her
could doubt she would try.
Silence fell. Riding
boots clumped on the parquet floors outside, and the strip of light under the
door brightened as more lamps were brought.
"Marie, this is
Teodore," a man called.
"What are you doing
here, cousin?" Marie said.
She was a tall
full-figured young woman, with strawberry blond hair in long braids on either
side of a face that was beautiful rather than pretty, high cheek-boned and with
a straight nose. Spots of anger burned on either cheek now, and she held the
pistol with a practiced two-handed grip.
"Talking to you.
And I'm not going to do it through a closed door. Watch out."
Shots blasted, and the
brass plate of the lock bulged. A man yelled in pain in the corridor outside,
and a chilly smile lit Marie's face. The door swung out, and a man stood there;
in his mid-twenties, five years older than the woman. His bluntly handsome
features were a near-match for hers under the downy blond beard, and he wore a
cuirassier officer's armor. The plumed helmet was tucked under one arm,
half-hidden by the deinonosauroid cloak that glittered in the lamplight. At the
sight of her leveled pistol he spread the other arm away from his body.
"Shoot, cousin, if
you want to see one less Welf in the world."
Marie sighed and let the
pistol drop to the glowing Kurdish carpet. "Come in, Teodore," she
said, and sank down to sit on one corner of the four-poster bed.
The ladies-in-waiting
looked at her uncertainly. "Thank you, Dolors, Katrini—but you'd better go
to your rooms now."
Teodore set his helmet
down on a table and began working off his armored gauntlets. "You wouldn't
have any wine, would you?" he asked. "Cursed cold night and wet
besides; a coup is hard outdoor work."
She pointed wordlessly
to a sideboard, and he smiled as he poured for both.
"You're making a
very great deal of fuss about something you'll have to do anyway," he
pointed out, handing her the glass and going to sit by the fire.
The velvet of the chair
dimpled and stretched under the weight of his rain-streaked armor. The wall
beside him held the fireplace, burning with a low coal blaze, and a bookshelf.
That carried a respectable two dozen volumes; the Canonical Handbooks in Wulf
Philson's Namerique translation, lives of the Avatars, and histories and
travelogues in Spanjol and Sponglish.
"You'd fuss too if
you'd been kept a prisoner since that beast murdered my mother," Marie
said. The wine was Sala, strong and sweet. It seemed to coil around the fire in
her chest.
"I was fond of Aunt
Charlotte myself. 'That beast' is now off the Seat, and running for his
life," Teodore pointed out. "Something which I had my hand in."
"Ingreid is a pig.
And he supported Forker. I'm certain he was one of the ones who murdered Mother
for that coward."
"That was never
proven. And Ingreid is a strong pig," Teodore said, casting a quick
look at the door. They were talking quietly, though, and he had told his men to
move everyone down the corridor. "The fact that he supported Forker tells
in his favor; the alternative was civil war. The alternative now is
civil war, unless Ingreid Manfrond has an unassailable claim to the Seat. If
you don't think that civil war is possible with invaders at the frontiers, then
you've read less of our history than I thought." He waved at the bookcase.
"Can Ingreid read
at all?" she said bitterly.
"No,
probably," Teodore said frankly. "That'll make him all the more
popular with the backwoods nobles, and the petty-squires and freeholders.
Civvies will keep the accounts as usual, and he's got advisers like Carstens
and—" he rapped his breastplate "—for the more complicated things. He
can certainly lead a charge, which is more than you can say for that
pseudo-scholar Forker."
He leaned forward, a
serious expression on his face. "I'm ready to fight and die for him, as
General. All you have to do is marry him."
"You aren't
expected to go to bed with him, Teodore."
"There is
that," the young man admitted. "But you'd have to marry somebody
sometime; it's the way things are done at our rank."
"I'm a free woman
of the Brigade; the law says I can't be married against my will," Marie
said.
Teodore spread his
hands. She nodded. "I know . . . but he smells. And he's fifty."
"You'll outlive
him, then," Teodore said. "Possibly as Regent for an underage heir.
And you will marry him tomorrow. If necessary, with a trooper standing
behind you twisting your arm. That won't be dignified, but it'll work."
"You would
make a better General, cousin!"
"So I would, if I
had the following," Teodore said. "So would you, if you were a man.
But I haven't and you aren't. The enemy won't wait for me to acquire a
majority, either."
"And how much will my
life be worth, once I've produced a healthy heir?" Marie said.
"Not to mention the question of his own sons, who'll have Regent ambitions
of their own."
Teodore went to the door
and checked that his cuirassier troopers were holding the servants at the end
of the corridor.
"As to the
heir," he said, leaning close to Marie's ear, "time will tell. In a
year, the war will be over. Once the grisuh are back across the sea . .
."
Marie's eyes were cold
as she set down the wineglass. "All right, Teodore," she said.
"But listen to me and believe what I say: whatever I promise in the
cathedron Ingreid Manfrond will get no love or loyalty from me. And
he'll regret forcing me to this on the day he dies, and that will be soon.
Spirit of Man of This Earth be my witness."
Teodore Welf had broken
lances with Guard champions on the northwestern frontier, and fought the
Stalwarts further east. He had killed two men in duels back home, as well.
At that moment, he was
conscious mainly of a vast thankfulness that it was Ingreid Manfrond and not
Teodore Welf who would stand beside Marie in the cathedron tomorrow.
Thunder rippled through
the night, and rain streaked the diamond-pane windows of thick bubbled glass.
Teodore looked away from his cousin.
"At least," he
said, "the enemy won't be making much progress through this. We'll
have time to get our house in order."
* * *
Thunder cracked over the
ford. The light stabbed down into a midday darkness, off wet tossing trees and
men's faces. Oxen bellowed as they leaned into the traces, trying to budge the
gun mired hub-deep in the middle of the rising river; they even ignored the
dogs of the regular hitch straining beside them. Dozens of infantrymen heaved
at the barrel and wheels, gasping and choking as water broke over them. Others
labored at the banks, throwing down loads of brush and gravel to keep the
sloping surfaces passable. Wagon-teams bawled protestingly as they were led
into the water; men waded through the waist-high brown flood with their rifles
and cartridge-boxes held over their heads.
One of the work-crews
was relieved, and stumbled upslope to the courtyard of the riverside inn.
"Wat's a name a'
dis river?" one asked a noncom.
"Wolturno,"
the man mumbled, scraping mud off his face. It was a winding stream, meandering
back and forth across the flood-plain where the road ran. The Expeditionary
Force had already crossed it several times.
"Ever' fukkin'
river here is named Wolturno," the soldier said. They slouched into lines
before the kettles.
"Thank'ee,
miss," the infantryman said, taking his bowl and cup.
He stumbled off a few
paces to crouch in the lee of a wagon, spooning up the stew of beans and cubed
bacon and taking mouthfuls of the cornbread bannock. More of his squadmates
crowded through beneath the awnings to the bubbling cauldrons; like him they
were dripping with more than the slashing rain, and so filthy it was hard to
see the patches and tears in their uniforms; one was wrapped completely in a
shrouding of earth-stained peasant blankets.
Fatima cor Staenbridge-cor
meant freedwoman, and the name was her former master's—filled the ladle
again and swung it out to the outstretched bowl.
"Not much, but it's
hot," she said cheerfully. Rain leaked down through the makeshift awning,
but most of it ran off the thick wool of the hooded cloak she wore. "Take
all you can eat, soldier, eat all you take."
"Bettah dan whut we
eaat a' hume," the footsoldier said, in a thick peasant dialect of
Sponglish she couldn't place. There were so many. From the looks of his thin
young face, the young peon conscript probably hadn't eaten this well before the
Army press-gangs swept him up. "Yu an angel, missa."
Mitchi plunked a hunk of
cornbread on his bowl, and took his cup to dip it in a vat of hot cider.
"Thank Messa
Whitehall, she organized it," she said.
Dozens of the cauldrons
were cooking in the courtyard, hauled from the inn kitchens and from houses
nearby. Army servants, women—even wives, in a few cases—and miscellaneous
clergy carried out fresh loads of ingredients and dumped them in to cook.
Rations were issued when there were no markets, but each eight-man squad of
soldiers was generally supposed to cook for themselves—that was one of the
duties military servants did for the cavalry troopers. Today that would have
meant hardtack and cold water for the infantry laboring to keep the ford
passable, without Lady Suzette Whitehall rounding up camp-followers and
supplies for this. And there would be the usual camp to build at the end of the
day's march, with wet firewood and sopping bedding. Exhausted men forgot to
take care for themselves and let sickness in.
"Messer Rahj an'
his lady, dey sent by de Spirit," the soldier blurted. His face was
pinched and stubbled. "Dey treet de commun sojur right, not jus'
dog-boys."
The men were too tired
for enthusiasm, but they nodded and muttered agreement as they shuffled
forward. Fatima swung the ladle until it was scraping the bottom of the cauldron.
"Take all you can
eat, eat all you can—Messer Raj!"
"Thank you,
Fatima," he said.
The mud was mainly below
the swordbelt, his uniform and boots were sound, and he wore one of the warm
rainproof cloaks. Apart from that he looked nearly as exhausted as the
infantrymen who'd been shoveling stone and hauling brushwood to the ford. The
other officers with him looked no better. A low murmur went through the
courtyard as he was recognized, but the men kept to their scraps of shelter at
a half-gesture from one hand.
Cabot Clerett looked
dubiously at the bowl. The others started shovelling theirs down unconcerned.
"I hope there's something better at the end of the day," he said.
Fatima stood aside as
more helpers staggered up with pails of well-water, sacks of beans and half a
keg of the chopped bacon. The Renunciate leading them tossed in a double
handful of salt and some dried chilis. The cauldron hissed slightly as the
ingredients went in, and one of the servants dumped more coal on the embers
beneath.
"Messa Whitehall
said," Fatima put in, "that the headquarters cook had found a lamb,
and some fresh bread."
"Something to look
forward to." That was Major Peydro Belagez of the Rogor Slashers. "By
the Spirit, mi heneral, before I met you I spent fifteen uneventful
years patrolling the Drangosh border and fighting the Colonials once every two
months. The sun shone, and between patrols I lay beneath orange trees while
girls dropped nougat into my mouth. Now look at me! Mi mahtre warned me
of the consequences of falling into bad company—Malash, she was right."
The major from the
southern borders was a slight man in his late thirties, naturally dark and
leathery with years of savage desert suns and windstorms, wearing a pointed
goatee and a gold ring in one ear. His grin was easy and friendly; Fatima
swallowed as she remembered the same pleasant expression last year after Mekkle
Thiddo, the Companion who commanded the Slashers, was killed under flag of
truce, and Belagez rounded up the men responsible, even in the chaos of the
pursuit after the Squadron host was broken. Raj had ordered them crucified, but
Belagez had seen to the details, even to having the victims' feet twisted up
under their buttocks before they were spiked to the wood. A man lived much
longer that way, before asphyxiation and shock killed him.
She had never felt easy
around Borderers; the feuds along the frontier between Colony and Civil
Government were too old and bitter. Fatima had hated her father, the Caid of El
Djem . . . but she remembered too well how he had died, in a huge pool of blood
with a Borderer dancing in glee around him, the jiggling sack of the old man's
scrotum impaled on the curved knife which slashed it free.
Belagez' smile was
innocent as he glanced at her. She was the woman of a friend, and so he would
cheerfully face death to defend her.
"Messa Whitehall
says she found some good wine, too," Fatima went on.
For that matter, the 5th
Descott would fight for her now—and they were the men who'd burned her home and
would have gang-raped her, if she hadn't managed to get Gerrin and Bartin Foley
to protect her. Life is strange. From despised minor concubine's
daughter to slave to a freedwoman and mother of the acknowledged son of a
wealthy Civil Government nobleman-officer in a year . . . of course, the child
could have been Bartin's, just as likely. But Gerrin had adopted it, and he had
no other heir. Messer Raj and his lady had stood Starparents.
"If it does not
pucker the mouth to drink it," Belagez said. "Spirit, the wine here
is even more sour than that dog-piss you northerners like—which I had not
believed possible."
Kaltin Gruder grinned.
"You mean it's not syrup like that stuff they make south of the
Oxheads," he said. "Too sweet to drink and too thick to piss, no
wonder you cut it with water."
Raj finished his mug of
cider and sighed, wiping his mouth on the back of his hand. "Well,
Messers," he said. "No rest for the wicked. I've an uneasy suspicion
that some of the Brigaderos at least realize we're not going to curl up somewhere
cozy in front of the fire until the rains stop."
"Those who aren't
too busy dealing with each other," Bartin Foley said. He handed his bowl
back to Fatima with a smile of thanks.
"Even if most are
politicking, that leaves an uncomfortable number otherwise employed," Raj
said. "Gerrin, you have the main column for the rest of the day. Major
Clerett, you and I will—"
* * *
Filip Forker, ex-General
and no longer Lord of Men, stuck his head out the window of the carriage.
"Faster!" he
said, coughing into a handkerchief. What a time to have a headcold, he
thought.
The road northwest from
Carson Barracks had been paved once, very long ago. Even now chunks of ancient
concrete made the light travelling coach jounce as it rocked forward through a
dense fog. Moisture glittered in the moonlight on the long white fur of the
wolfhounds and streaked the carriage windows. There was a spare hitch behind,
another carriage with his mistress and the essential baggage, a light two-wheel
wagon for the gear, and an escort . . .
although the escort was smaller than it had been a few hours ago. Much
smaller than it had been when they left the city, although he had promised rich
rewards to any who stayed with him until they reached his estates on the Kosta
dil Orhenne in the far west.
Some would stay, because
they had eaten his salt. There was a bitterness to seeing how few felt bound to
him.
"Why aren't you
going faster?" he called to the driver.
"It's dark, master,
and the road is rough," the man replied.
Even his tone had
changed, although he wore an iron collar and Forker had the same power of life
and death over him that he'd had before his impeachment. For a moment Forker
was tempted to order him shot right now, simply to demonstrate that—but he had
few enough servants along. Let a flogging wait until he reached his estates,
among the Forker family's military vassals. He would be secure there. . . .
Men rode across the road
a hundred meters ahead. They were wrapped in dark cloaks, but most of them held
rifles with the butts resting on their thighs. The clump at their head had
naked swords, cold starlight on the edged metal.
Forker swallowed vomit.
He mopped at his raw nose and looked wildly about. More were riding out behind
him, out of the eerie forest of native whipstick trees that covered the land on
either side. The officer of his household troopers barked orders to the handful
of guards who'd remained, and they closed in around the carriages, pulling the
rifle-muskets from their scabbards. Hammers clicked as thumbs pulled them back,
the sound loud and metallic in the insect-murmurous night.
"Halt," the
leader of the cloaked men said.
"In . . ."
Forker began, hacked, spat, spoke again: "Ingreid Manfrond promised me my
life!"
"Oh, General
Manfrond didn't send me to kill you," the man said, grinning in his beard.
"The Lord of Men just told me where I could find you. Killing you was my
own idea. Don't you remember me? Hereditary Captain Otto Witton."
He rode close enough so
that the riding lanterns on the coach showed the long white scar that ran up
the left side of his face until it vanished under his hairline. It was flushed
red with emotion. His dog crouched, and he stepped free.
"Just a little
matter of wardship of my cousin's daughter Kathe Mattiwson—and her lands—and
she was promised to me, and she wanted me, you bastard. But you
assumed the wardship and sold her like a pig at a fair, to that son of a
bitch Sliker. Get out of there."
Forker found himself
climbing down to the roadway without conscious decision. Thin mud sucked at the
soles of his gold-topped tasseled boots.
"An, ah, an
honorable marriage—"
"Shut up, you
little shit!" Witton screamed. The scar was white against his red
face, and his sword hissed out. "Now you're going to die."
The houseguard captain
stepped between them. "Over my dead body," he said, calmly enough.
The tip of his own sword touched the roadway, but his body was tensed for
action the way a cat's does, loose-jointed. There were hammered-out dents in
his breastplate, the sort a full-armed sword cut makes.
"If that's how you
want it," Witton said.
He looked to the men
sitting their dogs around the carriage. "But it'd be a pity, the Brigade
needs all the fighting men it can get—this little Civvie-lover will be no loss,
though."
"The Brigade
doesn't need men who'd let their sworn lord be cut down by thirty enemies on
the road," the retainer said. "He may be a cowardly little shit, but
we ate his salt."
It said a good deal for
the situation that Filip Forker ignored the comment. Instead he squealed:
"That's right—my life is your honor! Save me and I'll give you half my
lands."
The captain looked over
his shoulder at Forker, expressionless. Then he turned back to Witton.
"A man lives as
long as he lives, and not a day more," he said. "Sorry to miss the
war with the Civvies, though."
"You don't have
to," Witton said. This time his grin was sly. "An oath to a man
without honor is no oath. We won't overfall your gold-giver with numbers. I'll
challenge him here and now; you can be witness to a fair fight."
He stepped closer and
spat on Forker's boot. "I call you coward and your father a coward, and
your mother a whore," he said. "You've got a sword."
The guard captain
stepped back, his face clearing. Both men were wearing blades, neither had
armor, and they were close enough in age. If the former monarch was weedy and
thin-wristed while Witton looked as if he could bend iron bars between his
fingers, that was Forker's problem; he should have been in the salle
d'armes instead of the library all those years.
Forker looked around;
the code said a man could volunteer to fight in his place, but it wasn't an
obligation. Some of his men were smiling, others looking away into the night.
None of them spoke.
"It's time,"
Witton said, thick and gloating. He raised the blade. "Draw or die like a
steer in a slaughter chute."
"Marcy!"
Forker screamed, falling to his knees. There was a sharp ammonia stink as his
bladder released. "Marcy, migo! Spare me—spare my life and
everything I have is yours."
Witton's smile turned
into a grimace of hatred. Forker shrieked and threw up his arms. One of them
parted at the elbow on the second stroke of Witton's earnest, clumsy butchery.
The stump of the arm flailed about, spurting blood that looked black in the
silvery light. That jerked the attacker back to consciousness, and his next
blow was directed with skill as well as the strength of shoulders as thick as a
blacksmith's.
"Book-reader,"
the warrior said with contempt, standing back and panting. Thick drops of blood
ran down his face and into his beard, speckling the front of his fringed
leather jacket.
The dead man's servants
came forward to wrap the body; it leaked blood and other fluids through the rug
they rolled it in. Forker's mistress looked on from the second carriage; she
raised the fur muff that concealed her hands to her lips and stared
speculatively over it at the guard captain and the heavy-set assassin.
Witton spoke first.
"I hope you don't feel obliged to challenge," he said to the
guardsman.
The retainer shrugged.
"We were contracted, not vassals. He fell on his own deeds." A wintry
smile. "I guess there won't be much trouble finding a new berth for me and
my guns."
His expression grew
colder. "Although if I catch those pussies who bugged out before we got
this far, I don't think they'll ever need another gear-and-maintenance contract
as long as they live."
The fog had turned to a
light drizzle. Witton lofted a gobbet of spit toward the body the servants were
pushing into the carriage. The wolfhounds in the traces whined and twitched at
the smells of blood and tension, until the driver flicked his whip over their
backs.
"Can't blame them
for not wanting to fight for Forker," he said.
"Fuck Forker,"
the guard captain said. "My contract was with him, but theirs was with me."
Witton nodded. "You
can sign up with my lot," he said. "I'm down twenty rifles on
my assigned war-host tally."
The guardsman shook his
head. "Wouldn't look good," he said. Witton grunted agreement; a
mercenary's reputation was his livelihood. "We'll head back to Carson
Barracks, somebody'll sign us on for the duration, maybe the Regulars. Figure
the call-up'll come pretty soon anyway, might as well beat the rush."
He turned and called
orders. His men eased back the hammers of their rifles and slid them into the
scabbards on the left side of their saddles. There was a moment's pause as one
man bent in the saddle and grabbed the bridle of the dogs pulling the baggage
wagon, turning it around, and then the fading plop of their dogs' paws.
Witton waved the
carriage with Forker's body onward. They'd take it back to his ancestral
estates for burial, although even in this cool weather it'd be pretty high by
then. He had no problem with that, after his second-in-command down the road
made a search for the getaway chest with the money and jewels Forker would
undoubtedly have been carrying. He looked up at the second carriage. The woman
there lowered the fur that hid her face and gave him a long smile. The maid
cowering beside her was obviously terrified, but Forker's ex-mistress was a
professional too, in her way. Huge violet-colored eyes blinked at him, frosted
in the fog-blurred light of the moons.
And quite spectacular.
Well, the little bastard had been General, no reason he should settle
for less than the best. He wiped at his face, smearing the blood, and smiled
back while his hands automatically cleaned and sheathed his sword.
* * *
"This should be
very useful indeed," Raj said.
The estate was well off
from the army's line of march, in a district of rolling chalk hills. There was
little cultivation, but the ground was mostly covered with dense springy green
turf, and grazed by huge herds of sheep and large ones of cattle; pigs fed in
the beechwoods on the steeper slopes. Evidently the land hereabouts was held in
big ranching estates and yeoman-sized grazing farms rather than let to
sharecroppers; the manor they'd just taken was surrounded by outbuildings, great
woolsheds and corrals and smokehouses, a water-powered scouring mill for
cleaning wool and an odorous tannery off a kilometer or so. The cured bacon and
barreled salt beef and mutton would be very welcome. The herds would be even
more so, since they could walk back to the main force.
The bolts of woolen
cloth woven in the long sheds attached to the peon village would be more
welcome still. It wasn't raining right now here, and the soil was
free-draining. The air was crisp, though, the breath of men and dogs
showing—and a lot of his soldiers were patching their pants with looted
bed-curtains. This area would give every man in the army another blanket, which
might make the difference between health and pneumonia for many. Enough for
jacket-linings too, if there were time and seamstresses.
"I hope everything
is satisfactory, sir," Cabot Clerett replied. The of course it is and
why are you meddling? were unspoken.
Cabot Clerett's respect
for Raj's abilities as a commander was grudging but real.
"Quite satisfactory,"
Raj replied. I'm glad I don't hate anyone that much, he added to
himself.
only partly hatred, Center's pedantic
machine-voice said in his mind. a
large element of fear, envy and jealousy as well.
Tell me, Raj thought.
Cabot envied everything
from Raj's military reputation to his wife. Suzette could play him like a
violin, of course, and that was probably all that had kept Cabot from goading
his uncle into a disastrous recall order for Raj. Not that it would take much
goading; Barholm Clerett's paranoia went well beyond the standard Gubernatorial
suspicion of a successful commander.
That doesn't mean I have
to like it, Raj thought. Then: back to the work of the day.
The lord of the estate
had surrendered promptly and been given receipts for the supplies the 1st Life
Guards were methodically stripping from the barns and storehouses. Clerett's
men seemed to be well in hand; they were helping the estate's serfs load the
wagons, and keeping the lined-up manor staff under their guns, but nothing
more. Undoubtedly a few small valuables would disappear, not to mention
chickens, but nothing in the way of rape, arson or murder was going on. Pickets
were posted, keeping the surroundings under observation. . . .
Raj's eyes passed over
the lord of the manor, a stout Brigadero in late middle age, standing and
ignoring the troopers guarding him with a contemptuous expression. It was
mirrored on the hatchet-faced, well-dressed matron at his side. Three younger
women with children looked only slightly more apprehensive. One twelve-year-old
boy with his tow colored hair just now grown to warrior length and caught with
a clasp at his neck glared at the Civil Government commander with open hatred.
More Brigadero women and children clustered in the windows of the manor, or in
medium-sized cottages separate from the peon huts.
"Right, we'll pull
out," Raj said.
It took considerable
time to get the wagons and bleating, milling, mooing herds moving down to the
road that rolled white through the chalk hills. From the look of the grass, and
the iron-gray clouds rolling overhead, there had been as much rain here as in
the valley where the army toiled south toward Old Residence. The chalk soil
didn't vanish into mud the way bottomland clay did, since it was free-draining,
but it would be awkward enough. Many of the Life Guard troopers had been vakaros
back in Descott or the other inland Counties; they swung whips and lariats
and yipped around the fringes of the herds.
"What bothers me is
where all the men are," Raj said. "Not just here, but the last couple
of manors in this area and the bigger farms."
The two officers rode at
the head of a company column of the 1st upslope from the road, out of the
milling chaos of the drive and the heavy stink of liquid sheep feces. Other
columns flanked the convoy as it drove downward.
"Well, they've been
mobilized," Clerett said.
Raj nodded; that was the
first thing Ingreid had done after he took the Seat. The rally-point named was
Carson Barracks, in the circulars they'd captured.
"That might be
where the nobles' household troops have gone," he said. "I don't
think they need big garrisons here to keep the natives in line."
The peons in the manors
had looked notably better fed and more hostile to the Civil Government troops
than most they'd seen. Herding is less labor-intensive than staple agriculture,
and produces more per hand although much less per hectare.
"The problem
is," Raj went on, "that this is a grazing district."
Clerett looked at him
suspiciously. Raj amplified: "It's too thinly peopled to shoot the
carnosauroids out," he said.
The younger man nodded
impatiently. "Lots of sign," he said.
Strop-marks on trees,
where sicklefeet stood on one leg to hone the dewclaw that gave them their
name. There had been a ceratosauroid skull nailed over a barn door at the last
manor, too: a meter long counting the characteristic nose-horn, and the beast
would be two meters at the shoulder, when it ran after prey with head and tail
stretched out horizontally over the long striding bipedal legs. Shreds of flesh
and red-and-gray pebbled hide had clung to the skull.
"Nice string of
sicklefoot dewclaws beneath it," Raj went on. "You're a Descotter
too, Major." More of one than Barholm, he thought.
The Governor had spent
almost his whole life in East Residence, while Cabot stayed home in the hills
to keep the Cleretts' relations with the Descott gentry warm. It was no
accident that the County which provided a quarter of the elite cavalry also
supplied the last two Governors.
Clerett's face changed.
"Vakaros," he said. Cowboys.
Raj nodded. Ranching
meant predator control on Bellevue; and giving rifles and riding-dogs to slaves
or peons and sending them out to ride herd was a bad idea, generally
speaking. Most of the bond-labor at the estate they'd just left had been there
for processing work, putting up preserved meats, tanning hides, and weaving,
plus gardening and general chores. There had been a number of barracks and
cottages and empty stables surplus to peon requirements, and a lot of
Brigaderos women of the commoner class. The herdsmen were gone.
"That's why all the
estate-owners here seem to be Brigaderos." In most of the country they'd
passed through the land was fairly evenly divided between Brigade and civilian.
"Brigade law forbids arming civilians. I don't think they enforce it all
that strictly, but most of the vakaros—whatever they call them here—would be Brigaderos
as well."
And there was no better
training for light-cavalry work. Keeping something like a ceratosauroid or a
sicklefoot pack off the stock tested alertness, teamwork, riding and
marksmanship all at once. Not to mention fieldcraft and stalking.
"Shall I spread the
scout-net out wider?" Cabot said.
Raj stood in the
stirrups and gave the surroundings a glance. None of the canyons and badlands
and gully-sided volcanoes that made much of Descott County a bushwacker's
paradise, but the bigger patches of beechwood and the occasional steep-sided
combe in thick native brush would do as well.
"I think that would
be a very good idea, Major Clerett," he said.
* * *
Marie Welf—Marie
Manfrond now—lay silent and motionless as Ingreid rolled off her. The only movement
was the rise and fall of her chest, more rapid now with the weight off; she lay
on her back with her hands braced against the headboard of the bed and her legs
spread. Blood stained the sheet beneath the junction of her thighs, and some of
the scented olive oil discreetly left on the nightstand, which had proven to be
necessary. The high coffered ceiling of the General's private quarters was
covered with gold leaf and the walls with mosaic; they cast the flame of the
single coal-oil lamp over the bed back in yellow lambency.
Naked, Ingreid's paunch
and graying body-hair were more obvious, but that simply emphasized the troll
strength of his blocky shoulders. His body was seamed with scars, particularly
down the left side and on the lower arms and legs. Puckered bullet wounds, long
white fissures from swords, a deep gouge on one thigh where a lancepoint had
taken out a chunk of meat when it hammered through the tasset. Neck and hip and
joints were calloused where his armor rested, and there was a groove across his
forehead from the lining of a helmet. Strong teeth showed yellow as he smiled
at her and raised a decanter from the bedside table.
"Drink?" he
said. Marie remained silent, staring at the ceiling.
"Well, then I
will," he said, splashing the brandy into a glass. The ends of his long
hair stuck to his glistening shoulders, and his sweat smelled sourly of wine
and beer.
He wiped himself on a
corner of the satin sheets and got up, moving about restlessly, picking up
objects and putting them down. After a moment he turned back to the bed.
"Not so bad, eh?
You'll get better when you're used to it."
Marie's head turned and
looked at him silently. The eyes were as empty of expression as her face.
Ingreid flushed.
"You'd
better," he said, gulping down the brandy. "I was supposed to marry a
woman, not a corpse."
Marie spoke, her voice
remote. "You got what you bargained for. That's all you're getting."
"Is it,
girlie?" Ingreid's flush went deeper, turning his face red-purple under
the weathering. "We'll see about that."
He threw the glass aside
to bounce and roll on the carpets, then jerked her head up by her hair. His
hand went crack against her face, the palm hard as a board. She jerked
and rolled to the edge of the bed, her long blond hair hiding her face. Then
her head came up, the green eyes holding the same flat expression despite the
red handmark blazing on her cheek.
"I've got better
things to do than teach you manners, bitch," Ingreid snarled. "For
now. When the war's won, I'll have time."
He threw on a robe.
Marie waited until he had slammed out the door until she stood as well, moving
carefully against the pain of pulled muscles and the pain between her legs. A
servant would come if she pulled one of the cords, but right now even such a
faceless nonentity would be more than she could face. She walked into the
bathroom and turned up the lamp by the door, looking at herself in the
full-length mirror without blinking, then opened the taps to fill the
seashell-shaped bath of marble and gold. Hot water steamed; the General's
quarters had all the luxuries. It wasn't until the bath was full and foaming
with scented bubble soap that she realized it was the same tub that her mother
had been drowned in.
She managed to make it
to the toilet before she started vomiting. When her stomach was empty she wiped
her face and stepped into the bath anyway. She would need all her strength in
the days ahead.
* * *
"That was too
easy," Raj said, resting his helmet on his saddlebow. And for once, it
isn't raining. The breath of men and dogs showed in frosty clouds, but the
sun was bright in a morning sky.
The little town of
Pozadas lay at the junction of the chalk downs and the lower clay plain; it had
no wall, although the church and a few of the larger houses would have done as
refuges against bandits or raiders. So would some of the mills along the river.
They were built of soft gold-colored limestone; napping and scutching mills and
dye-works for woolen cloth, mostly. The town had many cottages where weavers
worked hand-looms and leatherworkers made boots and harness. Wisely, the
citizens had offered no resistance, but they were sullen even though the Civil
Government had paid in looted gold for most of what it took.
It was a prosperous town
for its size; the town hall was new and quite modern, with large glass windows
below and an open balcony on the second story, overlooking the roofs of the
other buildings.
"Glum-looking
bastards," Cabot said, rising in the saddle to look over Raj's shoulder.
Few were on the
streets—the troops and the huge herds of livestock they were driving through
the main road took up too much room—but there were scowls on the faces peering
from windows and doorways.
"Not
surprising," Raj said.
He nodded to a vast
bleating mat of gray-and-white sheep churning up the chalky flint-studded dirt
of the street; it moved like a shaggy blanket, with an occasional individual
popping up, struggling for a few steps across its neighbors' backs, and then
dropping back into the press. There was a heavy barnyard odor, overwhelming the
usual outhouse and chemical reek of a cloth-making town.
"We're taking their
livelihood," the general went on. "It'll take years for the herds
back there—" he inclined his head back toward the downland they'd just
finished sweeping "—to breed back up again. That's assuming that things
don't get so disrupted the carnosauroids finish off the breeding stock we left.
In the meantime, what'll they do for wool and hides?"
A large army was like a
moving suction-machine; his was travelling fast enough that it wouldn't leave
famine in its wake, but nobody else would be able to move troops along the same
route anytime soon.
"I still wonder
where all those men went," Raj said meditatively.
Cabot drew his pistol
and pointed it. Raj threw himself flat in the saddle, and the bullet cracked
where he had been.
Horace whirled in less
than his own length, paws skidding slightly on the sheep-dung coated mud of the
street. The Brigadero who'd been behind him pitched backward with a third hole
in line with his eyebrows, his floppy-brimmed hat spinning off. There were a
dozen more behind him, some still charging out of the opened doors of the town
hall courtyard, and more on foot behind them. Still more on balconies and rooftops,
rising to fire. Shots crackled through the streets and men screamed, dogs
howled, and the bleating of berserk sheep was even louder as the near-witless
animals scattered in all directions into alleys and squares and through open
doors and windows.
"Thanks!" Raj
shouted. Now I know where the herdsmen went.
The man behind him had a
sword raised for a sweeping overarm cut. Raj dodged under it as Horace bounced
forward, his saber up and back along his spine; the swords met with an
unmusical crash and skirl, and he uncoiled, slashing a third Brigadero across
the face. Then his personal escort had faced about and met the rest, shooting
and stabbing in a melee around Raj and Cabot and their bannermen. More
Brigaderos were charging out of the mills. Raj scanned the housetops. A couple
of hundred enemy, and they'd found the best way to hide the scent of their
dogs; in the middle of a textile town, with thousands of livestock jamming
through it.
Bloody Starless
Dark, he thought disgustedly. Another cock-up because he hadn't enough troops to
nail things down.
The problem with relying
on speed and intimidation was that some people just didn't intimidate worth a
damn.
"Rally south of
town," he shouted to Cabot Clerett. "Spread out, don't let them get
back into the hills. Pin them against the river as you come in."
"They'll swim the
stream and scatter," the younger man replied.
Raj gave a feral grin.
"Not for long," he said. "Get moving!"
The major jerked a nod,
wheeling his dog and waving his pistol forward. His bannerman fell in beside
him, and the trumpeter sounded retreat-rally as they pounded south,
toward the spot where the Civil Government column had entered the town. Men
fought free of the herds and plunder-wagons and joined him in clumps and units.
Some fell, but everyone understood the need to break contact until they could
rally and unite. If they stood, the prepared enemy would cut them up into penny
packets and slaughter them.
"Follow me!"
Raj barked.
His escort had taken
care of the first Brigaderos to attack, but even as he spoke he saw a man and a
dog go down. A bullet cracked by his head with an unpleasant puff of wind
against his cheek, which was entirely too close. He had a full platoon
of the 5th Descott with him, beside messengers and aides. That ought to be
enough.
He pointed his saber at
the town hall and clapped his heels to Horaces flanks. The hound took off from
bunched hindquarters, travelling across the muddy sheep-littered plaza in a
series of bounds that put them at chest-height from the ground half a dozen
times. As he'd expected, that threw off the marksmen; they'd been expecting the
troops they ambushed to mill around, or try to return fire from street level. Never
do what they expect.
Thirty dogs pounded up
the stairs to the arcaded verandah of the hall. A final crackle—too ragged to
be a volley—at point-blank range knocked another six down. Smoke puffed into
their faces, blinding them for an instant. Then they were scrabbling across the
smooth tile of the portico and crashing through tall windows in showers of
glass and the yelping of cut dogs. Horace reared and struck the big double
doors with his forepaws. A jolt went through Raj's body, and he felt his teeth
clack once like castanets; something seemed to snap behind his eyes.
The doors boomed open,
crushing bone and tearing men off their feet. Horace's jaws closed over the
face of another; the inch-long fangs sank in, and the hound made a rat-killing
flip that sent the body pinwheeling back in a spray of blood. There were thirty
or forty Brigaderos in the big reception hall that backed the portico; from
their looks, he'd found the missing herdsmen. With another twenty-five riding
dogs, the place was crowded, too crowded for the enemy to recharge their
muzzle-loaders. Some of them clubbed muskets, but most drew swords or
fighting-knives. Raj's men emptied their revolvers into the press and swept out
their sabers. The dogs stamped on men trying to roll under their bellies and
cut, snapped with fangs and hammered with their forepaws.
A Brigadero dodged in
and cut at Raj's left thigh, always vulnerable in a mounted man. Horace spun on
one leg, and Raj stabbed down over the saddle. The blow was at an awkward
angle, but it sank into the bicep of the man's sword-arm. His weapon flew free
as Raj jerked his steel free of the ripped muscle; then a Descotter wardog
closed its jaws in his back and threw him over its shoulder with a snap. Raj
lashed back to his right with a backhand cut across the neck of a man trying to
come in on his bannerman's rear. The man with the flag had a revolver in his
right hand; he was keeping his mount stock-still with a toe-to-foreleg signal
and picking his targets carefully.
A last shot barked out.
Powder-smoke was drifting to the ceiling; a few more men in blue jackets and
maroon pants ran in, troopers whose dogs had been hit outside. As always, the
melee was over with shocking suddenness. One instant there were shots and
screams and the blacksmith chorus of steel on steel, the next only the moans of
the wounded and the quick butcher's-cleaver sounds of troopers finishing off
the enemy fallen.
"Dismount!"
Raj barked. "Dogs on guard."
Horace pricked up his
floppy ears at the word. So did the other mounts as the men slid to the ground,
drawing their rifles from the saddle scabbards. Anyone trying to get into the
ground floor was going to have a very nasty surprise.
"Walking wounded
cover the front entrance," Raj went on. They could bandage themselves and
the more severely hurt as well. "The rest of you, fix bayonets and follow
me."
He switched his saber
for an instant, juggled weapons to put his revolver in his left hand, and led
the rush up his half of the curving double staircase with the lieutenant of the
escort platoon on the other. Marksmen dropped out halfway up to cover the top
of the stairs, firing over their comrades' heads. Hobnails and heel-plates
clamored and sparked on the limestone. Center's aiming-grid dropped over his
sight . . . which was a bad sign, because that only happened in desperate
situations. No time for thought, only a quick, fluid feeling of total
awareness. Everyone crouched as they neared the top of the stairs; he signed
right and left to the men whose bayonet-tips he could see on either side.
"Now!"
The bannerman dropped
flat two steps down, jerking the flag erect and waving it back and forth. The
Brigaderos waiting in the upper hallway behind an improvised barricade of
tables reacted exactly the way Raj had expected. The pole jumped in the
bannerman's hands as a bullet took a piece out of the ebony staff and others
plucked through the heavy silk of the banner itself. Raj and the leading
riflemen crouched below the lip of the stairs as minié bullets and pistol
rounds blasted at the top step. Time seemed to slow as he raised his head and
left hand.
Green light strobed
around a man with a revolver, aiming between the slats of a chair. Maximum
priority. Crack. He pitched backward with a bullet through the neck, his
scrabbling spraying body fouling several others. Raj fired as quickly as his
wrist could move the dot of the aimpoint to the next glowing target, emptying
the five-shot cylinder in less time than it took to take a deep breath. Much
more of this and he'd get a reputation as a pistol-expert on top of everything
else. As he dropped back under the topmost step four men levelled their rifles
over it and fired. The heavy 11mm bullets hammered right through the barricade;
the four ducked back down to reload, and another set a few steps lower down
stood to fire over their heads. The sound echoed back off the close stone
walls, thunder-loud.
Not a maneuver in the
drill-book, but these were veterans. He shook the spent brass out of the
revolver and reloaded, judging the volume of return fire.
"Once more and at
'em," he said. "Now."
They stood to charge. A
man beside Raj took a bullet through the belly, folding over with an oof and
falling backward to tumble and cartwheel down the stairs. Troopers behind him
shouldered forward; all the Brigaderos behind the improvised barricade were
badly wounded, but that didn't mean none of them could fight. There was a brief
scurry of point-blank shots and bayonet thrusts.
Raj stood thinking as
the soldiers searched the rooms on either side of the corridor, swift but
cautious. No more shots . . . except from outside, where the steady crackle was
building up again. His eyes fell on an unlit lamp. It was one of a series in
brackets along the wall. Much like one back home; a globular glass reservoir
below for the coal-oil, and a coiled flat-woven wick of cotton inside adjusted
by a small brass screw, with a blown-glass chimney above.
"Sergeant," Raj
called, stepping over a dead Brigadero.
The blood pooled around
the enemy fallen stained his bootsoles, so that he left tacky footprints on the
parquet of the hallway. Light fell in from rose-shaped windows at either end of
the hallway.
"Get those lamps,
all of them," he said.
"Ser?" The
noncom gaped.
"All of
them, and there should be more in a storage cupboard somewhere near. Distribute
them to the windows. Quickly!" The trooper dashed off; the order made no
sense, but he'd see it was obeyed, quickly and efficiently.
"Lieutenant,"
Raj went on. The young man looked up from tying off a rough bandage around his
calf.
"Mi heneral?"
"A squad to each of
the main windows, if you please. Send someone for extra ammunition from the
saddlebags."
"Sir."
"And check how many
men able to shoot there are below. Send some troopers to help them barricade
the doors and windows."
"Ci, mi
heneral."
He led his own small
group of messengers and bannerman through the room opposite the staircase. It
looked to be some sort of meeting chamber, with a long table and chairs, and
crossed banners on the wall. One was the crimson-and-black double thunderbolt
of the Brigade, the other a local blazon.
"Get the
table," he said. "Follow me out."
The balcony outside ran
the length of the front of the building, wrought-iron work on a stone base. The
signallers came out grunting under the weight of the heavy oak table, and
dropped it with a crash on its side and up against the railings. They dropped
behind it with grateful speed, as riflemen in windows and rooftops across from
them opened fire. Luckily, nothing overlooked the town hall except the tower of
the church, and it was too open to make a good marksman's stand. Other squads
were bringing out furniture of their own, some from the Brigaderos' own
barricade at the head of the stairs.
"Keep them busy,
lads," Raj said.
A steady crackle of
aimed shots broke out; along the balcony, from the windows at either end of the
hallway behind, and from the smaller windows on the rear side of the town hall.
Raj took out his binoculars. A cold smile bent his lips; the enemy seemed to be
coming out into the streets and milling around in surprise, mostly—even a few
townspeople joining them.
Amateurs, he thought.
Tough ones, good
individual fighters, but whoever was commanding them didn't have the
organization to switch plans quickly when the first one went sour. That was the
problem with a good plan—and it had been a cunningly conceived ambush—it tended
to hypnotize you. If you didn't have anything ready for its miscarriage, you
lost time. And time was the most precious thing of all.
South of the town the
Life Guards were deploying, just out of rifle range. Dogs to the rear, extended
double line, one company in the saddle for quick reaction; right out of the
manuals. Also the guns. Four of them, and the first was getting ready to-
POUMPF. The shell went
overhead with a whirring moan and crashed into one of the mills. Black smoke
and bits of tile and roofing-timber flew up. More smoke followed; there must
have been something like tallow or lanolin stored there.
"Sir." It was
the lieutenant and his platoon-sergeant.
The latter carried a dozen
of the coal-oil lamps and led men carrying more, with still others piled
high on a janitors wheeled wooden cart.
"Sir," the
young officer went on, "there's ten men downstairs fit to fight, if they
don't have to move much. We've barred the back entrance; it's strong, and they
won't get through without a ram. The front's another story, we've done what we
can, but . . ."
Raj nodded and took a
package of cigarettes out of his jacket, handing two to the other men.
"Right," he
began, and spoke over his shoulder. "Signaller, two red rockets."
Turning his attention back to the other men:
"In about five
minutes," he said, waving the tip of his saber at the town, "the
barbs are going to realize that with us sitting here they can't even defend the
town against the Life Guards—we can suppress their rooftop snipers too
effectively from here.
"So they'll try
rushing us. There's only two ways they can come; in the back, and in the front
the same way we did. We don't have enough guns to stop them, not and keep the
snipers down too. And once they're close to the walls, we won't be able to rise
and fire down from up here without exposing ourselves."
They nodded. Raj took
one of the lamps and turned the wick high, lighting it with his cigarette. The
flame was pale and wavering in the bright morning sunlight, but it burned
steadily.
"They'll have to
bunch under the walls—by the doors, for example." Raj tossed the lamp up
and down. "I really don't think they'll like it when we chuck these over
on them."
The two officers and the
noncom smiled at each other. "What about the front?" the sergeant
asked. "There's this—" he stamped a heel on the balcony's deck
"—over the portico."
"That," Raj
went on, "is where you'll take the keg." He nodded at the clay barrel
of coal-oil on the cart, with a dozen lamps clinking against it. "And hang
it like a pihnyata from one of the brackets."
"Roit ye are,
ser," the sergeant said, grinning like a shark. "Roit where she'll
shower 'em wit coal-juice as they come chargin' up t' steps, loik."
He took the heavy
container and heaved it onto his shoulder with a lift-and-jerk. "Ye,
Belgez, foller me."
* * *
"A hundred thousand
men?" Ingreid asked.
Teodore Welf nodded
encouragingly. "That's counting all the regular garrisons we've been able
to withdraw, Your Mightiness, and the levies of the first class—all organized,
and all between eighteen and forty."
Ingreid's lips moved and
he looked at his fingers. "How many is that in regiments?"
Howyrd Carstens looked
around the council chamber. It was fairly large, but plain; whitewashed walls,
and tall narrow windows. The three of them were alone except for servants and
civilian accountants—nonentities. Good. He liked Ingreid, and respected him,
but there was no denying that large numbers were just not real to the
older nobleman. For that matter, a hundred thousand men was a difficult number
for him to grasp, and he was a modern-minded man who could both read and write
and do arithmetic, including long division. He had enough scars, and enough
duelling kills, that nobody would call it unmanly.
Teodore spoke first.
"Standard regiments?" A thousand to twelve hundred men each. "A
hundred, hundred and ten regiments. Not counting followers and so forth, of
course."
Ingreid grunted and
knocked back the last of his kave, snapping his fingers for more.
"And the
enemy?"
Carstens shrugged.
"Twenty thousand men—but more than half of those are infantry."
The Military Governments
didn't have foot infantry in their armies, and he wondered why the Civil
Government bothered.
"Of mounted troops,
real fighting men? Seven, perhaps eight regiments. They have a lot of field
artillery, though—and from what I've heard, it's effective."
Ingreid shook his head.
"Seven regiments against a hundred. Madness! What does Whitehall think he
can accomplish?"
"I don't know, Your
Mightiness," Teodore Welf said. The older men looked up at the note in his
voice. "And that's what worries me."
* * *
Burning men scrambled
back from the portico of the town hall. A few of them had caught a full splash
of the fuel, and they dropped and rolled in the wet dirt of the square. More
leaped and howled and beat at the flames that singed their boots and trousers.
The bullets that tore at them from the windows were much more deadly—but every
man has his fear, and for many that fear is fire. The smell of scorched stone
and burning wool and hair billowed up from the portico, up in front of the
overhanging balcony in a billow of heat and smoke. From the ground floor the
dogs howled and barked, loud enough to make the floor shiver slightly under his
feet. The men along the balcony above shot and reloaded and shot, their attention
drawn by the helpless targets.
"Watch the bloody roofs,"
Raj snapped, hearing the command echoed by the non-coms.
The Brigaderos began to
clump for another rush at the portico, as the flames died down a little . . .
although there was an ominous crackle below the balcony floor, from the
roof-beams that ran from the arches to the building wall and supported it.
Another shower of glass lanterns full of coal-oil set puddles of fire on the
ground and broke the rush, sending them running back across the plaza to
shelter in the other buildings.
Raj looked left and
south. Cabot's Life Guards were advancing, with the battery of field guns
firing over their heads. The gunners had the range, and the buildings edging
the town there were coming apart under the hammer of their five-kilo shells.
"Messer Raj."
The platoon sergeant duckwalked up to Raj's position, keeping the heaped wooden
furniture along the balustrade between him and any Brigadero rifleman's sights.
"We singed 'em
good, ser," the noncom said. His own eyebrows looked as if they'd taken
combat damage as well. "Only t' damned roof is burnin', loik. We'nz gonna
have t'move soon."
"The barbs will
move before we roast, sergeant," Raj said. I hope, he thought. He
also hoped the warmth in the floor-tiles under his hand was an illusion.
The enemy should run.
Pozadas had helped set up the ambush—something its citizens were going to
regret—but the Brigaderos were countrymen. Caught between two fires, their
instinct would be to head for open ground, out of the buildings that were
protection but felt like traps.
He wiped his eyes on the
sleeve of his jacket and brought the binoculars up. Yes. Groups of men
pouring out of the houses, pouring out of the mills—most of those were burning
now, from the shellfire. On foot and dogback they streamed north to the river,
crowding the single narrow stone bridge or swimming their dogs across. The
battery commander was alert; he raised his muzzles immediately. The
ripping-sail sound of shells passed overhead. One landed beyond the bridge; the
next fell short, pounding a hole in the roadway leading to it—and scattering
men and dogs and parts of both up with the gout of whitish-gray dirt. The next
one clipped the side of the bridge itself, and the whole battery opened up.
Shells airburst over the river, dimpling circles into the water, like dishes
pockmarked with the splash-marks of shrapnel.
"Out, everybody
out," Raj said.
The Life Guards were
charging, cheering as they came. The mounted company rocked into a gallop ahead
of them.
"Check every
room," he went on. Someone might be wounded in one of them, unable to
move. "Move it!"
The lieutenant came in
from the back, hobbling on his ripped leg and grinning like a sicklefoot.
"Bugged out," he said. "All but the ones we burned or shot while
they tried to open the back door with a treetrunk."
"Good work,"
Raj said.
He threw an arm around
the young officer's waist to support his weight and they went down the stairs
quickly; the lower story was already emptying out. The dogs wuffled and danced
nervously as they crossed the hot tile of the portico. Puddles of flame still
burned on the cracked flooring, and the thick beams of the ceiling above were
covered in tongues of scarlet.
Guess I didn't
imagine the floor was getting hot after all, Raj thought. The
coal-oil had been an effective solution to the problem of Brigaderos storming
the building . . . but it might have presented some serious long-term problems.
Of course, you had to
survive the short term for the long term to be very important.
Horace snuffed him over
carefully in the plaza, then sneezed when he was satisfied Raj hadn't been
injured. The mounted company of the Life Guards streamed through, already
drawing their rifles. Two guns followed them, limbered up and at the trot. Raj looked
south: the dismounted companies were fanning out to surround the town and close
in from three sides.
Cabot Clerett pulled up
before the general, swinging his saber up to salute. Raj returned the gesture
fist-to-chest.
The younger man stood in
the saddle. "Damn it, a lot of them are going to get away," he
said. The measured crash of volley-fire was coming from the direction of the
bridge, and the slightly dulled sound of cannon firing case-shot at point-blank
range.
Beside Raj, his
bannerman stiffened slightly at the younger officer's tone. Clerett grew
conscious of the stares.
"Sir," he
added.
Raj was looking in the
same direction. The land on the other side of the river was flat drained fields
for a thousand meters or so. Brigaderos were running all across it, those with
the fastest dogs who'd been closest to the river. Bodies were floating down
with the current, now. Not many who'd still been in the water or on the bridge
when the troops arrived would make it over; as he watched a clump toppled back from
the far bank.
"Oh, I don't think
so, Major Clerett," he said calmly. Horace crouched and he straddled the
saddle.
Beyond the cleared
fields was a forest of coppiced poplar trees, probably maintained as a
fuel-source for the handicrafts and fireplaces of Pozadas. The glint of metal
was just perceptible as men rode out of the woods, pausing to dress ranks. The
trumpets were unheard at this distance, but the way the swords flashed free in
unison and the men swept forward was unmistakable.
Clerett looked at him
blank-faced. A murmur went through the men nearest, and whispers as they
repeated the conversation to those further away.
"You expected the
ambush, sir?" he said carefully.
"Not specifically.
I thought we could use some help with all that livestock . . . and that
everything had been too easy."
"If you'd told me,
sir, we might have arranged a more . . . elegant solution without extra
troops."
Raj sighed, looking
around. The civilians were still indoors, apart from a few who'd tried to
follow the Brigaderos over the river, and died with them. The fires were
burning sullenly, smoke pillaring straight up in the calm chill air. He reached
into a saddle bag and pulled out a walnut, one of a bag Suzette had tucked in
for him.
"Major," he
said, "this is an elegant way to crack a walnut."
He squeezed one
carefully between thumb and forefinger of his sword hand. The shells parted,
and he extracted the meat and flicked it into his mouth.
"And it can work.
However." He put another in the palm of his left hand, raised his right
fist and smashed it down. The nut shattered, and he shook the pieces to the
ground. "This way always works. Very few operations have ever
failed because too many troops were used. Use whatever you've got."
Cabot nodded
thoughtfully. "What are your orders, sir?" he asked. "Concerning
the town, that is."
The wounded were being
laid out on the ground before the town hall. Raj nodded toward them.
"We'll bivouac here
tonight, your battalion and the Slashers," he said. "Get the fires
out or under control—roust out the civilians to help with that. Round up the
stock we were driving. Send out scouting parties to see none of the enemy
escaped or are lying up around here; no prisoners, by the way."
"The town and the
civilians?" Clerett asked.
Raj looked around;
Pozadas had yielded on terms and then violated them.
"We'll loot it bare
of everything useful, and burn it down when we leave tomorrow. Shoot all the
adult males, turn the women over to the troops, then march them and the
children back to the column for sale."
Clerett nodded.
"Altogether a small but tidy victory, sir," he said.
"Is it,
Major?" Raj asked somberly. "We lost what . . . twenty men
today?"
The Governor's nephew
raised his brows. "We killed hundreds," he said. "And we hold
the field."
"Major, the Brigade
can replace hundreds more easily than I can replace twenty veteran
cavalry troopers. If all the barbarians stood in a line for my men to cut their
throats, they could slash until their arms fell off with weariness and there
would still be Brigaderos. Yes, we hold the field—until we leave. With less
than twenty thousand men, I'd be hard-pressed to garrison a single district,
much less the Western Territories as a whole. We can only conquer if men obey
us without a detachment pointing guns every moment."
Raj tapped his knuckles
thoughtfully on the pommel of his saddle. "It isn't enough to defeat them
in battle. I have to shatter them—break their will to resist, make them
give up. They won't surrender to a few battalions of cavalry. So we have to
find something they can surrender to."
He gathered his reins.
"I'm heading back to the main column. Follow as quickly as possible."
* * *
Abdullah al'-Aziz spread
the carpet with a flourish.
"Finest Al Kebir
work, my lady," he said, in Spanjol with a careful leavening of Arabic
accent—it was his native tongue, but he could speak half a dozen with faultless
purity. He was a slight olive-skinned man, like millions around the Midworld
Sea, or further east in the Colonial dominions. Dress and more subtle clues
both marked him as a well-to-do Muslim trader of Al Kebir, and he could change
the motions of hands and face and body as easily as the long tunic, baggy
pantaloons and turban.
This morning room of the
General's palace was warm with hangings and the log fire in one hearth, but the
everlasting dank chill of a Carson Barracks winter still lingered in the mind,
if nowhere else. Abdullah was dispelling a little of it with his goods. Bright
carpets of thousand-knot silk and gold thread, velvets and torofib, spices and
chocolate and lapis lazuli. Since the Zanj Wars, when Tewfik of Al Kebir broke
the monopoly of the southern city-states, a few daring Colonial traders had
made the year-long voyage around the Southern Continent to the Brigade-held
ports of Tembarton and Rohka. If you survived the sea monsters and storms and
the savages it could be very profitable. The Civil Government lay athwart the
overland routes from the Colony, and its tariffs quintupled prices.
Marie Manfrond
straightened in her chair. "This is beautiful work," she said,
running a hand down a length of torofib embroidered with peacocks and prancing
Afghan wolfhounds carrying men in turbans to the hunt.
"All of you,"
she went on, "leave me. Except you, Katrini."
Several of the court
matrons sniffed resentfully as they swept out; attendance on the General's Lady
was a hereditary right of the spouses of certain high officers of state. Marie's
cold gray gaze hurried them past the door. Men in Guard uniforms stood outside,
ceremonial guards and real jailers. Abdullah looked aside at Katrini. She went
to stand beside the door, in a position to give them a few seconds if someone
burst through.
"Katrini's been
with me since we were girls," Marie said. "I trust her with my
life."
Abdullah shrugged.
"Inshallah. You know, then, from whom I come?"
His long silk coat and
jewel-clasped turban were perfectly authentic, made in Al Kebir as their
appearance suggested.
"Raj
Whitehall," Marie said flatly. "The Colonial traders don't come to
Tembarton this time of year; the winds are wrong."
"Ah, my lady is
observant," Abdullah said. Marie nodded; not one Brigade noble in a
thousand would have known that.
"But I do not come
from General Whitehall . . . not directly. Rather from his wife, Lady Suzette.
If Messer Raj's sword is the Companions who fight for him, she is his dagger,
just as deadly."
"What difference
does it make?" Marie asked. "Why shouldn't I turn you over to my
husband's men immediately?"
Abdullah smiled at the
implied threat, that he would be turned over later if not now. The
subtlety was pleasing. He owed Suzette Whitehall his freedom and life and that
of his family, but he served her most of all because it gave him full scope for
his talents. He could retire on his savings if he wished, but life would be as
savorless as meat without salt.
"Forgive me if I
presume, my lady, but my lady Suzette has told me that your interests and those
of General Ingreid are not . . . how shall I say . . . not always exactly the
same."
"That's no secret
even in Carson Barracks," Marie said. Not a month after the wedding, with
a fading black eye imperfectly disguised with cosmetics. "But Ingreid
Manfrond is General, and my people are at war. Do you think I would betray the
591st Provisional Brigade and its heritage for my own spite?"
"Ah, no, by no
means," Abdullah said soothingly, spreading his hands with a charming
gesture.
"Lady Suzette is
moved by sisterly compassion—and the conviction that General Ingreid will do
the Brigade all the harm a traitor could, through his incompetence. Also the
Spirit of Man—I would say the Hand of God—is stretched over her lord. He is
invincible. Lady Suzette's concern is that you yourself might suffer needlessly
from Ingreid's anger."
"And I can believe
as much or as little of that as I choose," Marie said.
Silence weighed the warm
air of the room for a moment; outside fog and soft raindrops clung to the walls
and covered the swamps.
"Is it true,"
the young woman went on in a neutral voice, "that she rides by his
side?"
Abdullah bowed again, a
hand pressed to his breast. "She rides with his military household,"
he said. "And sits in all his councils. At El Djem her carbine brought down
a Colonial whose sword was raised above Messer Raj's head."
Marie rested an elbow on
the carved arm of her chair and her chin on her fist. "What help can she
be to me?"
"Has not General
Ingreid said, in public for all to hear, that as soon as you are delivered of
an heir he has no use for you?"
The words had been
rather more blunt than that. Marie nodded. Once Ingreid had an heir of her
undoubted Amalson blood, he would not need their marriage to make his
eligibility for the Seat incontestable. She had been throwing up regularly for
a week, now.
Abdullah opened a small
rosewood case. "Here are ayzed and beyam," he said,
smiling with hooded eyes. "The one for the problem I see my lady has now.
The other in case she comes to see that General Ingreid is no shield for the
Brigade, but rather a millstone dragging it down to doom."
He explained the uses of
the Zanj drugs. Katrini gasped by the door; Marie signed her to silence and
nodded thoughtfully.
"Ingreid hasn't the
brains of a sauroid," she said thoughtfully. "Go on."
"My lady has
partisans of her own," Abdullah said. "Those loyal to her family.
Your mother is well-remembered, your father more so."
"Few real vassals.
The Seat controls my family estates, so I can't reward followers. Fighting men
have to follow a lord who can give gold and gear and land with both hands. And
I'm held here without easy access to anyone but Ingreid's clients and sworn
men."
Abdullah spread his
hands. "Funds may be advanced," he said. "Also messages carried.
Not for any treasonous purpose, but is it not your right? By Brigade law does
not a brazaz lady of your rank have a right to her own household, her
own retainers?"
Marie nodded slowly.
"We'll have to talk more of this," she said.
"Right up ahead,
ser," the Scout said. "Turn right off t'road, up to the kasgrane, loik."
The Expeditionary Force
was winding its way through a countryside of low rolling hills, mostly covered
with vineyards and olive trees and orchards; pretty to look at, even with the
leaves all down, but awkward to march through. Villages grew more frequent as
they approached Old Residence, and the kasgrane-manor-houses—were
unfortified and often lavishly built with gardens and ornamental waterworks,
the country-residences of the city magnates. The light airy construction showed
that most of them would have been empty in winter anyway, but many of the
villagers had headed for the security of city walls as well. There hadn't been
any serious war here in generations, but peasants knew down in their bones that
there was usually not much to choose between armies on the march. Either side
might loot and rape, perhaps kill and burn. Better to hide in a city, where
only one side was likely to come and where commanders were more watchful.
Raj nodded and tapped
Horace's ribs with his heels. His escort trotted behind him, along the cleared
space beyond the roadside ditch. Past infantry swinging along, their uniforms
patched but glad to be out of the mud of the river bottoms, past guns and
ox-wagons and more infantry and the hospital carts with the tooth-grating sounds
of wounded men jolting over ruts in the crude gravel pavement of the road.
Better than two hundred men down with lungfever, too; there'd be more, unless
he got them under shelter soon. The nights were uniformly chilly now, the days
raw at best, and it rained every second day or so. They'd come more than four
hundred kilometers in only a month. The men were worn out and the dogs were
sore-pawed.
And I've got the
second-biggest city in the Midworld to take at the end of it, Raj thought
grimly. Old Residence was only a shadow of what it had been in its glory days
six hundred years ago, when it was the seat of the Governors and capital of the
whole Midworld basin. There were still four hundred thousand residents, and it
was the center of most of the trade and manufacture in the Western Territories.
They passed the head of
the column; beyond that were only the scouting detachments, combing the hills
ahead and around the main force to make sure there weren't any surprises in
wait. A platoon of the 5th Descott waited at the turn-off.
The private laneway was
narrow, but better-kept than the public road, smooth crushed limestone and
bordered by tall cypress trees. It wound upward through vineyards whose pruning
had been left half-finished, some vinestocks cut back to their gnarled winter
shapes and some with the season's growth still showing in long bare
finger-shoots. Untended sheep grazed between them on the sprouting cover crop
of wild mustard. The kasgrane at the heart of the finca, the estate, was
two stories of whitewashed stone and tile roof. The tall glass-paned doors on
both stories showed it to be a summer residence; so did the hilltop location,
placed to catch the breeze. The windows were shut now, and smoke wafted from
the chimneys.
More came from the elaborate
tents pitched in the gardens. Wagons and carriages and the humbler dosses of
servants and attendants crowded about, and a heavy smell of many dogs. A
resplendent figure in sparkling white silk jumpsuit and cloth-of-gold robe
waited at the main entrance to the manor. A jeweled headset rested on his thin
white hair, and the staff in his hand was topped by an ancient circuit board
encased in a net of platinum and diamonds. It was the Key Chip of the Priest of
the Residential Parish, symbol of his authority to Code the Uploading of souls
to the Orbit of Fulfillment and the ROM banks of the Spirit. The vestments of
the archsysups, sysups and priests around him made a dazzling corona in the
bright noonday sun.
The pontiff raised staff
and hand in blessing from the steps as Raj drew up. A bellows-lunged
annunciator stepped forward:
"Let all children
of Holy Federation Church bow before Paratier, the seventeenth of that
name, Priest of the Residential Parish, servant of the servants of the Spirit
of Man of the Stars, in whose hands is the opening and closing of the data
gates."
Raj and his officers
dismounted. They and Suzette touched one knee to the ground briefly; Raj had
the platinum-inlaid mace of his proconsular authority in the crook of his left
elbow. That meant he was the personal representative of the Governor—and in the
Civil Government the ruler was supreme in spiritual as well as temporal
matters. Instead of kneeling, he bowed to kiss the prelate's outstretched
ring-hand. The ring too held a relic of priceless antiquity, a complete
processing chip set among rubies and sapphires.
an FC-77b6 unit, Center remarked. generally used to control home entertainment
modules.
"Your
Holiness," Raj said as he straightened.
The Priest was an
elderly man with a face like pale wrinkled parchment, carrying a faint scent of
lavender water with him. His eyes were brown and as cold as rocks polished by a
glacial stream.
"Heneralissimo
Supremo Whitehall," he replied, in accentless Sponglish. "I and
these holy representatives of the Church—"
The assembled clerics
were watching Raj and his followers much as a monohorn watched a carnosauroid;
not afraid, exactly, but wary. Few of them looked full of enthusiasm for a
return to Civil Government rule. The Church had been the prime authority in Old
Residence under the slack overlordship of the Brigade Generals. None of them
had any illusions that the Civil Government would be so lax. And the Governors
were also unlikely to allow the Priest as much autonomy; the Chair believed in keeping
the ecclesiastical authorities under firm control.
"—and of the
Governor's Council—"
The civilian magnates.
The Council had been important half a millennium ago, when the Governors ruled
from Old Residence. There was still a Council in East Residence, although
membership was an empty title. Evidently the locals had kept up the forms as a
sort of municipal government.
"—are here to offer
you the keys of Old Residence." Literally: a page was coming forward, with
a huge iron key on a velvet cushion.
"My profound
thanks, Your Holiness," Raj said.
Quite sincerely; the
last thing he wanted to do was try to take a place ten times the size of Lion
City by storm. He turned an eye on the assembled magnates.
"I'm pleasantly
surprised at the presence of you gentlemen," he went on. "Especially
since I'd heard the barbarian General had extorted hostages and oaths from
you."
Paratier smiled.
"Oaths sworn under duress are void; doubly so, since they were sworn to a
heretic. These excellent sirs were absolved of the oaths by Our order."
Raj nodded. And I
know exactly how much your word's worth, he thought. Aloud:
"However, the heretic garrison?"
Paratier looked around.
He seemed a little surprised that Raj was speaking openly before his officers;
a bit more surprised that Suzette was at his side.
"Ah—" he
coughed into a handkerchief. "Ah, they have been persuaded . . ."
Lion City, Raj thought,
did some good after all.
* * *
"Sir, please get
on the train!"
Hereditary High Colonel
Lou Derison shook his head. "The General appointed me commandant of Old
Residence. Here I stay."
"Lou," the
other man said, stepping closer. "We lost Strezman and four thousand men
in Lion City. We can't afford another loss of trained regulars like
that. There are only five thousand men in the garrison; that isn't enough to
hold down a hostile city and defend the walls. But in the field, it may
be the difference between victory and defeat. Once we've beaten the grisuh in
battle, Old Residence will open its gates to us again—it's a whore of a city,
and spreads its legs for the strongest."
Behind the junior
officer a locomotive whistle let out a screech, startling Derison's dog into a
protesting whine behind him. The little engine wheezed, its upright boiler
showing red spots around the base, where the thrall shoveled coal into the
brick arch of the furnace. Ten cars were hitched by simple chain links to the
engine, much like ox-wagons with flanged wheels and board sides marked 8
dogs/40 men. These were all crowded with soldiers, the last of the Old
Residence garrison. Most had left during the day and the night before. The
tracks ran westward though tumbledown warehouses and then through the equally
decrepit city wall. The driver yelled something incoherent back toward the
clump of officers.
Derison shook his head
again. "No, no—you do what you must, Torens, and I'll do what I must.
Goodbye, and the Spirit of Man of This Earth go with you."
Major Torens blinked,
gripped the hand held out to him and then turned to jump aboard the last and
already moving car. The wheels of the locomotive spun on the wood-and-iron
rails, and the whole train moved off into the misty rain with a creaking,
clanging din that faded gradually into echoes and the last mournful wail of the
whistle.
Derison sighed and put
on his helmet, adjusting the cheek-guards with care. His armor was burnished
and there was a red silk sash beneath his swordbelt, but the weapons and plate
had seen hard service in their day.
"Come,
gentlemen," he said. "We ride to the west gate."
A dozen men accompanied
him, his sons and a few personal retainers. One spoke:
"Is that wise, sir?
The natives are out of order."
Derison straddled his
crouching dog, and it rose with a huff of effort. "A man lives as
long as he lives, and not a day more. We'll greet this Raj Whitehall like
fighting men, under an open sky, not hiding in a building like women."
* * *
Massed trumpets played
in the entrance to Old Residence. Horace skittered sideways a few steps, and
threw up his long muzzle in annoyance. Army dogs expected trumpets to say something,
and these were just being sounded for the noise. The walls were tall but thin,
and some of the crenellations had fallen long ago. There were two towers on
either side of the gate, but no proper blockhouse or thickening of the wall.
There had been kilometers of ruins first, before they came to the defenses.
Some pre-Fall work; most of what the unFallen built with decayed rapidly, but
the rest did not decay at all. Rather more of ordinary stone and brick, heavily
mined for building material. Those would date from the third or fourth
post-Fall centuries, when the Civil Government had been ruled from here and
included the whole Midworld basin.
The wall itself had come
later, a century or two—when the population of the city had shrunk and the
situation had gotten worse. Old Residence fell to the Brigade about two
generations after that.
There was no portcullis,
just thick timber and iron doors. The roadway opened out into a plaza beyond,
thick with a crowd whose noise rolled over the head of the Civil Government
column like heavy surf. This was still a big city. The street led south
towards the White River, but hills blocked its way, covered with buildings. The
giant marble-and-gilt pile of the Priest's Palace off to his left; not just the
residence, but home for the ecclesiastical bureaucracy. Further to the right
the rooftop domes of the Old Governor's Palace showed, with only a little gold
leaf still on the concrete, and the cathedron and Governor's Council
likewise—they were all on hilltops, and the filled-in area between them would
be the main plaza of the city. The rest was a sea of roofs and a spiderweb of
roads, and the familiar coalsmoke-sweat-sewage-dog scent of a big city. There
were even cast-iron lamp-stands by the side of the main road for gaslights,
looking as if they'd been copied from the three-globe model used in East
Residence. Which they probably had been.
Delegations lined the
street on either side; from the Church, from the great houses of the magnates,
from the merchant guilds and religious cofraternities. Holy water, incense and
dried flower-petals streamed out toward the color-party around Raj; with music
clashing horribly, and organized shouts of Conquer! Conquer! That was a
Governor's salute and highly untactful, because Barholm would have kittens when
he heard about it—as he assuredly would, and soon.
Also waiting were a
group of Brigaderos nobles, looking slightly battered and extremely angry. Raj
and his bannerman and guards swung out of the procession and cantered over to
the square of white-uniformed Priest's Guards who ringed them. The soldiers had
shaven skulls themselves, which meant they were ordained priests.
"Who are these
men?" Raj barked to their officer, pitching his voice slightly higher to
carry through the crowd-roar.
"The heretic
garrison commander. Thought he'd left with the rest, but they were heading this
way. We have them in custody—"
"Where are their
swords?" Raj asked.
"Well, we couldn't
let prisoners go armed, could we?" the man said.
"Give them
back," Raj said.
He turned his head to
look at the white-uniformed officer when the man started to object. The weapons
came quickly, the usual single-edged, basket-hiked broadswords of the
barbarians. The Brigaderos seemed to grow a few inches as they retrieved them
and sheathed the blades. Most of them looked as if they'd rather use them on
the priest-soldiers around them.
"High Colonel
Derison?" Raj asked, moving Horace forward a few paces.
"General
Whitehall?" the man asked in turn.
Raj nodded curtly. The
Brigadero drew his sword again and offered it hilt-first across his left
forearm; the younger man by his side did likewise. Raj took the elder's sword,
and Gerrin Staenbridge the younger; they flourished them over their heads and
returned the blades. By Brigade custom that put the owners under honorable parole.
He hoped they wouldn't make an issue of their empty pistol-holsters, because he
didn't have any intention of returning those.
"My congratulations
on a wise decision," he said.
Actually, staying on
here was either a pointless gesture or cowardice. He didn't think the High
Colonel was a coward, but it was a pity he'd decided to stay if he was merely
stupid. Raj wanted all the unimaginative Brigade officers possible active in
their command structure.
Derison inclined his
head. "Your orders, sir?" he said.
"My orders
are to convey you to East Residence," Raj replied. Derison senior seemed
taken aback, but a flash of interest marked his son's face. "You'll be
given honorable treatment and allowed to take your household and receive the
revenues of your remaining estates."
He'd also probably be
shunted off to a manor in a remote province after Barholm had shown him around
to put some burnish on the victory celebrations, and his sons and younger
retainers politely inducted into the Civil Government's armies, but there were
worse fates for the defeated. All Brigaderos nobles who surrendered were being
allowed to keep their freedom and one-third of their lands. Those who fought
faced death and their families were sold as slaves.
"In fact," he
went on, "I'd be obliged if you'd do something for me at the same
time."
Derison bowed again. Raj
reached into his jacket. "Here's the key to Old Residence," he said.
"Please present it to the Sovereign Mighty Lord with my complements, and
say I decided to send it to him in the keeping of a man of honor."
The Brigadero looked
down at the key—which was usually, for ceremonial purposes, left in the keeping
of the Priest—and fought down a grin.
"Colonel
Staenbridge," Raj went on formally.
"Mi heneral?"
"See that these
nobles are conveyed to suitable quarters in the Old Palace, and guarded by our
own men with all respect."
"As you order, mi
heneral."
Courtesy to the defeated
cost nothing, and it encouraged men to surrender.
And now to work, he
thought.
* * *
"Have any of you
ever heard the story of Marthinez the Lawman?" Raj asked.
He stood looking out of
the Old Palace windows down to the docks. The gaslights were coming on along
the main avenues, and the softer yellow glow of lamps from thousands of
windows; both moons were up, the fist-sized disks half hidden by flying cloud.
The picture was blurred by the rain that had started along with sundown, but he
could just make out the long shark shapes of the Civil Government steam rams
coming up the river, each towing a cargo ship against the current.
No complaints about the
Navy this time, he thought. Have to look up their commander. The room
was warm with underfloor hot-air pipes, and it smelled of wet uniforms and
boots and tobacco.
Raj turned back to the
men around the semicircular table. All the Companions, some of the other
battalion commanders, and Cabot Clerett, who couldn't be safely excluded.
"Ah,
Marthinez," Ehwardo Poplanich said. Suzette nodded. Her features had the
subtle refinement of sixteen generations of East Residence court nobility, able
to show amusement with the slightest narrowing of her hazel-green eyes. The
rest of the Companions looked blank.
"Marthinez,"
Raj went on, pacing like a leashed cat beside the windows, "was a Lawman
of East Residence." The capital had a standing police force, rather an
unusual thing even in the Civil Government.
Someone laughed.
"No," Raj went on, "he was a very odd Lawman. Completely
honest."
"Damned
unnatural," Kaltin said.
"Possibly. That's
what got him into trouble; he blew the whistle on one of his superiors who'd
taken a hefty bribe to cover up a nasty murder by a . . . very important
person's son."
Nods all around the
table.
"Well, it would
have been embarrassing to bring him to trial, so he was thrown in the
Subiculum."
That was the holding
gaol for the worst sort of criminal. Usually the magistrates eventually got
around to having the inmates given a short trial and then crucifixion or
hanging or fried at the stake, depending on which crime had been the last
before their capture. On the other hand, sometimes they just lost the name in
the shuffle. A lifetime in the Subiculum was considerably worse than death, in
most men's opinion. Sometimes the loss was deliberate.
"As you can imagine,
he wasn't very popular there. Four soul-catchers"—kidnappers who stole
free children for sale as slaves—"decided they'd beat him to death the
very first night, since he'd put them in there.
"But," Raj
went on with a carnivore grin, "Marthinez was, as I said, a fairly unusual
sort of man. When the guards came in in the morning, the soul-catchers mostly
had their heads facing backward or their ribs stove in. Marthinez had some
bruises. So they took him away to the solitary hole for a week, that's the standard
punishment for fighting in the cells . . .
"And as they were
dragging him off through the corridors, he shouted: You don't understand! I'm
not trapped in here with you. You're all trapped in here with me!"
"He made," Raj
concluded, "quite a swath through the inmates until Ehwardo's grandfather
pardoned him and made him Chief Lawman."
Raj halted before the
central window, tapping one gauntleted fist into a palm. "General Ingreid
thinks he as me trapped." He turned. "Just like Lawman Marthinez,
eh?"
Kaltin nodded. "I
don't like losing our mobility, though," he said. Which was natural enough
for a cavalry officer.
Raj went on:
"Kaltin, it's not enough to beat the Brigade. Believe me, you can
have a good commander and fine troops and win battle after battle and still
lose the war."
hannibal, Center said. Raj
acknowledged it silently. He was still a little vague on precisely when
Hannibal had fought his war—it didn't seem like pre-Fall times at all—but
Center's outline of the campaign had been very instructive. Cannae was a jewel
of a battle, as decisive as you could want. Even more decisive than the two
massacres Raj had inflicted on the Squadron last year—except that Hannibal's
enemies hadn't given up afterwards.
"To win this war,
we have to do two things. We have to get the civilian population here to
actively support us."
There were snorts; Raj
acknowledged them. "Yes, I know they've got no more fight than so many
sheep, most of them—six centuries under the Brigade. But there are a lot of
them.
"Second and most
important, we've got to make the Brigade believe that they're defeated.
To do that, we have to get as many of them as we can in one spot; all the
principal nobles and their followers, at least. And then we have to kill so
many of them that the remainder are convinced right down in their bones that
fighting us and death are one and the same thing. The best way I can think of
doing that is persuading them to make head-on attacks into fortified
positions."
Gerrin raised a brow.
"That assumes they will," he said. "I wouldn't. I'd entrench a
large blocking force and send a mobile field army to attack our forward base in
the Crown and mop up the areas we marched through."
Raj snorted. "Yes,
but Gerrin—you're not a barb." He jerked a thumb out the window. "According
to the latest intelligence, Ingreid has about a hundred thousand men rallying
to his banner; that's most of the regular army of the Brigade, and all of their
first-line reserves.
"First, remember
that the Brigade are a minority here. They're going to be worried about native
and peasant uprisings, the more so since we've occupied Old Residence—which
doesn't mean anything of military importance by itself, but the people don't
know that. They'll be impressed.
"Second, they're
stripping their northern frontier. The Stalwarts and the Guard will be raiding,
even in winter. Especially since the Ministry of Barbarians is subsidizing them
to do exactly that."
He went to the frame and
ran his hand across the map of the Western Territories at the latitude of Carson
Barracks, a little south of Old Residence.
"Most of the
Brigaderos live north of here; it was the first area they overran, back when,
and it's where most of them settled. The southern part of the peninsula was
conquered more gradually, and the barbs are very thin on the ground there. So
they'll be anxious about their homes and families in the north, looking over
their shoulders, eager to get it over with and go home. The Brigade doesn't
have the sort of command structure which can ignore that type of sentiment.
"Third, one hundred
thousand men are going to be camping here, in the middle of a countryside which
we shall systematically strip of every ounce of food we can. You know the
Brigade; they could no more organize a supply system from the rear on that
scale than they could fly to Miniluna by flapping their arms."
"There's the
railroad to Carson Barracks," Gerrin Staenbridge said thoughtfully.
"With that, they can draw on the whole Padan Valley." He turned to
whisper to Bartin for a moment. "Yes, I thought so. Just capable of
handling the necessary tonnage, but without much margin."
Raj nodded.
"Something will be done about that. So they're going to be cold, and wet,
and hungry, and after a while a lot of them will be sick, too. They'll be
thinking of their nice warm manors and snug farmhouses and hot soup by the
fire.
"They'll have to
attack. And we have to be ready. Now, gentlemen, here's how we're going
to do that. First, since we're not blessed with a contingent from the
Administrative Service, I'm appointing Lady Whitehall legate for civil affairs.
Next—"
"Most should
recover," the Renunciate Sister said.
Suzette nodded, stopping
for a moment by one man's bedside. His face glistened with sweat, more than the
mild warmth of the commandeered mansion's underfloor heating system could
account for. He gave her a weak smile as a helper propped him up and lifted the
bowl of broth to his lips. The air was full of a medicinal smell, mostly from
the pots of water laced with mint and eucalyptus leaves boiling on braziers in
every room and corridor. A low chorus of racking coughs sounded under the
brisker sounds of orders and soup-carts.
"Lungfever is most
serious when the body is debilitated," the Renunciate went on, as they
walked out of the room. "Cold, exhaustion, or bad food. With warmth, rest,
careful feeding and plenty of liquids, most of these men should be fit for
light duty in Holy Church's cause within a month."
Which would give the
equivalent of a whole battalion back to Raj. Suzette nodded, smiling.
"You've done
wonderful work," she said.
The Renunciate sniffed.
"The Spirit was with us, Lady Whitehall," she said tartly.
Church healers
accompanied any Civil Government army; these had been with Raj for going on
three years now.
"But please tell
the heneralissimo that men who sleep in cold mud while they're too tired
to eat properly will get sick."
* * *
"What is the
meaning of this?" the merchant demanded. "Out of my way, you
peasants!"
He tried to push past
the infantrymen standing in the doorway of his warehouse. The peon soldiers
spoke no Spanjol and would have ignored him in any case. He walked into the
crossed rifles as if into a stone wall, rebounding backward with a squawk. The
morning sun glinted brightly on the honed edges of their bayonets as they swung
up to present, the points inches from his chest. There was a four-dog
carriage behind him, and two mounted servants armed with swords and pistols, as
well as a crowd of his clerks and storesmen. None of them seemed likely to get
him through into his place of business this day.
"Messer
Enrike," a soothing voice said.
Enrike turned; Muzzaf
Kerpatik was coming around the corner of the tall building with an officer in
Civil Government uniform.
"Messer Kerpatik,
am I to be robbed, after all your assurances?" the merchant demanded.
Rumor had it that
Kerpatik was Raj's factotum for purchasing, an enviable post. It was plain to
see he at least was no Descotter—small and slim, dressed in dazzling white
linen with the odd fore-and-aft peaked cap of the southern border cities of the
Civil Government, along the frontier with the Colony. His Sponglish had the
sing-song accent of Komar.
"Of course
not," the Komarite soothed. "Just some precautions."
"Precautions
against what?" Enrike demanded.
Muzzaf whispered in the
officer's ear. The man barked an order in Sponglish, and the squad sloped arms
and wheeled away from the door. The others guarding the big wagon-gates of the
warehouse remained, but the employees filed into the front section of the
building.
Enrike snorted as he
settled into the big leather armchair behind his desk. One of the clerks
scuttled in to throw a scoopful of coal into the cast-iron stove in one corner,
and a maidservant brought in kave and rolls.
"Precautions
against unauthorized sales," Muzzaf said. "You'll find that all
bulk-stored wheat, barley, maize, flour, rice, beans, preserved meats and so
forth have been placed under seal. First sale priority goes to the authorized
purchasing agents of each battalion, at list prices." He pulled a paper
out of his jacket and slid it across the desk. "Soldiers are free to buy
additional supplies retail, of course."
"Outrageous!"
Enrike said, scanning the list. "These prices are robbery!"
"Reasonable for
bulk sales," Muzzaf replied. "And payable in gold or sight-drafts on
Felaskez and Sons of East Residence." The latter were as good as specie
anywhere on the Midworld.
"Not reasonable in
the least, given the situation," Enrike said. "I hope your General
Whitehall doesn't think he can repeal the laws of supply and demand."
He gave a tight smile;
the Brigade's nobles were mostly economic illiterates as well as actual ones.
Enrike and his peers had done very well out of that ignorance, although it
caused no end of problems when the Brigade tried to set policy.
"Oh, no,"
Muzzaf said amiably. "And in any case, he has in myself and others
advisors who can tell him exactly how to manipulate supply and demand.
Marvelous are the ways of the Spirit, placing to hand the tools that Its Sword
has need of. Incidentally, Lady Whitehall has been appointed civic legate. Any
complaints will be addressed to her."
Enrike's face fell.
Muzzaf went on: "You'll note that after military requirements are met,
each household is to be allowed to purchase a set amount once weekly. Also at
list price."
"How do you expect
to enforce that?"
"Without great
difficulty," Muzzaf said. "Considering that we know how much
each of you has on hand." Enrike's face fell again as Muzzaf reeled off
figures. "And what normal consumption is. Incidentally, ships will be coming
in from Lion City with additional supplies of grain from the Colonial
merchants' stocks which were forfeited to the State . . . we wouldn't want
anything like that to happen here, would we?"
"No," Enrike
whispered. The news of the massacre of the Lion City syndics had spread widely.
He had dealt with those
men regularly; much of Old Residence's grain supplies were shipped in from the
Crown in normal years. This fall the city's grain wholesalers had gone to huge
expense to bring in more from the southern ports, or by railway from the Padan
valley to the west. Everyone knew what the Skinner mercenaries had done to the
Colonials of Lion City, and the unleashed common people to the wealthy.
"What the Army
doesn't need, we'll hand out at the list prices in retail lots," Muzzaf
went on. "Just to prevent baseless speculation and hoarding, you
understand."
"I
understand," Enrike said, between clenched teeth.
He would make a fair
profit this year—but nothing like the killing he'd anticipated. Not even as
much as he'd have made off the shortages caused by the fall of the Crown and
Lion City.
Damn this easterner
general and his minions! The Brigade were far easier to deal with. Grovel a
little and you could steal them blind. Small chance that that would work with
Raj Whitehall. He might pass for a simple honest soldier in East Residence,
that pit of vipers, but a simpleton from the Governor's court could give
lessons in intrigue to Carson Barracks.
As for fooling Suzette
Whitehall . . . he shuddered, and covertly made the Sign of the Horns with his
left hand against witchcraft.
* * *
"Watch that,"
Colonel Grammeck Dinnalsyn said.
The officer in charge of
the detail nodded nervously and stepped closer to inspect the bracing at the
top of the wall. Twin timber-and-iron booms ran out on either side, with
counterweighted wood-framed buckets on cables running over common block and
tackle arrangements. The whole mass creaked and groaned alarmingly as the full
bucket of dirt and rubble from outside the wall rose. Inside the wall ox-teams
heaved at the cables, digging their hooves into the dirt as the long
stock-whips cracked over their shoulders. The ton-weight of wet soil and rock
groaned up to wall-level, then down to the stone as men hauled it in with
hooked poles. Others sprang to the top of the load and unhooked the support
cables, fastening them to the set running over the inner braces.
"Lock down the
pulleys!" the officer Dinnalsyn had warned said. "Chocks. Take up the
strain and sheet her home."
Iron wheels squealed
against their brake-drums as the bucket lurched up and out over the inner side
of the wall. It went down the inner side in jerks as the men at the levers let
cable pay out from the winches. When it thumped down the ox-teams heaved again,
to tip it over. Hundreds of laborers jumped forward with shovels and mattocks
and wheelbarrows, clearing it out and beginning to spread it as a base-layer
along the inside of the stone wall. More cranes were operating up and down the
length of it, and laborers by the thousands. A step-sided earth ramp was
growing against the ancient ashlar blocks of the fortification. Just in from it
more work-gangs demolished buildings and hammered rubble and stone into smooth
pavement; still more were resurfacing and widening the radial roads further in.
Masons labored all along the wall, replacing the top courses of stones and
repairing the parapets.
That would enable men
and guns to shift quickly from one section of the outer walls to another, and
let troops from a central reserve move swiftly. It was amazing what you could
do in a few weeks, with enough hands and some organization.
The building contractor
beside the officer shook his head; looking at the ant-hive of activity inside
the wall, and the scarcely smaller swarm outside digging a deep moat.
"Amazing," he
said, in slow Sponglish with a strong Spanjol accent. The eastern and western
tongues were closely related but not really mutually comprehensible. "How
you get . . . what you say, organized so quick? Your Messer Raj—"
Cold glances stopped
him. The troops referred to their commander that way, but it was not a
privilege widely granted.
"-excuzo, your
General Whitehall, he must understand such thing."
Dinnalsyn shrugged.
"He understands what needs to be done, and who can do it," he said.
The contractor nodded
enviously. He spent most of his time dealing with clients who thought
they knew his job better than he did because they could afford to hire him.
Working for someone who didn't try to second-guess you was a luxury he coveted.
"How you get those
riff-raff to work so hard?" he went on, looking at the laborers.
Soldiers were doing the
overseeing and technical work; artillerymen, from the blue pants with the red
stripes down the legs. His own skilled men were shoring and buttressing and timber-framing.
The work-gangs who dug and lifted were townsmen also, but dezpohblado factory-hands
and day-laborers, mostly.
"Bonus to the best
teams, plus standard wages. We're paying a tenth silver FedCred a day,"
Dinnalsyn said.
The contractor's lips
shaped a silent whistle. "You paying cash?" he said.
Dinnalsyn nodded. The
wage-workers of Old Residence were not peon serfs like the peasants of the
countryside, precisely—but their employers mostly paid them in script good only
at stores the bosses owned. That let them set prices as they pleased, which
meant the workers were usually short by next payday and had to borrow against
their wages . . . also from their employers, and at interest.
"You going to get a
lot of complaints about that," the contractor said with the voice of
experience. Most of his business was with the same magnates.
"No,"
Dinnalsyn said. His smile made the contractor swallow nervously. "I don't
think we'll get many complaints at all."
* * *
"What's that?"
Lieutenant Hanio Pinya said.
His patrol of the 24th
Valencia Foot were dog-weary with an uneventful night of walking the streets.
Restless, too. They'd gotten used to thinking of themselves as real fighting
men, after Sandoral and the Southern Territories and the campaign in the Crown.
A month of warm barracks and good food and new uniforms had put a burnish on
the horrors of the forced march down from Lion City. Messer Raj himself had
complimented the infantry battalions on their soldierly endurance. Nothing had
happened since except wall-duty, unless you counted drunk soldiers asking Guardia
patrols directions to the nearest knocking-shop or bar . . . and after real
soldiering, even an infantry officer got tired of being a pimp in uniform.
"Prob'ly some bitch
havin' a fight with 'er old man, sir," the platoon sergeant said
hopefully. Their bivouac wasn't very far away.
The screams were louder,
more than one voice, and there was a hoarse deep-toned shouting beneath them.
It all sounded as if it was coming from indoors, not far down the brick-paved
street.
"Come on,"
Pinya snapped. "Messer Raj said we're to keep strict order here."
The patrol lumbered into
a trot behind him, their hobnails clashing in the darkened street.
* * *
Dorya Minatili screamed
with despair and faltered a step as she fled out the door of her home. The
soldiers outside had the same uniform as the ones inside. Out of the corner of
her eye she could see a long sword swing up, and a hand grabbed at her braid.
The men in the street
moved past her. The hand released her hair, and she heard an odd wet thunk sound
behind her. More soldiers pounded up the steps and through into the house. She
turned, trembling. The one who'd been chasing her was lying on the steps,
pinned to the stone by a long bayonet. His sword clattered down into the
street, spinning. The soldier who had killed him twisted the rifle and pulled
the blade out, long and red-wet in the moonlight, blood gushing from the wound
and the twitching corpse's mouth and nose. All the other houses on the street
were barred and shuttered, and this neighborhood wasn't quite affluent enough
to afford gaslights. The girl began to tremble again as she noticed that the
uniforms were not quite the same. These soldiers didn't have the chainmail
neck-flaps on their helmets, and they wore armbands with a large red letter G.
They were short dark clean-shaven men, not tall and fair like the others. An
officer with a drawn sword led them; he held a bullseye lantern in the other
hand.
* * *
Lieutenant Pinya
shouldered the girl aside and pushed into the room. The 1st Cruisers trooper
inside had been standing behind an older woman he'd bent over a table, getting
ready to mount her; as the guardia burst in he tried to pull up his
pants and go for his sword simultaneously. One man buttstroked him in the gut;
another chopped his rifle stock down on the man's neck. He grunted and
collapsed, while the woman scuttled away to a civilian lying groaning in a
corner. Someone had been screaming rhythmically upstairs; the sound broke off
in male shouts and heavy thumping.
A man came rumbling down
the stairs, another 1st Cruisers trooper. Still alive and conscious, but from
the way he moaned and flopped as he tried to crawl, not in very good shape.
Behind him two
infantrymen carried a wounded civilian; young, with a deep cut in one leg. The
men had twisted a pressure-bandage over it, but blood leaked through it
already. Behind the wounded man came a girl, younger than the one who'd run out
into the street. This one had a thrall collar on her neck and was buck-naked;
in her mid-teens and not bad looking, probably the housemaid. More soldiers
prodded another Cruiser ahead of them with their bayonets, and a corporal
brought up the rear with a sack and a big ceramic jug, the type the local white
lightning came in.
"Oh, shit,"
the lieutenant said.
Garrison duty back in
the Southern Territories hadn't been that bad. A little boring, maybe.
Now he'd be up all night explaining things to everyone, right up to Major
Felaskez or even higher. Sober, the 1st Cruisers were pretty good soldiers and
disciplined enough you could forget they were Squadrones barbarians. Three
weeks on Guardia duty had taught him that with a few drinks under their
belts they tended to revert to type; also that when drunk they couldn't tell a
sow from their sisters, and either would do as well.
The corporal waved the
bottle and sack, which clinked like silverware. "Guess these fuckin' barbs
figured they'd get drunk and laid and get paid for it too, El-T," he said
cheerfully. A chance to beat up on cavalrymen was a rare treat in a
footsoldier's life. "Nobody else upstairs. Looks like they were just
gettin' started, but this might not be the first house."
A voice called from the
rear of the house. "Door to the alley's broke in, sir."
"Toryez, go get the
medic, fast," the officer said. "Sergeant, patch the civilians. Get
these shits trussed."
Soldiers pulled lengths
of cord out of their belts and tied the prisoners' hands before them, then
immobilized them by shoving the scabbards of their swords through the crooks of
their elbows behind their backs. One of the prisoners began mumbling in
Namerique at increasing volume, but the sergeant silenced him with a swift kick
between the legs.
"Outside,"
Pinya said, jerking a thumb. "Roust out the neighbors, show 'em the dead
barb and the prisoners so they'll sound the alarm next time."
Proclamations were one
thing, but example was the best way of demonstrating that the Civil Government
commanders really were ready to defend the locals against their own men.
He turned to the
civilians. Both the men looked as if they would live, although it was
touch-and-go for the younger man if the medic didn't arrive soon. The
middle-aged woman looked dazed, and the housemaid suddenly conscious of her
nakedness; she snatched up a towel and tried to make it do far too much.
"Hablai usti
Sponglishi?" Pinya said. Blank looks rewarded him. Then the girl stuck
her head around the open front door and spoke:
"I do," she
said. "A little."
Her accent was heavy,
but the words were understandable. "What will happen to those men?"
she asked.
"Crucifixion,"
Pinya said bluntly. "We'll need your statements. And I want you to
translate for me to your neighbors."
The girl looked at him
with glowing eyes. He straightened and sheathed the sword. "Names?"
he began.
* * *
"Heneralissimo
Supremo, we yielded our great city to save it, not to see it
destroyed!" the head of the Governor's Council said.
He was standing. All the
petitioners were, except for the Priest Paratier, who'd been given a chair at
the foot of the table. Raj sat at its head, watching them over steepled fingers
with his elbows propped on the arms of his armchair. Motionless troopers of the
5th Descott lined two walls of the long chamber; the fireplace on the inner
wall was burning low, hissing less loudly than the mingled rain and sleet on
the outer windows. Suzette sat at his right, with clerks taking down the
conversation.
"You yielded,"
Raj said softly, "because you knew what happened to the last city that
tried to resist the army of the Sovereign Mighty Lord Barholm. The army also of
the Spirit of Man."
A cleric leaned forward;
he was red-faced with anger, but throttled his voice back when Paratier laid a
restraining finger on his sleeve.
"Heneralissimo, you
implied that you would be moving on to fight the Brigade, not staying here and
making us the focus of their counter-attack."
Raj smiled, a cold feral
expression. "No, Reverend Arch-Sysup, your own wishes were father to that
thought. I said nothing of the kind."
"Peace, my
son," Paratier said. His voice had faded with age, but he adjusted his
style to suit rather than trying to force it. The whisper was more compelling
than a shout. "Yet would not the Spirit of Man grieve if the priceless
treasures within these walls, the relics and records of ancient times, were
destroyed by the fury of the heretic and the barbarian?"
Raj inclined his head.
"Precisely why I don't intend to allow the barbarians within the walls,
Your Holiness," he said briskly. "As you may have noticed, we've been
making energetic preparations to receive them."
"Throwing the city
into chaos, you mean, Heneralissimo Whitehall," a civilian magnate
said. "Overthrowing good order and discipline and encouraging all sorts of
riot and tumult."
The cost of his rings
and the diamond stickpin in his cravat would have kept a company of cavalry for
a month, and the jewelled buckles of his shoes were the purchase-price of
remounting them.
Raj smiled openly.
"Messer Fedherikos, I think you'll admit that my troops are quite
disciplined. So I presume you mean we've been employing the common people of
the city on necessary works of defense, and worse still paying them in cash and
on time. They've shown great zeal in the cause of the Civil Government of Holy
Federation."
His eyes raked the
petitioners. Few of them met his gaze; Paratier's eyes did; they were as calm
and innocent as a child's—or a carnosauroid's.
"Do you gentlemen
suppose your own commons might react to attempted treachery the way those of
Lion City did after their community returned to the Civil Government?"
The naked threat clanged
to the ground between them like a roundshot.
Raj's voice continued
like a metronome. "Of course, there's no possibility of treachery here. We're
all loyal sons of Holy Federation Church." Well, one of the Sysups was a daughter
of Holy Church, but no matter. "And since nobody is considering
treachery, I'm showing my trust for the citizens of Old Residence by declaring
a general mobilization of the populace. For labor service, or for the militia
which I'm forming—to include all private armed forces in the city."
There was a shocked
intake of breath. That would leave the Church and the magnates helpless . . .
helpless, among other things, against a popular uprising unless Raj's troops
guarded them. Also helpless to deliver the city to Ingreid the way they'd
delivered it to Raj.
these persons will follow instructions until
situation changes drastically, Center said. Outlines glowed around most of the
petitioners—most importantly, around Paratier. Red highlights marked others, these individuals will resist necessary
measures, probability 94% ±3.
Which of them are truly
loyal? Raj enquired.
probability of
any of indicated subjects remaining loyal to the civil government unless under
threat or directly coerced is too low to be meaningfully calculated.
Exactly what I
expected. The only difference is that some have enough guts to be actively
treasonous and some don't.
you learn
quickly, raj whitehall.
No, I've lived in East
Residence, he thought sourly.
Raj noted those marked
as most dangerous; best detain those immediately. One or two flinched as his
eye stopped at their faces.
"My son, my
son," Paratier intoned. "I shall pray for you. Avoid the sin of
rashly assuming that your program is debugged. The Spirit has given you great
power; do not in your pride refuse to copy to your system the wisdom others
have been granted by long experience."
Raj stood, leaning
forward on his palms. "Your holiness, messers, I am the Sword of the
Spirit of Man. The Spirit has chosen me for Its military business, not as a
priest. In spiritual matters, I will of course be advised by His Holiness. In
military affairs, I expect you all to do the will of the Spirit—Who
speaks through me.
"And now," he
went on, "if you'll excuse me. General Ingreid is heading this way with
the whole home-levy of the Brigade, and I'm preparing for his reception."
The countryside outside
Old Residence had a ghostly look. Colors were the gray-brown of deep winter,
leafless trees and bare vines. Nothing moved but an occasional bird, or a
scuttling rabbit-sized sauroid. Raj had ordered every scrap of food and every
animal within two days' hard riding brought in to Old Residence or destroyed,
and every house and possible shelter torn down or burned. The broken snags of a
village showed at the crossroads ahead, tumbled brick and charred timbers,
looking even more forlorn than usual under the slash of the rain. The two
battalions rode through silently, the hoods of their raw-wool cloaks over their
heads. Bridles jingled occasionally as dogs shook their heads in a spray of
cold water.
Raj reined in to one
side with the two battalion-commanders. The two hundred Skinners with him were
jauntily unconcerned with the weather; compared to their native steppes, this
was balmy spring. Many of them were bare-chested, not even bothering with their
quilt-lined winter jackets of waterproof sauroid hide. The regulars looked
stolidly indifferent to the discomfort. Anxious for action, if anything; men
who don't like to fight rarely take up the profession of arms, and these
troopers hadn't lost a battle in a long time. He had Poplanich's Own with him,
and two batteries—eight guns. The other unit was the 2nd Cruisers. No artillery
accompanied them, but each man had a train of three remounts, and the dogs
carried pack-saddles with loads of ammunition and spare gear. The mounts were
sleek and glossy-coated. Fed up to top condition with the offal from Old
Residence's slaughterhouses, where the meat from the confiscated livestock was
being salted and smoked.
The trumpet sounded and
Poplanich's Own swung to a halt. The Skinners straggled to a stop, more or
less, which was something of a concession with them. The 2nd Cruisers peeled
off to the north, taking a road that straggled off into the hills.
Spirit, but I
hate war, Raj thought, looking at the ruined village. It would be a generation or
more before this area recovered. If somebody cut down the olive trees and
vineyards for firewood, which they probably would, that would be three
generations of patient labor gone in an afternoon. Rain dripped from the edge
of his cloak's hood. He pushed the wool back, and the drops beat on his helmet
like the tears of gods.
Ehwardo was looking
after the Cruisers. "Thought you had something in mind," he
said mildly. "Even if you didn't say."
Raj nodded. "Even
the Brigaderos won't neglect to have Old Residence full of spies," he
said. "No point in making things easy for them."
"Tear up the
railroad before they get here?" Ehwardo asked.
"By no means,"
Raj chuckled. "Ludwig's men will lie low and scout while the Brigade
completes their initial movements. Railroads," he went on, "are
wonderful things, no matter how the provincial autonomists squeal about 'em.
The whole Civil Government should go down on its knees and thank the Spirit
that His Supremacy Governor Barholm has pushed the Central Rail through all the
way to the Drangosh frontier—the fact that the Colony has river-transport there
has been a ball and chain around our ankles in every war we've ever fought with
them."
Ehwardo raised his
brows.
Raj went on: "You
can do arithmetic, Ehwardo. One hundred thousand Brigaderos. Fifty thousand
camp followers, at the least; a lot of them will be bringing their families
along. Say, one and a quarter kilos of bread and half a kilo of meat or cheese
or beans a day per man, not to mention cooking oil, fuel . . . and preserved
vegetables or fruit, if you want to avoid scurvy. Plus feeding nearly a hundred
thousand dogs, each of them eating the same type of food as the men but five to
ten times as much. Plus twenty or thirty thousand oxen for the wagon trains
from railhead to camp, all needing fodder. That's over a thousand tons a day,
absolute minimum."
"So we wait for
them to get here and then cut the railway," Ehwardo said.
"Still, there are countermeasures. Hmmm . . . I'd station say, twenty or
thirty thousand of their cavalry along the line for patrol duty. Easier to feed
them, easy to bring them up when needed, and fifty or sixty thousand men would invest
the city just as well as a hundred thousand. A hundred thousand's damned
unwieldy as a field army anyway."
Raj smiled unpleasantly.
"Exactly what I'd do. Ingreid, however, is a Brigadero of the old school;
he has to take his boots off to count past ten. And not one of his regimental
commanders will want to be anywhere but at the fighting front. Furthermore, all
the foundries capable of building new locomotives are in Old Residence, and so
are the rolling mills capable of turning out new strap-iron to lay on the
rails."
The general turned to
the younger commander. Ludwig Bellamy was a barbarian himself, technically—a
noble of the Squadron. He looked the part, a finger taller than Raj,
yellow-haired and blue-eyed. His father had surrendered to Raj for prudence
sake, and because of a grudge against the reigning Admiral of the Squadron.
Ludwig had his own reasons for following Raj Whitehall, and he'd managed to
turn himself into a very creditable facsimile of a civilized officer.
"Ludwig, this is an
important job I'm giving you. Any warrior can charge and die; this needs
a soldier's touch, and a damned good soldier at that. It's tricky. Some of
Ingreid's subordinates are capable men, from the reports." For which
bless Abdullah, he thought. "Teodore Welf, for example, and
Carstens."
He laid a hand on
Bellamy's shoulder. "So don't cut the line so badly that it's obviously
hopeless. Tease them. Let a trickle get through, enough to keep Ingreid hoping
but not enough to feed his army. Step it up gradually, and don't engage the
enemy. Run like hell if you spot them anywhere near; they can't be
everywhere along eight hundred kilometers of rail-line. Keep the peasants on
your side and you'll know exactly where the enemy are and they'll be
blind."
Ludwig Bellamy drew himself
up. "You won't be disappointed in me, Messer Raj," he said proudly.
The three officers
leaned towards each other in the saddle and smacked gauntleted fists in a
pyramid. Ehwardo shook his head as Bellamy and his bannerman cantered off along
the line of the 2nd Cruisers, still snaking away north into the gray rain.
"I don't think
you'll be disappointed in him either," he murmured. "You have the
ability to bring out abilities in men they didn't seem to have, Whitehall. My
great-uncle called it the ruler's gift."
"Only in
soldiers," Raj said. "I couldn't get civilians to follow me anywhere
but to a free-wine fiesta, except by fear—and fear alone is no basis for
anything constructive."
"You're doing quite
well in Old Residence," Ehwardo pointed out.
"Under martial law.
Which is to civil law as military music is to music. I've gotten obedience in
Old Residence, with twenty thousand guns at my back, but I could no more rule
it in the long term than General Ingreid could understand logistics." Raj
smiled. "Believe me, I know that I'm really not suited to civil
administration. I know it as if the Spirit Itself had told me."
correct.
Ehwardo grunted
skeptically, but changed the subject. "And now lets get on to that damned
railway bridge," he said. "I don't feel easy with nobody there but
those Stalwart mercenaries."
Raj nodded.
"Agreed, but there was nobody else to spare before the walls were in
order," he said.
The rail bridge crossed
the White River ten kilometers upstream from Old Residence, the easternmost
spot not impossibly deep for bridge pilings. Without it, the Brigade armies
would have to go upstream to the fords to cross to the north bank—the south
bank of the river held only unwalled suburbs—which would delay them a week or
two and complicate their supply situation even further. A strong fort at the
bridge could be supplied by river from Old Residence, and would give the Civil
Government force a potential sally port to the besiegers' rear.
They heeled their dogs
forward, the heavy paws splashing in the mud.
* * *
Antin M'lewis whistled
silently to himself through his teeth and sang under his breath:
When from house t'house yer huntin',
ye must allays work in pairs-
Half t'gain, but twice t'safety ye'll find-
For a single man gits bottled
on them twisty-wisty stairs,
An' a woman comes n' cobs him from be'ind.
Whin ye've turned 'em inside out,
n' it seems beyond a doubt
As there warn't enough to dust a flute,
Befer ye sling yer hook, at t' housetops take a look,
Fer 'tis unnerneath t' tiles they hide t' loot-
The forest ahead was
dripping-wet, and the leaf-mould slippery as only slimy-rotten vegetation could
be. M'lewis noted proudly how difficult it was to see his men, and how well the
gray cloaks blended in with the vegetation and shattered rock. He made a
chittering noise with tongue and teeth—much like the cry of any of the smaller
sauroids—and twenty soldiers of the Scout Troop rose and moved forward with
him, flitting from trunk to trunk. They halted at his gesture, among broken
rocks and wire-like native scrub. Every one of them was a relative or neighbor
of his, back in Bufford Parish. Every one of them a bandit, sheep-lifter and
dogstealer by hereditary vocation. Following those trades demanded high skill
and steady nerves in not-very-lawful Descott County, where every vakaro and
yeoman-tenant carried a rifle and knew how to use it.
He had no doubt of their
abilities. Nor of their obedience. Antin M'lewis had risen from trooper to
officer and the Messer class by hitching his star to that of Messer Raj . . .
after nearly being flogged for theft at their first meeting. The
Scouts—unofficially known as the Forty Thieves—had a superstitious reverence
for a man that lucky. They also had a well-founded respect for his garotte and
skinning knife.
Visibility was limited;
rain, and ground-mist. He could see the railway track disappearing downward
toward the river, switching back and forth to the southwest. On the tracks and
the road beside them marched mounted men, in columns of fours. Heading toward him,
which meant toward Old Residence.
"Message to Messer
Raj," he said over his shoulder. "Two . . . make that four hunnert
men 'n column approachin'. Will withdraw an' keep 'em unner observation."
* * *
"Couldn't tell who
theuns wuz, Messer Raj," the messenger said. "Jist they'z marchin' in
column, ser."
observe, Center said.
* * *
The fort on the north
side of the railway bridge was a simple earthwork square with a timber
palisade. White water foamed just west of it, where the stone pilings of the
bridge supported the heavy timberwork arches. Mist filled the surface of the
water, turning and writhing with the current beneath. A column of Brigaderos
cavalry had ridden onto the southern approaches; more stretched back into the
rain, a huge steel-glistening gray column vanishing out of sight. The ironshod
wheels of guns thundered on the railway crossties, light brass muzzle-loading
fieldpieces.
The Stalwarts within the
fort were boiling to the walls; asleep or drunk or huddled in their huts
against the chill for far too long. They'd probably had scouts out on the south
side of the river, and the scouts had equally probably simply decamped when the
Brigade host thundered down on them.
A rocket soared up from
the fort. The smoke-trail vanished into the low cloud; the pop of the
explosion could be heard, but the colored light was invisible even from
directly below. As if that had been a signal, hundreds of figures boiled down
over the wall and to the skiffs and rowboats tied to a pier below the bridge.
They wore the striped tunics of Stalwart warriors under their sheepskin
jackets. Equally national were the light one-handed axes they pulled out to
chop at the painters tying the light boats to the shore. Chopping at each other
as well, as panicked hordes fought for places in the boats. Some of the craft
floated downstream empty as would-be passengers hacked and stabbed on the dock,
others upside down with men clinging to them, still others crowded nearly to
sinking. Arcs of spray rose into the air as those hacked down with oars on the
heads of men trying to cling to the gunwales.
Still more Stalwarts
tore up the track toward Raj's vantage-point, their eyes and mouths round O's
of effort. They scattered into the woods on either side of the track. There
were barrels of gunpowder braced under the bridge, with trains of waxed
matchcord linking them. Nobody so much as looked at them.
The viewpoint switched
to the fort itself. An older man climbed down the wall facing the bridge and
began to trudge toward the Brigaderos. His graying hair was shaved behind up to
a line drawn between his ears; he had long drooping mustaches, a net of bronze
rings sewn to the front of his tunic and cut-down shotguns in holsters along
each thigh. Raj recognized him. Clo Reicht, chieftain of the Stalwart
mercenaries serving with the Expeditionary force.
"Marcy, varsh!"
he called, as he came up to the leading enemy, a lancer officer in
richly-inlaid armor. Mercy, brother-warriors, in Namerique.
Points dropped, jabbing
close past the snarling muzzles of the war-dogs. Reicht smiled broadly, his
little blue eyes twinkling with friendliness and sincerity. His hands were high
and open.
"I know lots about
Raj-man," he said. "He tells Clo Reicht all about his plans. Worth a
lot. Take me to your leader."
* * *
Shit, Raj thought,
pounding a fist into the pommel of his saddle.
He'd taken one more
gamble with his inadequate forces. This time it hadn't paid off.
Raj blinked back to the
outer world, to the weight of wet wool across his shoulders and the smell of
wet dog. Ehwardo and M'lewis were staring at him, waiting wide-eyed for the
solution. The Governor shouldn't send us to make bricks without straw, that's
the solution, he thought. With enough men . . .
"The Stalwarts
bugged out," he said crisply.
He looked from side to
side. There were laneways on either side of the low embankment of the railway,
and cleared land a little way up the slopes of the hills. The ground grew more
rugged ahead, but nowhere impassible; behind him it opened out into the rolling
plain around the city itself.
"The Brigaderos
vanguard is over the bridge and coming straight at us. Courier to the city,
please." A rider took off rearward in a spatter of mud and gravel.
"Retreat?"
Ehwardo asked. M'lewis was nodding in unconscious agreement.
Raj shook his head.
"Too far," he said. "If we run for it we'll lose cohesion and
they can pursue without deploying, at top speed, and chop us up.
Therefore—"
"—we attack, mi
heneral," Ehwardo said. He took off his helmet for a second, and the
thinning hair on his pate stuck wetly to the scalp as he scratched it. "If
we can push them back on the bridge . . ."
Raj nodded. He could
turn it into a killing zone, men crammed together with no chance to use their
weapons or deploy.
"Two companies
forward, deployed by platoon columns for movement," he said. Tight
formation, but he'd need all the firepower possible. "Three in reserve,
guns in the middle."
He stood in the saddle
and shouted in Paytoiz: "Juluk! You worthless clown, are you drunk
or just afraid?"
The Skinner chief slid
his hound down the hillside out of the forest and pulled up beside Raj.
"Long-hairs come," he said succinctly. "You run away,
sojer-man?"
"We fight," he
said. "You keep your men to the sides and forward."
The nomad mercenary gave
a huge grin and a nod and galloped off, screeching orders of his own. Around
Raj, Poplanich's Own split its dense formation into a looser advance by four
columns of platoon strength, spaced across the open way. A brief snarl of
trumpets, and the men drew the rifles out of the scabbards to rest the butts on
their thighs. Dogs bristled and growled in the sudden tension, and the pace
picked up to a fast walk. What breeze there was was in their faces, so there
shouldn't be any warning to the enemy from that.
Good scouting meant the
five-minute difference between being surprised and doing the surprising.
"Walk-march, trot."
They pushed forward, a
massed thudding of paws and the rumble of the guns. Over a lip in the ground,
and a clear view down through the hills to the white-gray mist along the river,
with the bridge rising out of it like magic. The railroad right-of-way between
was black with men and dogs, dully gleaming with lanceheads and banners. The
double-lightning flash of the Brigade was already flying over the little fort
as the host streamed by, together with a personal blazon—a running wardog, red
on black, with a huge silver W. The house of Welf; intelligence said Teodore
Welf led the enemy vanguard. The Brigadero column was thick, men bunched
stirrup to stirrup across all the open space. Young Teodore was risking
everything to get forces forward quickly, up out of the hills and onto the
plain.
Precisely the right
thing to do; unfortunately for the enemy, even a justified risk was still
risky.
The trumpet sounded. The
platoon columns halted and the dogs crouched. Men stepped free and double-timed
forward, spreading out like the wings of a stooping hawk. Before the enemy a
few hundred meters ahead had time to do more than begin to recoil and mill, the
order rang out:
"Company—"
"Platoon—"
"Front rank, volley
fire, fire."
BAM. Two hundred men
in a single shot, the red muzzle-flashes spearing out into the rain like a
horizontal comb.
The rear rank walked
through the first. Before the echoes of the initial shout of fwego had
died, the next rank fired—by half-platoons, eighteen men at a time, in a rapid
stuttering crash.
BAM. BAM. BAM.
BAM.
The field-guns came up
between the units. "If they break—" Ehwardo said. The troopers
advanced and fired, advanced and fired. The commanders followed them, leading
their dogs.
"If," Raj
replied.
The guns fired
case-shot, the loads spreading to maximum effect in the confined space.
Merciful smoke hid the result for an instant, and then the rain drummed it out
of the air. For fifty meters back from the head of the column the Brigaderos
and their dogs were a carpet of flesh that heaved and screamed. A man with no
face staggered toward the Civil Government line, ululating in a wordless trill
of agony. The next volley smashed him backward to rest in the tangled pink-gray
intestines of a dog. The animal still whimpered and twitched.
Men have a lot
of life in them, Raj thought. Men and dogs. Sometimes they just died, and
sometimes they got cut in half and hung on for minutes, even hours.
The advancing force had
gotten far enough downslope that the reserve platoon and the second battery of
guns could fire over their heads. Shock-waves from the shells passing overhead
slapped at the back of their helmets like pillows of displaced air. Most of the
head of the Brigaderos column was trying to run away, but the railroad
right-of-way was too narrow and the press behind them too massive. Men spilled
upslope toward the forested hills. Just then the Skinners opened up themselves
with their two-meter sauroid-killing rifles. Driving downhill on a level slope,
their 15mm bullets went through three or four men at a time. A huge sound came
from the locked crowd of enemy troops, half wail and half roar. Some were
getting out their rifles and trying to return fire, standing or taking cover
behind mounds of dead. Lead slugs went by overhead, and not two paces from him
a trooper went unh! as if belly-punched, then to his knees and
then flat.
The rest of his unit
walked past, reloading. Spent brass tinkled down around the body lying on the
railroad tracks, bouncing from the black iron strapping on the wooden
stringers.
Raj whistled sharply,
and Horace came forward and crouched. Got to see what's going on, he
thought, straddling the saddle and levelling his binoculars as the hound rose.
Then: damn.
Hard to see through
smoke and mist, but there was activity down by the fort. Men with banners galloping
out amid a great whirring of kettledrums. The enemy column had been bulging
naturally, where advancing ranks met retreating. The party from the fort was
getting them into order, groups of riding dogs being led back and men in
dragoon uniforms jogging left and right into the woods. A trio of shells from
the second battery ploughed into the knot of Brigaderos, raising plumes of dirt
and rock, rail-iron and body-parts. When those cleared the movement continued,
and the Welf banner still stood. Raj focused his glasses on the fort's
ramparts; Center put a square across his vision and magnified, filling in data
from estimation. A man in inlaid lancer armor with a high commander's plumes.
Another with a halter around his neck and two men standing behind him, the
points of their broadswords hovering near his kidneys. Clo Reicht, pointing . .
.
Pointing at me. A man might not
be recognized at this distance by unaided eyes, but Horace could.
The press on the bridge
behind the fort had halted. Two low turtle-shaped vehicles were coming over it,
slowly, men and animals rippling aside to let them pass. Steam and smoke
vomited from low smokestacks; the Brigade wasn't up to even the asthmatic gas
engines the Colony and Civil Government used for armored cars, but steam would
do at a pinch. Another curse drifted through his mind. Someone had had a rush
of intelligence to the head. The cars were running on flanged wheels that
fitted the tracks. Sections of broader tire were lashed to their decks. A few
minutes work to bolt them onto the iron hubs, and they'd be road-capable. Now that
was clever.
"Ehwardo!" Raj
shouted.
"No joy?" the
Companion said.
"No. They began to
stampede, but whoever's in charge down there is starting to get them sorted
out."
A lancer regiment was extracting
itself from the tangle and forming up. Guns went thump from the fort,
and a roundshot came whirrr-crash, bouncing up into the air again
halfway between the lead spray of enemy dead and the Civil Government's line.
More and more riflemen were returning fire, some of them in organized units.
The Brigaderos troops were brave men, and mostly trained soldiers. They didn't want
to panic, and they knew the real slaughter started when one side or the
other bugged out. Once somebody started giving orders, they must have been
relieved beyond words.
"If that's Teodore
Welf, Ingreid Manfrond had better look to his Seat later," Ehwardo said.
"And we'd better
look to our collective arse right now," Raj said.
He glanced at the sky,
and called up memories of what the terrain was like. More bullets cracked by,
and a cannonball hit a tree upslope from him and nearly abreast. The long
slender trunk of the whipstick tree exploded in splinters at breast height,
then sagged slowly away from the track, held up by its neighbors.
"He's got enough
brains to reverse their standard tactic," Raj said. "Those dragoons
will try and work around our flanks, and the lancers will charge or threaten to
to keep us pinned."
"Rearguard?"
Ehwardo asked.
It was obviously
impossible to stay. There had been a chance of rushing the bridge if the enemy
ran, but if they didn't the brutal arithmetic of combat took over. There were
just too many of the other side in this broken ground. Their flanks weren't
impassible to men on foot, and the ground there provided plenty of cover.
"I'll do it, with
the guns and the Skinners." He held up a hand. "That's an order, major.
Take them back at a trot, no more, and a company or so saddled up just inside
the gate. We'll see what happens. M'lewis, get your dog-robbers together.
Courier to Juluk—" the Skinner chieftain "—and tell him I need him
now. Captain Harritch!"
The artilleryman in
charge of the two batteries heeled his dog over.
"Captain Harritch,
put a couple of rounds into the railbed now, if you please"—because he did
not want those armored cars zipping up at railroad speeds on smooth
track—"and then prepare to limber up. Here's what we'll do . . ."
Everyone here looked
relieved to hear orders, as well. Now, if only there was someone to tell him
what to do.
* * *
"Now!" the
battery-lieutenant said.
Sergeant-Driver Rihardo
Terraza—his job was riding the left-hand lead dog in the gun's team—heaved at
the trail of the gun. The rest of the crew pushed likewise, or strained against
the spokes of the wheels. The field-gun bounced forward over the little rise in
the road.
spiritmercifulavatarssaveus,
but the barbs were close this time. Not four hundred meters away,
dragoons and lancers and a couple of their miserable muzzle-loading field-guns
pounding up the road in the rain, which was getting worse. They had just time
enough to check a little as the black muzzles of the guns rose over the ridge,
appearing out of nowhere. There were other Brigaderos crossing the rolling
fields, but they were much further back, held up by stone walls and vineyards
tripping at their dogs.
The breechblocks
clanged. Everyone leapt out of the path of the recoil, opening their mouths to
spare their ears.
POUMF. POUMF.
POUMF. POUMF.
Instantaneous-fused
shells burst in front of the Brigaderos. Juicy, Terraza thought with
vindictive satisfaction. He'd been with this battery for five years, since the
El Djem campaign, when they only brought one gun of four out of the desert. He
knew what cannister did to a massed target like that.
"Keep your
distance, fastardos," he muttered under his breath as he threw
himself at the gun again.
Back into battery; he
could feel his thigh-muscles quivering with the strain of repeated effort, of
heaving this two-ton weight of wood and iron back again and again. The rain
washed and diluted his sweat; he licked at his lips, dry-mouthed. Raw
sulfur-smelling smoke made him cough. A bullet went tunnnggg off the
gun-barrel not an arm's length from his head, flattening into a lead pancake
like a miniature frisbee and bouncing wheet-wheet-wheet off into the air.
Their own barbs were
opening up, Skinners who stood behind their shooting-sticks and fired with the
metronome regularity of jackhammers. Something big blew up over toward the
enemy, one of their caissons probably. That might be the Skinners, or the
battery's own fire. No time to waste looking and Spirit bless whatever had
done it; it gave the barbs something to worry about except trying to give
Rihardo Terraza an edged-metal enema.
POUMF. POUMF.
POUMF. POUMF.
"Limber up!"
the lieutenant shouted.
This time the team
caught the trail before the gun quite finished recoiling—risking crushed feet
and hands, but it was a lot easier than hauling the gun by muscle force
alone. Faster, too, which was the point right now. They kept the momentum going
and the trail up, the muzzle of the gun pointing slightly down, and ran it
right back to the limber. That was a two-wheeled cart holding the ready-stored
ammunition and the hitch for the team. The steel loop at the end of the trail
dropped on the lockbar at the rear of the limber with an iron clung.
Terraza ignored it;
slapping the lockpin through the bar was somebody else's job. His little
brother Halvaro's, in point of fact. It was the lieutenant's job to tell him
where to go, and Captain Harritch's to decide where that was, and Messer Raj to
look after everything. Rihardo's job was to get this mother where it was
supposed to be. He sprinted forward to the head of the six-dog hitch and
straddled the saddle of the left-hand lead. The right-hand
lead—right-one—wurfled and surged to her feet at the same instant.
"Hadelande,
Pochita!" he shouted to her. Pochita was a good bitch, he'd raised her
from a pup and trained her to harness himself. She knew how to take direction
from the lieutenant's sword as well as he did, and took off at a gallop. The
team rocked into unison.
The lieutenant was
pointing directions with his saber; off to the right as well as moving
rearward, to knock back a flanking party of barbs that were getting too close
and frisky. Off they went, a bump and thunder over the roadside ditch, and then
up the rocky hillside in a panting wheeze. As soon as they'd moved out of the
way the second battery opened up from a thousand meters back; the Skinners
saddled up too, moving along with them. All four guns and the two spare
caissons with extra ammunition. Which they would need before they saw Old
Residence again.
Something hit a rock to
his right with a monstrous crack and an undertone of metal ringing.
Cast-iron roundshot from one of the barb guns, and dead lucky to be this close
to a moving target. Fractions of a second later the whole team lurched, and he
nearly went over the pommel of his saddle.
Pochita was down. With
both her hind legs off at the hocks; the roundshot had trundled through,
spinning along the ground and ignoring everything else. She whimpered and
floundered; shock was blocking most of the pain, but she couldn't understand
why her legs didn't work. She was a Newfoundland-Alsatian cross, a mule-dog,
with big amber colored eyes. The huge soft tongue licked at him frantically as
he hauled on his reins with his left hand and scrabbled for the release-catch
of her harness with his right.
It gave, but he had to
draw his saber and slash her free from the right-number-two dog. He clapped his
heels to his mount and the team moved forward again, only to lurch to a halt
once more.
"Pull up, pull
up!" his brother Halvaro shouted.
Rihardo looked back over
his shoulder. Pochita had tried to follow the team—she was the best dog he'd
ever trained, and the most willing. Even with blood spurting from both her
severed rear legs she'd tried, and fouled the limber; the last pair of dogs were
almost dancing sideways in their efforts not to trample her. Pochita writhed,
her body bent into a bow of agony.
"Fuck it!"
Rihardo screamed. Rain flicked into his face, like tears. "I wouldn't pull
up if it was you either, mi bro."
He hammered his heels into
the ribs of left-one. The ironshod wheel of the limber rolled over Pochita's
neck, and the gun-wheel over her skull. The team jerked, and something broke
with a noise like crackling timber. Halvaro was standing in his position on the
limber, looking back in horror, when the shell exploded. It crumped into the
earth right of the moving battery, and a hand-sized fragment of the casing
sledged the young gunner forward, tearing open his back to show the bulging
pink surface of the lungs through the broken rib.
Halvaro landed in front
of the limber's wheels, falling down between the last two dogs of the hitch.
Rihardo turned his face forward with a grunt; he ignored the second set of
crackling noises as the wheels went over his brother's back and chest.
"Into battery,
rapid fire!" the lieutenant said.
* * *
"Right, let's get
out of here," Raj said. "They're holding back now they've lost their
field guns."
He cased his binoculars;
it was two hours past noon, good time for a fighting retreat begun early in the
morning. The Brigaderos were scattered over a couple of thousand meters of
front to the westward. The ones trying to work through the fields would be
slower than Raj's guns trotting home down the road. For the first time that day
he noticed the damp chill of soaked clothing; he uncorked an insulated flask
and sipped lukewarm kave, sweet and slightly spiked with brandy. Bless you,
my love, he thought: Suzette had insisted on him taking it, even though
he'd planned to be back in Old Residence by noon. He offered the last of it to
the artillery captain.
"Grahzias, mi
heneral," the young man said. He finished it and wiped his eyes,
peering westward. "Those brass guns of theirs aren't much," he went
on.
The two batteries had
limbered up, replacing a few lost dogs from the overstocked teams on the spare
caissons. They rumbled into a fast trot. The Skinners lounging about rose,
fired a few parting shots and mounted, all except for one who'd decided the roadway
was a good spot to empty his bowels.
"True, Captain
Harritch," Raj said, as the officers reined about and followed the guns.
The dogs broke into a ground-eating lope. "The problem is their
determination."
Poplanich's Own seemed
to be still bunched around the railway gate into the city.
What can Ehwardo be
thinking of? Raj thought irritably.
* * *
"Open the bloody gate,
you fools!" Ehwardo Poplanich screamed upward at the wall above him.
Rain spouted out of the
gutters on the parapet above, falling down on the troops. He could feel the
dogs getting restless behind them, and the men too—retreating was the harshest
test of discipline.
A militiaman peered
through a tiny iron-grilled opening in the gates at head height. "Go
around to the north gate," he said, with an edge of hysteria in his voice.
"We heard the fighting. We're not going to let the Brigade into our
city just to save your asses, easterner."
Rifles bristled from the
top of the gate. Captured weapons distributed to the city militia, but deadly
enough for all that. The rain-gutters could pour boiling olive oil and burning
naptha, as well . . . and there was no telling what a mob of terrified
civilians would do. They'd put militia on watch in the daytime, when nothing
was expected to happen, so that real soldiers could put their time to some use.
Another calculated risk because they were shorthanded . . .
Raj pulled up. "What
is going on here?" he barked. Horace barked literally, a deep angry
belling.
Ehwardo made a single,
tightly controlled gesture toward the peephole. Raj removed his helmet.
"This is General
Whitehall," he said, slowly and distinctly.
"Open—the—gate—immediately."
"Whitehall is dead,"
the man quavered. "We heard it from the fugitives. Dead, wiped out with
both battalions, dead."
That with Raj, a
complete cavalry battalion and eight guns waiting in the roadway. All because
one or two cowards had bugged out from the retreat, and these street-bred
militia had chosen to believe them. Ehwardo was swearing quietly beside him.
The whole thing had cost time. If Poplanich's Own had been inside he
could have rolled the guns and Skinners in with a fair margin of safety. Even
if the gates opened right now, it would be chancy; the pursuit was coming in
hell-for-leather at a gallop. Bells were ringing in there behind the city
walls; the alarm had been given, but it might be fifteen minutes or more until
the word got to a real officer.
"Get a runner to
headquarters," Raj snapped at the peephole. No time to think about that.
No time to think about what he was going to do to the men responsible for this
ratfuck.
"Ehwardo, we'll
have to see off the ones snapping at our heels before anything else. Deploy
into line crossing the axis of the road, with center refused. Captain Harritch,
both batteries in support, if you please; two guns in the center and the rest
on the flanks. Juluk—"
The rain had died away
to a fine drizzle. The land close to the city was mostly flat, and Raj had
ordered every scrap of cover cut or demolished out to two kilometers from the
walls. He was facing east, down the railway and its flanking road, paved this
close to the city. Off to his left was the river, narrowing and turning north
about here, with a high bluff in its bend about two kilometers away.
Trumpet-calls were spreading out the men of Poplanich's Own, smooth as oil
spreading on glass.
Good training, Raj thought.
Only a fool wouldn't be nervous in this situation, but the motion was as calm
and quick as drill. The column reversed, each dog turning in its own length.
Each company slanted out into the fields like the arms of a V, with the
platoons doing likewise, then pivoted out into line. Less than eight minutes
later the six hundred men of Poplanich's Own were trotting back east in
extended open order, a double rank nearly a kilometer long.
A clump of lancers led
the Brigaderos' pursuit, about a thousand strong, cantering down the roadway on
dogs winded from the uphill chase. The forest of upright lanceheads stirred
like a reedbed in a breeze as the thin blue line of Civil Government troopers
came toward them at a round trot. Beside Raj, Ehwardo nodded to himself.
"Wait for it,"
he said quietly to himself.
The distance closed, and
the lancers spurred their tired dogs into a lumbering canter forward, charging
in a clump.
"Now!"
The trumpet sounded five
notes. Company buglers repeated it, and the dogs sank on their haunches to
halt, then to the ground. The men ran forward half a dozen paces and sank
likewise, front rank prone and second kneeling.
"Fire!"
The range was no more
than two hundred meters now, close enough to see men's faces if their visors
were up. Close enough to hear the bullets striking armor. The flung-forward
wings of the Civil Government formation meant that every man could bring his
rifle to bear. The two field guns in the center next to the commanders began
firing as well, with their barrels level with the ground, firing case shot. The
hundreds of lead balls sounded like all the wasps in the world, until they
struck the mass of men and dogs. That was more like hailstones on tile. After
the third volley the survivors turned to run, but their dogs were tired and
fouled by the kicking masses of the dead and dying. Units were coming up the
road behind them, dragoons and lancers mixed, rushing to be in at the kill the renewed
firing indicated.
The killing went on.
From behind a hillock, the Skinners rode out. Some dismounted to shoot; others
swooped in, firing their giant rifles point-blank from the saddle and jumping
down with knives in either hand, darting out again with choice bits of loot.
The Brigaderos at the rear of the pileup began to halt and seep out sideways
into the fields again. The Skinners followed, fanning out into the fields. Men
ran from the menace of their fire.
"The Brigaderos
really need to work on their unit articulation," Raj said coldly.
"Those regiments of theirs are too big to react quickly. They get caught
up in their own feet when something unexpected happens fast."
Shells went by overhead
and burst over the roadway. Shrapnel sleeted down into the mass of enemy
troopers caught between the windrows of dead in front of the battalion line and
the clumps of riders dribbling in from the rear.
"We can . . . oh,
shit," Ehwardo said.
A black beetling shape
loomed up out of the rain, casting mounted men aside from either edge of its
hull like the coulter of a plow. It was about eight meters long and three wide,
and as tall as a tall man in the center of its rounded sheet-iron hull. Smoke
and steam billowed from the stack toward the rear; the rain hissed when it
struck that metal. More steam jetted from under the rear wheels, a steady chuff-chuff-chuff.
A light cannon nosed out from the bow, through a letterbox-type slit. Small
ports for rifles and pistols showed along its sides.
"Scramento,"
Raj echoed.
Someone back at the
bridge had had the car manhandled across the gap they'd torn in the track, then
sent it zipping up the undamaged section. A few minutes back behind the last
hill to bolt the road wheels over the flanged ones, and it was ready. Now it
rattled and wheezed its way forward, and Brigaderos troops followed as if
pulled by the twin black lightning-bolts in the red circle on its bow slope.
Only the gun on this
side of the railway embankment could bear. The crew were already working on the
elevation and traverse wheels of their weapon. It bucked and slid backward; the
shell kicked up a gout of dirt from the embankment beside the armored car. The
vehicle slewed sideways, skidded, and came back onto the pavement, picking up
speed.
"Nothing left but
cannister!" the gun-sergeant screamed, as he dashed back to the caisson.
Men were switching their
aim to the car. Sparks flew as bullets spanged and flashed off the surface, but
even the brass-tipped hardpoints wouldn't punch through. The hatch on top
clanged down, leaving the commander only the slots around it. The armored car
didn't have the firepower to actually kill all that many troopers. It could
break their position, and their cohesion, and that would be all she wrote. The
15mm rounds from the Skinners' sauroid rifles probably would penetrate, but
they were out on the flanks . . . and they'd probably consider this his
business, even if they were looking this way.
It was his
business. "Follow me!" he shouted, and slapped his heels into
Horace's flanks.
Men followed him—no time
to check who—and the hound raced forward at a long gallop, belly to the earth.
The iron juggernaut grew with frightening swiftness; it must be travelling at
top-dog speed. His shift moved Horace aside, into the ditch. The cannon slewed
around, trying to bear on him, then flashed red. Cannister whistled past his
left ear, and Horace leaped as if a fly had stung him. A ball had nicked the
dog's rump, and then they were inside the shot cone. Behind him a dog bleated
in shock, and then he was hauling on the reins. Horace scrabbled, dropping his
hindquarters almost to the ground to shed momentum, and whirled. Raj judged
distance and launched himself—onto the hull of the armored car, his right hand slapping
onto a U-bracket riveted to the hull. It closed like a mechanical grab, and he
felt the arm nearly wrenched from its socket as his eighty kilos of mass was
jerked out of the saddle and slapped flat against the upper front hull of the
armored car.
Rivet-heads hammered
into his chest, and the air went out of him with an agonized wheeze. His waist
was at the edge of the turtleback, and his legs dangled perilously near the
spinning spokes of the front wheel.
And any second the
commander would stick his head out of the hatch and shoot him like a trussed
sheep, or one of the bullets that were clanging off the hull would hit him.
His left arm came up and
clamped onto the next U-bracket. The wool of his cloak tore as his shoulders
bunched and hauled him higher. The bucking, heaving passage of the hard-sprung
car over the rough roadway flung him up and down on the boilerplate surface of
the hull. He scrabbled with his right foot, and got it over the edge of the
upper curve of the hull and braced against a handhold. Now he could free
a hand. The revolver stripped free of the holster with a pop as the
restraining strap snapped across.
M'lewis was riding
alongside the other side of the car—Spirit knew how—leaning far over with his
rifle thrust out one-handed into the drivers slit. The sound of the shot was
almost lost in the groaning, grating noise of the car's passage. He could feel
it lurch under him suddenly, then he was almost flung free as it banged over
the roadside ditch and into the field. The cannon slewed, trying to bear on
M'lewis as hands inside hauled the body of the driver away from the controls.
That gave Raj a space.
Hanging three-quarters on the forward hull, he jammed his revolver through
beside the barrel of the cannon and squeezed off all five rounds as fast as his
finger could pull the trigger. The minute the hammer clicked on a spent chamber
he threw himself back, curling in mid-air as he would have if he'd lost the
saddle while jumping a hedge.
Rocky ground pounded at
him, ripping and bruising. Something whanged against his helmet hard enough to
make the last series of rolls completely limp. He could still see the armored
car lurching forward, out of control now as the bullets ricocheted inside its
fighting chamber. The prow hit a wall of fieldstone and crumpled, the heavy
vehicle bucking up at the back and crashing down again.
What followed seemed
quite slow, although it must have taken no more than fifteen seconds in all.
The rear third of the car blew apart, the seams of the hull tearing loose in a
convulsive puff of escaping steam as the boiler ruptured. That must have sent
the fuel tank's kerosene spraying forward into the fighting compartment,
because flame gouted yellow through every slit and joint in it. The stored
ammunition went off, and probably the last vaporized contents of the fuel tank
at the same instant. The car exploded in a ball of white flame. Bits and pieces
of iron plating and machinery rose and pattered down all around him.
Something cold and wet
thrust into the back of his neck. Horace's nose; Raj grabbed at the stirrup and
hauled himself erect, feeling his knees trembling and clutching at his midriff.
Skin seemed to be missing from a fair section of his face, but none of the
major bones were broken. The Brigaderos were in full retreat. Streaming back
east, dog, foot and guns with the Skinners whooping in pursuit. Trumpets
played; from his left a battalion of Civil Government cavalry came around the
city wall at a gallop and began to deploy into line. He shook his head to clear
it—a mistake—and managed to make out the banner of the 5th Descott.
"Ser."
Raj looked up; it was
Antin M'lewis, still in the saddle. "Ser, yer all roight, then?"
"I'll live,"
Raj said, spitting out blood from a cut lip and feeling his teeth with his
tongue.
None loose . . . He
looked back at the road. Poplanich's Own was moving forward, all except the
banner group. They were halted around something in the roadway. Raj walked that
way, one arm braced around the pommel of his saddle for support. Ehwardo's dog
was lying dead in the roadway, neck broken and skull crushed. Ehwardo lay not
far from it. His left side from the floating ribs down was mostly gone, bone
showing pinkish-white through the torn flesh, blood flowing past the
pressure-bandages his men tried to apply. From the way the other leg flopped
his back was broken, which was probably a mercy. The battalion chaplain was
kneeling by his side, lifting the Headset from the last touch to the temples.
Raj knelt. The older
man's eyes were wandering; not long, then. They passed over Raj, blinked to an
instant's recognition. His lips formed a word.
"I will," Raj
said loudly, leaning close.
Ehwardo had a wife and
four children; including one young boy who would be alone in a world decidedly
unfavorable to the Poplanich gens.
The eyes rolled up. Raj
joined as all present kissed their amulets, then stood.
"Break off,"
he said harshly to the Senior Captain. "Sound recall. The gate will be
open, this time."
Suzette drew up on her
palfrey Harbie, beside the banner of the 5th. "Oh, damnation," she
said. "He was a good man."
Raj nodded curtly. He
would have made a better Governor than Barholm, he thought.
no. Center's mental voice
fell flat as stone. he would
have been a man of peace, nor would he have had the ruthlessness necessary to
break internal resistance to change.
Don't we need peace? Raj
thought. Can't anyone but a sicklefoot in human form hold the Chair?
peace can only
come through unity. barholm clerett is an able administrator with a strong grip
on power, able to cow the bureaucracy and the nobility both, and he will not
rest until bellevue is unified. therefore he is the only suitable governor
under present circumstances.
And I have to conquer
the Earth for him, Raj thought bitterly. Him and Chancellor Tzetzas.
bellevue, Center corrected. earth will come long after your time.
otherwise, essentially correct.
Both units' trumpets
sang in a complex interplay. Men wrapped the body of Ehwardo Poplanich and laid
him on a gun-caisson; others were collecting loose dogs and the wounded, and
enemy weapons.
After a moment, Raj
spoke aloud: "I'm bad luck to the Poplanich name," he said.
"It's not your
fault, darling," Suzette murmured.
"Didn't say it
was," he replied, in a tone like iron. "Didn't say it was."
The gates were open.
Regulars lined the roadway, saluting as Raj rode in, and again for Ehwardo's
body. The militia stood further back, expressions hang-dog. Troopers of
Poplanich's Own spat on them as they rode by, and the townsmen looked down
meekly, not even trying to dodge.
Gerrin Staenbridge was
waiting just inside the gate; standing orders forbade him to be outside the
walls at the same time as Raj.
"The city's on full
alert," he said. Then: "Damn" as he saw the commander of
Poplanich's Own.
His eyes went back to
the militia who'd barred the gate. "What's your orders concerning them, mi
heneral?"
Raj shrugged.
"Decimation," he said flatly.
"Not all of
them?"
"Some of them may
be of use later," Raj went on. "Although right now, I can't imagine
what."
A color party and escort
met Teodore Welf at the main north gate of Old Residence. He exchanged salutes
with the officer in charge of it, a man younger than himself with a hook in place
of his left hand. He was small and dark in the Eastern manner, smelling of
lavender soap and clean-shaven, smooth-cheeked—almost a caricature of the
sissified grisuh. Apart from that hook, and the cut-down shotgun worn
holstered over one shoulder, and the flat cold killer's eyes. His Namerique was
good but bookishly old-fashioned, with a singsong Sponglish lilt and a trace of
a southron roll to the R's, as if he'd spoken it mainly with Squadron folk.
"Enchanted to make
your acquaintance, Lord Welf," he said. "Blindfolds from here, I'm
afraid."
Teodore tore his gaze
from the rebuilt ramparts above, and the tantalizing hints of earthworks beyond
the gate. He could see that the moat had been dug out; the bottom was full of
muddy water, and sharpened stakes. The edge of the cut looked unnaturally neat,
as if shaped by a gardener, but the huge heaps of soil that should have shown
from so much digging were entirely missing. The distinctive scent of new-set
cement mortar was heavy, and sparks and iron clanging came from the tops of the
towers; smiths at work.
The soft cloth covered
his eyes, and someone took the reins of his dog. Normal traffic sounds and
town-smells came beyond, with a low murmur at the sight of the Brigade banner
beside him. An occasional shout to make way, in accented Spanjol. Once or twice
a member of the escort said something; Teodore had trouble following it,
although he spoke the eastern tongue well. The men around him pronounced it
with a nasal twang, and many words he'd never read in any Sponglish book. The
feeling of helplessness was oddly disorienting, like being ill. Mounted troops
went by, and the rumbling of guns passing over irregular pavement. Minutes
passed, even with the dogs at a fast walk; Old Residence was a big city.
By the time the echoes
changed to indicate they'd pulled out into the main plaza, Teodore Welf was
getting a little annoyed. Only the thought that he was supposed to be
annoyed kept it within bounds. Someone was drilling men on foot in the plaza,
and he recognized enough Sponglish swearwords to know that whoever it was was
not happy with them. If Raj Whitehall was trying to make soldiers out of Old
Residence militia, then probably all parties concerned were quite desperately
unhappy. The thought restored some of his cheer as he was helped to dismount
and guided up steps with a hand under his elbow. One of the other emissaries
stumbled and swore.
Cold metal slid between
the blindfold and his skin, light as the touch of a butterfly.
"Be quite still,
now," the lilting voice said next to his ear.
The cloth fell away,
sliced neatly through. He blinked as light returned. The faded,
shabby-at-the-edges splendor of the Governor's Council Chamber was familiar
enough. They went through marbled corridors with high coffered ceilings and
tall slim pillars along the sides, and into the domed council hall itself. The
rising semicircular tiers of benches were full, with the Councilors in their
best; carbide lamps in the dome above reflected from the white stone and pale
wood. Teodore stiffened in anger to see that the Brigade banner had been taken
down from behind the podium, leaving the gold and silver Starburst once more
with pride of place.
There were a few other
changes. The guards at the door were in Civil Government uniform of blue
swallowtail coat and maroon pants and round bowl-helmets with chainmail
neckguards. The Chair of the First Citizen was occupied by a man in an
officer's version of the same outfit; on a table beside him was a cushion
bearing a steel mace inlaid with precious metals.
Whitehall, the Brigade
noble thought. He clicked heels and inclined his head slightly; the easterner
nodded. A woman sat on the consort's seat one step below him; even then,
Teodore gave her a second glance that had little to do with the splendor of her
East Residence court garb. Woof, he thought.
Then the general's gray
eyes met his. Teodore Welf had fought in a thunderstorm once, with a blue
nimbus playing over the lanceheads and armor of his men. The skin-prickling
sensation was quite similar to this. He remembered the battle at the railroad
bridge and along the road, the eerie feeling of being watched and anticipated
and never knowing what was going to hit him next.
He shook it off. His
General had given him a task to do.
* * *
". . . and so,
Councilors, even now the Lord of Men is willing to forgive you for allowing a
foreign interloper to seize and man the fortifications which the 591st
Provisional Brigade has held against all enemies for so long. Full amnesty,
conditional on the eastern troops leaving the city within twenty-four hours. We
will even allow the enemy three days' grace before pursuit, or a week if they
agree to leave by sea and trouble the Western Territories no more.
"Consider
well," the Brigade ambassador concluded, "how many kilometers of wall
surround this great city, and how few, how very few, the foreign troops are.
Far too few to hold it against the great host of the Lord of Men, which even
now makes camp outside. Take heed and take His Mightiness' mercy, before you
feel his anger."
Raj smiled thinly. Not
a bad performance, he thought. A good many of the Councilors were probably
sweating hard right now. This Teodore Welf certainly looked the part, with his
sternly handsome young face and long blond locks falling to the shoulderplates
of his armor. He'd spoken like an educated man, too—fought like one, in the
skirmishes with the vanguard of the Brigadero army. The two other officers
beside him were older, scarred veterans in their forties. Their speeches had
been shorter, and their Spanjol much more accented.
"Most
eloquent," Raj said dryly. "However, Lord Welf, I speak for
this noble Council; as one of their member"—his family were hereditary
Councilors in the Civil Government, a minor honor there—"and as duly
appointed commander of the armed forces of the Civil Government of Holy
Federation, under the orders of the Sole Rightful Autocrat Barholm Clerett.
Against which and whom the 591st Provisional Brigade is in a state of unlawful
mutiny. You are the foreigner here. General Forker was a rebellious vassal—"
In soi-disant theory the
Brigade held the Western Territories as "delegates" of the Chair; a
face-saving arrangement dating back to the original invasion, when General
Teodore Amalson had been persuaded to move into the Western Territories after
harassing East Residence for a generation. Old Residence had already been in
the hands of a "garrison" of barbarian mercenaries for a long
lifetime before that. Old Amalson had solved that problem with blunt
pragmatism; he'd killed all their leaders at a banquet and massacred the
rank-and-file next day.
"—and your
marriage-kinsman Ingreid Manfrond is not even a vassal, being a usurper. Let me
further point out that neither you Brigaderos nor any other barbarians built
this city or its walls—you couldn't even keep them in repair. It has returned
to its rightful rulers, and we intend to keep it. If you think you can take it
away from us, you're welcome to try, with hard blows and not with words.
Siegecraft is not something the Brigade has ever excelled at, and I predict
you'll break your teeth on this nut before you crack it. Meanwhile you'll be
camping in the mud and getting sick, while the people rise up behind you and
the northern savages burn your undefended homes.
"Go back, Lord
Welf," Raj went on. "Use your eloquence on your compatriots. Tell
them to end their rebellion now, while they have their lives and land, before
they're hunted fugitives cowering in caves and woods. Because the Sovereign
Mighty Lord has entrusted me with the task of reducing the Western Territories
and all in them to obedience. Which I will do by whatever means are
necessary."
* * *
"So, what's this
Whitehall fellow like?" Ingreid Manfrond said.
Ingreid and Teodore and
Carstens were alone now. Teodore put his booted feet up on the chest. The
servant clucked and began unbuckling the mud-splashed greaves; another handed
him a goblet of mulled Sala with spices. The commander's tent was like a small
house and lavishly furnished, but it already had a frowsty smell. The young man
frowned; Ingreid was a pig. And he doesn't know anything about women,
he thought. The way he treats Marie is stupid. Dangerously stupid.
It wouldn't do to
underestimate Ingreid, though. There was a boar's cunning in the little eyes.
"Whitehall?"
Teodore said. As a relative by marriage to the General, he could leave out the
honorifics in private. "About my height, looks to be around thirty. Dark
even for an easterner, but his eyes are gray. A real fighting man, I'd say,
from the way he's built and from the look of his hands and face—a
saddle-and-sword man, not a hilltop commander. Doesn't waste words; told me
right out that if we want the city, we can come and fight him for it. And . . .
Lord of Men, you've got a real war on your hands. This is a man who warriors
will follow."
Ingreid grunted
thoughtfully, his hand caressing the hilt of his sword. "They say he has
the demon's luck, too."
"I don't know about
that, but I saw his wife—and they say she's a witch. I can believe it."
Ingreid shook his head.
"We'll break him," he said, with flat conviction. "No amount of
luck means a turd when you're outnumbered twenty to one." His shoulders
hunched unconsciously, the stance of a man determined to butt his way
head-first through a brick wall or die trying.
Carstens and the young officer
exchanged a glance. I had him outnumbered and he killed two thousand
of my best men, Teodore thought. He doubted Whitehall had lost more than a
hundred or so. Of course, at that rate the Civil Government army would run out
of men before the Brigade did . . . but victory bought at such a price would be
indistinguishable from defeat.
"What about the
Civvies?" Carstens put in. "He can't hold the city with only twenty
thousand men if the natives don't cooperate with him."
"The Council?"
Teodore snorted. "They won't crap without asking his permission, most of
them. Scared of us, but more scared of him because he's in there with them. We
might do something with the Priest, though. Whitehall's been leaning on the
Civvie gentry pretty hard, they thought they'd watch the war like spectators at
a bullfight and he's not having any of that."
Carstens nodded.
"I've got some tame Civvie priests hanging around," he said. "We
can get messages over the wall."
Ingreid flipped a hand.
"You handle it then, Howyrd," he said. "Get me an open gate, and
you're Hereditary Grand Constable." Carstens grinned like a wolf;
that would give his sons the title, if not necessarily the office.
"Land?" he
said. "I'd need more of an estate, to support that title."
"Those Councilors
must have a million or two acres between them. The ones who stick to Whitehall
will lose their necks—and you get your pick, after the Seat."
Teodore nodded
thoughtfully. "And do I have your authority to oversee the
encampment?" he asked.
Both the other officers
looked at him. "Sure, if you want it," Ingreid said.
It was routine work.
Almost servant's work . . . "We're going to be here a while," Teodore
said. "Better to get it right. I don't want us wasting men, we've already
lost too many through Forker's negligence."
"Eight camps?"
Ingreid Manfrond said, peering at the map the younger man unrolled. "Why
eight?"
Teodore Welf cleared his
throat. "Less chance of sickness if we spread the troops out, Lord of
Men," he said. "Or so the priests say."
It was also what Mihwel
Obregon's Handbook for Siege Operations said, but Teodore wasn't going
to tell his monarch the idea came out of a book, and a Sponglish book at that.
He hadn't taken everything in it all that seriously himself, when he read it—but
since meeting the Civil Government's army, their methods looked much more
credible.
Howyrd Carstens nodded,
walking to the tent-flap and using his telescope on the walls of the city two
kilometers distant.
"Sounds good,"
he said. "With twelve regiments in every camp, we'll have enough to block
any Civvie thrust out of the city more than long enough for the others to pile
in."
"You think they'll
dare to come out?" Ingreid said, surprised.
Teodore tossed back his
mulled wine and held the goblet out for more. "Let's put it this way,
kinsman," he said. "When we've got Whitehall's head on a lance, I'll
relax."
* * *
"Have you seen those
handless cows at drill, mi heneral?" Jorg Menyez said bitterly.
"What're they good for, except getting in the way of a bullet that might
hit someone useful?"
Raj chuckled without
looking up from the big tripod-mounted binoculars. From the top of the
north-gate tower the nearest enemy encampment sprang out at him, the raw
reddish-gray earth of the berm around it seeming within arm's reach.
"Others have been
known to say the same thing about our infantry, Jorg," he said, stepping
back. "Grammeck, tell me what you think of those works."
The artilleryman bent to
the eyepiece. The tower-top was crowded; in the center was a sandbagged
emplacement for the 200mm mortar, and movable recoil-ramps had been built near
the front, timber slides at forty-five degree angles. Field-guns could run up
them under recoil and return to battery by their own weight, saving a lot of
time in action. A counter-weighted platform at the rear of the tower gave quick
access to ground level.
Raj forestalled his
infantry commander with a raised hand.
"I know, I know.
Still, we have to work with what we've got. I'm going to call for volunteers
from the militia; since they'll get full rations and pay—"
"We can afford
that?" Jorg said.
"The Priest has
agreed to pay a war-levy on ecclesiastical property," Raj said. "I
expect about ten thousand men to step forward." They'd been drilling forty
thousand or so, and employment was slow in a besieged city.
"We'll take the
best five thousand of those. From that, cream off a company's worth for each of
your battalions, younger men with no local ties. We'll enlist them, and you can
begin full-time training. We've enough spare equipment for that many. At the
least, they can stand watch while real soldiers sleep; I suspect we're going to
get constant harassing attacks soon."
He grinned. "And
just to make you entirely miserable, you can also provide cadre for the rest;
that'll be about eight battalions of full-timers, armed with Brigade weapons.
Again, they can replace regular infantry on things like guardia duty."
Jorg sighed and nodded.
Grammeck looked up from the binoculars.
"That looks
uncomfortably like one of our camps," he said. "Although they're
rather slow about it—a full week, and not finished yet."
"It's straight out
of Obregon's Siege Operations" Raj said. "Siting, spacing and
outer lines—although the street layout inside isn't regular. But digging is
servant's work, to Brigaderos. They've got some competent officers, but it
isn't institutionalized, with them."
He squinted at the
distant earthworks. The air was raw and chill, but the iron-gray clouds were
holding off on rain, for once.
"I suspect they'll
dig faster soon," he went on.
* * *
Junpawl the Skinner
moved another half-inch, sliding on his belly through the slick mud. It was
deep black, the second hour after midnight with clouds over the stars and both
moons down. The Long Hair camp was mostly silent about him, and the nearest light
was ten minutes walk away—only the great chiefs had enough firewood to spare
for all-night blazes. He drew the long knife strapped to his bare thigh; he'd
stripped down to his breechclout for this work, and smeared himself all over
with mud, even taking the brass ring off his scalplock. Cold wind touched his
back; good, the dogs for this tent were upwind ten meters away . . . and he'd
held ox-dung under his armpits, a sure disguise for man-scent.
The canvas back of the
tent parted under the edge of the knife, a softer sound than the guylines
flapping in the breeze. The Skinner stuck his head through, flaring his
nostrils, letting smell and hearing do the work of eyes. Four men, two snoring.
Fast asleep, as if they were at home with their women—faster asleep than any
Real Man ever slept, even dead drunk. He grinned in the darkness, eeling
through the meter-long slit, careful not to let it gape. A breeze could wake a
man, even a Long Hair. Inside, his bare feet touched pine-boughs; that was why
the enemy rustled when they turned in their sleep.
His fingers moved,
feather-light as he touched bodies to confirm positions. The Long Hairs slept
huddled together for warmth, wrapped in many rich wool blankets like a chief's
women, pinning their own arms. Their swords and rifles were stacked at the door
of the tent—out of reach. These were indeed men who ate grass, like sheep. Only
Skinners lived as Real Men should, on the steppe with their families in tents
on wagons, following the herds of grazing sauroids. Hunting and war were a Real
Man's work.
Slowly, moving a
fraction of an inch at a time, Junpawl's left hand crept toward a face. Warm
breath touched his palm. Fingers and thumb clamped down with brutal suddenness
across nose and lips, pinning them closed; the blackened knife in his right
hand drove down at an angle. It was heavy steel, just sharp enough—not so sharp
that bone would turn the edge. It made nothing of the muscle and cartilage of
the Long Hair's neck, grating home in the spine. The body flopped once, and
blood poured up his forearms, but the massive wound bled the Long Hair out
almost at once. The beardless face went flaccid under his hand; it must be a
young man, barely old enough to ride with the war-host.
Junpawl waited, knife
poised, ready to slash and dive out of the tent. The man next to the corpse
turned over, muttered in his sleep and began to snore again. The nomad
mercenary sliced off one of the dead man's ears and tucked it in the pouch at
his waist; one silver piece per left ear, that was what the Big Devil Whitehall
would pay. Ah, that one was a frai hum, a Real Man in his spirit! You
could buy a lot of burn-head-water with a silver piece, many fat women, lots of
chocolate or ammunition.
He stepped over the
sleeping man and squatted down near the second pair, carefully wiping his hands
on a corner of the blanket so the next victim wouldn't feel blood dripping on
his face.
He'd kill only two of
the four in the tent. Cadaw d'nwit, a night-gift for the Long Hairs to
wake up to. His giggle was utterly soundless.
The joke was worth
missing the other two silver pieces. Besides, he'd stop in one more tent
tonight on his way out of camp.
Delicate as a maiden's
kiss, the Skinner's hand sank toward the sleeping Brigadero's face.
"I suspect we're
going to get very sick of this view before spring," Raj said. It's only
a couple of weeks since the Brigaderos arrived and I'm sick of it already. The
strategic arguments for standing on the defensive were strong. He still didn't
like it.
He bent to the eyepiece
of the brass-and-iron tripod-mounted binoculars. The gun-redoubt the enemy were
building—slowly, since they'd gotten reluctant to move outside their walls at
night—was mostly complete. Walls of wicker baskets full of earth, loopholed for
the heavy siege guns. The guns themselves were rolling out of the nearest of
the fortified camps, soda-bottle shaped things on four-wheeled carriages, drawn
by multiple yokes of oxen.
The chanting of the
morning prayer had barely died; the breaths of the command group on the tower
were puffs of white, although there had been no hard frost. Bells rang from the
hundreds of cathedrons and churches throughout the city. Silvery fog lay on the
surface of the river behind the roof-crowned hills of Old Residence. Steam rose
from the kave mugs most of the officers held.
Kaltin Gruder took a
bite out of a pastry. "If one has to fight in winter," he said,
"this is actually not bad. Clean sheets, hot meals, running water, women.
As long as the food holds out, of course."
Muzzaf Kerpatik nodded.
"Two ships came in last night under tow," he said. "Eight
hundred tons of provisions, and another two hundred thousand rounds of 11mm
from Lion City."
Raj glanced up at the
black-uniformed naval commander. The sailor cleared his throat:
"Their batteries on
the south shore aren't much, at night," he said. "The channel's
fairly deep on the north side, we just steam up and they try to hit the sound
of our engines. Which is difficult enough if you're used to dealing with
sound on water."
Tonhio Lopeyz, Raj reminded
himself.
"Good work, Messer
Commodore Lopeyz," he said, nodding.
Provisions
aren't tight yet, he thought. Plenty of beans and bullets, but he needed men.
What he could do with another five or six thousand veteran cavalry . . .
"What sort of rate
of fire do you think they can get with those siege pieces, Grammeck?" he
asked.
Dinnalsyn looked up from
his plotting table. "Oh, not more than one shot per half hour per gun, mi
heneral," he said. "Their crews look like amateurs, mostly—I think
they keep those guns in storage between wars. Probably only a few real gunners
per tube. Still, a day or so and six guns firing those forty-kilo round-shot
would bring any hundred meters of wall down, even with the earthwork backing
we've put in. Curtain walls like this—" he stamped a foot "—just
can't take the racking stress." Which was why they'd been replaced with
low earth-backed walls sunk behind moats, in the Civil Government and Colony.
The western Midworld was considerably behind the times.
There was a rattling
bang from the rear of the tower. The Y-beams creaked as the platform came level
with the parapet, and the crew manhandled a 75mm field gun forward onto the
flagstones. A gunner waved a flag from beside it, and the platform sank as oxen
on the ground below heaved at their traces and compensated for the pull of the
counterweights. The timber platform bumped rhythmically against the stones of
the tower's inner wall as it went down. The gun-crew trundled the weapon into
position on the wooden disk that waited for it. Behind the wheels were long
curving ramps; ahead of them rope-buffered blocks. The gunners slid
marlinspikes through iron brackets sunk into the circular wooden disk and
heaved experimentally. There was a grating sound from the "lubricating"
sand beneath the planks, and the weapon pivoted, the muzzle just clearing the
crenellations of the parapet.
"Will the structure
take it?" Raj asked.
"I think so,"
Dinnalsyn said cautiously. "We've got the floors below this braced with
heavy timbers." He looked at the Brigaderos. "Amateurs. Hasn't it
occurred to them to check trajectories? Height is distance."
No, Raj thought. But
then, it wouldn't have occurred to me unless Center had pointed it out.
The second gun slid into
position. Dinnalsyn looked to the towers left and right of his position; the
guns there were ready too.
He touched off a smoke
rocket. The little firework sizzled off northward, its plume drifting through
the cold morning air. Center looked out through Raj's eyes at the smoke.
Glowing lines traced vectors across his vision.
"Colonel," Raj
said quietly. "Bring that gun around another two degrees, and you'll make
better practice, I think."
Dinnalsyn relayed the
order. "We lost a great cannon-cocker when you were born to the nobility, mi
heneral," he said cheerfully, bending his eyes to the binoculars.
Then: "Fwego!"
The gunner jerked his
lanyard. The gun slammed backwards, rising up the tracks behind its wheels,
paused for a second as mass fought momentum, then slid downward with a rush to
clang against the chocks. Bitter smoke drifted with the wind into the eyes of
the officers at the side of the tower. They blinked, and a spot of red fire
flashed for an instant in the center of a blot of black smoke over the
Brigadero redoubt. A second later one of the enemy siege cannon fired, a longer
duller booom and cloud of smoke. Almost at the same instant there was a
splintering crash from far below, and the stone of the tower trembled beneath
their feet.
A brass shell casing
clanged dully on timber as the crew of the field gun levered open the breech of
their weapon.
None of the men on the
tower commented on the enemy hit. Dinnalsyn turned to the battery commander at
the plotting table. "Triangulate," he said.
The captain moved his
parallel setsteels across the paper, consulted a printed table and worked his
sliderule. The solution was simple, time-to-target over set ranges to a fixed
location. Center could have solved the problem to the limit of the accuracy of
the Civil Government guns in a fraction of a second—but that would start
looking excessively odd. Besides, he didn't want men who needed a crutch. Come
to that, neither did Center.
The captain called out
elevations and bearing for each gun in the ten tasked with this mission. A
heliograph signaller clicked it out in both directions, sunlight on a mirror
behind a slotted cover.
"Ranging fire, in
succession," Dinnalsyn said.
From east to west along
the wall guns spoke, each allowing just enough time to observe the fall of
shot. Raj trained his own field glasses. Oxen were bellowing and running in the
open center of the Brigadero redoubt, some of them with trails of pink
intestine tangling their hooves. Men staggered to the rear, or were dragged by
their comrades. More were still heaving at the massive siege guns, hauling in
gangs of two dozen or more at the block-and-tackle rigs that moved them into
and out of position.
"Five round stonk,"
Dinnalsyn's voice said, cool and dispassionate. "Shrapnel, fire for
effect, rapid fire. Fire."
This time the four
towers erupted in smoke and flame, each gun firing as soon as its mate had run
back into battery and was being loaded. The rate of fire was much higher than
the guns could have achieved firing from level ground; in less than a minute
forty shells burst over the enemy position, a continuous rolling flicker. Smoke
drifted back from the towers, and covered the target. A rending clap and
ball of yellow flame marked a secondary explosion as one of the siege-gun
caissons went up. Four more explosions followed at half-second intervals, and
the huge barrel of one of the siege guns flipped up out of the dust and smoke.
When the debris cleared the Brigaderos position looked like a freshly-spaded
garden mixed with a wrecker's yard.
Raj bent to the
binoculars. Nothing moved in the field of vision for a few long seconds. Then
dirt stirred, and a man rose to his feet. He had his hands pressed over his
ears, and from the gape of his mouth he was probably screaming. Tears ran down
his dirt-caked cheeks, and he blundered out over the mound of earth and into
the zone between the bastion—the former bastion—and the city. Still screaming
and sobbing as he lurched forward, until a rifle spoke from the wall. Raj could
see the puff of dust from the front of his jacket as the bullet struck.
"Five round stonk,
contact-fused HE," Dinnalsyn said. "Standard fire, fire."
The guns opened up
again, the steady three rounds a minute that preserved barrels and broke
armies. Most of the shells tossed up dirt already chewed by the explosion of
the stacked ammunition. Several knocked aside the heavy siege guns themselves,
ripping them off their iron-framed fortress mounts. Whoops and cheers rang out
from the Old Residence wall as troops and militiamen jeered and laughed at
every hit. The noise continued until Raj turned his head and bit out an order
that sent a courier running down the interior stairs to the wall.
"Nothing to cheer
in brave men being butchered by an imbecile's orders," he said.
"Better theirs than
ours, mi heneral," Kaltin said.
Silence fell. The
gunners took the opportunity to swab out the bores of their weapons, clearing
the fouling before it bound tightly to the metal. A mounted man with a white
pennant on his lance rode out from the central Brigaderos camp. That would be a
herald asking permission to remove the dead and wounded, formal admission of
defeat in this . . . he couldn't quite decide what to call it. "Battle"
was completely inappropriate.
"True,
Kaltin," Raj said. "However, remember that every time you fight
someone, you teach them something, if they're willing to learn. Somebody over
there will be willing to learn. Play chess long enough with good players and
you get good."
Somebody over there had
read Obregon's Siege Operations, at least. Not the supreme commander, or
they wouldn't have committed this fiasco.
"Our army is
already pretty good. We have to work hard to improve. All the enemy has
to do is learn a few basics and it would double their combat power."
It would be a race
between his abilities and the enemy's learning curve.
He remembered Cannae
again. The perfect battle . . . but even Hannibal had needed Tarentius Varro
commanding on the other side.
"Long may you live
and reign, Ingreid Manfrond," Raj whispered.
Some of the other
officers looked at him. He explained: "There are four types of commander.
Brilliant and energetic; brilliant and lazy; stupid and lazy; and stupid and
energetic. With the first three, you can do something. With the last, nothing
but disaster can result. I think Ingreid Manfrond has shown us which category
he belongs to. Let's just hope he's energetic enough to hang on to power."
* * *
"I told you
that would happen!" Howyrd Carstens shouted.
"Watch your
mouth!" Ingreid roared back.
"I told you that
would happen, Lord of Men," Carstens said with heavy sarcasm.
A sharp gasp came from
the cot between them. Both men stepped back. Teodore Welf lay on it, a leather
strap between his teeth. A priest-doctor with the front-to-back tonsure of a
This Earth cleric gripped the end of a long iron splinter with tongs and pulled
steadily. The metal stuck out of the young man's thigh at a neat forty-five
degree angle. For a second it resisted the doctor's muscles, then came free
with a gush of blood.
"Let it bleed for a
second," the doctor said. The flow slowed, and he swabbed the wound with a
ball of cotton dipped in alcohol, then palpated the area and probed for
fragments and bits of cloth. "Looks clean, and it all came out," he
said. "As long as the bone doesn't mortify, you should be up and around in
a while. Stay off it till then or you'll limp for years."
He passed his amulet
over the puncture and then cleaned it with blessed iodine. The patient grunted
again as it touched him, then stared as the bandage was strapped on.
"This will ease
you."
Teodore shook his head.
"No poppy. I need my wits." He glared up at the two older men, sweat
pouring down his face, but he waited until the doctor was gone before speaking.
"You're both
right," he said. "Carstens, we fucked up. You were right. Lord of
Men, you're right—we're pressed for time."
"I suppose you've
got a suggestion?" Ingreid said, stroking his beard.
The boy was a puppy, but
he was brave and had his wits about him—and he was a Welf. That meant a wise
General would give him respectful attention, because the Welfs still had many
followers. It also meant a sensible General should allow him full rein for his
bravery. An honorably dead Welf would be much less inconvenient after the war
than a live, heroic one. He scowled, and his hand clenched. Damn the
wench for miscarrying, just when he was too busy to plow her again. Her hips
were good enough and she looked healthy; what had gone wrong? A son of his and
hers would unite the branches and be unassailable, an obvious choice for
election when he grew too old to hold power. His older sons would be ready to
step in to the high offices around the Seat.
"All right,"
he said. "What's your idea?" He held up a hand. "No more about
detaching troops to guard our rear. If I let regiments go, the whole host will
start to unravel, screaming for a garrison here and a detachment there. I need
them here, under my eye—too many can't understand that this war is more
important than raids on the border."
"Lord of Men, the
Civvies just showed us that you can throw a rock harder from a hill."
Teodore jerked his chin at the map across the tent room. "Here's what I
propose—"
An hour or so later,
Ingreid nodded slowly. "That sounds like it will work," he said.
"It had better work,"
Howyrd Carstens said. "Unless you like the taste of dog-meat."
* * *
Now I know why
our ancestors left the Base Area, Ludwig Bellamy thought. It was that or freeze
to death. They were between Old Residence and Carson Barracks; away from
the sea, the winters were harder. Frost every night now, and the rains were
half-sleet. His men slept huddled next to their dogs for warmth, dreaming of
the orange groves and date-palms of the Southern Territories. And the Base Area
up north was even colder than this. No wonder each succeeding wave of invaders
was more barbaric—their brains had had longer to freeze in the dark.
He smiled to himself,
noticing he'd shaped the thought in Sponglish. When he fought with his own
hands or took a woman, or prayed to the Spirit, Namerique still came first to
him. For subtle wit or pondering strategy, Sponglish was more natural.
"No
prisoners," he said quietly. His voice carried in the cathedron stillness
of the oak forest. "No survivors."
Dogs crouched and men
squatted by them, united in a tense carnivore eagerness as they heard the
mournful whistle of the approaching locomotive. Open fields ran from the forest
edge, black soil with cold water and a little dawn-ice in hollows; the winter
wheat was a bluish sheen on the surface of it. They were north of the railroad,
the embankment sweeping from southwest to northeast a kilometer away. It
crossed a small stream on a single stone-piered wooden bridge, and the train
and its escorting armored car had stopped there, checking carefully under the
piers. He brought up the binoculars, watching the Brigade dragoons splashing
through thigh-deep icy water as they poked and prodded and checked below the
surface. The smell of cold and wet plowed earth and leaf-mould and dog filled
his nostrils as he watched, the scent of the hunt.
They climbed back up,
some to the armored car running on flanged wheels, others to the rear car of
the fifteen hitched to the locomotive. Black smoke billowed from the stack; he
could see the thrall shoveling coal with a will—warmth for himself, as well as
power for the engine. The chuff of the vertical cylinders carried across the
fields, and a long shower of sparks shot out from under the heavy timber frame
as the bell-cranks drove the four coupled wheels of the engine against the
strap iron surface of the rails. The locomotive lunged forward, jerked to a
halt as the chain came taut, then bumped forward again as the cars slid up in
turn and rammed the padded buffer bar at the rear of the coal cart. A ripple of
collisions banged each of the cars together, leaving the whole mass coasting
forward at less than walking pace. The process repeated itself several times
before the train began to move in unison with the linking chains taut.
The armored car slid
ahead more smoothly, holding down its speed to match the train it escorted. It
took the better part of a kilometer for the train to reach the speed of a
galloping dog. Which put it about-
Whump.
The armored car's front
wheels crossed the tie he'd selected. The mine was nothing complicated; a
cartridge with the bullet pulled, stuck into a five-kilo bag of black powder. A
board with a nail in it rested over the bullet, and the whole affair was carefully
buried under the crosstie. The car's forward motion carried it squarely over
the charge before the gunpowder went off. It flipped off the track and landed
upside down, the piston-rods on its underside still spinning the wheels for an
instant despite the buckling of the frame. Then orange-white flame shot out of
every opening in the hull; the black iron mass bucked and heaved in the center
of the fire as ammunition went off in bursts and spurts.
More sparks shot out
from under the locomotive's wheels as the panic-stricken driver threw the
engine into full reverse. The freight cars had no brakes, however; the whole
mass plowed into the rear of the locomotive, sending it plunging off the tracks
even before it reached the crater. The middle cars of the train bucked into the
air as the sliding weight met the suddenly immobile obstacle ahead. The rear
end cracked like a whip, sending the last two cars flicking off the track and
crashing to the ground with bone-shattering force.
"Charge!"
Ludwig shouted.
The trumpet sounded, and
the 2nd Cruisers poured out of the wood with a roar. A few of the Brigade
warriors in the caboose staggered free of the wreckage in time to meet the
sabers; then the troopers were jumping to the ground and hammering their way
into the wrecked train. He looked east and west. The scouts blinked
mirror-signals to him. All clear, no other trains in sight.
"Bacon!" a
company commander shouted back to Ludwig. "Beans, cornmeal and hardtack,
pig-lard."
Shots ran out as his men
finished off the last of crew and escort. Ludwig frowned.
"Steel, you
fools," he roared.
They needed to conserve
ammunition, since the enemy stores were useless to them—although any powder
they captured was all to the good. Good lads, but they still get carried
away now and then, he thought.
The peasants they'd
gathered up were edging out of the woods too, several hundred of them. Ludwig
grinned to himself; they were welcome to what his men couldn't load on their
spare dogs—and they'd hide it much more thoroughly than the raiders could,
since they knew the countryside. A squad was down by the bridge, prying stones
loose from the central pier with picks and stuffing more linen bags of
gunpowder into it.
"Fire in the
hole!" one shouted, as they climbed back out of the streambed.
A minute later the dogs
all flinched as a pillar of black smoke and water and stone erupted from the
gully. The timber box-trestle that spanned the creek heaved up in the center
and collapsed in fragments. Boards and bits of timber rained down across half
the distance between the wreck and the bridge. Ludwig noticed that his sword
was still out; he sheathed it as a man staggered by under a load of sides of
bacon and dropped two for his dog. Loads of food were going on the pack-saddles
even as the animals fed. Like most carnivores, war-dogs could gorge on meat and
then fast for a considerable time without much harm. Today they'd bolt a
man-weight of the rich fatty pig-flesh each.
The first of the
peasants arrived, panting. They were ragged men, lumps of tattered cloth and
hair, more starved-looking even than usual for peons in midwinter. The Brigade
quartermasters had simplified their supply problems by taking as much as
possible from areas within wagon-transport distance of the railroad, not
waiting for barged loads at the Padan River end of the line.
"Thank you,
lord," the peon leader said, bowing low.
His followers went
straight for the tumbled cars; some of them stuffed raw cornmeal from ripped
sacks into their mouths as they worked, moaning and smacking, the yellow grain
staining their beards and smocks.
"The Gubernio
Civil comes to free you from the Brigade," Ludwig said. "Consider
this a beginning. And you don't have to wait for us; you can take more
yourselves."
"How, lord?"
the serf headman asked. Peasants were already trotting back to the woods, with
sacks on their backs. "We have no weapons, no gunpowder. The masters have
swords and dogs and guns."
"You don't have to
blow up the tracks," Ludwig said. "Come out just before dark. Unspike
the rails from the crossties, or saw them through. Wait for the trains to
derail. Most of them have only a few soldiers, and few have armored cars for
escort. For weapons . . . you have
flails and mattocks and scythes. Good enough to kill men dazed by a wreck in the
dark. Most of the real Brigade warriors are off fighting at Old Residence,
anyway."
And if they got too
paranoid to run trains at night, there went half the carrying capacity of the
railroad.
The peon headman bowed
again, shapeless wool cap clutched to his breast. "Lord, we shall do as
you command," he said. The words were humble, but the feral glint in the
peasant's black eyes set Ludwig's teeth on edge.
Captain Hortez came up
as the peasant slouched off. "Ready to go, sir," the Descotter said.
He looked admiringly at the wreck. "That was sneaky, sir, very
sneaky."
"I must be learning
the ways of civilization; that really sounds like a compliment," Ludwig
said. "It did stand to reason the Brigaderos would eventually start
checking bridges."
"What next?"
"We'll try this a
few more times, then we'll start putting the mine before the bridge.
Then when they're fixated on looking for mines near bridges, we'll put them
nowhere near bridges. After, we'll start over with the bridges. And we
can just tear up sections of track."
Rip up the iron, pile it
on a huge stack of ties, and set a torch to it. Time consuming, but effective.
"And the slower
they run the trains so they can check for mines—"
"—and the more
carrying capacity they divert to guards—"
"—the better,"
Ludwig finished.
"A new sport,"
Hortez said. "Train wrecking." Flames began to rise from the wooden
cars as troopers stove in casks of lard and spilled them over the wood. Hortez
looked at the line of peons trudging back towards the forest. "The peasants
are getting right into the spirit of this, too. Pretty soon they'll be doing
more damage than we are. Surprising, I thought the Brigadero reprisals would be
more effective."
"As Messer Raj told
me, you can only condemn men to death once," Ludwig said. "Threats
are more effective as threats. Once you've stolen their seed corn and run off
their stock and burned down their houses, what else can you do?"
Hortez chuckled. The
bannerman of the 2nd Cruisers came up, and Ludwig swung his hand forward. The
column formed by platoons, scouts fanning out to their flanks; they rode south,
down into the bed of the stream. The brigade call-up had been most complete
along the line of rail, too. The local home guards were graybeards or
smooth-cheeked youths. Mostly they lost the scent if you took precautions . . .
possibly they really lost it, although the first few times groups
chasing them had barreled into ambush enthusiastically enough.
"I wouldn't like to
be a landowner around here for the next couple of years, though," the
Descotter officer said.
Ludwig Bellamy
remembered the way the serf's face had lit. Spirit, we'll have to fight
another campaign to put the peons back to work after we beat the Brigade. No
landowner liked the idea of the peasantry running loose. A pity that war could
not be kept as an affair among gentlemen.
Solve the
problems one at a time, he reminded himself. Victory over the Brigade was
the problem; Messer Raj had assigned him part of the solution, disrupting their
logistics.
Whatever it took.
"Now that was
really quite clever," Raj said. "Not complicated, but clever."
He focused the
binoculars. The riverside wall was much lower than the outer defenses, but he
could see the suburbs and villas on the south shore of the White River easily
enough. Most of it was shallow and silty, here where it ran east past the
seaward edge of Old Residence. Once the Midworld had lapped at the city's
harbor, but a millennium of silting had pushed the delta several kilometers out
to sea. He could also see the ungainly-looking craft that were floating halfway
across the four-kilometer breadth of the river.
Both were square boxes
with sharply sloping sides. A trio of squat muzzles poked through each flank;
in the center of the roof was a man-high conning tower of boiler plate on a
timber backing. A flagpole bore the double lightning-flash of the Brigade.
"How did they get
them into position?" Raj said. There was no sign of engines or oars.
"Kedging,"
Commodore Lopeyz said. He pulled at the collar of his uniform jacket.
"Sent boats out at night with anchors and cables. Drop the anchors, run
the cables back to the raft. Cable to the shore, too. Crew inside to haul in
the cables to adjust position."
"Nothing you can do
about them?" Raj said.
"Damn-all,
general," the naval officer said in frustration. He shut his long brass
telescope with a snap.
"They're just rafts,"
he went on. "Even with those battering pieces and a meter and a half of
oakwood on the sides, they draw less water than my ships, so I can't get at
them. I'd have to ram them a dozen times anyway, break them up. They're
floating on log platforms, not a displacement hull. Meanwhile if I try
exchanging shots, they'd smash my steamers to matchwood before I made any
impression—those are forty-kilo siege guns they mount. And they're close
enough to close the shipping channel along the north bank."
As if to counterpoint
the remark, one of the rafts fired a round. The heavy iron ball carried two
kilometers over the water, then skipped a dozen times. Each strike cast a plume
of water into the sky, before the roundshot crumpled a fishing wharf on the
north bank. The cold wind whipped Raj's cloak against his calves, and stung his
freshly shaven cheeks. He closed his eyes meditatively for perhaps thirty
seconds, consulting Center. Images clicked into place behind his lids.
"Grammeck," he
said, squinting across the river again. "What do you suppose the roofs of
those things are?"
The artilleryman scanned
them carefully. "Planking and sandbags, I think," he said.
"Shrapnel-proof. Why?"
"Well, I don't want
to take any cannon off the walls," Raj said thoughtfully. "Here's
what we'll do." He took a sketchpad from an aide and drew quickly,
weighting the paper against the merlon of the wall with the edge of his cloak.
"Make a raft,"
Raj said. "We've got half a dozen shipyards, that oughtn't to be any
problem. Protect it with railroad strap-iron from one of the foundries here,
say fifty millimeters on a backing of two hundred millimeters of oak beam. No
loopholes for cannon. Put one of the mortars in the center instead, with a
circular lid in segments. Iron segments, hinged. Make three or four rafts. When
they're ready, we'll use the same kedging technique to get them in range of
those Brigadero cheeseboxes, and see how they like 200mm mortar shells dropping
down on them."
"Ispirito de
Persona," Dinnalsyn said with boyish delight. "Spirit of Man. You
know, that'll probably work?"
He looked at the sketch.
"Mi heneral, these might be useful west of the city too—the river's
deep enough for a couple of kilometers, nearly to the bridge for something this
shallow-draft. If I took one of those little teakettles they use for
locomotives here, and rigged some sort of covered paddle . . ."
Raj nodded. "See to
it, but after we deal with the blockading rafts. Muzzaf, in the meanwhile cut
the civilian ration by one-quarter, just in case."
"That will be
unpopular with the better classes," the Komarite warned.
"I can live with
it," Raj said.
The laborers would still
be better off than in most winters; a three-quarter ration they had money to
buy was considerably more than what they could generally afford in slack times.
Of course, the civilian magnates would be even more pissed off with Civil
Government rule than before . . . but Barholm had sent him here to conquer the
Western Territories. Pacifying it would be somebody else's problem.
"Hmmm. Commodore
Lopeyz, do any of your men have small-boat experience?" Two of the rams
were tied up by the city docks, upstream of the enemy rafts and unable to move
while they blocked the exit to the sea.
"A lot of them were
fishermen before the press-gang came by," the sailor said.
"Gerrin, I want a
force of picked men from the 5th for some night work. The Brigaderos don't seem
to be guarding that boatyard they built the rafts in. Train discreetly with
Messer Lopeyz' boatmen, and in about a week—that'll be a two-moons-down night,
and probably overcast—we'll have a little raid and some incendiary work."
"General Whitehall,
I love you," Gerrin said, smiling like a downdragger about to bite into a
victim.
"On to the next
problem," Raj said. "Now—"
* * *
"Whitehall will get
us all killed," the landowner said. "We'll starve."
His Holiness Paratier
nodded graciously, ignoring the man's well-filled paunch. He knew that Vihtorio
Azaiglio had gotten the full yield of his estates sent in to warehouses in Old
Residence. Whatever else happened, nobody in his household was actually going
to go hungry. Azaiglio was stuffing candied figs from a bowl into his mouth as
he spoke, at that. The room was large and dark and silent, nobody present but
the magnates Paratier had summoned. That itself would be suspicious, and Lady
Suzette and Whitehall's Komarite Companion had built a surprisingly effective
network of informers in the last two months. They must act quickly, or not at
all.
A man further down the
table cleared his throat. "What matters," he said, "is that the
longer we obey Whitehall, the more likely Ingreid is to cut all our throats
when he takes the city. The commons have made their bed by throwing in with the
easterner—but I don't care to lie in it with them."
"Worse still, he
might win," a merchant said. Paratier recognized him, Fidelio
Enrike.
Everyone looked at him.
Azaiglio cleared his throat. "Well, umm. That doesn't seem too likely—but
we'd be rid of him then too, yes. He'd go off to some other war."
"He'd go, but the
Civil Government wouldn't," Enrike said. "The Brigade are bad enough,
but they're stupid and they're lazy, most of them. If they go down, there'll be
a swarm of monopolists and charter-companies from East Residence and Hayapalco
and Komar moving in here, sucking us dry like leeches—not to mention the
tax-farmers Chancellor Tzetzas runs."
Azaiglio sniffed.
"Not being concerned with matters of trade, I wouldn't know,"
he said.
It had been essential to
invite Azaiglio—he was the largest civilian landowner in the city—but Paratier
was glad when one of his fellow noblemen spoke:
"Curse you for a fool,
Vihtorio, Spirit open your eyes! Carson Barracks always listened to us,
because we're here. East Residence is a month's sailing time away if the
winds are favorable. Why should they pay attention to us? What happens if they
decide some other frontier is more important a decade from now when they're
fighting the Colony, and pull out their troops and let the Stalwarts pick our
bones?"
Everyone shuddered. An
Abbess leaned forward slightly, and cleared her throat.
"Seynor, you are
correct. No doubt the conquest was a terrible thing, but it is long past. The
Brigade needs us. It needs our cities—" she nodded to Enrike
"—because they have no arts of their own, and would have to squat in log
huts like the Stalwarts or the Guard otherwise. They need our nobility because
they couldn't administer a pig sty by themselves."
"They are heretics,"
another of the nobles said thoughtfully.
"They may be
converted in time," the Abbess said. "East Residence would turn all
of Holy Federation Church into a department of state."
There were thoughtful
nods. The civilian nobles of the Western Territories in general and the
provinces around Old Residence in particular had turned having the second
headquarters of the Church among them into a very good thing indeed.
"The Civil
Government was a wonderful thing when it was run from here," Enrike said.
"As I said, being the outlying province of an empire run from East
Residence is another matter altogether. Effectively, we run the Western
Territories under the Brigade—who provide us with military protection at a
price much more reasonable than the Governor's charge."
"Not to mention the
way Whitehall's stirred up the commons and the petty-guilds against their
betters," someone said irritably. "The Brigade always backed us
against those scum."
Paratier raised a hand.
Silence fell, and he spoke softly into it: "These temporal matters are not
our primary concern. Love for Holy Federation Church, the will of the Spirit of
Man of the Stars—these are our burden. Raj Whitehall is zealous for the true faith,
yet the Handbooks caution us to be prudent. If General Ingreid takes this city
by storm, he will not spare the Church."
Needless to say, he
wouldn't spare anyone else either.
"However, if he
were to receive the city as a gift from us—then, perhaps we might appease him
with money. This war will be expensive."
The Brigade troops had
to be paid and fed from the General's treasury while they were in the field. It
was full right now, Forker had been a miser of memorable proportions and had
fought no wars of note, but gold would be flowing out of it like blood from a
heart-stabbed man. The conspirators looked at each other uneasily; there was no
going back from this point.
"How?" Enrike
asked bluntly. "Whitehall's got the militia under his control."
"His officers,"
the head of the Priest's Guard said. "But not many of them."
"The gates are
often held by these battalions of paid militiamen he's raised," the Abbess
said thoughtfully.
There were forty
thousand of the militia, but most of them were labor-troops at best. Half of
them had volunteered when Raj Whitehall called; a thousand of the best had gone
into the regular infantry battalions. From the rest he had culled seven
battalions of full-time volunteer troops, uniformed and organized like Civil
Government infantry but armed with captured Brigaderos weapons. The training
cadre came from his regulars, but the officers were local men.
The Priest's Guard
officer snorted. "Every one of the battalion commanders he appointed is a
rabid partisan of Whitehall's," he said. "I've checked, sounded a few
of them out very cautiously."
Paratier nodded.
"Many men of sound judgment, devoted to Holy Church, were considered for
those positions," he said thoughtfully. "Yet every one ready to take
Our counsel was rejected."
The officer nodded.
"It's unnatural. You can't lie to him, to Whitehall. He looks at
you and, well, he can tell." The priest-soldier touched his amulet.
"There's a shimmer in front of his eyes sometimes, have you noticed? It's
not natural."
The Priest coughed
discretely. "Yet men change. Moreover, not all of the officers chosen for
those battalions were hand-picked by the heneralissimo. He is but one
man, with much to do."
The others leaned
forward.
* * *
"Fun while it
lasted," Grammeck Dinnalsyn said dismally.
Raj nodded. The first
set of Brigaderos gun-rafts had burned and exploded spectacularly when the
mortar shells dropped on them—and the steamers had brought in cargo ships
unhindered for several weeks.
Today was a different
story. It was a cold bright day, with thin streamers of cloud high above, cold
enough to dull scent. The waterspouts and explosions across the river were
clear and bright, like miniature images in an illustrated book. The long booom
of heavy guns echoed flatly, and huge flocks of wintering birds surged up
out of the reeds and swamps at the sound. The new enemy rafts had their sloping
sides built up smoothly into peaked roofs, and the whole surface glinted with
the dull gray of iron. Hexagonal plates of it, like some marble floors, as
thick as a man's arm and bolted to the heavy timber wall beneath. A
mortar-shell struck one as he watched. It exploded, and the water surged away
from that side of the raft in a great semicircle. When the smoke cleared and
the spray and mud fell, the iron was polished brighter, but barely scarred.
A port opened in the
armored side of the raft, and the black muzzle of a fortress gun poked through.
The hole in the center was twice the width of a man's head. Red flame belched
through the cloud of smoke. The forty-kilo shot struck the side of the Civil
Government mortar-raft only a thousand meters away. White light sparked out
from the impact, and a sound like a monstrous dull gong. The smaller mortar
raft surged backward under the impact.
More roundshot were
striking around the mortar raft, raising plumes of water or bouncing off the
armor.
"The son of a
whore's keeping his rafts fairly close to the shore batteries, too, in
daytime," Dinnalsyn said. "Enough hits and they'll break the timber
backing or spall off fragments on ours."
Raj sighed. "Recall
them," he said. "This isn't getting us anywhere."
Dinnalsyn nodded
jerkily, and signed to his aide. Rockets flared out over the water. After a few
minutes, the mortar rafts began to back jerkily, as the crews inside winched in
the cables and paid out on the ones attached to the anchors set closer to the
southern shore.
"Losien,"
Dinnalsyn said: sorry. Then more thoughtfully: "Although . . . mi
heneral, if we put a chilled-iron penetrating cap on the mortar shells,
maybe a delay fuse . . . or I could . . . hmmm. I know the theory, with a
little time I could set up a rifling lathe for some of the big smoothbores we
found here. Fire elongated solid shot with lead skirts like the siege guns back
home—we use cast steel from the Kolobassian forges, of course, but I could
strengthen the breeches of these cast-iron pieces with bands. Heat some squared
wrought-iron bars white-hot and then wind them on—"
"Good man,"
Raj said, clapping him on the shoulder in comradeship. "Delegate it,
though, don't get too focused on this one aspect. And this sort of move and
counter-move can go on indefinitely."
observe, Center said.
The real world vanished,
to be replaced with the glowing blue-white curved shield of Bellevue seen from
the holy realm of Orbit. Blossoms of eye-searing fire bloomed against the haze
of the upper atmosphere. They came from dots that fell downward, dodging and
jinking. Fingers of light touched them and they died, but others survived,
penetrating deeper and deeper until some went down into the night side of the
planet below. Down to the grids of light that marked cities, and then sun-fire
billowed out in circles, rising in domes of incandescence toward the
stratosphere . . .
Raj shook his head.
"Muzzaf," he said. "Two-thirds rations for the populace again.
Grammeck, what really has me worried is the area southeast of the wall. Meet me
in the map room this afternoon, and we'll go over it."
* * *
Sweet incense drifted
over the pounded dirt of the cleared zone between the inner face of the wall
and the buildings of Old Residence. A hundred meters wide, it stretched on
either side of them like a wavering road. Much of it was as busy as a road; men
marching, or exercising their dogs, or supply wagons hauling rations and
ammunition. This section was the 24th Valencia Foot's, and they were inducting
their recruits, the ones who'd survived probationary training.
The new men stood in
ranks, facing the wall and the rest of the battalion, with the unit standard
beside the commander and Raj. The colors moved out to parade past the files,
and the unit saluted them—both arms out rigidly at forty-five degrees with the palms
down and parallel to the forearm, the same gesture of reverence that they would
have used for a holy relic passing in a religious procession. The banner was
commendably shot-riddled and many times repaired; it had Sandoral embroidered
on it, and Port Murchison.
The battalion chaplain
gathered up his materials, a tiny star-shaped branding iron and a sharp knife.
The unit commander was Major Ferdihando Felasquez, a stocky middle-aged man
with a patch over one eye, legacy of a Colonist shell. He had a riding-crop
thonged to his wrist.
That was how the oath
was administered. I swear obedience unto death, though I be burned
with fire, pierced with steel, lashed with the whip. A taste of salt, the
brand to the base of the thumb, a prick on one cheek with the knife, and a tap
on both shoulders with the riding crop. Some officers didn't bother with it
personally, but Raj had had the same scar on his thumb since he turned eighteen
and took up the sword.
"Captain Hanio
Pinya, isn't it?" Raj said, as the men went back to parade rest.
"Ci, mi heneral,"
the younger man said, stiffening slightly, obviously conscious of the newness
of the Captain's two stars on his helmet.
Felasquez spoke:
"I'm forming one extra company," he said. "Putting about half
recruits and half veterans in it, and splitting the rest of the new men up
among the others."
"How are they
shaping?" Raj asked.
"Not bad, seyor,"
the newly promoted captain said. "They're all over eighteen and below
twenty-five, all over the minimum height, and they can all see a man-sized
cutout at five hundred meters and run a couple of klicks without keeling over.
Better raw material than we generally get."
They all nodded.
Infantry units usually got peons sent by their landlords in lieu of taxes, or
whatever the pressgang swept up when a unit was ordered to move and had to make
up its roster.
"Odd to have so
many townsmen," Felasquez said. "Although some of them are peasants
who got in before the enemy arrived. No clerks, shopkeepers or house
servants—all farmers or manual laborers."
The three men moved down
the ranks. The recruits were all looking serious now—taking the oath did that
to a man—and they'd had enough drill already to remain immobile at parade rest.
With Old Residence to draw on there had been no problem equipping everyone up
to regulation standards, and better than the sleazy junk that garrison units
often got stuck with at home. Blanket roll over the left shoulder, wrapped
around with the waxed-linen sheet that was part of the squad tent. A short
spade or pickaxe stuck through the leather bindings, its head just showing over
the shoulder. Spare socks, pants and knitted-wool pullover inside the blanket
roll. Bandolier with seventy-five rounds, and twenty-five more in a waxed
cardboard box. Three days' allowance of hardtack. Rifle and bayonet; roll of
bandages; gun-oil and cleaning gear; cup, bowl and spoon of enameled iron;
share of the squad's cooking gear . . .
"And by the
way," Raj said, when the officers returned to the standard. "We've
managed to get a satisfactory reloading shop set up, so double the usual firing
practice and collect all your spent brass. Work them hard."
"They'll sweat, mi
heneral," Felasquez promised. "Although I'd prefer to get them
out under canvas 'til the new men shake down. They'll pick up Sponglish faster
with no distractions, too."
"Ingreid might
object to maneuvers," Raj replied dryly. "Wall duty will give them
some experience of being shot at, at least." The Brigaderos had been
infiltrating snipers within range of the wall by night and picking off the odd
man.
Felasquez cleared his
throat and rested one hand on the pole of the battalion standard.
"Men," he
said, in a clear carrying voice. "You are no longer probationers, but
members of the 24th Valencia Foot. For two hundred and fifty years, this flag
has meant men not afraid of hard work or hard fighting. May the Spirit of Man
of the Stars help you be worthy of that tradition. You will now have the honor
of an address by our heneralissimo supremo, Raj Whitehall."
A brief barking cheer
echoed off the surface of the fortification wall. Raj stepped forward, his
hands clasped behind his back.
"Fellow soldiers,"
he said; the cheer was repeated, and he waved for silence. "I've been
called the Sword of the Spirit of Man. It's true the Spirit has guided me . . .
but if I'm the hilt of the Spirit's sword, my troops are the blade. These
veterans—" his stance stayed the same, but he directed their attention to
the ranks behind him "—have marched with me from the eastern deserts to
the Western Territories, and together we've broken everyone who tried to stop
us. Because the Spirit was with us, and because we had training and discipline
that nobody could match."
The soldiers made no
sound, but Raj could almost feel the pride they radiated. Poor bastards, he
thought. Every fifth man in the 24th had died in the trenches at Sandoral.
Mostly from artillery, with no chance to strike back.
"Victory doesn't
come cheap," he went on. "But none of us has been killed running
away." Even the 5th's retreat from El Djem hadn't been a bugout. Tewfik's
men had been glad enough to break contact. "If you can become worthy comrades
of these men—and it won't be easy—then you'll have something to be proud
of."
Or you'll be
cripples, or bodies in a ditch, he thought, looking at the young men. Only the
knowledge that he shared the danger he sent them into made it tolerable.
"One last thing. Before
you enlisted, probably only your mothers loved you." He allowed himself a
slight smile.
"Now that you're
wearing this—" he touched his own blue jacket "—probably not even
your mothers will, any more. And that's no joke. We guard the Civil Government,
but damned little gratitude we get for it. Gratitude is nice; so is plunder,
when we find it—but that's not what we fight for. There's precious little faith
or honor in this Fallen world; what there is, mostly wears our uniform. We
fight for Holy Federation, for our oaths . . . and mostly, for each other. The
men around you now are your only family, your only friends. Obey your officers,
stand by your comrades, and you've nothing to fear from anyone who walks this
earth."
* * *
"Put your backs into
it," Howyrd Carstens shouted.
"You put your fuckin'
back into it," the soldier growled back at him. "I'm a free unit
brother, not a goddam peon!"
The Brigade-colonel
jumped down from his dog. Sweating, muddy, stripped to the waist despite the
chill, the soldier backed a pace. Carstens ignored him. Instead he walked past
to the head of the cable and grabbed the thick hemp rope, hitching his shoulder
into it.
"Now pull, you
pussies," he roared.
Men, dogs and oxen
strained. The siege gun began to inch forward, over the last steeper section of
the hastily-built road. With a groaning shout the teams burst onto the surface
of the bluffs. It was full dark, lit only by a few carefully shuttered
lanterns. And by the flare of the occasional Civil Government shell, landing in
the entrenchments at the eastern face of the hill. Everyone ducked at the
wicked crack of the 75mm round going off, but the shrapnel mostly flayed
the forward surface of the hill with its earthwork embankments and merlons of
wickerwork and timber.
"That's how to do a
man's job, boys," Carstens said, panting and facing the others.
Most of the troops on
the line had collapsed to the ground once the heavy cannon was on the level
hilltop. Their bodies and breath steamed with exertion; the dogs beside them
were panting, and the oxen bawled and slobbered. Men ran up to hitch new cables
to the iron frame of the gun's mount and lead the animals back down the slope
for the next weapon. Winches clanked, dragging the gun across the log pavement
laid on the hilltop, an earthquake sound as multiple tons of iron thundered
over the corrugations. The soldiers gave Carstens a tired cheer as they looped
up the heavy ship's hawser they had used for haulage.
"And keep your
jackets on," Carstens called after them. A chill was always a danger when
you sweated hard and then stopped in cold weather. There were too many men down
sick as it was.
"Yes, mother,"
a trooper shouted back over his shoulder—the same one who'd challenged his
superior to get down in the dirt with them. The men were laughing as they
trotted down the uneven surface, dodging around the wagons that followed the
gun with loads of ammunition and shot.
His escort brought up
his dog, and he took down the cloak strapped to the saddle and flung it around
his shoulders. His heart was still beating fast. Not as young as I was, he
thought.
The area ahead looked
like a spaded garden in the dim light. Earth was flying up from it, as
thousands of men worked to dig the guns into the edge of the bluff facing the
city. A dozen positions faced the wall two kilometers away, each a deep narrow
notch cut into the loess soil of the bluff from behind and then roofed over; other
teams worked on the cliff-face itself, reinforcing it with wicker baskets of
earth and thick timbers driven down vertically. Behind the guns were bunkers
with beam and sandbag covers, to hold the ammunition and spare crewmen. As he
watched, the latest gun was aligned with its tunnellike position and a hundred
men began heaving on ropes. Those were reaved through block-and-tackle at the
outer lip of the position, in turn fastened to treetrunks driven deep into the
soil. The monstrous soda-bottle shape of the gun was two meters high at the
breech, and nearly ten meters long. It slid into position with a jerky
inevitability, iron wheels squealing on rough-hewn timber.
Carstens followed it, to
where Ingreid and Teodore waited under the lip of the forward embankment. Just
then an enemy shell plowed into the face beyond. Dirt showered up and fell
back, pattering on the thick plank roofing overhead. He bowed to the Brigade's
ruler and exchanged wrist-clasps with the younger nobleman.
"Glad to see you on
your feet," he said.
Teodore nodded, then
waved a hand toward the city. "Our oyster," he said. "A tough
one, but we've got the forks for it."
Carstens peered through
his telescope. The white-limestone walls were brightly lit by Civvie
searchlights, and he squinted against the glare. A globe of red fire bloomed,
and a shell screeched through the air to burst a hundred meters to his left.
Dirt filtered through between the planks overhead, and he sneezed.
"They're not making
much practice against this redoubt," he said.
"Told you,"
Teodore said with pardonable smugness.
Ingreid barked laughter
and thumped him on the back; the glove rang on his backplate with a dull bong.
"This time we're
the ones pissing on 'em from above," Ingreid said. He took the telescope
from his subordinate and adjusted it. "How long will it take?"
"We're at extreme
range," Teodore said. "Wouldn't work at all without—" he stamped
a heel "—a hundred meters of hill under us. With a dozen guns, and
overcharging the loads—four, five days to bring down a stretch of wall."
"And we've got
their supplies cut off, too," Ingreid said happily. His teeth showed
yellow in a grin. "Slow-motion fighting, but you two have been doing well.
When the wall comes down . . ."
"Don't like to put
everything in one basket," Teodore said.
The older men laughed.
"We've got another bullet in that revolver," Carstens said.
"They'll all be looking this way—the best time to buttfuck 'em."
"I'll bloody well
leave, that's what I'll do," Cabot Clerett snarled, pacing the room. It
was small and delicately furnished, lit by a single lamp. The silk hangings
stirred slightly as he passed, wafting a scent of jasmine.
"Cabot, you can't
leave in the middle of a campaign; not when your career has begun so
gloriously!" Suzette said.
"Whitehall
obviously won't let me out of his sight again," Cabot said. "He
doesn't make mistakes twice. And all he's doing is sitting here. I'll go
back and tell uncle the truth about him. Then I'll collect reinforcements, ten
thousand extra men, and come back here and do it right."
"Cabot, you can't
mean to leave me here?" Suzette said, her eyes large and shining.
"Only for a few
months," he said, sitting beside her on the couch.
She seized his hand and
pressed it to her breast. "Not even for a moment. Promise me you
won't!"
* * *
"Let me out, my
son," the priest said shortly.
"I'm no son of
yours, you bald pimp in a skirt," the trooper growled. He was from the 1st
Cruisers, a tall hulking man with a thick Namerique accent.
Savage, the priest
thought. Worse than the Brigade, most of whom were at least minimally polite to
the orthodox clergy.
The East Gate had a
small postern exit, a narrow door in the huge main portal. A torch stood in a
bracket next to it, and the flickering light caught on the rough wood and thick
iron of the gate, cast shadows back from the towers on either side. A crackle of
rifle-fire came from somewhere, perhaps a kilometer away. Faint shouting
followed it; part of the continual cat-and-mouse game between besieger and
besieged. Behind him Old Residence was mostly dark, the gasworks closed down
for the duration as coal was conserved for heating and cooking. Lamps were few
for the same reason, showing mellow gold against the blackness of night. The
white puffs of the priest's breath reminded him to slow his breathing.
"I have a valid
pass," he said, waving the document under the soldier's nose. There was a
trickle of movement in and out of the city, since it was advantageous to both
sides.
"Indeed you
do," a voice said from behind him.
He whirled. A man
stepped out of the shadow into the light of the torch; he was of medium height,
broad-shouldered and deep-chested, with a swordsman's thick wrists. Much too
dark for an ex-Squadrone, a hard square beak-nosed face with black hair cut in
a bowl around his head. Major Tejan M'brust, the Descotter Companion who
commanded the 1st Cruisers. The priest swallowed and extended the pass.
"Signed by Messa
Whitehall, right enough," the officer said.
More of the 1st Cruiser
troopers came out, standing around the cleric in an implacable ring. Their
bearded faces were all slabs and angles in the torchlight; most still wore
their hair long and knotted on the right side of their heads. He could smell
the strong scent of sweat and dog and leather from them, like animals.
Another figure walked up
beside M'brust and took the document. "Thank you, Tejan," she said. A
small slender woman wrapped in a white wool cloak, her green eyes colder than
the winter night. "Yes, I signed it. I did wonder why anyone would
take the risk of leaving the city just to fetch a copy of the Annotations of
the Avatar Sejermo. The man couldn't understand the plain sense of the
Handbooks himself and he's been confusing others ever since."
The priest's hand made a
darting motion toward his mouth. The troopers piled onto him, one huge
calloused hand clamping around his jaw and the other hand ripping the paper out
of his lips. He gagged helplessly, then froze as a bayonet touched him behind
one ear.
Suzette Whitehall took
the damp crumpled paper and held it fastidiously between one gloved finger and
thumb. "In cipher," she said. "Of course." She held it to
the light. The words were gibberish, but they were spaced and sized much like
real writing. "A substitution code."
The relentless green
gaze settled on him. Her expression was as calm as a statue, but the Descotter
officer beside her was grinning like a carnosauroid. He threw back his cloak
and held up one hand, with a pair of armorer's pliers in it, and clacked them.
The priest moistened his
lips. "My person is inviolate," he said. "Under canon law, a
priest—"
"The city is under martial
law," Suzette said.
"Church law takes
precedence!"
"Not in the Gubernio
Civil, Reverend Father."
"I will curse
you!"
The marble mask of
Suzette's face gave a slight upward curve of the lips. Tejan M'brust laughed
aloud.
"Well, Reverend
Father," he said, "that might alarm ordinary soldiers. I really don't
think my boys will much mind, seeing as they're all This Earth heretics."
The hands holding him
clamped brutally as he struggled. "And," M'brust went on, "I'm
just not very pious."
"Raj Whitehall is
the Sword of the Spirit," Suzette said. "He is a pious man . .
. which is why I handle things like this for him." She turned her head to
the soldiers. "Sergeant, take him into the guardhouse there. Get the
fireplace going, and bring a barrel of water."
"Ya, mez,"
the man said in Namerique: yes, lady.
M'brust clacked his
pliers once more, turning his wrist in obscene parody of a dancer with
castanets. "They say priests have no balls," he said. "Shall we
see?"
The priest began to
scream as the soldiers pulled him into the stone-lined chamber, heels dragging
over the threshold. The thick door clanked shut, muffling the shrieks.
Even when they grew very
loud.
* * *
"Not much
longer," Gerrin Staenbridge said.
The thick fabric of the
tower shook under their feet. A section of the stone facing fell into the moat
with an earthquake rumble. The rubble core behind the three-meter blocks was
brick and stone and dirt, but centuries of trickling water had eaten pockets
out of it. The next round gouged deep, and the whole fabric of the wall began
to flex. Dust rose in choking clouds, hiding the bluffs two kilometers away.
The sun was rising behind them, throwing long shadows over the cleared land
ahead. The ragged emplacements along the bluffs were already in sunlight, gilded
by it, and it was out of that light that the steady booming rumble of the siege
guns sounded.
"Time to go,"
Raj agreed.
They walked to the rear
of the tower and each stepped a foot into a loop of rope. The man at the beam
unlocked his windlass.
"I'll play it out
slow like," he said. "And watch yor step, sirs."
Gerrin smiled, teeth
white in the shadow of the stone. When they had descended a little, he spoke.
"I think he was
telling us what he thought of officers who stay too long in a danger zone.
Insolent bastard."
The tower shook again,
and small chunks of rock fell past them. Raj grinned back. "True. On the
other hand, what do you suggest as punishment?"
"Assign him to the
rearguard on the tower," Gerrin said, and they both laughed.
There were dummies
propped up all along the section of wall the Brigade guns were battering, but
there had to be some real men to move and fire up until the last minute, before
they rappelled down on a rope and ran for it. All of them were volunteers, and
men who volunteered for that sort of duty weren't the sort whose blood ran cold
at an officer's frown.
They reached the bottom
and mounted the waiting dogs, trotting in across the cleared zone. Raj stood in
his stirrups to survey the whole area inside the threatened stretch of wall.
The construction gangs had been busy; for an area a kilometer long and inward
in a semicircle eight hundred meters deep, every house had been knocked down.
The ruins had been mined for building stone and timbers; what was left was
shapeless rubble, no part of it higher than a man's waist. Lining the inner
edge of the rubble was a new wall, twice the height of a man. It was not very
neat—they had incorporated bits and pieces of houses into it, taking them as
they stood—and it was not thick enough to be proof against any sort of
artillery. It was bulletproof, and pierced with loopholes along its entire
length, on two floors. The ground just in front of it was thick with a
barricade of timbers. Thousands of Brigadero swordblades had been hammered into
them and then honed to razor sharpness.
The falling-anvil chorus
of the bombardment continued behind them. The tower lurched, and a segment of
its outer surface broke free and fell, a slow-motion avalanche. Very faintly,
they could hear the sound of massed cheering from the enemy assault troops
waiting in the lee of the bluffs.
Raj grinned like a shark
at the sound. He hated battles . . . in the abstract, and afterwards. During
one he felt alive as at no other time; everything was razor-clear, all the
ambiguities swept away. It was the pure pleasure of doing something you did
very well, and if it said something unfavorable about him that he could only
experience that purity in the middle of slaughter, so be it.
"Good morning,
messers," he said to the assembled officers, once they were inside the
interior wall. The room looked to have been some burgher's parlor, with a
rosewood table now dusty and battered. Over his shoulder: "Get the rest of
them off the wall. The enemy will be expecting that about now.
"Now," he
said, tapping his hands together to firm up the gloves. The juniors were
looking at him expectantly.
tell them, Center said. as i have told you, over the years.
Raj nodded. "We're
receiving a demonstration," he said, "of two things. The advantage of
numbers, and the benefits of fortification."
He looked around and
settled an eye on Captain Pinya. "What's the primary advantage of superior
numbers, Captain?"
The infantryman flushed.
"Greater freedom to pursue multiple avenues of attack, sir," he said.
"Correct. Most of
the really definitive ways to thrash an enemy in battle involve, when you come
right down to it, pinning him with one part of your forces and hitting him
elsewhere with another. The greater your numbers, the easier that is to do. If
you have enough of an advantage, you can compel the other side to retreat or
surrender without fighting at all. Those of you who were with me back in the
Southern Territories will remember that the Squadron had a very large advantage
in numbers—although they had a substantial disadvantage in combat
effectiveness.
"In fact, they
could have made us leave by refusing to fight except defensively. Keep a big
force hovering some distance from us, and use the rest to cut off our foraging
parties. Pretty soon we'd have had to either charge right into them, or starve,
or leave. Instead they obligingly charged straight into our guns themselves.
"You have to attack
to win, but the defensive is stronger tactically," Raj went on, looking
down at the map.
"It's effectively a
force magnifier. So is fortification, as long as you don't get too stuck to it.
In a firefight, a man standing behind a wall is worth five times one running
toward him; one reason why I'm known as the 'King of Spades.' You may note that
here we're outnumbered by five to one . . . but the Brigade has to attack. That
effectively puts us on an equal footing, and restores the tactical flexibility
which the enemy's superior numbers denies us.
"That,
gentlemen," he went on, tapping the map, "is the essence of my plans
for this action." There was a place marked for every unit on the paper,
but nobody's plan survived contact with the enemy. "We use the
fortifications to magnify the effect of our blocking forces, which in turn
frees up reserves for decisive action elsewhere, with local superiority. I
remind you that we're still operating on a very narrow margin here. Our edge is
the speed of reaction which our greater flexibility and discipline provide. I
expect intelligent boldness from all of you."
The meeting broke up as
men dispersed to their units. Staenbridge was the last to leave.
"Kick their butts,
Gerrin," Raj said.
They slapped fists,
wrist to wrist inside and then outside. "My pleasure, Whitehall," the
other man said.
* * *
"Spirit of Man,"
rifleman Minatelli said.
From the second story
firing platform he had an excellent view of the city wall going down. He had
lived all his life in Old Residence, working in the family's stonecutting shop.
It was like watching part of the universe disappear. The quivering at the top
of the wall got worse, the whole edifice buckling like a reed fence in a high
wind. Then the last sway outward didn't stop; at first it was very slow, a long
toppling motion. Then it was gone, leaving only a rumbling that went on
and on until he thought it was an earthquake and the whole city would shake
down around his ears. Dust towered up toward the sun. When it was over the wall
was just a ridge of tumbled stone, with a few snags standing up from it where
the tower had been.
A cannonball struck with
a giant crack and fragments of stone blasted around it. The next round
came through the gap, burying itself in the rubble. Minatelli had never felt so
alone, even though there were men on either side of him, nearly one per meter
as far as he could see. The platoon commander was a little way off, chewing on
the end of an unlit stogie and leaning on his sheathed saber.
Minatelli swallowed
convulsively. The man down on one knee at the next loophole was a veteran of
twice his age named Gharsia. He was chewing tobacco and spat brownly out the
slit in the stone in front of him before he turned his head to the recruit.
"Sight yor rifle
yet?" he said.
"Nnn-no," the
young man said, straining to understand.
He'd spoken a little
Sponglish before he volunteered; the priest in their neighborhood taught
letters and some of the classical tongue to poor children. A month in the ranks
had taught him the words of command, the names for parts of a rifle and an
immense fund of scatology. He still found most of the rankers difficult to
understand. Why did I enlist? he thought. The pay was no better than a
stonecutter's. The priest had said it was Holy Federation Church's work, and
he'd finally gotten between Melicie Guyterz's legs the time he got to go back
to the home street in uniform. The memory held small consolation. He certainly
hadn't been the first one there.
"Gimme." The
older man picked up Minatelli's weapon and clicked the grooved ramp forward
under the rear sight, raising the notch.
"Das' seven hunnert,"
Gharsia said. "Aim ad ter feet. An' doan' forget to set it back when dey
pass de marks."
He passed the weapon
back. "An' wet der foresight," he said, licking his thumb and doing
that to his own rifle.
Minatelli tried to do
the same, but his mouth was too dry. He fumbled with his canteen for a second
and swallowed a mouthful of cold water that tasted of canvas.
"Gracez," he
said. Thanks.
The veteran spat again.
"Ever' one you shoot, ain't gonna shoot me," he said. "We stop
'em, er they kill us all."
The young man braced his
rifle through the slit and watched the field of rubble and the great plume of
dust at the end of it. It occurred to him that if he hadn't enlisted, he'd be
at home waiting with his family—completely helpless, instead of mostly so. That
made him feel a little better, as he snuggled the chilly stock of his rifle
against his cheek.
"Could be
worse," he heard the veteran say. "Could be rainin'." The day
was overcast, but dry so far. The light was gray and chill around him, making
faces look as if they were already dead.
Footsteps sounded on the
wood of the parapet behind him. He turned his head, and then froze. Captain
Pinya, the company commander—and Major Felasquez, and Messer Raj himself.
"Carry on,
son," Messer Raj said. He looked unbelievably calm as he bent to look
through the slit. A companionable hand rested on the young soldier's shoulder.
"You've got your rifle sights adjusted correctly, I see. Good man."
They walked on, and the
tense waiting silence fell again. "Y' owe me a drink, lad," Gharsia
said. Some of the other troopers chuckled.
"Up yours,"
Minatelli replied. It didn't seem so bad now, but he wished something would
happen.
* * *
"Upyarz!"
The white pennant showed
over the edge of the western gate. That was the signal. The Brigade colonel
swung his sword forward, and the regiment poured after him. They were very
eager; nobody had been told why they were held here, away from the attack
everyone knew was coming on the other side of the city. It had to be kept
secret, only the colonel and his immediate staff, and they informed by General
Ingreid himself and his closest sworn men. Sullenness turned to ardor as he
gave them the tale in brief words.
"We're getting a
gate opened for us, boys," he said. "Straight in, chop any easterners
you see, hold the gate for the rest of the host. Then the city's ours."
"Upyarz!"
the men roared, and pounded into a gallop behind him. None of them had enjoyed
sitting and eating half-rations or less in the muddy, stinking camps. He didn't
envy the citizens of Old Residence when the unit brothers were through with
them.
The road stretched out
ahead of him, muddy and potholed. The dogs were out of condition, but they'd do
for one hard run to the gate. Get in when the Civvie militiamen opened it, hold
it and a section of the wall. The following regiments would pour through into
the city and the defense would disintegrate like a glass tumbler falling on
rock. They'd take Whitehall from behind over to the east, the way the wild dog
took the miller's wife.
He was still grinning at
the thought when his dog gave a huge yelping bark and twisted into the air in a
bucking heave. The Brigade officer flew free, only a lifetime's instinct
curling him in midair. He landed with shocking force, and something stabbed
into his thigh with excruciating pain. It came free in his hand, a thing of
four three-inch nails welded together so that a spike would be uppermost
however it lay. A caltrop . . .
"Treachery!"
he groaned, trying to get up.
His knee wasn't working,
and he slumped back to the roadway. Behind him the regiment was piling up in
howling, cursing confusion, men sawing at the reins as dogs yelped off across
the fields. Some of them were running three-legged, one paw held up against
their chests. Others were down, biting frantically at their paws or flanks.
Dismounted men came running forward; riding boots had tough soles, and they had
little to fear from the caltrops. Two of them helped him up.
The gates were less than
a hundred meters away. They did not open, but two new-cut squares in them did,
at about chest height from the ground. The black muzzles that poked through
were only 75mm, he knew—but they looked big enough to swallow him whole. He
could even see the lands, the spiral grooves curving back into the barrels.
Drawing his sword he lurched forward cursing. There was just enough time to see
a thousand riflemen rise to the crenellations of the wall before the cannon
fired point-blank canister into the tangled mass of men and dogs halted before
them.
* * *
"Here dey
come," Gharsia said.
Rifleman Minatelli
squinted over the sights of his rifle. His mouth was dry again, but he needed
to pee. The rubble out where the city wall had been was nearly flat, but the
cannonade had lifted. The first line of Brigaderos appeared like magic as they
toiled up the ramp the fallen stone made and over the stumps of the wall. His
finger tightened on the trigger.
"Wait for it!"
the lieutenant barked.
Poles had been planted
in the rubble to give the defenders exact ranges. Minatelli tried to remember
everything he'd been told and shown, all at once. Tuck the butt firmly but not
too tight into the shoulder. Let the left eye fall closed. Pick your
target.
He selected a man. The
first rank of the Brigaderos were carrying ladders, ladders tall enough to
reach his position.
He'd seen the heretics
riding through the streets occasionally all his life. Once a child had thrown
an apple at one, in the avenue near his parent's street. The big fair man had
drawn his sword and sliced it in half before the rotten fruit could strike,
booming laughter as the urchin ran. The motion had been too quick to see, a
blur of bright metal and a shuck as it parted the apple in halves.
When were they going
to get the order?
A rocket hissed up into
the air. Pop.
"Company—"
"Platoon—"
"Fire!"
He squeezed the trigger.
BAM. Loud enough to hurt his ears as two thousand rifles spoke. Smoke erupted
all around the semicircle of the inner wall. The rifle whacked him on the
shoulder, still painful despite all the firing-range practice he'd had. His
hand seemed to be acting on its own as it pushed down the lever and reached
back to his bandolier. His eyes were fixed and wide, hurting already from the
harsh smoke. It blew back over his head, and the Brigaderos were still coming.
The next round clattered against the groove atop the bolt. He thumbed it home
and tried to aim again. Another wave of Brigaderos topped the rubble, and
another one behind them—they were all wearing breastplates. The muzzle of his
rifle shook.
"Pick your
targets," the officer said behind him.
He swallowed against a
tight throat and picked out a man—bearded and tall, carrying his rifle-musket
across his chest. Tiny as a doll at eight hundred meters.
"Fire."
He aimed at the ground
just below the little stick-figure and squeezed again. This time the recoil was
a surprise. Did the man fall? Impossible to tell, when the smoke hid his vision
for a second. Men were falling. Dozens—it must be hundreds, the enemy
were packed shoulder to shoulder in the breach, running forward, and another
line behind them. How many waves was that?
"Keep aiming for
the ones coming over the wall," the officer said again. "The men
downstairs are firing at the ones closer. Pick your targets."
"Fire."
Again. "Independent
fire, rapid fire, fire."
He started shooting as
fast as he could, muzzle hopping from target to target. A foot nudged him
sharply, bringing him back to himself with a start.
"Slow down,
lad," the older man said. He fired himself, levered open the action and
blew into the chamber, reloaded, raised the rifle. Without looking around he
went on: "Steady, er de cross-eyed ol' bitch'll jam on yu, for
shore."
Minatelli copied him,
blowing into the breech. The heat of the steel was palpable on his lips,
shocking when the air was so cold. He reloaded and braced the forestock against
the stone, firing again, and forced himself to load once more in time with the
man beside him. It was steady as a metronome; lever, blow, hand back to the
bandolier, round in, pick a target—fleeting glimpse through the smoke—fire.
Clots of powder-smoke were drifting over the rubble. Fresh puffs came from down
among the tumbled stone; some of the barbs were firing back at them. He felt a
sudden huge rage at them, stronger than fear.
"Fuckers," he
muttered, reaching back again.
His fingers scrabbled;
the upper layer of loops was empty. Twenty-five? he thought, surprised.
How could he have fired twenty-five rounds already? There was an open crate of
ammunition not far from him on the parapet; when he needed to he could always
grab a handful and dump them into his bandolier loose.
"Fuckers," he
said again, snarling this time. His shoulder hurt. "Where are the
fucking cavalry?"
He'd spoken in Spanjol,
but the men on either side laughed.
"Who ever see a
dead dog-boy?" one asked.
"Dey fukkin' off,
as usual," Gharsia said, spitting out the loophole again. "Dog-boys
out ready to get dere balls shot off chargin', glory-os. I built dis wall,
gonna use it an' that suit me fine. Dis de easy life, boy."
Bullets spattered
against the stone near Minatelli's face. He fought not to jerk back, leaned
forward further instead. Another wave of Brigaderos was coming through the gap,
a banner waving among them. He aimed at it and shot as it passed a ranging-post.
The banner jerked and fell, the men around it folding up like puppets. A lot of
people must have had the same idea. He felt just as scared, but not alone any
more.
"Come on, you
fuckers!" he shouted. This time he pulled out three bullets and put the
tips between his lips.
* * *
"Determined
buggers," Jorg Menyez said.
Another group of
Brigaderos snatched up their ladders and ran forward. A platoon along the
loopholes to either side of the commanders brought their rifles up and fired;
the volley was almost lost in the continuous rolling crash of musketry from the
wall and of return fire from the Brigaderos outside. The group with the ladder
staggered. The ladder wavered and fell as most of the men carrying it were
punched down by the heavy 11mm bullets from the Armory rifles. The survivors
rolled for cover, unlimbering the muskets slung over their backs.
Raj peered through the
smoke. "There must be ten thousand of them crammed in there," he
said.
Bullets from the
ground-level loopholes were driving through two and three men. All over the
rubble-strewn killing ground, rounds were sparking and ricocheting off the
ground where they did not strike flesh. A great wailing roar was rising from
the Brigaderos crowded into the D-shaped space, a compound of pain and fear and
frustrated rage.
"They're not
sending in another wave," Menyez said.
He looked about; the men
holding this sector were his own 17th Kelden Foot. They fired with a steady,
mechanical regularity. Every minute or so one would lurch backward as the huge
but diffuse enemy firepower scored a lucky hit on a firing slit.
Stretcher-bearers dragged off the wounded or the dead, and a man from the
reserve platoon of that company would step forward to take the place of the
fallen. Cartridge-cases rolled and tinkled on the stone, lying in brass
snowdrifts about the boots of the fighting men.
Raj nodded slowly. He
turned and caught the eye of an artillery lieutenant who stood next to a tall
wooden box. An iron crank extended from one side, and copper-cored wires ran
from the top into a cellar trapdoor next to it. Raj raised a clenched fist and
pumped it down twice. The young gunnery officer grinned and spun the crank on
the side of the box. It went slowly at first, then gathered speed with a whine.
The corporal beside him waited until he stepped back panting, then threw a
scissor-switch on the box's other side. Fat blue sparks leapt from it, and from
the clamps on top where the cables rested.
* * *
For a moment, rifleman
Minatelli thought the wall under him was going to fall as the city's ramparts
had. The noise was too loud for his ravaged ears to hear; instead it thudded in
his chest and diaphragm. He flung up a hand against the wave of dust and grit
that billowed toward his firing slit, and coughed at the thick brickdust stink
of it as it billowed over him. The explosions ran from left to right across the
D-shaped space before him, earth and rock gouting skyward as the massive
gunpowder charges concealed in the cellars of the wrecked houses went off one
after another. The Brigaderos on top of the charges simply disappeared—although
for a moment he thought his squinting eyes caught a human form silhouetted
against the sky.
Silence fell for a
second afterwards, ringing with the painful sound that was inside his ears. His
mouth gaped open at the massive craters that gaped across the open space, and
at the thousands of figures that staggered or crawled or screamed and ran away
from them. Then the big barrels of pitch and naphtha and coal-oil buried all
around the perimeter went off as well, the small bursting charges beneath them
spraying inflammable liquid over hundreds of square meters, vomiting the color
of hell. Wood scattered through the rubble of destroyed buildings caught fire.
Men burned too, running with their hair and uniforms ablaze. Men were running
all over the killing zone, running to the rear.
They're running
away! Minatelli thought exultantly. The lords of the Brigade were running away
from him, the stonecutter's son.
He caught up his rifle
and fired, again and again. Then, grinning, he turned to the villainous old
sweat who'd been telling him what to do.
The veteran lay on his
back, one leg crumpled under him. The bullet that killed him had punched
through his breastbone and out through his spine; the body lay in a pool of
blood turning sticky at the edges, and more ran out of the older man's mouth
and nose. Dry eyeballs looked up at the iron-colored sky; his helmet had fallen
off, and the cropped hair beneath was thin and more gray than black.
"But we won,"
he whispered to himself. His mouth filled with sick spit.
A hand clouted him on
the back of his helmet. "Face front, soljer," the corporal snarled.
Minatelli started, as if
waking from a deep sleep. "Yessir," he mumbled. His fingers trembled
as they worked the lever of his weapon.
"Happens," the
corporal went on. He bent and heaved the body closer to the wall, to clear
space on the parapet, and leaned the dead man's fallen rifle beside the
loophole. "I towt de ol' fassaro'd live for'ver, but it
happens."
"Yessir."
"I ain't no sir.
An' watch watcha shootin', boy."
* * *
Rihardo Terraza grinned
as he helped manhandle the gun forward. He could see through the firing slit
ahead of them; the gun was mounted at the very edge of the new wall, where it
met the intact section of the original city fortifications.
The Brigaderos were
trying to fall back now, but they weren't doing it in the neat lines in which
they attacked. They were all trying to get out at once—all of them who could
still walk, and many of them were carrying or dragging wounded comrades with
them. That meant a pile-up, as they scrambled over the jagged remains of the
city wall. The ones closest were only about fifty meters away, when the muzzle
of the gun showed through the letterbox hole in the inner wall. Some of them
noticed it.
PAMMM. Firing
case-shot. Everyone in the crew skipped out of the way as the gun caromed
backward and came to a halt against rope braces.
"One for Pochita,
you fastardos," Rihardo shouted, leaping back to the wheel.
Four other guns fired
down the line; the other battery at the opposite end of the breech in the city
wall opened fire at the same moment. The crowds of Brigaderos trying to get out
halted as the murderous crossfire slashed into them, while the massed rifles
hammered at their backs.
Best bitch I
ever trained, Rihardo thought, coughing in the sulfur stink of the
gunsmoke. His eyes were stinging from it too.
PAMMM.
"One for Halvaro!"
* * *
Gerrin Staenbridge gave
Bartin's shoulder a squeeze. They were waiting in the saddle, riding
thigh-to-thigh.
The younger man flashed
him a smile. Then the massive thudding detonations of the mines came; they
could see the pillars of earth and smoke, distant across the intervening
rooftops. The gates creaked, the ten-meter-high portals swinging open as men
cranked the winches. This was the river gate, the furthest south and west in
Old Residence you could get. The bulk of the anchoring redoubt loomed on their
left, and beyond it the river wall. Behind them was one of the long radial
avenues of the city, stretching in a twisting curve north and east to the great
central plaza. It was packed solid with men and dogs, four battalions of
cavalry and twenty guns.
The gates boomed against
their rests. Gerrin snapped his arm forward and down. Trumpets blared, and the
5th Descott rocked into a gallop at his heels. The gate swept by and they were
out in the open, heading west along the river road. Cold wind cuffed at his
face, and the sound of thousands of paws striking the gravel road was an
endless thudding scuff. The ragged-looking entrenchments of the Brigade siege
batteries were model-tiny ahead and to the right. And directly to the right the
plain was covered with men, marching or running or riding, a huge clot of them
around the gaping wound in the city's wall where the guns had knocked it down.
Almost to the railway gate and that was opening too. . . .
He clamped his legs
around the barrel of his dog and swung to the bounding rhythm of the gallop;
his saber beat an iron counterpoint to it, clanking against the stirrup-iron.
Distance . . . now. A touch of the rein to the neck and his dog wheeled
right and came to a halt, with the bannerman by his side and a score of
signallers and runners. The column behind him continued to snake its way out of
the gate; the ground shook under their paws, the air sounded with the clank of
their harness. Riding eight men deep, each battalion spaced at a hundred yards
on either side of two batteries of guns. His head went back and forth.
Smooth, very
smooth, he thought. Especially since there hadn't been time or space to drill for
this in particular. They'd decided to keep each battalion stationary until the
one in front was in full gallop, and that seemed to have worked. . . .
The time it took a dog
to run a kilometer and a half passed.
"Now," he
said.
Trumpets sang, and the
great bar of men and dogs came to a halt—tail-end first, as the last battalion
out of the gate stopped with their rear rank barely clear of the portals.
Another demanding call, picked up and echoed by every commander's buglers. He
turned in his saddle to see it; he was roughly in the middle of the long
column, as it snaked and undulated over the uneven surface of the road. It
moved and writhed, every man turning in place, with the commanders out in front
like a regular fringe before a belt. Spaces opened up, and the whole unit was
in platoon columns. A third signal, and they started forward at right angles to
the road, front-on to the shapeless mass of the Brigaderos force.
It looked as if the
enemy had ridden most of the way to the wall, then dismounted for the assault.
Now the great herd of riderless dogs was fouling any attempt to get the men who
hadn't been committed to face about. More harsh brassy music sounded behind
him, discordant, multiplied four times. The platoon columns shook themselves
out, sliding forward and sideways to leave the men riding in a double line
abreast toward the enemy. And . . . yes, the most difficult part. The men to
his right, near the gate, were holding their mounts in check. To his left the
outer battalions were swinging in, the whole formation slantwise to the wall
with the left wing advanced as they moved north.
Too far to see what
Kaltin was doing, as he deployed out of the railway gate to the north of the
breach. Presumably the same thing, and that was his problem, his and
Raj's. He could rely on them to do their parts, just as he could rely on Bartin
to keep the left wing moving at precisely the speed they'd planned.
The mass of Brigaderos
ahead of him was growing with shocking speed. That was the whole point, hit
them before they could recover from the shock of the disaster in the breach—and
before the vastly larger bulk of their forces could intervene.
He heeled his dog into a
slightly faster canter, to put himself in plain view. "Bannerman,
trumpeter," he said, pulling his dog up to a walking pace. "Signal dismount
and advance."
The long line did not
halt exactly in unison—that was neither possible nor necessary with a force
this size, and the command lagged unevenly as it relayed down to the companies
and platoons—but there wasn't more than thirty seconds difference between the
first man stepping off the saddle of his crouching dog and the last. There was
a complex ripple down the line as each unit took its dressing from the
standard, and the battalion commanders and bannermen adjusted to their
preplanned positions. Then the four battalions were walking forward in a staggered
double line with rifles at port arms.
The guns stopped and
turned to present their muzzles to the enemy a thousand meters away. All except
the splatguns; they were out on the left wing, insurance in case the enemy
reacted more quickly than anticipated. Metallic clanging and barked orders
sounded. A series of POUMF sounds thudded down the line, sharpening to CRACK!
behind him and to the right from the muzzle blast of the nearest guns. The
first shells hammered into the enemy. The first fire came from them; he could
hear the bullets going by overhead, not much menace even to a mounted man at
this range. Unless you were unlucky. The cannon were settling down into a
steady rhythm. Dogs milled about ahead of them, some shooting off across the
rolling flatland in panic. More and more rifle-muskets thudded from the enemy,
tiny puffs of dirty smoke. Here and there a man fell in the Civil Government
line, silent or shouting out his pain. The ranks advanced at the same brisk
walk, closing to fill in the gaps.
Eight hundred meters.
"Sound advance with volley fire by ranks," Gerrin said
quietly. Kaltin should be in place behind them, anvil to the hammer.
BAM! And nearly
fifteen hundred rifles fired in unison. The front rank checked for ten seconds,
aim and fire and eject and reload, and the rear rank walked through, on another
ten paces, stopped in their turn. BAM-BAM-BAM-BAM, an endless stuttering
crash. The front rank again. More men falling, but the disciplined rifle fire
was stabbing into the Brigaderos like giant hay knives into a pile of fodder.
He was closer to the breach in the wall now, close enough to see that it was
still jammed with men trying to retreat. The ones outside were trying too,
running across from his right to left, but there was nowhere to go. The two
sallying forces had met at the westernmost junction, facing about to put the
trapped force in a box.
"At the
double!"
* * *
The inside of the
mortar-raft was hot, thick with the choking scent of overheated metal and
burning coal. The little locomotive engine wheezed and puffed at the rear of
the enclosure, shoving the heavy box of iron forward. The chain drive-belt from
its flywheels ratcheted against the shaft across the stern, and water from the
covered paddle-wheel spattered against the board partition that separated the
engine from the gap in the raft's floor.
Commodore Lopeyz stuck
his head out of the top hatch, wondering bitterly why he'd volunteered for
this. Because everyone else seemed to be volunteering for something, he
thought dryly.
The cold air flowing
over the top of the slope-sided box was shocking after the fetid heat inside.
The wind was in his face as he went up the narrowing White River at a walking
pace. It carried the long black plume of smoke from the stack behind him, to where
the other two rafts followed in his wake. None of them was doing more than four
knots . . . but they hadn't far to go, and it was a minor miracle none of them
had broken down. The surface of the river was steel-gray, with small whitecaps
now and then as the breeze freshened. The land to the right, on the north back,
was rising; he could see little over the levee beside the stream, except the
three hundred meter tabletop of the bluffs where the Brigaderos siege battery
was located.
They were level with it
now, turning northwest with the bend in the river. The raft shuddered and
slowed under him, fighting the current that grew stronger with every meter
upstream. He dropped a few steps down the ladder and signalled to the engineer;
no use trying to talk, when the hiss of steam and roar of the furnace blended
with the sound of the paddles beating water into froth and made the inside one
bath of noise.
The engineer pulled
levers; his sweat-glistening attendants hovered over the drive-belts, the
improvised part of the arrangement. The right-hand paddle wheel went faster,
and the left-hand one slowed. Slowly, clumsily, the mortar raft began to turn
its nose in toward the bank. He climbed back up the ladder to judge the water
ahead; his hands and feet moved carefully on the greasy iron. The other craft
were copying him, and the channel was deeper on the north shore. They moved in
further, slowing, until the levee loomed ahead and nearly cut off their view of
the bluff a kilometer inland.
He signalled again,
waving his arms down the ladder. The engines groaned and hissed to silence. The
sudden absence of noise was shocking, like the cool air that funneled down
through the hatchway. The black gang leaned wheezing on their shovels, next to
the wicker coal-bins; they and the engineers were both stripped to their
trousers and bandannas, black as Zanjians with the coal-dust and glistening
with heavy sweat. So were the ships' gunners grouped around the mortar. Crewmen
swarmed out of the other hatches and the anchors splashed.
"Ready?" he
called to the gunners.
Their officer nodded.
Over the squat muzzle of the mortar was a pie-shape of iron on a hooped frame.
The gunner reached up and unfastened a bolt, and one segment of the pie fell
down, hinged on the outer curved frame. Gray daylight poured into the gloom of
the hold, and a wash of cold air that smelled of water and silty mud.
Lopeyz pushed his head
out the hatchway again. The other two rafts were anchored alongside, only ten
and thirty meters away. Wedge-shaped gaps showed in their top decks as well.
"Two thousand two
hundred," he called, estimating the distance to the enemy gun
emplacements.
He levelled his glasses;
plenty of activity up there, but only a few of the ant-sized figures were
turning towards the river. Lopeyz grinned to himself. The Brigaderos had
cleverly dug their guns into the loess soil, presenting impossible targets for
the Civil Government artillery in Old Residence. They had also made it
impossible to move the big smoothbores in a time of less than hours.
"Fwego."
He opened his mouth and jammed his palms against his ears.
SHUMP.
The raft bobbed under
him, and ripples floated away from it in a near-perfect circle. Hot air
snatched at his three-cornered hat. Smoke billowed through the hold, sending
men coughing and gasping. More swept across the upper deck in the wake of the
man-high oblong of orange fire that belched out of the mortar's 20cm tube. He
blinked against the smoke and watched the blurred dot of the forty-kilo mortar
shell rise, hesitate and fall. It plunged into the riverward slope of the
bluffs. A second later earth gouted up in a huge plume that drifted and fell in
a rain of finely divided dirt. These shells had a hardened tip made by casting
them in a water-cooled mould, and the fuses were set for a delay after impact.
"Up three, increase
charge one bag," he shouted down past his feet into the hold.
The crew spun the
elevating screw and the stubby barrel of the mortar rose. The loader wrapped
another donut of powder onto the perforated brass tube at the base of the
shell, and three men lifted it into the muzzle.
SHUMP.
This time it arched over
the lip of the bluff, into the flat area behind the enemy guns. Lopeyz raised
his binoculars and grinned like a downdragger. Men were spilling over the edge
of the bluffs, some picking their way down the steep brush-grown slopes, others
plunging in their haste. Still more were running eastward, down the gentler
slope of the bluff to the rear, where the Brigaderos had shaped the earth into
a rough roadway. He could hear shouting; it must be very loud, to carry this
far—and his ears were ringing from engine-noise and the firing of the mortar.
"Correct left
one," he said. The crew turned the iron traversing screw one full
revolution, and the mortar barrel moved slightly to the left.
"Fwego."
SHUMP.
Right into the gun
positions along the lip of the bluff facing Old Residence.
"Fire for
effect!" he barked. The other rafts cut loose as well.
SHUMP. SHUMP.
SHUMP. A pause. SHUMP. SHUMP. SHUMP. Ragged clouds of smoke drifted upriver
with the breeze. The edge of the bluff began to come apart under the hammer of
the shells.
* * *
The Brigaderos rifles
went into the cart with a clatter. Rifleman Minatelli straightened with a groan
and rubbed his back; it had been a long day. The sun was setting behind
the ruined, gutted Brigaderos position on the bluff to the west, tinging it
with blood—which was appropriate. The air was getting chilly, but it still
smelled the way he was learning went with violent death; like a latrine, mixed
with a butcher's shop where the offal hasn't been cleaned away properly. A sour
residue of gunpowder mixed with it all. It wasn't quite so bad here in the open
fields beyond the breach in the wall, where the wind blew. Some distance off, a
company of cavalry sat their saddles, rifles across the pommel and eyes alert.
A wail came up from the
field nearby. The Brigade had offered a truce in return for permission to
remove their wounded and dead. That had turned out to mean friends and often
family coming to look through the bodies when the Civil Government troops had
finished stripping them of arms and usable equipment. Or bits of bodies,
sometimes. Minatelli swallowed and hitched the bandanna up over his nose. A
little further off big four-wheeled farm wagons piled with dead were creaking
back to the enemy lines. The priests said dead bodies bred disease; Messer Raj
was pious that way, and the word was he was happy to see the Brigaderos taking
them off for burial.
One of the women keening
over a body looked his way. "Why?" she shouted at him. "What did
we ever do to you? Why did you come here?" She spoke accented Spanjol, but
probably didn't expect him to understand.
The young private pulled
down his bandanna. "I was born here, you stupid bitch," he growled,
and turned away.
The other members of his
squad laughed. There were six all told of the eight who'd started the day;
Gharsia dead, and one man with the Sisters, his collarbone broken by a bullet.
They moved on, leading the two-ox team, and stopped by another clump of bodies.
These had been ripped by canister, and the smell was stronger. Minatelli let
his eyes slide out of focus; it wasn't that he couldn't watch, just that it was
better not to. He bent to begin picking up the rifles.
"Fuckin' Spirit!"
one of his comrades said. It was the squad corporal, Ferhanzo.
"Lookit!"
Thumbnail-sized silver
coins spilled from a leather wallet the dead Brigadero had had on his waist
belt. Whistles and groans sounded.
"Best yet,"
the corporal said, pouring the money back into the wallet and snapping it shut.
"Here."
He tossed it to
Minatelli, who stuffed it into a pocket. The young Old Residencer was the best
of them at arithmetic, so he was holding the cash for all of them. They're
treating me different, he thought.
It hit him again. I
got through it! He'd been scared—terrified—but he hadn't fucked up. He was
a veteran now.
That made him grin; it
also made him more conscious of what was at his feet. That was a mass of cold
intestines, coiled like lumpy rope and already turning gray. Insects were
walking over it in a disciplined column, carrying bits off to their nest,
snapper-ants with eight legs and as long as the first joint of his thumb. He
retched and swallowed convulsively.
"Hey, yu shouldda
been ad Sandoral," one of the other men said slyly. "Hot nuff tu fry
'n egg. Dem wogs, dey get all black 'n swole up real fast, 'n den dey pops lika
grape when yu—"
Minatelli retched again.
The corporal scowled. "Yu shut yor arsemout'," he said. "Kid's
all right. Nobody tole yu t' stop workin'."
The platoon sergeant
came by. "Yor relieved," he said. "Dem pussy militia gonna take
over. We all get day's leave."
" 'Bout time,"
the squad corporal said.
The noncom had
volunteered his squad for very practical reasons; he finished cutting the
thumb-ring off the hand of the corpse at his feet before he straightened.
"C'mon, boys, we'll
git a drink 'n a hoor," the corporal said.
"I, uh, just want
some sleep," Minatelli said.
The front of his uniform
was spattered with blood and other fluids from the bodies he'd been handling.
He should be hungry, they'd had only bread and sausage at noon, but right now
the thought of food set up queasy tremors in his gut. A drink, though . . . And
the thought of a woman had a sudden raw attractiveness. It was powerful enough
to mute the memory of the day gone by.
The corporal put an arm
around his shoulders. "Nu, best thing for yu," he said. "Wash up
first—the workin' girls got their standards."
* * *
The Priest of the
Residential Parish entered the door at the foot of the long room as if he were
walking to the great altar in the cathedron, not answering a summons sent with
armed men. His cloth-of-gold robes rustled stiffly, and the staff in his hand
thumped with graceful regularity as he walked toward the table at the other end
of the chamber. The inner wall was to his left, a huge fireplace with a grate
of burning coals; to his right were windows, closed against the chill of night.
He halted before the table that spanned the upper end of the room and raised
his gloved hand in blessing.
Got to admire his nerve,
Raj thought. He has balls, this one.
"Why have you
brought me here, my daughter?" Paratier said. "A great service of
thanksgiving for the victory of the Civil Government and the army of Holy
Federation Church is in preparation."
He stood before the
middle of the long table. Behind it sat Suzette, flanked by scribes and a
herald; Raj was at one comer, his arms crossed. The walls of the room were
lined with troopers of the 5th Descott, standing at motionless parade rest with
fixed bayonets. Evening had fallen, and the lamps were lit; the fireplace on
the interior wall gave their bright kerosene light a smokey coal-ember
undertone on the polished black-and-white marble of the floor and the carved
plaster of the ceiling. The Priest looked sternly at Suzette, then around for
the seat that protocol said should have been waiting for him. Raj admired his
calm assumption of innocence.
"The Spirit of Man
of the Stars was with us this day," Suzette said softly. "Its will
was done—but not yours, Your Holiness."
"Heneralissimo Whitehall—"
the Priest began, in a voice as smooth as old oiled wood.
"Lady Whitehall is
acting in her capacity as civil legate here," Raj said tonelessly. "I
am merely a witness. Please address yourself to her."
Spirit, he thought. He
had known good priests, holy men—the Hillchapel chaplain when he was a boy, and
a goodly number of military clerics since. Priest-doctors and Renunciates; even
some monks of the scholarly orders, in East Residence.
Paratier, however . . .
there seemed to be something about promotion beyond Sysup that acted as a
filter mechanism. Perhaps those with a genuine vocation didn't want to
rise that high and become ecclesiastical bureaucrats.
"Bring in the first
witness," Suzette said.
A door opened, on the
table side of the wall beyond the fireplace. A man in the soiled remnant of
priestly vestments came through in a wheeled chair, pushed by more soldiers.
His head rolled on his shoulders, and he wept silently into the stubble of his
beard.
"What is
this?" Paratier boomed indignantly. "This is a priest of Holy
Federation Church! Who is responsible for this mistreatment, abominable to the
Spirit?"
"I and officers
under my direction," Suzette said. She lifted a cigarette in a long holder
of sauroid ivory. "He was apprehended attempting to leave the city and
make contact with the barbarian generals. The ciphered documents he carried and
his confession are entered in evidence. Clerk, read the documents."
One of the men sitting
beside Suzette cleared his throat, opened a leather-bound folder, and produced
the tattered message and several pages of notes in a copperplate hand.
"To His Mightiness,
General of the Brigade, Lord of Men, Ingreid Manfrond, from the Priest of the
Residential Parish, Paratier, servant of the servants of the Spirit of Man,
greetings.
"Lord of Men, we
implore you to deliver us from the hand of the tyrant and servant of tyrants
Whitehall, and to forgive and spare this city, the crown of your domains.
"In earnest of our
good faith and loyalty, we pledge to open to you the east gate of Old Residence
and admit your troops, on a day of your choosing to be determined by you and
Our representative. This man is in my confidence and bears a signet—"
"Produce the
ring," Suzette added.
A box was opened; inside
was a ring of plain gold, set with a circuit chip.
"—which is the mark
of my intentions. With Us in Our determination to end the suffering and
bloodshed of Our people are the following noble lords—"
Paratier thumped his
staff on the marble flags. "Silence!" he said, his aged voice putting
out an astonishing volume. "How dare you, adulteress, accuse—"
"The prisoner will
address the court with respect or he will be flogged," Suzette said
flatly.
Paratier stopped in
mid-sentence, looking into her eyes. After a moment he leaned on his staff.
Suzette turned her gaze to the man in the wheeled chair.
"Does the witness
confirm the documents?"
"Yes, oh,
yes," the priest whispered. "Oh, please . . . don't, oh please."
"Take him
away," Suzette said. "Prisoner, do you have anything to say?"
"Canon law forbids
the judicial torture of ordained clerics," Paratier snapped. After a
moment he added formally: "Most Excellent and Illustrious Lady."
"Treason is tried
under the authority of the Chair, and witnesses in such cases may be put to the
question," Suzette pointed out.
"This is Old
Residence; no law supersedes that of Holy Federation Church within these walls.
Certainly not the fiat of the Governors!"
"Let the record
show," Suzette said coldly, "that the prisoner is warned that if he
speaks treason again—by denying the authority of the Sole Rightful Autocrat and
Mighty Sovereign Lord Barholm Clerett, Viceregent of the Spirit of Man of the
Stars upon Earth—he will be flogged and his sentence increased."
Paratier opened his
mouth and fell silent again. "Does the prisoner deny the charges?"
"I do. The
documents are forged. A man under torture will say whatever will spare him
pain."
Suzette nodded.
"However, torture was not necessary for your other accomplices, Your
Holiness. Bring them in."
Seven men filed in
through the door, their expressions hangdog. A light sheen of sweat broke out
on Paratier's face as he recognized them; Fidelio Enrike, Vihtorio Azaiglio,
the commander of the Priest's Guard . . .
"Let the record
show the confessions of these men were read," she said. "Prisoner,
you are found guilty of treasonable conspiracy with the enemies of the Civil
Government of Holy Federation. The punishment is death."
Paratier's lips
whitened, and his parchment-skinned hand clenched on the staff. Raj stood and
moved to Suzette's side.
"But," she
went on, "on the advice of the Heneralissimo Supremo this court
will temper the law with mercy."
A pair of priests came
forward; these were easterners themselves, military chaplains attached to the
Expeditionary Force.
One carried a plain robe
of white wool. The other bore a copy of the Canonical Handbooks, a thick book
bound in black leather and edged with steel.
"You are to be
spared on condition that you immediately take the oath of a brother in the
Order of Data Entrists," she said. "From here you will be taken to
the mother-house of your Order in East Residence. There you may spend your
remaining years in contemplation of your sins."
The Data Entrists were
devoted to silent prayer, and under a strict rule of noncommunication.
Paratier threw down his
staff violently. "This is Anne Clerett's doing," he hissed.
For the first time since
the Priest entered the room, Suzette's face showed an expression; surprise.
"The Consort's doing?" she said.
"Of course,"
the old man said bitterly. "She and her tame Arch-Sysup Hierarch were
trying to foist the absurd doctrine of the Unified Code on Holy Federation
Church. As opposed to the true orthodox position, that the Interface
with humanity is an autonomous subroutine only notionally subsumed in the
Spirit Itself."
"You are in error,
Brother Paratier," Suzette said helplessly, shaking her head. To the
priests who stood on either side of him: "Proceed."
When the new-made monk
had stalked out between his guards, she turned to the six magnates.
"As agreed, your
lives are spared in return for your testimony." She paused. "Your
property and persons are forfeit to the State, as are those of your immediate
families. Clerk, announce the sentences."
The room filled with
silence as the prisoners were herded out; some defiant, others stunned or
weeping. When the commander of the detachment had marched his men out, Raj
rested one thigh on the table beside his wife and laid a hand on her head,
stroking the short black hair, fine as silk.
"Thank you,"
he said. "Of all my Companions, the best."
Suzette rose to her
feet, so suddenly that the heavy chair clattered over behind her. She flung her
arms around Raj. Startled, he clasped her in turn, feeling the slight tremors
through her shoulders. She spoke in a fierce whisper, her face pressed to his
neck:
"Anything for you,
my love. Anything."
"Well, now we can
see what they've been building," Raj said. "You know, I'd like to get
ahold of the man over there who's been coming up with these clever ideas."
"Whh . . . what
would you do to him?" the new Alcalle of Old Residence said. He shivered
slightly in the breeze; it was another bright cold day, but the wind was still
raw from the last week of drizzle.
"Give him a
job," Raj replied. "I can use a man that clever."
He bent to look through
the tripod-mounted heavy binoculars. The . . . whatever-it-was had just crept
out of the Brigade camp, the one that straddled the local railway leading
north. In normal times the line carried coal from the mines thirty kilometers
to the north. He'd ordered those closed—the pumps disassembled and the shafts
flooded—before the enemy arrived, although there had been some coal stacked on
the surface. Now the enemy had come up with a completely different use . . .
The railroad battery was
mounted on the wheels of several rail cars. They had been bolted together with
heavy timbers, and more laid as a deck. On that went three forward-facing
smoothbore fortress guns, firing twenty kilo shot. Over the guns in front was a
sloping casement; he estimated the iron facing was at least two hundred
millimeters, backed by thick beams. The sides and top were covered in hexagonal
iron plates, probably taken from the gun-rafts on the south shore of the lake.
The whole assemblage was too wide to be stable on the one and a half meter
gauge of the railroad, so hinged booms extended from either side of the mass.
They rested on wheeled outriggers made from farm wagons, but reinforced and
provided with iron shields to the front. The battery was pushed by a single
locomotive, itself protected by the mass of wood and iron ahead of it.
"What do they
intend to do with it?" Gerrin Staenbridge asked.
observe, Center said.
The scene before him
jumped, with reality showing through as a ghostly shadow. At five hundred
meters the battery stopped its slow forward crawl. The slotted ports on the
forward face opened, and the muzzles of the fortress guns showed through. Flame
and smoke bellowed out, and solid shot hammered into the north face of the
wall, into the gate towers, at point-blank range.
Then darkness fell
across the vision, as the sun descended. The Brigaderos crew scrambled to
unchock the wheels of the battery, and it crept laboriously backward as the
straining engine tugged it safely within the gates of the earth-bermed camp.
Raj nodded. "Bring
it up to close range," he said. "Batter the fortifications during the
day, withdraw it at night."
The Brigaderos had
gotten very nervous about leaving their camps during the hours of darkness,
with the Skinners roaming free.
"Hmmm."
Grammeck Dinnalsyn considered it. "Shall I start an interior facing
wall?"
"No," Raj
said, smiling slightly. "With the guns at close range, they could cover
any assault through a breach—batter down anything we threw up, and give close
support to the storming party. In fact, with the outer wall down they'd command
the whole city down to the harbor; it's all downhill from here."
"Sir." Cabot
Clerett stepped forward. "Sir, I'll assemble a forlorn hope. With heavy
fire support from the walls, we should be able to reach the casement with
satchel charges before it gets to close range."
The young major glanced
aside at Suzette. The rest of the officers were glancing at him; that
was a suicide mission if they'd ever heard one.
"No, Major
Clerett," Raj said, his smile broadening. "I don't think I'll give
the Sovereign Mighty Lord cause to remove me from my command just yet." By
killing his heir went unspoken.
His smile grew broader
still, then turned into a chuckle. The Companions and dignitaries stared in
horrified amazement as it burst into a full-throated guffaw. Cabot Clerett went
white around the lips.
"Sir—" he
began.
Raj waved him to
silence. "Sorry, major—I'm not laughing at you. At the enemy, rather;
whoever came up with this idea is really quite clever. But it's a young man, or
I miss my guess. Colonel Dinnalsyn, how many field guns do we have within
range?"
"Twelve, mi
heneral," the artilleryman said. His narrow face began to show a smile
of its own, suspecting a pleasant surprise. "But they won't do much good
against that armor."
"I don't think so
either," Raj said, still chuckling. "So we'll wait . . . yes."
In an eerie replay of
Center's vision, the battery halted at five hundred meters from the north gate.
Some of the civilians on the tower edged backward unconsciously as the crew
edged down behind the shields rigged to the booms and began hammering heavy
wedges behind the wheels. Others took out precut beams and used them to brace
the casement itself against the surface of the roadbed; that would spread the
recoil force and make the battery less likely to derail its wheels. The Brigaderos
worked rapidly, shoulders hunched against the knowledge that they were within
small-arms range of the defenses—and that while the iron shields on the boom
and outrigger might protect them from rifle bullets, they would do nothing if
shrapnel burst overhead.
Hammers sounded on wood
and iron, then were tossed aside as the soldiers completed their tasks and dove
gratefully back into the shelter of the casement. The previous attempts to
force a battery near the walls of Old Residence had given the Brigaderos a
healthy respect for the artillery of the Expeditionary Force.
Raj tapped Dinnalsyn on
the shoulder with his fist. "Now, Colonel, if you'll have your guns
concentrate on the roadbed, just behind that Brigadero toy—"
Dinnalsyn began to laugh
as well. After a moment, the rest of the Companions joined in, whooping and
slapping each other on the back; Suzette's silvery mirth formed a counterpoint
to the deep male sound. Only the civilians still stared in bewilderment and
fear. Cabot Clerett was not laughing either, although there was an angry
comprehension in his eyes.
* * *
POUMPF.
The field-gun mounted on
the tower strobed a turnip-shaped tongue of flame into the darkness. The crack
of the shell exploding over the stranded railroad casement was much
smaller, a blink of reddish-orange fire. Like a lightning-bolt, it gave an
eyeblink vision of what lay below. The casement itself was undamaged save for
thousands of bright scratches in the heavy gray iron of its armor. The
locomotive was still on the tracks, although a lucky shell had knocked the
stack off the vertical boiler. Black smoke still trickled out of the stump, but
without the pipe to provide draught over the firebox, there was no way the
engine could pull enough air over the firebox to raise steam.
Not that steam would
have done any good. For fifty meters back from the locomotive, the tracks were
cratered and twisted, the wooden rails and ties smashed to kindling and the
embankment churned as if by giant moles.
When the second shell
burst over them, the soldiers trying to repair the track under cover of
darkness bolted for the rear, throwing down their tools and running for the
safety of the camp. Bodies and body-parts showed how well that had worked
before, in daylight—and since the guns on the towers of the city wall were
already sighted in, the darkness was no shield. No shield to anyone but the
Skinners lurking all around; tonight the price of ears had been raised to a gold
piece each.
A carbide searchlight
flicked on from the main gate, bathing the casement and the men around it. A
thousand Brigaderos dragoons were grouped there, trying to protect the casement
and the gunners within from the savages roaming the night. The only way to do
that was to bunch tightly . . . which made them a perfect target now, as the
guns opened up with a five-shell stonk and two battalions of infantry volleyed
from the towers and wall. The dragoons peeled away from the casement, at first
a few men crawling backward from the rear ranks or running crouched over, then
whole sections of the regiment throwing down their weapons and pelting for the
rear. Fire raked them; it would have been safer to wait in whatever cover they
could claw from the ground, but men in panic fear will run straight into the
jaws of death. Even though death was the fear that drove them.
By the time the
searchlight had been shot out by a Brigadero luckier or more skillful than the
rest, only the regiment's commander and a small group around him remained. He
turned and began to walk stolidly away, the banner flapping at his side. They
disappeared into the darkness; a few seconds later the doors of the casement
swung open, and the gunners dropped to the ground in a tight clump. They hesitated
for a few seconds, then began running north after the retreating colonel.
Half a minute later
firing erupted from the darkness itself, the long muzzle-flashes of Skinner
rifles lancing out from positions along the embankment. A screeching followed,
like saws biting through rock, a flurry of lighter gunshots from Brigaderos
rifle-muskets and pistols. Then only screaming, diminishing until it was a
single man sobbing in agony. Silence fell.
"Sir," Cabot
Clerett said stiffly, bracing to attention.
Only he and Suzette and
Raj remained on the parapet, beside the crews of the two guns and their
commander. The parapet was darkened against the risk of enemy snipers, lit by
the pale light of a one-quarter Miniluna.
"Sir, I request
permission to destroy the enemy casement," Cabot went on, his voice as
stiffly mechanical as the compressed-air automatons in the Audience Hall in
East Residence.
"By all means,
Major Clerett," Raj said.
He had been leaning both
elbows on one of the crenellations of the parapet. When he straightened up, the
moon turned his face to shadow under the helmet brim, all but the gray eyes
that caught a fragment of the light. The younger man could see nothing but cold
appraisal in them. Imagination painted a sneer beneath.
"It wouldn't do to
let them reoccupy it tomorrow," Raj said. "They did enough damage to
the gates as it was."
Suzette moved forward.
"I'm sure Cabot will do a splendid job," she said, smiling at him.
Cabot Clerett clicked
heels and inclined his head. "Messa."
And nobody will even
notice, he thought savagely, as he clattered down the tower stairs to the
guardhouse at the base. It'll be the cherry on the cake of another brilliant
Whitehall stratagem. Nobody but Suzette will realize what I did.
Two Skinners were
standing on top of the casement when he arrived at the head of a company of the
2nd Life Guards. They watched silently, leaning on their long rifles, as he lit
the rag wrapped around the neck of a wine bottle full of coal oil and tossed it
through the open hatch. Another followed, and yellow flame began to lick
through the hatchway and the gunports and observation slits.
"Better get out of
the way, sir," Senior Captain Fikaros said.
Cabot nodded silently;
they rode back to the gate. Men were already at work on it, cutting out the
cracked timbers and mortizing in fresh, nailing and hammering. He stood and
watched silently as the casement burned; the timbers of its frame were fully
involved now, and the iron was beginning to glow a ruddy color around the holes
were flame pulsed with a rhythm like a great beast breathing. The munitions
must have been stored in metal-clad boxes, probably water-jacketed, because it
was fifteen minutes before the first explosion. A few of the iron plates flew
free, and the heavy casement jumped as fire jetted out of every opening. Then
the whole vehicle disappeared in a globe of orange-red fire that left
afterimages blinking across his retinas for minutes. The shock wave pushed at
him, sending him staggering against the rough surface of the gate. Men within
shouted in alarm as the tall leaves of the doors rattled against their loosened
hinges.
"Hope those
Skinners had enough sense to get off," Fikaros said. He laughed. "A
tidy end to a tidy operation. I wonder how many more siege guns the enemy
has?"
"Enough,"
Cabot Clerett said tonelessly. "Return the men to quarters, Captain."
"Sir. Care for a
drink in the mess, Major?"
"For a start,
Captain."
* * *
"Spirit damn them,"
Raj said with quiet viciousness. "I need those
reinforcements."
The windows were open,
to catch the first air of the early spring afternoon. It was still a little
chill, but on a sunny day no more than made a jacket comfortable. The air
smelled cleaner than usual in a city; coal was running short, even for
cooking-fires.
"How many does that
make?" Gerrin Staenbridge said. "Landings in the Crown as a
whole."
Jorg Menyez shuffled
papers. "Five regular infantry battalions," he said. "Ordinary
line units, suitable enough for garrison work. And seven battalions of regular
cavalry. The 10th Residence, 9th and 11th Descott Dragoons, 27th and 31st Diva
Valley Rangers, the 3rd Novy Haifa, and the 14th Komar. Plus about six
batteries of artillery, say twenty to twenty-four guns."
"Good troops,"
Raj said. "And as much use in the Crown as they would be in bloody East
Residence—or Al Kebir, for that matter."
"You've got plenary
authority as Theatre Commander," Gerrin pointed out.
Raj indicated a pile of
letters, his correspondence with the commanding officers of the reinforcements.
His teeth showed slightly in a feral smile of tightly-held rage.
"I've got power of
life and death over the whole Western Territories—in theory," he said.
"Half of them didn't even reply. The other half said they can't get into a
city surrounded by a hundred thousand troops."
"Odd, since we've
no problem getting small shipping in every night," Staenbridge said.
Antin M'lewis nodded.
"Ser," he said. "Me boys could git hunnerts in by land, any
night ye name. Them barbs is stickin' real close-loik ter their walls."
"The fix is
in," Dinnalsyn said.
Raj nodded.
"Informally, I've had word from Administrator Historomo. The battalion
commanders are under word-of-mouth instruction from the Chair not to place
themselves under my orders. They're not under anyone's orders, really,
although for most purposes they seem to be doing what Historomo says. He's got
them split up in penny packets doing garrison work his militia and gendarmes
could handle just as well."
He swore again,
bitterly. "With another four thousand cavalry I could end this
bloody war before wheat harvest." That would be in four months.
"Without them, it may take years."
"The Brigaderos are
in pretty poor shape," Staenbridge said judiciously. "They must have
lost twenty thousand men in those attacks over the winter—probably thirty
thousand all told, if you count the ones rendered unfit-for-service."
"And they're losing
hundreds every week to general wastage," Menyez said. "They've had a
visit from Corporal Forbus."
M'lewis nodded, and
there was a general slight wince. Cholera in a winter camp was a nightmare.
"Them camps is smellin' high," he said. "An' their dogs is in
purly pit'ful shape."
"They still
outnumber us five to one," Raj said. "We're losing men too, to
snipers and harassing attacks. Not as many, but we didn't have as many to start
with. Jorg, what about the militia?"
"Limited usefulness
only, mi heneral," Menyez said. "The full-time battalions can
hold a secure fortified position with no flanks, but I wouldn't ask more of
them. The part-timers aren't even up to that. Local recruits in our regular
infantry units have settled in splendidly . . . but that's largely because we
took only the best and in small numbers."
Raj nodded.
"Where's Clerett?" he asked.
"Ah . . ."
someone coughed. "He was at luncheon with Lady Whitehall and some of his
officers, I think."
"Well, get him
here,"
He paced like a caged
cat until the younger man arrived. When he did, Raj kept his face carefully
neutral.
"Sir." Clerett
saluted with lazy precision.
"Major," Raj
replied. He indicated the map boards with a jerk of his head. "We were
going over the general position, now that winter is coming to an end."
Cabot looked at the
maps. "Stalemate," he said succinctly.
"Correct," Raj
replied. He's no fool, and he's learned a great deal, he thought
carefully. Judging a man you disliked was a hard task, calling for mental
discipline. "We are now considering how to break it. Specifically, we need
the four thousand cavalry currently sitting in the Crown."
"With their thumbs
up their bums and their wits nowhere," Gerrin Staenbridge added.
Cabot Clerett's face was
coolly unreadable. He has learned, Raj thought.
"Sir?" the
younger man prompted.
Raj returned to his
chair and sat, kicking aside the scabbard of his saber with a slight
unconscious movement of his left foot. He paused to light a cigarette, drawing
the harsh smoke into his lungs, then pulled out a heavy envelope from the same
inner pocket that had held the battered platinum case.
"Under my
proconsular authority, I'm promoting you to Colonel." He held out the
papers; Clerett took them and turned the sealed envelope over in his hands.
A pro forma murmur
of congratulations went around the table. Cabot Clerett bowed his head slightly
in formal acknowledgement. The promotion meant less to the Governor's nephew
than to a career officer, of course.
"I'm also detaching
you from command of the Life Guards. You will proceed to Lion City immediately,
and take command of the forces listed in your orders—essentially, all the
cavalry and field-guns in the Crown. Pull them together, put them through their
paces for a week or so, improvise a staff. Then move them out; the Brigade
hinterlands have been pretty well stripped of troops, so there shouldn't be
much in your way. Use your discretion, but get those men and dogs near here as
quickly as possible. Then communicate with me; we'll use the river-barges, slip
the troops in at night."
"Sir." Cabot
smiled, a slow grin. A major independent command . . . and given because the
reinforcing units would obey him. Since he was the heir, they'd better.
"Sir, do you think it advisable to trap another four thousand men here
behind the walls?"
"I do," Raj
said dryly.
The militia and the
regular infantry between them could hold the city walls against anything but an
all-out attack. With fourteen thousand Civil Government cavalry, he could take
the mounted units out and use them as a mobile hammer to beat the enemy to dust
against the anvil of the fortified city.
Cabot tucked the
unopened envelope into the inner pocket of his uniform jacket.
"I'm to proceed to
Lion City, mobilize and concentrate the cavalry and guns, form them into a
field force, and rejoin the main Expeditionary Force, using my discretion as to
the means and place?" he said.
"Correct,
colonel."
"Immediately?"
"As soon as
possible."
"I believe I'll be
able to proceed tonight," Cabot said cheerfully. "If you'll excuse
me, sir? I have some goodbyes."
Raj ground out the
cigarette savagely as the Governor's nephew left the room.
"Was that
altogether wise?" Gerrin murmured.
"Perhaps not,"
Raj ground out. "But it's the only bloody thing I could think of." He
looked around. "Now let's get on with the planning, shall we?"
* * *
"Glad to see you
again, Ludwig," Raj said.
Ludwig Bellamy grinned.
The expression was not as boyish as it had been four months ago. His face had
thinned down, not starved but drawn closer to the strong bones.
"Glad to be back, mi
heneral," he said.
They turned their dogs
and rode inward from the gate where the last of the 2nd Cruisers was entering;
it was pitch-black, overcast and with no moon. Dim light came from the lanterns
on the gate towers above, and from shuttered lanterns in the hands of some of
the officers. The heavy portals boomed shut behind them, and the locking bars
shot home in their brackets with an iron clanking.
"Captain M'lewis
did excellent work getting us past the enemy pickets," Ludwig went on.
"Warn't hardly nao
problem," M'lewis said. "Them barbs ain't stirrin' by noight."
"We could smell
them," Ludwig said. "Although what they've got left to crap, I don't
know."
Raj rode in silence for
a few moments. An occasional sliver of light gleamed from a second-story
window, as some householder cracked a shutter to check what was going by
outside. The dogs' paws beat on the pavement, a scud-thump sound, in
time with the creak of harness among his escort. Bellamy's men had theirs
stuffed with rags to muffle noise. A mount sneezed and shook its head with a
jingle of bridle irons.
"The railroad's
wrecked, then?" he said at last.
"They're repairing
segments with plain wood rails," Ludwig said; pride showed in his voice.
"And hauling trains with oxen. The whole area's up in arms, peasant revolt
and famine, with three or four regiments beating the bush for insurectos. We
swung north, and they're trying to run wagon trains from the Padan River down
to the camps here. Also we saw troops heading north, toward the frontier; the
peasants gave us rumors about Guard and Stalwart raiding, and pirates along the
coast."
Raj nodded.
"Scavengers around a dying bull," he said. "Commodore Lopeyz has
sunk three corsairs in the last month, found them hanging about just over the
horizon." One hand indicated the delta of the White River to their left.
"What with one thing and another, I think the enemy will be forced to make
a move soon."
"How's the supply
situation, sir?"
"Not bad, but
getting worse. We've enough to keep the men and dogs on full rations for now,
although the civilians are being shorted. No famine, though."
Apart from the odd body
found dead in a doorway in the morning, but that happened in any city, under
siege or not.
"What'll they
do?"
"I'm not sure . . .
but they'll do something. Soon."
* * *
"No!" Ingreid
Manfrond said, sweeping the map aside.
His eyes were bloodshot
as he glared at the other Brigade commanders.
"Lord of Men—"
Teodore Welf began.
"Shut up, you
puppy!" Ingreid roared. "You lost me twenty thousand men with your
last bright idea."
Teodore stepped back
from the table, clicked heels—his armor clanked too—and gave a stiff bow before
leaving. Ingreid stared after him; it was a breach of protocol to leave the
General's presence before permission was granted. Most of the other officers
looked elaborately elsewhere; a few looked calculating, wondering if the
triumvirate was breaking up. The weak spring sunlight came through the tentflap
with a gust of air, ruffling the maps on the table. The sour smell of the camp
was worse, men with runny guts and dogs too.
"Your
Mightiness," Howyrd Carstens said, "he was right this time. We've got
to deal with this new army." His thick calloused thumb swept over to the
Crown, then up the peninsula from Lion City.
"They're over the
Waladavir," he said. "Our arse is hanging in the breeze like a
bumboy's, and if he heads southwest and cuts us off from the Padan valley we're
fucked—how many men are dismounted already because we can't bait their
dogs?"
"You think I should
send Welf off, with his mother's milk still wet on his lips?" Ingreid
said. "Give him fifteen regiments?"
His voice was no longer
a roar, but still hoarse with anger. He snapped his fingers, and a servant came
forward with wine. It was too early in the day . . . but he needed it. The raw
chill of this damned winter had gotten into his bones.
I'm not sixty yet, he
thought. I can out-ride and out-fight any of them. But the price kept going up
every year.
Carstens shook his head.
"Whoever you want," he said. "Send me, or go yourself. Take
twenty thousand men, the ones with the best dogs and the fewest troopers down
sick. That'll still leave us with seventy thousand fit for service here, more
than enough to blockade the city. Stamp on this little Civvie column—there
can't be more than four regiments' worth. Then come back here."
Ingreid shook his head.
"I'm not splitting our forces," he said. "I'm through
underestimating Whitehall, Spirit of Man of This Earth curse him. What we'll do
is—"
He began giving his
orders, pointing with a stubby finger now and then.
Carstens hawked and spat
on the ground when he was finished. "Might work," he said.
"Anyway, you're the General."
Ingreid was conscious of
their eyes on him. A proper General led the warriors of the Brigade to victory.
So far he'd lost two-score regiments in battle, and half as many again to sickness.
It wasn't a distinguished record . . . and his grip on the Seat was still new
and uncertain.
"I am the
General," he said. "And I'll have Whitehall's skull for a drinking
cup before the first wheat's reaped this year."
"He's up to something,"
Raj said. The setting sun glittered red on the lancepoints of a regiment of
Brigaderos cuirassiers moving at the edge of sight. "Something fairly
substantial."
Once more they were
gathered on one of the north gate towers; Suzette looking a little pale from
the lingering aftermath of influenza and some woman's problem she wouldn't tell
him about, curled up under a mound of furs.
"Movin'
troops," M'lewis added, nodding. Parties of his Scouts were out every
night, collecting information and the ear-bounty. "Looks loik back 'n
forth, though."
Gerrin and Ludwig
Bellamy bent over the map table. "Well," the older man said
thoughtfully, "Ingreid's done bloody silly things before. Hmmm . . . moved
about ten thousand men from the south bank of the river to the north, and none
of them have been moved back."
"Ingreid's trying
hard to be clever," Raj said absently, tapping his jaw with a thumb.
"He's going to do something—no way of hiding that—but he doesn't want us
to know where."
"All-out
assault?" Ludwig Bellamy said.
"Possibly. That
would cost him, but we can't be strong enough all along scores of kilometers of
wall. With his numbers, he could feint quite heavily and then hit us with the
rest of it somewhere else."
A crackle of tension
went through the officers, like dogs sniffing the spring air and bristling. Raj
looked out again at the enemy camps; blocks of men and banners were moving,
tiny with the distance.
observe, Center said.
The vision was a map,
with counters to represent troops and arrows for their movements.
Are you sure? Raj
thought.
probability 82% ±5, Center replied. examine the movements of artillery.
"Ah," Raj said
aloud. "He's moving the men around, but the guns have been
going in only one direction."
The other men were
silent for an instant. "Foolish of him," Staenbridge said.
Ludwig nodded. "I
think he's short of draught oxen," he said. "Probably they've been
eating them. Shortsighted."
"Then here's what
we'll do," Raj said. "Jorg, select the best eleven battalions of your
infantry, and hold them in readiness down by the river docks. You'll command.
Move the rest up here to the northern sector. Gerrin, I want you here with me.
Ludwig, you'll take the armored cars and all the cavalry except the 5th and
7th—"
When he finished, there
was silence for a long moment.
"That's rather
risky, isn't it?" Gerrin said carefully. "I think it's fairly certain
we could stop Ingreid head-on."
Raj smiled grimly. What's
that toast? he asked Center: it was something from one of the endless
historical scenarios his guardian ran for him.
"A toast,
messers," he said, raising his cup. "He fears his fate too much, and
his desserts are small, who will not put it to the touch—to win or lose it
all."
* * *
"Where're we going,
Corporal?" rifleman Minatelli murmured.
The 24th Valencia were
tramping down the cobblestoned streets toward the harbor in the late-night
chill. They were still blinking with sleepiness, despite a hurried breakfast in
their billets. Men with torches or lanterns stood at the streetcorners,
directing the flow. It was dark despite the stars and moons, and he moved
carefully to avoid treading on the bootheels of the man in front. The cold
silty smell of the river estuary was strong, underneath the scent of wool
uniforms and men. Occasionally a window would open a crack as the folk inside
peered out at the noise below. Trapped and helpless and wondering if their fate
was to be decided tonight . . .
"How da fuck should
I know?" the corporal snarled. "Jest shut—"
"Alto!"
"—up."
Almost as helpless as I
am, Minatelli thought.
Although he had his
rifle. That was comforting. The Battalion was all around him, which was still
better. And Messer Raj always won his battles, which was more comforting
still—everyone was sure of that.
Of course, the last
battle—his first—had shown him you could get killed very dead indeed in the
middle of the most smashing victory. Gharsia's lungs and spine blasted out
through his back illustrated quite vividly what could happen to an experienced
veteran on the winning end of a one-sided slaughter.
It wasn't worrying him
as much as he thought it should, which was cause for concern in itself.
The long column of
infantry stumbled to a halt in the crowded darkness.
"Stand easy!"
The men relaxed, and a murmur went through the lines. "Silence in the
ranks."
Minatelli lowered his
rifle-butt to the stones and craned his neck. He was a little taller than
average, and the street's angle was downward. The long rows of helmeted heads
stretched ahead of him, stirring a little and the dull metal gleaming in the
lamplight; the furled Company pennants ahead of each hundred-odd, and the
taller twin staffs at the head where the color sergeants held the cased
national flag and battalion colors. Another full battalion was passing down the
street that crossed the one from the 24th's billet, marching at the quickstep.
"Something big
on," he muttered out of the corner of his mouth to the corporal.
Officers walked up and
down beside the halted column. Another battalion was marching down behind them,
crashing to a halt at a barked order when they saw the 24th blocking their way.
Breath steamed under the pale moonlight.
"Doan' matter
none," the corporal whispered back, without moving his head. "We jest
go where we're—"
The trumpet rang
sharply. Men stiffened at the sound.
"Attent-hun.
Shoulder . . . arms."
"-sent."
Minatelli came to and
brought the long Armory rifle over his right shoulder, butt resting on his
fingers. The trumpet sounded again. He wished the corporal hadn't sounded a
little nervous himself.
"Alo sinstra,
waymanos!" By the left, forward.
His left foot moved
forward automatically, without his having to think about it. Hobnails gritted
on the cobbles; they were wet and slippery with the dew, although morning was
still a few hours off. Marching was easy now, not like at first. The problem
with that was that it gave him time to think. Where were they sending
everyone? Because from the sound, there must be at least four or five battalions
on the move, all infantry. They'd been turned out with full kit—but no tents or
blanket rolls, only one day's marching rations, and two extra boxes of
ammunition each in their haversacks.
They marched through the
Seagate and onto the road by the wharves. It was a little lighter here, because
the warehouses were backed up against the wall and left more open space than
the streets. Most of the docks were empty, looking eerie and abandoned with
starlight and moonlight glittering on the oily surface of the water. They
halted again at the fishing harbor, upstream from the berths where the
deep-hulled ocean traders docked.
"Company E, 24th
Valencia," a man called softly.
Captain Pinya turned
them left from the battalion column onto a rickety board wharf. Boats were
waiting alongside the pier, fishing smacks and ship's longboats and some barges
with longboats to tow them. Men waited at the oars, in the ragged slops sailors
wore; there were others directing the infantry, in Civil Government uniform but
with black jackets, and cutlasses by their sides—marines. The company commander
stepped down into a long-boat, followed by the trumpeter and bannerman.
The lieutenant of
Minatelli's platoon hopped down into a barge. "Sergeant, get the men
settled," he said.
"Come on,
straight-leg," one of the marines snarled at Minatelli. He was holding a
painter snubbed around a bollard, anchoring the flat-bottomed grain barge to
the wharf. "Get your asses in it. I've got to help row this
bleeding sow."
The corporal clambered
down. "About all yu good fur, fishbait," he said. "Yu herd da
man, boys. Time fur a joyride."
* * *
"Easy, girl,"
Robbi M'Telgez said. "Easy, Tonita." His dog wuffled at him sleepily
from the straw of her stall. The corporal turned up the kerosene lamp and
rolled up his shirtsleeves, taking the currycomb and beginning the grooming at
the big animal's head. Tonita's tail thumped at the ground as he worked the
stiff brush into the fur of her neck-ruff. It was not time for morning
grooming, still hours too early, but the dog didn't mind. Most of the other
mounts were still asleep, curled up in their straw. The stable smelled of dog
and straw, but clean otherwise; the animals were all stable-broken, and waited
for their trip to the crapground. It was a regular stable, requisitioned from a
local magnate when the 5th was billeted.
M'Telgez felt the dog's
teeth nibble along his shoulder in a mutual-grooming gesture as he worked over
her ribs. The task had a homey familiarity, something he'd done all his
life—back home on the farm, too; the M'Telgez family owned five saddle-dogs.
He'd raised one from a pup and taken it to the army with him; Tonita was his
second, bought with the battalion remount fund as a three-year old, just before
the Southern Territories campaign. War was hard on dogs, harder than on men.
Idly, he wondered what his family would be doing right now. Pa was dead these
two years; his elder brother Halsandro had the land. It was a month short of
spring for Descott, so the flocks would be down in the valley pasture.
Probably the women would
be up, getting breakfast for the men; his mind's eye showed them all around the
wooden table, spooning down the porridge and soured milk.
Ma and Halsandro's wife
and his sisters, they'd spend the day mostly indoors, spinning and weaving and
doing chores around the farmyard. The water furrow for the garden would need
digging out, it always did this time of year, so Halsandro would be at that
with the two hired men. He'd send Peydro and Marhinz, the younger M'Telgez boys,
down to the valley pens to guide the sheep and the family's half-dozen cattle
out for the day. They'd be sitting their dogs, shivering a little in their
fleece jackets, with their rifles across their thighs. Talking about hunting,
or girls, or whether they'd go for a soldier like their brother Robbi . . .
"Hey, corp,"
someone called from the stable door. He looked up. "Turnout, an'
double-quick loik, t'El-T says."
M'Telgez nodded and gave
the currycomb a final swipe before hanging it on the stable partition. Tonita
whined and rose as well, sniffing at him and rattling the chain lead that held
her bridle to the iron staple driven into the wall.
"Down, girl,"
M'Telgez said, shrugging into his jacket. He picked up his rifle and turned,
away from the plaintive whining. "Nothin' happ'nin'."
You couldn't lie to a
dog. They smelled it on you.
* * *
"Everything is
ready?" Suzette asked.
The Renunciate nodded
stiffly. Her face might have been carved from oak, but there was a sheen of
sweat on her upper lip. Around them the church bustled; the regular benches had
been carried out, and tables brought in instead to fill the great echoing space
under the dome. Doctors were setting up, pulling their bundles of instruments
out of vats of boiling iodine-water and scrubbing down. The wax-and-dust smell
of a church was overlaid with the sharp carbolic stink of blessed water.
"Down to the
stretchers and bandages," the nun replied. "For once, there is no
shortage."
Suzette nodded and
turned away. They'd commandeered a dozen buildings along the streets leading
off from the plaza, and all the city's remaining hansom-cabs for ambulances.
Plenty of priest-doctors as well, although the Expeditionary Force's own medics
would direct everything, having the experience with trauma. Time between injury
and treatment was the most crucial single factor, though. More of the wounded
would live . . . provided Raj won.
He will, she told
herself. A twinge in her belly made her grimace a little. Fatima put a hand
under her elbow.
"I'm fine,"
she said, conscious that she was still pale. The pain was much less, and the
hemorrhaging had stopped. Almost stopped.
"You shouldn't
have," Fatima whispered in her ear.
"I couldn't take
the chance," Suzette said, as softly. "I couldn't be sure whose . . .
there will be time."
She straightened and
nodded to her escort at the door. They were looking a little uneasy at the
preparations. It was odd, even the bravest soldier didn't like looking at an
aid station or the bone-saws being set out.
"Back to
headquarters," she said.
* * *
"Kaltin, you and
the 7th Descott are the only reserve on the whole west section of the
walls," Raj said.
They stood around the
map, watching his finger move and cradling their kave mugs. I'm trying to
fill a dozen holes with six corks, he thought. Another shoestring operation
. . . He went on:
"Ludwig can watch
the east with the bulk of the cavalry until it's time. Gerrin and I are up here
in the north with the 5th and nine battalions of regular infantry, but you're it
over there—you and the militia. They're not that steady, and even a fairly
light attack will spook them. Keep them facing the right way."
"Count on it,"
the scar-faced man said, slapping fists.
"I am. Waya con
Ispirito de Hom."
Raj straightened and
sighed as Gruder left. "Well, at least we're getting good fighting
weather," he said.
The windows showed the
ghostly glimmer of false dawn, but the sky was still bright with stars.
Yesterday's rain was gone, although the ground outside the walls would still be
muddy. Nothing would limit visibility today, though.
"I hope you messers
are all aware how narrow our margins are, here," Raj said. "The
blocking force has to hold." He nodded at the infantry commanders.
"And the rest of you, when the time comes, move."
"It seems simple
enough," one said.
Raj nodded grimly.
"But in war, the simplest things become extremely difficult.
Dismissed."
The men filed out,
leaving only him and Suzette in the big room. "You'd be more useful back
at the aid station," he said. "Safer, too. This is too cursed close
to the walls for comfort."
Suzette shook her head.
"East Residence would be safe, my love. I'll be here," she said.
* * *
"Mamma, an' ye'll
nivver see the loik of that comin' down t' road from Blayberry
Fair," one of the Descotter troopers on the tower murmured.
The rolling northern
horizon was black across an arc five kilometers wide. The Brigade was coming,
deployed into fighting formation; the front ten ranks carried ladders and the
blocks behind had their muskets on their shoulders and bayonets fixed. The sun
was just up, and the light ran like a spark in grass from east to west across
the formation as it hove into view, flashing on fifty thousand steel points.
They chanted as they marched, a vast burred thunder, timed to the beating of a
thousand drums. Between the huge blocks of men came guns, heavy siege models
and lighter brass fieldpieces, hauled by oxen and dogs and yet more columns of
Brigaderos warriors.
"Now, this isn't
particularly clever," Raj said lightly.
To himself he added: But
it just may work. Brute force often did, although it was also likely to
have side-effects. Even if Ingreid won this one, he was going to lose every
fifth fighting man in the Brigade's whole population doing it.
"Counter-battery?"
Dinnalsyn asked.
"By all
means," Raj said.
"Lancers to the
fore," Gerrin Staenbridge noted.
The dull sheen of armor
marked the forward ranks; they'd left the polearms behind, of course. Muskets
were slung over their backs.
"Those lobster-shells
will give them some protection," Raj said. "From fragments and
glancing shots, at least."
The gunners'
signal-lantern clattered. The chanting of the Brigaderos was much louder,
rolling back from walls and hills:
"Upyarz!
Upyarz!"
Raj swallowed the last
of his kave and handed the cup to the orderly; he shook out his shoulders with
a slight unconscious gesture, settling himself to the task.
"Since I'm handling
the towers," Gerrin said. "I'd appreciate it if you could be ready to
move the reserves sharpish, Whitehall," he went on dryly.
"I'll do my
best," Raj replied with a slight bow.
They grinned at each
other and slapped fists, back of the gauntlet and then wrist to wrist.
* * *
"Right, lads,"
Raj said, raising his voice slightly.
Pillars of smoke were
rising into the cold bright dawn air from the towers, stretching right and left
in a shallow curve to the edge of sight. Gunsmoke, from the fieldpieces
emplaced on them—the infantry on the walls hadn't started shooting yet. The POUMPF
. . . POUMPF of the cannonade was
continuous, a thudding rumble in the background. Behind it the sharper crack
sound of the shells bursting was muffled by the walls. As he spoke a huge BRACK
and burst of smoke came from one tower far to the west, where a heavy enemy
shell had scored a lucky hit. Another came over the wall with a sound like a
ship's sails ripping in a storm and gouted up a cone of black dirt from the
cleared space inside the walls. The sulphur smell of powder smoke drifted to
them, like a foretaste of hell to come.
"The whole
Brigade's coming this way," Raj went on. "Most of our infantry went
out upriver to take them in the flank. Pretty well all the cavalry's going to
go out the west gate and take them in that flank.
"The problem
is," he went on, rising slightly onto his toes and sinking back, "is
that all that's left to hold them while that happens is us . . . and the rest
of the infantry on the walls, of course."
He raised one hand and
pointed at the north gate towers, his left resting on the hilt of his saber.
"Colonel Staenbridge and Captain Foley each hold a side of the gate, with
a company of the 5th. The rest of you—and me—have to stop whatever gets over
the walls. If we do, it's victory. If we don't . . ."
He paused, hands clasped
behind his back, and grinned at the semicircle of hard dark faces. Things were
serious enough, but it was also almost like old times . . . five years ago,
when he'd commanded the 5th and nothing more.
"You boys ready to
do a man's work today?"
The answer was a
wordless growl.
"Hell or plunder,
dog-brothers."
* * *
"Switch to
antipersonnel," Bartin Foley said briskly.
The front line of the
Brigaderos host was only three thousand meters away. The rolling ground had
broken up their alignment a little, but the numbers were stunning; worse than
facing the Squadron charge in the Southern Territories, because these barbs
were coming on in most unbarbarian good order. The forward line gleamed and
flickered; evidently they'd taken the time to polish their armor. It coiled
over the low rises like a giant metallic snake. Fifty meters behind it came the
dragoons, tramping with their bayoneted rifles sloped. He could make out
individual faces and the markings on unit flags now, with the binoculars. Most
of the heavy guns were far behind, smashed by the fieldpieces mounted on the
towers or stranded when the shelling killed the draught-oxen pulling them. Also
further back were columns of mounted men, maybe ten thousand of them—ready to
move forward quickly and exploit a breach anywhere along the front of the
Brigade attack.
Terrible as a
host with banners, he thought—it was a fragment from the Fall Codices, a bit
of Old Namerique rhetoric. The banners of the enemy flapped out before them in
the breeze from the north. Hundreds of kettledrums beat among them, a
thuttering roar like blood hammering in your ears.
POUMPF. The gun on his
tower fired again. The smoke drifted straight back; Foley could see the shell
burst over the forward line of Brigaderos troopers and hear the sharp spiteful crack.
Men fell, and more airbursts slashed at the front of the enemy formation.
Guns fired all along the line, but not as many as there might have been. Half
the 75s had been kept back to support the cavalry. The duller sound of
smoothbores followed as the brass and cast-iron cannon salvaged from storage
all over Old Residence cut loose, firing iron roundshot. He turned the glasses
and followed one that landed short, skipped up into the air and then trundled
through the enemy line. Men tried to slap aside or dodge, but the ranks were
too close-packed. Half a dozen went down, with shattered legs or feet ripped
off at the ankle.
The ranks closed again
and came forward without pause; the fallen ladders were snatched up once more.
The smoothbores were much less effective than the Civil Government field guns,
and slower to load—but there were several hundred of them on the walls. Their
gunners were the only militiamen in this sector, but they ought to be reliable
enough with the bayonets of the Regulars near their kidneys . . . The
defenders' artillery fired continuously now, lofting a plume of dirty white
smoke over the wall and back towards the city. A few of the Brigaderos siege
guns had set up and were firing over the heads of their troops; more of their
light three-kilo brass pieces were wheeling about to support from close range.
Foley ignored them; he'd
developed a profound respect for the Brigade's troopers, but their artillery
was like breaking your neck in the bath—it could happen, but it wasn't
something you worried about.
They must have lost two,
three thousand men already, Foley thought.
"Spirit, they
really want to make our acquaintance," he said. "I knew I was
handsome, but this is ridiculous." The lieutenant beside him laughed a
little nervously.
Rifles bristled along
the forward edge of the tower. More would be levelling in the chambers below
his feet, and along the wall to either side. The city cannon were firing
grapeshot now, bundles of heavy iron balls in rope nets. It slashed through the
enemy, and they picked up the pace to a ponderous trot. Approaching the
outermost marker, a fine of waist-high pyramids of whitewashed
stones—apparently ranging posts weren't a trick the Brigade was familiar with.
One thousand meters.
"Wait for it,"
he whispered, the sound lost under the rolling thunder of the cannonade.
The Brigaderos broke
into a run. Foley forced his teeth to stop grinding; he touched the stock of
the cut-down shotgun over his back, and loosened the pistol in his holster. At
all costs the Brigade mustn't take the gate, that was why there were companies
of the 5th in the towers on either side. Gerrin was in overall command of the
wall, all he had to worry about was this one tower and the hundred and fifty
odd men in it. The troopers were kneeling at the parapets, and boxes of
ammunition and hand-bombs waited open at intervals. Nothing else he could do .
. .
"UPYARZ!
UPYARZ!"
The front rank of
dismounted lancers pounded past the whitewashed stone markers. A rocket soared
up from the tower on the other side of the gate and popped in a puff of green
smoke.
"Now!"
Along the wall, hundreds
of officers screamed fwego in antiphonal chorus. Four thousand rifles
fired, a huge echoing BAAAMMMMM louder even than the guns. The advancing
ranks of armored men wavered, suddenly looking tattered as hundreds fell.
Limply dead, or screaming and thrashing, and flags went down as well. Foley
caught his breath; if they cracked . . .
"UPYARZ!
UPYARZ!"
They came on, into the
teeth of a continuous slamming of platoon volleys. And behind them, the first
line of dragoons halted. The long rifle-muskets came up to their shoulders with
a jerk, like a centipede rippling along the line. Their ranks were three deep,
and there were thirty thousand of them.
"For what we are
about to receive—"
Everyone on the tower
top ducked. Foley didn't bother—he was standing directly behind one of the
merlons, with only his head showing.
Ten thousand
rounds, he thought. The front rank of the dragoons disappeared as each musket
vomited a meter-long plume of whitish smoke. Even so you'd have to be dead
lucky-
Something went crack through
the air above his head. Something else whanged off the barrel of the cannon as
it recoiled up the timber ramp and went bzzz-bzzz-bzzz as it sliced
through a gunner's upper arm. The man whirled in place, arterial blood
spouting.
"Tourniquet,"
Foley snapped over his shoulder. "Stretcher-bearers."
The next rank of
Brigaderos dragoons trotted through the smoke, halted, fired. Then the third.
By that time the first rank had reloaded.
"Lieutenant,"
Foley said, raising his voice slightly—the noise level kept going up, it always
did, old soldiers were usually slightly deaf—"see that the men keep their
sights on the forward elements."
It's going to be
close. I wish Gerrin were here.
* * *
"Damn," Raj
said mildly, reading the heliograph signal.
"Ser?" Antin
M'lewis asked.
He was looking a little
more furtive than usual, a stand-up fight was not the Forty Thieves' common
line of work, but needs must when the demons drove.
"They've put
together a real reserve," Raj said meditatively.
Somebody over there had
enough authority to control the honor-obsessed hotheads, and enough sense to
keep back a strong force to exploit a breakthrough. Gunsmoke drifted back from
the walls in clouds. He wished the walls were higher, now—even with the moat,
they weren't much more than ten or fifteen meters in most places. Height
mattered, in an escalade attack. He grew conscious of M'lewis waiting.
"I can't send
Ludwig out until they've committed their reserve," Raj explained. M'lewis
wasn't an educated man, but he was far from stupid. "Twenty thousand held
back is too many of them, and too mobile by half. Got to get them locked up in
action before we can hit them from behind."
M'lewis sucked at his
teeth. "Tricky timin', ser," he said.
Raj nodded. "Five
minutes is the difference between a hero and a goat," he agreed.
A runner trotted up and
leaned over to hand Raj a dispatch.
Current stronger than
anticipated, he read. Infantry attack will be delayed. Will advance as rapidly
as possible with forces in bridgehead. Jorg Menyez, Colonel.
"How truly
good," Raj muttered. He tucked the dispatch into his jacket; the last thing
the men needed was to see the supreme commander throwing messages to the ground
and stamping on them. "How truly wonderful."
* * *
"We'll proceed as
planned," Jorg Menyez said firmly.
"Sir—" one of
the infantry battalion commanders began.
"I know, Major
Huarez," Jorg said.
He nodded down towards
the river. The last of Huarez' battalion was scrambling out of their boats, but
that gave them only six battalions ashore—less than five thousand men. The rest
were scattered along the river with the sailors and marines laboring at the
oars.
"Commodore
Lopeyz," Menyez said. "I'm leaving you in command here. Send the
steamboats back for the remainder of the force." Rowing had turned out to
be less practical than they'd thought from tests conducted with small groups.
Speeds were just too uneven. "Assemble them here. As soon as
three-quarters are landed, the remainder is to advance at the double to support
me. Emphasize to the officers commanding that no excuses will be
accepted."
Translation: anyone
who hangs back goes to the wall. Of course, if the scheme failed they were
all dead anyway, but it didn't hurt to be absolutely clear.
He took a deep breath of
the cold dawn air. Off a kilometer or so to the east the walls of Old Residence
were hidden, but they could hear the massed rifles and cannon-fire well enough.
A hazy cloud was lifting, as if the city were already burning. . . . Below him
were what he had. A few thousand infantrymen, second-line troops officially.
Peons in uniform, commanded by the failed younger sons of very minor gentry.
Ahead was better than four score thousand Brigade warriors.
"Fellow
soldiers," he said, pitching his voice to carry. Whatever he said would go
back through the ranks. With appropriate distortion, so keep it simple.
"Messer Raj and our
comrades need us," he said. "If we get there in time, we win. Follow
me."
He turned, and his
bannermen and signalers formed up behind him. Normally company-grade officers
and above were mounted, but this time it was everyone on their own poor-man's
dogs. "Battalion columns, five abreast," he said. "Double
quickstep."
The Brigadero
emplacements on the bluff above were ruined and empty, but there would be somebody
there. Somebody to report.
"Hadelande!"
he snapped, and started toward the sound of the guns.
* * *
"Follow me!"
Raj called.
He touched his heel to
Horace's flank. The trumpet sang four brassy notes, and the column broke into a
jog-trot; he touched the reins lightly, keeping his dog down to the pace of the
dismounted men behind him. The fog of black-powder smoke was thick, like
running through heavy mist that smelled of burning sulfur. The wall to his
right was almost hidden by it despite the bright sun, towers looming up like
islands. The noise was a heavy surf, the continuous crackle of rifle-fire under
the booming cannon. A louder crack sounded as a forty-kilo cannonball
struck the ramparts, blasting loose chunks of stone and pieces of men.
Messengers and
ambulances were moving in the cleared zone behind the walls. Now they saw men
running, unwounded or nearly so. The fugitives shocked to a halt as they saw
the Starburst banner and Raj beneath it; everyone recognized Horace, at least.
"You men had better
rejoin your unit," Raj said. They wavered, turned and began scrambling
back up the earth mound on the inside of the wall.
Raj opened the case at
his saddlebow, calming the restless dog with a word as a shell ripped by
overhead to burst among the outermost row of houses behind. Through the
binoculars he could see the rough pine-log ends of scaling ladders against the
merlons of the wall, and infantrymen desperately trying to push them aside with
the points of their bayonets. Any defender whose head was above the stonework
for more than a second or two toppled backward; there must be forty or fifty
blue-clad bodies lying on the earth ramp, most of them shot through the head or
neck. The defenders were pulling the tabs of hand-bombs and pitching them over
the side; more showered down from the towers a hundred meters to either side,
thrown by hand or from pivot-mounted crossbows.
A dozen more scaling
ladders went up, even as smoke and flashes of red light above the parapet
showed where the bombs were landing among men packed in the mud of the moat,
waiting their turn at the assault.
"Deploy," Raj
said. The trumpet sang, and the 5th faced right in a double line, one rank
kneeling and the one behind standing. A ratcheting click sounded as they loaded
their weapons. "And fix bayonets." It would come to that, today.
"Captain, can those
splatguns bear from here?"
"Just, sir,"
the artilleryman said.
The multi-barreled
weapons were fifty meters behind the firing line, itself that distance from the
wall. The crews spun the elevating screws until the honeycombed muzzles rose to
their limit.
Raj drew his sword and
raised it. The bullets that had sent sparks and spalls flying all along the
parapet under assault halted as Brigaderos helmets showed over the edge,
masking their comrades' supporting fire. The Civil Government soldiers rose
themselves, firing straight down; but the first wave of Brigaderos were
climbing with their pistols drawn. In a short-range firefight single-shot
rifles were no match for revolvers. Smoke hid the combatants as dozens of
five-shot cylinders were emptied. Seconds later the unmusical crash of steel on
steel sounded as scores of the barbarians swarmed over the parapet, sword
against bayonet.
"Wait for it."
One moment the firing
platform above was a mass of soldiers in blue uniforms and warriors in steel
breastplates, stabbing and shooting point-blank and swinging clubbed rifles.
The next it held only Brigaderos, the defenders pitching off the verge and into
the soft earth of the ramp below, or retreating into the tower doors. A banner
with the double lightning flash of the Brigade waved triumphantly.
"Fwego!"
His sword chopped down.
BAM. Then BAM-BAM-BAM-BAM,
crisp platoon volleys running down the line. A long braaaap four
times repeated from the splatguns.
Time shocked to a halt
for a second. There were hundreds of Brigaderos jammed onto the fighting
platform of the wall, and most of them did not even know where the bullets that
killed them came from. Many were looking the other way, waving on comrades
below or hauling up the assault ladders to lower down from the wall. The whole
line of them shook, dozens falling out and down to crash with bone-shattering
force. Some of the Civil Government soldiers who'd jumped down were still
moving, it was soft unpacked earth below on the ramp and a grazing impact, but
doing it with thirty kilos of steel on you was another matter altogether.
Half the enemy were
still up, even with the splatguns punching four-meter swaths through the packed
ranks. A few had time to fire revolvers or begin the cumbersome drill of
loading their rifle-muskets—both about as futile as spitting, but he admired
the spirit—before the next rattle of volleys hit them. The splatguns traversed,
snapping out their loads with mechanical precision.
"Cease fire,"
Raj said. "Marksmen only."
Silence fell as the
trumpet snarled; the best shots in each squad stepped forward a pace and began
a slow crackle of independent fire at anyone unwise enough to climb the ladders
and show his head over the parapet. The Civil Government troops in the towers
at each end of the breach were cheering as they fired and lobbed handbombs.
That meant the enemy were giving back from the foot of the wall, although the
slamming roar of noise continued elsewhere. And incredibly a few of the
infantry who'd tumbled down from the fighting platform were up and forming a
firing line at the base of the earth ramp. Raj heeled Horace forward; a young
officer was limping down the improvised unit of walking wounded, hustling men
with the slack faces of battle-shock into line, slapping them across the
shoulders with the flat of his saber. Here was someone who also had the right
instincts.
"Lieutenant,"
Raj said.
He had to repeat the
command twice before the young man heard; when he turned his eyes were wide and
staring, the iris swallowed in the pupil.
"Cease fire,
lieutenant."
"Ci, mi
heneral."
"Good work,
son." The younger man blinked. "Now get them back up there. Anyone
who can shoot."
"Back up,
sir?" The lieutenant was shivering a little with reaction. He looked at
the earth ramp above, littered with enemy bodies, two deep in places. A fair
number of bodies in blue-and-maroon uniforms, too. One was crawling down the
timber staircase that rose from the flat cleared zone to the ramparts, leaving
a glistening trail behind him.
"Back up," Raj
said. He scribbled an order on his dispatch-pad and ripped it off. "Get
this to your battalion commander."
Telling him to thin his
troops out to cover the bare patch; probably unnecessary, but it never hurt to
be careful. There were already some riflemen from the towers up above fanning
out onto the rampart, firing out at the enemy or pitching bodies down into the
moat—the right place for them, let the Brigaderos get an eyeful.
"Hop to it,
lad."
A dispatch rider pulled
up in a spurt of gravel. "Ser," he said, extending a note from his
gauntlet.
Estimate ten thousand
mounted enemy reserves moving eastward with artillery, it said. Remaining ten
thousand dismounting and preparing to advance southeast toward wall. Gerrin
Staenbridge, Colonel.
"Well, that's
that," Raj muttered. "Verbal acknowledgement, corporal."
Another messenger, this
one on foot. "Sir, barbs on the wall, east four towers—Malga Foot's
sector. Major Fillipsyn says they'll be over in a minute."
"Lead on," Raj
replied.
"Messenger,"
he went on, as the command group rode back toward the 5th's waiting ranks.
"To Major Bellamy. Now."
The enemy had ten
thousand men in reserve to exploit a breakthrough. He had six hundred-odd to
plug the holes.
* * *
"Battalions to form
square," Jorg Menyez said.
The trumpeters were
panting, like all the rest of them—they'd come better than a kilometer at the
double quickstep, all the way up from the riverbank, over the railway
embankment, looping north and west until they were almost in sight of the
eastern gate of Old Residence. They still managed the complex call, repeating
it until all the other units had acknowledged. A final prolonged single note
meant execute.
The 17th Kelden Foot
were in the lead; they swung from battalion column to line like an opening fan.
So did the 55th Santander Rifles at the rear. The units on either side slid
like a pack of cards being stacked, the eight-deep column thinning to a much
longer column of twos. Five minutes, and what had been a dense clumping of
rectangles eight ranks broad and sixty or so long was an expanding box, shaking
out until it covered a rectangle three hundred men long on each side. The fifth
battalion stayed in the center as reserve.
Here's where we
see if they can do it, Menyez thought, his lips compressed in a tight line.
This sort of thing was
supposed to be the cavalry's work. Infantry were for holding bases and lines of
communication. He'd said often enough that that was wrongheaded; now he had a
chance to prove it . . . or die. Worse, the whole Expeditionary Force would die.
He swept his binoculars
across the front of the enemy formation, counting banners. The air was very
clear, crisp and cool in his lungs, smelling only of damp earth. The city was a
pillar of gunsmoke, rising and drifting south. Sparkling, moving steel was much
closer, rippling as the enemy rode over the rolling fields, bending as they
swung to avoid an olive grove.
"About ten thousand
of them, wouldn't you say?" he said to his second in command.
"Eight to
twelve," the man replied. "Three regiments of lancers, the rest
dragoons and thirteen . . . no, sixteen guns."
"Runner,"
Menyez said. "To all battalion commanders. Fire by platoons at any enemy
fieldpiece preparing to engage at one thousand meters or less."
That was maximum range
for the three-kilo bronze smoothbores the enemy used, and well within range for
massed fire from Armory rifles. No artillery here to support him, curse
it. A few rounds of shrapnel were just the thing to take the impetus out of a
Brigade lancers' charge.
"For the rest,
standard drill as per receive cavalry."
"Los h'esti
adala cwik," his second said as the messenger trotted off: they're
in a hurry. The Brigaderos were coming on at a round trot, and it looked as
if the dragoons intended to get quite close before dismounting.
"Ask me for
anything but time, as Messer Raj says," Menyez said, clearing his throat.
That was one good thing
about an infantry battle. He drew a deep breath, free of wheezes for once. At
least there weren't any dogs around, not close enough to affect him.
"They'll probably
come at a corner first," he went on. That was the most vulnerable part of
an infantry square, where the smallest number of rifles could be brought to
bear. "They do seem to be in a bit of a rush."
* * *
Private Minatelli wasn't
aware of hearing the trumpet. Nevertheless, his feet were ready for the order
when it was relayed down to his platoon; prone and kneeling.
The men ahead of him
flopped down, angling their bodies like a herringbone comb. He went down on his
left knee, conscious of the cold damp earth soaking through the wool fabric of
his uniform trousers. This had been a vineyard until someone grubbed up the
vines for firewood, and shattered stumps of root still poked out of the stony
loam amid the weeds. Now that they were halted he could hear the battle along
the city walls, the boom and rattle of it muffled by distance and underlain by
a surf-roar of voices.
His own personal
Brigaderos were much closer. Hidden by a fold in the ground, but he could see
the lancepoints. There looked to be an almighty lot of them. . . .
Omniscient
Spirit of Man, he thought as they came over the crest of the rise like a
tidal wave. There were thousands of them, big men in armor on huge
Newfoundlands and St. Bernards. Pounding along in perfect alignment with lances
raised, three ranks deep, heading straight for the front right corner of the
square. Right at him. Fifteen hundred meters away and still far too
close, and getting closer every second. His arms seemed to raise his rifle of
their own volition, and it took an effort that left his hands shaking to snap
it back down to rest on the ground.
"Set sights for
four hundred meters."
The order went down the
ranks. Minatelli snapped the stepped ramp forward under the rear sight with his
thumb, lifting the leaf notch to the second-to-last position; for more than
that, it had to be raised vertically and used as a ladder-sight. Four hundred
meters still seemed awfully close.
"Fire on the
command."
Feet tramped behind him.
He looked back for a moment; two companies of the reserve battalion were lining
up across the V-angle of the square's corner. Minatelli hoped none of them
would fire too low—even standing, the muzzles would be only a half-meter over
his head. When he turned his head back the Brigaderos were close enough to turn
his mouth even drier. Picking up speed; they were going to start their gallop
at extreme rifle range, get through the killing zone as quickly as they could.
He could hear the drumbeat sound of the massed paws, feel it vibrating through
the ground. The armor was polished blazing-bright, hurting his eyes under the
early morning sunlight. Banners and helmet-plumes streamed with the wind of the
riders' speed; the long lanceheads glittered as they swung down into position.
"UPYARZ!"
"Wait for it."
The officer sounded
inhumanly calm; Minatelli took a long breath and let it out slowly. If he
missed, that was one more sauroid-sticker coming at him. Another breath.
"Aim."
The rifle came up and
the butt snuggled into his shoulder. Let the weight of the bayonet drop it a
little, aim at the dog's knees. Ignore the open snarling mouths.
"Fire!"
BAM. A hammer
thudding into his shoulder. And crack as hundreds of bullets went over
his head. Reload. The deadly beauty of the lancers' charge was shredding, dogs
falling and men flying in bone-shattering arcs. BAM and more of them
were down. Adjust the sights. BAM. Charge coming forward in blocks and
chunks, piling up where galloping dogs didn't have enough time to avoid the
dead and wounded—heavy dogs with an armored man on their backs weren't all that
nimble. BAM and the Brigade standard was down, and a lancer dropped his
weapon and bent far over to snatch it off the ground. BAM and his body
smashed back over the cantle of his saddle; a couple of dozen infantrymens'
eyes must have been caught by the movement.
Thank the Spirit for
a stiff breeze to carry off the powder-smoke, otherwise he'd be firing blind
into a fogbank by now.
BAM. The metal of the
chamber was hot against the callus on his thumb as he pushed home another
round. The kick was worse, the rifle hit you harder when the barrel began to
foul. Dogs snarling, a sound like all the fear in the world, fangs as long as
daggers coming closer to his face. Lancepoints very close . . .
BAM. BAM. BAM.
* * *
"Back and wait for
it!" the company commander barked.
Spirit damn it, where
are Jorg and Ludwig? Raj thought.
Up the street, the
Brigaderos paused as they saw the improvised barricade of overturned wagons and
tables. They were a mixed group, dismounted lancers and dragoons . . . Then an
officer shouted and they came pounding down the pavement with their
rifle-muskets leveled. Probably planning to reserve fire until the last minute.
Not a good decision, but there weren't any in their situation.
Nor in his, now that the
enemy were over the walls.
"Pick your targets,
make it count," the captain said. Rifles bristled over the barricade.
"Now!"
The volley slammed out,
the noise echoing back from the shuttered buildings on either side. At less
than a hundred meters, with the Brigaderos crammed into a street only wide
enough for two wagons to pass, nearly every bullet hit home. Men fell, punched
off their feet by the heavy bullets. The survivors paused to return fire,
hiding the chaos at the head of their column with a mantle of powder-smoke.
Into it fired the splatguns in the buildings on either side of the barricade,
taking the whole length of the street back to the cleared circuit inside the
walls in a murderous X of enfilade fire. The braaaap sounded again and
again.
Damned if I like
those things, Raj thought as the smoke lifted a little. The head of the
roadway was covered in bodies, many still moving. The splatguns were certainly
effective, but they made the whole business too mechanical for his taste.
you need not worry. Center's voice held a
cold irony. if you fail here,
men will hunt each other with chipped flint before the next upward cycle
begins.
Did I say I wouldn't use
them? he thought.
"That's that for
the moment," he went on aloud. "They'll be back soon."
He ducked into the
commandeered house they were using as forward HQ. His spurs rang on the oak
boards as he climbed the stairs to the second story.
"Still not
spreadin' out, ser," the Master Sergeant there said, pointing without
lowering his binoculars.
Raj levelled his own
glasses through the window. The Brigaderos were over the wall in three places,
and the numbers were enough to make his belly clench. The defenders in the
towers were still holding out, keeping up their fire on the enemy-held sections
of the wall. Despite that more and more of the barbarians were coming over, and
they'd dropped knotted ropes and ladders down to the earth ramp backing the
wall. The only good news was that they didn't seem to know what to do once they
got down. Most of them were milling around, returning fire at the towers. A
thousand or so were pushing directly in at the houses where the 5th had taken
refuge, standing and exchanging fire with the riflemen hidden in door and
window and garden wall.
They were probably a
mix-and-mash from dozens of units, he decided, and no senior officers had made
it over the defenses yet. Plenty of aggression—you'd expect that from men who'd
kept on coming through the killing zone and the moat and the wall—but nobody
directing them.
That changed as he
watched. A new banner went up on the wall, and he could hear the roar from the
Brigaderos. A running wardog, red on black, over a silver W. Teodore Welf's
blazon.
What they should be
doing is enlarging their breach and taking the gate from the rear, he thought.
Once they had a gate, the city was doomed. Welf's clever. On the other hand,
he's also young. . . .
"Get my personal
banner," he snapped over his shoulder. He reached around to take the
staff, then blinked as he saw it was Suzette handing it to him.
"I put the
bannerman on the firing line," she said.
The carbine slung from
her shoulder clacked on the polished wood of the staff. Raj swallowed and
nodded, before he braced the pole out the forward window of the parlor and
shook the heavy silk free. It slithered and hissed, snapping in the wind and
chiming—a flying sauroid picked out in gold scales on the scarlet silk, with a
silver Starburst behind it all.
The stiff breeze swung
it back and forth, then streamed it out sideways. Raj ducked down and pulled
Suzette with him as bullets pocked the limestone ashlars around the window.
"I don't think the
Whitehalls are all that popular around here," he said.
"Provincials,"
Suzette replied, rounding out her vowels with a crisp East Residence tone.
"What can one expect?"
"I'm a monkey from
the wilds myself," Raj answered her grin, pushing away the knowledge of
what the heavy bone-smasher bullets from the enemy rifle-muskets could do to a
human body. Hers, for example.
Instead he duckwalked
below the line of the windows to one in the corner and looked out. The
amorphous mob of the Brigade vanguard was turning into something like a
formation. Welf's banner was down among them now, and he and his sworn
men—probably a cross between a warband and a real staff—were pushing the
remnants and individual survivors of the storming party and the 5th's greeting
into line and behind what cover there was, even if only the heaped bodies
scattered in clumps across the broad C-shaped arc of the cleared zone they
held. As soon as that was done they started forward . . . right towards his HQ.
Perils of a
reputation, he thought dryly. Teodore had a personal mad on with him;
also he was probably apprehensive about leaving Raj in his rear.
"Runner," he
said sharply. "Compliments to Captain Heronimo, and shift all splatguns to
the front immediately." Suzette handed him a glass and sank down beside
him, back to the wall; he drank the water thirstily.
"Young Teodore is a
clever lad," he said absently. The fire directed at the houses was
thickening up, growing more regular. "But he's making a mistake. He should
leave a blocking force and peel back more of the wall, go for the gates."
Suzette touched him
lightly on the knee. "Can we stop them?"
"Not for
long," he said. "Not for very long at all."
* * *
"Your
Mightiness," the courier said, as he spat the reins out of his teeth.
One hand held a pistol,
the other a folded dispatch. His dog stood with trembling legs, head down and
washcloth-sized tongue lolling as it panted.
"Report,"
Ingreid Manfrond said. Howyrd Carstens took the paper.
"Lord of Men,"
the dispatch rider said, "High Brigadier Asmoto reports we couldn't break
their square—it's advancing, slowly. More infantry coming up from the river,
marching in square, about as many again but strung out in half a dozen clumps.
The High Brigadier requests more troops."
"No!" Manfrond
roared. "Tell him to stop them. They're only foot soldiers, by the
Spirit. Go!"
The man blinked at him
out of a dirt-splashed face and hauled his dog's head around, thumping his
spurred heels into its ribs. The beast gave a long whine and shambled into a
trot.
Another rider galloped
up and reined in, his mount sinking down on its haunches to break. "Lord
of Men," he said. "From Hereditary Colonel Fleker, at the eastern
gate. Sally."
"How many?"
Manfrond barked.
"Still coming out,
Your Mightiness. Thousands, mounted troops only—and guns, lots of guns. They
punched right through us."
The Brigade's ruler sank
back in the saddle, grunting as if belly-punched. Beside him Howyrd Carstens
unlimbered his telescope and peered to the southeast. They were on a rise a
kilometer north of the point where the assault had carried the defenses; the
action over to the west was mostly hidden except for the rising palls of
powder-smoke, but they could see the northeast corner of the city walls.
"I told you
the wall was too fucking easy," he rasped. "Here they come, guns and
all."
Ingreid snatched the
instrument, twisting the focus with an intensity that dimpled the thin brass
under his thick-fingered grip. The first thing he saw was Brigade troops
scattering, a thin screen of mounted dragoons. Some of them were firing
backward with their revolvers. Then the head of a column of enemy troops came
into view, loping along in perfect alignment at a slow gallop. A half-regiment
or so came into view—a battalion, they called it—and then a battery of four
guns, then more troops . . .
"Get the message
off to Teodore to withdraw now," Carstens said. "I'll get the flank
organized."
"Withdraw?"
The telescope crumpled in his hands, and the weathered red of his face went
purple. "Withdraw, when we've won?"
"Won what?"
Carstens roared. "We've got our forces split three ways, thousands of them
on the other side of the bloody wall, no gate, and eight thousand of the
enemy coming out to corn-cob us while we look the other way!"
"Shut up or I'll
have you cut down where you stand!" Ingreid roared. "Get down there
and hold them off while Welf finishes Whitehall."
Carstens stared at him
incredulously, then looked down the hill. The bulk of the Brigade force—sixty
or seventy thousand men—was jammed up against the face of the Old Residence
northern wall, what he could see of it through the smoke. Most of the men were
firing at the walls and the towers, the ones who weren't dying in the moat.
Artillery ripped at them, and thousands of rifles. A section of the wall a
thousand meters long was quiet, in Brigade hands . . . except that the towers
were still mostly holding out. The north gate was a colossal scrimmage, the
moat full of bodies. He looked over at the enemy force. Already cutting
in west, their lead element was north of the main Brigade force under the
walls. Carstens could play through what happened next without even trying; the
guns—must be fifty of them—pulling into line and the Civvie cavalry curving in
like a scythe.
"Get Teodore out of
there, you fool," he said. "I'll try and slow down the retreat."
* * *
"UPYARZ!"
Raj rose and shot the
Brigadero in the face. He toppled backward off the ladder, but the one below
him raised his musket one-handed through the window, poking up from below the
frame. Raj felt time freeze as he struggled to turn the weapon in his left hand
around. He could see the barbarian's finger tightening on the trigger, when
something burned along the ribs on his right side. Suzette's carbine, firing
from so close behind him that the powder scorched his jacket.
The Brigadero screamed;
his convulsive recoil sent the bullet wild, whtaanngg off the hard stone
of the wall. Suzette stepped forward, her face calm and set. She leaned out and
fired six times, pumping the lever of the repeating carbine with smooth
economy. Behind her the Master Sergeant was pulling the friction-fuse tab on a
handbomb; he shouldered her aside without ceremony as the last shot blasted the
helmet off a dragoon climbing up toward the Whitehall banner. The bomb arched
down and exploded at the base of the ladder. Men screamed, but the heavy
timbers remained, braced well out from the wall. Raj and the noncom set the
points of their sabers against the uprights and heaved with a shout of effort.
Steel sank into wood, and the ladder tilted sideways with a gathering rush.
"Stairs!"
someone shouted.
Raj left Suzette
thumbing rounds into the tube magazine of her Colonial weapon and led a rush to
the head of the stairs. There were three rounds left in his revolver; Center's
aiming-grid slid down over his vision, and he killed the first three men to
burst up the stairwell. The fourth stumbled over their bodies because he
refused to release the rifle-musket in his hands. Raj kicked him in the face
with a full-force swing of his leg. Bones crumpled under the toe of his riding
boot, feeling and sounding like kicking in thin slats in a wooden box. The man
after that swung a basket-hilted sword at Raj's knees. Raj hopped over it,
stamped on the barbarian's wrist as he landed, and thrust down between neck and
collarbone. Muscle clamped on the blade, almost dragging it from his hand; then
half a dozen troopers were shooting down the stairway on either side of him, or
thrusting with their long bayonets.
"Watch where yer
shootin', fer fuck's soik!" a Descotter voice shouted up to them.
Muzzle-flash showed
crimson in the murk from below, and the flat crash of steel on steel sounded
for an instant.
"Watch who ye lets
in t'fuckin' door, ye hoor's son," the Master Sergeant shouted back.
Raj dragged breath back
into his lungs; powder-smoke lay in wisps through the shattered furniture of
the parlor. We're not going to stop the next one, he thought with sudden
cold clarity.
"Raj."
Suzette's voice was raised just enough to cut through the background roar.
"Who are those men?"
He stepped to the side
window. Just visible to the left—the west—were troops marching down the cleared
zone behind the walls. They wore Civil Government uniforms, but there weren't
any troops in that direction except the infantry holding the north wall,
who had all they could cope with and more right now. And none of the Regulars
in his command marched that sloppily. They weren't marching at all, not double-timing,
they were running. Running like men fleeing a battle, except that they
were running straight into one.
Raj was fairly sure
Teodore Welf was still alive, from the speed of the reaction. A block of
Brigaderos peeled off from the stream coming over the wall and swung out to
confront the-
Militia, Raj realized.
It's the local militia.
The confused-looking
group halted and gave fire; too ragged to be a real volley, a long staccato
flurry. The Brigaderos heading for them returned it, but they didn't bother to
stop. They charged, while the militiamen fumbled with ramrods and
percussion-caps. Raj gave a silent whistle of amazement; the city troops didn't
disintegrate in panic. Some did, running back along the way they'd come,
but most stood to meet the gray-and-black tide. They were going to be
slaughtered when it came to hand-to-hand, but they were trying, at least.
"Ser," the
Master Sergeant said at his elbow. "Got a bunch've t'locals comin' up
behind us, say they wants t'help, loik."
The seamed, scarred face
of the noncom looked deeply skeptical.
"Bring them
forward, sergeant," Raj said. "By all means. Beggars can't be
choosers."
* * *
Ludwig Bellamy reined
in. "Cease fire!" he shouted, and the trumpets echoed it. The last of
the enemy ahead were hoisting reversed weapons, or helmets on the muzzles of
their rifles. "Get these men under guard."
Silence fell,
comparative silence after the roar he'd grown accustomed to over the last two
hours. He waved his bannerman forward, and they rode past the last Brigaderos
holdouts within the walls of Old Residence and down the wall toward Messer
Raj's command post.
Bellamy looked around.
"Spirit of Man," he swore.
The carnage around the
gate had been bad. Probably more bodies than here. It had taken a fair amount
of time to get the way unblocked. But this looked every bit as bad;
smelled as bad, as far as he could tell through a nose already stunned into
oblivion today. The whole two-hundred meter width of cleared ground inside the
wall was carpeted with bodies, no matter how far they rode; black-and-gray
uniformed Brigaderos dragoons, armored lancers, men in the blue and maroon of
the Civil Government. Stretcher-bearers had to step on the dead to get at the
wounded, and there were thousands. More bodies hung from the walls, or carpeted
the earth ramp where the enemy had tried to retreat when they realized what was
happening outside. Occasionally a patch of living Brigaderos sat with their
hands behind their heads, or putting field-dressings on their own wounded.
He stopped at a mound of
dead gathered more thickly around a banner of a running wardog; the pole still
canted up from the earth, but the bodies were two and three deep in a circle
around it. Armor rattled.
"Stretcher
bearers!" he called sharply, reigning aside. A pair trotted over.
"This one's alive."
"Sir. Orders are
for our wounded first."
"This is an
exception," Ludwig bit out. The man's armor was silver-chased and there
had been plumes in his helmet. "Get him to the aid station, now."
Although from the amount of blood and the number of bullet holes, it might be
futile.
The three-barred visor
was up, and the face inside it was enough like Ludwig Bellamy's that they might
have been brothers. It was something far more practical that prompted his
action, though. If that was Teodore Welf, he had two presents for Messer Raj
today.
He swore again when they
finally pulled up in front of the forward HQ building. The stone facing looked
as if it had been chewed. Men were sitting in the windows, or leaning
against the walls, looking a little lost. Another stood in the main
entranceway. A tall man, his face black as a Zanjian's with powder-smoke.
Suzette Whitehall stood beside him with her arm around his waist.
Ludwig Bellamy drew rein
and saluted. "Mi heneral," he said.
Raj grinned, a ghastly
expression in the sooty expanse of his face. When he removed his helmet, there
was a lighter streak along the upper part of his forehead.
"Took you long
enough," he said.
Bellamy motioned a man
forward; he dismounted and laid a flag at Raj's feet. "It's the flag of
Howyrd Carstens, Grand Constable of the Brigade," he said. "We would
have brought the head, but . . ." Ludwig shrugged. A 75mm shell had landed
close enough to Carstens that there really wasn't much left besides the signet
ring they'd identified him with.
"It seems a good
deal of trouble to go to, to hang me healthy," Teodore Welf said; his
voice was low, because it hurt to breathe deeply.
He was sitting propped
up in the big four-poster bed, swathed in bandages from neck to waist, one arm
immobilized in splints. A priest-doctor in the ear-to-ear tonsure of a Spirit
of Man of This Earth cleric stood by the bedside, glaring at Raj and Suzette
and the Companions; he was of the Brigade nobleman's own household, allowed in
during the after-battle truce. It was a cold spring night, and rain beat at the
diamond-pane windows, but a kerosene lamp and a cheerful fire kept the bedroom
warm. The flames lit the inlaid furniture and tapestries; also the hard faces
of the fighting men behind Raj.
"I'm a thrifty
man," Raj said, in Namerique almost as good as Teodore's Sponglish.
"I've no intention of hanging you, or anything else unpleasant."
"Excellent, your
excellency: I've had a surfeit of unpleasantness just lately," the young
nobleman said. "Did you take Howyrd, too?"
"The Grand
Constable? I'm afraid he died holding the rearguard."
Welf sighed.
"Spirit have mercy on the Brigade," he said.
"I doubt that the
Spirit will, just now, since the Spirit has tasked me with reuniting
civilization and you're trying to stop me," Raj said.
The young Brigade noble
looked at him; his eyes went a little wider when he saw the flat sincerity in
Raj's.
"Particularly since
the Spirit has given you Ingreid Manfrond for a ruler," Raj concluded.
Teodore was a young man,
and still shaken by the wounds and the drugs the surgeons had given him. His
agreement almost slipped out.
Raj nodded. "We'll
talk more when you're feeling better," he said, and raised a brow at the
priest.
The cleric bowed his
head grudgingly. "Lord Welf will live," he said. "Fractured
ribs, broken arm and collarbone, and tissue damage. Much blood loss, but he
will walk in a month. The arm, longer."
A servant came in with a
tray bearing tea and a steaming bowl of broth, dodging with a squeak as she met
the high-ranking party going out through the same entranceway. Nothing spilled
on the tray despite her skittering sideways, a feat which required considerable
dexterity and some risk of dumping the hot liquids on her own head. Raj
absently nodded approval as they tramped down the corridor. It wasn't far to
his own quarters; Teodore Welf was one ace he intended to keep quite close to
his chest.
"I suppose you've
got some use for him?" Gerrin Staenbridge said, as they seated themselves
around the table. Orderlies set out a cold meal and withdrew. "Apart from
making sure that Ingreid doesn't have the use of him, that is."
Raj nodded. "Any
number of uses. For one thing, while he's here he can't replace Manfrond—which
would be a very bad bargain for us."
Staenbridge laughed,
then winced; there was a bandage around his own head. "I imagine he's not
too charitably inclined toward the Lord of Men right now," he said.
"About as much we were toward our good Colonel Osterville down in the
Southern Territories."
Kaltin Gruder drew the
edge of his palm across his neck with an appropriate sound. Gerrin nodded.
"I might have done
that, if we'd had a war down there after you left," he said to Raj.
"He'd have gotten us all killed."
Raj nodded. "Young
Teodore probably does feel like that," he said judiciously.
"Something we can make use of later, perhaps. Now, to business."
Jorg Menyez opened a
file. "Ten percent casualties. Fifteen if you count wounded who'll be
unfit-for-service for a month or more. Unevenly distributed, of course—some of
the infantry battalions that held the north wall are down to company size or
less."
"The 5th's got five
hundred effectives," Staenbridge said grimly.
Raj nodded thoughtfully.
"Ingreid lost . . . at least twenty-five thousand," he said.
"Plus five thousand
prisoners," Ludwig interjected, around a mouthful of sandwich. "From
their rearguard, mostly—they fought long enough to let the rest get back to
their camps, but we had them surrounded by then. None of them surrendered until
Carstens died, by the way."
"All of which
leaves us with about seventeen thousand effectives, and Ingreid with nearly
sixty thousand," Raj said. If the Brigade hadn't had fortified camps to
retreat to he would have pursued in the hope of harrying them into rout. He
certainly wasn't going to throw away a victory by assaulting their earthworks
and palisades.
"Still long odds,
but their morale can't be very good. What I propose—"
A challenge and response
came from the guards outside the door, and then a knock. Raj looked up in
surprise.
"Message from
Colonel Clerett, mi heneral," the lieutenant in charge of the guard
detail said.
"Well, bring it
in," Raj said. He'd left standing instructions to have anything from Cabot
Clerett brought to him at once.
"Ah—" the
young officer cleared his throat. "It's addressed to Messa
Whitehall."
"Well, then give it
to her," Raj said calmly. He kept his face under careful control;
there was no point in frightening the lieutenant.
The younger man handed
the letter to Raj's wife with a bow and left with thankful speed. Suzette
turned the square of heavy paper over in her fingers, raising one slim brow. It
was a standard dispatch envelope, sealed by folding and winding a thread around
two metal studs set in the paper, then dropping hot wax on the junction and
stamping it with the sender's seal. Silently she dropped it to the table, put
one finger on it and slid it over the mahogany toward Raj.
A bleak smile lit his
face as he drew his dagger and flicked the thin edge of Al Kebir steel under
the wax. The paper crackled as he opened it. There was nothing relevant in the
first paragraphs . . . the others
looked up at his grunt of interest.
"Our dashing Cabot
fought an action outside Las Plumhas," he said. A sketch-map accompanied
the description. "He's got the four thousand cavalry with him, and
twenty-seven guns. Met about ten thousand of the Brigaderos, and thrashed them
soundly."
Nice job of
work, he thought critically. Got them attacking with a feigned retreat—barbs
usually fell for that—and then rolled them up when they stalled against his gun
line. Our boy has been to school.
"What!"
The roar of anger
brought the others bolt upright in surprise; Raj was normally a calm man. His
fist crashed down, making the cutlery dance and jingle.
"The little fastardo!
The clot-brained, arrogant, purblind little snot!" Raj's voice
choked off; there were no words adequate for his feelings.
Suzette's fingers
touched his wrist; the contact was like cool water on the red-hot heat of his
anger. He drew a deep breath and continued reading, lips pulled tight over his
teeth.
"Our good Colonel
Clerett," he said at last, throwing down the paper—Suzette scooped it up
and tucked it into a file of her papers—"has decided that it's pointless
to join us here. Instead he's going to head straight southwest across the
Brigade heartland, wasting the land, and head for Carson Barracks to draw off
Ingreid's main force and free up the situation."
The shocked silence held
for a full minute. Then Gerrin Staenbridge spoke: "You know, mi
heneral, that might just work."
Raj gulped water and
spoke, his voice hoarse. "It might work if I was leading the
detachment. I might've told you to do that if you were leading
it. Cabot Clerett—"
observe, Center said.
Reality faded, to be
replaced by a battlefield. He had an overhead view, of three hills held by
ragged squares of Civil Government soldiers. Columns of smoke rose from each,
as rifles and cannon fired down into a surging mass of Brigaderos that lapped
around like water around crumbling sandcastles. As he watched the wave surged
up over one of the squares, and the neat linear formation dissolved into a
melee. That lasted less than a minute before nobody but the barbarians was left
alive on the hilltop. Those men turned and slid down the slope in a charge like
an avalanche to join the assault on the next formation.
A flick, and he saw
Cabot Clerett standing next to his bannerman. A dozen or so men were still on
their feet around him. Cabot's face was contorted in a snarl that would have
done credit to a carnosauroid. He lunged forward and drove the point of his
saber through a barbarian's chest. Six inches of metal poked out through the
back of the Brigadero's leather coat. The blade was expertly held, flat
parallel to the ground so that it wouldn't stick in the ribs. It still took a
moment to withdraw, and a broadsword came down on his wrist. The sword was
sharp and heavy, with a strong man behind it. The young noble's hand sprang
free; he pivoted screaming, with arterial blood spouting a meter high from the
stump. The bannerman behind him drove the ornamental bronze spike on the head
of the staff into the chest of the swordsman who'd killed Clerett, then went
down under a dozen blades. The Starburst trailed in blood and dirt as it fell.
probability 57% ±10, Center went on
dispassionately.
Raj blinked back to
reality, feeling the others staring at him.
"Well," he
said calmly, "the way I figure it, there's about an even chance or a
little more he'll get himself killed and his force wiped out."
Kaltin filled his
wineglass. "You've taken the odd risk yourself, now and then," he
pointed out.
Raj shrugged, loosening
the tense muscles of his shoulders. "Only when it's justified. We don't need
to take risks now. With those four thousand men, I can wrap this war up in
a year or two. The Western Territories have waited six hundred years for the
reconquest, a year won't make any difference."
Kaltin's right, he thought. A couple
of years ago I'd have done the same thing myself. For a moment he felt
Center's icy presence at the back of his mind, wordless.
"Anyway,"
Ludwig said thoughtfully, "they'll have to detach a pretty big force to
deal with Cabot. That should give us an opportunity."
"Expensive if it
costs four thousand of the Civil Government's elite troops," Raj said. He
shrugged. "Let's deal with the situation as it is. Bartin, bring the map
easel over here, would you?"
* * *
"Most Excellent
mistress, there's been a terrible disaster!"
Marie looked up from the
pile of samples the merchant was showing her.
"News from the
front?" she said tonelessly.
The steward shook his
head and continued in his Spanjol-accented Namerique. "No, the main
granaries down by the canal, mistress."
He wrung his hands;
Marie stood and swept out of the room, up the grand curving staircase to the
rooftop terrace. It was a clear spring night in Carson Barracks, smelling as
usual faintly of swamp. Some previous General had bought an astronomical
telescope. Marie had ordered it brought out of storage and set up here, on the
highest spot in the city; she wasn't allowed out of the palace much, but she
could see the whole town. When she put her eye to the lens the squat
round towers of the grain storage leapt out at her. Smoke was billowing out of
their conical rooftops, red-lit by the flames underneath. The warehouses were
stone block, but the framing and interior partitions and roofs were timber . .
. and grain itself will burn in a hot enough flame.
One of the towers
disintegrated in a globe of orange fire that swelled up a hundred meters above
the rooftops. Burning debris rained down on the surrounding district, and on
the barges and rail-cars in the basins and switching-yards near the end of the
causeway.
Flour will not only
burn: when mixed with air, as in a half-empty bulk storage bin, it is a fairly
effective explosive.
"Manhwel," she
said crisply to the steward, standing and drawing her shawl about her bare
shoulders against the slight damp chill. The ladies-in-waiting were twittering
and pointing about her. "Send all the Palace staff but the most essential
down to help fight the flames."
"At once, Most
Excellent Mistress," he said.
"The rest of you,
back to your work. Don't stand there gaping like peasants."
All of them surged away,
except Dolors and Katrini. And Abdullah, bowing with hand touching brows and
lips and heart, a slight smile showing teeth white in his dark beard. He didn't
say a word: none was necessary. Thanks to a few gallons of kerosene and a few
loyal Welf followers, and the Arab's timing devices, Carson Barracks was now in
no state to stand a siege. With harvest four months off, the central provinces
around the rail line to Old Residence devastated, and every city short of food
as winter stocks dwindled, it would probably be impossible to resupply to any
meaningful degree.
"And Manhwel, send
my personal condolences immediately to General Manfrond."
There was a fairly good
courier service between the capital and the forces in the field. Her lip
curled. Good enough for her to learn how that fool Ingreid Manfrond was
wasting his fighting men. Every second family in the Brigade was in mourning
for a father, a son, a husband. With Teodore prisoner and Howyrd Carstens dead,
he'd be even worse.
We cannot win this war,
she told herself. And if Manfrond remains General, he will destroy the Brigade
trying to.
The flames were mounting
higher, and the red glow was beginning to spread as timbers from the explosion
caught elsewhere, for thousands of meters around. Bells clanged and ox-horn
trumpets hooted, but Carson Barracks was a city of women and old men and
servants now.
Ingreid Manfrond must go
. . . and there would be revenge for her mother and for the House of Welf. The
servant shivered as he watched her smile.
She motioned Abdullah
closer as the steward left. The guards at the corners of the terrace were well
out of earshot.
"I suppose you'll
be reporting as well," she said. He shrugged expressively. "Those
devices you showed us worked well."
"They are of proven
worth, my lady," he murmured, bowing again.
"Everything I've
done has been my own decision," Marie said after a moment, looking at his
bland expression. "Why do I get this feeling that you're behind it?"
"I merely offer
advice, my lady," he said.
"We're like
children to you, aren't we?" she said slowly.
He must be conscious
that the guards would hack him in pieces at her word, but there was a cat's
ease in the way he spread his hands.
"There is much to
be said for the energy of youth, Lady Welf," he said.
"Send my regards to
Teodore," she went on. "Tell him I was right about Manfrond."
* * *
"He's definitely
pulling out," Raj said.
The windows of the
conference room were open to the mild spring day; the air smelled fresh and
surprisingly clean for a city. Buds showed on the trees around the main
plaza—those that hadn't been cut for firewood during the siege—and a fresh
breeze ruffled the broad estuary of the White River, past the rooftops of the
city. A three-master was standing downstream, sails shining in billowing curves
of white canvas as she heeled and struck wings of foam from her bows. Pillars
of smoke marked the Brigade camps on the distant southern shore, where excess
supplies and gun-rafts burned.
"Cautiously,"
Jorg Menyez said. "The troops on the south shore are guarding his line of
retreat southwest of here, along the rail line." He traced a finger on the
map. "And north of the city he's withdrawing from the eastern encampments
first."
Kaltin Gruder rubbed the
scarred side of his face. "We could try and snap up moving columns,"
he said.
Raj shook his head.
"No, we want to speed the parting guest," he said. "From the
latest dispatches, Clerett is ripping through everything ahead of him."
A few of the Companions
looked embarrassed; the dispatches were all addressed to Lady Whitehall.
Raj cleared his throat.
"I'd say our good friend Ingreid 'Blind Bull' Manfrond isn't retreating,
to his way of thinking—he's charging in another direction. Right back toward
his home pasture at Carson Barracks, against an opponent he thinks he can get
at in the open field."
And very well may, if
Center's right, Raj thought. It was so tempting . . .
"You plan to let
him withdraw scot-free?" Tejan M'Brust looked unhappy, his narrow dark
face bent over the map, tapping at choke-points along the Brigade's probable line
of retreat.
"Did I say that?'
Raj replied, with a carnosaur grin. "Did I? Commodore Lopeyz, here's what
I want you to do . . ."
* * *
They're holding hard,
Raj thought.
The terrain narrowed
down here, a sloping wedge where the railway embankment cut through a ridge and
down to the river. A kilometer on either side of him hills rose, not very high
but rugged, loess soil over rock. Trees covered them, native whipstick with red
and yellow spring foliage, oaks and beeches in tender green like the flower-starred
grass beneath. The air smelled intensely fresh, beneath the sulfur stink of
gunpowder.
Just then the battery to
his left cut loose; some of the aides and messengers around him had to quiet
their dogs. Horace ignored the sound with a veteran's stolid indifference; in
fact, he tried to sit down again.
"Up, you son of a
bitch," Raj said, with a warning pressure on the bridle.
Three shells burst over
the Brigaderos line ahead of him, two thousand meters away. They were three
deep across the open space, with blocks of mounted troops in support and a huge
mob of dogs on leading lines further back, their own mounts. He trained his
binoculars; the forward line of the enemy fired—by troops, about ninety men at
a time—turned, and walked through the ranks behind them. Fifty paces back they
halted and began to reload, while the rank revealed by their countermarch fired
in turn and then did the same. His own men were in a thinner two-rank formation
about a thousand yards closer, giving independent fire from prone-and-kneeling
and advancing by companies as the barbarians retreated. It gave their formation
a saw-toothed look; once or twice the mounted lancers behind the dragoons had
tried to charge, but the guns broke them up.
The enemy were suffering
badly, paying for their stubborn courage. Neither side's weapons were very
accurate at a thousand meters, but the Civil Government troops didn't have to
stand upright and stock-still to reload. Still, a steady trickle of wounded
came back, born by stretcher-bearers and then transferred to dog-drawn
ambulances. Their moaning could be heard occasionally, from the road that wound
by the hillock he'd selected to oversee this phase.
Cost of doing
business, he told himself. He'd not have paid this sort of butcher's bill just to hustle
the enemy on their way, though.
More firing came from
the wooded hills on either side, an irregular crackling rather than the
slamming volleys of open-field combat. That was bad country, tangled gullies
overgrown with brush, steep hillsides and fallen timber. Jorg's infantry were
pressing forward on either flank, but it was slow work. Up close and personal,
as the men put it.
Antin M'lewis pulled up.
"Ser," he said. "Barbs gettin' tight-packed back terwards
t'bridge. Them fish-eaters is in position."
Raj nodded. An aide
puffed on his cigarette and walked over to touch it to the paper fuse of a
signal rocket; quite a large one, as tall as a small man with its supporting
stick. The missile lit with a dragon's hiss and a shower of sparks and smoke
that sent the aide skipping back and the dogs to wurfling and sneezing in
protest. Their eyes followed it, faces turning up like sauroid chicks in a nest
when the mother returned. At a thousand meters height it popped into a ball of
lesser streamers, a huge dandelion-fluff that held for a moment and then
drifted northward with the breeze, losing definition as it went.
* * *
"That's it,"
Lopeyz said, from the conning tower of the first steamboat. "Slip the
cables."
The reddish smoke of the
rocket drifted away. A wailing screech from the whistle of his craft echoed
back from the bluffs, and the three mortar-boats chuffed into the current. Here
the river was tending as much north as west, and the water ran faster. Their
converted locomotive engines wheezed and clanged; he looked down between his
feet and saw the sweat-gleaming bodies of the black gang as they shoveled the
coal into the improvised brick hearths around the firedoors. To his right on
the north bank of the river he could hear the firefight going on in the woods,
and see the drifting smoke of it. A little further on, and the river narrowed.
The banks were black with men and dogs, the rail bridge swarming with them like
a moving carpet of ants—he could see that even a kilometer away.
Panic broke out at the
sight of the Civil Government riverboats, shouts and screams and a vast
formless heaving. The bridge locked solid as men tried to stampede to the south
bank and safety. Bullets began to sparkle off the wrought-iron armor of the
three boats, some of them punching through the thinner metal of the smokestacks
with a distinctive ptunggg sound. He swung a metal plate across the
opening, leaving only a narrow slit for vision, and shouted down the hatchway.
"Reduce speed to
two knots!"
The central channel was
deep here, but narrow, and there were sandbanks and snag-heads all around. He
looked back; the other two craft were following in line, the black coal-smoke
pouring from their stacks and the river frothing in the wake of their paddles.
Just then a monstrous tchunggg made the interior of the gunboat ring
like a bell. Lopeyz clutched for a handhold and looked around.
"Four-kilo
shot," his first mate shouted over the engine noise. The helmsman hunched
his shoulders and kept his eyes firmly ahead.
Lopeyz nodded. Light field
piece firing roundshot, no menace to the gunboats . . . unless they got really
lucky and took off a smokestack, in which case the furnaces wouldn't draw and
he'd lose steam. The danger was less unpleasant than the thought of how it
would foul up the mission. I have been around Raj Whitehall too long, he
thought.
The earthwork fort
holding the north end of the bridge came into view. The sides were gullied with
the winter rains and poor maintenance, but it was still occupied, and the enemy
had moved heavier guns in. Fortress models throwing forty and sixty-kilo solid
shot, which was a threat to the gunboats.
"Prepare to
engage," he called.
The gunners in the
forward part of the hull loaded a round into the mortar, one set for delayed
explosion. At the same instant a flash of red showed on the ramparts of the
fort. About a second later a plume of water five meters high erupted off the
port bow as the cannonball struck.
"Range one
thousand. Let go the anchors, engines all stop." Silence struck ears
accustomed to the groan and clank of the engine, broken by the sounds of water
and of venting steam from the safety valve. There was an iron clank as a
wedge-shaped segment of the deck armor over the muzzle of the mortar was
released and swung down.
"Fire!"
* * *
"Spirit," Raj
murmured to himself.
POUMF. The field-gun
fired again, and the crew cheered as the shell struck just short of the bridge.
It hammered into ground covered with men and dogs, gouting up a candle-shape of
dirt and body-parts. The crowding down there was so bad that the empty space
filled at once, pressure from the sides forcing men in like water into a
splash-hole. All along the ridge overlooking the narrow ledge of floodplain
Civil Government troops stood and fired down into the dense mass, working their
levers with the hysterical exultation that a defenseless target brings. The
bulk of the enemy were far too closely packed to use their weapons, even if
they had the inclination. More guns came up; they'd been slowed by the press of
surrendering men and riderless dogs behind.
The fort by the bridge
was broken and burning. So was the center span of the bridge itself, the wooden
trestle licking up flames that were pale in the bright midmorning sun. The
heads of men and dogs showed in the water. The swift current swept most of them
downstream, toward the tidal estuary and the waiting downdraggers. More
followed them into the water by the minute. . . .
"Cease fire!"
Raj shouted.
There hadn't been much
fight in the Brigaderos since they realized the bridge was under attack behind
them. A splatgun bounced up, unlimbered and cut loose down the slope into the
enemy. A pocket opened for a second, where the thirty-five rounds punched in
together.
"Cease fire,
Spirit-dammit, sound cease fire!" Raj shouted again.
The bugles sang again
and again, and the sound began to relay down the other units. The Civil
Government soldiers were packed almost shoulder to shoulder above their
opponents as well, and the firing began to die away reluctantly. As the noise
died, the movement below did as well. Ten minutes later the cries of the
wounded were the loudest sound; he could see thousands of faces turning toward
him, toward the Starburst banner amid the guns.
"White parley
flag," he said to an aide. "Find an officer. Unconditional surrender,
immediately, but I guarantee their lives and personal liberty if nothing
else." He had better uses for troops this good than sending them to the
mines.
* * *
"Well, Ingreid's
down to what, fifty thousand by now?" Gerrin Staenbridge said.
"Four thousand
dead, four thousand surrendered, from their rearguard—roughly," Bartin
Foley said, looking at his notepad.
The commanders were
sitting around a trestle table. Below them squads of prisoners were picking
over the field, collecting the dead and the weapons under the supervision of
Civil Government infantry. Wagonloads of enemy wounded and plunder groaned up
the switchback road, and packs of captured dogs. Artillerymen and artisans from
Old Residence were swarming over the railway bridge and repairing the damage;
the sound of sawing and hammering drifted back along with the endless rushing
sound of the river against the stone pilings. Still more prisoners were at work
repairing the earthworks of the fort. Even the artillery might be salvageable;
those cast-iron and cast-bronze pieces were hard to damage.
Raj swallowed a mouthful
of bread and sausage and followed it with water. "Grammeck, how long on
the bridge?"
"Ready by tomorrow
if we push it," the artilleryman said. "No real structural
damage."
Raj nodded.
"Kaltin, how many dogs did we capture?"
"More than we can
use or feed," the Companion said. "Eight, nine thousand, not counting
the ones who're better shot. Why?"
He raised a hand.
"All right," he said. The others leaned forward. "As you may
have guessed, I don't intend to give Ingreid a free passage home. If he gets
behind the fortifications of Carson Barracks, we could be here for years—and
it'd be cursed hard to cut off its communications, not with the river so
close."
Staenbridge rubbed a
hand along his jaw, rasping the blueblack stubble. "An open-field
encounter?" he said. "Fifty, fifty-five thousand men . . .
chancy."
Raj shook his head and
smiled, weighing down the corners of a map with plates and cups. "I've no
intention of fighting unless he obliges me by attacking a strong position
head-on . . . and I think even the Lord of Men has realized that's a
mistake."
The others chuckled and
watched intently as Raj's finger traced the line of the railway between Old
Residence and Carson Barracks, four hundred kilometers to the southwest in the
valley of the Padan.
"He has to withdraw
along this line . . . well, he could march straight to the nearest
riverport on the Padan, but that's not what he'll do. This stretch of country
along the line of rail is bare and the railway is useless for anything
substantial, thanks to Ludwig here." The ex-Squadrone blushed. "He'll
have to bring in wagon trains from areas with supplies—and at the worst time of
year, too."
"Ah, bwenyo,"
Kaltin Gruder said. "A razziah, eh?"
"Hmmm." Gerrin
pursed his lips. "Still, we'd have only six thousand men," he pointed
out. "Difficult to coordinate and not much if we do have to
fight."
"Not nearly
enough," Raj agreed. "We'll need eleven thousand rifles and all the
field guns as a minimum. Jorg, we'll take nine battalions of your
infantry."
The Kelden County
nobleman looked up, blinking in surprise. "My boys can march," he
said. "But they're bipeds, mi heneral."
"Not on dogback
they aren't," Raj said. That's why I asked how many dogs we
captured." He held up his hands against the storm of protest.
"I know, I know; it
takes years to train a cavalryman, he practically has to be born at it. I don't
expect them to be able to fight mounted, or maneuver, or switch from mounted to
dismounted action quickly—I don't expect them to do anything but stay on the
beasts, then get off and form up on foot for infantry action. Mounted infantry,
not cavalry."
Jorg Menyez closed his
mouth on the protest he had been about to make and sat silent for a second.
Then he nodded. "Yes, they can do that," he said.
Raj rapped his knuckles
on the rough boards. "Spirit willing and the crick don't rise," he
said. "Pick the best, leave the units that got hardest-hit during the
assault behind. Put a good solid man in charge, he can recruit up to strength
locally. Not likely to be any real fighting around here for the rest of the
campaign, anyway.
"We'll divide into
three columns," he went on. "Gerrin, Kaltin and Ludwig to command,
fifteen guns each. Bare minimum supplies, no tents, no camp followers, no
wheeled transports except the ammunition limbers for the guns. Put six hundred
rounds of 11mm per man on pack dogs, three days' hardtack, and that's about
it."
He drew a straight line
on the map along the railway. "That's Ingreid." Three X's, one ahead
of the Brigade force and two more on the south and left of it. "That's us.
Just enough skirmishing to keep them slowed down."
A big army was a slow
army anyway, and if they were forced to deploy, they'd be slower still. Every
day cross-country increased their supply problems. Raj stretched out a hand
with the fingers splayed, then pulled it back toward himself and clenched them.
"We'll stay close
enough together to keep in supporting distance," he said. "Cut off
all foragers, and retreat sharpish if a substantial force tries to attack. If
Ingreid stops and lunges for us, we can all close up and pick our spot. Either
he breaks his teeth on us by attacking entrenchments front-on, or he has to
resume marching toward Carson Barracks—in which case we resume harassment. With
any luck, by the time he gets to his capital he'll be starving."
"What about their
right flank?" Gerrin asked, tracing an arc to the north of the railway
line.
"Our good and
faithful Colonel Clerett's up there, burning and killing," Raj said.
"From the reports, I expect him to reach Carson Barracks long before
Ingreid does. Also, I'll put the Skinners on that flank. Juluk will enjoy
that."
"Spirit help the
civilians," Jorg said. Raj shrugged.
"Fortunes of
war—and Skinners consider killing civilians poor sport when they've got
Long-Hairs at hand," he said. "When we all get where we're going, we
can link up with Clerett, which will give us fifteen or sixteen thousand
first-rate troops . . . and Ingreid should be considerably weaker by then. Any
questions?"
A murmur of assent.
"I want to be moving by tomorrow," he went on. "Here's the
disposition of units—"
The long gentle ridge
above the roadway was covered in peach trees, and the whole orchard was in a
froth of pink blossom. The scent was overpoweringly sweet, and rain-dewed
blossoms fell to star the shoulders and helmets of the troopers sitting their
dogs beneath. Grainfields stretched down to the roadway and rolled away beyond,
an occasional clump of trees or a cottage interrupting the waist-high corn or thigh-high
wheat. Ploughed fallow was reddish-brown, pastureland intensely green. The sun
shone bright yellow-orange in a cloudless sky, with both moons transparent
slivers near the horizon. A pterosauroid hovered high overhead, its ten-meter
span of wings tiny against the cloudless sky; toothed feathered almost-birds
chased insects from bough to bough above the soldiers, chirring at the feast
stirred up by the paws of the dogs. Occasionally one would flutter to a stop,
cling to bark with feet and the clawed fingers on the leading edge of their
wings, and hiss defiance at the men below.
"We look like a
bunch of damned groomsmen riding to a wedding," Kaltin Gruder said,
brushing flowers off his dog's neck. The officer beside him chuckled.
Half a kilometer to the
north and a hundred meters below, a train of wagons creaked slowly eastward.
Oxen pulled them, twenty big white-coated beasts to the largest vehicles,
land-schooners with their canvas-covered hoops; they ranged from there down to
the ordinary humble two-wheeled farm carts pulled by a single pair. Kaltin
whistled tunelessly through his teeth as he moved his binoculars from east to
west. Most of the people with the convoy were obviously natives, peasants in
ragged trousers and smocks. More followed, driving a herd of sheep and
slaughter-cattle in the fields beside the road—right through young corn and
half-grown winter wheat, too.
There were other men on
dogback, though, with lobster-tail helmets and black-and-gray uniforms. Riding
in columns of twos on either side of the convoy, and throwing out small
patrols. One group of four was riding up the open slope below towards the
orchard.
"About two hundred
dragoons," he said, and began to give brisk orders. That was just enough
to make sure that no band of disgruntled peons jumped the supply train. Not
enough to do anything useful today.
A bugle sounded; the
Brigaderos scouts hauled frantically on their reins as three hundred men rose
to their feet and walked in line abreast out of the orchard. Another two companies
trotted down and took up position across the road ahead of the convoy, blocking
their path back towards the main Brigade army.
"Now—" Kaltin
began, then clicked his tongue.
The Brigade kettledrums
whirred. The civilians were taking off straight north through the grainfields;
if the commander of the convoy escort had any sense, he'd be doing the same.
Instead the barbarians fired a volley from the saddle—not a round of which came
anywhere near the Civil Government force, although he could hear bullets clipping
through the treetops five meters overhead—drew their swords, and charged.
"More balls than
brains," the battalion commander said, and called to a subordinate.
Further back on the
ridge, guns crashed. Shells ripped by overhead and hammered up ground before
the charging Brigaderos. At four hundred meters the riflemen cut loose with
volley fire. Thirty seconds later the survivors of the Brigade charge were
galloping frantically in the other direction, or holding up reversed weapons.
All but their leader; he came on, sword outstretched. At a hundred meters from
the Civil Government line his dog stumbled and went down as if it had tripped,
legs broken by shots fired low.
"Let's see what
we've got," Kaltin said, touching a heel to his dog's flank.
He rode up to the fallen
man. Boy, he thought. Only a black down on his pale cheeks; on his hands
and knees, fumbling after his sword. Kaltin leaned down and swung the point of
his saber in front of the boy's eyes.
"Yield," he
said.
Blinking back tears of rage,
the young man stood and offered his sword across his forearm.
"I am hereditary
Captain Evans Durkman," he said, and flushed crimson when his voice broke
in mid-sentence.
Down below the troopers
of the 7th Descott were proceeding in businesslike fashion. The oxen were
unharnessed and driven upslope with whoops and slapping lariats. Men stood in
the wagons to load sacks of cornmeal and beans and dried meat and sausages onto
strings of dogs with pack-saddles. An even louder whoop told of a wagon filled
with kegs of brandy; there were groans as a noncom rode up and ordered the tops
of the barrels smashed in and the pale liquor dumped on all the remaining
vehicles. Less than five minutes after the action began, the first
brandy-fueled flames licked skyward. A few minutes after that, the whole train
was burning. Sullen prisoners smashed their own rifles against the iron tyres
of the wagon wheels under the muzzles of the Descotter guns.
"You won't get away
with this, you bandit," the extremely young Brigadero growled in passable
Sponglish.
Several of the men
around Kaltin chuckled. He smiled himself; not an unkindly expression, but the
scars made it into something that forced the younger man to flinch a little
beneath his bravado.
"If you mean that
force of fifteen hundred men who was going to meet you," he began.
Just then a faint
booming came from the northeast, echoing off the low hills. It took the
Brigadero a few moments to recognize the sound of a distant cannonade, and then
he went chalk-white under his pale skin.
"—that's
them," Kaltin finished. "Now your boots, young messer."
The other man noticed
that the prisoners were barefoot; he surrendered his own grudgingly, watching
in puzzlement as the footwear were thrown onto the roaring bonfire that had
been a wagon a few minutes before.
"We don't have time
or troops to guard you," Kaltin said helpfully to the hangdog group of
prisoners. "And I doubt Ingreid has mounts, weapons or footwear to
spare—to say nothing of food. So if you've got any sense, you'll all start
walking home right now. I'm sure your mother will be reassured to see you,
Hereditary Captain Durkman."
He sheathed his sword
and gathered up his reins. The Brigadero burst into sputtering Namerique;
Kaltin spoke a little of that language, mostly learned from his concubine
Mitchi. Judging by the terms for body parts, most of what the youngster was
saying was obscenities. Several of his older subordinates grabbed him by the
arms. They probably understood exactly what the alternative to release
was for an inconvenient prisoner, and were surprised they were still alive.
Markman shook them off.
"When are you going to stop hiding and skulking?" he said hotly.
"When are you going to come out and give battle like honest men?"
Kaltin grinned as he
turned his mount eastward. "We are giving battle," he said over his
shoulder. "And we're winning."
He turned and chopped a
hand forward. "Waymanos!"
* * *
"Well, this is
something new," Bartin Foley said.
The road was a
churned-up mass of mud and dung and dogshit; exactly what you would expect
after a major army passed by. The litter of discarded baggage was about what
he'd become accustomed to, after the first week. One of the main problems had
been preventing the men loading themselves down with non-essential loot. Some
of it had been fairly tempting—even a silver bathtub, for the Spirit's
sake! Masses of servants and thralls and camp followers as well, not just
whores but families.
This time it was guns,
their barrels glistening under the quick spring rain. The bronze glittered more
brightly as the clouds split and watery sunlight broke through. Twenty of the
guns were light field-pieces; three were heavier, not quite siege guns but
nearly . . . and that must be about all
of Ingreid's remaining artillery, counting what had bogged down in fords and
fallen off bridges and broken its axles before getting this far.
"They're over here,
sir," Lieutenant Torridez said.
The ruts didn't stop at
the edge of the road; in fact, it was difficult to say just where the road had
been, in the swath of trampled and churned devastation cutting southwest
through the fields. Only the line of the railway embankment made it certain.
There was a good deal of swamp and forest hereabouts, and drainage channels in
the cleared fields. The three hundred Brigaderos squatting with their hands
behind their heads were in what had probably been a pasture in better days.
"Found them sitting
here," Torridez went on. "Didn't give us any trouble at all."
Foley wrinkled his nose
slightly at the smell, and made a mental note to make sure the priests were
checking on the mens' drinking water. Dysentery like this was the last thing
they needed. The two Civil Government officers pulled up beside an older man;
he was wearing back-and-breast armor, although the troops in the field were
dragoons. He rose, blinking watery gray eyes at the young man with the hook;
his head was egg-bald, and his face had probably been strong before fever and
hunger left the skin sagging and ash-colored.
"Colonel Otto
Witton," he said hoarsely.
"Captain Bartin
Foley," the younger man replied in careful Namerique. "This is your
regiment?"
Witton laughed, then
coughed wrackingly. "What's left of it," he said. "The ones who
didn't bug out last night." He laughed again, then coughed until he
retched. "We're the rearguard, officially."
Foley touched his lips
with his hook. "Colonel, you may be in luck," he said.
"I'm sending back an escort with our walking wounded." The Brigadero
nodded, as aware as he of the other option. "However, there are a few
things I'd like to know . . ."
Witton grunted and spat
red-flecked spittle into the mud. "Ask away. A brother and a son I've lost
because that pig-ignorant sauroid-fucker Manfrond bungled this war into wreck,
and Teodore Amalson's whole legacy with it. Outer Dark, Forker might
have done better."
"The Spirit of Man
is with General Whitehall," Foley said. "Now, what we'd like to know
is—"
The sound from the edge
of the swamp was nearly half a kilometer away, and still loud enough to stun.
The form of it was something halfway between a gobbling shriek and a falcon's
cry, but the volume turned it into a blur in the background, like the stones in
a watermill. The creature charged before the last notes died. Its body was
seven meters long and it had the rangy lethality of a bullwhip. Half the length
was tail, and most of the rest of it seemed to be head, split in a gape large
enough to engulf half a man's torso. It was running on its hind legs, massive
yet agile, thick drumsticks pushing the clawed eagle feet forward three meters
for each bounding birdlike stride. The forelegs were small by comparison, but
they each bore clawed fingers outstretched toward the prey. Mottled green
scales covered the upper part of its body; the belly was cream, and the wattles
under its throat the angry crimson of a rooster's comb.
The stink of decay had
brought it out of the swamps where it hunted hadrosauroids. The target was the
three hundred disarmed Brigaderos, and it would plow into them like a
steam-powered saw through soft wood. A big carnosaur like this would kill until
everything around was dead before it started feeding, then lie up on the kills
until the last shred of rotting meat was engulfed.
"Dismount, rapid
fire, now!" Foley shouted, his voice precise and clear and pitched
high to carry.
A hundred men reacted
smoothly, only the growling of anxious dogs making it different from a drill.
The first shot rang out less than twenty seconds later. Foley could see bullets
pocking the mud around its feet, small splashes amid the piledriver explosions
of mud and water each time the three-toed feet hit the ground. More were striking
the outstretched head, but a sauroids brain was smaller than a child's fist, in
a large and very bony skull. Then a lucky shot hit the shoulder girdle and
bounced down the animal's flank. It was far from a serious wound, but it stung
enough to make the carnosaur think—or to trigger one of the bundles of
hardwired reflexes that passed for thought.
It spun in place, tail
swinging around to lever it and jaws snapping shut with a sound like a marble
statue dropping on flagstones as it sought the thing that had bitten it. That
put it broadside-on to Foley's company, and he could hear the bullets
striking, a sound like hailstones hitting mud. Most of them would be
brass-tipped hardpoint sauroid killers. The beast swung around again and
roared, breaking into a fresh charge. Foley clamped his legs around the barrel
of his dog and drew his pistol, aware as he did so that he might as well kiss
the beast on the snout as shoot it with a handgun. Ten meters from the firing
line—a body length—the carnosaur's feet stopped working; one slid out in front
of it, the other staying behind instead of moving forward for the next stride.
The long head nosed down into the soft dirt, plowing a furrow toward them.
The jet-colored eyes
stayed open as the three-ton carnivore slid to a halt barely a meter away. The
troopers went on shooting, pumping four or five rounds each into the sauroid;
that was experience, not nervousness.
Foley quieted his dog,
fighting to control his own breathing. He'd done his share of hunting for duty
back home in Descott, although he'd never much enjoyed it. But Descott was too
arid to support many big carnivores, the more so as the grazing sauroids had
all been shot out long ago. A pack of man-high sicklefeet, of which there were
plenty, were just as dangerous. But not nearly so nerve-wracking.
"Sorry for the
interruption," he said, turning back to Otto Witton. The Brigadero's hands
were still making grasping motions, as if reaching for a nonexistent gun.
"They ah, they
usually don't—"
"—come so near
men," Foley finished for him. "Except when we make it safe for them
by killing each other off."
Which happened fairly
often: one reason why it was so easy for land to slip back into barbarism. Once
a tipping-point of reduced population was reached the native wildlife was
impossible to keep down. How anyone could think that the Spirit of Man was of this
Earth was beyond him, when Man was so obviously unsuited to living here. It
probably wasn't the time for a theological controversy, though.
"Thank you,"
the older man said. He inclined his head toward his men, most of them too
exhausted even to run when the carnosaur appeared.
"Danad,"
Foley said in his native tongue: it's nothing.
Witton took a deep
breath, coughed, and began: "Ingreid's got about—"
* * *
"Ser," Antin
M'lewis said. " 'Bout six thousand of 'em, workin' ter ourn left, through
thet swamp."
Raj nodded, looking
southeast. The main force of the Brigade host had shaken itself out into battle
formation, although that had taken most of the morning. The countryside here
was almost tabletop flat, planted in grain where it wasn't marsh. There were
still an intimidating number of the enemy, stretching in regular blocks from
one end of sight to another, but they were advancing very slowly. Noon sun cast
back eye-hurting flickers from edged metal and banners, but there was a
tattered look to the enemy formations even at this distance.
"Is it my
imagination," Gerrin said, focusing his binoculars, "or are they even
slower than usual?"
"One-third of them
aren't mounted any more," Raj replied.
They both grimaced;
scouts had found charred dog-bones in the Brigaderos' campfires, the last
couple of days. That was not quite cannibalism, but fairly close for a nobleman
bred to the saddle. The enemy might be barbarians, but they were gentlemen of a
sort. It probably came no easier to them than it would to either of the
Descotters, or to any Messer.
"Well, we've cost
them a day," Gerrin said.
"Indeed. Grammeck,
stand ready to give them a quick three-round stonk when they get in range, then
pull out.
"Jorg." Raj
raised his voice slightly; Menyez was on his long-legged riding steer, and the
beast liked dogs no better than its master. "Get the infantry back,
mounted and moving."
"We'll
backpedal?" Staenbridge said.
Raj shook his head.
"Take the cavalry, loop over and have a slap at that flanking
column," he said. "M'lewis, you and the Forty Thieves accompany.
We'll cover your flank. Don't push unless you take them by surprise; if you do,
run them into the marsh."
Gerrin nodded, tapping
on his gauntlets and watching the Brigade army. "Maybe it's my classical
education," he said, "but don't you get a sort of unfulfilled feeling
at winding up a campaign without a grand climactic battle?"
"I certainly think
Ingreid would like to go out in a blaze of glory rather than lose to runny guts
and no rations," Raj said. "Personally, it's my ambition to set a new
standard someday by winning an entire war without ever actually fighting. This
one, you'll note, is not over yet."
The five thousand Civil
Government troops along the gunline stood, turned and marched smartly to the
rear as the trumpets blared. They were not exactly on a ridge, this terrain
didn't have anything worthy of the name, but there was a very slight swelling.
Enough to hide the fact that they'd mounted and ridden off, rather than just
countermarching and ready to reappear as they'd done half a dozen times.
"And it's only
another week to Carson Barracks," Raj said.
"Ten days, if
Ingreid doesn't speed up," Gerrin replied. "See you at sundown, mi
heneral."
Raj stood for a moment,
looking at the advancing army. Waste, he thought. What a bloody
waste.
He didn't hate Ingreid
Manfrond for resisting. Raj Whitehall knew that it was absolutely necessary to
reunite Bellevue, but the Brigaderos didn't have his information. You couldn't
blame the Brigade's ruler for wanting to defend his people and hang onto his
position. It was the man's sheer lack of workmanship that offended Raj.
"General."
Cabot Clerett's salute
was precise. Raj returned the gesture.
"Colonel."
They walked into the
tent and sat, waiting silently while the orderly set out watered wine.
"A first-class
encampment," Raj said.
It was: right at the
edge of the causeway that carried road and railway to Carson Barracks, and
hence commanding the canal as well. Clerett had dug the usual pentagonal fort
with ditch and bastions, but he'd worked a small Brigadero fort into one wall,
making the position very strong. It smelled dismally of swamp and the stingbugs
were something fierce, but the men and dogs were neatly encamped, drainage
ditches and latrines dug, purifying vats set up for drinking water. He'd made
it larger than necessary, too; with some outlying breastworks, it would do for
the whole force at a pinch and as long as they didn't have to stay too long.
"However, Ingreid
should be here in about a day or so," Raj went on.
Cabot leaned forward.
The past few months had fined down his face and added wrinkles to it as well;
he looked older than his years now, stronger, more certain of himself.
Not without
justification, Raj thought grudgingly. It had been a daredevil campaign,
but apart from the recklessness of the concept quite skillfully managed. The
man could command.
"And we're between
him and his capital!" Clerett said, striking the table with his fist. The
clay cups skittered on the rough planks of the trestle, which looked as if
they'd been salvaged from some local stable. "We've got him trapped."
"Well, that's one
way of looking at it," Raj nodded. "Or you might say that he'll have
us between his field army and the garrison of Carson Barracks, who together
outnumber us by about five to one."
Clerett's hand clenched
on the table. "I consider it absolutely essential," he said, his
voice a little higher, "to maintain my force in its present position. If
Ingreid gets behind the fortifications of Carson Barracks, he can bring
supplies in through the swamp channels, or move troops out—it could take years
to complete this conquest if we were to allow that."
"Reconquest,"
Raj said, sipping some of the sour wine and looking out the open flap of the
tent. "It's a reconquest."
The sun was setting over
the swamps, red light on the clouds along the horizon, shadow on the tall
feathery-topped reeds. The milk-white fronds dipped and billowed across the
huge marsh, tinged with blood-crimson. Above them the sky was darkening to
purple.
"You consider it absolutely
essential?" he went on. Clerett nodded curtly, and Raj smiled.
"Well, then it's fortunate I agree with you, isn't it, Colonel?"
Clerett nodded again,
looking away. He still needed to do that, not experienced enough to hide his
expression completely. "I've been in correspondence with Marie
Manfrond—Marie Welf, she prefers—since I got here last week," he said neutrally.
"Excellent; so have
I. Or rather, so has Lady Whitehall."
"Suz—Lady Whitehall
is here?" Clerett asked. His hand tightened on the cup.
"Indeed. So we're
aware of the supply situation in Carson Barracks." And I hope she's not
aware of dissension in our ranks, Raj added to himself. Maintaining
psychological dominance over a proud and intelligent barbarian like Ingreid's
unwilling wife was difficult enough.
Clerett cleared his
throat. "What about Ingreid? I've got about a week's supplies."
"I've got three
days. Ingreid doesn't have a supply situation . . . but he's a stubborn
fellow, and he may be learning. We wouldn't want to have him move north up the
Padan and entrench in Empirhado or one of the riverport towns."
Clerett shook his head.
"No more sieges," he agreed.
"Well." Raj
stood. "I'd better see to settling the main force," he went on.
"If you'd care to join us for luncheon tomorrow, we could settle
plans."
There was something
pathetic in the way Clerett thanked a man he hated for the invitation.
* * *
"I hope you're
feeling well," Raj said.
Teodore Welf looked from
Raj's face to Suzette's, to the Companions grouped around the table. The
Expeditionary Force was digging in outside, and this inn at the head of the
causeway had been selected as the praetorium at the center of the encampment.
"Thank you,
Excellency," he said. "The dog-litter wasn't too uncomfortable, and
the ribs are healing fine. The priests say I can ride now." His arm was
still in a cast and strapped to his chest, but that was to be expected.
"Although at the rate I've been going this past year, my skeleton is going
to look like a jigsaw puzzle."
Raj nodded; broken bones
were a hazard of their profession. "I've brought you here to discuss a few
things," he said. Young Teodore had talked a little with him, rather more
with Ludwig Bellamy and some of the Companions, and Suzette had ridden by his
litter a good deal.
He nodded at the pile of
letters before the Brigadero noble. "You can see your cousin Marie doesn't
think much of Ingreid Manfrond's stewardship."
Teodore nodded
cautiously, running his good hand through his long strawberry blond hair.
"I may have made a mistake supporting Manfrond for General," he
admitted. "In which case the marriage was an . . . ah, unnecessary
sacrifice."
"Let's put it this
way," Raj said. "Ingreid Manfrond came at me with rather more than a
hundred thousand fighting men—about half the home-levy of the Brigade, and the
better half. Right now, between disease, desertion and battle, in the siege and
the retreat, he's down to about forty-five thousand, all starving. While we're
stronger than we were when we started."
Teodore nodded,
tight-lipped. Raj went on: "Now, let's say Ingreid has the sense to
retreat, heading for the north or even the Costa dil Orrehene in the far west.
He'd be lucky to have twenty thousand by the time he reached safe territory
where I'd have to let him break contact. Personally I think every man with him
would die or desert before then. But say he did, and raised another hundred
thousand men, stripping your garrisons in the north. That'd be the last of your
fighting men this generation. Do you think he'd do any better in a return
match?"
Teodore hesitated for a
long moment. "No," he said finally.
Center's grid dropped
down around the young man's face, showing heat distribution, capillary flow,
pupil dilation.
subject teodore
welf is sincere, probability 96% ± 2.
"Ingreid Manfrond
isn't the only noble of the blood of the Amalsons," Teodore said. Beads of
sweat showed on his forehead, although the evening was mild.
Raj nodded again.
"There is that," he said. "But honestly now, could any of the
likely candidates—could you, for example—do more than prolong the war even more
disastrously for the Brigade—given the situation as it now exists?"
The pause was much
longer this time. "No, curse you," he said at last, his voice a
little thick. "Ingreid's tossed away the flower of our strength and handed
you half the Western Territories on a platter. The south and the coastal cities
will go over to you like a shot; there are hardly any Unit Brothers down there
anyway. We'd end up squeezed between you and the Stalwarts and Guard to the
north and ground into dogmeat. It might last one year, maybe two or three, but
that's it."
subject teodore welf is sincere, probability
91% ±3, Center said. high
probability of mental reservations to do with period after your departure.
Teodore sighed and
relaxed in his chair. "Anyway, I don't have to worry about it
anymore, Excellent Heneralissimo."
Raj grinned, a
disquieting expression, and jerked his chin toward the door. "On the
contrary," he said. "Outside there is a saddled dog, with that priest
of your household on another. This," he slid a paper across the table,
"is a safe conduct through our lines."
The blue eyes narrowed
in suspicion. "Your terms, Lord Whitehall?"
"No terms,"
Raj said, spreading his hands. "I make you a gift of your freedom. Do with
it what you will."
The Brigadero picked up
the paper and examined the seals, gaining a few seconds time. "How do you
know I won't advise Ingreid to resist and tell him what I know of your
dispositions?" he said.
"I don't," Raj
replied. "But I'm fairly sure of your intelligence . . . and your regard for your people." Also
of your hatred of Ingreid and regard for the fortunes of the House of Welf, but
let's be polite.
An orderly came in with
Welf's sword-belt. The weapon was in its scabbard, the flap neatly buckled over
the butt of the revolver opposite it. Teodore stared at him wonderingly as he
stood to let the man buckle it about him. Then his face firmed, and he made a
formal bow.
"Messer
Heneralissimo, Messa Whitehall, messers," he said, and turned on his heel
to walk out into the gathering darkness.
"That was a bit of
a risk," Jorg Menyez said soberly.
"About a
nine-tenths chance I'm right," Raj said. He looked around at the
Companions and his wife. "And now we can expect another guest."
* * *
"Ser."
Raj shot upright, hand
going to the pistol beneath his pillow. Suzette sat up beside him, a gleam in
the darkness of the room. The voice came again from outside the door.
Raj padded over to it,
pulling on his uniform trousers. "Yes?" he said, walking out into the
ready room.
"Shootin' in t'
barb camp," M'lewis said.
"The
Skinners?"
"Barb guns,
ser," the ferret-faced scout said. There was burnt cork on his cheeks and
a black knit cap over his hair; the testimony was first-hand. "Purty
heavy, then dyin' away."
"Shall I beat to arms,
mi heneral?" Tejan M'Brust asked; he was officer of the night
watch.
Raj blinked and looked
out the window. Maxiluna three handsbreadths from the horizon, near the Saber.
Four hours until dawn.
"No," he said.
"Let the men get their sleep." To M'lewis. "Keep an eye on
things, but don't interfere unless they move out of their camp."
* * *
Raj waited impassively,
seated at the head of the long table. It was an hour short of noon; formalities
with safe-conducts and protocol had eaten the hours since dawn. The common room
of the inn was severely plain, whitewashed stone walls, hearth, long table, all
brightly lit through tall windows flung open to the mild humid air. The inlaid
platinum mace of office lay in front of Raj; his personal banner and the
Starburst of Holy Federation stood against the wall behind him, but otherwise
he hadn't made any effort to fancy it up. Some of the officers standing behind
and to either side of him were talking softly. Cabot Clerett was stock-still
but fairly quivering with tension. Once or twice Raj thought he was actually
going to walk out on the ceremony, and only a word from Suzette in his ear
calmed him down a little.
At last a snarl of
Brigade kettledrums sounded outside, answered by a lilt of bugles. Boots
crashed to earth as the honor guard presented arms. Bartin Foley's clear
baritone announced:
"Her
Illustriousness, Marie Welf, Provisional Regent of the Brigade. His
Formidability, Teodore Welf, Grand Constable of the Brigade."
Foley marched through,
saluted, and dropped to parade rest beside the door.
"The Heneralissimo
Supremo; Sword-Bearing Guard to the Sovereign Mighty Lord and Sole Autocrat
Governor Barholm Clerett; possessor of the proconsular authority for the
Western Territories; three times hailed Savior of the State, Sword of the
Spirit of Man, Raj Ammenda Halgren da Luis Whitehall! The Heneralissimo will
receive the Regent and Grand Constable. Enter, please."
The two young Welfs
walked in proudly, Marie's hand resting on her cousin's good arm. Raj raised a
mental eyebrow as he watched the woman's cold hawk-face; beautiful enough, but
Ingreid might as well have taken a sicklefoot to his bed, if it had been
against her will. They halted across the table from him; Teodore bowed, and
Marie made a formal curtsey. Silence fell, until breathing and the low tick of
a pendulum clock in one corner were the loudest sounds.
Raj took the victor's
privilege. "What of General Ingreid Manfrond, who I assumed ruled the
Brigade?" He kept his voice carefully neutral.
"Ex-General Ingreid
has been deposed by the assembly-in-arms," Teodore said, meeting Raj's
eyes levelly. "For treasonous incompetence. Civilian authority has been
vested in Marie Welf as nearest in blood to the last legitimate General, and
military authority in myself. Ingreid Manfrond was placed under arrest last
night. Unfortunately, he killed himself before he could be brought for
trial."
Raj nodded; Marie Welf was
wearing a black ribbon on one arm in formal token of mourning. She was also
wearing the ceremonial laser-pistol of the General's over a gown stiff with
gold embroidery and silver lace.
"I take it this
embassy is recognition of defeat?" Raj went on.
Two more stiff bows.
This time Marie spoke, in a husky contralto. "Heneralissimo, as the
Brigade's armies are still in the field, I request terms of surrender
equivalent to those given the Squadron nobles who surrendered before the final
battles in the Southern Territories."
Ah, shrewd, Raj thought.
Technically reasonable, and it would preserve two-thirds of the landholdings of
individual Brigade members, rather than the one-third he'd been granting up to
now.
"I'll certainly
recommend those terms to the Sovereign Mighty Lord," Raj said judiciously.
Whoever ended up as Vice-Governor out here was going to need the Brigaderos in
a not-too-sullen mood. "And I'm sure those of my officers with influence
at court will as well."
That was Cabot Clerett's
cue. After an embarrassing pause, he spoke in a tone suggesting that the words
were being dragged out of concrete:
"I will certainly
recommend that course to the Sole Rightful Autocrat."
Raj resumed:
"Unfortunately, pending confirmation from East Residence all I can accept
is unconditional surrender."
Marie stiffened, but
Teodore leaned over to whisper in her ear. "Very well," she said
bleakly, and drew the ancient laser. She stepped forward to lay it on the table
before Raj; Teodore followed with his sword.
Raj nodded, smiling. It
took several years off his face. "I'll have rations sent to your camp
immediately, Grand Constable," he said. "We'll return the men to
their homes as rapidly as possible. Please, be seated."
Suzette went round the
table to draw Marie Welf to a chair. "I have been looking forward to
meeting you in person," she said. "This is Colonel Clerett, nephew to
the Governor . . ."
* * *
The citizens of Carson
Barracks watched in silence as Raj Whitehall rode through the gates, following
the Starburst flag of the Civil Government. Their silence seemed more stunned
than hostile, as they crowded thickly before the low squat buildings and the
barbaric ornament of gilded terracotta; lines of infantry kept them from the
pavement. Paws thudded, the ironshod wheels of the guns rumbled over granite
paving blocks and the hobnailed boots of marching foot soldiers crashed down.
The column was thick with banners, color-parties representing all the units.
The cheering started as the color party trotted into the central square; it was
packed with the orderly ranks of the Expeditionary Force. Bannermen peeled off
to stand before their comrades as Raj rode on to the steps of the palace,
beneath the three-story columns shaped in the form of Federation landing boats.
The noise beat at him
like surf as he pulled Horace to a halt. Teodore Welf stood to hold his bridle
as he swung down; Raj waited until Suzette's fingers rested on his swordarm
before he began to climb the steps. The mace of office and symbol of the
proconsular power was in the crook of his left elbow, responsibility heavier
than worlds. The Companions followed him in a jingle of spurs on marble.
He stopped at the top of
the stairs, turned to face the assembled ranks and held up his right hand for
silence. It fell slowly.
"Fellow
soldiers," he began. Another long swelling roar. "I said when we started
this campaign a year ago"-was it that long since Stern Isle?-"that
you needn't fear to face any troops in the world. You've met an army ten times
your numbers, and beaten it utterly. Your discipline, your courage, your
endurance have won a victory for the Civil Government that men will remember
for ever. I'm proud to have commanded you."
He bowed his head in
salute. This time the sound of his name beat back from the high buildings
surrounding the square like thunder echoing down a canyon.
"RAJ! RAJ! RAJ!"
Helmets went up on rifles, bobbing in rhythm to the chant. Yet when he raised
his hand again, silence fell as if the sound had been cut off by a knife-blade.
"And the first
thing I want you to do with your donative of six months' pay—" he
cut off the gathering yell with a gesture "—is drink to our fallen
comrades." That sobered the crowd a little.
"The Spirit has
uploaded their souls to Its net. For the Spirit's sake, and theirs, and mine,
remember that this land and these people are now also subjects of the Civil
Government of Holy Federation, not our enemies." He smiled and made a
broad gesture. "Remember that, and have fun, lads—you've earned it.
Dismissed to quarters!"
He turned through the
great bronze doors with an inward sigh of relief. The Spirit knew the men
deserved the donative, and congratulations from their commander, but he'd never
liked public speaking. Worse, there was always the risk some overenthusiastic
imbecile would start hailing him with Gubernatorial honors, which rulers far
less suspicious than Barholm Clerett would neither forget nor forgive.
The dying cheers were
faint inside the great hall. Here the only soldiers were those who lined the
red-carpeted passageway to the high seat of the Generals. They snapped to attention
and presented arms as Raj passed by; he was conscious of six hundred years of
history looking down from the walls. Six hundred years since Teodore Amalson
conquered Old Residence and started this building; nearly that since his
grandson finished it. Never in all that time had men in the uniform of the
Civil Government entered here armed. That was not the only first today. Star
Spirit priests proceeded him, swinging their censers of incense and chanting.
Behind the seat the double lightning-flash of the Brigade was hidden by a huge
Starburst banner. Other banners lay piled on the steps, Brigade battle-flags.
It was all highly
symbolic, and from their stunned expressions the Brigade nobles who made up
most of the audience appreciated every nuance. Raj paced up to the Seat,
treading banners underfoot. Suzette stopped at the lower Consort's seat; Raj
turned at the top of the dais and raised the mace of office. Save for the
soldiers braced to attention, every head sank low in bow or curtsey, holding
the posture until he sank back to the cushions.
"The Western
Territories have returned to the care of Holy Federation, forever," he
said. "And now, gentlemen, we have a great deal to do."
"Spirit, has it
only been a month?" Raj said, looking down the table. The staff meeting
had taken several hours, and it was not the only official gathering of his
working day. "Middle age and Bureaucrat's Bottom is creeping up on all of
us."
"Good work,
Muzzaf." He tapped the sheaf of billeting and supply files before him.
"Without you, we'd have had to do all this ourselves."
The slimly elegant
Komarite bowed in his chair. "Willingly I suffer the emplumpment of the
civil service in your cause," he said.
The Companions grinned;
a few groaned in sympathy.
"One of us should
escape," Gerrin Staenbridge said, leaning back and puffing on his cheroot.
"Somebody's going to have to deal with the west coast."
Nods of agreement: the
Forker family still had many partisans on the Costa Dil Orrehene, beyond the
Ispirito mountains. A good many of them had refused to come in and swear
allegiance.
"None of you,"
Raj said, "I'm going to quarter Juluk and his Skinners out there until
they see the merits of law, order and submission."
After a moment's
silence, Jorg Menyez spoke. "Now that is what they call an elegant solution,"
he said with a slow smile. His infantry were in charge of keeping order in the
billeting zone, which was a fair definition of "utter futility" where
Skinners were concerned.
"Kaltin, you will
be getting out of town," Raj went on. "The Stalwarts have been
making trouble north of Lis Plumhas. I want you to take your 7th, the 9th and
11th Descott Dragoons, 27th and 31st Diva Valley Rangers, the 3rd Novy
Haifa, and the 14th Komar and go put a stop to it. You'll pick up fifteen
thousand Brigade troops from the northern garrisons; don't hesitate to listen
to their officers, they've had experience with the savages."
Kaltin nodded eagerly,
then paused. "Ah, those are mostly Clerett's troops, aren't they?"
"No, they're the
Civil Government's troops," Raj said coldly. "And it's about time
they were reminded of it. Since Colonel Clerett prefers to remain in the
city"-and sniff around my wife, damn him-"I'm sending them
with you."
His tone returned to
normal. "Incidentally, no prisoners, and you're authorized to counterraid
across the frontier once you've disposed of those on our soil. With Stalwarts,
you have to speak in a language they understand."
"I'd have to swear
eternal brotherhood with them before killing them, to make them really
comfortable," Kaltin said. "Actually, I'm fairly glad to get away
from my own household right now."
A chuckle ran through
the other men. "You really should slow down," someone said.
"You'll wear yourself away to a sylph."
Kaltin gave him a look
of affronted virtue. "It's Jaine, the little mophead I rescued from the
Skinners? It turned out she was some sort of fifth grand-niece of the family
I'm billeted with here."
"That's a
problem?" Raj asked.
"No, floods of
happy tears and she's off to the kinfolk and I'd be a fool to object, wouldn't
I? Only Mitchi turns out to have gotten attached to the girl and she's moping
and blaming me."
"Get her pregnant,
man," Tejan M'Brust said.
"She is pregnant.
Have you ever slept with a woman who pukes every morning?" Gerrin made a tsk
sound. "Easy for you to say. In any event, I'm glad to be on my
way back to the field."
"Quickly," Raj
said. "And take the Forty Thieves with you."
Antin M'lewis looked up;
his men were enjoying themselves in Carson Barracks, and only a few had been
caught as yet.
"The Honorable
Fedherko Chivrez is coming to join us," Raj said. "As the Governor's
representative in the field." At the others' blank look: "He was Director
of Supply in Komar back a couple of years."
Muzzaf Kerpatik swore
sharply in a Sponglish whose sing-song Borderer accent was suddenly very
strong.
Kaltin frowned.
"Not the cheating bastard who tried to stiff us on the supplies just
before the El Djem raid?"
"Just the one. And
the one you and Evrard ran out a closed window headfirst, then held while Antin
here started to flay him from the feet up."
"It worked,"
Kaltin pointed out.
Raj nodded. "And I
still want both of you out of town when he arrives, which could be any
time."
"Chivrez is
Tzetzas' dog," Muzzaf cut in. "And the Chancellor never forgets an
injury."
"Agreed," Raj
said. "See to it you're gone by this time tomorrow." The two men
left.
"If there's nothing
else?"
Ludwig Bellamy coughed
politely. "Ah, mi heneral, Marie and Teodore would like a word with
you this evening. Confidential."
Raj raised a brow,
caught by something unusual in the young man's tone. "By all means,"
he said.
"I thought I might
be there," Ludwig said. "And possibly Gerrin?"
Raj leaned back in his
chair. "They requested that?" he said, his eyes narrowing slightly.
Ludwig flushed slightly
and looked at his fingernails. "No, it was just a thought."
"Then I'll see them
alone in my private office in—" he consulted a watch "—twenty
minutes. If that's all, messers? Not you, Gerrin."
When they were alone:
"What was that in aid of, do you know?"
"Not really,"
the other man said, taking out a small ivory-handled knife and trimming a
fingernail. "Ludwig has been talking to me of late . . . and not for the
sake of my winsome charm, worse luck. I think he's worried about this
administrator they're sending out; he's convinced it would be a mistake to
replace you so soon, if that's what he's going to do."
"I was never much
good at overseeing civilians," Raj pointed out.
"These Brigaderos
are scarcely that, my friend. They're used to a strong hand. And they
respect you, which they wouldn't some lard-bottomed penpusher from East
Residence. Things need to settle down here. A year as proconsular governor
would be a good idea; five would be better."
"A year might be
advisable but it's unlikely, and five is neither," Raj replied. It was
firm Civil Government policy never to unite military and civil command except
in emergencies.
He tapped a thumb
against his chin. "Ludwig's also been seeing a good deal of the late
Ingreid Manfrond's widow, hasn't he?"
"My delectable
young Arab conduit to the gossip pipeline tells me so. Ludwig's been hunting
with Teodore a good deal, too. Hadrosauroid heads and deep conversation. I
don't think you have to fear conspiracy; Ludwig's still of an age for
hero-worship, and you're it."
"Conspiracy against
me, no," Raj said. "Hmmm. Ludwig and Marie . . . that might not be a
bad thing, in the right circumstances."
Those being a new
address in East Residence for Marie Welf . . . or Bellamy, as she would be
then. Teodore would probably be welcomed there also, encouraged to have the
revenues of his estates shipped east, given lands and office, and never, never
allowed west of the Kelden Straits again.
"In any case, stick
around, wouldn't you?"
* * *
Raj's private office was
fairly small; he'd never felt comfortable working in a room that had to be
measured in hectares. It gave off the bedchamber he shared with Suzette, which was
that sort of place, and he supposed it must have been a maid's on-call room
before the Palace changed hands. He'd had the plain walls fitted with bookcases
and map-frames, and a solid desk moved in. Right now the overhead lantern and
the low coal fire made it seem cozy rather than bleak, and he smiled as he
welcomed the two young Welf nobles. The smile was genuine enough. Teodore was a
likeable young spark, an educated man in his way, and he had the makings of a
first-class soldier. Marie was just as able in her own way, if a bit alarming.
And she'll probably lead
poor Ludwig a devil's dance, he thought, but that was—might be—Bellamy's
problem.
"Be seated,
please," he said. "Now, you had something you wished to discuss with
me?"
The two Brigaderos
glanced at each other. He nodded. "That door gives on to my bedchamber,
and it's bolted from the other side," he said encouragingly. "The
other door leads to a corridor with a guard party ten meters away. It's quite
private."
Marie gripped the arms
of her chair. "Heneralissimo Supremo," she said, in fluent but
gutturally accented Sponglish, "we have come to discuss the future of the
world . . . starting with the Western Territories."
Raj leaned back in the
swivel-mounted seat. "Illustrious Lady, I'd say that particular issue has
been settled rather definitely."
"No, it
hasn't," Marie replied. "You've said you want to unite the
Earth."
"Bellevue,"
Raj corrected. "I've been instructed to unite the planet Bellevue,
yes." Exactly by whom he'd been instructed was something they had no need
to know.
"We believe—almost
all the Brigade now believes—that you've been sent by the Spirit to do just
that," Marie said passionately. There was a high flush on her cheeks, and
her eyes glowed. "How else could you have defeated the greatest warriors
in the world with a force so tiny?"
Teodore coughed
discreetly; his sword-arm was out of its cast, although still a little weak.
"I think I can speak for the Brigade's fighting men," he said.
"That's about their opinion too, although not everyone puts it down to the
Spirit. Some of them just think you're the greatest commander in history."
"I'm
flattered," Raj said dryly. "The Sovereign Mighty Lord has many able
servants, though."
"To the Outer Dark
with Barholm Clerett!" Marie burst out. "We've all heard of his
ingratitude to you, his suspicion and threats—and we've all heard of his other
servants, Chancellor Tzetzas and his ilk who'd skin a ghost for its hide."
Teodore leaned forward.
"Barholm didn't conquer the Western Territories," he said. "You
did. We're offering you the Brigade, as General—and with the Brigade, the world.
You want to unite it? We'll back you, and with you to lead and train us nothing
can stop us. Your own troops will follow you to Hell; they already have,
many times. That'll give you the cadre you need. In five years you'll march in
triumph into East Residence; in ten, into Al Kebir. Your Companions will be
greater than kings, and your sons' sons will rule human kind forever!"
Whatever I expected, it
wasn't this, Raj thought.
Marie was leaning
forward, fists clenched at her throat and eyes shining. Raj looked from one
eager young face to the other, and temptation plowed a fist into his belly. The
taste was raw and salty at the back of his throat. He kept most of it off his
face, but neither of the Brigaderos were fools. They exchanged a triumphant
glance, and would have spoken if he had not held up a hand.
"If—" he
cleared his throat. "If you wouldn't mind waiting for me in the conference
room, messer, messa?"
"I could do
it," he whispered into the hush of the room. Aloud: "I could."
It wouldn't even be all
that difficult. The Western Territories were naturally rich, and they had at
least a smattering of civilized skills among the native aristocracy and
cityfolk. The Brigade hadn't known how to use them, but he would. Grammeck
Dinnalsyn could have the factories here producing Armory rifles in a few
months. Lopeyz was a better fleet commander than any Barholm had on the
payroll. They could snap up Stern Isle and the Southern Territories before
winter closed the sea lanes. That would give them sulfur, saltpeter, copper and
zinc enough. Modern artillery would be more difficult, but not impossible.
In a year he would have
a hundred thousand men trained up to a standard nobody on Bellevue could match.
The Skinners would flock to his standard. With men like Muzzaf to help organize
the logistics and a fleet built in the shipyards of Old Residence and
Veronique, they could-
observe, Center said.
* * *
—and Raj Whitehall rode
through the streets of a ruined East Residence. Crowds cheered his name with
hysterical abandon, even though the harbor was filled with fire and sunken
hulks.
Chancellor Tzetzas spat
on the guards who dragged him before the firing squad. Barholm wept and begged.
. . .
Maps appeared before his
eyes; blocks and arrows feinting and lunging along the upper Drangosh. The
towers of Al Kebir burning, and one-eyed Tewfik kneeling to present his
scimitar. Fleets ramming and cannonading on a sea of azure, and the white walls
of cities he'd only read of, Zanj and Azanian. The Whitehall banner floated
above them.
Raj Whitehall sat on a
throne of gold and diamond, and men of races he'd never heard of knelt before
him with tribute and gifts . . .
. . . and he lay ancient and white-haired in
a vast silken bed. Muffled chanting came from outside the window, and a priest
prayed quietly. A few elderly officers wept, but the younger ones eyed each
other with undisguised hunger, waiting for the old king to die.
One bent and spoke in
his ear. "Who?" he said. "Who do you leave the scepter to?"
The ancient Raj's lips
moved. The officer turned and spoke loudly, drowning out the whisper: "He
says, to the strongest."
Armies clashed, in
identical green uniforms and carrying his banner. Cities burned. At last there
was a peaceful green mound that only the outline of the land showed had once
been the Gubernatorial Palace in East Residence. Two men worked in
companionable silence by a campfire, clad only in loincloths of tanned hide.
One was chipping a spearpoint from a piece of ancient window, the shaft and
binding thongs ready to hand. His fingers moved with sure skill, using a bone
anvil and striker to spall long flakes from the green glass. His comrade worked
with equal artistry, butchering a carcass with a heavy hammerstone and slivers
of flint. It took a moment to realize that the body had once been human.
* * *
Raj grunted, shaking his
head. Couldn't my sons-he began.
any children of yourself and lady whitehall
will be female, Center said relentlessly. genetic analysis indicates a high probability
of forceful and intelligent personalities, but the probability of any such
issue maintaining stability after your death is too low to be meaningfully
calculated.
I could pick a
successor, adopt—
irrelevant, Center went on. the ruling structure of the civil government
will never voluntarily submit to rule from outside—and you would represent a
regime centered on the western territories. to force submission you would be
compelled to smash the only governmental structure capable of ruling bellevue
as anything but a collection of feudal domains. this historical cycle would
resume its progression toward maximum entropy at an accelerated rate upon your
death.
Better for
civilization that I'd never been born, Raj thought dully. The
residue of the visions shook him like marsh-fever.
in that scenario, correct. Center's voice
was always wholly calm, but he had experience enough to detect a tinge of
compassion in its overtones. i
pointed out that your role in my plan would not result in optimization of your
world-line from a personal perspective.
Raj shook his head
ruefully. That you did, he thought.
Voices sounded from the
bedchamber, raised in argument. The bolt shot back and Cabot Clerett came
through behind a levelled revolver—one of Raj's own, he noticed in the sudden
diamond-bright concentration of adrenaline. The younger man was panting, and
his shirt was torn open, but the muzzle drew an unwavering bead on Raj's center
of mass.
"Traitor,"
Clerett barked. His heel pushed the door closed behind him. "I suspected
it and now I can prove it."
Raj forced himself out
of a crouch, made his voice soft. "Colonel Cabot, you can scarcely expect
to shoot down your superior officer in the middle of his headquarters," he
said. "Put the gun down. We'll all be back in East Residence soon, and you
can bring any charges you please before the Chair."
Which will
believe anything you care to say, he thought. With a competent general as heir, Raj
Whitehall became much more expendable.
"Back to East Residence,"
Cabot laughed. His face was fixed in a snarl, and the smell of his sweat was
acrid. "Yes, with a barbarian army at your back. Your henchmen may kill me
afterwards, but I'm going to free the Civil Government of your threat,
Whitehall—if it is the last thing I do."
The door opened behind
Clerett and Suzette stepped through; she was dressed in a frilled silk
nightgown, but the Colonial repeating-carbine in her hands had a well-oiled
deadliness. Clerett caught the widening of Raj's eyes as they stared over his
shoulder. The trick is old, but the breeze must have warned him. He took a
half-step to the side, to where he could see the doorway out of the corner of
his eye and still keep the gun on Raj.
Suzette spoke, her voice
sharp and clear. "Put the gun down, Cabot. I don't want to hurt you."
"You don't know—you
didn't hear," Cabot shouted. "He's a traitor. He's even more
unworthy of you than he is of the trust Uncle placed in him. I'll free both of
you from him."
A sharp rap sounded at
the other door. Everyone in the study started, but Cabot brought the gun back
around with deadly speed. He was young and fit and well-practiced, and Raj knew
there was no way he could leap the space between them without taking at least
one of the wadcutter bullets, more likely two or three.
"Mi heneral, the
Honorable Fedherko Chivrez has arrived." Gerrin's voice was as suave as
ever; only someone who knew him well could catch the undertone of strain and
fear. "He insists that you grant him audience at once to hear the orders
of the Sovereign Mighty Lord."
Cabot's snarl turned to
a smile of triumph. His finger tightened on the trigger-
—and the carbine barked.
The bullet was fired from less than a meter away, close enough that the
muzzle-blast pocked the skin behind his right ear with grains of black powder.
The entry-wound was a small round hole, but the bullet was hollowpoint and it
blasted a fist-sized opening in his forehead, the splash of hot brain and
bone-splinters missing Raj to spatter across his desk. Clerett's eyes bulged
with the hydrostatic shock transmitted through his brain tissue, and his lips
parted in a single rubbery grimace. Then he fell face down, to lie in a
spreading pool of blood.
Strong shoulders crashed
into the door. Raj moved with blurring speed, snatching the carbine out of
Suzette's hands so swiftly that the friction-burns brought an involuntary cry
of pain. He pivoted back towards the outer doorway.
Gerrin and Bartin Foley
crowded it; others were behind, Ludwig and the Welfs. Among them was a short
plump man in the knee-breeches and long coat and lace sabot that were civilian
dress in East Residence. His eyes bulged too, as they settled on Cabot Clerett.
Raj spoke, his voice
loud and careful. "There's been a terrible accident," he said.
"Colonel Clerett was examining the weapon, and he was unfamiliar with the
mechanism. I accept full responsibility for this tragic mishap."
Silence fell in the
room, amid the smell of powder-smoke and the stink of blood and wastes voided
at death. Everyone stared at the back of the dead man's head, and the neat
puncture behind his ear.
"Fetch a
priest," Raj went on. "Greetings, Illustrious Chivrez. My deepest
apologies that you come among us at such an unhappy time."
Chivrez' shock was
short-lived; he hadn't survived a generation of politics in the Civil
Government by cowardice, or squeamishness. Now he had to fight to restrain his
smile. Raj Whitehall was standing over the body of the Governor's heir and
literally holding a smoking gun.
He drew an envelope from
inside his jacket. "I bear the summons of the Sovereign Mighty Lord and
Sole Autocrat," he said. "Upon whom may the Spirit of Man of the
Stars shower Its blessings."
"Endfile,"
they all murmured.
A chaplain and two
troopers came in and rolled the body in a rug. Chivrez cut in sharply:
"The body is to be
embalmed for shipment to East Residence." Then he cleared his throat.
"You, General Whitehall, are to return to East Residence immediately to
account for your exercise of the authority delegated to you. Immediately. All
further negotiations with the Brigade will be conducted through me and my
staff."
"You won't do it,
will you, sir?" Ludwig Bellamy blurted.
Raj looked at the
bureaucrat's weasel eyes.
observe, Center said.
He saw those eyes again,
staring desperately into the underside of a silk pillow. The stubby limbs
thrashed against the bedclothes as the pillow was pressed onto his face. After
a few minutes they grew still; Ludwig Bellamy wrapped the body in the sheets
and hoisted it. Even masked, Raj recognized Gerrin Staenbridge as the one
holding open the door.
The scene shifted, to
the swamps outside Carson Barracks. The same men tipped a burlap-wrapped bundle
off the deck of a small boat. It vanished with scarcely a splash, weighed down
with lengths of chain and a cast-iron roundshot weighing forty kilos.
"Of course I'll
go," Raj said aloud. He looked at Chivrez and smiled. "You'll find my
officers very cooperative, and dedicated to good government," he said.
Raj's smile grew gentle
as he turned to Suzette; she stared at him appalled, her green eyes enormous
and her fingers white-knuckled where they gripped each other.
"It's my duty to
go," he went on.
observe, Center said.
This time the scene was
familiar. Raj lashed naked to an iron chair in a stone-walled room far beneath
the Palace in East Residence. The glowing iron came closer to his eyes, and
closer . . .
chance of personal survival if recall order
is obeyed is less than 27% ±6, Center said, chance of reunification of bellevue in this historical cycle is less
than 15% ±2 if order is refused, however.
"It's my duty to
go," Raj repeated. His head lifted, from pride and so that he wouldn't
have to see Suzette's eyes fill. "And may I always do my duty to the Spirit
of Man."
"Raj?" Thom
Poplanich muttered.
Then, slowly: "Raj,
how old are you?"
Raj Whitehall managed a
smile. "Thirty," he said.
The perfect mirrored
sphere of Sector Command and Control Unit AZ12-b14-c000 Mk. XIV's central . . .
being . . . showed an image which seemed to give the lie to that. It wasn't the
gray hairs or the scars on the backs of his hands that made him seem at least
forty, or ageless.
It was the eyes.
Thom looked at his own
image. Nothing at all had changed since that moment when he'd frozen into
immobility, five years ago. Not the unhealed shaving nick on his thin olive
cheek, or the tear in his floppy tweed trousers from a revolver bullet.
life is change, Center said. The voice
of the ancient computer was like their own thoughts, but with a vibrato
overtone that somehow carried a sense of immense weight like a pressure against
the film of consciousness. even
i change.
Raj and Thom looked up,
startled. "Center? You're alive?" Thom asked.
No words whispered in
their skull. Thom looked at his friend. Raj looks like an old man.
I haven't
changed a hair, outwardly . . . but that's the least of it. Five years of
mental communion with the machine that held all Mankind's accumulated
knowledge. Five years, or eternity. He thought of his life before that day, and
it was . . . unimaginable. Less real than the scenarios Center could spin from
webs of data and stochastic analysis.
The two men gripped
forearms, then exchanged the embrahzo of close friends. Thom could smell
coal-smoke and gun-oil on the wool of his friend's uniform jacket, that and
riding dogs and Suzette Whitehall's sambuca jasmine perfume.
The scents cut through
the icy certainties Center's teaching had implanted in his mind. Unshed tears
prickled at his eyes as he held the bigger man at arm's length.
"It's good to see
you again, my friend," he said quietly.
"Yes, that's . . .
well, I came to say goodbye."
"Goodbye?"
Thom asked sharply.
"That's
right," Raj said, turning slightly away. His eyes moved across the perfect
mirrored surface of the sphere, that impossibly reflected without distorting.
"Things . . . well, Cabot Clerett, the Governor's nephew" —and heir,
they both knew— "was along on the campaign. There were a number of
difficulties, and he, ah, was killed."
"Spirit of Man of
the Stars," Thom blurted. "You came back to East Residence
after that? Barholm was suspicious of you anyway."
Raj gave a small crooked
smile and shrugged. "I didn't reconquer the Southern and Western
Territories for the Civil Government just to set myself up as a warlord,"
he said. "Center said that would be worse for civilization than if I'd
never lived at all."
an oversimplification but accurate to within
93%, ±2, Center added remorselessly. Over the years their minds had learned
subtlety in interpreting that voice; there was a tinge of . . . not pity, but
perhaps compassion to it now. the
long-term prospects for restoration of the federation, here on bellevue and
eventually elsewhere in the human-settled galaxy, required raj whitehall's
submission to the civil authorities. too many generals have seized the chair by
force.
Thom nodded. The process
had started long before Bellevue was isolated by the destruction of its Tanaki
Spatial Displacement net. The Federation had been slagging down in civil wars
for a generation before that, biting out its own guts like a brain-shot
sauroid. The process had continued here in the thousand-odd years since, and
according to Center everywhere else in the human-settled galaxy as well.
"Couldn't Lady Anne
do something?" he asked. Barholm's consort was a close friend of Raj's
wife Suzette, had been since Anne was merely the . . . entertainer was the
polite phrase . . . that young Barholm had unaccountably married despite being
the Governor's nephew. The other court ladies had turned a cold shoulder back
before Barholm assumed the Chair; Suzette hadn't.
"She died four
months ago," Raj said. "Cancer."
A brief flash of vision:
a canopied bed, with the incense of the Star priests around it and the drone of
their prayers. A woman lying motionless, flesh fallen in on the strong handsome
bones of her face, hair a white cloud on the pillow with only a few streaks of
its mahogany red left. Suzette Whitehall sat at the bedside, one hand gripping
the ivory colored claw-hand of her dying friend. Her face was an expressionless
mask, but slow tears ran from the slanted green eyes and dripped down on the
priceless snowy torofib of the sheets.
"Damn," Thom
said. "I know she wanted every Poplanich dead, but . . . well, Anne had
twice Barholm's guts, and she was loyal to her friends, at least."
Raj nodded. "It was
right after that that I was suspended from my last
posting—Inspector-General—and my properties confiscated. Chancellor Tzetzas
handled it personally."
"That . . . that .
. . he gives graft a bad name," Thom spat.
Raj smiled wanly.
"Yes, if the Chancellor didn't hate me, I'd wonder what I was doing
wrong."
A flash from Center; a
tall thin man in a bureaucrat's court robe sitting at a desk. The room was
quietly elegant, dark, silent; a cigarette in a holder of carved sauroid ivory
rested in one slim-fingered hand. He signed a heavy parchment, dusted the ink
with fine sand, and smiled. A secretary sprang forward to melt wax for the seal
. . .
Raj nodded. "I
expect to be arrested at the levee this afternoon. Barholm's worried—"
Thom laid a hand on
Raj's shoulder. The muscle under the wool jacket was like india rubber. It
quivered with tension.
"You should
make yourself Governor, Raj," he said quietly. "Spirit knows, you
couldn't be worse than Barholm and his cronies."
Raj smiled, but he shook
his head. "Thanks, Thom—but if I have a gift for command, it's only
for soldiers. Civilians . . . I couldn't get three of them to follow me into a
whorehouse with an offer of free drinks and pussy. Not unless I had a squad
behind them with bayonets; and you can't govern that way, not for long.
I'd smash the machinery trying to make it work. Barholm is a son-of-a-bitch,
but he's a smart one. He knows how to stroke the bureaucracy and keep
the nobility satisfied, and he really is binding the Civil Government together
with his railroads and law reforms . . . granted a lot of his hangers-on are
getting rich in the process, but it's working. I couldn't do it. Not so's it'd
last past my lifetime."
observe:
* * *
—and they saw Raj
Whitehall on a throne of gold and diamond, and men of races they'd never heard
of knelt before him with tribute and gifts . . .
. . . and he lay ancient
and white-haired in a vast silken bed. Muffled chanting came from outside the
window, and a priest prayed quietly. A few elderly officers wept, but the
younger ones eyed each other with undisguised hunger, waiting for the old king
to die.
One bent and spoke in
his ear. "Who?" he said. "Who do you leave the keyboard and the
power to?"
The ancient Raj's lips
moved. The officer turned and spoke loudly, drowning out the whisper: "He
says, to the strongest."
Armies clashed, in
identical green uniforms and carrying Raj Whitehall's banner. Cities burned. At
last there was a peaceful green mound that only the outline of the land showed
had once been the Gubernatorial Palace in East Residence. Two men worked in
companionable silence by a campfire, clad only in loincloths of tanned hide.
One was chipping a spearpoint from a piece of an ancient window, the shaft and
binding thongs ready to hand. His fingers moved with sure skill, using a bone
anvil and striker to spall long flakes from the green glass. His comrade worked
with equal artistry, butchering a carcass with a heavy hammerstone and slivers
of flint. It took a moment to realize that the body had once been human.
* * *
Raj shivered. That
was the logical endpoint of the cycle of collapse here on Bellevue, and
throughout what had once been the Federation; if it wasn't prevented, there
would be savagery for fifteen thousand years before a new civilization arose.
The image had haunted him since Center first showed it. It felt true.
"Spirit knows, I
don't want Barholm's job," he went on. "I like to do what I do
well, and that isn't my area of expertise. The problem is getting Barholm to
understand that."
barholm's data gives him substantial reason
for apprehension, Center pointed out. not only does raj whitehall have the prestige of constant victory, but
more than sixteen battalions of the civil government's cavalry are now
comprised of ex-prisoners from the former military governments.
Squadrones and
Brigaderos; Namerique-speaking barbarians, descendants of Federation troops
gone savage up in the desolate Base Area of the far northwest. They'd swept
down and taken over huge chunks of the Civil Government, imposing their rule
and their heretical Spirit of Man of This Earth cult on the population. Nobody
had been able to do anything about it . . . until Barholm sent Raj Whitehall to
reconquer the barbarian realms of the Military Governments.
Governor Barholm had
officially proclaimed Raj the Sword of the Spirit of Man. The prisoners who'd
volunteered to serve the Civil Government had seen him in operation from both
sides. They believed that title.
"Then stay
here!" Thom said. "Center can hold you in stasis, like me—hold you
until Barholm's dust and bones. You've done all you can, you've done your duty,
now you deserve something for yourself. It won't further the
reunification of Bellevue for you to commit suicide!"
probability of furthering the restoration of
the federation is slightly increased if raj whitehall attends the levee, Center said.
"I must go. I must.
I—"
Raj turned back, and
Thom recoiled a half step. The other man's teeth were showing, and a muscle
twitched on one cheek. "I . . . there's been so much dying . . . I can't
. . . so many dead, so many, how can I save myself?"
"They were
enemies," Thom said softly.
"No! Not them.
My own men! I used men like bullets! There aren't one in three of the 5th
Descott Guards remaining, of the ones who rode out with me against the Colony
five years ago. Poplanich's Own—raised from your family estates, Thom—had a
hundred and fifty casualties in one battle, and I was leading
them."
Thom opened his mouth,
then closed it again. Center cut in on them, an iron impatience in its
non-voice:
leading is the
operative word, raj whitehall. you were leading them. observe:
* * *
"Back one step and
volley!" Raj shouted, hoarse with smoke and dust.
Around him the shattered
ranks firmed. Colonial dragoons in crimson djellabas rode forward, reins in
their teeth as they worked the levers of their repeating carbines. The muzzles
of their dogs snaked forward, then recoiled from the line of bayonets.
BAM. Ragged, but the men
were firing in unison.
"Back one step and
volley!" Raj shouted again.
He fired his revolver
between two of the troopers, into the face of a Colonial officer who yipped and
waved his yataghan behind the line of dragoons. The carbines snapped, and the
man beside Raj stumbled back, moaning and pawing at the shattered jaw that
dangled on his breast.
"Hold hard, 5th
Descott! Back one step and volley."
* * *
Raj blinked back to an
awareness of the polished sphere that was Center's physical being. That had
been too vivid: not just the holographic image that the ancient computer
projected on his retina; he could still smell the gunpowder and blood.
if you had not
struck swiftly and hard, the wars would have dragged on for years. deaths would
have been a whole order of magnitude greater, among soldiers of both sides and
among the civilians. as well, entire provinces would be so devastated as to be
unable to sustain civilized life.
Images flitted through
their minds: bones resting in a ditch, hair still fluttering from the skulls of
a mother and child; skeletal corpses slithering over each other as men threw
them on a plague-cart and dragged it away down the empty streets of a besieged
city; a room of hollow-eyed soldiers resting on straw pallets slimed with the
liquid feces of cholera.
"That's true enough
for a computer," Raj said.
Even then, Thom noted
the irony. He was East Residence born, a city patrician, and back when they
both believed computer meant angel he'd doubted their very
existence. That had shocked Raj's pious country-squire soul; Raj never doubted
the Personal Computer that watched over every faithful soul, and the great
Mainframes that sat in glory around the Spirit of Man of the Stars. Now they were
both agents of such a being.
Raj's voice grew loud
for a moment. "That's true enough for the Spirit of Man of the Stars made
manifest, true enough for God. I'm not God, I'm just a man—and I've done
the Spirit's work without flinching. But I'd be less than a man if I
didn't think I deserve death for it." Silence fell.
"They ought to hate
me," he whispered, his eyes still seeing visions without need of Center's
holographs. "I've left the bones of my men all the way from the Drangosh
to Carson Barracks, across half a world . . . they ought to hate my guts."
they do not, Center said. instead-
* * *
A group of men swaggered
into an East Residence bar, down the stairs from the street and under the iron
brackets of the lights, into air thick with tobacco and sweat and the fumes of
cheap wine and tekkila. Like most of those inside, they wore
cavalry-trooper uniforms—it was not a dive where a civilian would have had a
long life expectancy—but most of theirs carried the shoulder-flashes of the 5th
Descott Guards, and they wore the red-and-white checked neckerchiefs that were
an unofficial blazon in that unit. They were dark close-coupled stocky-muscular
men, like most Descotters; with them were troopers from half a dozen other
units, some of them blond giants with long hair knotted on the sides of their
heads.
There was a general
slither of chairs on floors as the newcomers took over the best seats. One Life
Guard trooper who was slow about vacating his chair was dumped unceremoniously
on the sanded floor; half a dozen sets of eyes tracked him like gun turrets
turning as he came up cursing and reaching for the knife in his boot. The Life
Guardsman looked over his shoulder, calculated odds, and pushed out of the
room. The hard-eyed girl who'd been with him hung over the shoulder of the
chair's new occupant. The men hung their sword belts on the backs of their
chairs and called for service.
"T'Messer
Raj," one said, raising a glass. "While 'e's been a-leadin' us,
nivver a one's been shot runnin' away!"
* * *
- they do not hate you. they fear you, for they know you will expend them
without hesitation if necessary. but they know raj whitehall will lead from the
front, and that with him they have conquered the world.
"Then they're
fools," Raj said flatly.
"They're men,"
Thom said. "All men die, whether they go for soldiers or not. But maybe
you've given them something that makes the life worth it, just as you have
Center's Plan to rebuild civilization throughout the universe."
They exchanged the embrahzo
again. Thom stepped back and froze, his body once again in Center's timeless
stasis.
Raj turned and took a
deep breath. "Can't die deader than dead," he murmured to himself.
The great corridor
outside the Audience Hall shone with the delicate colored marble and
semiprecious stone that made up the intaglio work of the floor. The walls were
arched windows on the outer side, and religious murals on the inner—icons of
the Saints, lives of the martyrs, stars, starships, Computers calling forth
Order from Primeval Chaos. Though the day was overcast, hidden gaslights threw
a bright radiance through mirrors.
Soldiers in the black
uniforms and black breastplates of the Life Guards stood along the walls every
few paces, rifles at port; officers had their swords drawn and the points
resting at their boots. The uniforms were Capital-crisp, but the faces under
the plumed helmets were closed and watchful—square beak-nosed faces, dark and
hard, on men slightly bowlegged from riding as soon as they could walk. The
Life Guards were recruited from the Barholm family estates back in Descott
county, from vakaros and yeoman-tenant rancheros. When Descotters ate a
man's salt they took the responsibilities seriously, in the main.
Suzette adjusted Raj's
cravat, beneath the high wing collar of the dress-uniform jacket. There was a
fixed, intent look on her face. Raj recognized it; it was the look you got when
the overall situation was completely out of control, so you focused on the
immediate skill you could master. Suzette had been brought up in East
Residence, and her family had been patrician for fourteen generations. Court
etiquette—and the intricate currents of court intrigue—were as much her
heritage as the saddle of a war-dog or the hilt of a saber were to him.
He'd seen the same look
on a Brigade trooper's face, adjusting the grip on his sword and the angle of
the blade—as he rode into the muzzle of a cannon loaded with grapeshot.
Three of his Companions
were standing around, with similar expressions. They were looking at the
Life Guards, and figuring the odds on a firefight if an order came through to
arrest Raj on the spot. Not good, he thought.
"Relax," he
said quietly. "There isn't going to be any trouble here today."
The party around Raj
Whitehall stood in a bubble of social space, lower-ranking courtiers and
messengers either avoiding their eyes or staring fascinated at the famous
General Whitehall; for the last time, if rumor was correct. Many of them were
probably thinking how lucky they were never to have risen so high. The stalk
that stood out above the others was the first to be lopped off.
Which is why the Civil
Government doesn't rule the whole Earth, as it should, Raj thought with an old,
cold anger.
correct, Center replied. Then
it added pedantically: bellevue.
earth will come later.
The crowd parted as a
man came through. He wasn't particularly imposing; no more than twenty-one or
so, and slimly handsome. His left arm ended at a leather cup and steel hook where
the hand should have been. His uniform was standard issue for Civil Government
cavalry, blue swallowtail coat and loose maroon breeches, crimson sash under
the Sam Browne belt; all tailored with foppish care, but travel-worn and
stained with sea salt in places. He carried his round bowl helmet with the
chainmail neck-guard and twin captain's stars tucked under his left arm. The
right fist snapped to his chest as he saluted, then bowed to Suzette.
"Messer Raj,"
he said. "My lady Whitehall." A smile as he glanced past them to the
other Companions. "Dog-brothers."
"Spirit," Raj
said mildly, shaken out of his strait preoccupation with what would probably
happen in the next half-hour. "I thought you were back in the Western
Territories with the 5th, Bartin."
Not to mention with
Colonel Gerrin Staenbridge; Bartin Foley had gotten into the 5th as Gerrin's
protégé-cum-boyfriend. He was far more than that now, of course.
"Administrator
Historiomo decided," the young officer said, voice carefully neutral,
"that since the Brigade survivors in the Western Territories were
cooperating fully, a number of units were surplus to garrison needs."
"Which units?"
Raj said.
Bartin cleared his
throat. "The 5th Descott Guards," he said.
Raj's Own, as
they liked to call themselves.
"The 7th Descott
Rangers, 1st Rogor Slashers, Poplanich's Own, and the 18th Komar
Borderers," he went on.
The cavalry units most
closely associated with Raj, and the ones commanded by the men who'd become his
Companions, the elite group of close comrades he relied on most.
"In addition, the
17th Kenden County Foot, and the 24th Valencia," he continued.
Jorg Menyez commanded
the 17th: a Companion, and the Civil Government's best infantry specialist,
able to turn the despised foot soldiers into fighting men of sorts. The 24th .
. . Ferdihando Felasquez. Good man . . .
"And last but not
least, the 1st and 2nd Mounted Cruisers."
Recruited from the
defeated barbarians of the Squadron, after Raj crushed them in a single month's
campaign back in the Southern Territories, three years ago. They'd always been
warriors; under civilized instruction, they'd also become quite capable
soldiers. The commander of the 1st Cruisers, Ludwig Bellamy, had made the same
transition; but as a Squadrone nobleman he also regarded himself as Raj's
personal liegeman. Tejan M'Brust, the Descotter Companion who'd taken over the
2nd Cruisers, probably thought the same way—although he wasn't supposed to,
being a civilized man.
"They're all,"
Bartin went on, with a slight smile, bowing over Suzette's hand, "on their
way back. Together with the field artillery. I came ahead on one of the steam
rams, but everyone should be here in a day or three, if the weather stays
fine."
Beside Raj, Colonel
Dinnalsyn pricked up his ears. The artillery specialist had hated being
separated from his beloved weapons. He'd trained those crews himself.
Joy, Raj thought. It
just happened to look like Raj's own personal army was heading back to
the East Residence at flank speed.
Antin M'lewis cracked
his fingers. "What happen t'Chivrez?"
The Honorable Fedherko
Chivrez had been sent out to take command of the Western Territories after Raj
conquered them—and had arrived to find the Governor's promising young heir
Cabot Clerett dead at Raj's feet, with a smoking carbine in Raj's hand.
Suzette gave him a
single cool violet look from her slanted eyes and then turned them away, her
face the unreadable mask of an East Residence aristocrat.
Raj remembered Cabot's
eyes bulging, as Suzette shot him neatly behind the ear, in the instant before
his trigger finger would have punched an 11mm pistol round through Raj's body.
Chivrez had seen; Chivrez had been Director of Supply in Komar back five years
ago, and had tried to withhold supplies from Raj's men. Two Companions named
Evrard and Kaltin Gruder had run him out a closed window headfirst, then held
him while Antin M'lewis started to flay him from the feet up. Raj had gotten
the supplies and won the campaign.
The trouble with that
sort of method was the long-term problems. On the other hand, if Raj hadn't
gotten those supplies, his troops would have been wiped out by the Colonials in
the desert fighting. You paced yourself to the task, and if the task got done
you worried about secondary consequences later.
"Ah." Bartin
Foley considered the tip of his hook. "Well, Messer Chivrez seems to have
betrayed the Governor's trust and absconded with some of the Brigade's
treasures."
observe, Center said.
A bedroom in the palace
of the Generals of the Brigade, in the Western Territories. Chivrez thrashing,
his arms and legs held down by four strong men, another pressing a pillow over
his face. The stubby limbs thrashed against the bedclothes. After a few minutes
they grew still; Ludwig Bellamy wrapped the body in the sheets and hoisted it. Even
masked, Raj recognized Gerrin Staenbridge as the one holding open the door.
The scene shifted, to
the swamps outside Carson Barracks. The same men tipped a burlap-wrapped bundle
off the deck of a small boat. It vanished with scarcely a splash, weighed down
with lengths of chain and a cast-iron roundshot weighing forty kilos. Gerrin
raised a meter-diameter blazon of the Brigade's sunburst banner, crafted in
silver and gold with the double lightning flash across it picked out in
diamond.
"Pity," he
murmured. "Not bad work in a garish sort of barbarian way, and it would
buy a good many opera tickets and dinners at the Centoyard back home. Ah,
well—authenticity."
He tossed the disk after
the bureaucrat's body. It sank with a popping bubble of marsh gas. Somewhere
off in the swamps a hadrosauroid bellowed.
* * *
Antin M'lewis grinned
uneasily as the Companions exchanged glances. They knew, of course . . . but he
wasn't quite sure if Messer Raj knew. They were all of the Messer class by
birth themselves; he'd levered himself up into it by hitching his star to
Messer Raj's wagon. Ye takes t'risk a' fallin', too, he thought.
M'lewis had started off
as a Bufford Parish bandit, a sheep stealer by hereditary profession, and made
even that most lawless part of not-very-lawful Descott County too hot for him.
Enlistment had been the alternative to a rope—or a less formal appointment with
a knife. He'd met Raj over a little matter of a peasant's pig gone missing
despite a no-foraging order. One look had told him this was a man who had to be
either served or killed, and he'd made his decision. It had led him near
enough to death more times than he could count, and also to advancement beyond
his dreams.
On the other hand, one
of the things that surprised him about gentlemen born was how bad they were at
making use of their advantages. There were good points to a rough upbringing.
One of them was being able to say the unsayable.
"Ah, ser," he
suggested, leaning forward and whispering, "what wit' t' lads comin' in
s'soon, mebbe we'uns ud better dip out loik—come back wit' better company inna
day er two?"
Raj spoke in a clear,
conversational tone, without looking around: "I'm attending this levee as
ordered by the Sovereign Mighty Lord, Captain M'lewis. You may do as you
please."
M'lewis spat on the
intaglio floor. Spirit. Mebbe I should a' stayed in sheep-stealin'.
He followed nonetheless;
he might have been born a thief, but he'd eaten this man's bread and salt.
A metal-shod staff
thumped the floor, and the tall bronze panels of the Audience Hall swung open.
The gorgeously robed figure of the Janitor—the Court Usher—bowed and held out
his staff, topped by the Star symbol of the Civil Government.
Suzette took Raj's arm.
The Companions fell in behind him, unconsciously forming a column of twos. A
Life Guard officer stepped forward.
"Your weapons,
Messers," he said, his face expressionless.
Raj made a chopping
gesture with his free hand, and the forward rustle of the Companions died. He
handed over ceremonial revolver and court sword. This time it was Bartin Foley
who whispered in his ear:
"A company of the
5th arrived with me, sir. If you're arrested . . ."
"Captain Foley, the
Sovereign Mighty Lord's orders will be obeyed by all troops under my
command—is that clear?"
observe, Center whispered in his
mind. Raj, in a cell, darkness and the flickering light of lanterns. Rifle-fire
from the halls outside, flat slapping echoes off the stone, and the turnkey's
shotgun pointed through the bars at Raj's face, the hammer falling as he jerked
the trigger . . .
"I've served my
Governor and the Spirit of Man to the best of my ability," Raj added.
"I chose to assume that the Governor, upon whom be the blessings of the
Spirit always, will see it the same way."
The functionary's voice
boomed out with trained precision through the gold-and-niello speaking trumpet:
"General the Honorable
Messer Raj Ammenda Halgern da Luis Whitehall, Whitehall of Hillchapel,
Hereditary Supervisor of Smythe Parish, Descott County! His Lady, Suzette
Emmaenelle—" None of his other titles, Raj noted. He'd been
officially hailed Sword of the Spirit of Man and Savior of the State
in this room.
He ignored the noise,
ignored the brilliantly decked crowds who waited on either side of the carpeted
central aisle, the smells of polished metal, sweet incense, and sweat. The
Audience Hall was two hundred meters long and fifty high, its arched ceiling a
mosaic showing the wheeling galaxy with the Spirit of Man rising head and
shoulders behind it. The huge dark eyes were full of stars themselves, staring
down into your soul.
Along the walls were
automatons, dressed in the tight uniforms worn by Terran Federation soldiers
twelve hundred years before. They whirred and clanked to attention, powered by
hidden compressed-air conduits, bringing their archaic and quite non-functional
battle lasers to salute. The Guard troopers along the aisle brought their
entirely functional rifles up in the same gesture.
The far end of the
audience chamber was a hemisphere plated with burnished gold, lit via mirrors
from hidden arcs. It glowed with a blinding aura, strobing slightly. The Chair
itself stood four meters in the air on a pillar of fretted silver, the focus of
light and mirrors and every eye in the giant room. The man enChaired upon it
sat with hieratic stiffness, light breaking in metallized splendor from his
robes, the bejeweled Keyboard and Stylus in his hands. A tribal delegation was
milling about before it, still speaking through its hired interpreter.
The linguist's face was
professionally bland, but occasionally a look of horror would cross his
features as he moved his lips, working out Sponglish equivalents of the
mountaineers' singsong native tongue:
"Hjburni-burni-burni—"
"Humbly we beseech
you, O Sovereign Mighty One, Sole Autocrat, our poverty prevents other than our
traditional border auxiliary duties—"
Center broke in: more accurately rendered: back off,
stonehouse-chief, or we'll see what terms the colony offers its border
auxiliaries—we're closer to al kebir than east residence.
"Hjurni-burni-burni,
burjimi murjimi urgimi—"
"In our humble huts
in the mountains, we seek only to till our poor fields in peace—"
we're your allies and you pay us for guarding the passes;
"—kuljurni ablurni
hjurni-burni Halvaardi burri murri—"
"—and surely there
are closer, richer lands which need the attention of your talented
administrators—"
—so the next tax
collector who asks for "earth and water" from the halvaardi gets
thrown down a well to find plenty of both.
Barholm made a slight
gesture with one hand, and the tribesfolk were ushered out, protesting, amid a
ripe stink from the butter they used to grease their braids. One of the wooden
clocks they carried on their belts gave its mechanical kuku, kuku as the
pillar that supported the Chair sank toward the white marble steps; at the rear
of the enclosure two full-scale statues of gorgosauroids rose to their
three-meter height and roared as the seat of the Governor of the Civil
Government sank home with a slight sigh of hydraulics. A faint whine sounded,
and the arc lights blazed brighter. At the center of the mirrors' focus Barholm
blazed like a shape of white fire.
Raj took three paces
forward and went down in the ceremonial prostration—the full prostration, since
his former titles were stripped from him. He rose and knelt the prescribed
three times; by his side there was a quiet rustle of silks and lace as Suzette
sank down with an infinite gracefulness.
"What
punishment," Barholm boomed, his voice amplified by the superb acoustics
of the Audience Hall, "is fit for him who was foremost in Our trust? Yea,
what baseness is more base, what vileness more vile, than one into whose hand
the Sword of the State has been entrusted—when that most wretched of men turns
the Sword against the very root and foundation, the Coax Cable of the
Spirit—"
In East Residence,
rhetoric was the most admired of the arts—far ahead of, for instance, military
or administrative skill; infinitely more so than engineering. A speech like
this could go on for hours, when the entire content could be boiled down to
"kill him."
The semicircle of high
ministers stirred behind their desks. The tall slender form of Chancellor
Tzetzas turned sharply to hiss General Gharzia, Commander of Eastern Forces,
into silence; the elderly soldier was listening to a messenger—a courier in
tight leathers, not a court usher or an aide. From the floor, Raj watched
Gharzia's face congeal like cooling lard. He didn't have to pay attention to
what Barholm said, he knew how that would end . . .
Gharzia rose and circled
to Tzetzas' side. The Chancellor tried to shake off the hand that plucked at
his sleeve, then turned to listen with a tight, controlled fury that would have
frightened Raj if he'd been in Gharzia's shoes. People who seriously annoyed
the Chancellor tended to have accidents, or develop severe stomach problems, or
be killed in duels.
Raj had never seen
Tzetzas frightened before. It was a far less pleasant experience than he would
have thought; whatever his other vices, nobody had ever even accused the
Chancellor of cowardice. To make him interrupt the ceremony of triumph over his
most hated rival, it had to be something massive.
"And—" Barholm
noticed the movement to his right and broke off, flipping up the smoked-glass
eyeshield. "Tzetzas! What do you think you're doing?"
The raw fury in his
voice made Tzetzas check half a step. The Governor was the Spirit's Viceregent
on Earth; if he ordered the Guards to cut the Chancellor to pieces on the steps
of the Chair, they would obey without hesitation. That had happened in past
reigns, more than once. Wise Governors remembered that those reigns had been
short . . . but Barholm Clerett had been growing more and more unstable since
his wife died.
"Sovereign Mighty
Lord," Tzetzas said, his voice a cool precision instrument, handled with
faultless skill. "I deserve your anger for my boorishness. Yet concern
drives your servant. The Colony has invaded our territories; news has arrived
by heliograph."
There was a chain of
stations between the frontiers and East Residence; high-priority messages could
be relayed in hours, where couriers would take days or weeks. Only the Colony
and the Civil Government possessed such means, on Bellevue.
"You interrupt me
for a raid?"
The Bedouin and the
Civil Government's Borderers had been stealing girls and sheep and cutting each
other up over waterholes since time immemorial. It was a peaceful week that
passed without a minor skirmish, and there were several razziah a year
from either side. It usually didn't even cause a ripple in the profitable trade
carried on between the more civilized urban element on both sides of the
frontier.
Tzetzas threw himself
down on his knees. "Not a raid, Sovereign Mighty Lord. Invasion. The
Settler of the Colony himself, Ali—and his one-eyed brother and general,
Tewfik. They have taken Gurnyca."
A low moan swept through
the Audience Hall. That was the largest city on the lower Drangosh river and
the closest major settlement to the eastern frontier.
The mad anger
disappeared from Barholm's face, as cleanly as if cut with a knife. A minute
later, so did the eye-hurting brilliance of the arc lights. By contrast, the
Audience Hall seemed black.
"The levee is
closed," Barholm said, in a flat carrying voice.
There were yelps of
protest from petitioners. The officer of the Life Guards barked an order, and
hands rattled on stocks as the rifles came to present-arms.
"An immediate
meeting of the State Council will be held in the Negrin Room," Barholm
said into the sudden stillness. "All others are dismissed."
Raj rose to one knee.
"Sovereign Mighty Lord," he said calmly. "Does the Sole Autocrat
wish my presence?"
Barholm paused, looking
over his shoulder. "Of course," he said. A snarl broke through the
mask of his face. "Of course!"
* * *
"Sayyida,"
the man said, bowing with hand to brows, lips and heart; his dress was the knee
breeches and jacket of an East Residence bourgeois, but his tongue was the pure
Syrian Arabic of Al Kebir, capital of the Colony. "Peace be with
you."
"And upon you
peace, Abdullah al'Aziz," Suzette Whitehall replied in the same language,
the rolling gutturals falling easily from her tongue.
Her maids had replaced
the split skirt, leggings, and blond wig of court formality with a noblewoman's
day-robe; she wrote as she spoke, glancing up only occasionally. The steel nib
of the pen skritched steadily on the paper.
"Are you
ready?" she said.
"For the Great
Game?" the Arab replied, smiling whitely in his neatly trimmed black
beard. "Always, my lady."
"Good. Here are
papers, and a sight-draft on Muzzaf Kerpatik."
The Whitehalls' chief
steward, among other things. A Borderer from the southern city of Komar, and no
friend of any Arab, but also not likely to let personal feelings interfere with
his work.
"My instructions, sayyida?"
"Proceed at once to
Sandoral on the Drangosh. Military intelligence for my lord, if it presents
itself; for myself I wish full information on the higher officers of the
garrison and the local nobles: loves, hates, histories, feuds, alliances. Also
any information from the Colony."
He took the papers and
repeated the bow, using the documents for added flourish. "I obey like
those multiplex of wing and eye who served Sulieman bin'-Daud, my lady,"
he said cheerfully. "That city I know of old." He'd done similar work
for her the last time Raj commanded in the East, four years before.
"See that nobody
stuffs you into a bottle," she added dryly, dropping back into Sponglish.
"I shall be most
careful," he replied in the Civil Government's tongue, faultless down to the
capital-city middle-class crispness of his vowels. "There is yet much to
be done to repay my debt to you, my lady. And," he added with a cold glint
in his dark eyes, "to those Sunni sons of pigs in Al Kebir, also."
Druze were few on
Bellevue; less, since the Settlers had decided to purify the House of Islam a
generation ago. Those sniffed out by the mullahs could count themselves lucky
to be sold as slaves to the sulfur mines of Gederosia. The path from there to
Suzette Whitehall's household and manumission had been long and complex . . .
"Your family are
provided for?" Abdullah nodded. "Go, then, thou Slave of God,"
Suzette said, once more in Arabic, playing on the literal meaning of the man's
name. "Thy God and mine be with thee."
"And the Merciful,
the Lovingkind with thee and thy lord, sayyida," he replied, and
left.
"Fatima,"
Suzette went on.
"Messa?"
"Take this to the
Renunciate Sister Conzwela Dihego; she's second administrative assistant for
medical affairs to the Arch-Sysup of East Residence. It's an authorization to
mobilize priest-doctors and medical nuns, with the necessary supplies and
transport for immediate dispatch to Sandoral."
"Wasn't she with us
in the Western Territories?" the Arab girl asked.
"Yes; and Anne got
her that job on my say-so when we got back." Suzette sighed; she missed
Anne. "Quickly. And send in Muzzaf."
The Companion sidled
through the door as Fatima left; the opening showed a controlled chaos of
packing. He was a short slight man, with the dark complexion of a Borderer and
a singsong Komarite accent. He was dressed in jacket and breeches of white
linen, the little peaked fore-and-aft cap of his region, and a sash which
nearly concealed the pepperpot pistol and pearl-handled gravity knife he
preferred. He bowed deeply, a gesture much like Abdullah's.
Nearly a thousand years
of conflict had left the Borderers much resembling their enemies of the Colony,
though it was a killing matter to suggest it aloud.
"Messa
Whitehall," he said, showing white teeth against his spiked black
chin-beard. Like everyone else in the household, he was reacting to the news of
Raj's reinstatement with almost giddy relief. "We campaign again?"
"Yes," Suzette
said.
She pushed a document
across the table with a finger. "One of your relatives is contractor for
the East Residence municipal coal yards, isn't he?"
Muzzaf nodded; men from
Komar and the other Border cities were prominent in trade all over the Civil
Government, and in the new joint-risk companies.
"Subcontractor,
Messa. The primary contract is farmed to an . . . associate of Chancellor
Tzetzas." He took up the paper and whistled silently. "That is a
great deal of coal."
"Subcontractor is
good enough. Have him release that amount to the Central Rail; and drop a
suggestion with their dispatching agent that they begin to accumulate rolling
stock immediately. Sweeten the suggestion if you have to."
"Immediately."
They exchanged a smile;
Chancellor Tzetzas had confiscated all Raj's wealth . . . all that he had been
able to find, at any rate. Neither the Chancellor nor Raj knew exactly how much
the Whitehalls had had; Raj left such things to Muzzaf and Suzette . . . and
they had anticipated the evil day long before. Raj knew how to handle guns and
men, and even politics after a fashion, but money could also be a useful tool.
Silence fell as the
steward left, broken only by the scritching of the pen and the faint thumps and
scraping of the packing in the outer chambers. On the bed behind her were Raj's
campaigning gear: plain issue swallowtail jacket of blue serge, maroon pants,
boots, helmet, saber, pistol, map case, binoculars. Beside it was her linen
riding costume and a captured Colonial repeating carbine, her own personal
weapon . . . and the one, she reflected, that had disposed of the Clerett's
heir.
A pity, she thought
absently, tapping her lips with the tip of the pen before dipping the nib in
the inkwell again. A very pleasant young man.
And easy to manipulate.
Which had been crucial; like his uncle, he'd been mad with suspicion against
Raj. With envy, too, in young Cabot's case: of Raj's reputation, his victories,
his hold over his soldiers, and his wife.
A pity she'd had to kill
him. Particularly just then. Shooting people was a crude emergency measure . .
.
Which reminded her. She
crossed to her jewel table and reached beneath for a small rosewood box. A tiny
combination lock closed it, and she probed at that with a pin from a brooch.
Yes, the crystal vials
of various liquids and powders within were all full and fresh—there was a slip
of paper with a recent date inside to remind her, one of Abdullah's many
talents.
You never knew what sort
of help Raj would need . . . whether he knew it or not.
"You will
triumph, my knight," she whispered to herself, closing the box with a
click. "If I have anything to do with the matter."
Governor Barholm stood
while the servants stripped off the heavy robes; apart from Raj, they were the
only people in the chamber who didn't look terrified . . . and they didn't have
to watch the Governor's face. A sicklefoot had that sort of expression, just
before it pivoted and slashed open its prey's belly with the four-inch dewclaw
on one hind foot.
The Negrin Room was
three centuries old. Walls were pale stone, traced over with delicate murals of
reeds and flying dactosauroids and waterfowl; there was only one small Star, a
token obeisance to religion as had been common in that impious age. The heads
of the Ministries were there: Chancellor Tzetzas, of course; General Fiydel
Klostermann, Master of Soldiers; Bernardinho Rivadavia, the Minister of
Barbarians; Mihwel Berg of the Administrative Service; Gharzia, Commander of
Eastern Forces. The courier from the east as well.
It was strange not to
see Lady Anne Clerett, the Governor's wife. Barholm didn't have anyone he
really trusted now that she was dead, and it was affecting his judgment.
"Heldeyz,"
Barholm snapped. "Give us the report, man."
Ministerial couriers
were men of some rank themselves, but it was still strange how unintimidated
Heldeyz looked, even facing the stark fury in Barholm Clerett's eyes. His own
were fixed and distant, in a face still seamed by trail dust.
Barholm went on
fretfully: "I don't know why Ali has done this. The treaty after
the last war was generous to a fault—particularly since we won the war.
The gifts of friendship . . ."
observe:
* * *
Sweating slaves heaved
at bundles of iron bars, heaping them on the flatbed rail-cars and lashing them
down. One slipped and fell to the paving stones of East Residence's main
station. A bar snapped across; as a clerk bustled over a guard rolled the
broken end beneath his boot.
"Spirit," he
said in a tone of mild curiosity. The interior of the fracture showed a gray
texture. "That's not wrought iron, it's cast."
Cast iron came straight
from the smelting furnace; it was hard, brittle and full of impurities. Only
after treatment in a puddling mill did it become the ductile, easily worked
material so valuable for machinery and tools.
The clerk cleared his throat.
"I think you'll find," he said significantly, "that the
Chancellor has inspected the manifests quite carefully."
The guard grinned; he
was a thin man with a long nose and a pockmarked face, an East Residencer by
birth with all the ingrained respect for a good swindle that marked that breed.
He brushed his thumb over the first three fingers of his right hand. The clerk
smiled back.
* * *
"Sovereign Mighty
Lord," Raj said. "I think you'll find that quality, quantity, and
delivery dates on our tribute—pardon, our gifts of friendship—to the Colony
have been below the Treaty terms."
Figures scrolled before
his eyes, and he read them in an emotionless monotone worthy of Center.
Barholm blinked. He
turned his eyes on Tzetzas, and a fine beading of sweat broke out on the
Chancellor's olive face. "Sole Autocrat," the minister said,
spreading his hands. "When contracts are handed out, something always
sticks—so many layers of oversight, so many hands—you know—"
The Governor's fist
struck the table. Gold-rimmed kave cups bounced and clattered in their
saucers.
"I know who's
responsible for seeing that the payments were met!" he roared; suddenly
there was the slightest trace of Descott County rasp in his Sponglish.
"You fool, I don't expect you to work for your salary alone, but I did
expect you to know enough not to piss in our own well! D'you have any idea what
this war is going to cost in lost taxes and off-budget funding?"
He paused, and when he
continued his voice was calm. "You'd better have some idea, because you're
going to pay the overage—personally."
"Sovereign Mighty
Lord," Raj said. "Right now, I think we'd better concern ourselves
with the state of the garrisons on the Drangosh frontier."
Barholm snapped his
fingers. "Gurnyca had a garrison of—"
"Ten thousand men,
Sole Autocrat," Mihwel Berg said helpfully. "At least, ten thousand
on the paybooks."
Chancellor Tzetzas busied
himself with his papers. When Barholm spoke, it was to General Gharzia.
"General," he
said, his voice soft and even, "tell me—and if you lie, it would be better
for you if you had never been born—how many troops were actually on the
strength of the Gurnyca garrison? In what condition?"
Gharzia licked his lips,
going gray under the tanned olive of his skin. "Two thousand, Sovereign
Mighty Lord. In . . . ah, poor condition."
Somebody had been
collecting the pay of the missing eight thousand. All eyes turned to the
Chancellor.
The ruler turned back to
the courier from the east. "Now, Messer Heldeyz," he said evenly.
"Your report, please."
"Yes, Sole
Autocrat."
Heldeyz stared at his
hands. "I met the Colonials fifty klicks south of Gurnyca," he began.
"They—"
observe, Center said:
* * *
Terrible as an
army with banners. Bartin Foley had quoted that to Raj, once; it was a
fragment of Old Namerique, from the codices that survived the Fall.
There were plenty of
banners in the forefront of the Colonial host that crossed the Drangosh. The
green flag of Islam, marked with the crescent, or with the house blazons of
regiments and noble amirs. The peacock-tail of the Settlers; that meant
Ali was present in person. And a black pennant marked with the Seal of Solomon
in red. Tewfik. Ali's brother, disqualified from the Settler's throne
because of the eye he'd lost in the Zanj Wars, but the Colony's right arm
nonetheless.
Raj recognized the
terrain instantly; he'd campaigned out east himself, five years ago.
Generations of the Civil Government's soldiers had taken their blooding in that
ghastly lunar landscape of eroded silt, and all too many left their bones
there. Just north of the border and the river forts, by the look of it, in one
of the locations where the right—the western—bank was too high for irrigation.
In consequence nothing grew there, except for a few bluish-green native shrubs.
The oily-looking
greenish-gray waters of the Drangosh were a kilometer and a half across. A
bridge of boats had been built across it, big river-barges of the type used for
trade up and down the river from Sandoral to Al Kebir and the far-off Colonial
Gulf. Good engineering, Raj thought; as good as the Civil Government's
army, or a little better. The barges were lashed together with huge sisal
cables as thick as a man's waist; then timbers and planks were laid across to
make a deck, and pounded clay half a meter thick on top of that to give the men
and animals a firm surface. There were even straw balustrades on either side,
chest high, to keep the beasts from spooking at the water curling up around the
blunt prows of the barges.
Men flowed across in a
steady stream: Colonial dragoon tabors, battalions, riding in column of
fours, mainly. Mounted on slender Bazenjis and greyhounds, lever-action
repeating carbines in scabbards by their right knees, scimitars or yataghans at
their belts, bandoliers over the chests of their faded scarlet djellabas. The
sun glittered on the polished spikes of their conical helmets, and the pugarees
wound about them fluttered in the breeze. Between the blocks of cavalry came
guns: light pompoms, quick-firers throwing a two-kilo shell from a clip
magazine; field guns, much like the Civil Government's 75mms; and heavier
pieces drawn by oxen. Those were cast-steel muzzle-loading rifles, heavy pieces
up to 150mm, siege guns. And there was transport, light dog-drawn two-wheel
carts, heavy wagons pulled by sixteen pair of oxen.
Officers directed the
traffic with flourishes of their nine-tailed ceremonial whips, each thong tipped
with a piece of jagged steel.
Where- Raj thought.
Center's viewpoint shifted to the western bank.
In the Colony's army, as
in the Civil Government's, infantry were usually second-line troops, good
enough to hold forts and lines of communication. Ali—Tewfik, probably—had sent
his over first, and they were hard at work. Swarms of men stripped to their
loincloths or pantaloons, burned from their natural light brown to an almost
black color, swinging picks and shoveling dirt into the baskets others hauled.
They moved over the land like disciplined ants, and a pentagonal earthwork
fortress was rising around the western end of the pontoon bridge. A fairly
formidable one, too; deep ditch, ten-meter walls, ravelins and bastions at the
corners with deep V-notches for the muzzles of the guns. The Colony's green
flag and the Settler's peacock already flapped around a huge pavilion-tent in
its center. Within, ditched roadways had been laid out, and neat rows of pup
tents, heaps of stores, and picket-lines for the dogs were rising.
Enough for-
* * *
"Sixty thousand
men," Raj said. "Fifty thousand cavalry, ten thousand infantry or a
little more to hold the bridgehead."
Heldeyz stopped,
flustered. "Yes, heneralissimo," he said; evidently the news
of Raj's demotion hadn't reached the eastern marches yet. "That's my
estimate. How did you know?"
"Logistics. If
Ali's planning on moving as far north as Sandoral, that's the maximum number he
can supply overland from the bridgehead. Our forts at the border can hold out
for six months or more, even if the Colony put in a full attack—which they
won't or they couldn't put that large a field army into action. They'll have
blockforces around the frontier strongpoints, but they can't use river
transport to supply Ali. So they moved north and crossed upstream of the
forts."
Both the Colony and the
Civil Government had put generations of effort into those defenses. The giant
cast-steel rifles in the forts would smash anything that tried to steam past
them on the river. That ruled out supply by riverboat.
"Ali—Tewfik—must
have built a railroad line to the east bank," Raj said. "But on the
western shore, it'll be animal transport. Even with what they can forage, no
more than fifty thousand men and riding dogs. They wouldn't bring less, not for
a full-scale invasion, and they couldn't feed more."
Barholm shot Raj a
considering look. "Go on," he said to Heldeyz.
The courier nodded.
"I met—"
observe, Center whispered in
Raj's mind:
* * *
Heldeyz knelt before a
throne. It was lightly built, of cast bronze fretwork, but inlaid with gold and
gems in a pattern that flared out behind the seat like a peacock's tail. A man
in shimmering cloth-of-gold sat on it. Throne and man glittered when stray
beams of light penetrated the lacework canopy that slaves held above it; a
spray of peacock feathers sprang from the great ruby in the clasp at the front
of his turban. Around the Settler stood generals and noblemen, a few Bedouin
chiefs in goathair robes and ha'ik, mullahs in black, servants with flasks of iced
sherbert, crouching clerks and accountants with paper and pen and abacus. None
of them came within the ring of guardsmen, black slave-mamluks with great
curved swords naked in their hands, or bell-mouthed riot guns at the ready.
"Your master, the kaphar
king, has offended me grievously," Ali said, speaking fair Sponglish.
"He has violated the terms of our treaty . . . and my father's blood cries
out for vengeance. No duty is more sacred. Yet Allah, the Merciful, the
Lovingkind, enjoins us to peaceful deeds."
Ali's face was
heavy-featured but regular, the curved beak of the nose dominating, offset by
full red lips and a forked beard. His eyes were large and brown, luminous and
somehow disturbing. Apart from an occasional twitching tic of his right cheek, the
expression was one of mild reason.
An officer approached,
going down on both knees and bowing until the point of his helmet-spike touched
the glowing Al Kebir carpets that covered the ground before the Settler's
pavilion and campaign-throne.
"Amir el Mumineen,
Commander of the Faithful, the infidel emissaries from the city of Gurnyca
crave the honor of your presence."
Ali's eyebrows rose
slightly. He leaned back in the portable throne, and servants stepped forward
to spray rosewater from crystal ewers through rubber bulbs. He sipped sherbert
from a glass globe through a silver straw and waited.
"By all means, let
them enter," he said gently.
The delegates ignored
Heldeyz, prone on the carpet before the Settler. There were half a dozen of
them, mostly in the dress of wealthy merchants, one in Civil Government
uniform. They threw themselves prostrate; a gesture that only the ruler of the Gubernio
Civil was legally due. In fact, it was forbidden to any other on penalty of
death, but the Governor was in East Residence, and Ali was very much present
before their gates with fifty thousand men.
"Sovereign
lord," the head of the delegation mumbled into the carpet; he was an
elderly man, sweating in the heat, the wattles under his chin sliding down into
the expensive but dust-stained silver lace of his cravat. "Spare us."
Well, thought Raj.
That's straightforward enough.
"Surely," the alcalle
of Gurnyca said, "we may make amends to Your Supremacy for any offense we
have unwittingly given. We are but poor merchants, not the lords of State. We
have no knowledge of high matters. Yet if wrong has been done you, we are
willing to pay. Surely there can be peace—who would benefit from war?"
Ali smiled. "There
may be peace, if God wills. There is but one God, and all things are
accomplished according to the will of God." He nodded, and added in his
own tongue: "Salaam, insh'allah."
One ringed hand stroked
his beard, and he flicked a finger at a clerk. "You spoke of payment. The
tribute from you kaphar ingrates is in arrears to the extent of—"
"—twenty-one
hundred thousand gold dinars, O Lion of Islam," the clerk said.
"That is not counting interest on late payments at—"
"Silence," Ali
purred, a lethal amusement in his voice. "Am I a merchant, to haggle? By
all means, if this is made good, let there be peace."
Even under the Colonial
guns, that brought a wail of protest. "Lord, Lord," the alcalle said.
"We are but one city! There is not that much gold in all Gurnyca, not if
we stripped the dome of the cathedron and the fillings from our teeth."
"Both of
which," Ali pointed out genially, "will be done if the city is put to
the sack." He raised a hand. "It is the time of prayer. Surely, we
may speak again of this later; and you shall return to your city with an escort
and safe passage. In the morning, I shall give my final decision."
The scene shifted, the
sun dropping toward the horizon and both moons high, looking like translucent
glass against the bright stars. Date palms and orange groves stood in darkening
shadow as the Gurnyca elders and Heldeyz rode their dogs through the belt of
irrigated land surrounding the city. Water chuckled in the canals that bordered
the fields, oxen lowed, but there was no sight or sound of human beings, no
smoke from the whitewashed huts of the peasantry. Fields lay empty, scattered with
tossed-aside hoes and pruning hooks; a manor stood ghostly among its gardens,
with only the raucous sound of a peacock strutting along the tiled portico.
Frontier reflexes, Raj
thought grimly. They know when to make a bolt for the walls.
There were no buildings
or trees within a half-kilometer of the fortifications, only pasture and field
crops; and the city defenses were first-rate. Raj remembered them well from the
archives, which he'd memorized long before Center entered his life. Modernized
a century ago, and then again in his father's time. A clear field of fire, good
moat, new-style walls sunk behind it, low and massive. Ravelins and bastions at
frequent intervals, giving murderous enfilade fire all along the circuit, with
a strong central citadel near the water. The guns were cast-iron muzzle-loaders
like most fortress artillery, but formidable and numerous; there were some very
up-to-date rifled pieces among them.
Resolutely held by a
strong garrison, the city could have held for months against the Colonial
army—and it would be impossible to bypass. Taking it by siege would require
full-scale entrenchments, pushing artillery positions forward inch by bloody
inch, escalade trenches, until enough heavy howitzers were close to the wall
and you could pound it flat. Even then, storming it would be brutally
expensive. By that time, the Civil Government would have had time to mobilize
its field armies in the East and march to the city's relief. It was a strategy
that had worked a dozen times in the endless eastern wars.
If the garrison
was up to strength and competently led.
Center's viewpoint
switched to the escort, a full half-battalion of them, two hundred and fifty
men. They didn't look particularly impressive at first sight, dark bearded men,
many with the tails of their pugarees drawn across their faces like veils. Raj
looked for telltale signs: their hands, the wear on the hilts of scimitars and
carbines, the way they sat their dogs, how often they had to check or spur to
keep their dressing.
These lads have
been to school. Their commander was a stocky man, one of the ones with
the tail-end of his turban drawn across his face. Scars seamed the backs of his
hands, and another gouged down from forehead to nose . . .
. . . and his eye was
unmoving on that side. Tewfik. Raj cursed to himself. With a glass eye
for once, rather than his trademark patch. He'd met the Colonial commander
once, in a parley before the Battle of Sandoral, four years ago. What's he
doing there? It was a job for a minor emir, not the commander-in-chief.
An image flickered
through Raj's consciousness, tinged somehow with irony: himself, leading the
2nd Cruisers through the tunnel under Lion City's walls.
Point taken, Raj noted
dryly.
The white dust of the
road shone ruddy with the setting sun, streaked with the long shadow of the
tall cypresses planted by its side. They came to the outer gatehouse of the
city's defenses, where the highway crossed the moat on stone arches. Civil
Government troops opened the iron portals: infantrymen, slovenly-looking even
for footsoldiers. Raj ground his teeth at the rust on one man's rifle barrel.
They eyed the Colonial troops with the prickly nervousness of a cat watching a
pack of large dogs through a window. Heldeyz saluted their officer and opened his
mouth to speak.
Tewfik drew his revolver
and shot the man in the face.
A red spearhead seemed
to connect the Arab's hand and the guard officer's nose for an instant, and
then the footsoldier jerked backward as if kicked in the face by an ox. His
helmet rang against the stone of the gatehouse, the last fraction of the clank
lost in the snapping bark of carbines as the Colonials cut loose with their
repeaters. They boiled forward, screaming in a wild falsetto screech. One of
the Civil Government soldiers managed to get a round off, the deeper boom of
his single-shot rifle painful in the confined space. Then he went down under a
Colonial officer's yataghan, still stabbing upward with his bayonet.
The fight in the gateway
lasted bare seconds, leaving Heldeyz and the city fathers sitting their dogs
and gaping at the litter of bodies. Puffs of off-white smoke drifted by; the
Colonials were wasting no time. Dozens of them stuck their carbines through
gunslits in the doors and fired blind, as fast as they could work the levers,
sending a lethal hail of the light bullets to ricochet off the stone walls
within. Hand-bombs and axes pounded the doors open. The rest of the Colonial
force formed a dense four-deep firing line at the inner gate, thumbing reloads
from their bandoliers into the loading gates of their weapons. Heldeyz's head
whipped around at the high shrill scream of a Colonial bugle.
Mounted men were pouring
out of the orchards that ringed the city, spurring their dogs. The animals
bounded forward at a dead run, covering the ground in huge soaring leaps as
they galloped with heads down and hind legs coming up nearly to their ears on
every jump. Rough hands threw the courier aside as the column poured into the
strait confines of the gatehouse and broke out into the cleared ground beyond;
a battery of pompoms followed, their long barrels jerking wildly as the gunners
lashed their dogs. Iron wheels sparked on the paving stones, and behind them
the roadway was red with crimson djellabas . . .
* * *
Barholm's fist hit the
table as the courier's words stumbled into silence. He didn't have Center's
holographic visions to flesh them out, but there was nothing wrong with his
wits.
"They knew
the wogs were there in force and they didn't keep a better guard than
that?" he said.
"Sole Autocrat, the
garrison was under-strength and badly trained," Raj said quietly. "In
any case, they paid for their folly."
"Yes," Heldeyz
said, his eyes remote. "They paid."
observe, Center said.
The scimitar flashed in
the sun. A heavy thack sounded, with the harsher wet popping of fresh
bone underneath. The alcalle's head rolled free; his body collapsed from
its kneeling position, heavy jets of arterial blood splashing into the reddish
mud that stained the ground. Clouds of flies lifted, then settled again. The
executioner flourished his heavy two-handed curved sword ritually.
The smoke from the
burning buildings covered the smell, even from the pyramid of heads the
Settler's mamluks were building beside the outer gate. Few of the chained
coffles of Gurnycians marching out paid much attention to it; their faces were mostly
blank, eyes to the ground. Mounted Colonial guards urged them on with snaps of
the kourbash, the long sauroid-hide whip. They were the lucky ones:
pretty women, strong young men, craftsmen, and children old enough to survive
the trip south to the markets of Al Kebir.
Ali pointed. "No,
cut that one's throat," he said, indicating a Star priest with a thin
white beard. The executioner lowered his sword.
The old man's eyes were
closed; he was praying quietly as the black-robed mamluk stepped up behind him
and drew the curved dagger. Ali giggled when the body toppled thrashing to the
ground.
"The halall,"
he said, sputtering laughter. The ritual throat-cutting that made meat clean
for Muslims to eat. "Is it not fitting, for these beasts?"
Raj noted a mullah's
lips tightening at the blasphemy. Nobody spoke.
The good humor on Ali's
face turned gelid as he gripped Heldeyz's face in his hand and turned it to the
heaps of severed heads.
"Do you see,
infidel?" he screamed. "Do you see?"
A portly man in a green
turban shoved his way through the crowd. A string of prisoners followed him,
mostly girls in their early teens, with a few younger boys. He prostrated
himself.
"Oh guardian of the
sacred ka'ba, you wished—" he began in a falsetto voice.
Ali released the Civil
Government courier. "Yes, yes," he said impatiently. His hand flicked
to a girl and a boy. "Those two, and don't bother me again before the
evening meal." He jerked his head at his guards. "Come. Bring the
pig-eating kaphar."
Wagons took up most of
the roadway, oxen lowing under the load. Inside, in the cleared space within
the walls that Civil Government law commanded, were huge heaps of spoils;
officers were directing the troopers as they piled it in neatly classified
heaps. Cloth, metalware, tools, coin, precious vessels from the Star churches
and temples . . . Beyond, only a few buildings still stood. As Heldeyz watched,
a merchant's townhouse collapsed inward about the burning rafters, the thick
adobe walls crumbling like mud. A ground-shaking thump, and the great dome of
the Star temple followed; Raj recognized the sound of blasting charges.
"See,
unbeliever," Ali went on. "The pig and son of pigs Barholm—it was not
enough that he cheated me of the blood-price of my father's death, he expected
me-me—Ali ibn'Jamal, to sit among the women and do nothing while he
conquered all the world. Conquered all the world, then turned on me! Turned on
the Faithful! No, kaphar, Ali ibn'Jamal, Guardian of Sinar, Settler of
the House of Islam, is not such a fool as that.
"Tell Barholm I am
coming for him." Ali's mouth was jerking, and his voice rose to a shrill
scream. "Tell him I have something for him!"
Colonial soldiers were
setting a sharpened stake in the ground. They dragged out the Arch-Sysup
Hierarch of the Diocese of Gurnyca. He was a portly man, flabby in middle age,
stripped to his silk underdrawers. The black giants holding his arms scarcely
lost a step when he collapsed at the sight of the waiting impaling stake . . .
* * *
Silence fell around the
table. At last, General Klosterman cleared his throat.
"Well, I don't
think there's much doubt as to Ali's intentions," he said.
Barholm nodded
abstractedly. "General Klosterman, how long would it take to mobilize all
available field forces and meet the Colonists in strength?"
Klosterman paled. Master
of Soldiers was an administrative post, but it did give the elderly
officeholder a good grasp of the state of the Civil Government's defenses.
"Lord, Ali has
fifty thousand of his first-line troops with him. If we summoned all
available cavalry, we couldn't field half that in time to meet him south of
Sandoral, or even south of the Oxhead Mountains . . . and forgive me, Sovereign
Mighty Lord, but the troops we could summon would not be in good heart."
observe, said Center.
* * *
This time Center's
projections started with a map. Raj recognized it, a terrain rendering of the
Civil Government's eastern provinces. The Oxhead Mountains ran east-west, then
hooked up northward; north of it was the sparsely settled central plateau, and
to the south and east was the upper valley of the Drangosh and its tributary.
That was densely settled in part, where irrigation was possible; elsewhere arid
grazing country, with scattered villages around springs in the foothills.
Colored blocks moved,
arrows showing their lines of advance. He nodded to himself; so and so many
days to muster, supplies, roadways, the few railroad lines. Twenty thousand men
maximum, perhaps thirty thousand if you counted the ordinary infantry garrisons
called up from their land grants. And . . .
Men in blue and maroon
uniforms fled, beating at their dogs with the flats of their sabers or with
riding whips. A ragged square stood on a hill, with the Star banner at its
center. Black puffballs of smoke burst over the tattered ranks, shellbursts,
and Colonial field guns hammered giant shotgun blasts of canister in at
point-blank range. Men splashed away from the shot in wedges. A line of
mounted dragoons drew their scimitars in unison, flashing in the bright
southern sun. Five battalions, Raj estimated with an expert eye. Twenty-five
hundred men. Trumpets shrilled, and the scimitars rested on the riders'
shoulders. Walk-march. Trot. The blades came down. Gallop. Charge. A single
long volley blew gaps in their line, and they were over the thin Civil
Government square. The Star banner went down. . . .
* * *
"Lord,"
Klosterman went on, "with humility, my advice is that we throw as many men
into Sandoral and the eastern cities as we can. Ali cannot take them
quickly."
Tzetzas spoke for the
first time. "But he could bypass them," he said.
Raj nodded silently,
conscious of eyes glancing at him sidelong.
observe, said Center.
* * *
From horizon to horizon,
the land burned; ripe wheat flared like tinder under the summer sun, sending
clouds of red-shot black into the sky. Denser columns marked the sites of
villages and manor-houses. In an orchard, peasants worked under Colonial guns,
ringbarking the trees and piling burning bundles of straw against their roots.
A flicker, and he was
outside a city: Melaga, from the look of the olive-covered hills around it. Raw
red earth marked the siegeworks about it, a circumvallation with a high wall
topped by a palisade. Zigzag works wormed inward from there, each ending in a
redoubt protected by earth-filled wicker baskets. Swarms of men hauled cannon
forward and dug at the earth. Guns boomed from the city walls, and men died in
the siegeworks, but more took their places. Howitzers lobbed their shells into
the sky, the fuses drawing trails of smoke and fire until they burst within the
walls . . .
* * *
"No, that would be
far too uncertain," Tzetzas went on. "Instead, well, the treasury is
unusually full. We could offer Ali twice, three times the previous
tribute."
Barholm snorted.
"After we shorted him on the last agreement? I can just see him
quietly going back to Al Kebir, demobilizing his army and waiting for the gold
to arrive."
"Sovereign Mighty Lord,"
Heldeyz said, "he's not here for gold. He's here for blood. He's . . .
he's not going to be bought off. You have to see him—"
ali would agree to the increased tribute, but
remain on civil government soil, probability 97%, ±2. observe, said Center.
* * *
"Filth!" Ali
screamed. He strode through the pavilions, kicking over platters filled with
whole roast lambs, rice pillaus, fruits, and ices. "You call this a feast
of welcome! Filth!"
The syndics of the town
shrank backward, looking around with the instinctive gesture of men in a trap
with no exit.
"That pig Barholm,
that two-dinar Descotter hill chief who calls himself a conqueror, it isn't
enough he makes me wait for my tribute, but he insults me too."
Ali stopped, smiled,
relaxed. The expression was far more frightening than the bloodthirsty madness
of a minute before.
"Well then, we'll
have to show the kaphar what it means to insult the Commander of the
Faithful, won't we?" he went on.
He eyed the assembled
syndics with much the same expression that a farmwife would have, standing in
the yard and fingering her knife as she selected a stewing pullet.
observe:
A younger Ali knelt
behind a girl. Gardens bloomed around them, thick with flowers and softly
murmurous with bees; the stars shone above, the only light on the rippling
water of the fountain save for a few discreet lanterns. Ali had a hand on the
girl's neck, pushing her face below the surface of the water as he thrust into
her. He let her rise for an instant, long enough to take one breath and scream.
It bubbled out as he
pushed her down again. Her hands beat against the marble of the pool's rim,
leaving bloody streaks on the carved stone.
observe:
Ali sat at a chessboard,
across from a grave white-bearded man. The pieces were carved from sauroid
ivory and black jadeite; they played seated on cushions of cloth-of-gold,
beneath a fretted bronze pergola that served as support for a huge vine of
sambuca jasmine. A slender girl naked except for the filmy veil that hid half
her face poured cut-crystal goblets full of iced sherbert. Droplets of
condensation stood out on the silver ewer.
"Checkmate, Prince
of the Faithful," the older man said. "Congratulations. This is your
best game yet."
Ali looked down at the
chessboard, his lips moving as he traced out the possible movements. When he
moved, it was so swiftly that the serving girl had time for only the beginning
of a scream.
His hand grasped the cadi's
white beard, and the dagger slashed it across. He threw the tuft of hair in the
older man's face.
"Sauroid-lover,"
he screamed. "You dare to insult me?"
The old man drew himself
up. "You forget yourself, Ali," he said. "I am appointed by the
Settler to guide your footsteps. You must learn restraint—"
Ali moved again, very
quickly. The curved dagger in his hand was hilted with silver and pearls, but
the blade was layer-forged Sinnar steel, sharp enough to part a drifting silk
thread. It sliced more than halfway through the cadi's throat. The old
man turned, his blood arching out in a spraying stream of red across the
priceless silk of the cushions and the white body of the girl. Ali stood
silent, panting, watching the body tumble down the alabaster steps of the
gazebo. Then he turned toward the servant, smiling. Blood ran down his
mustaches, and speckled his lips.
observe:
Ali sat on the Peacock
Throne of the Settlers, in a vaulted room whose ceiling was an intertwining
mass of calligraphy picked out in gold, the thousand and one names of Allah,
the Merciful, the Lovingkind. From a glass bull's-eye at the apex, light streamed
down, mellow and gold, to the tessellated marble floor. Guards stood motionless
around the walls of the great circular chamber. Others dragged a man forward;
he was stripped to his baggy pantaloons, a hard-muscled man in his thirties
with a close-cropped beard and a great beak of a nose.
"Greetings, Akbar
my brother," Ali called jovially. "How good, how very good to see
your face again!"
The Settler's brother
drew himself up and spat on the marbled floor. "You have won, Ali,"
he said disdainfully. "Yours is the Peacock Throne. Bring out the irons
and have done."
"Irons?" Ali
said.
That was the traditional
punishment for the losers, when a dead Settler's brothers fought for the
throne. Only a man complete in his limbs and organs could be Commander of the
Faithful; Tewfik was disqualified because he had lost an eye in battle. A
red-hot iron fulfilled the same purpose.
"Irons?" Ali
said again. "Oh, may Allah requite me if I should put out the eyes of one
born of the same seed, of Jamal our father."
Eunuchs brought out a
stout iron framework, like a high bedstead with manacles at each corner. Akbar
began to bellow and thrash; the guards held him down with remorseless strength
while the plump, smooth-faced eunuchs snapped the steel cuffs around wrist and
ankle.
"Shaitan will gnaw
your soul in hell if you shed a brother's blood!" Akbar yelled.
Ali stood and made a
gesture. The guards saluted with fist to brow, and marched out of the great
chamber.
"I? Shed your
blood? Never, my brother."
Ali stood by the iron
rack, stroking his beard. He pulled a handkerchief from one sleeve of his
pearl-sewn robe and made as if to wipe his brother's face; when the other man
opened his mouth to shout a curse Ali deftly stuffed the length of silk into
it.
"There. It is
unmannerly to interrupt the Settler. Do you not remember, brother, how you
boasted to your captains during our brief, unfortunate civil strife—how you
boasted to them that I should be sent into exile on an island in the Zanj Sea
with only a mute crone to attend me? That a . . . how did you phrase it? A
perverted bastard son of a diseased sheep like me did not deserve the delights
of the hareem, and that the pearl-breasted beauties who served me would be
shared among your amirs."
He clapped his hands. A
line of women filed into the throne room, the long robes of their chadors
brushing the floor and the sleeves hiding their hands.
Ali turned.
"Zufika, Aisha," he said. "All of you—hide not the light of your
faces."
Obediently, they dropped
the filmy black cloaks to the floor. Several of them were carrying long slim
knives; two bore a charcoal brazier between them, holding the metal frame with
iron tongs. Others set a stool by the iron frame. Ali sank down with a
satisfied sigh.
"No, I shall not
shed a drop of your blood," he said. "But you surprise me, with this
unseemly conduct. Don't you know it is unfitting for an entire male to look on
the faces of the Settler's women?"
Zufika came forward, the
knife in her hand. "Attend to it, my sweet one."
Through the gag, Akbar
began to scream.
* * *
"Sovereign Mighty
Lord," Raj said quietly.
Silence fell; even
Barholm checked himself, dropping the finger he'd been wagging under Chancellor
Tzetzas' nose.
"With your
permission, lord, I'll take command in the East. Superseding the Commander of
Eastern Forces and the garrison commandants."
There were nods all
around the table, even from Gharzia. Right now the high command in the east was
the sort of honor you took with you to an unmarked grave.
"And I'll take
seven thousand cavalry to the border."
"Ridiculous—"
"That'll strip the
garrisons of—"
"D'you want Ali to
march right into East Residence—"
Raj raised his hand.
"Sovereign Mighty Lord, the troops are on their way to East Residence as
we speak. Most of the garrison of the Western Territories. Veteran fighters,
the cream of our armies."
Barholm looked at him
narrow-eyed. And the soldiers most loyal to you. The thought needed no
words.
"That's forty-five
hundred men, perhaps a little more. I'll take another two thousand of the
Brigaderos prisoners who've been reequipped and organized along Civil
Government lines, and some of the battalions who were with me in the Southern
Territories campaign and are now attached to the Residence Area command."
Gharzia was scribbling
on his pad. "Heneralissimo—" he began, giving Raj the title
he'd been formally stripped of "—that'll still leave you well below Ali's
numbers, discounting his infantry and line-of-communications troops. Shouldn't
we pull back more of the Southern and Western Territories garrisons?"
Raj spread his hands.
They were brown with sun, battered and nicked and callused from swords and
reins, as out of place in this quiet elegant room as the man himself.
"That would take
too long. Messers, Sole Autocrat, we don't have the time. Please
understand, no matter what I do, the border area is going to get the worst
working-over it's had in a century or more."
observe, Center said.
* * *
—and Colonial dragoons
rode through a Borderer hamlet, tossing torches through the windows. Fire
belched back, red flames and sooty smoke turning the whitewash black above the
openings. Here and there a limestone lintel burned with white-hot fire as it
sublimed.
—the last of a line of
Arabs picked himself up off a woman and adjusted his robe. She lay motionless
in the dust of the street, eyes empty, spittle running down from the corner of
her mouth. The Colonial kicked her in the ribs, then called an order to the
others. He had the crossed lines of a naik, a corporal, on the sleeve of
his djellaba. Two of the troopers picked the woman up by the ankles and wrists,
grunting at the limp dead weight. The naik jerked a thumb, and they dumped
their semi-conscious victim head-first down the well.
—bursting charges
spouted plumes of smoke and rock and pulverized dirt across the massive sloping
front of the dam. It stretched two hundred meters across a U-shaped valley amid
dry rocky hills, a stone-paved road on its top and stone and iron gates at one
side where the tumbling water of the flume was channeled into a canal. For long
moments nothing seemed to happen, and then water sprouted from the surface
where the explosives had been laid. It gouted like erupting geysers, turning to
rainbow splendor at the edges under the bright noon light. The sappers whooped
and danced as the rushing torrent eroded the earthwork of the dam like a lump
of sugar under a spout of hot tea. Then the earth shuddered as the dam
collapsed in earnest, and the lake headed downstream in a roaring wall of brown
silt and tumbling rocks.
* * *
"Yes, yes,"
Barholm said. The other advisors were silent as the two Descotters met each
other's eyes.
"I think I can
retrieve the situation," Raj said calmly. "Provided, of course, I
have my Governor's full confidence. Do I have your confidence, my
lord?"
Barholm's lips
tightened. "Yes, yes," he said again. He snapped his fingers for a
parchment, wrote, signed, extended his hand for the Gubernatorial seal. It
thwacked into the purple wax with an angry sound.
He pushed it across the
polished flamegrain wood of the table. Raj picked it up. It was a delegation of
viceregal power, requiring all officers and officials of the Civil Government
to tender him full cooperation—rare for a commander sent out into the barbaricum,
unheard-of within the borders.
If I smash the
Colonials, Raj thought—unlikely as that seemed right now-that'll be the last
strong opponent the Civil Government faces. He'd reconquered the Southern
and Western Territories; the Base Area was far away, and the Zanj states of the
Southern Continent even farther. Once the Colony had been beaten back, Barholm
Clerett's position would be safer than any Governor's in the past five hundred
years. Safe enough that he would certainly no longer need a heneralissimo
supremo.
"Yes," Barholm
repeated. "Who could doubt that you have my full confidence?"
Raj stood, bowing and
tucking the Gubernatorial Rescript into the sleeve-pocket of his uniform
jacket.
"Then if you'll
forgive me, Sovereign Mighty Lord, Messers."
His face held an
abstracted frown as he left the room, ignoring the murmur behind him. Landing
five thousand men and thirty guns, with all their dogs and stores, wasn't easy
at the best of times. Getting them straight off the ships and headed east fast
without a monumental foul-up would be real work.
disembarkation would be most efficiently
achieved as follows, Center began.
Corporal Minatelli
clattered down the steep wooden steps into the hold of the freighter, his
hobnail boots biting into the pinewood. The ship was pitching less now that the
sails were furled and the steam tug was bringing it into port.
Minatelli shook his
head, still a little bewildered at the sight. He'd grown up in Old Residence,
in the Western Territories, and he was familiar enough with fine building. But
Old Residence had shrunk steadily since the Brigade conquered it, with forest and
groves and nobles' country-seats spreading over the old suburbs. These days it
was just a big city.
East Residence was a world.
It sprawled over the seven hills on all sides of its deep U-shaped harbor:
houses and factories, up to the heights where gardens and marble marked the
patricians' quarter and the Gubernatorial palaces. A haze of coal-smoke hung
over it, a forest of masts and smokestacks darkened the water; squadrons of
low-slung steam rams with their paddles churning the water, big-bellied
merchantmen with grain from the Diva country of the far north, or ornamental
stone and wine from Kelden, whole fleets of barges down from the Hemmar River.
And all over the hills, the tracery of gaslight like fairy lights, still bright
in the predawn hours.
He hoped he'd have time
to see the great Star Temple that Governor Barholm had built. It was supposed
to make the one in Old Residence look like a hut—and now, that seemed possible.
Minatelli's feet and
body took him through the crowded hold of the troopship without more than an
occasional jostle; after the cleaner air on deck, the stink of it hit him
again. His eight-man section was waiting by their gear.
"What's t'word,
corp?"
"We're heading
east," Minatelli said.
His own Sponglish was
fluent now, but it still carried the accent of the Spanjol more common in the
Western Territories. He'd been recruited into the 24th Valencia when Messer Raj
came to make war against the Brigade; before that his local priest in Old
Residence had taught him his letters and numbers, which was one reason he'd
made watch-stander and then corporal so fast. Most of the Civil Government's
infantry were of peon stock, and almost all illiterate.
He made a quick check of
the gear laid out on each of the straw pallets. Waterproof blanket, blanket,
long sword-bayonet, cartridge pouches with seventy-five rounds, another fifty
in a cardboard box, entrenching spade or short pick, mess tin, canteen,
haversack, spare clothing if any, bandage packet, blessed chlorine powder for
purifying water, three days' hardtack . . .
The corporal picked up
one of the Armory rifles and stuck his thumb into the loop of the lever before
the handgrip. A push and the block went snick, snapping down at the
front so the grooved ramp on top led to the chamber. He peered down the barrel,
raising it to the light. No rust, not too much oil. He snapped the lever
back: clack. A pull on the trigger brought a sharp click as the
pin fell on the empty space where a cartridge would lie in combat.
"Not too bad,
Saynchez," Minatelli said. "Awright, git the kit on."
A chorus of grumbles.
"Yor all gone soft," he said relentlessly. "Be off yor backsides
soon."
He swung his own on.
Webbing belt, pouches, shoulder-straps, haversack and bayonet went on like a
coat; all you had to do was snap the buckle on the belt. Everything else went
into the blanket roll; you rolled that up into a sausage, strapped the roll shut
with leather thongs, then bent it into a U-shape and slung it over your left
shoulder with the tied-together ends at your right hip. He grunted a little as
it settled down, shrugging until it rode properly; you could wear blisters the
size of a cup if you didn't adjust it just right.
An officer and bugler
came down the main hatchway. The brassy notes of Full Kit and Ready
to Move Out sounded, loud through the dim crowded spaces. The troops
erupted in cursing, crowding movement, all but the most experienced veterans-they'd
gotten ready beforehand. Minatelli grinned at his squad.
"Happy now?"
It was a lot easier to
put your gear on when a couple of hundred others weren't trying to do the same,
and that in a hold packed with temporary pinewood bunks.
Saynchez snorted. He was
a grizzled man in his thirties, one of two in the squad who'd been out east
with the 24th the last time. He'd also been up and down the ladder of rank to
sergeant and back to private at least twice; it was drink, mostly.
"We goin' east fer garrison,
er t'fight?" he asked.
"Messer Raj didn't
tell me, t'last time he had me over fer afternoon kave n' cakes,"
Minatelli said dryly.
He wouldn't be looking
forward to garrison duty, himself. Some preferred it; in between active
campaigns Civil Government infantry were assigned farms from the State's
domains, with tenant families to work them. You had to find your own keep from
the proceeds, minus stoppages for equipment. Provided your officers were
honest—which Major Felasquez was, thank the Spirit—the total came to about the
same as active-service cash pay. About what a laborer made, with more security
and less work. But it sounded dull, especially to a city boy like him,
and he hadn't joined up to be bored.
Mind you, some of the
fighting in the Western Territories had been more interesting than he really
liked. He remembered the long teeth of the Brigade curaissiers' dogs, the
lanceheads rippling down, sweat stinging his eyes, and the sun-hot metal of the
rifle as he brought it up to aim.
"Word is," he
went on, relenting, "that t'wogboys is over the frontier. Messer Raj's
bein' set out to put 'em back."
Saynchez shaped a silent
whistle. Minatelli looked at him hopefully; the far eastern frontier with the
Colony was only a rumor to him. Saynchez had been with the 24th when Messer Raj
whipped the ragheads and killed their king.
"Them's serious
business," the older private said. "Them wogs is na no joke."
"Messer Raj done
whup 'em before," one of the other soldiers said.
"Serious,"
Saynchez said softly. "Real serious."
Minatelli slung his
rifle. The bugle sounded again: Fall in.
* * *
A locomotive let out a
high shrill scream from its steam whistle. Its two man-high driving wheels
spun, throwing twin streams of sparks from the strap-iron rails beneath. The
long funnel with its bulbous crown belched steam and black smoke, thick and smelling
of burnt tar. Behind it eight iron-and-wood cars lurched against the chain
fastenings that bound them together. They were heaped with coal, and heavy. It
took more wheel-spinning and lurching halts before the train finally gathered
way and rocked southward through the city towards the Hemmar Valley and the
long journey east.
Raj's hound Horace
snarled slightly at the train. He ran a soothing hand down the beast's neck,
clamping his legs slightly around its barrel. Other riders were having more
trouble with their animals. Hounds tended to have good nerves; it was one of
their strong points. They also tended to do exactly as they pleased whenever
they felt like it, but everything was tradeoffs. Horace moved forward at a
swinging walk, stepping high over the rails, his plate-sized paws crunching on
the cinder and crushed rock of the roadbeds.
More coal trains pulled
out, building up the reserves at the stations farther east along the Central
Rail; barges lay beside the dock, heaped with the dusty black product of the
Coast Range mines. Other trains were making up, of slat-sided boxcars with 40
hombes/8 dawg freshly stenciled on their sides; forty men, or eight riding
dogs. The railyards sprawled along a good part of East Residence's harbor.
Barholm Clerett had built more kilometers of line than the previous ten
Governors combined; whatever you said of him, he was a builder. Temples, forts,
railways—the great Central Line from the capital to Sandoral completed at
last—dams, canals. Much of it financed with the plunder from Raj's campaigns,
and dug by captives from them.
It was a mild
early-summer day, the sky blue except for a few puffs of high cloud, both moons
up—Maxiluna was three-quarters full, Miniluna a narrow crescent. Like the one
on the Colony's green banner, the crescent of Islam.
Raj shook his head at
the thought. Beyond the moons were the Stars, and the Spirit of Man of the
Stars.
Today there were more
soldiers than railway men in the marshaling yard. Men heaved rectangular crates
onto the bed of a railcar. Each had the Star of the Civil Government stenciled
on its side, and 11mm 1000 rnds. A group of artillerymen—they were
stripped to their baggy maroon pants, but those had a crimson stripe down the
outside of the leg—was manhandling a field gun onto the flatcar behind, heaving
it up a ramp of planks and lashing the tall iron-shod wheels down to eyebolts
on the deck. Oilcloth covers were strapped over the muzzle and breech, to keep
dust and moisture out of the mechanism. Near-naked slaves with iron collars
embossed with Central Rail were pulling in handcarts loaded with
rations: hardtack, raisins, blocks of goat cheese, sacks of dried meat, barrels
of salt fish. A farrier-sergeant of the 5th Descott came by leading a string of
riding dogs on a chain lead snapped to their bridles; they surged away in
wuffling alarm as a locomotive hooted, and the man clung until his feet were
nearly off the ground.
"Pochita! Fequez!
Ye bitches brood, quiet a'down, er I'll-sorry, Messer Raj—"
"Carry on,
sergeant."
"—I'll skin yer
lousy hides, quiet there."
The giant carnivores
calmed, but their ears stayed back, and lips curled away from teeth as long as
a man's finger. Few of the beasts had ever seen a steam engine before, much
less ridden in a train. For that matter, few of the troopers had either, even
the natives of the Gubernio Civil; most of them were countrymen, the
cavalry from border areas or backwaters like Descott County. What the
half-savage westerners he'd brought into the service thought of it, the Spirit
only knew.
A platoon of infantry
passed him, rifles at their right shoulders and blanket rolls over the left. He
read their shoulder-flashes, and gave the officer a salute.
"Glad to have you
with me again, 24th Valencia," he said. "That was good work you did
at the siege of East Residence, and the pursuit."
The lieutenant at their
head snapped out his sword and returned the salute with a flourish. The men
raised a deep shout of Raj! Raj! Some others picked it up, until he
waved them to silence. In the relative quiet that followed, he heard a noncom
cursing at a fatigue-party:
"Didn't hear t'
General tell ye t'stop workin', did ye? Move yer butts! Put yer backs
inta it."
What with one thing and
another, it's probably for the best there's no time to address the men, he
thought mordantly.
A speech from the
commander was customary before taking the field, but the last thing he needed
right now was the inevitable spies—in East Residence they were even thicker
than fleas and almost as common as bureaucrats—giving a lurid description of
his troops crying him hail. Far too many Governors had started out as popular
generals; bought popularity more often than not, but winning battles would do
as well. It made any occupant of the Chair suspicious, and usually more
comfortable with mediocrities holding the high military ranks.
He looked around at the
bustling yard: chaotic, but things were getting done.
"Good work,
Muzzaf," he said to the man riding at his side.
The little Komarite
looked up from his clipboard; there were dark circles under his eyes. "A
matter of times and distances, solamnti," he said. "No
different from calculating tonnages or profit margins." He grinned.
"A pleasure working for a man who understands numbers, at that, my lord.
Too few military nobles do."
Few nobles have
Center advising them, Raj thought. Aloud: "I say again, good work."
It was that: a
formidable bit of organization. Railways had been around for a long time now,
but there had never been enough of them, or enough uninterrupted kilometers of
line, to move large forces. He'd had enough to do managing the men; Muzzaf had
been invaluable once Raj explained the basic idea. This was going to change
warfare forever. Not that the railways were that much faster than dogback yet,
but they were untiring—and more importantly, they could carry heavy supplies
long distances at the same speed as light cavalry, without draft beasts eating
up their loads or dying.
And it never hurt to
acknowledge when a man did something right, either. Another thing too many
nobles did was simply snap their fingers and expect things to fall into place.
It was the engineers and administrators that made the Civil Government more
than another feudal pigsty.
Muzzaf grinned.
"Half of it was your lady's labors," he said. "Without her keeping
the patricians off my back . . ." He shrugged meaningfully.
Raj nodded. Suzette
Whitehall had been born in East Residence, to fifteen generations of city
nobility. Nobody knew how to work the system better. It was one of her manifold
talents. The wonder is she picked a hill-squireen like me, he thought
with a smile. He'd been nothing in particular then, just another land-poor
Descotter nobleman making his way in the professionals like his fathers before
him.
And where-
"My lady," he
said.
She stood with the
command group, but she turned quickly at the sound of his voice. Her smile was
slight, but it warmed the slanted gray eyes; Horace crouched, and Raj stepped
free of the stirrups and bent over her hand. She was in Court walking-out
dress, lace skirt split at the front and pinned back to show embroidered
leggings, mantilla, the works. It surprised him; he'd expected her traveling
gear. Fatima was beside her, carrying a tray with a bottle of Kelden Sparkler
and several long-stemmed glasses, each with half a strawberry on its ice-cooled
rim.
He reached out a
hand—not for the wine, it was too early for him—but for the fruit. She touched
his fingers with her folded fan.
"That's ammunition,
my knight," she said.
A party of officials was
picking their way through the shouting chaos of soldiers and guns and dogs,
heading his way. He recognized the Municipal Prefect of East Residence—the
Governors didn't allow the city an alcalle of its own, knowing the
fickleness of an East Residence mob—and he looked deeply unhappy. Raj braced
himself.
"More time
lost," he growled deep in his throat.
Suzette touched him on
the arm. "A minute, darling," she said. "I expected this. That's
Rahol Himentez, and he had a mob stone his townhouse when the coal ran out one
winter. He's had a bee in his breeches about it ever since."
She swept off towards
the dignitaries.
"—winter
reserves," Raj could hear the Prefect bleating. "And the enemy's on
the Lower Drangosh, not the Upper—"
But he stopped, and his
flunkies with him, milling around as Suzette's soothing voice cut through the
plaintive whine.
Beside him, Gerrin
Staenbridge chuckled with admiration. "Cut off by the flying squadron, by
the Spirit," he said. "Commandeered my mistress to do it, too."
One of the other
officers laughed. "Small loss to you," he said. Staenbridge had an
eye for handsome youths.
"Well, she is
the mother of my heir," he pointed out, and cocked an eye toward the civil
servants Suzette had intercepted. They were beginning to move back towards the
headquarters building, in a sort of Brownian motion gently shepherded by the
women.
Raj nodded curtly.
"Right, gentlemen," he said to the circle of battalion commanders;
most of them his Companions, all of them veterans. "Now, you've all got
your maps?"
They did, although some
of the ex-barbarians, Squadrones and Brigaderos, were looking at them a little
dubiously. The Civil Government's cartographic service was one of a number of
advantages it had had over the Military Governments. Unfortunately, the
Colony's mapmakers were just as skillful.
"This
campaign," he went on, meeting their eyes, "is what we've been
training for these past five years."
"Conquering half
the world was a training exercise?" Ludwig Bellamy blurted.
Raj nodded, with an
expression a stranger might have mistaken for a smile. "No offense,
Messers, but we're not fighting barbarians this time. If we hold out a sausage
grinder, they're not going to scratch their heads, mutter and then obligingly
ram their dicks into it while we turn the crank.
"These are
disciplined troops with first-rate equipment, operating closer to their base of
supplies than we will be. And they have a first-rate commander; Tewfik
ibn'Jamal is nobody's fool. I've fought him twice; lost one, won one—and the
time I won, Tewfik had his father Jamal looking over his shoulder and jogging
his elbow. Jamal was no commander."
Gerrin nodded.
"This time he's got Ali along," he pointed out. His square, handsome
face was dark olive, more typical of Descott than Raj's, who had a grandmother
from Kelden County in the northwest. "Ali's not only no commander, by all
accounts he's a raving bloody lunatic."
"That's our only
advantage, and we'll need it. Messers, no mistakes this time. We move fast, and
we hit like a hammer. Gerrin, detail two hundred of the 5th to me, and I'll
take them ahead on the first train. You'll be rearguard here and come in on the
last with the remainder of the battalion."
He held up a hand when
the other man began to protest. "I need someone here I can trust to see
the plan carried out, Colonel."
"We also serve who
only stay and chivvy bureaucrats," Staenbridge said.
"Ludwig," Raj
went on. "We're short of rolling stock. I'm giving you the 1st and 2nd
Mounted Cruisers" —the former Squadron troops— "and the 3/591, 4/591
and 5/591" —all Brigaderos from the Western Territories— "and you'll
follow on dogback. Entrain your baggage, commandeer what remounts you need from
the Residence Area pens, and keep to the line of rail. You can pick up supplies
at the railstops; nothing on the men but their weapons and personal gear.
Understood?"
Ludwig Bellamy slapped
one gauntleted fist into the other. "Ci, mi heneral," he said,
his Sponglish as pure as a native Civil Government officer; it even had a hint
of a Descott Country rasp.
Nobody would mistake him
for an Easterner, though. He stood a finger over Raj's 190 centimeters, and the
hair cut in an Army bowl crop was yellow-blond. He'd been the son of a Squadron
noble, one who surrendered to Raj to keep his lands. Ludwig had been part of
the deal, a hostage for his father's good behavior. He was far more than that
now. The man beside him was like enough to be his brother, and was his
cousin-in-law; Teodore Welf, former second-in-command of the Brigade.
He tapped his fingers on
his sword-hilt; unlike his kinsman by marriage, he kept the shoulder-length
hair of a Military Government officer, and wore the basket-hilted longsword of
the Brigade rather than an Easterner's saber.
"Good thinking, mi
heneral," he said. "Some of the men . . ." He shrugged at
the shrieking locomotives around them. "Well, they're not used to these
modern refinements."
"True, Major
Welf," Raj said. Meaning, he thought, that steam engines scare
them spitless. They probably thought they were captive demons. "It'll
toughen them up, too. See that they get in some drill with their Armory rifles,
Ludwig."
Bellamy tossed his chin
upward slightly in affirmation; with a slight start, Raj recognized the gesture
as one of his own. How times change.
"The Brigaderos can
use some hard marching," Ludwig Bellamy said judiciously. Welf shrugged
unwilling agreement. "They're good shots and good riders, but a bit soft
in the arse."
For that matter, there
were plenty of officers in the Civil Government's armies who wouldn't dream of
campaigning without half a dozen servants and a wagonload of luxuries.
Not the ones who went to
war with Raj Whitehall, though.
"So." Raj
turned to the other commanders. "Jorg, you and Ferdihando will bring the
17th Kelden Foot and the 24th Valencia on the next series of trains, right
after me and my detachment of the 5th."
Jorg Menyez was a
slender balding man, with receding brownish hair and mild blue eyes, red-rimmed
as usual. He was violently allergic to dogs, the reason he'd gone into the
low-prestige infantry service.
"Infantry
first?" he said in mild surprise. He'd shown what foot soldiers could do
if properly trained and led, but it was still odd.
"I need reliable
men in Sandoral right away," Raj said. "Osterville's in charge there.
Dogs aren't the most urgent priority, where dealing with Osterville's the
problem."
There were a few
snickers. Osterville had been sent to take over in the Southern Territories
after the reconquest, when Raj was recalled in not-quite-disgrace. The command
of the Fortress and District of Sandoral was quite a comedown. None of the
officers who'd been with Raj had supported Osterville, for all that he was one
of Barholm's Guards; that was one reason he'd lost the political struggle with
Mihwel Berg of the Administrative Service. None of it was likely to make him
kindly-disposed toward the Heneralissimo Supremo.
Menyez sneezed
thoughtfully into a handkerchief. "He's supposed to have twenty thousand
men there," he said. "I doubt there's half that fit for duty."
Osterville would be drawing the pay of the vacant ranks; it was a common enough
scam, if not on quite that scale.
"Five thousand if
we're lucky, but that's more than enough to make trouble if Osterville's a mind
to," Raj said. Insane to make trouble with the Colonials over the
border, he thought absently—but he'd seen what jealousy could do to a man's
mind. "Which is why I want your riflemen in place."
"Si, mi
heneral." Menyez frowned. "How did Berg manage to get
Osterville canned from that post? Berg's not a bad sort, for a pen-pusher, but
Osterville was one of Barholm's Guards, after all."
Raj shrugged. "He's
pretty sure I did it," he said. "Spirit knows why. In any case, we'll
cross Messer Osterville when we come to him. Movement: after Colonel Menyez,
the remainder of the cavalry," he went on, listing the battalions.
"Any questions?"
Kaltin Gruder, the
commander of the 7th Descott Rangers, shrugged his heavy shoulders. Pale scars
stood out against the olive tan of his face.
"No
problemo, mi heneral," he said. "Thrashing the wogboys has its
attractions; the looting's good and I like the smell of harem girls."
Raj clenched his teeth
for a moment. There were times when the task of restoring civilization on
Bellevue was like pushing a boulder up a greased slope. Gruder was a
professional; he wasn't supposed to be thinking like a MilGov barbarian noble
or an enlisted man . . . then he caught the grin and answered it.
I talk to Center too
much, he thought. Angels have no sense of humor, it seems.
The cool irony that
touched the back of his mind was wordless, but it communicated none the less.
"Colonel Dinnalsyn,
you'll space the guns out between the battalions. One last thing: we've a new
issue of splatguns." There were exclamations of delight; the rapid-fire
multibarreled guns were the first new weapon the Civil Government had adopted
in a hundred twenty years. Raj had had them run up in the Kolobassian armories
on his own authority—to Center's designs.
"Four per
battalion. Remember they're infantry weapons, not guns; push them forward, and
we'll give the Colonials some of the grief their repeaters and pom-poms do to
us. If that's all, then, we'll get under way."
The Companions slapped
fists in a pyramid of arms. "Hell or plunder, dog-brothers."
Gerrin Staenbridge
watched the tall figure of the General ride away. "As I remember it,
wasn't Lady Anne Clerett the one who dropped a word about Osterville in our
Sovereign Mighty Lord's ear? I wonder who talked to her?"
They all looked in
Suzette's direction. Staenbridge grinned. "Behind every great man . .
." he quoted.
"You know,
Messers," he went on, drawing on his gauntlets, "I was with Messer
Raj back when he took command of the 5th in the El Djem business, south of
Komar. Only five years . . . and that one man has changed the world—and changed
himself."
"Haven't we
all," Kaltin Gruder said, touching the long scars on his face. The
Colonist shrapnel that had carved those furrows had killed his younger brother,
on Raj Whitehall's first independent campaign. "Haven't we all."
"Damned hot,"
Tejan M'Brust said, using an end of his neckerchief to wipe his face.
"No shit,"
Ludwig Bellamy replied.
He reined aside to the
verge of the road, his dog stepping wearily over the ditch and hanging its
head, panting, under the shade of a plane tree.
The troopers' dogs were
panting too, a massed sound like hundreds of wheezing bellows as they rode by
in column of fours. A knee-high fog of dust rose from the crushed rock surface
of the road; he sneezed and hawked and spat to one side. The Descotter followed
suit and offered him a canteen, water with vinegar. It cut the gummy saliva and
dust nicely. Bellamy drank and watched the 1st and 2nd Mounted Cruisers go by,
the dogs at a fast ambling walk. Both units were under strength—they'd paid a
substantial butcher's bill in the Western Territories and hadn't had time to
recruit back to full roster yet—but they shaped well, to his critical eye. A
few were even talking or joking as they rode, though most slumped a little,
reins in one hand and eyes fixed on the rump of the dog ahead. The unit
dressing was crisp, though.
"They're shaping
better than the Brigaderos," M'Brust said, echoing his thought. "I
don't think there's a regular cavalry unit better, my oath I don't. Not even
the 5th Descott."
Ludwig nodded, grinning
tiredly. His people, the Squadron, were accounted wilder than the Brigade;
they'd come down from the Base Area later, and the Southern Territories they'd
conquered had been a backwater. But these battalions had been longer under
Messer Raj's discipline and were first-rate material to begin with, once they
had childish notions about charging with cold steel knocked out of them.
For a moment the skin
between his shoulders crawled, as he remembered the Squadron host advancing
into volley-fire and massed artillery. The chanting, the waving banners, the
sun bright on a hundred thousand swords . . . and Raj Whitehall waiting, his
men a thin blue line looking as fragile and ordered as a snowflake by
comparison. Waiting, then raising his sword and chopping it downward. . . .
He shook it off, removed
his helmet and let the air dry his sweat-damp hair. To their left the land rose
in rocky hills, dry and shimmering with heat in the summer sun. To the right
were gentle slopes, citrus orchards, and then open grain-fields with peons
bending over their sickles as they reaped. The dusty yellow of the wheat was
like flashes of gold through the glossy green leaves of the fruit trees. More
to the point, between road and orchards passed a rock-lined irrigation channel,
and a slow current of water. It was dry and intensely hot here in the southern
foothills of the Oxheads—the land was sloping down toward the sand deserts of
the borderlands—and the sight and sound of the water was intoxicating. He
squinted at the sun, then remembered to take out his watch and click open the
cover; in the Southern Territories, even wealthy nobles hadn't carried them.
There was no point; nobody needed to know the time that precisely, and they
were impossible to keep repaired, anyway.
Civilization.
"Benter," he said to the younger brother who was his aide.
"Twenty minutes. Water the dogs."
He turned and heeled his
dog westwards down the line of march; behind him the cool brassy notes of the
trumpet sounded, and the signalers of each company passed it back. When it
reached the rear of the column the last unit halted first—you had to do it that
way, or the whole mass would collide with each other, like a drunken centipede.
His lips quirked at the memory of his father trying to halt a mass of Squadron
warriors on the move, back when he was a boy. That had taken the better
part of an hour, even with the paid, full-time fighters of the household guard.
The three Cruiser
battalions of ex-Brigaderos were full strength . . . except for their
stragglers. Teodore Welf rode up, red in the face from the heat and from
embarrassment.
"Major
Bellamy," he said, saluting.
"Major Welf,"
Ludwig replied, glancing past him.
They spoke Sponglish,
although the Squadron and Brigade dialects of Namerique were fairly close:
regulations, and it was best to stay in the habit, since more than half the
officers in their units were seconded Civil Government natives like M'Brust.
Men and dogs had
collapsed in the road. Others were leading their animals from the wayside to
the ditch, walking slowly with their legs straddled. A few had trotted over
despite their saddle sores and lay with their heads and shoulders buried in the
life-giving coolness. Ludwig frowned and jerked his head toward them.
Teodore cursed and drew
his sword, spurring to the ditch. "Up and out of there, you slugs!"
he shouted. The flat of the weapon whacked down on shoulders. "Purify it
first, damn your arse! You can't fight with the runs!"
The soldiers stood,
dripping. Officers rode up, as dust-caked as their men, and the troopers formed
lines. Some led the dogs downstream; others scooped their canteens full and
added the blessed purifying chlorine powder; it was a rite shared by the Spirit
of Man of This Earth cult they followed and the Star Church of the Civil
Government, but not all commanders were equally pious. Messer Raj insisted on
the full canonical treatment—water for human drinking to be purified by powder
or by ten minutes at a hard rolling boil, with no exceptions.
The Spirit favored him
for it, too. It wasn't uncommon for armies in the field to lose five men to
dysentery for every one killed in combat. That didn't happen to troops under
Raj's command.
Welf trotted back.
"Sorry, Ludwig," he said. "The Western Territories aren't this
hot."
Ludwig nodded. The
Western Territories were damned cold and rainy, to his way of thinking—his own
ancestors had plowed through them on their way to the southern side of the
Midworld Sea, and he was glad of it. Of course, even the Western Territories
were warm and dry compared to the Base Area, which explained why the Brigade
had stopped there; they'd been the first of the Military Governments to pull up
stakes and move south.
"And your fine
gentlemen aren't used to sweating this hard," he replied, smiling to take
the sting out of it.
"True enough,"
Welf said. He flexed the arm that had been broken by a Civil Government bullet
outside Old Residence, nearly two years ago. "I'd never have dared drive
them this hard, back . . . well, back then."
Ludwig nodded. Even the
troopers had been nobles of a sort back home, with a few hundred hectares and
peons to do the work. Of course, that had its compensations: plenty of leisure
to practice and hunt. So they were fine riders, and mostly good shots. The
Brigade had armed its men with muzzle loaders, but rifled percussion muskets,
not the flintlock smoothbores that had been the best his people could make or
maintain.
"How's my fair
cousin?" Teodore went on.
"Marie? Still
pregnant, according to the last letter," Ludwig said. "Thank the
Spirit. Otherwise she'd be trying to outdo Messa Whitehall and riding with
us."
Teodore shuddered
elaborately. He turned to watch a dog-cart creak up, loaded with sunstruck
Cruisers, their dogs on leading-ropes behind. "Throw some water on
those!" he ordered.
Ludwig put his helmet
back on. The leather-backed chainmail of the pentail thumped on his neck, and
sweat from the sponge-and-cork lining ran into his hair and down his cheeks,
greasy and stale.
"I'm beginning to
wish we'd taken the train," he said.
"Getting there's
half the fun," Teodore replied, blinking red-rimmed blue eyes.
* * *
A trainload of artillery
began to pull out of the East Residence station, guns and men riding on
flatcars, the draft dogs in boxcars farther back from the engine. As soon as it
cleared the switchpoint, the remainder of the 5th Descott jogged forward, breaking
into platoons as they swarmed into the last two trains.
"Alo sinstra,
waymanos!" By the left, forward march. Ten minutes, and the final
platoon was loaded into its boxcar.
Gerrin Staenbridge
looked around. "The last?" he said.
Muzzaf Kerpatik looked
just as exhausted as he did. "The very last, mi colonel," he
said.
Staenbridge ran a hand
over his chin, the sword-calluses rasping against the blueblack stubble.
"Hard to believe." Sleep. Razors. Food. He didn't believe in
those anymore, either.
Some sort of Palace
flunky-in-uniform was wading toward him over the tracks and the litter of the
three-day emergency. They'd been operating in battle mode: throw anything that
breaks or isn't needed out of the way and think about cleaning up later. That
included a fair bit of broken-down rolling stock, as well as dead dogs, dead
draft oxen, about fifty tons of coal that had spilled in odd spots and wasn't
worth the time and effort of collecting, and spare gear. Central Rail
stevedore-slaves, dockworkers, and press-ganged clerks lay about in various
stages of collapse.
But no soldiers. Every
man, dog, gun, and round of ammunition was on its way east. Spirit of man, I
could sleep for a week.
If that flunky meant
what he thought it did—another message from some hysterical fool in the Palace
who wanted his hand held—he'd be talking for a week. The people up on
the First Hill hadn't grown any less terrified of Ali over the last couple of
days, and they were still given to brainstorms, most of which started and ended
with keeping more troops around to protect their own precious personal
fundaments. If he'd wanted to listen to bleating, he would have stayed at home
on the family estate and herded sheep.
"See you in
Sandoral," he said to the little Komarite, and ran for the second train.
It was moving as he
clamped his saber hand on an iron bracket and swung up onto the rear platform.
This car had been tacked on at the last minute; it was the type used to carry
railroad company guards through bandit country, with bunks and a cookstove
inside. He'd found it parked on a siding, and be damned if he wasn't going to
keep it all to himself; that way he'd stand some chance of getting a little
sleep in the fifty hours or so it would take to get to Sandoral. There was some
hardtack and dried sausage in his duffel-
The smell of curry
startled him as he opened the rear door of the guardcar; his stomach growled a
reminder of how long it had been since he ate. Fatima cor Staenbridge—the cor
meant freedwoman—glanced around from the little stove.
"Ready in a minute,
Gerrin," she said.
He opened his mouth to
roar, thought better of it, and sat down, sighing and unbuckling his sword
belt. My own damned fault. He'd rescued the girl during the sack of El
Djem more or less on impulse; rather, she'd picked Bartin Foley to rescue her
from a gang of Descotter troopers bent on gang rape, and he'd helped out. He'd kept
her on impulse, too; Bartin had needed some experience with women—a nobleman
had to marry and carry on his line eventually, whatever his personal tastes.
She'd managed to keep up in the nightmare retreat through the desert, after
Tewfik mousetrapped them, which demanded some respect; she'd also gotten
pregnant—whether by him or Bartin was a moot point and no matter—which was more
than the wife he visited once a year for duty's sake had managed to do.
"Imp," he
said.
She stuck out her tongue
at him and handed him the plate. Spirit, she's still only twenty. He'd
freed her, of course, and acknowledged the child—two, now—his wife hadn't
objected at all, since by Civil Government law he could divorce her for not
giving him an heir. The children had to stay with her back on the estate most
of the time after they were weaned, of course, as was fitting.
He began shoveling down
the fiery curry, washing it down with water and a surprisingly drinkable red.
Drinkable compared to ration issue, that was. And to think I was accounted a
gourmet once, he thought. Polo, hunting, balls, theater, fine uniforms and
parades and good restaurants, handsome youths, witty conversation . . .
surprising how little he'd missed them, in the five years since Raj Whitehall
had been given command of the 5th Descott and sent out to teach the wogs not to
raid the Civil Government borders.
I resented him
then, he mused. Gerrin had been senior . . . but he'd needed a commander to
bring out his best. A furious perfection of willpower possessed Raj; Gerrin
could recognize it without in the least desiring to have it himself. And
it's never been boring. Back then, he'd been so bored he'd fiddled the
battalion accounts out of sheer ennui.
He finished the plate.
Fatima was sitting on the edge of the bunk, eyes demurely cast down; a good
imitation of humility. What an actress. The stage lost something when she
was born Colonial. Natural talent, he supposed, plus being hand-in-glove
with Suzette Whitehall in her impressionable years.
Gerrin sighed again. As
far as he was concerned, sex with women was like eating plain boiled rice
without butter or salt—possible, but . . . On the other hand. A soldier
learned to make do with what was at hand; when all you had was boiled rice,
that was what you ate.
* * *
The mournful sound of
the locomotive whistle echoed through the night. It was evening, and twilight
was falling over the rolling hills of the Upper Hemmar River. To their right
the last sunlight glittered on the surface of the river below, like a ribbon of
hammered silver tracing its way through the darkening fields. The same light
caught the three-meter wings of a pterosauroid as it soared over the water,
gilding the naked skin and the short plush white fur of its body. Higher, the
hills were dusty-green with olive trees, or carpeted with vines in their summer
lushness. Terraced fields of barley were brown-gold on the lower slopes;
cypresses and eucalyptus lined the dusty white streaks of roadway and
surrounded the whitewashed adobe of villas.
Raj looked up from the
maps. Center could provide better, holographic projections with all the
information you needed, but he'd been raised with paper and it still had
something the visions lacked. His father had taught him to read maps, going
around Hillchapel—the Whitehall family estate, back in Smythe Parish, Descott
County—with compass and the Ordinance Survey, until he learned to see the
ground and the markings as one.
"Sentahvo
for your thoughts, my heart," Suzette said.
She had her gittar
in her lap, gently plucking at the strings.
"Thinking about
Descott, and Hillchapel," Raj said. "Damn, but it's been a long time
since we've seen it."
Suzette nodded. She'd
fitted in surprisingly well; if she considered it a bleak stone barn in the
middle of a wilderness, she'd never said so. Well, compared to East Residence,
that was what it was; a kerosene lamp was a luxury, in Descott. Most of the
County was upland volcanic wilderness, thin forest and thinner stony pasture
where you needed ten hectares to feed a sheep. Bandit country too, and bad for
killer sauroids.
He missed it.
"This is as
domestic as we get, I'm afraid," Suzette said lightly.
Raj glanced around the
railroad car. It had been fitted with table and chairs; there was a commode
behind a blanket screen, a couple of skins of wine-and-water hanging from the
wall, a lantern overhead, and a box of field rations—Suzette's version, and a
vast improvement on Army issue. One of his aides was snoring on the floor.
In a car behind, the
troopers were singing—they probably thought of it as singing, at least—in a
roaring chorus:
* * *
"We're marchin' on relief over burnin' desert sands
Six hundred fightin' Descotters, t' Colonel, an' t'band
Ho! Git awa', ye bullock-man—ye've heard t'bugle blowed
The Fightin' Fifth is comin', down the Drangosh Road—"
"We're luckier than
they are," Suzette said, lifting her head and looking off into the
gathering night. "We're together, at least. . . . Their women have to sit
and wonder. And every time someone rides up to the farmhouse door it might be a
messenger with a bundled rifle and saber that's all they'll see of a lost
husband, or a son."
"It's not much of a
married life I've given you," Raj said.
Suzette smiled at him.
"I wouldn't exchange it for any other," she replied. "I don't
think you're one of those who're allowed to have a normal life, anyway."
"Not yet, at
least," Raj said. Never, went unspoken between them.
It wasn't as if Barholm
would give Raj an honored retirement, even, as a reward for victory.
i have found it unwise to use the term never, Center said.
Suzette's fingers
strummed the gittar again. Raj pulled the greatcoat around his shoulders
and let his head fall back. Just a moment, he thought. A moment's
rest.
* * *
"Git yer
arses out offen t'floor," the sergeant barked. "We'll be there
anytimes."
Corporal Robbi M'Telgez
blinked awake.
"Jist when I waz
gittin' t'hang a sleepin' on these things," he said mournfully, picking
straw out of his hair and yawning in the hot close darkness of the boxcar,
thick with the smell of sweat.
The train was slowing,
swaying more from side to side. All around was the flat irrigated plain of the
Upper Drangosh. M'Telgez put his eye to the slats in the boxcar; it was
good-looking country, dry but fit to sprout shoelaces where there was water.
The wheat and barley were in, the fields being plowed for a summer crop of corn
or millet; cotton and sugarcane and indigo were all well up, and there were
orchards in plenty as well, mostly dates and citrus.
Good land fer
the gentry, hell on farmers, he thought idly. Rich land meant poor men to
work it; they'd all be peons around here. Hotter n' blazes, too.
They passed through a
belt of country places, retreats for rich cityfolk built in an open, airy style
that looked indecent somehow compared with the foursquare solidity of the
houses he was accustomed to—but then, Descott was a long way north of this, and
highland country too. He didn't suppose it got cold here even in winter. Then
there were shanties on both sides of the rail line, crude booths of straw and
reeds. He swore softly when he saw who was in them, besides refugee peasants
from the countryside. Among them were men in Civil Government uniforms, only
infantry, but still . . . they looked hungry.
"Ain't they
supposed to pay 'em when they calls 'em in from t'farms?" he said.
The troop sergeant
laughed sourly. "Wuz ye born yesstiday, M'Telgez?"
Trooper Smeet put his
eye to a crack. "Good's a place t' croak as any," he said mournfully.
"We'll a' git kilt, ye know. I hadda dream—"
The rest of the platoon
threw bits of hardtack and cold bacon-rind and anything else handy.
"Ye keep sayin'
thayt long 'nuff, it'll happen, yer bastid," M'Telgez said disgustedly.
Smeet grinned; he was
missing his two front teeth, and his face was a brown wrinkled map of twenty
years' service. "Ye knows a way 't live ferever, loik?"
Just inside the city
walls the train screeched to a stop; he braced himself against the planking and
shaded his eyes as the doors were thrown open.
"Come
on," the sergeant yelled again.
The boxcars emptied
rapidly, the men stretching, the dogs barking with hysterical relief. It was
just as hot outside, with the dry baking heat that he remembered from the first
campaign down here five years ago, but at least you could breathe in the open.
M'Telgez unsnapped the lead-chain of his mount and spent a moment soothing her.
"Sooo, quiet now,
Pochita, ye bitch," he said. A tongue the size of a washcloth and rough as
industrial abrasive lapped at his face. "Quiet—down, girl."
Out of the corner of his
eye he could see Messer Raj and the company commander and the captain in charge
of the Scouts—M'lewis and his Forty Thieves were along, best to double-strap
your pouch—talking earnestly. He worked faster, sliding his rifle into the
scabbard at the right front of his saddle, tightening the girth and
breast-straps, checking the neck-bandolier and the fastening on the saber
hanging from the other side. He slid the blade free a handspan and tested the
edge, then checked the loads on the revolver he had tucked into one boot-top.
Messer Raj would have a
job of work for them to do, and no mistake. He'd been in the 5th Descott for
five years now, and that was one thing you could rely on.
* * *
"Nice to be
loved," Bartin Foley said.
"Not when they get
in the way," Raj replied.
They rode at the head of
the column, slowly. Cheering civilians packed the sidewalks, hysteria in their
voices. Rose petals and rice showered down on the troops, as if they were a
party of groomsmen bringing a bride home from her father's house. Individuals
darted out to offer bottles of wine to the soldiers or, even more dangerous,
food to the dogs. What do they think's going to happen when they stick a
roast in a war-dog's face? Raj thought, turning in the saddle to see one of
the crowd reeling back and clutching a gashed-open forearm. The crowd-stink was
as palpable as the blurring waves of heat that radiated back from the
whitewashed adobe of the buildings and soaked the uniform coat beneath his
armpits.
The noise was spooking all
the dogs, a solid roar between the whitewashed, blank-walled, flat-roofed
houses.
"Trumpeter!"
Raj snarled. "Sound Draw."
The sharp notes cut
through the white-noise background of the crowd, as they were designed to cut
through the clamor of battle. Two hundred hands slapped down on the saber hilts
slung to the offside of their saddles; two hundred blades came free in a single
slithering rasp, then flashed as they were brought back to rest over the
shoulder. The dogs knew the calls as well as the men, and they snarled in
unison, a chilling bass rumble. Long wet fangs glistened, each backed by half a
ton of carnivore. War-dogs were bred for aggressiveness and trained to kill,
and the bristling snake-headed posture of these indicated they were perfectly
ready to do just that.
The crowd screamed and
surged away; there would be deaths in the trampling . . . but not nearly as
many as there would be if Ali sacked the city, which was what was going to
happen if they kept getting in his way. Overhead, doors slammed shut as the
wrought-iron balconies emptied. Raj heeled Horace into a trot; the bugler
signaled again, and the whole column rocked into motion behind him. The iron
wheels of the splatgun battery clattered behind them.
"Well, that'll make
us less popular, mi heneral," Bartin said.
"Popularity be
damned," Raj replied, feeling some of the tension drain out of his
shoulders.
They broke into the Plaza
Real, the square that formed the center of all Civil Government cities. The
usual buildings fronted it: the Star Temple with its gilded dome, the arcaded
Government House, the townhouses of wealthy landowners and merchants . . . and
the cavalry barracks, conveniently to hand in case of trouble. Highly unusual
were the tents and shanties that had gone up all over the square, crowding
right up to the ornamental fountain and gardens in its center; the sour smoke
of their cooking fires lingered, and the stink of an overloaded sewer system.
"Refugees,"
Raj said grimly. "Must be fifty or sixty thousand of them inside the
walls."
"Sandoral has fifty
thousand people in normal times," Suzette said. "With that many more
. . ."
Raj nodded. "We'll
definitely have to do something about that."
They drew rein before
the barracks, a series of two-story buildings connected by walls and
iron-grille gates, enclosing a central parade ground. They smelled even worse
than the rest of the city, not just the inevitable aroma of dogshit that was
inescapable where cavalry were stationed, but the fetid stink of overcrowding
and neglect. They looked neglected—gates awry, stucco flaking in damp
patches from the walls. But with the units as under strength as his
intelligence had it, they shouldn't be crowded—and washing was hanging from the
windows, women and children too numerous for camp followers leaning out and
pointing, or lounging in the doorways.
"Captain
Foley," Raj said. "Dismount the men, rifles, and a watchstander and
troop here. Then accompany me, if you please."
The bugle sang. The men
sheathed their sabers and pulled the Armory rifles out of the scabbards.
Another call, and the dogs sank to a crouch; the men stepped free of the
stirrups and bent to loop their reins over the hitching rail and watering
trough that lined the plaza side of the garrison buildings. A long clicking
sounded as they loaded their weapons; the 5th Descott didn't carry guns for
show, and when they made a threat they meant it.
An officer came out of
the main gate, fastening his sword belt. Raj ran an eye over him: thirty or so,
but with an older man's belly straining against the sash and belt, unshaven,
the blue uniform coat stained under the armpits. He didn't expect soldiers to
waste time trying to look strack in the field, but in garrison keeping neat
reminded them that they were soldiers; it was a sign of self-respect.
They had running water here, for the Spirit's sake! And every eight-man section
of cavalry troopers was allowed one soldier's servant to handle routine
fatigues.
Also an officer should
set an example.
Just about what
I expected, in short, Raj thought, a cold anger tightening its hand under his
breastbone. He returned the stranger's salute.
"Captain Hamelio
Pinochet, 47th Santanner Dragoons," the man said.
"Heneralissimo
Raj Whitehall," Raj replied. "I'm here to take command,
Captain."
The unfortunate officer
swallowed, attempting to brace to attention. "Ah, mi heneral,
you'll understand, with the emergency and the refugees—"
"I understand
perfectly, Captain." With housing at a premium, somebody had seen the
profit potential in renting out the military's spare space. "Lead
on."
Milling civilians looked
at them curiously as they walked through the long barracks halls; each had
space for a hundred men's cots, with rooms for the lieutenants and a suite for
the company commander, plus a ready room and mess. Right now they were crowded
with twice that number or more of refugees; from their clothes, well enough off
to be making a fortune for whoever was running this scam. A swelling murmur ran
through them as Raj passed. By the time they reached the buildings still in
military use, it had preceded them a little; enough for protesting feminine
squeals to be fading as women were hustled out of the barracks, and for the
soldiers to have made emergency repairs. Not much in the way of repairs.
Gear was piled in heaps all over the floors, few of the men were in full
uniform, and there were still cards and dice lying in some corners. The
troopers stood braced at the foot of their cots, visibly willing their vital
functions to cease.
Raj ignored them for a
moment. Instead he stripped a rifle out of the rack by the locker at the head
of a cot and worked the action. "No rust here, at least," he said
mildly. Then:
"Captain Pinochet,
how many men are on muster here? You're rated at four battalions."
Twenty-four hundred men or so, in theory.
"Ah . . . about one
thousand, sir. Most of the officers aren't, ah . . ."
"Present at the
moment, yes," Raj said. "Fall the men in, if you please,
Captain."
Raj crossed his arms and
waited while the bugles rang. It took a very long time for the garrison troops
to sort out their equipment. Starless Dark knows what shape the infantry's
in, he thought with a mental wince. This was the elite cavalry.
"Ten'hut."
The noncom's bark
brought the men to a ragged attention as Raj strode out; the banner of the 5th
Descott was at his back, and his personal blazon. The two companies of the 5th
tramped out at the double, and fell in at his back with the smooth economy of
endless practice, the uniform crash of their hobnails sounding across the
drillground and echoing back from the barracks and stables that ringed it.
Raj waited for a minute.
"Men," he said at last, "I'm going to keep this short and
sweet."
He pointed over his shoulder.
"There's a bloody great wog army coming up the Drangosh; they're about
five days' march that way. I've got troops coming in from the west, but we're
going to need every man who can ride and shoot. That means you. Every
soldier, that is. I'll be back in a few hours, and I expect to see you looking
and acting like soldiers by then." He paused again.
"Captain Pinochet,
please send runners to the remaining battalion officers of this command. You
may inform them that any man holding the Governor's commission not present when
I return may consider himself dismissed from the service." He turned his
head to the bugler. "Sound dismissed to quarters."
The garrison left much
more quickly than they'd assembled. Raj nodded once, tapping a thumb against
his chin. "I think they're getting the message," he said. "Now
for Osterville."
* * *
Antin M'lewis was
muttering under his breath. Raj knew the song without needing to hear words or
tunes: it was an old Army ditty whose chorus went Lovely loot/That's the
thing makes the boys git up an' shoot!
Commandant Osterville's
house was a looter's dream. The outer gates were gilded wrought iron, the inner
Zanj ebony studded with miniature silver sauroid heads. A chandelier of
Kolobassian crystal hung overhead, to light the three-story atrium. Floor and
sweeping staircases were of marble; the walls held gilt-framed mirrors and
paintings; man-high alabaster urns held trailing bougainvillea . . . Punkahs
swayed, moving air cooled by fountains playing over fretted stone and scented
by orange-blossom.
The majordomo bowed
himself out of the way—a plump eunuch with a Colonial accent. Poor bastard
can't help it, Raj thought; but they always put his teeth on edge.
Osterville had put on weight and lost a lot of hair since Raj had seen him
last. He'd always been ambitious, and Capital-smooth; now he had a sour pinch
to his mouth and lines between there and his nostrils. Which were turned up as
if at a bad smell. There was a crowd of hangers-on by him, aides and flunkies
and the battalion commanders of the garrison.
"Whitehall,"
Osterville said frigidly. "What the devil do you think you're doing,
coming in here and giving orders outside the chain of command?"
There was a murmur of
indignation from the flunkies; but the battalion commanders stayed
stony-silent, with a slight unconscious withdrawal, as if Osterville had
something contagious. Raj gave them a swift glance. None of them had been
living on their pay here—not with Osterville's example before them, not if
Abdullah's reports were true—but they didn't love the Commandant for it.
Especially not now that their careers and lives were on the line.
Raj reached into his
jacket. "Commandant Osterville. By Gubernatorial Rescript, I have been
given command of all Civil Government troops in this area. I hereby notify you
that I am assuming control."
Osterville read through
the note. "I acknowledge your overall authority," he said after a
moment.
Raj could see the wheels
turning behind the narrow black eyes. Whitehall's in disfavor. Even if he wins,
he'll be removed.
"But this document
does not give you authority to interfere in the internal command
structure of the units under my authority as district commandant. You may give
your orders to me, and I will carry them out as I see fit."
Divided command . . .
Behind Raj, the Scout Troop—the Forty Thieves—tensed; they hadn't followed the
exchange, not really, but they could read the hostility in the air well enough.
M'lewis had recruited
the Scouts himself. None of them were men likely to hesitate if ordered to
arrest the Commandant . . . or to take him and the others out back and shoot
them, if it came to that. Osterville looked past Raj and his complexion turned
a muddy gray.
Disaster, Raj knew. A
good chance of a firefight right here in the city, or at least wholesale
passive resistance by the garrison troops. This mission balanced on a knife
edge as it was . . .
. . . and Osterville
wouldn't back down. Not openly; whatever else the man was, he wasn't that type
of coward.
Suzette moved forward.
"Hernan, Hernan," she said, tapping him on the arm with her fan.
"Last time I was in Sandoral there were more interesting things than a lot
of smelly soldiers." She wrinkled her nose. "Don't tell me you've
become a complete provincial out here, my dear. And you were such a gay
blade back in the City." When someone in the Civil Government put a
capital on it that way, only one city could be meant.
Osterville bowed over
her hand.
"I've been
trapped on a troop train for three days. Couldn't you find a decent meal for a
poor, benighted gentlewoman so far from home? And fill me in on what passes for
society out here? And find me a decent bath and somewhere to change out
of these impossible clothes?"
Osterville was giving a
good impression of a man who had just been struck between the eyes with a bag
full of wet sand, but he rallied; after all, he had been at Court for
the better part of a decade.
"Enchanted,
Messa," he said suavely. "Business, however . . ."
Suzette made a
dismissive gesture. "Oh, Raj just wants some help unloading trains."
She tucked her hand under his arm. "Please?"
Osterville snapped his
fingers at an aide. "Luiz, draw that up; here, I'll sign it. Certainly,
certainly, my dear Messa Suzette . . . trains, you say? Logistics, clerks'
work."
Raj stood silently as
they strolled away across the intaglio floor. His head moved back to the
officers who'd been attending Osterville, with the smooth tracking motion of a
track-mounted fortress gun.
"Messers," he
said flatly. "I remind you that you'll be needed with your units later
this afternoon in the main cavalry barracks. Good day to you. Captain M'lewis,
if you please."
He turned on his heel.
Faintly, he could hear:
". . . quite
acceptable dessert wines, but far too sweet for table. But I've found a
mountain vintage from this village in the Oxheads . . ."
The City Offices of
Sandoral were nearly as crowded as the barracks, although they smelled of musty
paper and lamp-soot and ink rather than sewage and dogshit. Clerks in knee
breeches and dirty ruffled shirts were running in all directions, waving papers
in the air; abacuses clicked; wheeled carts full of folders of documents
rumbled over the tiled floors of the corridors. There were petitioners in
plenty about, too. The clamor died as Raj shouldered through; the forty
troopers of the 5th tramping behind him with their rifles at port, bayonets
fixed, were a stark reminder of why Sandoral was in an emergency in the first
place.
Raj strongly suspected
that most of the bureaucrats would continue to think of it as a tiresome
interruption of routine right up until the Settler's troops came over the wall.
Civilization, he thought
sourly, watching one man blink at him through thick lenses, fingers pausing on
the counting stones. The sacred trust I defend. The reason I obey purblind
idiots.
They clattered up a
broad stairway; the upper corridor was considerably less crowded, a condition
enforced by several slope-browed men with cudgels. All of whom sensibly faded
into doorways at the sight of the naked steel and harsh uniform clatter of
hobnails.
"You can't go in
there! That's Chief Commissioner Kirmedez's—"
"Siddown,"
M'lewis snarled at the functionary. The man sat.
Kirmedez looked up from
his desk as Raj entered. He was a thin dark man with receding hair, dressed
plainly with a simple cravat. His eyes widened slightly as he took in Raj and
the soldiers behind him; he rose and bowed.
"Heneralissimo," he said
politely. "How may I serve you?"
Raj took the measure of
the man. Honest, he thought, for a wonder.
oversimplification, Center said, but a valid approximation. A grid snapped
onto the administrator's face, with mottled patterns showing heat and the
dilation of his pupils. proceed.
It was impossible to lie
to Raj Whitehall . . . with an angel looking out through his eyes. He didn't
like it, but it was useful, and he'd use any tool to get the job done.
Anything at all.
"Messer
Kirmedez," Raj said, "Sandoral will be under siege by the Colonials
within two weeks maximum. Possibly less."
Kirmedez sat and tapped
the piles of documents on his desk. "Heneralissimo, this city
cannot stand siege. We're grossly overcrowded, and the grain reserves are
low."
Raj nodded. By law, a
fortified border town like this was supposed to keep a year's reserve of basic
foodstuffs, in return for remission of some taxes. He didn't need to ask what
had happened to it.
"Exactly, Messer.
I'm therefore evacuating all civilians to East Residence."
Kirmedez's hard thin
face went fluid with shock for an instant. "That's impossible."
Raj allowed himself a
flat smile. "On the contrary. Anyone who leaves on their own feet—or on
dogback or in a carriage or by ox wagon—can take whatever they wish to carry.
But whenever a troop train gets in, and I expect them at four-hour intervals,
the garrison is going to sweep up enough people to fill it for the return trip.
There will be absolutely no exceptions. Messer Commissioner, you'd also better
inform the citizens immediately, because the first twelve hundred will be
leaving in about two hours on the train that brought me. Is that
understood?"
Kirmedez closed his
mouth. He stared at Raj for a full thirty seconds, then looked at the feral
faces of the Descotter gunmen behind him.
"You mean it,"
he said softly.
"I'm not in the
habit of making empty threats, Messer," Raj said, equally quiet.
Kirmedez nodded.
The door was open, and
the word had spread swiftly. A roar sounded through the offices, shading up
into a hysterical wail. Kirmedez rose and reached for a brass bell on his desk,
but Raj put out one hand.
"Captain," he
said to M'lewis.
The Scout commander
turned and barked an order. The column in the corridor outside turned and
brought their rifles up in a single smooth jerk.
"Fwego!"
BAM. The volley slammed
into the lath and plaster of the ceiling. Chunks and dust rained down on the
faces of those who'd come out of their offices, and down the open stairwell
onto the crowd below.
"Reload!"
Silence fell amid the ping
of spent brass landing on the tiles and the metallic clatter of rounds being
thumbed home and levers worked. Gray-white gunsmoke drifted down the hall and
carried the stink of burnt sulfur.
Silence fell. Kirmedez's
bell sounded through it. "Back to work, if you please," he called.
"Messer Hantonio, step in here. We have a great deal to do."
He nodded thanks to Raj.
"And they'll take it seriously, too. Good day to you, Heneralissimo."
Raj raised an eyebrow; it
wasn't often you met an administrator with that firm a grip on reality.
"Bwenya
Dai," he replied politely.
And the bureaucrat was
right. There was a great deal to do, fortunately. You could forget a lot, when
you had work on hand.
* * *
Chief Commissioner
Kirmedez snapped his fingers impatiently. "Stop babbling, man!" His
assistant fell silent.
"It doesn't matter
if it's impossible; it has to be done anyway. Now, send out the criers. But
first, send runners to all the following households."
He handed over a list.
The assistant whistled. "My apologies, patron," he said.
"I should have thought of that."
Kirmedez nodded.
"Hantonio, when this war is over, I will still be Chief Commissioner of
Sandoral and District, whoever is Commandant. Those men will still be wealthy
and powerful. And they will remember who gave them advanced warning to gather
their personal possessions and their households for evacuation."
The assistant smiled
with genuine admiration.
Kirmedez smiled back.
"Favors are the grease that let the civil service wheels turn, Hantonio.
Never forget it."
And Heneralissimo
Supremo Whitehall has done me a favor, he thought, pausing briefly. I wonder if
he realizes it?
* * *
"Jorg!" Raj
called, pleasure in his voice.
Jorg Menyez pulled up
his riding steer. It lowed, then swung a long brass-tipped horn down in
Horace's face. The hound whuffled and reconsidered the grab it had been
thinking of making at the long-legged riding animal's shank.
"Just in," the
infantry commander said.
Behind him a column of
footsoldiers poured down the street, shouldering the milling civilians aside;
this time they were trying their best to get out of the way, not blocking the
road with their welcome. The furled colors of the 17th Kelden Foot went by, to
the steady thrip . . . thrip of the drum.
"The heliograph
says Gerrin just boarded the last train out of East Residence, and Bellamy and
his trained barbs are making good time, should be here in three days
maximum."
"Spirit," Raj
said, mildly surprised. "It's actually working."
Both men spat to their
left and made the sign of the horns with their sword-hands; Raj touched his amulet,
a circuit board blessed by Saint Wu herself a century before.
"You've seen where
the infantry are kenneled?" Jorg said, anger flushing his fair-skinned
face.
Raj nodded. "Think
they'll be fit for anything?"
"Nothing complex,
but we may be able to put some backbone into them," Jorg said. "They
ought to enjoy the first part of the plan, anyway. Any trouble with
Osterville?"
"No," Raj
said.
Menyez hesitated, then
let the bitten-off syllable stand.
* * *
The barracks-yard was
far more crowded this time; all the cavalry, the ragged ill-kept lines of the
infantry units, the two hundred of the 5th Descott beside Raj, and the neat
formations of the 17th Kelden and 24th Valencia to either side. The sun was
sinking behind the western edge of the barracks; Raj narrowed his eyes against
it, seeing only the black silhouettes of the troops.
"Fellow
soldiers," Raj said.
Of a sort. It wasn't these
men's fault that they'd been badly commanded, but he didn't intend to let the
consequences keep him from carrying out the mission. A lot of them were going
to pay with their lives for their officers' slackness, before this was over.
"We've very little
time. The 33rd Drangosh, the 12th Pardizia" —he listed the infantry
battalions, about half the two thousand available— "will turn to and begin
construction of the necessary boats and gear for a pontoon bridge to cross the
Drangosh and carry our invasion force. This task will be performed under the
direction of Colonel Dinnalsyn of the Artillery Corps."
A long murmur swept
through the packed garrison formations. Raj stood like an iron idol, hands
clasped behind his back, while the shouts of Silence in the ranks!
controlled it. None of his veterans had moved; probably because none of them
were surprised at what he intended.
"The cavalry
formations based in Sandoral will immediately assume control of the gates. Only
military personnel will be allowed to enter the city or approach on the main
roads.
"The remainder of
the infantry will begin clearing Sandoral and evacuating the civilian
population to the railroad station, commencing immediately. No resistance is to
be tolerated. All units will be accompanied by parties of the 5th Descott, the
17th Kelden, or the 24th Valencia.
"I'm aware that you
men of the district infantry battalions have been seriously neglected.
Effective immediately, all arrears of equipment, rations, and pay will be made
up from the stocks in the city's treasury and arsenals. For the duration, you
will be quartered inside the walls—to be precise, in the housing of the
evacuated civilians."
Stunned silence sank
over the parade ground. The formations rippled slightly as men turned to one
another, then back to the figure standing on the stone dais. A helmet went up
on a rifle among the infantry, and a voice cried out:
"Spirit bless
Messer Raj!"
"Raj!"
"Raj!"
"RAJ!
RAJ!"
He let it continue and
build for a moment, judging, waiting until they were about to break ranks and
crowd around him. A raised hand brought the sound back down from its
white-noise roar, like receding surf on a beach.
"Cheer after we've
beaten the wogs back to their kennels," he said. "Until then, we've a
man's job of work to do. See to it."
"RAJ! RAJ!
RAJ! RAJ!"
* * *
Corporal Minatelli
turned back down the street. "What's the problem now?" he
barked.
"Theynz warn't open
up," the garrison soldier said timidly in a thick yokel burr. "They
wouldn' give us no food either, when we wuz hongry. Turned us'n away frum
d'doors."
Minatelli sighed. Raggedy-ass
excuse for a soldier, he thought disgustedly. Literally; the man's buttocks
were hanging out a great rent in his trousers, and the blue of his jacket was
faded to sauroid's-egg color. He had a beard, too, like a barb or a wog.
"Here's how
ye do it, dickhead. Y'ain't askin' 'em to dance, see?"
He stepped to one side
and put the muzzle of his rifle against the lock. Bam, and bits of lead
and metal pinged and whistled across the street. The ragged soldier yelped as
one scored a line of red across the side of his face. Minatelli slammed the
sole of his boot into the door beside the lock, and the wood boomed open
against the hallway.
"What's the meaning
of this?" shouted the man inside. "It's impossible—you peon scum,
where's your officer? I'll have you flogged, flogged—"
Smack. The side of
Minatelli's rifle-butt punched into the man's face. Blood spattered down the
lace sabot of his shirt. The soldier chopped the butt up under the man's short
ribs, and he folded over without a sound. Minatelli grabbed him by the collar
and threw him out into the street.
"Anyone what ain't
out in ten, gits shot!" he shouted to the crowd of family and servants.
"Out, out, out. T'wogs is comin'!"
A torrent of civilians
poured out of the townhouse door. Minatelli grinned to himself; a couple of
them trampled on the head of the household before two with more presence of
mind or family affection picked him up and carried him out into the crowded
darkness of the street. The gas lamps were on, but the reddish light only made
the milling crowd seem less human, a gleam of eyes and teeth and wailing voices
in the hot night. Both sides of the street were lined with troopers, their
fixed bayonets a bright line containing the shapeless movements of the crowd.
Occasionally one would jab at someone who crowded too close, and a scream of
pain would rise above the hubbub of confusion, fear and anger.
Minatelli's grin grew
broader. Back in Old Residence, he'd been a stonecutter like his father and
grandfather before him. They'd have sent him around to the servants' entrance
if he so much as called on a house like this. Now he got to buttstroke one of
the breed of stuck-up riche hombes bastards. Military service definitely
had its good points.
The garrison soldier
gaped at him for a slow twenty seconds. Then his crooked brown teeth showed in
an answering smile. The glitter in his eyes was alarming.
"Sor!" he
said, saluting smartly. Then, to his squadmates: "C'mon, boyos!"
Their boots and
rifle-butts thundered on the next door down. Minatelli reloaded, slung his
rifle and turned to Saynchez.
"How many, d'ye
think?"
"Mebbe six, seven
hundert," the older private said. "No different n'countin' sheep,
a-back on me da's place. Me da ran sheep fer the squire."
"Banged the
sheep, more like," one of their squad said, sotto voce.
"Wouldn't mind
bangin' this one," another added. A feminine squeal came from the
darkness.
"No fuckin'
around!" Minatelli said sharply. "That's enough—move this bunch down
to t'train station. Hadelande!"
* * *
"Tight! Get those
boards tight before you nail them to the stringers!" Grammeck
Dinnalsyn said, for the four hundredth time.
The infantryman gaped at
him, then obligingly whacked at the edge of the board with his mallet. The dry
wood splintered. Dinnalsyn winced, then skipped aside to let a dozen men go by
with a beam. One of his officers followed, drawing lines on the timber with a
piece of chalk and consulting a crumpled piece of paper in the other. A noncom
stumbled after him, holding up a hurricane lantern. Both moons were up, luckily,
and there were bonfires of scrap lumber scattered along the broad stretch of
riverside as well. Wagons rumbled in with more wood; wheelbarrels went by
loaded with mallets, nails, rope, and saws.
"Cut here, here and
here," the young lieutenant said, giving a final slash with the
chalk. Crews sprang to work with two-man drag saws.
The first pontoon was
already ready to launch down by the river's edge, a simple breast-high wooden
box of planks on rough-cut stringers, eight meters by twelve. The stink of hot
asphalt surrounded it, as sweating near-naked soldiers slathered liquid black
tar from pots onto the boards.
Dinnalsyn pulled out his
slide rule. Si. Now, the river's nine hundred meters; make it eight meters per
barge, allow a reserve of ten percent, and—
A dog pulled up beside
him with a spurt of gravel. He looked up and pulled himself erect. "Mi
heneral," he said.
Raj nodded, his eyes
light gray in the shadows under his helmet brim. "How's it coming,
Grammeck?"
"On schedule, more
or less."
"Will they float?"
"After a fashion,
if we use enough tar and the wood swells tight. I'm going to float them as we
finish them, that'll give the timber some time to soak."
"Good man,"
Raj said. "While you're at it, have your people run up steering oars and
paddles. We'll put some of the garrison infantry to practicing maneuvering,
that'll be important later. Here in the Drangosh valley, quite a few of them
were probably riverboatmen before the press gang came through."
"Si, mi heneral.
The Forty Thieves aren't with you?"
Raj was riding alone,
save for his personal bannermen, buglers, and galloper-messengers. He nodded.
"Too much
temptation in the city, under the circumstances. They're out living up to their
official designation. M'lewis will get it done; he's a soldier, in his
fashion." Raj turned in the saddle to watch the first pontoon boat being
manhandled into the water. It splashed into the Drangosh and bobbed, riding
unevenly. "They'll be enough?"
"Mi heneral,
consider it done. I can finish the rest in time, if I get enough of the raw
materials."
Raj's teeth showed
slightly. "Oh, that ought not to be a problem. Poplanich's Own just
detrained, they're out helping the 5th get the timber in, and we're moving
quickly."
He paused. "One
more thing; send out some of your people, use the garrison if you must, and
confiscate every boat you can find; every fishing smack, barge, canoe,
whatever. Not just here, in the suburbs and every section of the valley we can
still reach."
* * *
"And back,
ye bitches' brood."
The civilians still
crowding the street wailed and stampeded; which was just fine as far as Robbi
M'Telgez was concerned. Handling a lariat and a dog was second nature—his
family were rancheros, yeoman tenants who herded on shares back in
Descott—but this was tricky. One end of the braided leather rope was snubbed to
the second-story end of a roof beam; the other was wrapped three times around
the pommel of his saddle. Pochita sank down on her haunches and backed one tiny
step at a time, and he could feel the thousand-pound body arching like a bow
between his thighs. The rest of his platoon were doing likewise, one or two
dogs to every rafter. The animals were used to working in unison, and they
snarled beneath their panting as they hauled.
The adobe wall smoked
dust for an instant and then collapsed towards them. Released from the pull,
Pochita skipped back nimbly until her hindquarters touched the house on the
other side of the irregular little plaza. M'Telgez coughed through the checked
bandanna over his face; his dog sneezed massively and shook her head, the
cheek-levers of the bridle rattling. Got t'check 'em, he thought. They
should be snug, not loose.
Foot soldiers waded
forward into the dust, rummaging for the planks and beams. They'd done the same
thing here in Sandoral for material to build earthwork forts, in the last
campaign against the wogs a few years ago; now they were tearing down rebuilt
houses to make boats.
Always something new
with Messer Raj.
* * *
Antin M'lewis sank
closer to the earth, hugging it for shelter and trying to think dark
like the moonless night. It was homelike, in an unpleasant sort of way; as a
rustler by hereditary profession, he'd spent enough time like this back home
working his way in past the vakaros pulling night guard on some
unsuspecting squire's herds. Darkness, the dogs belly-down too in a gully a few
hundred meters back, his face blacked with lamp soot or burnt cork. The wind
moving into his face, so no scent went to the target or his dogs—infantry ahead
here, but why take a chance, and there might be a mounted officer. Just like
home.
Descott was rarely this
hot, though. And most Descotter vakaros would be more alert than the wog
ahead of him.
He eeled forward on his
belly, moving every time the Colonial sentry's pacing turned him back toward
this angle of approach. Useless sentry, the bugger was smoking a pipe and
M'lewis could see the ember light with every draw, even smell the strong
tobacco. Backlit by a watch-fire too, which must be playing hell with his
night-vision.
Mother. The wog had
stopped, and his spiked helmet was turning as he looked outward. He hesitated,
almost taking the carbine from over his shoulder, then resumed his steady
pacing. Mother. Spirit.
Forward another five
meters. The dust was trying to make him sneeze, but Goodwife M'lewis hadn't
raised any of her sons to be suicides. Now he was behind a head-high clump of
alluvial clay, right where the towel-top would pass on his next circuit.
Come on, he thought. Git
yer wog arse over here. Come t'pappa. His weight came up on his knees and
one hand. The other went to the wooden toggle in his waist, callused fingers
around satin-smooth pearwood. Ready. Ready. One knee bent under him, bare toes
gripping the dirt.
The Colonial muttered
something in Arabic and stopped. He bent, raising one foot and knocking the
dottle out of his pipe on the heel of his curl-toed boot.
Thank you,
Spirit, M'lewis thought, and moved very quickly. Straighten the knee, rising, right
hand whipping forward and to the left in a hard sideways flick. Following the
toggle and the wire it dragged, as if they were pulling him out of the dirt.
Perfect soft weight on the hand, as the wire struck the left side of the wog's
neck and whipped around, slapping the other toggle into his reaching left
hand—practiced ten thousand times since he was a lad, and it worked when
you had to. Wrists crossed, jam the knee into the wog's back, heave.
The sudden coppery smell
of blood filled the night. M'lewis went down with the Colonial, abandoning the
garrote that had sawn halfway through to his backbone and grabbing his
equipment to muffle the clatter. Figures had started upright at the campfire;
one of them seemed to be dancing a jig for an instant. The sounds were slight
but definite. A meaty thock, the sound of a steel-shod rifle butt in the
side of a head. The wetter, duller sound of steel in flesh. And once the
unmistakable crackle of a breaking neck, like a thick green branch being
popped. Then silence.
M'lewis jerked the
garrote free and wiped it clean on the dead Arab's pugaree. The campfire was
quiet when he came up, his men finishing rifling the pockets of the dead—he
could have forbidden that, and he could tell a pig not to shit in the woods,
too—and sitting calmly in the same positions with wog helmets on their heads.
The Scout commander nodded to them as he passed, walking out into the dark and
to the edge of the little cliff. There was a gully beyond it, then low eroded
clay hills, and then flat farmland. Dim enough normally at two hours past
midnight, except for the hundreds of neatly spaced campfires. More lights
crossed the river, over to the western bank where the smoking ruins of Gurnyca
lay.
He settled in with his
sketchpad and pulled out his binoculars. Railroad to the riverbank; he checked,
and saw fatigue parties still working on it. Laid on t'dirt, he noted on
his pad as he sketched. No embankment or crushed-rock bedding for the ties.
Emergency line, low capacity, but still enough to carry supplies. Mounds of
supplies throughout the basecamp, within the normal earthworks and ditch.
Ammunition boxes, shells, sacks with dogmash and dried fish and jerked meat,
skins of vegetable oil, all the hundred-and-one items that an army on the march
needed. Convoys were moving across the pontoon bridge even at night: wagons
drawn by skinny long-legged oxen, and long guns with the distinctive
soda-bottle shapes of built-up siege weapons, battering pieces. 130mm and
160mm, he decided. Rifled guns, good artillery, but bitches to move.
Rail to the
river, but oxcarts over it. No grazing, except from the farms; if Ali was
moving north, he'd be foraging to support his men, but once he stopped, the
convoys would have to come in every day. About ten kay of troops holding the
bridgehead and pontoons, sappers and line-of-communication infantry. It all
looked very professional, as good as anything the Civil Government's army could
do. Not at all like fighting the barbs out west. The MilGov barbs were
full of fight, but dim as a yard up a hog's ass, most of the time. These wogs
used their heads for something besides holding their turbans up.
M'lewis finished his
estimate and duplicated the numbers and sketch-map. "Cut-nose,
Talker," he whispered, as he eeled backward.
Cut-nose was a ratty
little man, his cousin on his mother's side. They might have been brothers for
looks—it was quite possible they were brothers, Old Man M'lewis had got
around a fair bit before they hanged him—except for the missing organ. Then
again, maybe they weren't close relations; no M'lewis would try to sell a dyed
dog back to the man he'd stolen it from. Talker was a hulking brute from the
mountains on the eastern fringe of Descott. They both had rawhide guards shrunk
onto the forestocks of their rifles, and Talker had a couple of fresh severed
ears on a loop of thong around his neck.
"Tak this t'Messer
Raj," he said. "Swing east. Month's pay bonus iffn ye gits there
afore me."
"Ser!"
Cut-nose said, smiling yellow-brown with delight. Talker grunted.
M'lewis came to a crouch
and headed back toward the gully and the dogs, the rest of the Scouts falling
in behind him. He took the time to stamp his feet back into his boots before he
straddled the crouching dog. He usually didn't bother with socks; a dollop of
tallow in the boot served as well, if you didn't mind the smell.
"Ride," he
said.
Messer Raj would have
his news. It was bad news, as far as Antin M'lewis could see, but—thank the
Spirit!—it wasn't his job to figure out what to do about it.
They swung into the
saddle and followed the gully north, riding with muffled harness. Every
kilometer or so he paused and headed for high ground; the eastern bank was
generally a little above the level on the west, and there were few dwellers
close to the main stream, if you avoided the raghead semaphore towers. Every
stop showed Colonial watchfires on the other side; Ali's convoy guards,
picketed all the way down his line of march northward towards Sandoral.
The third time showed
something a little different. He closed his eyes for a minute before putting
them to the glasses. There was a fair-sized Civil Government town on the other
side of the river, and as he watched, the first of the buildings went up in a
gout of flame. That gave enough light to watch the Settler's troops
systematically stripping the warehouses and granaries before they put them to
the torch; Ali'd be living off the land as much as he could, to spare the
transport.
There was a migratory
insect on Bellevue about the length of a man's thumb. Every century or so
swarms of them would hatch north on the Skinner steppe and fly south, eating
the land bare until they reached the empty deserts to spawn and die. Where they
passed, famine followed.
Ali's men were more
localized, but just about as thorough.
* * *
Barton Foley sat in the
shade of the palm tree and tapped his lips thoughtfully with the end of his
pencil. Now, would virile go well with while in that stanza,
or not? he thought.
"Heads up!"
He sighed and tucked the
volume back into the saddlebag. Someday he'd have the time to really write. Someday
I'll be dead, he added sourly to himself-although hopefully not soon;
twenty-one was a bit early even in this trade. Maybe I'm not cut out to be a
poet or a playwright. History, now, that might be more interesting. He'd
certainly got a close-up on some of it.
"More
refugees?" a lieutenant asked.
"I don't think
so," the young captain said thoughtfully, raising his glasses.
The picket of the 5th
was two kilometers out from Sandoral: the roads were thick with refugees,
heading into the city and then being routed out. It was better to intercept
them a ways from the gates, to avoid crowding the roadways nearer the city. Two
troops and a splatgun were enough to discourage even the most hysterical from
bolting to the shelter of the walls. By now, most of them had gotten the
message. There was a continuous traffic out of town too, hopeful magnates with
their valuables in wagons, realistic ones with the hard cash on pack-dogs and
the family in a fast well-sprung carriage.
It was easy duty, a way
to rest the troops; a nice little date grove for shade, a good well for water.
Some resourceful soul had a fire going and a couple of chickens roasting over
it; the peons would never miss them. The smell was a pleasant overlay to the
usual odors of dog and sweat-soaked wool uniforms and gun oil.
Foley wiped his face
with his red-and-black checked neckcloth. Ironic, he thought. The 5th
Descott had looted a warehouse full of them back in El Djem, the Colonial
border town southwest of here. They'd just barely made it back alive from that
one, after Tewfik mousetrapped them, but the scarves had become a unit
trademark; it was as much as a soldier's life was worth to wear one, if he
wasn't in the 5th.
The column of dust was
heading in from the northwest, just now down into the flat irrigated land
around Sandoral. Suspiciously regular dust, columns of it, with a thinner,
wider film in front. Very much what a couple of battalions of Civil Government
cavalry would make, riding hard in column with their scout-screens out ahead,
all regulation and by the book. He waited until the first of the vedettes came
into view, checked the silhouette and the breed of dog.
"Message to the Heneralissimo,"
he said. "The Cruisers and Welf's Brigaderos are here."
Very good time,
too. No more than five days from the time they left East Residence just ahead
of the first trains. Even with the railroad to supply them, it was a creditable
performance, particularly if the dogs were still fit for action.
He was a little
surprised. Those fair MilGov complexions were extremely pretty, but he'd
doubted they could take the Eastern sun.
"Good timing,"
Raj said.
Ludwig Bellamy and
Teodore Welf looked more like twins than ever, down to the thick coating of
gray-white dust on their faces and the dark streaks of sweat through it.
"Rail convoys on
schedule?" Bellamy asked.
They moved forward under
the awning and collected bowls of soup and a bannock each; the line parted to
let them through, but it was the same food as the troopers were waiting for.
The medical staff—priest-doctors and nuns—was manning the pots, since there
weren't any wounded to care for so far. Suzette dashed by, stopping long enough
to thrust a cup of watered wine into Raj's hand. The others were dipping water
out of a bucket; Ludwig waited politely until the others had drunk, then dumped
the remainder over his head.
"I needed
that," he said; the grin made you realize he wasn't yet thirty.
Neither am I, Raj remembered
with slight surprise. He felt older, though.
Aloud, he went on:
"I'll give Barholm Clerett that, he does get the trains running on time.
We're expecting the last in at any moment. How are your men?"
"They'll be ready
to fight after a night's sleep; and the dogs are mostly sound-footed. We took
your advice and commandeered a big pack of remounts from the East Residence
reserve before we left." Bellamy looked around. "You haven't been
wasting time here."
There were few civilians
left on the streets of Sandoral. Instead they swarmed with soldiers and dogs,
wagons and carts, and an ordered chaos of movement under the harsh southern
sun. The garrison infantry were doing most of the hauling and pushing, but they
looked better fed, and far better dressed. A thud and plume of smoke and dust
marked another house being demolished for building materials; off in the distance
sounded the heep . . . heep of troops being drilled and a crackle of
musketry practice. The artillery park filled most of the square, guns
nose-to-trail with their limbers waiting behind, and Dinnalsyn's gunners giving
them a last going-over.
"Speak of the
devil," Bartin Foley said, smiling fondly.
A bugle sounded, and the
color party of the 5th Descott came trotting into the square, the battalion
banner floating beside the blue and silver Starburst of Holy Federation. Gerrin
Staenbridge heeled his mount over to the clump of officers and saluted with an
ironic flourish.
"Mi heneral,
the remainder of your force, reporting as ordered." He looked around in
his turn. "I see you've started the party without me."
"Just laying in the
drinks and rehearsing the band, Gerrin," Raj said. "No problem
getting under way?"
"No, but there
might have been if I'd lingered. Our good Chancellor Tzetzas isn't happy about
having the field army so far from home, at all, at all. If I hadn't taken the
last of the trains, I suspect the bureaucrats would have followed me all the
way here to argue with you about it."
Raj laughed harshly.
"Not with Ali so close," he said. "Although our good Commandant
Osterville is almost as much of a pest, in his way. And he is
here."
"Speak of the
devil," Foley said again, his voice flat as gunmetal this time.
He took Staenbridge's
arm and began whispering rapidly, gesturing with the hook on his left arm. Raj
caught his own name and Suzette once or twice.
The Commandant of
Sandoral and District was pushing his way through the thronging mass in the
square; not looking very happy, and unhappier by the minute at the lack of
deference, from Raj's veterans and from what were supposedly his own troops.
"Whitehall,"
he said. "General Whitehall," he amended; Raj's face was politely
blank, but several of the Companions had dropped their hands to pistol-butts or
the hilts of their sabers.
"Where the Starless
Dark have you been?"
Raj straightened,
finished the wine, and dipped his bannock into the stew. "Well,
Commandant, I've been rather busy—getting ready for the war, you see."
Somebody chuckled, and
Osterville turned a mottled color. "I'll thank you to accompany me to my
headquarters," he said. "We've got several things to discuss."
"If you want to
talk, Colonel, you'll talk here and now. Because as I mentioned, there
is a war impending."
Words burst from the
smaller man. "You're destroying my city!" he barked.
"I've received petitions from every man of rank in the district—"
Raj raised an eyebrow.
"I don't doubt you have," he said. "Let them petition Ali.
That's the alternative, and I think they'd like his methods even less than
mine. In any case, as you've made clear, you're the supreme civil authority in
this area; relations with the local nobility are your responsibility."
The Commandant opened
his mouth and closed it again. He snapped his fingers, and an aide put a sheaf
of documents in his hand.
"Perhaps you've
been too busy," he said, "to read these dispatches from the
Capital? They've been coming over the semaphore by the dozens."
Raj mopped his bowl with
the heel of the bannock and plucked the papers out of the smaller man's hand.
He glanced through them, chewed, swallowed.
"Oh, I've been
reading them," he said.
He ripped the thick
sheaf through with casual strength, tossing the fragments into the dry hot
wind. They fluttered off like gulls, and one of the newly arrived dogs of the
5th snapped inquiringly at a piece as it went by.
"I have the Governor's
authority, signed by the Sovereign Mighty Lord himself. I received it in
person, from his own hands. What are a few waggling flags to that?"
He tossed the last of
the papers to the cobbles. "And now, Colonel Osterville, if you don't have
any more problems . . ."
"But I do have this,"
Osterville said. The document he produced was thick parchment, impressively
sealed with lead and ribbons.
Raj raised an eyebrow.
"You have a decree from the Chair, a Vermilion Order, swaying the wide
earth?" he asked, using the formal terminology.
"Not exactly,"
Osterville said. "But you will note it's from Chancellor Tzetzas, in the
Governor's name, requiring you to cease and desist from interfering with
private properties and instead attend to your assigned mission."
"From the
Chancellor?" Raj said, examining the parchment. He crumpled it
experimentally. It was first-quality sheepskin parchment, soft and supple.
"By courier, I suppose?"
Osterville nodded toward
a man in his entourage. Raj looked at him, and then around.
"M'lewis. Deal with
this as it deserves," he said.
"Where are the
jakes?" the Scout Captain said, putting down his bowl and unfastening his
sword belt.
Like most Civil
Government cities, Sandoral had public lavatories, simple brick boxes connected
to storm-flushed sewers. M'lewis strode over to the nearest, and back a minute
later. He was holding the now brown-streaked and stinking parchment by one
corner between thumb and finger. Shocked silence gripped the Commandant's party
as he walked over to the courier, unfastened the flap of his message pouch, and
dropped the soiled parchment inside.
"Just so the
Chancellor understands exactly what weight I attach to his attempts to
interfere with my mission and the Governor's authority," Raj said.
"You're mad,"
Osterville said softly. "Mad. Nobody—Tzetzas will eat your heart."
Raj's smile sent
Osterville back a step. "Perhaps I am mad, Colonel. Perhaps I'm the Sword
of the Spirit of Man. In either case, I'm in charge here." He produced a
document of his own. "And this is your own confirmation, directing your
troops to cooperate in the transport of the civilians."
He held it up, and one
of the Companions leaned over to read it with interest.
"That! That was
that witch, she—" On the edge of ruin, Osterville pulled himself back.
He'd been about to say something that would be a public provocation to a
challenge. He ran a hand through his hair. "Where is she? I haven't
seen her since . . ."
Raj laughed, an iron
sound. "Colonel Osterville, I've answered your official inquiries. You can
scarcely expect me to stretch business to the point of giving you an itinerary
for my wife. Now, if you'll pardon me—"
He turned, and the
officers followed him. Gerrin Staenbridge paused, holding his gauntlets in one
hand and tapping them into the palm of the other. For a moment Osterville
feared he would slap them across his face in challenge, but the hard dark
features were relaxed in a smile. He held the order Osterville had signed—the
order that Suzette Whitehall had somehow charmed out of him. He read it,
pursing his lips, then looked up at Osterville with an expression of feline
malice before he spoke one word.
"Sucker."
It was the hour before
dawn, a little chilly even in summer in the clear dry southern air. The massed
ranks of the army knelt as the Sysup-Suffragen of Sandoral paced by, with
acolytes swinging censers that spread aromatic blue smoke across the men. He
reached out his Star-headed staff in blessing as he passed the colors of each
unit, and the men extended both hands out, palms down, in the gesture of
reverence. Behind the hierarch came four priests bearing a litter on which
rested a cube of something clearer than crystal and taller than a man. Light
swirled in it, growing and flaring until the watchers bowed their heads and closed
their eyes in awe. It shone through the closed lids, through hands flung up
before faces, then died away amid a murmur of awe.
Raj touched his amulet
as he rose. "The Spirit is with us," he said. Or at least Center
is. What a cynic I've become.
realist, Center corrected.
Is there a
difference?
He turned to the command
group. Which included, from necessity, Colonel Osterville.
"Gentlemen, my
congratulations. You've managed a very complex operation in record time and
with surprisingly little confusion; my particular thanks to Colonels Menyez and
Dinnalsyn. Now it's time to show the wogs that two can play the invasion game.
Colonel Osterville, I presume you'll wish to accompany the field force rather
than remain in Sandoral?"
"I certainly will.
Furthermore, I insist that the cavalry battalions of the Sandoral garrison be
under my command."
Raj nodded. "By all
means, Colonel. By all means."
Osterville shot him a
suspicious glance, and found his face blandly unrevealing. He tugged at his
mustachio thoughtfully.
colonel osterville is attempting to intuit
the reason for your ready agreement, Center pointed out. probability of success 12%±3.
"Colonel Menyez,
you will command the city garrison. I'm leaving you the 17th, the 24th, the
garrison infantry, and three batteries of field guns. You'll also have the guns
of the fixed defenses, of course."
Dinnalsyn looked up.
"I've tested the militia artillery crews who volunteered to stay," he
said. "Not bad at all, and the ammunition's plentiful."
Jorg Menyez nodded
thoughtfully. "Any cavalry? The garrison units can stand behind a parapet
and shoot, and the 17th and 24th can do anything cavalry can except ride and
charge with the saber, but I could use a mobile reserve."
"I'll leave you
three companies of the 5th Descott," Raj said. "That'll have to do.
The field force will comprise three columns.
"The remainder of
the 5th, the 1st and 2nd Mounted Cruisers, the 3/591, 4/591, and 5/591, and the
main artillery reserve of thirty guns will go with me. Colonel Osterville,
you'll command your garrison cavalry and two batteries. Major Gruder, you'll
have the 7th Descott Rangers, the 1st Rogor Slashers, the Maximilliano
Dragoons, and Poplanich's Own. Major Zahpata, you'll take your 18th Komar
Borderers, the City of Delrio, and the Novy Haifa Dragoons. Plus two batteries
of field guns each.
"We'll be advancing
fast, close enough for mutual support; no wheeled transport except for the guns
and the ammunition reserve. Spread out, live off the land; spare lives when you
can, but burn and destroy everything else, so long as you can do it quickly.
Let the semaphore posts stand long enough to get off messages. Portable plunder
will be transferred to the central group, and from there back here to Sandoral
for eventual division; do not allow the men to weigh themselves down
with choice bits. When Tewfik comes looking for us, we're going to need every
bit of mobility we can get.
"The purpose of
this exercise is to create enough havoc that Ali will be forced to divert at
least part of his army from the west bank of the Drangosh. We lay waste the
nobles' estates; the nobles scream for protection. He can give any particular
noble the chop, but he can't ignore too many of them—hopefully, he's not so
much of a bloody lunatic as to forget that, at least not yet. We can't face the
entire Colonial army in the field, but we may be able to give part of it a
bloody nose. Move fast, and create the maximum amount of panic and alarm;
that's more important than actual damage.
"Any
questions?"
A few of the officers
looked at each other, but none spoke. Raj slapped on his gloves. "Then to
your men, Messers, and the work of the day."
Raj mounted Horace and
turned the dog and his personal bannermen down the front of the assembled
force. He halted before the ranks of the infantry.
"Fellow
soldiers," he said, raising a hand. "I'm off to teach the wogs the
price of invading the Civil Government of Holy Federation."
Silence reigned. "I
can only do that if Sandoral is strongly held behind me." He pointed
south. "Ali is coming, and more wogs than you can count are coming with
him. If you hold these walls, we can win this war; otherwise, we all die. I'm
riding out confident in the aid of the Spirit of Man of the Stars—and in your
courage and discipline. Which is why, when the plunder is divided, all the
infantry here will receive a full share, just as the cavalry troopers do. Are
you lads ready to do a man's work today?"
The 17th began the
cheering, and it spread down the line as Raj rode past, his personal flag
dipping in salute as he passed each battalion's banner. The cavalry were massed
on the other side of the square; you had to use a different manner with them.
He grinned as he reined
in, facing the long rows of helmeted riders and the panting tongues of the
dogs; they knew something was up as well, and their pricked-forward ears were
mirrors of the men's excitement.
"To Hell or
plunder, dog-brothers," Raj roared.
The men gave back a
single exultant bark, and the dogs howled, thousands of them in antiphonal
chorus, a sound that slammed back from the buildings around the plaza and made
the hair crawl along the spine.
"Walk-march . . .
trot."
* * *
"I might have
known," Raj said, reining in on the little hillock beside the east-bank
end of the bridge.
Suzette pulled up
Harbie, her riding palfrey, beside Horace. The smaller dog wagged its tail and
sniffed Horace's muzzle; after a moment Horace gave a snuffle in reply and
turned his head away in lordly indifference.
"You do have a
medical element along," Suzette said, her eyes bright with friendly
mockery. She touched the first-aid kit slung from the saddlebow. "There's
no reason I shouldn't join them."
The boards of the
pontoon bridge rumbled as a splatgun battery crossed. Cavalry followed in
columns of fours, the plate-sized paws thudding on the wooden pavement. Some of
the dogs had their ears back at the unfamiliar slight swaying of the surface
beneath their feet; others looked upstream or down. The men were singing, an
old Descotter folktune:
* * *
"Goin' t'Black Mountain wit me saber an' me gun;
Cut ye if yer stand, shoot ye if yer run—"
* * *
"I can command
thousands of armed men and not a single woman," Raj grumbled. One armed
woman, he corrected himself. Suzette had her Colonial repeating carbine in
a scabbard tucked under the saddle flaps before her left knee.
"Well, you did marry
me, not enlist me, darling," Suzette said.
Raj snorted and returned
his attention to the map. Below, the raiding force poured across the Drangosh,
dogs and guns. Twenty-five, thirty-five klicks a day, he thought,
tracing it with his finger. South and east—there was nothing close to the river
to raid, but the Ghor Canal ran a little farther east, and there was a thick
belt of cultivation along it. Three or four days should bring us to . . .
A city, called Ain el-Hilwa, about halfway between here and the Colonial
bridgehead opposite Gurnyca.
By that time the wogs
should be well and truly terrorized.
* * *
"Scramento!" Robbi M'Telgez
swore.
The carbine bullet
pecked dirt from the adobe wall into his eyes. He crouched and duckwalked along
it, rising slightly to peer through the branches of a flowering bush a few
meters farther on. There wasn't much shooting elsewhere in the hamlet, but this
was the best house; therefore the one most likely to be defended.
"Ye, Smeet,
Cunarlez, M'tennin," he said. "Cover us. Five rounds rapid. T'rest
fix yer stickers. We'll tak Rosalie t'breakfast."
"We'll a' git
kilt," Smeet muttered. "Hunnert meters, dog-brothers. I gits t'winda
on 't lef." He blew on the round he loaded into the chamber.
M'Telgez drew the
bayonet—nicknamed Rosalie from time immemorial—from the left side of his belt
beneath the haversack and clipped it beneath the muzzle of his rifle. There was
a multiple rattle and click as the other men of his squad followed suit.
The house ahead was
bigger than most in the sprawling settlement along the irrigation ditch;
probably the local headman's. It was about a hundred meters upstream from the
burning wreckage of the noria, the water-powered millwheel that filled
the distributory network of irrigation ditches. A small square house of two
stories, blank whitewashed adobe below, a few narrow windows above, and most of
it was courtyard enclosed by a wall. It hadn't been constructed as a fortress;
it had been a long time since Civil Government troops came this far, and none
of the local villages even had a defensive perimeter. From what he knew of
raghead custom, the wogs built this way to keep neighbors from seeing their
women. But it functioned perfectly well as a minor strongpoint.
"Hadelande!" he shouted, and
vaulted the wall.
The three men he'd
designated cut loose, firing as rapidly as they could work the levers and
reload. The heavy bullets knocked dust-spouting holes in the mud brick around
the windows, or went through—most of them went through, it was only fifty
meters and everyone in the 5th ought to be able to hit a running man in the head
at that range—beating down the enemy fire. A light bullet still pecked at the
dust between his feet. He suppressed his impulse to leap and yell,
concentrating on running.
The six Descotters
flattened themselves by the doorway. No sense waiting there; it would just give
someone upstairs time to think about dropping something unpleasant on them. He
was suddenly conscious of his dry gummy mouth, the sweat trickling down from
neck and armpits under his uniform jacket, the sound of a chicken clucking unconcerned
out in the dusty yard. M'Telgez held out three fingers, two, one.
He and the next trooper
stepped out and fired at the lock. They were lucky; nothing hit them when the
crude wooden mechanism splintered. The other four fired a round each through
the datewood planks while he and his partner stuck their bayonets through the
gaps between and lifted the bar out of its brackets. The door burst inward, and
they were through.
It was an open space of
packed earth with a well in the center and rooms about it. An open staircase
came down from the second story opposite him, and men were leaping down it. One
pointed a long-barreled flintlock jezail.
It boomed, throwing a
plume of smoke. Someone behind him yelled—yelled rather than screamed, so that
couldn't be too serious. Armory rifles banged, and the other man with a firearm
toppled from the stairs; he had a repeating carbine, which showed that this
squad had a proper sense of target priorities. Then a wog was rushing at him,
swinging a long scimitar.
Clang. M'Telgez caught
the sword on his bayonet, and it skirled down the forearm-length of steel until
it caught in the brass cross-guard. He let the inertia of the heavy sword push
both weapons downward, and punched across with the butt of his rifle. It smacked
into the Arab's bearded face with a crackle of breaking bone, a crunching he
could feel through his hands. The Colonial pitched sideways, spinning and
fouling the man behind who was trying to pull a double-barreled pistol out of
the sash around his ample belly. His mouth opened in an "O" of
surprise as M'Telgez spun his rifle around and lunged, driving his bayonet
through the Arab's stomach and a handspan out his back.
There was a soft, heavy
resistance, a feeling of things crunching and popping inside. He twisted
sharply and withdrew, a few shards of white fat clinging to nicks in the blade
of the bayonet. Blood spattered out; the wounded man's eyes rolled up in his
head and he collapsed backward.
The men of the 5th
waited an instant, taking cover behind the mudbrick columns that supported the
second story of the house. M'Telgez reloaded his rifle and raised three
fingers, then jerked them towards the stairs. Three men ran up them and through
the open arched door at the top. A shadow moved at the corner of his eye. He
whirled, just in time to see it was a veiled and robed woman with a big
earthenware pot raised over her head in both hands. M'Telgez raised the muzzle
of his rifle as his finger curled on the trigger, and the bullet smashed the
vase into shards, leaving her standing with her hands spread and eyes wide.
He pivoted the rifle and
jabbed the butt into her stomach. Air whooped out of her and she collapsed to
the ground. The Descotter put a boot in the small of her back and pinned her to
the dusty earth.
"Anythin' up
thar?" he called sharply.
"Nothin'," a
voice answered him. "Jist sommat wog kids."
"Bring 'em
down," he called. "Rest a yer dog-brothers, search it. Look unner
t'roof tiles, t'hearthstone, shove yer baynit inna any chink ye see. Nuthin' heavy,
jist coin an' sich."
Which was a pity; cloth
and tools and livestock would all fetch a good price back in the Gubernio
Civil if they had time to send them back, not to mention the wogs
themselves. A good stout wog would bring six or seven silver FedCreds sold to
the slavers who usually followed the armies, a quarter the price of a riding
dog. He'd picked up some coin that way in the Southern Territories. M'Telgez
banked half his pay and most of his plunder with the battalion savings account;
he had an eye on a little place back in the County when he'd done his
twenty-five years. There were two schools of thought on that—some held that you
had about one chance in four of living that long in the Army, so it made more
sense to spend it on booze and whores as it came.
Robbi M'Telgez had
noticed that troopers who thought that way tended to be careless, and to make
up a large share of the discouraging statistics. Besides, his family could use
the money too, if it came to that.
The three men he'd sent
up came down again, one holding a small wooden box. "Found 'er in
t'rafters, loik," he said, grinning broadly. "Coin, by
t'Spirit."
Looking on the bright
side, the wogs hadn't had time to really hide much.
Another herded a group
of children, the oldest leading or carrying the younger. They set up a wail at
the sight of the bodies in the courtyard, then surged back again when one of
the troopers scowled and flourished his bayonet. Thumping and crashing sounds
came from the ground floor, as the rest of the squad searched.
"Git t'kiddies out
an' a-down by t'church, t'mosque, whatever." Orders were to spare
noncombatants and the unresisting. "Yer!" He shouted through the
ground-floor door. "Whin yer finished, set t'cookin' oil around."
That would start the
fire nicely. He took a deep breath and exhaled, letting the tight
belly-clamping tension of action fade a little. A pissant little skirmish, but
he'd been in the Army seven years now, since he turned eighteen, and he knew
you could die just as dead that way as in a major battle.
"And Smeet, plug
that."
Trooper Smeet had a tear
in the side of his jacket, and it was sodden and dripping. " 'Tis
nuttin'," he said. "We'll a' git kilt anyways—"
"Did I asks
yer?" M'Telgez said, scowling. "Did I?"
"Co'pral half a
year and already drunk wit' power," Smeet said, grinning with an
expression that was half wince. He was coming down off the combat-high too;
often you didn't really feel a minor wound until you had time to think about
it. He leaned his rifle against a wall and shrugged out of his webbing gear and
jacket. "I bin co'pral six, seven times—t' feelin' don't last nohows,
dog-brother."
There was an ugly flesh
wound along his ribs, only beginning to crust. One of his comrades washed it
from his canteen, then applied the blessed powder and sealed, the priest-made
bandage they all carried in a pouch on their belts. Smeet yelped and swore; the
stuff stung badly, and many of the less pious men wouldn't use it on a cut
unless you stood over them. M'Telgez wasn't much of a Church-going man, but
Messer Raj insisted on following Church canons in such things, which was good
enough for him.
The attending trooper
used his bayonet to cut off one of the tails of Smeet's jacket, ripping it in
half and using it to bind the padding over his ribs.
"An' git t'priest
at it, soon as, or ye'll feel me boot up yer arse," M'Telgez warned. Smeet
was a good enough fighting man, but he tended to be slack about kit and such.
M'Telgez looked down at
the woman and smiled.
* * *
Pillars of black smoke
stood out against the northern horizon. The smell drifted down with the wind,
full of the unpleasant smells of things that should not burn. White-hot, the
noon sun burned most color out of the land, turning the reaped grainfields to a
pale yellow dust. Blocks of alfalfa and berseem-clover were almost
eye-hurtingly vivid, and the odd patch of fruit trees or olives cast shade
dense and black and sharp-edged. Where the 7th Descott Rangers waited beside
their dogs, there was welcome shade from rows of eucalyptus on either side of
the road, but the air was still and very hot. Insects shrilled in the dust, and
a few tiny pterosauroids swooped after them, their long triangle-tipped tails
flickering as they scooped cicadas into their needle-toothed little jaws.
The men squatted
patiently beside their mounts, the gun teams lying down in their traces,
satisfied after their drink in the roadside canal. The beasts looked
glossy-coated and strong despite the heat and hard work; the all-meat diet of
plundered Colonial stock agreed with them, after the usual mash of grain and
beans eked out with bones and offal. Kaltin Gruder stood, eating grapes from
the bunches in the helmet he held reversed in his left hand, waiting with the
same stolidity as his troopers.
He ate more grapes and
smiled. He'd soldiered against the Military Governments in the west without
passion, and as much occasional mercy as advisable. He was a noble of the Civil
Government, a Descotter, and a professional; war was his trade, the only trade
unless he wanted the Church or to go home to the County and chase rustlers. The
Colonials, though . . . his younger brother had died from a Colonial
shellburst, in the El Djem campaign. He rubbed one thumb down the deep parallel
scars that seamed the left side of his face.
This was personal.
The sound of paws came
from the north, and the whistle of the pickets in their ambush positions
passing them through. The scouts trotted up to him, sitting easily with their
rifles across their thighs. The lieutenant who led them saluted.
"Seyhor," he said.
"Sir. About two thousand of them; many carriages and dogs, and a
substantial number of armed men."
"Regulars?"
"Ferramenti,
danad, seyhor," the young officer replied. "I'd swear, nothing,
sir. Household guards, no twenty in the same livery."
That was the advantage
of counter-attacking. Most of the military nobles, the amirs, and their ghazis
would be over on the west bank, with Ali—all the ones who had any desire to
fight and die for Islam, at least. Ali had gotten overconfident.
Still, it wouldn't do to
emulate his mistake. Fighting for their homes and families could make even
rabble desperate.
"Company
commanders," he said.
Back along the road men
shifted as the word passed down, fastening their webbing, here a man checking
his rifle or tightening the girth on a dog. The mounts took their cues from
their masters, keeping a well-drilled silence, but they bristled. The unit
commanders gathered around Gruder's banner.
"The
objective," he said, crouching and drawing in the dirt with a twig, "is
a column of refugees about half a klick north. They're coming at fair speed for
civilians, but we've gotten ahead of them. We'll debouch, deploy-so—and
put in an attack. Captain Morinez, bring your guns along at the trot, if you
please.
"The general order
is to kill anyone who resists; let the rest run, as long as they do it on foot.
We'll take provisions, spare dogs—I want to put the ammunition reserve in
pack-saddles—and any high-value loot." He dumped the grapes out of his
helmet and buckled it on. "Burn or smash whatever we don't take. Oh, and
we're not taking any hundred-pound bundles of loot, either, so wooers be
swift—or refrain."
There was a harsh
chuckle, and nods. This was a military picnic so far; it wouldn't stay that
way, but there was no reason not to make the most of it while they could.
"Hell or plunder,
dog-brothers." He straddled his dog Fihdel and his feet found the stirrups
as it rose. "Boots and saddles, gentlemen."
* * *
"Approximately one
hundred seventy-seven thousand four hundred FedCreds. Gold," Muzzaf
Kerpatik added. "That's allowing for the usual discounts on sales."
Raj grunted
noncommittally, leaning one hand against the tentpole. It was a captured tent,
from the baggage train Kaltin had overrun; they'd leave it behind in the morning.
He looked out across the camp—not much of one, just the picket lines of
staked-out dogs, the men cooking around their campfires. Odd to be in a camp
where you heard more Namerique than Sponglish, but the central group was mostly
MilGov troopers. Fruits of conquest. That was the true spoil of war;
peace in the lands he'd retaken, and their fighting men here defending the
Civil Government.
The MilGov soldiers, the
ex-warriors of the Squadron and Brigade, were happy enough. An easy campaign so
far, under leaders they trusted; they were warriors by birth and professional
soldiers by the trade he'd given them, and indifferent to who they fought.
The sun was setting in
the west, over toward the Drangosh thirty kilometers distant. It was hazed with
burning, crops and buildings and towns; the raiding force had smashed a path of
devastation a hundred kilometers southward. He could smell the smoke, faint
under the cooking and dog odors of a war-camp.
"How much of that
plunder is from Osterville's group?" Raj asked.
"Ah, unfortunately
Colonel Osterville's battalions have had poor luck. Less than two thousand from
them."
A chuckle ran around the
table behind him. "I don't think," Raj said, "the men are going
to find it amusing that Osterville's boys are holding out on them. Particularly
given the recent service records, respectively."
"Raj,
darling," Suzette said. "Do come and sit down. Or pace like a
caged dog, but make up your mind."
He shrugged a little
sheepishly and returned, sitting and taking up a drumstick. It was sauroid, but
tasted pretty much like the chicken that was the alternative. As usual, Suzette
had managed to find something better than you had any right to expect in the
field; of course, the pickings were good. He stoked himself methodically.
"You don't like
this, do you, darling?" Suzette said.
"No," Raj
said. "I'm a thrifty man. The looting's good here because this area hasn't
been fought over in a long time. It'll be generations recovering."
"Which will weaken
the Colony," Gerrin Staenbridge pointed out.
He'd managed to shave
and find a clean uniform, which was a minor miracle when they were all living
out of saddlebags. Every man pays the price he will for what he values,
Raj thought. Gerrin dressed for dinner the way he dressed line for a charge,
with finicky care, as a mark of civilization.
"That's assuming
the stalemate continues out here," Raj said. "The Civil Government of
Holy Federation is the legitimate ruler of all humankind. The Colonials
included."
Staenbridge raised an
eyebrow: "Well, it hasn't had much luck enforcing that for millennia or
so," he pointed out.
During which time the
Colonials had besieged East Residence twice and the Civil Government had
reached as far as Al Kebir once.
"I don't like it
either," Bartin Foley said.
They looked at him, and
the younger man dropped his eyes to the cut-down shotgun on the table before
him, his single hand slowly reassembling the clean, oil-gleaming parts. They
went together with smooth clicks and snaps, and he slid it into the harness he
usually wore over his back.
"It's not real
soldiers' work, harrying peasants like this," he went on doggedly.
Gerrin and Raj nodded in
chorus, and smiled at the coincidence. "Not good for morale, really,"
Raj said. "Not too much of it."
"Gets the men
thinking like bandits," Staenbridge agreed.
Suzette shook her head.
"Such perfect knights," she said with gentle mockery. Then: "Ah,
Abdullah."
The Druze entered with
two suspicious troopers at his heel, their bayonets hovering not far from his
kidneys, and Antin M'lewis to one side. He bowed: "Sayyid. Sayyida."
Raj leaned back in the
captured folding chair, some amir's hunting equipment. I'll be
damned. I didn't expect to see him alive again, I really didn't.
Suzette had an eye for picking reliable servants, though.
"That's all,
men," he said to the troopers. They hesitated, and his tone grew dry.
"I can handle one Arab, thank you." They saluted, threw Abdullah a
warning glance, and wheeled smartly out.
Damn, this
living legend shit can get wearing. The men wouldn't leave him alone for a moment,
watching, listening, guarding. Damn their dear loyal souls. What was he, an
invalid?
you are their talisman, Center said. without you they would feel themselves lost.
I'm only one man, Raj
thought/protested. And I've got competent officers.
belief is its
own reality.
Abdullah pulled
documents from his ha'aik. He also accepted a goblet of watered wine; his
particular brand of exceedingly eccentric shi'a Islam had some liberal notions.
"Lord," he
began. "Ain el-Hilwa is swollen to bursting with refugees. Perhaps a
hundred and seventy, a hundred and eighty thousand in all. They crowd the city
and the suburbs outside the wall."
Raj nodded. That was no
surprise. The spy's long brown fingers moved dishes to tack down the map and
papers against the warm breeze of evening.
"The garrison
includes ten thousand men of the Settler's regulars and the ghazis of
the local amirs, but of these no more than two hundred are of single tabors."
Banners, the Colonial equivalent of the Civil Government's battalions,
although usually a little smaller. "The rest have been sent on detachment
to the Settler's army across the Drangosh.
"Likewise, their
officers quarrel. The provincial wali, Muhmed bin Tarish, is a court
favorite; he hides among his women and sends messages commanding the men to
stand fast within the walls. Haffez al'Husseini, the most senior of the
military officers, is a veteran of the Zanj wars, but slowed by his wounds.
He—"
The report flowed on, full
and concise; units, strengths, weapons, dispositions, guns, the state of the
fortifications and the water supply (which was good, since the city straddled
the Ghor Canal). Center drew holographic projections over the map.
Abdullah's voice ceased.
The others waited, in a silence filled by the flutter of canvas in the wind and
the muted sounds of the camp; a dog howling, the brass of a trumpet calling, a
challenge and response at an outlying vedette. Ten minutes later Raj blinked.
"Yes," he
said, softly, to himself. "That should do." He looked up.
"Excellent work, Abdullah. You won't regret it."
Abdullah bowed. "My
life is to serve, sayyid."
Raj waved a hand.
"If your son still wants that cavalry ensign's commission—and I'm still
around and in command when he turns sixteen—it's his."
A very rare honor for
one not of the Star Church; although Abdullah's faith allowed its adherents to
freely observe the ceremonies of other religions, where advisable. The Druze
bowed again, more deeply.
"Gerrin," Raj
went on. "We'll be concentrated by 0900 tomorrow?"
"All except for
Osterville," Staenbridge said. "But he's—"
"—closer nor he
said, ser," M'lewis put in. "Nobbut six klicks east."
Raj nodded. "Here's
what we'll do. Bartin, write this up. At dawn—"
"Allahu
Akbar! Gur! Gur!"
The band of Colonials
swept out of a side street in the maze of alleys. The morning sun burned bright
on their scimitars and spiked helmets; beneath their djellabas they had wound
tight linen strips, the winding-sheets of men determined to seek Paradise in
battle with the unbelievers.
The main street was
narrow and crooked as well; only one file of troopers was between Raj and the
attack. Horace spun beneath him with a roaring growl, and his hand swept out
saber and pistol. A grid of green lines clamped down over his vision, and the
outlines of the Colonial troopers glowed. One strobed; the one with his carbine
in his hands. Still a hundred paces away: a long pistol-shot but not impossible
for a skilled man on dogback to make with a shoulder-weapon. And the Arab
looked good. . . .
Raj moved his wrist. A
red dot settled on the Colonial's midriff. His finger squeezed the trigger. Crack.
The carbineer flipped over the cantle of his saddle. Crack. Another
down. Place the dot and the bullet went where Center indicated it would. Crack—crack—crack.
The revolver was empty, and the Colonials were through.
A clang of steel on
steel as a scimitar met his saber. He flexed his wrist to let the sharply
curved blade hiss by, then cut backhand across the Arab's face. A second was
barreling in with his blade upraised. Horace lunged with open mouth for the
Bazenji's throat. Raj stabbed, and the point of his weapon went in below the
breastbone. He ripped it free with desperate strength, wheeling. Suzette's
carbine clanged and nearly dropped from her hands as she used it to deflect a
cut. Raj rose in the stirrups and chopped downward; there was a jar like the
blade hitting seasoned oak, and a splitting sound. It nearly wrenched from his
hand, sunk to brow-level in the Colonial's skull, but the weight of the falling
body pulled the metal free.
There had been no time
for fear. Something contracted in a hard knot under his ribs when he saw his
wife clutching at her upper arm.
"It's nothing,
light cut," she said.
He checked; in the
background rifles barked as the troopers put down the dogs of the dead Arabs
where they stood snarling over their masters' bodies. She was right; she held a
dressing over the superficial wound while he tied it off.
"Damn, that was too
close," he said. "Anyone else wounded?"
His bannerman had gashed
fingers where he'd used the staff to block a cut. Suzette heeled Harbie closer
and went to work on that. The sergeant of the color-party was looking at him
wide-eyed.
"Spirit, ser,"
he blurted. "Five dead wit' five shots!"
Raj felt a flush of
embarrassment. He wasn't actually a first-rate pistol-shot; the sword was his
personal weapon of choice, and with that he was very good. With Center's eerie
trick, you didn't have to be good. He didn't much like the experience.
It was too much like being a weapon yourself, in another's hand.
Whatever works, he
thought.
precisely.
"Keep moving,"
he said sharply.
The suburbs of Ain
el-Hilwa were burning already, as the Civil Government troops shot and hacked
their way through the crowds who ran screaming towards the gates. Shells went
by overhead in long ripping-canvas arcs, to crash on the massive stone-faced
walls behind the moat. It was a wet moat, full of canal water, right now dark
with the heads of refugees swimming across; and getting no help from the
garrison. The gates were jammed tight with a press of humanity.
"Forward!" he
said again. "Dammit, bugler, sound Advance at speed!"
The brazen scream cut
through the white noise of the crowds, the gathering roar of the flames. Sheer
press of numbers was slowing the advance despite complete surprise. The people
ahead wanted to get out of the way of the sharp blades and snarling
meter-long jaws and rifle fire; they couldn't.
Should have
stayed in their houses, he thought—or in the sprawling city of reed shanties
and tents outside the suburbs. There was no wisdom in panic.
A field gun bounced up
behind him. The crew pulled the trail free of the limber and spun it around,
running it forward with the long pole held up and the nose of the gun down.
They pushed it through the front line of Civil Government troopers and let the
trail fall.
"Stand clear!"
the gun commander said. He skipped aside himself and pulled the lanyard.
Pomph. The shock of
discharge slapped at him, bouncing back and forth from the narrow walls.
So did the hundreds of
lead shot in the canister charge. Men—and women and children—splashed away from
the spreading scythe of it.
"Waymanos!" Raj shouted
again. "Forward!"
The buildings dropped
away on either side as they came out into the broad cleared area around the
moat. Cannon and pompoms were firing from the walls, but most of the shots went
overhead, into the belt of houses, helping with the work of destruction. In the
gates, the garrison were firing down into their own people, dropping handbombs
and pouring burning naphtha from the murder-holes over the arched entrances to
clear the press. The gates swung shut, and the bridges over the moats gaped as
hinged sections were pulled up.
"Damn," Raj
said aloud. "Runner, to battalion commanders. Get the fires going and pull
back."
A shell burst twenty
yards ahead. Raj stood in his stirrups and brought out his field glasses,
sweeping along the walls. Chaos, but active chaos—groups in the crimson
djellabas of Colonial regular troops, infantry from the looks of them, and the
white-and-colored patchwork of city militia. More and more of the fortress guns
were getting into operation, too.
He turned Horace to the
rear. "Come on, let's get out before the fires spread."
He was conscious of a
few odd looks. Technically, this was a defeat—they hadn't been able to rush the
gates, despite the shambolic panic of the Colonial garrison's response. Raj
grinned a little wider.
A reputation for having
something up your sleeve could be quite helpful. Even when you did have
something up your sleeve.
Suzette was flexing her
arm, wincing only a little, as they turned and trotted back through the smoke
and noise. Shells whirred by overhead; ash and bits of debris fell into the
dirt streets about them.
I'm almost glad that
happened, Raj thought. Something sounded an interrogative at the back of his
mind. I was beginning to wonder whether I'd lost my capacity for strong
emotion.
i am not
contagious.
The hell you're not, Raj
thought. For example, I wouldn't have dared to talk this way to an angel a few
years ago. He looked down at the city. For another, I wouldn't do what I'm
going to do to Osterville a few years ago. Even to Osterville.
ah. that is the
effect known as "life," raj whitehall. and it is contagious; not only
that, but fatal. for all of us.
* * *
"Should be ready in
about three hours, mi heneral," Dinnalsyn said.
The gunner and Raj stood
together outside the earthworks, five kilometers from Ain el-Hilwa. Two
thousand troopers and as many press-ganged Colonial refugees dug steadily,
hauling the dirt from the growing ditch upslope in baskets, buckets, helmets,
and cloth slings improvised from coats. The sun was high, and the men sweated
as they worked; an hour on and an hour off, with the off spent standing guard
or watering and feeding the dogs. The earthwork fort was two hundred meters on
a side, a standard marching camp with a ditch as deep as a standing man, an
earthwork rampart as high inside with a palisade on top, and bastions at the
corners and gates with V-notches for the guns. The air was full of the smell of
sweat and freshly turned earth.
He walked over to the
edge. "Found that buried cask of beer yet, dog-brothers?" Raj called
in Namerique.
The big fair men in the
nearest section groaned laughter. "Don't worry, lord," one yelled
back. "By the Spirit of Man of This Earth, we'll have a grave big enough
for all the enemy we kill if it takes us all day."
Raj waved as he turned
away. Not bad, he thought. Back home, these men scorned digging in the
earth as fit for peons and women; real men fought, hunted, and drank. They'd
learned something of soldiering, then—granted he'd had to kill about a third of
the adult males in their nations to get their attention, but they were
learning.
Within the enclosure
medics were setting up, and tents being pitched in neat rows along the streets;
everything necessary for a mobile military city of five thousand men. It could
be made more elaborate the longer they stayed, but by midafternoon the camp
would be ready to defend. It was said, not without truth, that watching a Civil
Government army encamp was more discouraging for barbarians than fighting a
battle with them. The Colonials wouldn't be intimidated, but they'd know
exactly how hard it was to storm this sort of earthworks.
"Good,
Grammeck," he said. "Keep pushing it. Gerrin, once we've got the wall
up, let all these Colonials go—it won't hurt the troops to finish up by
themselves. Kaltin, you've got overwatch—"
"Ser," his
color-sergeant said.
Raj looked around. A
party of Civil Government officers was riding up; not his own, Osterville's
banner. Raj waited in silence.
"General,"
Osterville said.
"Colonel," Raj
replied. Formally: "Colonel Osterville, I'm ordering you to bring your
command within the walls of this encampment."
Osterville sneered, a
rather theatrical expression. "I'll have to deprive you and Messa
Whitehall of that pleasure. As Commandant of the Military District of Sandoral,
our authority is concurrent. These commands remain separate, and I'm not
afraid of that lot of wogs over there."
He pointed; his own four
battalions were setting up camp on a hill no more than a kilometer from the
walls. Beyond that was a dense pall of smoke, as the ruins of the suburbs
beyond the wall smoldered. Not coincidentally, there was an orchard and
pleasant little country villa on the hill.
"I warn you,"
Raj went on, stroking his chin, "that the Colonials may try to sally. Your
position is more vulnerable than mine."
Osterville spat—toward
the city, which made the gesture ambiguous. "They're scum, with
incompetent officers. Obviously, or they'd be over the river with Ali, wouldn't
they?" His voice took on a faint hectoring, lecturing note. "Look at
the way they reacted when we attacked this morning. As I said, I'm not
afraid of them, and neither are my men. We're staying where we are."
"By all means,
Colonel Osterville," Raj said mildly. "Perhaps it's advisable, all
things considered."
From the ranks of
officers around Raj a loud whisper continued the thought: "Considering
what our men would do to those garrison pussies who've been shorting the
take."
Osterville's head
whipped around, finding a wall of bland politeness. He saluted and pulled his
dog around, with a violence that brought a protesting whimper as the
cheek-levers of the bridle gouged.
"Ser." A
messenger this time, from the heliograph detachment who'd been setting up a
relay back to the bridgehead. "Message from Colonel Menyez."
The silence grew tense.
Raj read. "Ali's arrived," he said. "And tried the usual. So
far—"
observe, Center said.
* * *
"Noisy
beggars," Major Ferdihando Felasquez said.
The Colonial army was
parading past the walls of Sandoral, fifty thousand strong. Tabor after tabor
of mounted men in crimson djellabas and pantaloons, in a perfect order that
rippled with the rise and fall of the trotting dogs. Between the blocks of men
came guns, light pompoms and 70mm field pieces, with heavier siege weapons
behind. Beyond that, on a hillock just out of medium artillery range, an
enormous tent-pavilion in brilliant stripes was already going up. From the
tallest pole flew the green crescent banner and the peacock of the Settlers.
And over it all came an
inhuman pulse of drums, like the beating heart of some great beast. Beneath
that the clang of cymbals and the brazen scream of long curled trumpets.
Felasquez tapped his
gauntlets against his thigh. "Should we send them a few love-notes?"
he asked. "Some of the heavier pieces on the wall could reach that
far."
"No," Jorg Menyez
said, scanning down the line of units with the big tripod-mounted field
glasses. "We're playing for time, so there's no sense in poking the
sauroid through the bars. Ah, yes. Notice something?"
He stepped aside and
Felasquez bent to the eyepieces. A forest of banners was going up before the
Settler's pavilion. "Ali, Hussein the Wazir, the Grand Mufti of Sinnar,
the Gederosian Dervishes . . . wait a minute."
Menyez nodded. "No
Seal of Solomon. Tewfik's not here."
"Unless they want
us to think that."
"No, that's not the
way Colonials think."
Felasquez nodded.
"I'd still feel easier if you weren't splitting up so much of the 24th
Valencia," he went on.
"The garrison
infantry need stiffening; we haven't had enough time to work them into
first-class shape."
"You can't stiffen
a bucket of spit with a handful of lead shot," Felasquez said.
Menyez clapped him on
the shoulder. "It's not as bad as all that. They're trained men, sound at
bottom; they've just been neglected recently. Standing behind a parapet and shooting
is about the easiest type of combat for 'em. They just need some examples.
How're the militia-gunner volunteers showing?"
"Pretty well; still
have to see how they stand fire, of course. But the ones who stayed were the
ones who wanted to fight. A lot of them were with us when we fought
Jamal, five years ago."
Along the walls of
Sandoral men stood to the parapet and looked out the merlons, but their numbers
were sparse. Most of the garrison stood to in the cleared space within the
walls, or waited in their billets. Apart from them the city was a ghostly
place, where little moved but rats and cats almost as feral.
"It's all waiting
now," Menyez went on, "and I want my supper. Runner; message to the Heneralissimo-"
* * *
This time the viewpoint
shifted to a point on the rail line west. Raj recognized it: a long viaduct
over a gully that was a torrent in the winter and spring. The burning remnants
of the wooden trestle bridge lay scattered below.
A long file of Colonial
dragoons rose from prayer and rolled up their issue rugs. Naiks and rissaldars
screamed at them, and they returned to their work—hacking through the ties of
the railway line. As each section of track came loose, they carried it at a run
to one of the bonfires that blazed at intervals down the line and threw it on.
The dry wood flared up like tinder, and in the heart of the furnace-heat he
could see the thin strap iron turning cherry-red and then yellow, slumping and
twisting into a mass of metallic spaghetti that would have to be carted to the
forges and rolling-mills as scrap.
Raj nodded to himself,
tight-lipped. No surprise; a railroad was the best military target there was.
But it had taken generations to get the line from Sandoral to East Residence
completed; until Barholm Clerett came to the throne and Raj reconquered the
territories to the west, there always seemed to be a more urgent short-term
priority.
The Colonials were doing
a good professional job of the wrecking, and there were a lot of them.
* * *
Dust smoked up from the
road. Sweat dripped off the twenty-hitch train of oxen as they strained at the
trek-chain. The big tented wagon rolled forward, its axles groaning, man-high
wheels turning at the steady, inexorable pace that would take it ten kilometers
a day and neither more nor less. It was one of a line of two dozen, between
them taking up several kilometers of road; all of them had the Crescent
pyrographed on the wood of their sides, and the Peacock stenciled on their
tilts.
The load was sacked
grain, and bales of a repulsive-looking dried fish; even in the holographic
vision he could imagine the mealy, oily smell of it. Advocati, the
staple dog-fodder of the Drangosh valley, a sucker-mouthed parasitic
bottom-feeder with no backbone. Dogs would eat it, just; even slaves would
refuse it if they could. As he watched, the oxen halted as the drivers snapped
their whips. Men with baskets of grain and dried alfalfa pellets went down the
train, dumping loads by the draft cattle.
The escort sank down and
unlimbered the goatskin water-bottles at their waists, stacking their light
lever-action rifles. Infantry, with short curved falchions at their belts
rather than the scimitars of the cavalry. Tewfik wouldn't be wasting his best
men on duty like this, but here was about a platoon of them. The drovers were
civilians, slight men in ragged clothes.
A voice called, and
drovers and soldiers alike knelt in the dust, performing the ritual washing and
unrolling their mats. A call, and they knelt to distant Sinnar, the holy city
where the first humans on Bellevue had landed, bringing a fragment of the ka'ba
from ruined Mecca.
* * *
A Colonial officer with
gold-rimmed spectacles and a green-dyed beard stood beside a hole. It was
outside the walls of Sandoral—he could see the city in the middle distance—but
outside ordinary artillery range. There were several hundred Colonials working
in the hole, mostly stripped to their loincloths, but they had the look of
soldiers. Probably engineers; the Colony had whole units of them, rather than
expecting line units to be able to double up at need, the way the Civil
Government did. He'd never seen men work harder, or with more skill.
Picks were flying; plank
ramps went down into the hole, and wheelbarrows came up at a trot, full of
earth. The dirt was piled neatly in heaps not far away; other men were filling
sandbags from the heaps. Still more shaped timber, raw beams from orchards
around the city, or seasoned timber salvaged from houses. A knocked-down floor
of planks waited to be assembled.
A bunker, Raj decided.
Cursed large one, too. Probably for Ali.
* * *
Raj blinked, conscious
of the eyes on him. They were all used to his . . . spells of inattention . . .
by now.
He cleared his throat.
"Ali's reached Sandoral and he's digging in around the city. So far he
hasn't mounted an assault—bringing up his siege train, at a guess. He's got the
full fifty thousand men with him; it must be straining his supply of wagons and
fodder to keep them fed. Tewfik's banner isn't with the main army."
There was a stir at
that. "What do we do, mi heneral?" Staenbridge asked.
"We dig, and we
wait."
"Wait for
what?"
"For the wogs"
—he nodded toward Ain el-Hilwa— "to take the bait. In which case,
we—"
The officers waited in
silence, a few taking notes. "Is all that clear?" Raj finished.
"No reserve?"
Staenbridge asked.
"Not this time;
it's a calculated risk, but so's this whole expedition."
He turned and looked at
the Arab city, surrounded by the smoldering wreck of its suburbs, crammed to
the very wall with refugees.
"Either this will
be easy, or it'll be impossible," he said.
probability of action proceeding according to
current projections, 78%±7, Center said helpfully.
"I'd put it at
about three to one on easy," he went on. "If not, we'll just have to
react fast."
* * *
"When you go by the Camina Bellica
As thousands have traveled before
Remember the Luck of the Soldier
Who never saw home anymore!
Oh, dear was the lover who kissed him
And dear was the mother that bore;
But then they found his sword in the heather,
And he never saw home anymore!"
* * *
"Ser." Antin
M'lewis was Officer of the Day; he slipped into the circle around the fire.
"Major Hwadeloupe t'see yer."
Raj finished the
mouthful of fig-bread and dusted his hands, leaning back on the
cushions—someone had salvaged them from a nearby Colonial mansion, and they
were all resting on them and the Al Kebir carpets from the same source. A roast
sheep on rice had been demolished, and they were punishing the sweetmeats and
pastries the Colonials were famous for. The wine was too sweet, even diluted,
but nobody was drinking all that much of it anyway; they knew him better than
that. The firelight played on the faces around it, bringing out scars on Kaltin
Gruder's as he leaned forward to light a twig and puff a cheroot alight.
"By all means,
Antin, bring him along," Raj said.
Hwadeloupe commanded the
44th Camarina Dragoons, one of Osterville's battalions.
"An' ser . . . he's
got 'is men out there. Hunnerts of 'em, not too far."
"Keep an eye on
them, Captain."
The strong male voices
were roaring out the next verse, the one that had gotten the song officially
banned centuries ago. It was a truth the Governors preferred that the Army not
be too conscious of:
* * *
"When you go by the Camina Bellica
From the City to Sandoral,
Remember the Luck of the Soldier
Who rose to be master of all!
He carried the rifle and saber,
He stood his watch and rode tall,
Till the Army hailed him as Governor
And he rose to be master of all!"
* * *
"Glad you could
join us," Raj said as Hwadeloupe strode up. "No, no, no salutes in
the mess, Major. Have some wine."
The soldier-servant
handed him a mug of half-and-half, watered wine. He gripped it distractedly, a
middle-aged man with the marks of long service on the southern border on his
leathery face.
"Mi heneral,
if we could speak privately?"
"I have no secrets
from my officers and Companions, Major." Not quite true, but it was
a polite way of telling Hwadeloupe that he couldn't expect to hedge his bets.
"Ah . . . sir, I
would like to transfer my battalion to your command—to this encampment, that
is."
The rest of the command
group had fallen silent; Suzette kept strumming her gittar, but softly.
Without the song, the minor noises of the camp came through: dogs growling, a
challenge from the walls, the iron clatter of a field gun's breechblock being
opened for some reason.
"If I might ask
why?" Raj went on implacably.
Hwadeloupe stood very
straight. "Sir. Colonel Osterville thinks there's no risk from the
garrison of Ain el-Hilwa. But I know you don't think so, and I see your men
still have their boots on, and your guns are limbered up. Colonel Osterville
may be right. On the whole, though, when he and you disagree, I'll bet on you.
With respect, sir."
Raj shoulder-rolled and
came erect. "I can always use good men," he said. "And I don't
think you'll regret that decision. Captain M'lewis will show your men to their
bivouac area within the earthworks."
"Ah, sir. There's
one other matter." Hwadeloupe kept his eyes fixed over Raj's shoulder.
"We have, ah, a considerable quantity of booty with us. Just picked up,
you understand. We'd like to turn it in now to the common fund, as per your
standing orders."
Raj raised an eyebrow;
one of Gerrin's expressions, and very useful in situations like this.
"That's odd, Major. We've had several smaller parties in from Colonel
Osterville's camp, and they've all had some late-arriving booty to turn in
too." He extended his hand. "No hard feelings. M'lewis will settle
your people in."
"I'll see to that
myself, if it's all the same to you, mi heneral," Hwadeloupe said,
taking the extended hand in his own. "And thank you, sir."
Raj returned to his cushion
beside Suzette. "That's about two hundred in all," he said.
"Separating the
sheep from the goats," Staenbridge replied. "Or those too stupid to
live from the remainder."
Foley frowned.
"Some of them are staying over there to follow orders," he pointed out.
"My dear,"
Gerrin said, "what's that saying—from the Old Namerique codexes—"
Foley was something of a
scholar. " 'Against Fate even the gods do not fight,' " he
quoted.
"Exactly."
Raj nodded and leaned
back, his head not quite in Suzette's lap. Both moons were out and very bright,
bright enough to interrupt the frosted arch of stars. Her fingers wandered over
the strings.
* * *
"It's twenty-five marches to Payso
It's forty-five more to Ayaire
And the end may be death in the heather
Or life on the Governor's Chair
But whether the Army obeys us,
Or we serve as some sauroid's fare
I'd rather be Lola's lover
Than sit on the Governor's Chair!"
* * *
Cut-nose Marhtinez lay
in the dark and breathed quietly. He was ten meters from the walls of Ain
el-Hilwa, outside the north gate. An overturned two-wheel cart hid him; the
bodies of the two dogs who'd been drawing it until they met a cannonball were
fairly ripe after a day in the hot sun, and so was the driver: black, swollen,
the skin split and dripping in places, like a windfallen plum. He'd had about
seven FedCreds in assorted silver in his pouch, though.
The night was fairly
dark, only one moon in the sky and that near the horizon. The starlight was
enough for him to see men moving on the walls—and they were moving without
torches. He could even hear some wog curse when he ran into something and
barked his chin. A whistling and dull thudding followed, about the sound you'd
expect one of those nine-barbed whips the wog officers used to make. The yelp
of pain that followed was strangled, and the next slash brought no sound at
all.
Quiet's a
whorehouse on payday, he thought scornfully. It was a good thing there weren't
any Bedouin scouts with the Ain el-Hilwa garrison. Those sand-humpers were too
good for comfort.
Cut-nose moved his head
slightly. The star he was using was still a fingerbreadth above the horizon. An
hour and a bit short of dawn, call it an hour and twenty minutes.
He moved backward out of
the wrecked cart, keeping it between him and the wall. Nothing on his body
clinked or reflected light, and his hands and face were blacked; Mother
Marhtinez might not have known exactly who his father was, but she hadn't
raised any fools. Pause, move, pause, until he was behind a snag of ruined
wall, still hot enough from the fire to feel on his skin. He picked up his
rifle—nothing but a hindrance and a temptation in the blind where he'd spent
the night—and eeled cautiously back to his dog.
Captain M'lewis was
waiting there. Cut-nose grinned ingratiatingly. He didn't have much use for
officers, and still less for a promoted ranker who might be a kinsman. He did
have the liveliest respect for Antin M'lewis's wits, his wire garrote, and the
skinning-knife he wore across the small of his back beneath the tails of his
uniform jacket. All the Forty Thieves—the Scouts—had a standing invitation to
go out behind the stables and settle things with knives if they felt they
couldn't obey someone who wasn't Messer-born.
So far only one fool had
taken M'lewis up on it; he was on the rolls as a deserter. Nobody had found the
body. Good riddance, Cut-nose thought. The Scouts beat regular duty all
to hell. Less boring, more plunder—a lot more in some cases—and no more
dangerous. M'lewis wasn't the charge-the-barricade type.
"They're movin',
ser. Gittin' ready, loike," he said in a soft whisper, directed at the
ground—nothing to carry far.
M'lewis nodded.
"Messer Raj was expectin' it, an' t'scouts at t'other gate says th'
same," he observed. "Here, git this t'him fast."
* * *
"Sir."
Kaltin Gruder's voice.
Raj rolled out of his blankets; Suzette was already reaching for her carbine.
He fastened his weapons belt. His boots were already on; if the men had to
sleep in them, so could he.
"Message from
M'lewis just got in."
A Scout was behind the
battalion commander. "Ser. Noise in t'wog town. I weren't more 'n ten
meters off, an' heard it plain. North gates."
The ones nearest Colonel
Osterville's camp. Raj took the message and read it. "Boots and saddles,
please. Quietly. We'll deploy as arranged."
"Line of
march?"
"Scout troop has
pickets along it. They'll signal with shuttered lanterns."
Raj could hear the noise
spreading; not very loud, no shouting, but a long-drawn out clatter as men
rousted out of uneasy sleep and saw to their equipment. The Companions arrived,
and the other battalion commanders. Shapes in the night, dimly lit by the
embers of the fire, a feeling of controlled anxiety. He grinned into the dark.
A night march. Difficult. An invitation to disaster, with any but very
experienced troops. The handbooks were full of bungled night attacks, men
firing on their comrades, whole battalions wandering off lost, irretrievable
disaster.
"Barton," he
said. "What's that toast again?"
" 'He fears his
fate too much, and his deserts are small, who will not put it to the touch—to
win or lose it all.' "
"Exactly. Messers,
to your units. Waymanos!"
An orderly brought up
Horace; he put a foot in the stirrup and swung into the saddle. The
headquarters party fell in around him, bannermen and buglers and gallopers. Men
blinked and dogs yawned cavernously; the wet clomp-clomp sound of jaws
snapping closed rippled through the dark streets. Iron-shod wheels rattled on
dirt as the 75s and splatguns moved. He cantered down the east-west notional
laneway of the camp, the wia erente, keeping to the side. Men and dogs
were moving the same way, the lead element of the 5th, followed by the 1st and
2nd Cruisers. The other gates were all open as well, flanked by lantern-bearing
pathfinders. Thousands of heavy paws thumped the earth, an endless rumbling
sound.
Flat terrain,
mostly. Nothing between him and Osterville's camp but four kilometers of fields,
with the occasional orchard or shallow ditch. The objective was on the same
side of the Ghor Canal, thank the Spirit, even Osterville wasn't stupid
enough to put an obstacle that needed bridging between him and the only supports
available. Keep in column, he decided. In column they could move down
the laneways, at a fast walk. Once deployed into line their speed would drop by
four-fifths.
The night was still
quiet, almost chilly in the last moments of predawn; overhead the arch of stars
was a frosted road leading to infinity. The command group rode silently, no
need for talk unless something went very wrong. The palms that lined the
roadway were black silhouettes against the sky. He looked over his shoulder to
the west and caught the faintest rim of peach-pink there.
He reined Horace
sideways into the fields, a hunching scramble through the ditch, then stood in
the stirrups to look. Nothing but a few watchfires from Osterville's camp. The
north gates of the city were hidden by the western wall. Flags rippled behind
him, his personal banner and the Star. Over his shoulder he could see the other
gates of the camp, now; the spiked-log barricades were pulled aside, and a
steady stream of men and dogs and guns was pouring out. Not a single jam-up,
not a voice raised . . . damn, but these are good troops.
Three columns, each
about half a kilometer apart, each a little over two thousand strong. And-
" 'The gates flew
back, and the din of onset sounded,' " Bartin murmured.
"More Old
Namerique?" Raj said.
"From the Fall
Codexes," the young man replied.
When the Fall began,
books had died with the machines that recorded them—the Church called it the
Great Simplification. In the first generation the survivors wrote down as much
as they could, most of it in Old Namerique, the official language of the
Federation. Bits and pieces survived, even a thousand years later.
The gates of Ain
el-Hilwa had certainly flown back with a vengeance.
"One hell of a din,
too," Raj said; even at more than three kilometers, it was louder than the
noise his own men were making.
Then light winked from
the parapet of the low-set city wall, and a deep whirring sound crossed the
sky. A dull booming echoed, and under it the sharper sound of the exploding
shells. The winking lights, scores of meters apart, rippled from east to west
across the north face of the city. Heavy rifles, aimed at Osterville's camp.
The shells seemed to be contact-fused rather than airburst, but it would still
be an unpleasant way to wake up, and there were a lot of those guns.
The white dust of the
road stretched out ahead of him. The dawn was just touching the western horizon
behind him, but there was a sudden flare of white light stabbing north toward
Osterville's position, arc-searchlights from the city wall. My, all the
modern refinements, Raj thought. Intended to light up the Civil Government
position for the attackers and blind any defenders looking toward the city.
Dun and off-white, men
were running up the long gentle slope toward the smaller Civil Government camp.
On foot, mostly, with gun teams among them, pulling the light five-shot
pom-poms the Colonials favored for close support. They were shouting, too, high
wailing shrieks. Raj unclipped his binoculars and brought them to his eyes,
body adapting to the swing of his dog's trot with the unconscious skill of a
lifetime.
Only half a kilometer
from the walls. And they didn't dig in at all. Osterville had been very
careless.
A stutter of gunfire
broke out from Osterville's camp, building rapidly. Raj could imagine the
chaos, men rushing half-dressed from their blanket rolls, grabbing up the
rifles stacked by their campfires. Red light winked from the hilltop, muzzle
flashes like fireflies in the dark; the sun was just edging over the horizon.
The Colonials were
making some effort to deploy, spreading out in an irregular mass—more a thick
skirmish order than a real firing line. The pom-poms wheeled about and opened
up, firing uphill. The CRACK-CRACK-CRACK-CRACK-CRACK of the clip-loaded
weapons sounded through the dawn, and their little one-kilo shells burst
upslope in petals of fire. The return fire was building fast, panicked, with no
ordered crash of volleys. Smoke began to shroud the hilltop, from the defensive
fire and the incoming Colonial shells, and-
"Bugging out
already," he said. In the long-shadowed light of dawn he could see a
trickle of mounted men heading north from Osterville's encampment.
"Ludwig, how many of the Colonials would you say?"
"Seven or eight
thousand at least, mi heneral."
Raj nodded thoughtfully.
The whole garrison of Ain el-Hilwa, or near enough. Attacking Osterville's
position was actually not a bad idea—he would have tried it, in their
position—but sending everyone haring out of the gates like this? No more sense
than a bull carnosauroid in breeding season, he decided.
"Captain Foley, the
signal."
Barton swung down out of
the saddle and stuck the launching-stick of a small rocket in the dirt.
Fisssssth. The little
rocket soared into the paling sky and burst with an undramatic pop. Red
and blue sparks shot out in a perfect round puffball. Behind Raj trumpets sang
in harsh antiphonal chorus. The long column dissolved as units spurred out left
and right, like a huge fan snapping open. It was lighter now, light enough to
tell a dark thread from a white, the traditional dividing line between night
and day. Light enough for the men to move across the fields without much
trouble, at least.
The other columns were
following suit. Ten minutes, and there was a continuous two-deep line moving
northeastwards with his banner at the center. Not parade-ground neat—the line
twisted and curled a little around obstacles, with fifty meters or so of gap
between each battalion. The guns pulled through, heading east and a little
south, setting up by groups of batteries on prechosen hillocks. The Colonials
were fully occupied, their front ranks within two hundred meters of
Osterville's position and moving in fast. Close enough to use their carbines,
and a huge snapping crackle went up from their front ranks; not only
from their front ranks, either—they were losing men to friendly fire, if he was
any judge.
"Sound Prepare for
Dismounted Action," he said.
The bugles sang again,
taken up and relayed down the line. Men pulled the rifles from the scabbards
before their right knees, resting the butts on their thighs.
"Are they bloody blind?"
Staenbridge asked in amazement, looking at the Colonials.
"No, just very
preoccupied, and extremely badly led," Raj said.
There were probably
individual men in the Colonial force who could see what was happening, but it
was a scratch put-together and whoever had done the putting hadn't arranged for
signals and gallopers. A penalty of taking all your best troops along in a single
expeditionary force; what was left to defend against a counterstroke wasn't up
to much.
Six hundred meters, Raj
thought.
five hundred eight-eight and decreasing to
nearest enemy element. five hundred eighty. five seventy-six. Center provided
a numbered scale on the whole Colonial formation; their right wing was just out
of extreme rifle-shot.
More of Osterville's men
were bugging out, but that wouldn't be visible to the wogs. A slamming
close-range firefight ran in a C all around the front of the hill, as the
larger Colonial force overlapped the Civil Government forces upslope. Most of
the pom-pom shells were flying right over the hill, dangerous only to the
deserters streaming northward—who deserved whatever they got. The Colonial
rifle fire was uneven; their men were pumping out their seven-shell magazines
and then pausing to reload. That had to be done by pushing one round at a time
through the loading gate in the side of the weapon, which evened things out a
little, but Osterville's fire was dropping off noticeably, as the Colonials
beat down his men by sheer weight of numbers.
Five hundred meters.
"Sound Dismounted Advance."
The buglers sent the
message down the lines: a four-note preparation, twice repeated, then a single
sustained note taken up by the signalers in unit after unit. Six thousand dogs
crouched. Not quite in unison, but nearly so within battalions. The men stepped
free of the stirrups without pausing, and the dogs rose and walked behind,
still in ranks as regular as the men's. A good cavalry battalion drilled six
hours a day, six days a week for this moment, until the signals played directly
on the nervous systems of men and mounts. Raj turned his binoculars to the far
right of his line: Hwadeloupe's men were badly under strength, but they were
carrying it off quite well.
A long clatter as the
men loaded. Raj's head went back and forth; the troops were advancing at a
steady walk, the splatguns trundling forward with the soldiers, two per
battalion. They were light enough for the crews to manhandle them like that;
they looked much like field guns, but each was actually thirty-five
double-length rifle barrels clamped in a tube. He watched as one crew let the
trail thump to the ground and loaded. One man swung the lever down, another
inserted an iron plate with thirty-five rifle cartridges, the lever went back
up with a thump. Waiting for the order—but they were artillerymen and very good
at estimating ranges. He chopped out his palm. The buglers took it up. All up
and down the line men checked a half-pace. And . . .
"Halto!"
Officers ducked ahead
and spread arm and drawn saber to mark the firing line. Another bugle call and
the front rank dropped to the ground and the men behind them went to one knee,
right elbow resting on it. The platoon commanders and senior noncoms walked
quickly between the two ranks for a moment, checking that the sights were
adjusted for the range. The muzzles quivered as each trooper picked a target.
The dogs crouched; only the mounted officers, Company-grade and above, marked
the line. Company pennants and battalion banners too, of course; the men took
their dressing from the flags.
Raj took a deep breath.
It was a peculiar exultation, like handling a fine sword with perfect balance;
the pleasure that came only from a difficult task performed exactly as it
should be.
Some of the enemy were
turning now, firing frantically. Far too late. The trumpets spoke again,
preparing men for the order:
"Fwego!"
BAMMMbambambambabam
. . . Six thousand rifles fired within a few seconds of each other. A discordant
medley of battalion trumpeters sounded the Fire by Platoon Volleys. BAM.
BAM. BAM. Rippling down the formation. Front line prone, second rank kneeling.
Front rank fire-and-reload, second rank fire-and-reload, a steady pounding crackle.
The dawn wind was from the east, blowing the new fogbank of powder smoke
backward in tatters. The smell was overwhelming in the fresh morning air: a
sharp unpleasant reek of burnt sulfur and stinging saltpeter. The smell of
death.
The splatgun crew spun
the crank at one side of the breechblock. Brraaaap. A long splat of
sound as the thirty-five rounds snapped out. K-chung as the lever went
back and the plate was lifted out by the loop on its top, a rattle as another
was slapped home and the lever worked. Brraaaap. Brraaaap. Three hundred
rounds a minute. An ancient design, ancient before the Fall, from man's first
rise; primitive enough that men in these days could build it. The priests said
that Man had been perfect, before the Fall. Raj had always been a believer; it
was obscurely disturbing that part of that perfection was better and better
mechanisms of slaughter.
He threw the thought
aside, with a touch to the amulet blessed by Saint Wu; there was the work of
the day to be done. Raj turned and cantered down the line. The Civil Government
formation was at right angles to the Colonial formation, like the crossbar on a
"T." The whole weight of its fire was crashing into the end of the
Arab line. And most of the Civil Government cavalrymen could hit a
man-sized target at three hundred meters, many of them at twice that range.
Even if they missed, their 11mm bullets would run the entire length of the
enemy line, with good odds of hitting something. The Colonials were
melting away, men smashed to the ground by the heavy hollowpoint bullets with
massive exit wounds that bled them out in seconds, or tore limbs from bodies.
He paused behind one of
the ex-Brigadero units. A noncom was walking down the line, slapping men across
the shoulders with the flat of his saber when they instinctively rose to fire
standing. Problem, Raj though. They'd trained on muzzle-loading rifle
muskets. You had to stand to reload those, tearing open the paper cartridge and
pouring the powder down the barrel. They were excellent shots even by Descotter
standards, but not used to getting under cover—and even at this range, some of
the Colonial carbine-bullets would hit standing men. A few snapped by him.
Ludwig Bellamy rode up.
"It's a slaughter, heneralissimo," he said enthusiastically.
"Teodore—Major Welf—asks permission to remount his battalion and
charge—"
"Denied," Raj
said sharply.
Welf had been a very
tricky opponent in the Western Territories, but he was still a Brigadero at
heart and had a lingering fondness for cold steel. The Civil Government
military style was economical of men where it could be, not having so many
trained soldiers to expend.
"I'm not going to
waste men on this lot." He raised the binoculars again. "Besides,
about now—"
There was boiling
confusion all down the front of the Arab army. A knot of mounted officers
around a huge green banner was galloping toward the threatened flank, with more
courage than sense. At their head was a portly gray-bearded man waving his
ceremonial lash and shouting furiously, probably trying to pull units out of
line and get them to face front left. Small chance of that, since Osterville's
men were still firing from their front, besides which most of them
probably hadn't realized what was happening, and facing about would put the
morning sun directly in their eyes.
The enemy bannerman went
down. Seconds later half a dozen of the officers around him did, and then the
elderly man with the whip punched backward over the cantle of his saddle. His
dog whipped about and sniffed him, then sank down on its haunches and howled.
"—they're going to
bug out."
It started with the men
in sight of the dead commander. They broke like a glass pitcher dropped on a
stone floor, and fled back toward the city. Bullets kicked up dust around their
feet like the first raindrops of a storm, and littered the ground with bodies.
That unmasked the central part of the Colonial host, and for the first time
they could see exactly what it was that had devoured the left wing of their
army. And the steady, unhurried volleys punched out, from a Civil Government
line marked by a growing tower of smoke that made their position clear even a
kilometer away. The Arabs disintegrated like a rope unraveling from the left
end, men throwing away their weapons to run screaming for the city gates.
Droves piled up at ditches that a man could leap easily, as the first tripped
and the men behind trampled on them.
"Spirit, sir—if
we charge now—"
"Major Bellamy, all
that charging now would do is give them an opportunity to hurt us."
He looked around. "Messenger to Major Gruder: advance from the left in
line, by battalions, pivoting on . . ." —he considered— "on the
3/591st." You had to start moving the outside of a line first, or the
whiplash effect would leave the outermost man running.
"Are we going to
let them back into the city, mi heneral?" Ludwig Bellamy asked,
crestfallen.
Raj smiled unpleasantly.
"By no means, Major. By no means."
* * *
"Range three
thousand. Up three. And a bit. Contact fuse. Load."
Grammeck Dinnalsyn
raised his eyes from the split-view rangefinder. Three batteries were deployed
along the slight rise: twelve guns. Another three were a few hundred meters
farther on, setting up amid the outer spray of the dead Colonials. Dismounted
men were trotting by in waves as the left flank of the Civil Government force
swung in to pin the retreating Colonials against the walls of Ain el-Hilwa, but
that was no concern of the artillery today; they weren't tasked with supporting
the dogboys. The riflemen were firing as they advanced, independent fire in a
continuous crackle all up and down the line. The sun sparkled on the bright
brass of the spent cartridge cases.
Breechblocks clattered
as the big 75mm shells were passed from the limber and rammed home. The crew
stood aside as the master gunner clipped his lanyard to the trigger and payed
it out.
"Ranging gun,
shoot," Dinnalsyn said.
Battery commander's
work, really, but enjoyable, and he rarely got a chance to do it these days.
The gunner jerked sharply.
POUMPH. A long jet of
smoke shot out from Number One of A Battery. The gun threw itself backward in
recoil, the trail gouging a trough in the clay. The crew jumped forward as soon
as it came to rest, grabbing the trail and the tall wheels and running it back
to the original position.
Dinnalsyn raised his
binoculars. A tall plume of black dust sprouted from the roadway outside the
northeast gate of the city, like an instant poplar that bent in the breeze and
dispersed as the dirt scattered.
"Excellent,"
he said. "Batteries, range."
The thick tubes of the
guns rose as the gunners spun the elevating screws under the breeches.
Excellent shooting on
the first try, and it was excellent to serve under a commander who understood
what artillery could and could not do.
The other two batteries
were tasked with the northwestern gate, a bit farther—near maximum effective
range. Their ranging gun fired seconds after his, and the gout of dirt flung
skyward was a hundred meters short. Even that trial shot told, flinging parts
of men and equipment skyward. Both roads into Ain el-Hilwa were black with
running men, and more every second. They tried again, and the next round fell
neatly before the open gates.
"Airburst,
three-second fuse, shrapnel, load."
Blue-banded shells from
the limbers, passed forward hand to hand three times; gun crews had redundant
members to replace casualties in action. Not that there looked to be much
counterfire this time. The master gunners pulled the ring-shaped blockers out
of the noses of the shells, arming the fuses. Into the narrow hole went a
two-pronged tool they carried chained to their wrists, to adjust the timers. A
brass ring on the fuse turned, listing the time in seconds; within, drilled
beechwood turned in a perforated brass tube, exposing a precisely calculated
length of powder-train.
"Number one gun
ready!"
"Number two gun
ready!"
"Number three gun
ready!"
"Number four gun
ready!"
"Battery A
ready!"
"Batteries will
shoot, for effect. On the word of command."
He raised his free hand,
the other holding his binoculars. Use your judgment, the general had
said. Men were running through, but that was the first spray of them. He
waited, gauntleted hand in the air. The gates were narrow, and so were the
arched bridges that carried the roadways over the city moat. You wanted
city gates to be a chokepoint, for defensive reasons, and Ain el-Hilwa had
excellent fortifications. Routed, the Arab troops were not going to wait while
they were marshaled through with maximum efficiency. Every man for himself
meant a tie-up.
Sure enough, the
roadways were black with men and great fans of them were spreading out along
the edge of the moat. He chopped his hand downward.
"Now!"
POUMP. The first gun
fired. A precise twenty seconds later the second followed. POUMP. POUMP.
POUMP. By the time the last gun fired, the first had been pushed back into
battery and was ready to fire again. A steady two rounds a minute, to conserve
barrels and break armies. No problem, with the men fresh. Pushing the ton
weights of metal around was hard work, but they were trained to a hair and the
day was young.
Four crack sounds
downrange, as the shells burst. Ragged black smokeballs in the air over the
crowd at the gates; below them panic, as the shells' loads of musketballs
scythed forward in an oval pattern of destruction.
POUMP. POUMP.
POUMP. POUMP. This time one of the rounds hammered into the dirt
before exploding, a faulty time-fuse. No great problem this time; the crater
made the pileup greater. He shifted his glasses to the other gate. The spread
of shell was wider there, some far enough from the gate to kick up dust, but
you expected that at extreme range.
The general cantered up
with his staff and messengers. He paused for a moment, leaning on the pommel
with both hands and studying the artillery. Strange man, Dinnalsyn
thought. He saw too much, knew too much. Knew as much about guns as he did
himself, and was better at judging distance and trajectories; a cannon-cocker's
skills, not a talent you expected in a hill-squireen out of Descott. And he
never forgot anything, never missed a detail—as if angels were
whispering in his ear. There were those strange little trances, too. Grammeck
was city-born to a merchant family, and prided himself on his modernity, but
there might be something in the tales of Messer Raj being touched by the
Spirit.
"I could do better
execution with more tubes, mi heneral," he said.
They had fifty-five guns
along, and they were all reconcentrated now that the raiding parties had joined
forces.
Raj shook his head, his
stone-hard face still turned to the gates where men screamed and died and the
corpses tossed under the hammer of the shells.
"Not for
this," he said. "We don't have the ammunition to expend."
True; they were limited
to what they'd brought along. He made a mental note to shift things around to
even out the reserve supplies between batteries before they broke camp. A
glance at his watch told him it was still early, barely 0800.
"And speaking of
which," the general went on, "give them another three rounds per gun
and cease fire. Another few minutes and the guns on the walls will have you
registered here."
As if to punctuate the
thought, a heavy shell buried itself in the earth a hundred meters ahead of
them and exploded, throwing clods of dirt as far as the second hillock.
"And then limber up
and get out of range," Raj said.
"Si, mi
heneral."
* * *
seventy-six rounds per gun, Center said.
Ah, Raj thought.
About his own offhand estimate. Strange, that so much of Center's advice was a
refinement of what he'd have done anyway.
of course.
otherwise i would not have selected you.
Which was reassuring.
There were times he doubted he was the same man who'd blundered into the
centrum beneath the Gubernatorial Palace.
that youth would
be gone forever by now in any case.
Raj shrugged and looked
down at the field of battle with a mixture of distaste and the sensation a
farmer had looking back over an expanse of grain cut and stooked in good time.
The Colonials had finally gotten their gates shut and the cannon on the wall
active; but that left most of their garrison trapped outside the wall and
exposed to fire.
"Signal cease-fire.
And get a truce flag ready."
"What terms?"
Staenbridge said.
"The usual. Parole
not to participate further in this campaign, and one gold FedCred per
head."
One advantage of
fighting the wogs was that they and the Gubernio Civil had been locked
in combat so long they'd developed an elaborate code of military etiquette and
generally observed it for sound reasons of mutual long-term advantage. One
provision often used was releasing prisoners on parole, when the alternative
was killing them for want of time and facilities. It put them out of action for
the remainder of the war in question, and was about as profitable as selling
them for slaves, which was the other choice. Granted that they could be used on
some other frontier, which freed up troops to be used against you; on
the other hand, both powers had an interest in keeping the barbarians at bay.
and the cause of
civilization is served, as well.
Kaltin Gruder came up.
Raj nodded. "Nice turning movement, Kaltin."
"Work of the day, mi
heneral. Are we going to take their parole?"
Raj nodded. Kaltin's
mouth tightened, but he nodded unwillingly.
"Ali might not keep
it," he pointed out. Reluctantly: "Of course, it wouldn't matter,
with these handless cows."
"There are no bad
soldiers, Kaltin, only bad officers. But these have had their morale fairly
thoroughly shattered, and they won't be any use to anyone for a good long
while. See to it."
Another party rode up;
this one included a number of bandaged and bleeding men. The most senior seemed
to be a captain; Raj didn't recognize him, which probably meant he was from
Osterville's command.
captain fillipo
swarez, 51st mazatlan.
Thank you, Raj thought.
Aloud: "Captain Swarez."
The man blinked at Raj
through red-rimmed, exhausted eyes, holding his bandaged arm against his chest
to limit the jarring of his dog's movement.
"General Whitehall.
I am reporting as senior officer in . . . as senior officer of the other field
force battalions."
Raj raised an eyebrow.
"Major Gonsalvez?"
"Dead, sir."
"Colonel
Osterville?"
observe:
A brief vision this
time: Osterville's muddy sweating face, bent low over the neck of his dog and
slashing behind with his riding crop. A string of remounts followed, and
several servants, and pack dogs with small heavy crates strapped to their
carrying saddles.
Swarez spat. "That
for the hijo da puta! Nobody saw him after the shelling started, and his
dogs and personal servants are missing."
One of the lieutenants
behind him spoke. "Heneralissimo, let me send a patrol after
him—let me take a patrol after him. I guarantee, he'll never trouble you
again."
Growls of assent rose
from the survivors; their mounts snarled in sympathy, scenting their masters'
mood. No zealot like a convert, Raj thought.
He shook his head.
"Messer Osterville" —he omitted the military rank— "suits me
well enough where he is." He looked back at the captain.
"Captain Swarez,
how many survivors?"
"Six hundred in
all, sir. Two hundred wounded."
Half Osterville's
original force, but that included several hundred who'd defected to Raj during
the night, and the Spirit alone knew how many who'd bugged out this morning.
"How many of those
in your 51st Mazatlan?"
"Two hundred
twenty-six. Fit for duty, that is, sir."
Which meant they'd kept
together fairly well. "All right. Tell the remainder that those who wish
may transfer to your unit, or to any of my other battalions that'll take
them—some of them are severely under strength. Have everyone ready to move
shortly."
Swarez saluted, relief
on his face. A soldier's battalion was his home and family, and his had just
been spared from disbandment. The other survivors could count themselves lucky
to have open slots waiting for them.
Raj watched the party
with the white flag riding up to the gates of Ain el-Hilwa. He doubted the
negotiations would take long; they'd be too hysterically thankful not to face a
storm and sack, which they now lacked the men to stop. Say until noon to get
the wounded sorted, police up and destroy the enemy weapons, collect the ransom
. . .
Demand some fast
sprung wagons as part of it, he decided. There were good roads all the way
from here to the bridgehead opposite Sandoral. Then . . .
"Meeting of the
command group at midday," he said. "Now let's get this wrapped, gentlemen."
He looked down at the
field again before he reined about. A good workmanlike day's effort.
Unpleasantly final for several thousand Colonials.
It wasn't going to stay
this easy. This was a sideshow so far. Ali's main attention was focused on
Sandoral.
"Fwego!"
Corporal Minatelli
opened his mouth and put his hands over his ears. His firing slit was close
enough that the fortress gun would hurt his hearing if he didn't.
BOOOOMM.
"Reload,
canister!"
The big
soda-bottle-shaped fortress gun surged backward on its pivot-mounted carriage,
muzzle wreathed in smoke. The wooden friction blocks squealed against their
screw tighteners as they slowed the multitonne weight of cast iron and steel.
It slowed to a stop at the end of the low ramped carriage, and the militia crew
sprang into action. Two men leaped in with a bundle of soaked sponges on a long
pole and rammed it down the barrel. There was a long shhhhhhhhhhh as the
water met hot metal and flashed into steam. They pulled the pole out and
flipped it, presenting the wooden rammer head. Two more men were lifting the
round in, a big dusty-looking linen bag of coarse gunpowder nailed to a wooden
sabot, with a tin canister full of lead balls on the other end.
Minatelli shuddered as
he turned away. Canister from a light field gun was bad enough. Canister from a
150mm siege weapon . . .
The gun rumbled like
thunder as the gunners released the blocks and it ran down the carriage to lift
the iron shutter and poke its muzzle out the casement wall. Bronze wheels
squealed as the four men at the rear threw themselves at the handspikes in
response to the master gunner's hand signals. The gun carriage was mounted on a
pivot in the center, with the front and rear running on wheels that rested on
an iron ring set into the concrete floor.
"Bring her up
two—they'll be trying again," the master gunner said. He accompanied it
with hand signals, for the ones who had lumps of cotton waste stuffed in their
ears. His crew spun the big elevating wheel at the breech two turns, and the
massive pebbled surface of the gun elevated smoothly at the muzzle.
Keep to your
trade, Minatelli told himself, stepping up to the firing parapet. He usually
didn't have much time for militia, but these gunnery boys knew their business.
He peered through; the sunlight made him squint, after the shade of the wall
platform with its overhead protection of timber and iron. The stone of the wall
was cool against his cheek.
Outside, six hundred
meters from the wall, the wog trench was still swarming. Men were dragging away
the dead and wounded, the smashed gabions, wickerwork baskets with earth inside
them. He could see flashes of heads and shoulders as picks and shovels swung.
The trench was big, a Z-shaped zigzag running back to the main wog bastion
twelve hundred meters out; that was a continuous earthwork fort all the way
around the city now. Cannon flashed from it, and he could feel the massive
stone-fronted walls tremble rhythmically under him as the heavy solid shot
pounded selected spots. Dust puffed up, making him sneeze. He wiped his nose on
his sleeve and spat.
There were hundreds of
the assault trenches worming their way toward the walls, but this one was his
section's particular tribulation.
The enemy guns boomed
again. One bolt struck right beneath him, and his rifle quivered against the
stone it rested on with a harsh tooth-gritting vibration. It would be difficult
for them to make a breach; Sandoral's walls were twenty meters thick counting
the earth backing, and sunk well behind the moat so that only a lip showed . .
. but it would happen in time.
Shells screeched by
overhead, exploding behind him among the empty houses. The ragheads didn't seem
to be worrying about ammunition supplies. He'd helped defend the walls of Old
Residence against a hundred thousand Brigaderos, twice the number that the wogs
had, but this felt worse. Back then they'd had Messer Raj, and the MilGov barbs
had wandered around with their thumbs up their bums while the Civil Government
force wore them down. The towel-heads weren't that kind of stupid.
He hopped down and
walked along the space of wall his section held, and the platoon of garrison
infantry they were supporting. One of those was stretched out on the walkway,
most of the top of his head missing and brains spattered all over his firing
niche.
"Fuck
it!" Minatelli screamed. "You—y'fuckhead—didn't y'tell
him?"
The dead man's corporal
looked up. "Couldn't make 'im listen."
The wogs had big
bipod-mounted sniper rifles working from their forward lines, single-shot
weapons as heavy as the sauroid-killers the Skinner nomads used. They had
telescopic sights, too.
"Well, git t'body
out of t'way," Minatelli said angrily. Two of the man's squadmates dragged
it away as it dribbled. Bad for morale to have corpses lying around if you
didn't have to. It was a pity you couldn't remove the smell; it was hot and
close here, and the blood began rotting almost at once.
Everyone else was
keeping their head away from the firing slit until told. Rifles were lying in
the flat stone bottoms of the slits, with their levers open to keep the
chambers as cool as could be. Each niche had a couple of wooden strips set into
troughs in the stone, with rows of holes drilled in the wood. Each hole held a
cartridge, base-up and ready to hand. Two thousand-round ammunition crates
rested on ledges between firing positions, their tops loosened and the
protective tinfoil curled back to show the ten-round bundles, one hundred
bundles per box. Buckets of water and dippers hung from iron hooks; there was a
wooden box of hand bombs by every man's firing position, round cast-iron balls
the size of an orange, with a ring on top to arm the friction fuse. There were
even some spare rifles in a rack, for the men disarmed by the jams that would
be inevitable once firing got heavy and the weapons heated up.
The only thing missing
was enough men to fill all the firing niches, plus the reserve that doctrine
called for. What they had was one rifleman for every three slots, one man for
nine meters of front. The Colonials had enough troops to attack anywhere along
four kilometers of wall, without warning.
The lieutenant blew his
whistle. Men tensed, thumbing rounds into their rifles and working the levers
to shut the actions. Minatelli sprang back into his niche and licked his thumb
to wet the foresight. Enemy pom-poms raked the line of firing slits. The
infantryman jerked his head down and squeezed his eyes shut as grit blasted
through his, then blinked them open.
"Make 'em count, boys!"
he shouted. "Thems cavalry you're shootin'."
Men were swarming out of
the forward Colonial works, men in djellabas and spiked helmets. Their carbines
were slung; most carried long ladders, and some lugged small mortars with
folding grappling hooks and reels of cord attached. Others pushed wheeled
bridging equipment to get them across the moat. Pairs carried little cohorn
mortars, adapted to hurl grappling hooks at the end of a reel of iron cable.
Spirit, there's
a lot of them. His narrow slit showed thousands, and more
pouring out of the trenches like ants out of a kicked-over burrow.
White-painted iron
stakes marked the ranges outside. The ramp sight on the rear of Minatelli's
rifle was set for four hundred meters. He steadied the forestock against the
stone and curled his finger around the trigger, taking a deep breath. The first
enemy crossed by the four-hundred-meter-mark, two files holding a ladder
between them. He dropped the sight onto the front-right man, let it down to the
man's knees, and stroked the trigger. A soft click sounded as the offset, the
first slack, took up.
Gentle, like it
was a tit, he told himself, and squeezed.
Bam. The wog stopped
as if he'd run into a stone wall and dropped, the ladder sagging and swinging
broadside onto the city defenses as his teammates staggered and tripped. Last
one I know for certain, Minatelli thought. Rifles barked in a stuttering
crash all along the wall, smoke erupting from the slits. Men in the attacking
force fell, and other men replaced them. Minatelli worked the lever of his
rifle and thumbed in rounds. Spent brass tinkled around his feet.
BOOOOMMM. The big cannon
a few meters down took him by surprise this time; he'd been too involved in his
personal war to notice the master gunner's orders. He did see the result, as
the malignant wasp-whine of the canister round spewed out its hundreds of
ten-gram lead balls. It caught the mouth of the assault trench with a fresh
wave of ragheads just clambering over the gabions. They vanished, swept away in
the storm of hundreds of marble-sized shot. Dust and fragments of wicker
spurted up all over the face of the trench. When the dust cleared, the dirt was
covered with a carpet of men pulped into an amorphous mass, a mass that still
heaved and moaned in places.
"Reload,
canister!"
Minatelli himself
reloaded, pausing to snap the ramp under his rear sight down to two hundred
meters. The rifle was foul after more than two dozen shots, and the metal
scorched his callused thumb as he shoved home the next round. The recoil was
worse now too, and his shoulder would be sporting a fine bruise tomorrow, assuming
he was here to feel it. Massed carbine fire pecked at the rock outside, some of
it uncomfortably close. A round whined through the firing slit, the flattened
lead going whip-whip-whip as the miniature metal pancake sliced air. It
could slice him as easily. He bounced back up, picked a target, fired, ducked
back down to reload.
Spirit. He was glad he
was in here and not out there. There were as many wogs down as moving.
"Hold 'em, boys, or
we're all hareem guards!" he called, and fired again.
Again. The cannon fired
a third time, or was it the tenth? No way to tell. Smoke hung dense and
choking, turning the ground outside the walls into a fog-shrouded mystery where
crimson shapes dashed and bunched. The Colonials were nearly to the edge of the
outer works, kicking their way through the caltrops—triangles of welded nails
scattered through grass deliberately left to grow knee-high. Some distant part
of Minatelli was amazed that men would slow down in the face of rifle fire to
avoid getting a nail in the foot, but many did.
Then the cannon from the
projecting bastions cut loose. Each V-shaped protrusion took hundreds of meters
of wall in enfilade, dozens of cannon sweeping the ground with loads of heavy
canister. Most of them were carronades, short big-bore weapons like gigantic
shotguns. Not much range, but they didn't need it.
Minatelli paused to let
his rifle cool a bit with the lever open, gulped water from a bucket down a
throat as raw as if it had been reamed out with a steel brush. Drops fell on
the metal of the breechblock and sizzled. When the smoke cleared enough for him
to see again, he reloaded and aimed at one of a pair of Arabs dragging a
wounded comrade back with them. He shot, reloaded . . .
"Cease fire! Cease
fire!"
The bugles reached him where
the shouted command did not. His finger froze on the trigger, and he worked the
lever and caught the ejected shell. His fingers were black with powder residue,
and it coated his lips, tasting of sulfur when he licked them. There were more
dead wogs outside than he could count, coating the ground in sprays and swaths
back toward the enemy works, bobbing in the moat below amid the wreckage of
wooden bridging equipment and ladders. More up and down the foot of the wall.
In places the carpet of bodies stirred and moaned; there were so many he could
smell the blood-and-shit stink of ripped-open bodies all the way up here.
He took another drink of
water and left his rifle lying on the stone firing slot, lever open.
"Sound off!" he called. Then he trotted over to the platoon
commander's station.
"Sor! Two dead,
three wounded serious." That included the two sections of garrison
infantry his eight men were overseeing. "Ev'ryone else ready for
duty."
The lieutenant was a
good enough sort, a bit young. He looked out through the slit next to him and
returned his unused revolver to its holster. Perhaps because he was
young, he spoke aloud:
"They thought they
could rush us. No respect."
"Plenty now,
sor."
The young officer
nodded, unconsciously smoothing down a wispy mustache. "Yes. Now they'll
try starving us out."
Spirit, Minatelli
thought.
There hadn't been much
but men, dogs, weapons, and ammunition in the trains that brought them east.
Sandoral had been full of hungry refugees for a week before they got here, and
the invasion had disrupted the harvest.
* * *
"Messers, to fallen
comrades."
As youngest of the
senior officers present, Bartin Foley gave the toast in the three-quarters
diluted wine. They all drank.
"Messers, the
Governor." Raj gave that, and they tossed aside the clay cups.
As if to remind them of
the fallen, a man screamed from the tent nearby where the wounded were being
tended. Casualties had been light by every reasonable standard except that of
the men whose own personal flesh had been torn and bones been shattered.
Suzette was present, but her sleeves were rolled to the elbows and there was
still blood spattered down the front of her jacket.
"I gather we won't
be trying to take Ain el-Hilwa, mi heneral," Staenbridge said.
"Of course not;
what would we do with it?" Raj said. He tapped the map on the table before
them. "Messers, we'll split up into the same three raiding parties—Major
Swarez, you'll accompany the center group with me" —Osterville's
ex-follower nodded—"and Major Hwadeloupe, you'll be attached to Major
Gruder's command.
"We'll head south
by southeast along this axis." He traced it on the map. "Keeping west
of the Ghor Canal."
"Our objective is
the railway?" Staenbridge said, tracing it with one finger.
The scouts had given
them a definite bearing; it came straight west from the main Colonial line
along the Gederosian foothills.
observe, Center said.
* * *
A train screeched to a
halt, sparks fountaining out from the tall driving wheel of the locomotive. It
was a new machine, painted in black and silver, with Arabic calligraphy along
the sides in gilt paint and up the tall slender smokestack. Behind it were a
dozen cars, the last an armored box with a pom-pom mounted on a turntable
behind a shield; thirty or so riflemen poked their weapons out of slits in the
boilerplate that sheathed it. The other cars held sections of track, already
spiked to cross-ties, piled up in stacks and secured by chains. Another train
halted behind the first. This one had boxcars full of men and tools.
They boiled out, their
officers waving the ceremonial lash and shouting; there was more noise than a
comparable group of Civil Government soldiers would have made, but no more
confusion. Teams jogged forward and undogged the chains holding the first
train's cargo. They set up a light folding crane and lowered the sections of
preformed track to the ground; other teams lifted them with iron hooks and
trotted forward, keeping step with a wailing chant.
Ahead of the two trains
was a section of wrecked track a quarter-kilometer long. Engineers gave the
roadbed a quick check with levels and transit; gangs of workers shoved the
burnt, twisted ties and rails to one side. The prefabricated sections were
dropped in place and the hookmen went back for another load at the same steady
trot. Another team slewed the tracks into alignment with long poles like
gunners' handspikes and bolted them together.
Raj shook his head.
"There aren't enough of us, and we don't have enough time," he said.
"The Colonial sappers can repair track faster than we can tear it up—until
Tewfik can get back here. The major bridges will be heavily guarded. But we
want him to think we're a threat to the railway line, and by all means
tear up any stretch you reach."
"What news from
Sandoral?" Staenbridge said.
"Ali put in a quick
attack when he arrived in force, and when that didn't work he tried a full
assault with engineering and artillery support. Total losses of four to five
thousand, including wounded too badly hurt to return to duty soon. Our
casualties were very light."
"My, my. I wouldn't
like to be on Ali's staff right now,"
Visions crawled beneath
the surface of Raj's vision; beheadings, impalements. Ali was quite mad.
"Gerrin," he
said, "neither would I. He's still got forty thousand effectives, not
counting his infantry garrisons." They had seven thousand cavalry, and
three thousand infantry in all.
"More goblets than
bottles at this banquet," Staenbridge agreed.
If there wasn't enough
wine to fill all the glasses at table, beyond a certain point juggling the
liquid from one glass to another wouldn't help.
"We might take
their supply dump at the railhead," Dinnalsyn said thoughtfully.
"That would embarrass them considerably."
"It's fortified,
and there are ten thousand men in there," Raj said. "Not first-rate
troops, but they're expecting trouble and they've got considerable
artillery."
They all nodded. You
might be able to take a position like that by a sudden unexpected coup de
main, or if it was held by barbarians too dim to take the proper
precautions. Not otherwise, not with a larger enemy field force free to operate
against your rear.
"If that's all,
gentlemen, we'd better see to business. Tewfik's banner hasn't been reported
back at Sandoral either."
* * *
The main column trotted
down a roadway through the early morning cool. It was twenty feet broad,
well-graded dirt surfaced with gravel, winding down through terraced barley
fields from a low ridge planted with a mix of olives and almond trees. Gullies
running down toward the flat were full of reddish-green native scrub; a flock
of sheep-sized bipedal grazing sauroids fled honking and gobbling into the bush
as the troops passed. Dew still laid the dust on the rolling hillside. Beyond
were flat fields, irrigated and intensively cultivated. The villages were
deserted, ghostly, not a human or a domestic animal in sight. The peasantry had
had warning enough to flee by now, driving their herds before them.
Raj finished a pear and
tossed the core aside, squinting ahead. Then he stiffened and flung up one
hand.
"Halto.
Silence in the ranks."
The bugles snarled, and
the column came to a dead stop in less than three strides. Silence fell, broken
only by the occasional jingle of harness as a dog shifted.
There. A dull thudding
sound, like a large door being slammed far away. It echoed, and was repeated.
Again. Again.
"Artillery, by the
Spirit," Staenbridge said softly.
Raj nodded, closing his
eyes to concentrate.
civil government field guns, Center said. two batteries, approximately 8.7 kilometers
south-southeast of your present position.
"Well, that's
something serious," Bartin Foley observed flatly.
Ain el-Hilwa had been
the only action hot enough to need artillery support so far. The officers
around Raj exchanged glances, and so did the men in the long ranks zigzagging
back up the hill. The military picnic was over.
"Kaltin," Raj
said. That was where Kaltin Gruder's kampfgruppe was operating.
He called up the maps of
the area. A low ridge on either side, running east-west, more flat ground to
the south.
"Sound Reverse
Front," he said. "Then Trot."
The bugle screamed
again, and the dogs turned in place. They waited the thirty seconds necessary
to turn the gun-teams and broke into a rocking trot back up the slope.
"Messengers to the
raiding parties, immediate concentration here," Raj began. "Colonel
Staenbridge, establish your banner there" —he pointed to the notch where
the road crossed the hill— "with a firing line on the reverse slope, ready
to move up. Major Bellamy, that'll be your 1st and 2nd, and the 1/591st.
Gerrin, anchor your left there" —he pointed to a reservoir— "and
re-fuse your right with the raiding parties as they come in. Grammek, get your
guns on the reverse crest too, but keep the teams close."
The artilleryman nodded.
That was dangerous—risking immobilizing the weapons if the teams were
injured—but gave essential seconds of extra time if you had to pull out fast.
"No fieldworks, but
put up some quick sangars for the splatguns. Suzette, have those Church people
ready to triage the wounded and move them back immediately; we won't be
staying. Captains M'lewis, Foley, I'll be taking a company of the 5th and the
Scouts forward with me. And one splatgun. Questions?"
Heads shook. "Good.
To your positions, please. Gerrin." Staenbridge reined in. "I've got
an unpleasant feeling we'll be coming back faster than we go. Be ready to stop
them hard." Even veteran troops could turn unsteady if it looked like a
rout.
Staenbridge nodded; they
leaned toward each other and slapped fists, inside of the wrist and then back.
"We'll be here, mi heneral."
Raj met Suzette's eyes
for a moment. No words were necessary.
"Waymanos!"
* * *
They trotted through a
land silent and deserted, warming towards the crippling heat of a Drangosh
Valley summer morning. Raj's little force rode in column, with a spray of
pickets out ahead. The dogs kept up a steady canter-trot-walk-trot-canter,
eating the kilometers. Their tongues lolled, but their ears were pricked
forward, all but Horace's, which were a hound's floppy style. The guns sounded
much closer now, thudding bangs. The terrain hereabouts was mixed, fingers of
high doab running from the clay bluffs along the Drangosh into the
lower, flatter country to the east that extended past the Ghor Canal to the
foothills of the Gederosian Mountains. From the sound, the guns were firing on
the next ridge south.
All the men had heard
the sound before, and most of the dogs. The troopers rode with their rifles
across their thighs.
Whistles came from up
ahead. One of the Scouts came down the road at a quick lope.
"Courier comin',
ser," he said.
The messenger's dog was
panting. He pulled a sweat-dampened paper from a jacket marked with the
shoulder-flashes of the 7th Descott Rangers. A smell of scorched hide came from
the leather scabbard in front of his right knee, the smell a hard-used rifle
made when it was slapped into the sheath still hot.
"Ser," he
said, "Major Gruder reports we'ns ran inta a patrol. Thought't were a
patrol, turned out t'be more wogs'n we could handle."
Raj read quickly; it was
a request for reinforcements, with a quick sketch map of the action. He shook
his head. Kaltin was a first-class tactician, but he had a tendency to
over-narrow focus, to lock his teeth in a situation and try to beat it to
death.
"My compliments to
Major Gruder, and tell him I'll be there shortly. And to be ready to move
position, quickly."
"Ser!"
"Barton, bring them
up to a lope."
The messenger pulled his
mount around and clapped heels into its flanks. The sound of the guns grew
sharper as the ground rose. He could see powder-smoke rising above the higher
terrain to the south. A trickle of wounded passed them, riding-wounded leading
dogs with more badly injured men slung over them—it was all you could do, in a
situation like this.
POUMPF. POUMPF.
POUMPF. The guns were firing steadily; he could see them now, spaced out amid
spindly native whipstick trees on the ridge. They were firing from the top
crest, the crews pushing them back every time they recoiled. Raj pulled off the
roadway, leaning forward in the saddle as Horace took the ditch with a bound
and swung up the hill.
Kaltin Gruder met him.
"Ran into a patrol," he said. "Company strength—one tabor.
I jumped them, more of them came up, I called in my raiding parties, then even more
showed up. There's a battle group of two thousand down there now, and they're
not stopping for shit. These aren't line-of-communications troops. Regular
cavalry, and good ones."
Raj grunted in reply,
sweeping his binoculars over the slope below. It was sparsely wooded with whipsticks,
tall spindly trees with branches that drooped up and away from the main stem on
all sides, dangling fronds of featherlike leaves.
POUMPF. POUMPF.
The eight guns on the
ridgeline kept up their steady shelling, the pressure-wave of the discharges slapping
at faces and chests. At least twenty Colonial artillery were firing in reply
from the lower ground to the front, half pom-poms and half 70mms. They weren't
attempting a counter-battery shoot, just searching the edge of the treeline to
try and beat down the fire of the Civil Government riflemen. All across the
open ground Colonial dragoons were moving forward on foot, line after line of
them in extended skirmish order.
Gruder went on:
"I've got the 7th in the center, with Poplanich's Own and the 1st Rogor to
the right and left and the Maximilliano over there."
He pointed to the east,
where smoke and the steady crackle of small arms indicated action.
"Whoever the wog commander is, he knows his hand from a hacksaw—started
trying to work around my flanks as soon as he got a feel for the depth of my
firing line here. I moved the Maximilliano out to extend the line, but it
thinned me here badly."
Raj nodded curtly.
Gruder's three battalions—a thousand men or so, all under strength—were keeping
up a steady crackle of independent fire. Down below figures in red djellabas
were scattered on the ground or hobbling, limping, and crawling back toward the
guns and the banners grouped around them. Advancing against veteran riflemen
cost heavily. A splatgun gave its ripping braaap and a file of Colonials
nearly a thousand meters away went down as the spread of rifle bullets hit
them. Several of the enemy guns shifted aim; Raj could see the splatgun team
trundling their light weapon to a new position just ahead of the pompom and
field gun shells.
But more and more of the
Colonials were making it to their own firing line close to the woods. Their
repeaters were just as deadly as the heavier Civil Government weapons at ranges
under a hundred meters, and they fired much faster. A haze of off-white powder
smoke was drifting away from the thickening Colonial position. Even as he
watched, several platoons rose and dashed forward for the woods. Many fell, but
others went to ground in the scrub along the edge of the savannah. Once in
among the trees, their repeaters would slaughter men equipped with single-shot
rifles.
"We can crush them
like a tangerine if you swing in with the main force, mi heneral,"
Gruder said.
Kaltin does tend to
get too focused, Raj thought. His own mind was moving in cool precise arcs
and tangents, like something scribed on a drawing-board by an engineer's
compasses and protractors. Like a mental analogue of the way you felt when
fencing; perhaps a little like the way Center felt all the time, if Center had
subjective experience.
He felt more alive than
anywhere else. It was a pity he could only feel this on the battlefield, that
his art could only be practiced as men died. There were times when he lay awake
at night, wondering what that said about him. But not now. Not now.
"No, Major, a
full-scale meeting engagement isn't what I have in mind. If there's one
Colonial battle group around, there's going to be others."
He considered for a few
seconds. "This will have to be quick. We'll withdraw by leapfrogging
battalions. Move Poplanich's Own back half a klick to that rise, and the guns.
You'll take the 7th and the others back to join the main force. I'll hold the
rearguard." Gruder didn't like retreating. "M'lewis, detach two men
to each of the battalion commanders to guide them to the main-force position.
Follow with the rest."
Gruder nodded briskly;
he didn't like it, but that would make no difference to his obedience. Antin
M'lewis turned and barked orders. Pairs of men galloped off.
"Trumpeter!"
Raj went on. "Relay. Half-kilometer withdrawal. On the signal."
The complex call went
out, was echoed. A single long note followed.
The battery on the rise
fired one last stonk and let the guns roll downhill to their limbers.
The teams snatched up the trails and slapped them on; retaining pins went home
with an iron clank, the six dogs of each team rose, and the guns set off down
the open slope at a trot. Three men rode the offhand dogs of the team; there
were two seats on the gun axles and two on the limber, and the remainder had
dogs of their own. Up from the savannah came the splatguns, hauled by four-dog
teams; lighter, they overtook the field pieces despite the smaller draft.
The crackle of
small-arms fire intensified. "Barton. We'll give the wogs a going-away present.
Standing saddle-volley, use the crestline. Place the splatgun."
Company A of the 5th was
nearest to full strength, eighty men, only forty down from regulation. They
fanned out behind Raj, heeling their dogs a meter and a half downslope. The
dogs turned and faced the crest, then crouched. The men crouched with them,
squatting. It was an inelegant and uncomfortable posture—you couldn't let your
full weight rest on the dog—but the men moved into a flawless double line with
the ease of a housewife slapping dough for tortillas. Three-meter spacing
between each, and the rows staggered so that the rear row matched the intervals
in the front. He looked at their faces: stolid, immobile under the film of
sweat, a few chewing tobacco and spitting. Every one of them knew what was
about to happen.
Below, the Colonials
hesitated a crucial handful of seconds when the fire from the Civil Government
troops ceased. Just long enough to let them dash back to their waiting dogs.
Center unreeled numbers as the depleted battalions trotted up the slope,
rallied, and cantered northward. He winced slightly. Those units had been under
strength before. A lot of them were still down there in the burning grass and
shattered whipstick trees, and would never leave. Long curled trumpets sounded,
shriller than his own. Half the Colonials turned and started to jog back
towards their dogs. The others opened fire on the retreating raiders; not many
went down, but some men and dogs fell out of line.
"Reacting
fast," Raj murmured.
The Colonial commander
was sending his mounted reserve forward, galloping up the hill. Two tabor,
a little under three hundred men, with a pair of pom-poms galloping behind.
Galloping guns was risky, especially on uneven ground like this. A few men,
wounded or just extremely brave, had stayed behind among the dead. One rose to
a knee and shot the off-lead dog of a pom-pom team. It collapsed, biting at its
wounded leg. The gun slewed around, then tipped over and spun. The massive
torque spun through the trail and the harness, turning the team into a
thrashing pile of twisted metal and shredded meat that bounced downslope and
scattered the dismounted Colonials who followed.
Raj watched the mounted
Colonials approach. Numbers scrolled across his vision. The Arabs were keening
as they charged. If they could prevent his men from breaking contact . . .
500 meters. 450.
400.
"Now!" he
barked.
"Tenzione!" Bartin Foley
called, his clear tenor pitched a little higher to carry. The men rose from
their squat to stand straddling their dogs. The long Armory rifles came up to
their shoulders in smooth curves, the muzzles dead level except for the minute
individual quivers as they picked their targets. The slope had concealed them,
and to the enemy it must have appeared as if the heads and shoulders popped up
out of nowhere.
The Colonials reacted
with veteran reflexes, crouching in the saddle and sloping their scimitars
forward. Their dogs bounced into a full gallop, throwing themselves forward to
get through the killing zone as fast as possible.
"Fwego!"
Foley's sword chopped down in a bright arc.
BAM. Eighty rifles fired
within a half-second of each other. Braaaaaap. The splatgun fired from
its position in enfilade to one side.
The charging Colonials
seemed to stagger. Dogs went down all across their front. It was only
three-hundred-odd meters, and at that distance most of the 5th's long-service
men could hit a running man, not to mention a thousand-pound dog. Men flew out
of the saddle, and rear-rank dogs leaped and twisted desperately to avoid the
thrashing heaps ahead of them.
"Rear rank, fwego!"
BAM.
"Reload!"
"Front rank, fwego!"
BAM.
"Reload!"
Braaaaap.
Braaaaap.
"Rear rank, fwego!"
BAM.
Braaaaap. The crew worked
the splatgun like loom-tenders in one of the new steam-driven factories. Its
load struck like case-shot, but far faster and more accurate.
A Colonial trumpet
brayed and drums sounded. The mounted Colonials withdrew, leaving their dead
and wounded; the thick screen of dismounted men down in the woods ceased to
wait for their comrades to bring up their dogs and started up the slope once
more. Field gun shells went overhead with a ripping-canvas sound.
He's putting in
an enveloping attack, Raj decided, feeling through the movements for the enemy
commander's mind. He's decided this is a sacrificial rearguard. Half the
enemy were mounted already; the dismounted thousand or so would swamp a small
rearguard like this in moments, and then the Arab troopers could pour after the
fleeing Civil Government soldiers. They were lighter men on fast desert-bred
dogs, slender-limbed Bazenjis; they would catch what they chased, and with a
two-to-one edge in numbers and more in guns the issue could not be in doubt.
"Waymanos,"
Raj said.
The dogs rose under the
men and turned, and the splatgun crew hitched their weapon and leaped to the
saddles and limber-seats. Ten seconds later Company A was moving downslope and
north at a trot that turned into a rocking gallop.
They were two hundred
meters away when the dismounted Colonials crested the hill. Carbine bullets
cracked around their ears; the bannerman's staff jerked in his hand, and a man
went out of the saddle with a coughing grunt.
"Don't mask their
fire," Raj cautioned.
Foley flicked his saber
to the left, and the block of men shifted course. Raj leaned forward against
the rush of hot air, the banner snapping and crackling next to him. He looked
back; the Colonials were re-forming on the hill, mounting up as their comrades
led their dogs forward. North were flat open fields, marked with dust plumes
where the retreating Civil Government battalions moved north toward his main
force. A slight rise topped by a mosque and grove of cypress trees stood about
a kilometer ahead.
Metal flashed there. Raj
looked over his shoulder again. The Colonials were coming now, in solid blocks
of mounted men; moving at a fast trot and deployed in double line abreast, for
speed when they had to go into action. Sensible. They'd had a bloody
nose twice this morning. He took a quick squint at the sun; 1100 hours. And
about now . . .
There was a puff of
smoke from the cypress grove ahead. A whir went by overhead, like heavy canvas
being ripped in half. A malignant crack behind, and another puff of
smoke, as the time-fused shell burst over the charging Colonials.
"Hope none of them
fire short," Bartin Foley shouted, grinning.
Raj felt himself showing
teeth in response. "Take them home, Bartin," he called.
He shifted the pressure
of his knees and turned Horace directly for the left end of the formation
ahead—Poplanich's Own, four hundred men strong. Plus two batteries of 75s, now
firing as fast as the gunners could ram the shells home, reckless both of the
barrels and the ammunition supply. Rounds whined by overhead and burst, in the
air, or throwing up fountains of dirt if the time fuse failed. He crouched over
the dog's neck and set his teeth as the battalion's splatguns opened up; no
need to look behind. Closer, and he could see the two staggered rows of men in
prone-and-kneeling formation. Then rifles came up and the steady BAM . . . BAM
. . . of platoon volleys started. The smoke was thick enough to half-mask the
troops as he pulled up in a spurt of gravel by the battalion commander's
position.
The Colonials were
closer than he expected, four hundred meters but wavering under the unexpected
hail of fire. Yes, about two thousand of them still, Raj thought; and
their artillery was coming over the hill, pompoms and field guns both.
As he watched, blocks of
mounted Colonials veered to left and right, moving to flank the Civil
Government blocking force. Without prompting, each battery ceased fire for an
instant and heaved its guns around to deal with the new threat; the flanking
forces moved farther out, but the Colonials in front seemed to disappear. Raj
read their trumpet signals: Dismount and At the Double. The line
shrank as the dogs crouched, then turned into a long double rank of men on foot
coming forward at a uniform jog-trot.
"In a moment, Major
Caztro," Raj said.
The Major—he was a
cousin on his mother's side of the late Ehwardo Poplanich—nodded.
"The gunners aren't
happy about it," he said.
"Better grieving
than dead," Raj said dryly, taking a drink from his canteen; the day was
already very hot.
"And . . . now!"
he said. The major relayed the order to his buglemen.
The gunners fired a last
round from their weapons. He could hear one sergeant cursing as he wrenched the
breechblock free and tossed it to one of his men. Then he jammed a shell
backwards into the opening, stuck a length of slowmatch into the hole where the
fuse would normally go, and lit it with the last of the stogie clamped between
his lips.
"Fire in the
hole!" the noncom shouted. It was echoed down the gun line. "Ten
seconds!"
The troopers were
already double-timing back to their dogs and swinging out the rear of the
cypress grove around the mosque.
"Retreat by platoon
columns, at the gallop!" Major Caztro shouted.
Raj looked to either
side as he touched his heels to Horace's ribs. The flanking parties were still
well back, and the main Colonial force were just remounting and kicking their
beasts into a gallop—which must be rather frustrating for them.
The noon sun was
blinding-bright. The white dust of the road reflected its heat, and sweat
rolled down his forehead out of the sodden sponge-and-cork lining of his
helmet. Horace was panting, his black coat splotched with dust. Raj uncorked
his canteen and rubbed a little of the water into the dog's neck; if it went
down with heat prostration, he was deeply out of luck. Another check behind:
the Colonials were coming on fast, but they were staying in line and bringing
up their guns with them.
Cautious, but smart, Raj
decided.
Barreling in
hell-for-leather might have caught him quicker, but he'd already given them the
back of his hand twice. There was nothing to show that he didn't have the
battalions who'd retreated from the meeting engagement waiting at intervals to
mousetrap an unwary pursuit.
Which is our
margin, he knew. The Colonials would have won a flat-out gallop.
"How far, mi
heneral?" the major asked, swerving his dog over to Raj's side.
"Just under seven
kilometers," he said. The nearest Colonials were half a klick back, now.
"Twenty minutes at this rate."
Caztro looked back as
well. "Just long enough for them to get convinced we're going to run all
the way to Sandoral?"
"Exactly,
Major."
If everyone
hasn't bugged out when Kaltin's men came in hell-for-leather.
* * *
"Halto!"
Raj pulled Horace to a
stop, then let him crouch to the ground. His wheezing pant sounded
half-desperate, and he was a strong-winded dog. Some of the others were
collapsing outright; men brought buckets of water and sloshed them across the
moaning, gasping animals. Raj pulled off his sweat-damp neckerchief and turned
to trot for the command group below the crest of the hill.
"They're right on
my heels," he said.
And everything
looks klim-bim, he thought, with a wave of relief so enormous that he
felt slightly dizzy. The ground was good—he'd picked it himself—and Gerrin
hadn't been wasting his time. The men were spread out along the ridge, well
back from the crest and invisible from the other side. Officers lay prone at
the top, with their flags furled and laid flat among the scattered olives;
inconspicuous rock and earth sangars had been prepared for the guns and
splatguns. Back north behind him there was an aid station waiting for field
surgery, and relays of men were bringing up buckets of water from the
irrigation canal. Kaltin's battalions had watered their dogs and moved up into
the firing line, all but Poplanich's Own; two more were on the far right flank,
waiting still mounted. Farther north, a small force trotted away dragging brush
on the end of their lariats to simulate the dust of a much larger body
retreating towards Sandoral.
"And they're coming
on like there was no tomorrow," Staenbridge said.
Raj knelt beside him and
looked south. The Colonials were advancing at a round trot, deployed for action
in two double-file lines with their guns and command group between.
"Message to Colonel
Dinnalsyn," Staenbridge went on. A runner bent near. "My compliments,
and the first stonk should be directed at the enemy artillery, before it has a
chance to deploy."
Raj looked up and down
the long curving line. "Guns?" he said.
"Splatguns forward,
and the bulk of the field guns to either side." Staenbridge pointed
downslope, to a clump of greenery around a small manor house. "Masked
battery there."
Raj's breathing slowed.
"Good work keeping everything calm when Kaltin's men came galloping
in," he said.
"He had them well
in hand, and Suzette and her helpers were there with bandages and water,"
Staenbridge said judiciously. "I doubt anyone in this army would dare
panic while she was looking."
Raj nodded. Still
good work, Gerrin. He leveled his binoculars and took another swig from the
canteen, remembering to follow it with a salt tablet; the last thing he needed
was heat prostration.
leading elements at 2300 meters, Center said
helpfully. closing rapidly. A set of
numbers appeared in the upper right corner of his vision, scrolling down as the
enemy trotted nearer.
"Wait until their
scouts stumble over us?" Staenbridge said.
"Agreed."
Damned if I'm needed
here at all, he thought ruefully. I could go take a nap.
you are the source of overall direction, Center
reproved. you have chosen and
trained competent subordinates.
I'm not the only one,
Raj thought.
"Keep the initial
reception low-key," he added aloud.
A screen of scouts
preceded the Colonial main body. A dozen of them came loping up the roadway
toward the crest, eyes restless. Raj saw their officer half-check as he neared,
looking to right and left. What spooked him-
it is too quiet.
no birds or pterosauroids except the scavengers.
Raj looked up. Huge
wings circled at the limit of vision, supporting long-beaked heads and patient,
hungry eyes. Slightly lower were the true birds men had brought with them from
lost Earth, crows and naked-necked vultures.
Damn. "I wonder
what they do when there's no war?" he said.
Staenbridge looked up
too for an instant. "When isn't there war?"
The Colonial scouts came
closer. Their leader spurred over the crest of the rise not a hundred meters
from Raj, and froze in horrified shock, his bearded mouth dropping open into an
O of surprise.
Braaaap. A splatgun
fired point-blank, and the scouts went down into a tangle of kicking, howling
dogs and wounded men. Troopers swarmed over them in a flurry of shots and
bayonet thrusts. Several broke for the rear. Picked marksmen were stationed
along the crest; they fired with slow care. One Colonial went down, another . .
. and then the third, already crouched wounded over his saddle.
Raj turned his
binoculars to the Colonial banner; it was his first glimpse of the enemy
commander. A square middle-aged face beneath the spired helmet, dark and
hawk-nosed, with a gray-shot forked beard. Not Tewfik, but a junior product of
the same hard school. Come on, be a good wog, Raj thought urgently.
He'd done it by the book
twice now, stopped and deployed when meeting a rearguard. Both times it had
cost him time, time for the enemy force which had ravaged his country to escape
with their plunder. And there were those dust plumes. If he did it again, the
Civil Government troops might escape altogether. Overruning a small rearguard
without putting in an attack on foot would force him to spend lives, but that
was a cost of doing business.
Yes. The Colonial
trumpets brayed and the enemy force rocked into a slow gallop, the front rank
drawing scimitars and officers their pistols.
"He's going to try
and roll right over us," Staenbridge said with a cruel smile. "But
this pitcher will find himself catching, nonetheless."
Raj nodded tersely. He
looked to the right. "You kept the . . ."
"1/591st as strike
reserve—they're at full strength, their dogs are fresh, and they're fond of the
sword," Staenbridge said. He turned back to the front. "Not long
now."
750 meters. 700
meters. 650 meters.
Raj nodded. Staenbridge
jerked a hand at the signalman, who bent to touch his cigarette to the blue
paper of the rocket. It arched skyward and went pop.
The banners of eleven
battalions rose over the crest of the ridge in a single rippling jerk. Four
thousand men rose and took six paces forward, the front rank dropping to one
knee and the rear standing. Gunners heaved at the tall wheels of their weapons
until the muzzles showed over the ridge. Splatgun crews pulled the concealing
bushes away from their dug-in weapons.
The Colonial formations
halted as if they had run into a brick wall. They were all veteran troops, and
they realized instantly and gut-deep what the sight before their eyes meant; it
meant they had all just been sentenced to death.
The battalions opened
fire independently, but within a few seconds of each other. All the enemy were
on the long gentle upslope, which meant that even if a bullet was over
head-height when it reached the enemy formation—high trajectories were
inescapable with black-powder weapons—there would probably be someone in front
of it before it struck the earth. The platoon volleys rippled up and down the
Civil Government line in an instant fogbank of dirty-gray gunsmoke, an endless
BAMbambambambambam of sound. Brass sparkled in the bright sunlight as
the troopers worked their levers and ejected the spent rounds. A steady,
metronomic round every six seconds; forty thousand rounds in a minute. The four
splatguns per battalion added half as many again.
The masked battery down
on the flat opened fire simultaneously with the riflemen above, since they
didn't have to manhandle their guns into position. The range was nearly
point-blank; eight shells fired at minimum elevation whistled down the corridor
between the first and second waves of the Colonial force. Two burst early,
slashing shrapnel into the backs of the men and dogs of the first wave. One
arched over and burrowed into the soft alluvial soil, sending up a nearly
harmless plume of black dirt that collapsed and drifted on the wind. Five
airburst within a hundred meters of the enemy command group amidst the
limbered-up guns. Five black puffballs, each with a momentary snap of red fire
at its heart. The green banner went down, and there was a circle of wounded
dogs snapping at their hurts around the place where it lay in the dust.
Ten seconds later, the
forty-eight guns of the massed artillery reserve fired from either end of the
ridge. Their fire wasn't nearly as accurate as the masked battery; the range
was longer, and the gunners had less time to estimate the range and adjust
their pieces. The shells were contact fused. Many gouged the earth short, or
fell long; both did damage enough. The score or so that fell on target hammered
into the Colonial artillery train, still tied to limbers and teams. Dogs died
or were wounded into howling agony—and a half-tonne of berserk carnivore was
much more hindrance than a dead beast. Ammunition limbers exploded in globes of
red fire, flipping wheels and barrels and bits of men dozens of meters into the
air. Even then the crews of the surviving guns tried to unhitch them and swing
the muzzles around to bear on the enemy who were slaughtering them.
Futile. The crews were
within easy small-arms range of the ridge; dozens went down in the few seconds
he watched. More shells burst among them, and overhead as the Civil Government
artillery switched to time-fused shells that flailed them with shrapnel from
above. More ammunition limbers exploded. He saw Colonial artillerymen cut dogs
loose from their surviving teams and spur to the rear; officers who tried to
stop them were ridden down. The whole crimson-uniformed mass was in full
flight, those who could still move. The men on the fastest dogs were first,
with the dismounted running or limping or dragging themselves afterwards.
Smoke drifted across the
Civil Government line, thick even though a stiff breeze was blowing. Crewmen
crawled forward from the splatguns, staying low and calling targets and
distances back to their fellows. Officers directed the troopers' volleys with
their swords.
Gerrin Staenbridge
raised an eyebrow at Raj, who nodded. Another signal rocket hissed skyward, and
this time the starburst puff of smoke was blue. A trumpet snarled six notes out
on the right flank of the Civil Government force, and the cry of cease
firing ran down the battalions on that end of the line. The 1/591st trotted
their dogs over the ridge and down the slope, speed building. The swords came
out in a single ripple of sun-struck silver as the speed of the charge built.
Slowly at first—those were big men on heavy dogs, huge-pawed Newfoundlands and
Alsatians sixteen hands at the shoulder. They growled as they charged, a sound
like massed millstones grinding away in a cave, and the men shouted:
"UPYARZ!
UPYARZ!"
"Nicely done,"
Raj said. "Oh, nicely done."
The charge swept down
the hill and crashed through the flank of the disintegrating Colonial
formation. The ex-Brigaderos held their ranks with fluid precision, stabbing
and hacking and shooting with the revolvers most of them wielded in their left
hands; the dogs were well enough trained to need no guidance but knees and
voice and their place in ranks. The lighter Arab cavalry would have had trouble
meeting a charge like that mounted at the best of times. With half their men
down and unit cohesion gone, they reacted the way a glass jar did dropped on a
flagstone floor. Men spattered in every direction; the 1/591st rode through
their line, rallied to the trumpet call, dressed ranks and charged through
again in the opposite direction. Hundreds of dismounted Colonials were holding
up reversed weapons or helmets, asking quarter.
The barbarians in Civil
Government service were whooping like boys as they cantered up the slopes
again, despite a few empty saddles; shaking bloodied swords in the air and
chanting their guttural Namerique war cries.
"Damn, but that's
frightening," Raj said, shaking his head and scanning the enemy.
"Frightening?"
"One mistake, and
two thousand disciplined troops with an able commander get creamed."
"Their
mistake, fortunately."
Raj nodded grimly.
"Unfortunately, Tewfik has enough men that he can afford to make a
mistake—and he won't make this one again. If we make one mistake like this, the
campaign is lost and so is Sandoral and the war. We'd lose everything south of
the Oxheads as far west as Komar."
Staenbridge blinked.
"It must hurt, thinking ahead like that all the time," he said.
"General pursuit, mi heneral? I think we can take the lot of them,
here."
Raj nodded. "That
would be best. I hate to see so many good soldiers wasted like this,
though."
wait. listen.
"Wait," Raj
said automatically. Then: "Sound Cease Fire and Silence in the
Ranks."
Staenbridge looked at
him oddly, then signed to the trumpeters. The call rang out, and silence
fell—silent enough so that the sounds of wounded men and dogs were the loudest
things on the battlefield.
And off to the
northeast, a muffled thudding sound, very faint.
"Guns,"
Staenbridge said. "You've got good ears, mi heneral."
distance 18
kilometers.
An hour or two at
forced-march speed. "All a matter of knowing what to listen for," Raj
said. Center had to use his ears, but it could pay attention to everything
they detected, however faintly. "We went looking for Tewfik, and we've
bloody well found him, haven't we?"
"You think that's
him?" Staenbridge said.
"It's another
battle group of Colonial cavalry meeting one of the raiding parties I called
in," Raj said. "And where there's two, there'll be more. Tewfik's
here, and if he's got less than twenty thousand men with him, I'm a christo.
He's probing to find out where we are, and once he knows he'll pile on."
He tapped one fist into
the palm of the other hand. "Messenger, ride to the sound of the guns;
that's probably Major Zahpata's group. Tell him to withdraw as quickly as
possible and rejoin on the route north. Gerrin, let's get ready to move out of
here, and do it now. Hostile-territory drill."
* * *
"We have to move
anyway," Raj said, preparing to rein Horace around.
The doctor's shoulders
slumped. Suzette moved over two steps and laid her blood-spattered hand on
Raj's knee. The dog bent its head around and snuffled at her. She shoved it
gently away as she looked up at her husband.
"We'll do what's
necessary," she said. He nodded wordlessly and pulled on the reins with
needless force.
Suzette moved back to
the line of wounded. Not this one, the Renunciate's eyes said.
Suzette looked down at
the soldier sweating on the litter. His olive face was gray with shock, his
eyes squeezed tightly shut. There was a tourniquet around the upper thigh of
his right leg, and a pressure bandage over a wound below the ribs. He might
have survived the leg wound, although he'd have lost the limb—there were
fragments of bone sticking out of the mass of red-and-gray flesh below the
tight-wound cloth. There was a faint sewer smell from the stomach wound,
though.
"Here,
soldier," she said in Namerique—from his coloring the man was MilGov.
"Take this, it'll help with the pain."
The blue eyes fluttered
open, wandering, the pupils dilated. She lifted a shot-glass sized dose of
liquid opium to his lips; enough to knock a war-dog out, and fatal for a man.
Better than leaving them
for the Colonials, she thought. It was bleak comfort.
* * *
"Yes!" Major
Hadolfo Zahpata said. "Pour it on, compaydres. Give those wogs
hell!"
He walked down the
firing line—more like a C with the wings bent back, now. Fifteen hundred if
it's a man, he thought, squinting into the bright sunlight. I have
perhaps three hundred fifty. And we had to run into them facing the sun.
Twigs fell on his
uniform coat from the apricot trees of the little orchard, cut by the bullets
of the Colonial dragoons to his front. More went overhead with flat cracking
sounds; he looked down and saw the left sleeve of his jacket open to the elbow,
sliced as neatly as by a tailor's shears. One millimeter closer, and . . .
They were advancing by
squad rushes across the open grainfields; several hundred were behind the lip
of an irrigation ditch about a hundred fifty meters to the front. That gave
them cover, which was very bad. His guns were firing over open sights, trying
to suppress them, which meant that they had to more or less ignore the steady
flow of men over the embankment and into the open ground—although, thank
the Spirit, they had knocked out the brace of pom-poms there. And the enemy
were working around his flanks, both of which were now re-fused.
A body of the enemy
stood to charge. A few meters down the line a splatgun crew slammed another iron
plate of rounds into their weapon and spun its crank. Braaaaap. Two more
of the rapid-fire weapons joined it. The Colonials staggered, the center
punched out of their ranks. Company and platoon officers redirected the
troopers' fire, and volleys slammed out. The Arabs sank back to the ground,
opening fire once more. A splatgun crewman went ooof and folded over at
the middle, dropped, his legs kicking in the death-spasm. Another stepped up
from the limber to take his place. Bullets flicked off the slanting iron shield
in front of the weapon with malignant sparks.
Thank the Spirit
for the splatguns, and for Messer Raj who made them, Zahpata thought. He was
a pious man—most who lived on the Border were—and Messer Raj was living proof
that the Spirit of Man of the Stars watched over Holy Federation. Despite
our sins, he added, touching his amulet.
A Colonial shell
screeched overhead to explode behind him. There was a chorus of screams after
it, men flayed by the shrapnel, and howls from wounded dogs. A revolver banged,
putting down the crippled or dangerously hysterical among the animals. Beside
him his aide ducked involuntarily at the shell's passage. Zahpata smiled and
stroked his small pointed black chin-beard.
Spent brass lay thick
around the troopers prone in the shade of the fruit trees; wasps and
eight-legged native insects crawled over the shells, intent on the windfallen
apricots scattered in the short dry grass. Their sickly sweet scent mingled
with the burnt sulfur of powder smoke and the iron-and-shit smell of violent
death.
"I'm glad to see
you're not concerned, sir," the aide said as Zahpata lowered his
binoculars and leaned on his sheathed saber.
Zahpata smiled thinly;
the aide was his nephew, something not uncommon in the Civil Government's
armies and very common in the 18th Komar Borderers. All of them were recruited
from the same tangle of valleys in the southern Oxheads five hundred kilometers
west of here, and half the battalion were relatives of one sort or another. The
aide—his mother was Zaphata's older sister—was a promising youngster, but
inexperienced at war. Except for the continual war of raid and skirmish and
ambush with the Bedouin along the frontier, but all Borderers were born to
that.
"I am not as
concerned, chico, as I was before I saw that," he said, pointing.
"The unbeliever commander must be so delighted at the prospect of our
destruction he did not notice."
He pointed. The aide
leveled his own binoculars, squinting against the sun. Zahpata knew what he was
seeing; a line of slivers of silver light. Sun on sword-blades.
"Are they
ours?"
"Would
reinforcements for the sand-thieves advance with drawn blades?" Zahpata
asked. By the length of front, that was two battalions—his City of Delrio and
Novy Haifa Dragoons, reconcentrating as he'd ordered before this began.
Doubtless they'd stepped up their pace to the sound of the guns. "In a
moment—"
There was a frantic
flurry of trumpet-calls from where the enemy commander's banner stood. Zahpata
grinned like a war-dog scenting blood as the Colonial artillery ceased fire and
began to limber up with panic speed.
"Sound Fix
Bayonets!" he said.
The bugle's brassy snarl
sounded. Surprised, men checked their fire for an instant; then there was the
long rattle and snap as the blades came out and the men slid them home. The
enemy had checked their advance; now they rose and turned to retreat. Fire
slashed into their backs. Out in the fields beyond, the two Civil Government
battalions glinted again as the sabers came down and the charge sounded.
"Sound General
Advance with Fire and Movement," he said happily. A good many enemies
of the Spirit were going to the Starless Dark today.
The troops rose and
dressed their ranks by company and battalion standards; the men at either end
of the line double-timed to turn their C into a bracket with the open end
facing the enemy. Hammer to the anvil, he thought. The oncoming
battalions spread wider, and their artillery wheeled about to unlimber and open
fire.
Zahpata frowned. Hope
they're not overconfident. Any shells that overshot would be coming
straight at his men; and if he had many casualties from friendly fire, there
would be floggings.
An orderly led up his
dog; Zahpata put one hand on the saddlehorn and vaulted up. A whistle brought
his head around.
The messenger was a
Descotter, with the shoulder-flashes of the 5th. "Ser," he said, in
the grating nasal accent of his home County. "T'heneralissimo sends
his compliments, an' yer t'rejoin immediate—on t' road headin' north. Fast,
loik, ser."
Zahpata's aide moved his
dog closer as the major read the slip of paper the messenger pulled out of his
glove.
"Messer Raj has
been defeated?" he asked incredulously.
"Don't be more of a
fool than your mother made you, Hezus," Zahpata snorted, reading.
"Ah—a great victory. Another infidel group, defeated with small
loss."
He wrote on the reverse
of the first message. "My compliments to the heneralissimo, and we
expect to intersect the northern road at . . ." What was the heathen name?
Ah, yes. ". . . at Mekrez al-Ghirba."
That should put him on
an intercept course, or even get there ahead of time. The messenger saluted,
pulled his dog's head around, and clapped his heels to its ribs.
"If we're not
defeated, sir, why are we pulling back?"
Zahpata looked at the
eager young face and sighed inwardly. The boy was here as a military
apprentice, and you expected the young to be fools. Although Messer Raj was
only a few years older when he had his first independent command.
"Messer Raj met and
defeated one enemy column; perhaps two thousand men, twenty-five hundred. With
twenty guns. We met and defeated another—fifteen hundred men, ten guns. What do
you think will happen next?"
"Oh," the aide
said.
Zahpata clouted him
alongside the head, half-affectionately; his helmet bonged. "Live
and learn, boy—or don't learn and die." He looked around. "Messenger,
to battalion commanders. 18th Komar will lead; City of Delrio follows, Novy
Haifa to rear. Scout-screens on all sides, maximum alertness. Hadelande!"
It was dark, with the
sun down and only Miniluna in the sky. The earth gave back the day's heat,
radiating from the bare clay of the badlands in the Drangosh bend; the darkness
turned the ochers and umbers of the canyons to a uniform gray. Pterosauroids
cheeped and mewed overhead, swooping after night-flying insects; Raj caught a
gleam from the huge round eye of one, a vagrant trace of starlight.
Earth-descended bats passed more silently. Off in the tangle of gullies and
sinkholes something roared on a rising note, ending in a pierced-boiler
screech; there was a rattle along the lines of dogs as the big animals raised
their heads and cocked ears toward it. Some carnosauroid; they were hard to
eliminate, in any area without a dense population, and the Civil Government
force was into the belt of uncultivated land that extended from just west of
Ain el-Hilwa along the river north to the border.
Raj sat, wrapping his
officer's cloak around his shoulders and looking up at the stars that stretched
in a thick frosted band across the sky. The Stars where man had once dwelt,
before the Fall—and would again, if Center's plan succeeded.
The unFallen had the
powers of gods, Raj thought. Yet from what Center tells me, they were still
men—not sinless, as the Church teaches. They had their wars and their
intrigues, as we do; their tragedies and defeats, as we do.
true, the voice in his mind
said. my analysis is that
such are inherent in the nature of your species.
Raj leaned back against
the clay and lit a cheroot. What's the point, then? he asked. If all I'm doing
is letting people make mistakes on a bigger scale and a broader canvas?
Center was silent for
half a minute. this is a
difficult question, and one at the limits of my powers of analysis. i was not
constructed so as to be capable of philosophical doubt.
Another pause. in your terms: the fall represented a
limitation of human choice due to suboptimal decisions. the greater capacities
of a unified and technologically advanced civilization free humans from the
determinism of nature. both their triumphs and their failures become matters of
choice.
Ours aren't?
only to a very limited
degree. the vast majority of humans on bellevue are peasants, because you lack
the productive capacity to organize yourselves otherwise. this precludes forms
of government and social organization less authoritarian, because the civilized
regions depend too heavily on coercion to produce the surplus on which cities
and a literate leisure class depend. if the fall continues, even
agriculture-based societies will collapse and maximum entropy will be reached
at a hunter-gatherer level. the survival of human life on this planet will then
be in doubt.
As if to illustrate the
point, the carnosauroid's retching scream sounded again through the night.
a new
civilization may eventually emerge; but it will lack any continuity with the
ancestral culture. and fifteen thousand years of savagery means hundreds of
generations of human lives without the opportunity to exercise their
capacities.
Raj nodded. Peasants
were old at forty, and every day in their lives was pretty much the same,
except when something went badly wrong. The Church said it was punishment for
men's sins—which seemed to be literally true in Center's terms as well—but
there was no reason for the punishment to go on forever.
He shivered slightly,
despite the warmth of the earth at his back. The fate of the human race for the
next fifteen millennia rests on me, then. And our chances of pulling it off are
no better than even.
correct.
He stood and flicked the
stub out into the darkness, a solitary ember that arced away and was lost in
the night. He turned. Behind him the command group was gathering about the pool
of light cast by a kerosene lantern, the undershadow putting the bones of their
faces into hard relief. They were unfolding maps, munching on hardtack and
pieces of jerked meat; their smiles and eyes looked as feral as so many
war-dogs in the yellow light.
"Well, sooner
started, sooner finished," Raj said. He strode into the light.
"Right, gentlemen. Tewfik's main force is rather smaller than I'd
expected—about sixteen thousand men, according to Captain M'lewis's
report."
"Countin' banners,
sir. Couldna' git closer. Them wogs is screened tighter 'n a cherry inna
raghead's hareem."
Everyone nodded.
Colonial units were less standardized in number than their Civil Government
equivalents. One reason for that was a deliberate attempt to make it harder for
observers to get a quick, accurate tally of a Colonial army's numbers by counting
the unit standards.
"We'll take sixteen
thousand as a ballpark figure—which worries me, Messers. We're here" —he
put his finger on a spot west of Ain el-Hilwa— "and we have to cut the
bend of the Drangosh to get back to our bridgehead opposite Sandoral. I hope
you all realize that after leaving Ali's main army—"
He moved his finger to
the west bank, and north almost to Sandoral, then south again to the Colonial
pontoon bridge.
"—he could have
dropped forces off to cross the river and take up blocking positions north
of us."
By their expressions,
the thought was an unpleasant surprise to a few of the battalion
commanders—although not to his Companions.
"That depends on
Tewfik's estimate of our numbers and intentions. We'll let the men rest another
hour, then start out at Maxiluna rise." With both moons in the sky, there
would be more than enough light for riding. "We'll make use of every hour
of darkness we can; it'll be cooler, too.
"Colonel
Staenbridge," he went on, "you take the three companies of the 5th
and lead the way. Spread out but move fast. Captain M'lewis, you'll be the
scout screen for the scout screen. Gerrin, if you run into anything you think
you can handle, punch through. If not, go around if that's possible,
screening our retreat. Major Zahpata, you and your 18th Komar will follow in
column of march right behind. Exercise normal caution, but rely on Colonel
Staenbridge for your intelligence. Gerrin, if you run into anything you can't
handle, Major Zahpata is to move up immediately and support the 5th at your
direction. Understood?"
Both men nodded. At
least I don't have to wonder who'll take orders from whom, Raj thought
thankfully. That sort of thing had nearly gotten him killed in the Southern
Territories campaign, at the hands of the late unlamented Major Dalhousie. The
problem was that the Civil Government didn't have permanent field armies or a
structure above the battalion level—large concentrated field forces were too
tempting to ambitious generals. By now, all these men had been on campaign with
him long enough to work smoothly together, and he'd disposed of the purblind
idiots, one way or another.
"The rest of you
will be following in double column up these roads," he said, tracing the
route northwest with two strokes of his finger. "They're never more than a
kilometer apart, so you'll be close enough for mutual support. If Colonel
Staenbridge runs into a major block-force, you'll flank and go round—taking a
lick at them from the rear in passing. Boot their arse, don't pee on them; we cannot
afford to get tangled up in a meeting engagement."
"My oath no,"
Staenbridge said mildly, still studying the map. "Not with Tewfik and
sixteen thousand wogs after our buttocks."
"Exactly."
"What's the source
of our intelligence on these pathways through the badlands?" Zahpata
asked.
Raj had drawn those in
himself. "Personal sources, Major. You may rely on them." Center
can do more with my eyes than I can, he added silently.
"Major Gruder, I
have a special tasking for your command. Otherwise, the order of march will be
as follows—"
When the other officers
dispersed to their units, Raj lead Kaltin Gruder out into the mouth of the
notch.
"Kaltin, I want you
to execute a battalion ambush on Tewfik's lead elements here," he said.
Gruder squinted up at the
eroded clay hills, comparing them with his memory of the same scene by
daylight. "Good ground," he said. "And we've given them a couple
of bloody noses—he'll be more cautious this time."
"Probably. Time is
exactly what I want you to gain; but not at the price of your battalion.
Understood?"
Gruder nodded. Raj went
on: "Tewfik knows he has two ways to win this campaign. The quick way is
to catch us and smash us up before we get back to Sandoral. He's got numerical
superiority, but it'd still be expensive. On the other hand, a quick victory is
always preferable; the sooner you win, the less time the other side has to come
up with something tricky. The slow way is to chase us back into Sandoral and
starve us out. So he'll probably be willing to take a swipe at you to save
time, but it won't be a reckless one."
Raj reached a space of
flat sand, coarse outwash detritus from the bluffs above. He smoothed it
further with his boot and drew his sword to sketch in it.
"This is your
position. More or less of a very broad V, with the open end facing south. Have
your men dig rifle pits at the foot of these hills; I'll detail the City of
Delrio to help before they pull out. Scatter the dirt, and it'll be difficult
for them to estimate your numbers before they get close. I suggest you place
them by companies like this." He traced lines. "With your dogs
reasonably close to hand, here and along here. I'll also have the Delrio leave
you their splatguns—that'll give you eight total. Put them down
here—here—here—here, in pairs."
His sword marked spots
along the face of the V. Gruder frowned.
"Down on the
flat?"
"They're not
artillery, Kaltin—those are bullets they're shooting, not shells."
Gruder nodded
thoughtfully; a bullet was dangerous all along its trajectory if it was fired
at a formation with any depth. Fired from above, it either hit the target it
was aimed at or plunked harmlessly into the dirt; fired on the level, it went
much farther.
"That'll give you
crossfire from both infantry and splatguns, like this." The tip of Raj's
saber traced X marks across the sand.
"Now," he went
on, moving the sword to left and right on either side of the notch, "this
terrain is pretty well impassable to formed bodies of troops. Certainly to
artillery. Put observers here and here. Tewfik may try to work
dismounted troopers around your flanks in those areas. If he does, block them
with your reserve company—it ought to be easy, in that ground.
"Over here, about
twenty klicks, is the only other path suitable for artillery and large
formations of troops. That's where he'll go when he decides he can't just rush
you out. Put a relay of men between here and there; when his flanking force
gets there, pull out."
He raised his head and
met the other man's eyes, his own flat and hard. "I give you no
discretion concerning that. When his men reach there, you bug out.
Understood?"
"Si, mi heneral,"
Gruder said. He grinned. "I have learned something over the past five years."
"I certainly hope
so, because I can't spare you or your battalion," Raj said.
"Hmmm. Artillery
here?" Kaltin's saber pointed to the apex of the V.
"Yes, and start the
guns out first. Also, walk all that ground tonight, and have your company
commanders do it too. Ranging marks, all the bells and whistles."
"Si." Kaltin studied
the improvised sand-table. "I'll have them come and look at this, too. You
have a good memory for terrain, mi heneral."
Which was true, and even
more so with Center's assistance. "Waya con Ispirito del Homme,"
Raj said. They gripped forearms. "Get me an extra half-day."
"The Spirit with
you also, General. Consider it done."
* * *
Tewfik ibn'Jamal, Amir
of the Host of Peace, lowered his binoculars and cursed. Arabic was the finest
of all languages for that, as for all else—as would be expected for the
language God chose to dictate His word in—but the rolling, guttural obscenities
did not relieve his feelings.
"And may the fleas
of a thousand mangy feral dogs infest the scrotum of the kaphar general
Whitehall," he concluded.
Ahead was a broad slope
five thousand meters across at its mouth, narrowing down to barely a hundred
where the roadway snaked into the badlands. The hills behind and to either side
were not high, but they were steep as the sides of houses, crumbly adobe scored
and riven by the rare cloudbursts of the Drangosh Valley winter. The roadway
was graded dirt—a secondary road. The main highway—Allah torment in the flames
of Eblis the souls of the engineers who laid it out—ran parallel to the Ghor
Canal, through the populated districts farther east and towards Ain el-Hilwa. That
town of fools and dotards.
Taking that would mean
two days' delay, more than enough time for the invaders to scuttle back to the
walls of Sandoral—and take any hope of concluding this accursed war quickly
with them.
Another tabor of
dismounted troopers trotted up into the V, angling for the enemy's foremost
position on that side—if they could dislodge the outer rim, they could unravel
it up the foot of the hills. A steady braaaap . . . braaaap sounded, and
men fell. Figures in crimson djellabas dropped into the hot white dust of the
valley floor, to lie still or twitching and moaning. He could see puffs of dust
where the bullets struck, smoke pouring from the positions of the new
rapid-fire weapons, a steady crackle and bang from the rifle-pits where the
infidel troopers kept up a continuous hail of well-aimed fire. A pom-pom
galloped up to support the soldiers.
The rapid-fire weapons
from both sides of the V shifted to it. The dogs of its team went down in a
tangle, and the gun's long slender barrel slewed around in futility. He watched
a survivor drag a wounded comrade into its shelter. Bullets fell on it like a
rain of hail to ricochet off in sparks and whining fragments.
In the gun-line directly
before him crews heaved at the trails of 70mm field guns and pom-poms. More
smoke billowed out as they fired, a ripple of red tongues of fire from left to
right. Dirt fountained skyward along the enemy lines, and a spare team was
galloped out to retrieve the pom-pom and the wounded.
"Can you not
suppress those Shaitan-inspired weapons?" he asked.
His artillery chief
shrugged unwillingly. "Insh'allah," he said. "Amir,
whatever they are, they do not recoil as artillery pieces do—so they can be
deeply dug in. All we see is the muzzle and the top of an iron shield. To make
good practice we must draw close—and you saw the result of that. Also
they have a battery of field guns above, with a two-hundred-meter advantage in
height. If I push our gun line forward, they will come under artillery fire
from the heights as they try to deploy, as well as from small arms."
"Move guns to the
left, concentrate on the outer arm of the enemy defenses."
"As the Amir
commands," the gunner said.
Tewfik turned back to
the map table. Sweat dripped from the points of his beard onto the thick paper,
reminding him of how thirsty he was. The goatskin chaggal at his side
was half-empty; his men's would be worse, and there was no source of good water
sufficient for fifteen thousand men within a half-day's ride.
"Muhammed," he
said, and one of his officers bowed. "Sound the recall."
"Another push and
we will be through, Amir," the man said stubbornly.
"Another push and
we will lose another hundred men dead," Tewfik said. Just then a pair of
stretcher bearers trotted by. Their burden moaned and tried to brush at the
flies crawling on the ruin of his face. "Or like that. I do not
continue with a plan that has failed."
"I obey."
"And start men
moving here." He traced a line to the eastward on the map. "The
going's passable for men on foot. Put some of those Bedouin hunters to use; the
sand-thieves do nothing but sit on their arses and eat better men's food. They
should know the footpaths. Work around toward the rear of the enemy position.
"Anwar," he
went on. "You will take the reserve brigade and go" —he moved the
finger in a looping circle far to the west— "twenty kilometers. A tertiary
road—passable for wheels, according to the reports. Push all the way through to
open country on the other side of these badlands, secure the route, and I will
follow. Mutasim, you will put a blocking force across the mouth of this
deathtrap; I'll leave you thirty guns. When the kaphar pull out, pursue,
slow them if you can; we'll see if whoever Whitehall left in charge has sense
enough to flee quickly as we flank him."
Mutasim scowled.
"So far we have accomplished little," he said, tugging at his beard.
"There is no God
but God; all things are accomplished according to the will of God," Tewfik
said. He fought the urge to grind his teeth. "We were sent to stop the
enemy's ravaging of our land; this we have done. We will pursue him. If we
catch him, we will destroy him; if not, we will besiege him in Sandoral, which
has not the supplies to support his men for long. In a week, they must begin to
eat their dogs—which destroys all hope of mobility. After that, it is merely a
matter of time. This was a damaging raid, no more. Insh'allah."
"As God
wills," the others echoed.
"Go. Move
swiftly."
The officers departed,
and trumpets began to sound. Only the aides, messengers, and the Amir's
personal mamluks were left, silently awaiting his will. Tewfik stood and stared
up the valley again, unconsciously fingering his eyepatch. It had never stopped
him seeing into the heart and mind of an enemy commander before. Whitehall,
Whitehall, what is your plan? What dream of victory do you cherish in your
secret heart?
That was what bothered
him. He remembered the El Djem campaign; he'd caught Whitehall there, beaten
him—although the fighting retreat had been stubbornly effective, preventing him
from finishing the young kaphar commander off without paying a price
that seemed excessive. He'd bitterly regretted that decision a year later, when
the Colony's forces met Whitehall's army.
May the Merciful, the
Lovingkind, have pity on your soul, my father, he thought. Jamal had been a
hard man and a good Settler, but no great general. You ordered that we attack
directly into the kaphar guns, and we paid for it, Tewfik thought bitterly.
Jamal had paid with his head, the House of Islam with thousands of its best
troops and a legacy of civil war. All Whitehall's doing; it had been a good
day's work for Shaitan when Whitehall had been born among the infidels of the
House of War instead of a believer.
Since then Whitehall had
made war in the West, while Tewfik repaired the Host of Peace and prepared for
the next round of battle. This time there should be no doubt about the outcome.
He had overwhelming numbers, and even Ali wasn't going to force him into the
sort of error their father had made.
Yet the Faithful had
good intelligence sources in the western realms. Tewfik had followed
Whitehall's campaigns closely, and spoken with eyewitnesses. Why this raid?
By bringing his force out from beyond Sandoral's walls, Whitehall had exposed
them to the risk of defeat—without any countervailing chance of decisive
victory. True, he had ravaged rich lands; true, he had inflicted stinging
tactical reverses on the Muslims. Our losses were greater than his. But we
can absorb them without strategic consequence, and he knows this. Nor were
burnt-out villages in this one little corner of the Settler's domains any sort
of strategic loss; yes, a tragedy for those who suffered, and enough to wake
screams of rage from the nobles whose estates were ravaged, but nothing mortal.
At least once in the past kaphar hosts had ravaged their way to the
walls of Al Kebir itself, and the House of Islam still stood—there were vast
and rich lands south and east of the capital to draw on. This was nothing by
comparison.
Whitehall must have something
in mind, something decisive. But what?
Tewfik plucked at his
beard again. "He threw as many troops as he could into Sandoral before we
reached the walls," he muttered to himself. "Yet it would have been
better to send one-third as many, and use the other trains for supplies."
Sending all the civilians out of the fortress city had been a shrewd move, but
not enough. And why so many cavalry, when the issue would be settled by
fighting from behind strong works?
"He has too many
troops to hold the walls, and not enough food to feed the numbers he
brought—yet not enough men to meet us in the field."
Three pounds of food per
man per day, fifteen per dog; Whitehall knew the importance of logistics as
well as any man. What was his plan?
There was something else
here, something beyond a young kaphar chieftain with a genius for war.
The infidels whispered that their false god rode at Whitehall's elbow.
He shrugged off the
notion. There was no God but God. "Insh'allah," he said again,
snapping his binoculars back into the case at his waist. "We waste no more
time."
* * *
"Hadelande!"
Robbi M'Telgez pulled
the rifle free from the scabbard and kicked his feet free of the stirrups. Dirt
clouted the soles of his boots as Pochita crouched; he turned and ran up the
crumbly slope, coughing in the dust Company A kicked up in their scramble. He
chopped the butt of his rifle into the dirt to help the traction, feeling the
dirt sticking to the sweat on his face, blinking his eyes against the sting and
thanking the Spirit for the chain-mail avental riveted to the back of his
helmet. It might or might not turn a swordstroke, but the leather backing of
the mail protected your neck from the sun pretty good.
Captain Foley reached
the top and his bannerman planted the company pennant. The officer stood with
arm—hook arm—and sword outstretched, to give the alignment. M'Telgez flopped
down on his belly and crawled the last three paces to the ridgeline, because
bullets were already cracking overhead. Got guts, that one, he thought.
Foley stayed erect until
the unit was in place, then went to one knee only a little back from the crest.
Some men in other units gave them a hard time for having the colonel's
boyfriend as company commander. He didn't care weather Foley banged men, women,
bitch-dogs or sheep—as long as he knew his business, which he did.
There were plenty of
wogs making for the same crestline from the other side, hundreds of them. The
slope was steeper there, though; he could see clumps of them falling back in
miniature avalanches of rocks and clay, down to where their dogs milled about
in the dry streambed below. Others were prone on the slope, firing at the Civil
Government banners that had appeared on the ridge above. M'Telgez flipped up
the ladder sight mounted just ahead of the block of his Armory rifle and
clicked the aperture up to 800 meters.
"Pick your
targets!" the ensign in command of his platoon shouted.
He did, a wog with
fancywork on his robe walking around at the base of the hill and followed by
signalers. A long shot, and tricky from up here, but he had the ground for a
firm rest. He worked the rifle into the dirt, fingers light on the forestock,
and took up the first tension on the trigger.
"Fwego!"
BAM. Eighty rifles
fired. The butt punched his shoulder; a measurable fraction of a second later
the wog in the fancy robe folded sideways under the hammering impact of the
heavy 11mm bullet. He fell, kicking. Not goin' t'git up, neither,
M'Telgez thought. Not with a hollowpoint round blowing a tunnel the size of a
fist through his stomach and intestines. The Descotter whistled tunelessly through
his teeth as he worked the lever and reloaded, the spent brass tinkling away
down the slope to his rear. Most of the others had picked closer targets;
bodies were sliding back down the steep slope. Live ones, too, as the more
sensible wogs decided that toiling slowly up a forty-degree slope of crumbling
dirt under fire wasn't the way to a long life.
BAM. He picked another
hard target, a Colonial prone behind a slight ridge and firing back. The
djellaba blended well with the clay, but he aimed up a little. The wog jerked
up seconds later, clawing at his back. Lever, reload.
"Five rounds,
independent fire, rapid, fwego."
M'Telgez's hand went
back to his pouch; he pulled four bullets out of the loops and stuck their tips
between his lips like cigarettes. Another went into the chamber, and he snapped
the ladder-sight back down to the ramp.
Damn. There were too
many wogs who'd decided to chance it. Bam. One down. Out one of the
rounds between his lips. Bam. A miss, but the target yelled and danced
sideways. Bam. Head shot, and the spiked helmet went end-over-end
downslope in a splash of blood and brains. Bam. Couldn't tell, smoke too
thick. Bam.
The oncoming enemy
wavered, then fell back; most of them turned over onto their backsides and
tobogganed down the slope, controlling the slide with their feet. There were
boulders and rocks enough at the bottom to take cover behind, if they were
careful.
"Dig in!"
The order came down the
line. M'Telgez cursed; like most cavalry troopers, he hated digging—back home
in Descott, a vakaro resented any sort of work that couldn't be done
from the saddle. Resignedly, he spoke to his squad:
"Even numbers! Odd
numbers on overwatch. C'mon, lads, 'tain't yer dicks yer grabbin', put yer
backs inta it."
He reached to the back
of his webbing belt and undid the leather pouch that held the head of his
entrenching tool. It was a mattock-and-pick if you put the head in the central
hole, a shovel if you put it into the slot behind the broader section. He
unhooked the wooden handle that hung from his belt by the bayonet on his left
side and knocked it into the main hole. A few swift blows cut through the hard
crust of the adobe; it came up in chunks, and he piled those and handy rocks
ahead of him, working down the slope behind to make a cut that would let him
lie comfortably and fire through a couple of notches.
The afternoon was
savagely hot, and the sweat ran down his body in rivulets that he could feel
collecting where his shirt and jacket met the webbing belt. The damp cotton
drill cloth clung and chafed. A carbine bullet went by overhead now and then
with a malignant wasp-whine, encouraging him. A man came by with extra
ammunition slung in canvas bandoliers from the pack-dogs; M'Telgez snagged an
extra fifty rounds and cut a notch to support them with a few quick strokes of
the mattock.
"M'Telgez! Report
to the captain!"
Shit. Jest whin
I wuz gettin' comfortable, loik, the corporal thought resignedly. "Smeet,
y'got it fer now. Don't fook up too bad, will yer?"
"We'll a' git kilt,
but it'll na be my fault, corp," the older trooper said cheerfully.
M'Telgez wiped his hands
on the swallowtails of his jacket and picked up his rifle, then stepped-slid
downhill a pace or two; running crouched, his head was below the ridgeline. The
crunch of entrenching tools in the dirt marked his passage, and the steady
crackle of fire from the alternate numbers keeping up harassment against the
wogs. He also passed a few dead men; head and neck wounds were generally
quickly fatal.
"Ser," he said
when he came to the company pennant.
Barton Foley braced his
pad across his knee with the point of his hook and wrote. "You have the
way back to battalion, Corporal?"
"Yesser,"
M'Telgez answered.
He had a good eye for
that sort of thing; and it was an officer's job to remember what his men could
do.
"Detail one man of
your squad to accompany you, and take this to Colonel Staenbridge."
"No problemo,
seyhor." He'd take M'tennin, the lad was young, eager and a good shot.
Smeet could handle the squad—he was a good junior NCO, when there was no booze
around. Drunk, he didn't know a sow from his sister or an officer from an
asswipe.
"Verbally, add that
we can handle it for the present but would appreciate reinforcements. Report
back immediately with his reply—and watch out, there may be wogs in these
ravines."
* * *
M'tennin screamed.
M'Telgez took one look
over his shoulder and clapped his heels to Pochita's ribs. The thing already
had the younger man's shoulders in its jaws and one clawed foot hooked into his
dog's side, ripping downward in a shower of blood and fur and loops of pink-gray
gut. Pochita needed no urging; she brought her hindpaws up between her front
and leapt off in a bounding gallop, teeth bared, ears flat, and eyes rolled
back, right down the narrow floor of the canyon. Her rider whipped his head
around as something screeched behind him, a sound like a steam-whistle gone
berserk.
He could smell
its breath, like a freshly-opened tomb in hot weather. It was bipedal and
longer than a war-dog, probably heavier, but it ran with a birdlike
stride—lightly, on the toe-pads of its three-clawed feet, so lightly that the
shotgun blast of dirt and stones spraying back from each impact was a surprise.
The body was a dusty orange-yellow, striped irregularly with vivid black; the
open mouth was mottled purple and crimson. Teeth the size of his fingers
reached for him, and the clawed forefeet on either side. Behind it another much
like it—hunter's reflex told him they were probably a mated pair—was tearing at
the bodies of M'tennin and his mount with impartial gluttony. Its muzzle went skyward,
the long narrow jaws dislocating as it swallowed a leg and hip.
"Hingada
tho!" M'Telgez screamed. "Fuck ye!" The carnosauroid shrieked back at
him, another carrion-scented blast.
His rifle was in the
crook of his left arm. He snatched the pistol out of his boottop with his right
and thrust it backward, not three meters from the thing's mouth. Even so half
the rounds missed. Three did hit; none of them seemed to do much good. A
blood-fleck appeared on the shiny black skin between the angry red of the
nostrils, and one fang shattered into fragments of ivory. That got the beast's
attention, at least; it spun sideways for an instant, snapping and rearing on
one leg as the other slashed at whatever had struck it.
Then it realized he
had hurt it. Some of the bigger carnosauroids were too dumb to do anything but
kill and eat; the smaller agile ones like this could be a lot smarter. There
was more than simple hunger in the cry it gave as it bounded after him once
more, body horizontal and long slender tail snapping behind it at the tip like
a bullwhip.
"Fuck me,"
M'Telgez muttered through a dry mouth, and hurled the revolver at the beast. That
hadn't been such a good idea.
He leaned left and then
right as Pochita took the curves of the narrow gully at dangerous speed. The
carnosauroid didn't let little things like turns slow it down; it just ran
right up the wall of the cut, letting momentum keep it upright with its head
parallel to the ground for an instant. The man wound the sling of his rifle
around his right forearm with desperate speed. He'd have only one chance, and
that wasn't much with a single-shot rifle. Reloading at the gallop . . . he
might as well try to fly like a pterosauroid by flapping his arms.
The sides of the gully
opened out a little. The carnosauroid screamed again and speeded up,
half-overtaking the fleeing human.
Right. Likes
t'knock yer over afore it bites.
Normally holding the
long Armory rifle out one-handed would have made M'Telgez's arm tremble. Now it
was steady, everything diamond-clear to his sight. Even the sideways lunge of
the predator seemed fairly slow, an arc drawn through the air to meet the
questing muzzle of his weapon.
Bam. The shock of
recoil was a complete surprise, hard pain in his arm. The weight of the
carnosauroid slammed into Pochita's haunches, and the dog skittered in a
three-sixty turn before resuming its gallop. The torque of the outflung rifle
nearly dislocated M'Telgez's shoulder, but the pain was negligible next to the
horrifying knowledge that he'd failed. Footfalls still ripped the earth behind
him, only a little further back—and Pochita's tongue was hanging out in
exhaustion.
He rounded another
curve-
—and nearly ran into a
screen of mounted men in blue jackets and round bowl-helmets. Their guns
flicked up, but their eyes were behind him.
"Shoot, ye
dickheads!" he screamed, as his dog braced its forelegs and sank down on
its haunches to stop.
They didn't. Bent over
his pommel, gasping and wheezing, M'Telgez looked behind to see why.
The carnosauroid lay
prone not five meters behind him, its muzzle plowing a furrow in the dry gritty
dirt. One leg was outstretched and the other to the rear, as if it had done the
splits in mid-stride. Tail and head beat the ground in an arrhythmic
death-tattoo, then slumped into stillness. A neat hole drilled in the yellow
scales just behind and above one ear-opening showed why.
"Well, fuck
me," M'Telgez mumbled again. It took three tries to return his rifle to
the scabbard, and two to get his canteen open.
"There's one'll na
try it, dog-brother," one of the troopers said admiringly. Two rifles
cracked as the corpse of the sauroid went through another bout of twitching,
the jaws clashing with an ugly wet metallic sound. Carnosauroids took a good
deal of killing.
A jingling and thump of
paws sounded in the draw; the battalion standard came up. M'Telgez pulled
himself erect with an effort and saluted.
"Colonel, message
from C-captain Foley," he said. "Ah, we're, ah—"
"Take it easy,
lad," the Colonel said, not unkindly, looking at the dead predator and
then at M'Telgez's dog. "You had a close shave, there, Corporal."
M'Telgez followed the
lifted chin. Pochita's tail was half-missing, ending in a bloody stump; now
that the dog wasn't running for its life it was trying to twist around and lick
the injury. He dismounted and reached automatically into his saddlebags for
ointment and bandages, a cavalry trooper's reflex, and a lifelong vakaro's.
One bite closer
. . . he thought. The image must have been clear on his face, because the
Colonel leaned down and clapped him on the shoulder.
"Good shot,"
he said. "Anything with this?"
"Ah, t'Captain 'uld
want some reinforcements, loik," M'Telgez said. In an effort to clear his
mind: "We'nz goin' t'push through 'em, ser?"
In many line outfits
that might have been insolence; Descotters had an easy, unservile way with
their squires, though. And he was a long-service man with a good record.
"No, Messer Raj
knows a way around," Colonel Staenbridge said. "We just have to block
them while the main force gets through. I'll come myself. Lead the way,
Corporal."
M'Telgez looked around
at the bewildering tangle of blind canyons, sinkholes, and ragged hills. The
Spirit must be wit 'im, he decided. Which was a comforting thought.
"Cheer up,
lad," Staenbridge said, as the column formed up and passed the dead
predator.
One of the troopers
tossed him a fang as long as his hand, with a lump of bloody gum still on the
base. M'Telgez dropped it into his haversack; it'd be something to show the
girls, cleaned up and worn around his neck on a thong. Might as well get
something out of that; that poor fastardo M'tennin wasn't going to, not
even a burial. There wouldn't be anything left of him or much of his dog by the
time they got there.
"Cheer up. Could
have been worse—it could have been wogs."
M'Telgez looked down at
the four-meter length of tiger-striped deadliness lying in the dirt. He nodded.
That was true enough. The carnosauroid had only wanted to kill and eat him.
Wogs might have taken him
alive.
"Good," Raj
said. "That was clever of Tewfik, but he had to split his covering force
up into too many detachments—there are a lot of badlands out there."
Staenbridge nodded.
"Only two or three hundred men on the route we actually took," he said.
"Still, it might have gotten sticky if we couldn't go around—they had an
excellent position. How did you know that section of earth was thin
enough to cut through behind them?"
An angel told
me, and it could tell the thickness of the gully walls by measuring how
inaudible sounds passed through, Raj thought sardonically. He wondered what
Staenbridge would make of the explanation. Raj didn't understand a word of it
himself.
sound waves are—
Forget it. I
know it works, I don't have to know how or why.
"Lucky guess,
Gerrin." The tone ruled out any further questions. "We're
about—"
two point six
kilometers.
"—two and a half
klicks from the bridgehead, now. This is going to be tricky."
"You expect Tewfik
to catch us crossing?" Staenbridge said, raising a brow.
"No, but he's not
the only competent commander in the Colonial army, and he'll be in heliograph
contact with their main body. What I want you to do is—"
"Come on lads, put
your backs into it," Colonel Jorg Menyez shouted. "Messer Raj
needs this finished and ready to go by full sunrise!"
Arc lights hissed and
kerosene lanterns cast their softer light across the chaos on the riverbank
quays of Sandoral. Miniluna and Maxiluna were both on the horizon, paling to
translucence as the sun cast bands of yellow and purple up into the fading dusk
of night.
At least it's a
little cooler, the infantry officer thought. That should speed things
up. He'd had the preparations going on all night, what could be done without
attracting attention.
There was no more point
in trying for silence now, not with two thousand men splashing and clattering
as they moved the big boxlike pontoon barges into position. Most of the
supports had been beached along Sandoral's long waterfront, just outside the
river wall. Teams of men grunted and heaved, some pushing, others prying with
beams and planks. One by one the square shapes surged out into the river, then
jerked to a halt as the anchor-ropes caught them. Other ropes were payed out
and men hauled in groaning unison to pull the barges to the growing eastern end
of the bridge. North of it was a line of cable floating between barrels; each
marked a line dropping down to an anchor on the riverbed. Naked boatmen swam
out with more lines to secure the barges to the cable.
As each was tied off
against the current, notched beams went into the cutouts in the bulwarks, and
sections of planking were pegged down on top. Men scrambled forward to the next
even while the mallets were still pounding on the one they ran on; water slopped
over the upstream side as the weight of scores of infantrymen and their burdens
of timber and cordage rested on the end barge alone. Down in the hulls others
threw buckets of water overside and screamed abuse at the work teams above.
A long hollow boooom
sounded from the southward, from where the nearest part of the Colonial siege
line had anchored itself with an earthen fort on the riverbank. A long whirring
crash followed, and men froze as a heavy roundshot hit the water and skipped
like a thrown rock across the surface of the water by a playful boy. Once . . .
twice . . . three times, and the final plume of water was shorter than the
others. The Drangosh drank down the big cast-iron ball as easily as it would
the boy's pebble. Menyez blew out the breath he had not been aware of holding.
Two kilometers.
A little too far. There were ironic cheers from some of the men, and the
hammering clatter of work resumed. He looked eastward. The bridge was nearly to
the other shore, where a company of infantry was heaving at winches anchored in
the dirt, hauling the last few barges. Nice fast piece of work, he
thought. It helped that they'd done it before, of course.
Booooom. A little
sharper this time, a rifled piece. The sound of the shell was higher as well.
It came much closer, only a few hundred meters south, but struck the water only
once. A tall fountain of spray reached skyward, high enough that its top was
touched red by the light of the sun rising in the west.
"Close, but that
only counts with handbombs," he said.
Far off and faint,
trumpets spoke on the eastern bank. A message began to flicker in from the
heliograph station there, as the light strengthened enough for the
tripod-mounted mirrors to catch it.
The problem was that
there were other heliograph relays farther down the river—Colonial ones.
"Come on, mi
heneral," Menyez said under his breath.
He looked back over his
shoulder at Sandoral. The city was eerily quiet, hardly even a thread of smoke
marking the hushed stillness of the morning. Not even a cock crowing; all the
chickens had gone into the stewpots several days ago.
And nearly the
whole garrison out here working on the bridge, he added to himself.
Pretty soon that thought was going to occur to somebody else.
* * *
Ali ibn'Jamal lowered
his telescope. "My so-brilliant brother has let them escape," he said
bitterly. "Allah requite him for it. And their bridge of boats is nearly
finished to receive the ravagers of the House of Peace."
Everyone else in the
clump of nobles and commanders maintained a tight silence. A cool morning wind
ruffled robes and beards and the peacock and egret plumes in turbans and
helmets, but many of them were sweating nonetheless.
Cowards, Ali thought,
and raised the telescope again. The kaphar were working like men
possessed on their bridge, getting the surface laid before Whitehall appeared.
Tewfik was going to let him ride back into Sandoral like a conquering hero!
"Commander of the
Faithful."
It was one of the
cavalry generals, a protégé of Tewfik's. Who cannot be Settler. But who could
rule from behind the Peacock Throne, with a puppet Settler. It had happened
before.
The man knelt and
touched his forehead to the floor. "The deserters have told us the kaphar
are on half-rations—they have been for a week. With another eight thousand men
and eight thousand dogs within the walls, they will eat their stores bare in a
few days. Then the city must fall."
Eight thousand. Tewfik hadn't
killed more than a few hundred of them, after they spent more than a week
ravaging his lands. His lands! I do not want them to surrender. I
want them to die.
Of course, they could
die after they surrendered . . . but if he allowed them terms, it would be
unwise to break them. Not with Tewfik and his officers so close around him—not
when they absurdly, blasphemously valued a word given to an unbeliever.
He raised the telescope
again. It was incredible how quickly the infidels had gotten their bridge put
back together. Cannon were firing from the walls of the earth fort around him,
but doing no damage—the range was so great that only sheer luck or divine
intervention would land a shell where it could accomplish anything.
They must have
their whole garrison working on that, Ali thought. He could see them clearly now that
the sun had risen.
Ali smiled suddenly.
Those watching his face flinched and looked away, then forced themselves to
turn their heads back; it was not safe to be unaware of the ruler's moods.
Ah, Tewfik my
brother, you did not think of that. All his life he had been in Tewfik's shadow in
matters of war; blundering and hacking his way through the complex problems of
the battlefield in confusion, while Tewfik cut to victory with a lambent
clarity. But this time, he was the one to see.
"You," he said
to the kneeling officer. "Ubaydalla Said. I order an assault on the
walls—an immediate assault. Rise, take command of the forward troops, and
execute my commands."
"I hear and obey,
Settler of Islam," the officer said. He paused thoughtfully. "That is
an excellent suggestion. But the preparations—"
It was the expression on
his face that moved the Settler; the surprise, that Ali could have come up with
a workable plan. He plucked the ceremonial whip out of the man's belt and
lashed him across the face with it. An upflung hand saved Said's eyes from the
nine pieces of jagged steel on the ends of the thongs, but blood dripped
heavily into his beard and from his gashed mouth.
"Are you a coward
as well as a fool, pig? Are you deaf? I said immediately! If you have
time to prepare, so will the enemy! And you are to lead the attack,
personally."
"As God
wills," the officer said quietly. He bowed again, blood dripping on the
priceless carpets, and wheeled away sharply, calling for his subordinates.
* * *
A whistle blast jarred
Corporal Minatelli out of exhausted sleep. It was much like waking up after a
payday in Old Residence. For a moment he lay blinking in puzzlement. It must be
Star Day, why were they calling him to work at the quarry already?
The whistle went on and
on, sharp repeated calls. A trumpet joined in, sounding: Stand to, Stand to
over and over again. Then he knew exactly where he was: on the parapet of the
wall at Sandoral, with hot white sunlight slashing through the firing slits. He
erupted up out of his blanket roll and grabbed his rifle and webbing in either
hand, running to his duty station. His muscles ached from a night of hard
labor, and the two hours of sleep seemed to have dumped a skullful of hot sand
behind his eyes. He was hungry too, mortally hungry with the aching need of a
man who had been using twice as many calories as he took in. None of it
mattered.
He buckled his belt and
leaned back slightly from the wall to make sure that everyone in the squad was
at their posts—seven men to hold a section of wall that had been undermanned
with forty. Seven men and the six militiamen left of the dozen that usually
operated the big gun to his left. Probably the rest of the walls were just as
empty. Spirit!
"Oh, scramento,"
he said as he knuckled the crust out of his eyes and looked out the slit.
From left to right
across his field of vision the Colonial earthworks were belching jets of smoke
with lances of red fire at their hearts; the siege guns were cutting loose.
Underneath their deep booms he could hear the sharper sounds of the field guns
in the forward bastions, and the rapid pom . . . pom . . . pom of the
quick-firers. Much of the ground between the Colonial outworks and the city
moat and wall was still covered by bloating bodies, and the ripe oily stink was
thick—the wog commanders had refused the usual truce to remove the dead. That
didn't seem to be slowing down the men who boiled out of the forward ends of
the assault trenches any.
In the days since the
first attempt at an escalade, the Colonials had braved constant sniping to rig
overhead covers for the last few hundred meters of the trenches—platforms of
palm logs and sandbags that wouldn't stop a heavy shell but did quite well
against rifle bullets and case shot. Now the last ten meters or so of that were
jerked down, and the soldiers in crimson came out like red warrior ants. They
didn't seem to be as well organized this time, but there were an awful lot of
them.
"Ready for
it," Minatelli called, clearing his eyes with the thumb of one hand. The
fabric of the fortifications quivered underneath him as the heavy solid shot
rammed into the granite facing of the concrete-and-rubble wall. Dust quivered
up from every crack and crevice. He took an instant to gulp water from a
dipper, stale and welcome as a mother's love.
The wogs were running
forward with their long ladders, built to cross the moat and not break even at
an acute angle to the ground. The walls of Sandoral were not very high; they
could not be, and be thick enough to resist modern rifled cannon. Others
carried grapnel-throwing mortars.
"Now!" he
shouted, and fired. Shots were crackling out all along the walls, and the
deeper roar of cannon.
Booom. The fortress
gun fired. A swath of the enemy went down, but the scratch crew were cursing
with the shrillness of panic as they struggled to reload and relay the huge
piece; there just weren't enough of them. Minatelli fired again and again, as
fast as he could work the lever—worry about overheating and extraction jams
later. Wogs fell, to lie among the bloated, swollen remnants of the previous
attack, but they kept coming. Grapnels thumped out of the mortars and blurred
up to the ramparts, trailing snakes of cable with knotted hand- and footholds.
A shadow fell across his eyes as a ladder toppled toward the wall, slanting out
to the ground beyond the moat. He dropped his rifle on the stone ledge for a
moment and reached into a bin, pulling out a hand bomb and snagging the ring on
top on a hook set into the wall. A quick jerk freed the ring, and the bomb
began to hiss as the friction primer within burned.
Toss. A vicious crack
over towards the base of the ladder. Men fell, and the heavy eucalyptus poles
of the construct swayed. A dozen men cut loose with their repeaters at
Minatelli's gunslit. Thousands were kneeling all along the edge of the moat,
bringing the fighting platform under direct aimed fire. A little way down from
Minatelli a lucky pom-pom shell blasted right into a gunslit and exploded; an
instant later so did the hand bombs in the bin there, blowing chunks of stone
and flesh out into the moat and back down into the cleared zone below the city
walls. He ducked down and back as ricochets buzzed through the narrow space,
then dashed to the next slit. A file of wogs was already running up the
ladder—it was no steeper than some stairways—toward the roof of the fighting
platform overhead. He fired again and again. Men fell tumbling off the ladder
and down into the foul water of the moat; some of them bobbed limply, others
swam for the shore.
Boom. The fortress
gun cut loose again, and another swath of wogs went down back toward the
assault trench—but there were far too many already near the wall. Almost at the
same time an enemy shell struck right underneath the muzzle of the gun. The
huge banded barrel jumped backwards; a trunnion cracked, and the weapon pivoted
sideways with a squeal of ripped bronze and crackling timbers. A gunner's legs
were caught in the way, and the man smeared against the pavement and the iron
guide-ring like liver paste on bread.
More carbine rounds
flicked at Minatelli's firing slit. He ducked back again, fixed the bayonet on
his rifle, then slung it across his back. He filled his hands with hand bombs,
slipping his fingers through the rings to carry them—dangerous, but fuck that
right now for a game of soldiers.
"Saynchez! Hold
'em!" he screamed, and ran back down the covered walkway to the dismounted
gun.
The other five militia
gunners were standing gaping, looking at their dead comrade.
"Get yor fukkin' guns,"
Minatelli screamed. His hands were full, so he kicked one of the gunners in the
arse to get his attention; the man whirled, gaped, then went for his personal
weapon. The gunners were equipped with shortswords, revolvers, and double-barreled
shotguns: just the thing for the sort of short-range scrimmage that was all too
likely in a moment. He could hear boots on the roof overhead.
"The wogs is over
the wall," Minatelli shouted, and leaped for the top of the gun.
There was a circular hole
above it, with an iron ladder and an octagonal observation-point of timber and
boilerplate above, usually for the master gunner. Minatelli scrambled up it,
stuck his head out of the hatch, and began throwing hand bombs. There were wogs
clambering up onto the roof of the fighting platform by the score—though many
were cut down by the enfilade fire of the light swivel guns on the bastion
towers to either side—and thank the Spirit, none of them looking at him!
The cast-iron bombs
clattered on the stone flags; he ducked back down as they burst with rending crang
sounds, and bits of casing peened off the outside of the observation point. He
rose again and threw the last of them; wogs were shooting at him from the outer
edge, pausing at the top of their scaling ladders.
He dropped back down.
Case shot hammered the boilerplate outside as a swivel gun tried to sweep the
ramparts clear.
"Hingada
tho!" he cursed at the unseen gunner in the tower, and dropped back to the gun.
He could feel the heat of it through the soles of his hobnailed boots.
"Follow me!"
He jumped down to the decking with a clash and spark of nails on the concrete.
The militia gunners ran
behind him as he dashed back. A wog with his carbine slung and a long curved
knife between his teeth swung down from the lip of the overhead, hung by both
hands and jacknifed himself in to land on the very edge of the platform, with a
fifteen-meter drop behind him. Minatelli shouted and lunged; he had just time
enough to meet the Colonial's eyes, black and unafraid. The man was trying to
draw the revolver tucked through his sash when the point of Minatelli's bayonet
thumped into his chest. The steel didn't penetrate the breastbone, but it was
enough to send the man backward over the edge, snarling in frustration.
Another landed beside
him. A militiaman fired his shotgun from behind Minatelli, powder scorching his
side. The spreading buckshot caught the wog in the gut, blasting him over the
edge with his limbs flailing like a jointed doll. Another was hanging from the
lip of the roof—it was deliberately made with an overhang beyond the fighting
platform below, to make this sort of thing difficult. Minatelli lunged again,
this time between the dangling legs. The wog let go with a scream and plunged
downward. His drop revealed another kneeling above, aiming a carbine. Minatelli
fired from the hip; the Colonial threw himself backward out of the line of
fire.
The infantryman pivoted.
Two of the militiamen were down, and a pair of wogs he hadn't even noticed
stood on the deck. Two more were fighting another; one blocked his scimitar
with the barrel of his shotgun, then reeled away wailing over fingers hanging
by threads of flesh. That gave his comrade time enough to draw a revolver and
fire five times with the muzzle almost pressed against the Arab swordsman's
back.
The body hit the ground
with a thump. The survivors of Minatelli's squad were at their firing slits,
shooting and throwing hand bombs. No, one was stabbing outward with his
bayonet. The corporal started towards that slit, hands reloading his rifle of
their own volition. The last militiaman shouted from behind him, warning in the
tone.
Minatelli turned.
Another wog was coming at him, carbine clubbed. He caught it on the bayonet,
pivoted the rifle and buttstroked the wog in the face; turned with frantic
speed and caught another through the throat with the point. The militiaman was
at his side, but more and more wogs were dropping down to the firing platform,
some coming through the observation hatch over the gun. His men turned from the
firing slits. He shouted to them to rally.
Something flashed very
brightly, and there was a soft floating sensation. A heavy pressure. Blackness.
Raj drew up beside
Menyez at the western end of the pontoon bridge. The infantry commander grabbed
at his stirrup-iron. "Wogs over the wall," he said.
"Everything's committed—no more reserve!"
"I'll handle
it," Raj replied. "Organize this end and get the remainder and the
artillery concentrated in the plaza. Waymanos!"
The lead cavalry were
coming over the bridge at a round trot, the fastest safe pace.
"Bugler," Raj
snapped. "Sound Charge!"
The man obeyed
instantly, but his eyes went wide. The troops responded as if the call were
playing directly on their nervous systems, clapping their heels to their dogs
and plunging forward. The floating bridge rocked and shuddered under the sudden
impact of thousands of half-tonne dogs accelerating to their running pace.
Howls and shouts rose over the massive thudding and creaking; Raj ignored them,
drew his sword and spurred Horace across the Maidan, the empty space by the
riverside, to the main water gate. It was broad, thank the Spirit; more than
broad enough for cavalry to take in four-abreast column, and there was a wide
straight avenue from there to the Plaza Real.
He looked westward,
squinting into the sun and straining to hear the sounds of combat from the city
walls. Green arrowed vectors painted themselves over his vision.
major
penetrations at these locations.
"There!" he yelled,
pointing with his sword.
Gerrin Staenbridge went
by with the banner of the 5th Descott; his reply was a flourish of his own
saber, and the men followed his abrupt curve with fluid precision.
"There!" Raj
directed the next battalion. "There! There!"
A fourth. "Follow
me!"
Not only over
the wall, they're into the bloody city, Staenbridge thought, as
the column of the 5th Descott burst out of the street into the harsh light of
the open ground just inside the city wall. Broad stairways angled up from the
roadway to the fighting platform; right now they were swarming with Colonials,
their crimson djellabas a solid blotch of color in the dark shade, an
occasional helmet-spike or officer's plume glinting. More were milling about on
the ground at its foot, the survivors of the first wave. They were
disorganized—not many in any unit would have made it this far—but that wouldn't
last. Men who'd made it through the killing ground outside and over the wall in
the first wave would be too aggressive to sit around waiting for orders.
"Deploy in line of
companies!" he roared. Buglers relayed the order every man half-expected.
The column of mounted
troopers pouring out of the mouth of the street split on either side of him,
fanning out like the arms of an outstretched capital Y with his banner as the
dividing point. In thirty seconds they were in a line facing the wall, and
moving forward three hundred strong.
"Dismount! Fix
bayonets!"
The dogs crouched and
the men stepped free, drawing their rifles from the scabbards. Steel glinted as
the long blades snapped home.
"Advance with fire,
volley fire by platoon ranks!"
BAM. The men moved
forward at the double. Colonial officers were hustling the wogs at the foot of
the wall into makeshift firing lines, moving them forward in turn. Can't
give them room to deploy. He'd be outnumbered too badly if he did. Unless
more troops arrived up from the river, and he couldn't count on that.
BAM. BAM. BAM. The 5th
could double forward and volley-fire at the same time, something possible only
with endless practice. There weren't many Colonials at the foot of the wall . .
. yet . . . and more of them were reloading than firing, pulling rounds out of
the loops across their chests and thumbing them through the loading gates of
their carbines. Men fell on both sides, stumbling out of his line, flopping
backward when the heavy 11mm Armory rounds punched them in the Colonials ahead.
A sound of iron wheels
on flagstones. A splatgun crew wheeled their weapon around and ran it forward.
Staenbridge pulled his dog aside.
"The
stairway!" he barked.
The master gunner nodded
and spun the elevating screw down to maximum. The honeycombed muzzle of the
weapon rose like the nose of a hunting dog sniffing the wind. Two more crewmen
moved the trail to his direction as he crouched over the breech. He snarled
satisfaction and spun the crank.
Braaaaap. Thirty-five
rounds punched into the mass of Colonials on the stairway. A bubble of dead and
dying sprang into existence in the thick crowd, instantly filled as more pressed
down from above. Braaaap.
Staenbridge spurred back
to his banner, dismounted. The rest of the command group followed. He drew his
revolver, tossed it into his left hand, then drew his saber and filled his
lungs. Bartin was beside him, hook ready, his double-barreled coach gun in his
good hand. Their eyes met for an instant.
"Charge!"
he shouted, and broke into a run forward.
With a bellow, the 5th
Descott threw themselves after their Colonel.
* * *
"Charge!" Raj
barked.
The trumpeter sounded
it; the brassy clamor echoed back from the silent walls of the houses on either
side.
"UPYARZ!
UPYARZ!" the men bellowed in reply.
Raj snarled silently and
leaned forward, point outstretched beyond Horace's neck. The 1/591st filled the
street from wall to wall; some of them were riding down the sidewalks, inside
the line of plane trees and gaslights that separated the brick walkway from the
granite paving blocks of the street. The heavy paws of the big Newfoundlands
made a drumming muffled thunder, and the column filled the road for better than
two hundred meters back. Even at a slow gallop it was insanely risky; he
gritted his teeth against the memory of what men looked like after a hundred
war-dogs trampled over them.
Just have to be careful.
Horace was a little
ahead of the pack, beside Raj's personal bannerman; the battalion standard and
Teodore Welf were to one side. Ahead was a thin scattering of Colonials,
running down the road; except for the ones turning to run away when they saw
that juggernaut of huge black dogs and white fangs, bared swords and shouting
barbarian faces. One officer—a high-ranking one, from the spray of plumes at
the front of his helmet—had managed to find a dog, in Civil Government–issue
harness. It was highly restive under its new rider. Dogs were like that; you
had to train with them a good long while before they accepted you, if they had
any spirit. He was keeping the reins and the cheek-levers they controlled
tight, and slapping at men's shoulders with the flat of his scimitar as he
hustled them into a semblance of a firing line.
His eyes grew wide as he
saw Raj's banner. He turned to meet the onrush, drawing an ornate silver-inlaid
revolver with his other hand. He clapped spurred heels to the dog's flanks; it
bounded forward and a little to one side, crabbing against the ruthless skill
of the rider as he forced it forward.
"Whitehall!"
he cried in Arabic. "Shaitan waits for thee, Whitehall—and God is
great!"
Crack. The bullet
scorched past Raj's face. Going to have a coal miner's tattoo from that one,
a distant corner of his mind recorded. The Arab had bleeding wounds across his
face in a nine-line pattern, but his eyes were utterly intent. One well-placed
shot or slash, and the heart would be out of the Civil Government force.
All the rest of his
attention was on the point of his saber. Luck as well as skill saved the
Colonial; his restive dog jibed at the last instant, and the swords crossed in
a unmelodious skirring of steel on steel. Nimble, the Colonial's dog pivoted in
its own length and started back to avoid the trampling rush of the Brigaderos.
The dismounted men ahead had no such option. They managed one volley, an
eruption of smoke and red fire. The whole front of the attacking line seethed
as men and dogs went down across the fifteen-meter front. Men arched through
the air to smash with bone-shattering force against the hard stuccoed stone of
the house walls or crumple on the pavement; one landed with gruesome accidental
accuracy on the crossbar of a gaslight and hung impaled and twitching like a
shrike's prey on a thorn.
But there was too much
momentum behind the charge for a single volley to halt, and many of the wounded
dogs kept their feet. The light 10mm bullets of the Colonial carbines were
deadly to men, but it took a lucky hit to kill a twelve-hundred-pound dog with
one shot. Riderless dogs were almost as dangerous as the ones with swordsmen on
their backs; one seized a Colonial by the head in its half-meter mouth and
flipped him over its tail with one flex of its massive neck. The rear files
squeezed by the thrashing chaos of the front rank, and the thin Colonial line
went down in a flurry of swordstrokes and two-inch fangs.
The Colonial officer was
very much alive. He took aim again; Raj threw himself down on the right side of
his dog, holding on to the pommel with one heel. A trick a Skinner nomad had
taught him, and it paid off . . . the pistol bullet went snapping through the
air where his body had been an instant before. He drew his pistol and shot
underneath Horace's belly, into the stomach of the Colonial's dog. The animal
hunched itself up in an astonishing leap that made the Arab release the gun and
grab for the reins; then two 1/591st troopers were on him. The scimitar flashed
against the heavy MilGov broadswords for one stroke, two, three; he slashed one
trooper across the face even as the other slammed his heavy blade through the
Arab's stomach.
Raj heaved himself
upright. That had been close. For a moment there were no wogs in sight
except the ones running away—and running away from a dog in a straight line was
a losing proposition. Then they were out into the cleared zone just inside the
wall. The main city gate—the one with the railway entrance—was just to his
right; it was wreathed in smoke, but the Civil Government's banners were still
flying above it, and the cannon mounted there were a constant rolling booom
of thunder. Ahead of him a thin line of Civil Government troopers—the three
companies of the 5th he'd left as the main reserve—were holding against a
growing tide of wogs pouring down from their foothold on the wall. Just barely
holding, and not for long; the Colonials had lost all unit cohesion coming over
the wall, but they were forming up again like crystals accreting in a saturated
solution, and more every minute.
The 5th's volleys rang
out, crisp and unhurried, but as he watched, they were losing men like a sugar
lump under a stream of hot tea.
Teodore Welf drew rein
beside him as the 1/591st fanned out into line. "Dismount?" he asked.
Raj shook his head.
"Not enough time. We've got to hit them before they get organized."
These MilGov knights
liked cold steel, and this was the situation for it. The whole scene in front
came in glimpses, flashing through gaps in the drifting clouds of sulfurous
smoke. More every second, as cannon and rifle fire pumped it out. Bullets went
by with an ugly crack sound. Five men down the line a trooper gave a
grunt and toppled slowly out of the saddle.
A captain of the 5th
dashed up, breathless. "Sir?"
"Get them out of
the way, Fittorio, then re-form on my left and give me fire support. Welf, get
those splatguns out to the right now we've got room for them. Move!"
The bugles sounded. The
Descotters ahead gave one last volley and turned, moving back at the double.
The ragged line of Colonials beyond them gave their yelping cheer and charged
in turn, unaware of what awaited behind. Unaware until the bugle sang, and the
dogs of the Brigaderos howled in unison. The screams of their riders were only
slightly more human. There was just space enough to build up momentum, but
plenty of room to deploy in the drill manual's double line. The cavalry came
looming up out of the smoke, big men on big dogs, their swords bright. They
crashed into the dismounted Colonials like a baulk of timber swinging at high
speed; men went down, slashed and stabbed and bowled over by sheer momentum.
Now we see how
well their training has sunk in, Raj thought. Aloud: "Halto! Dismount,
fix bayonets, forward with fire and movement, independent fire!"
One or two of the
troopers vanished into the throng ahead, eyes fixed and froth dripping from
their mouths. The rest halted and stepped off their crouching dogs, sheathing
swords and drawing their firearms—although some might not have, if the dogs
hadn't stopped automatically. Click, and the long bayonets snapped onto
the Armory rifles. The men walked forward in a steady line, not quite
straight—more like a very shallow C—taking their dressing from the battalion
standard and Raj's beside it. The front of their formation showed level for an
instant, then vomited smoke. The sheet of fire smashed into the Colonials
clustered at the base of the stairway.
The detachment of the
5th moved into place on the left flank, swinging in like a hinged door. The
splatguns wheeled by at a trot and unlimbered, pushing into place to cover the
gap between the end of the line on his right and the bare ground around the
gate, swept by fire from the bastion towers.
Raj took a step forward.
"Charge!" he shouted.
The troopers leveled
their bayonets and ran in pounding unison; he ran along with them. The
Colonials wavered, and then fled. The bayonet's a terror weapon, Raj
knew. It didn't really kill all that many people, not in this age of
breech-loaders, but there were times when it could make men run. Or try
to run; the stairway that slanted down along the wall was too jammed with men
for the ones on the ground to make much headway. Figures in crimson djellabas
began to fall from the stairs in ones and twos, caught and squeezed out when
the pressure from above and below forced the thick torrent of men to buckle
sideways.
"Halto!
Volley fire!"
The order relayed down
the chain of officers. One rank knelt, the other firing over their heads. The
rifles came up, aiming upward into the press. BAM. BAM. BAM. Rippling down the
line, rounds whanging and keening off the stone, punching through three and
four men at a time.
"Platoon
column," Raj roared. "Welf, feed them up after us—you men, follow
me!"
"To hell with that,"
the young MilGov noble said, and relayed the command. A column of forty
troopers formed, with the banners only a few ranks from the front.
"Hadelande!"
"Upyarz!"
Many of the first
Colonials went down with the bayonets in their backs. The troopers to the rear
of the column fired over their comrades' heads, up the broad stairway. From the
foot of it, six hundred men did likewise, and the splatguns with their muzzles raised
to maximum elevation. Trapped, the Colonials on the stair turned to fight.
Raj found himself
shoulder to shoulder with Teodore Welf; bayonets bristled on either side of
them, and the banners waved behind. Up a step. Raj caught a scimitar on
the guard of his saber, shot under it into his opponent's body. It tumbled down
underfoot, and he nearly went over himself, with no room for his feet. An
Armory rifle shot next to his ear, leaving it ringing. He threw himself back
into swordsman's stance, right foot forward, and lunged again. Again. Welf was
fighting with a long dagger in his right hand, using the heavy single-edged
broadsword in his left like a ribbon saber; blond hair flew about his shoulders
as he howled some Namerique war chant with every other breath. Fire swept the
stairs ahead of them; Raj's hair crawled on the back of his neck at the thought
of what would happen if somebody aimed a little low.
Or if these wogs
had the time to reload. One did. Center's green aiming-grid slapped down across
Raj's vision, outlining the figure in strobing light. He moved the red dot onto
the center of mass and pulled the trigger, and the man spun away with the
carbine flying out of his hands. Another target designated; he turned slightly,
the pistol outstretched, squeezed the trigger. It was a hand bomb beginning its
arc downward towards him, an impossible target . . . impossible without Center.
Left-handed, at that. The iron sphere exploded less than a meter from the
thrower when the bullet struck it.
A lot of men had seen
that, seen his arm like a pointer and the result. It was close enough to a
miracle as no matter, to anyone with practical experience of firearms. Welf
shouted:
"Spirit with us!
Spirit of Man for Messer Raj!"
The Brigaderos behind
him took it up; and some of the stubborn fight went out of the Colonials ahead.
More and more were running back up, trying for the grappling lines and ladders
over the walls. Raj chanced a look over his shoulder; more banners in the open
ground beneath the wall: the 18th Komar, the 7th Descott. The stone was
slippery underfoot, slippery with red rivulets running down from above. Fire
from the ground was raking the firing platform above, deliberately built with
little rear cover.
Not often you
actually see that, see ground running with blood. The last time had been
in Port Murchison, when Conner Auburn's fleet had sailed into his ambush.
Suddenly he was
staggering onto level ground, the fighting platform on the wall; fire from
below ceased, and a huge cheer went up as the bannermen waved their flags back
and forth. Bodies heaped the pavement. Men poured out of the bastion towers
before and behind him, shooting and wielding bayonet and rifle butt, shotguns
and clubbed ramrods for the gunners. Ladders toppled as men thrust with poles
or the points of their bayonets, through the firing slits and from the roof
above.
Silence fell—comparative
silence: only the cannonade and the screams of the wounded that littered the
platform and stairs and the ground on both sides of the wall. He stepped up to
a gunslit and looked out. The Colonial artillery was firing again; shells
whined by overhead and crashed into the city behind.
"Get—" he
turned and croaked; then stopped, realizing that he didn't recognize the man
holding his banner. There were always volunteers for that job, and a continuous
need for them. One of the runners was still there, though, reloading his pistol
with a hand that dripped blood. "Verbal order to the battalion commanders.
Pull their men back into cover. Get me Menyez. And then get that seen to."
"Ser."
The staircase was
emptying; men rushed up it to take positions at the firing slits. Others helped
or carried the wounded back below; the enemy went over the side to fall like
bundles of discarded clothing to the hard-packed earth below. Except that
bundles didn't scream on the way down, sometimes . . . Well, no time for
niceties.
A voice spoke in
Namerique: "Otto, this whore's son is alive—shoot!"
Raj looked up sharply
and said in the same language: "Check there isn't one of ours alive under
there first, man."
The big trooper braced
himself and then began dragging bodies away by their legs; two of his comrades
waited to either side, bayonetted rifles poised, and an ensign joined them with
his revolver drawn. Half a dozen of the bodies were Colonial regulars, the
remainder Civil Government infantry—24th Valencia, by the shoulder-flashes.
24th's been taking it on
the chin, Raj thought. They died hard, though, by the Spirit.
Suddenly he had time to
notice his own panting exhaustion, and the way his harness seemed to squeeze at
his ribs. He felt for the canteen at his belt and found it empty, the bottom
half ripped open in a flower of jagged tinned iron. Somebody made a joke as he
tossed it aside, and he felt his testicles trying to draw up. He wasn't afraid
of death, much—it was more that he had so much to do—but there were some
wounds that were much more terrifying. A trooper handed him another canteen and
he rinsed out his mouth, spat, and drank; it was water cut with vinegar,
cutting through the dust and phlegm in his throat.
"Tenk," he said—the
Namerique word for thanks—and handed it back.
He started to wipe his
mouth on the back of his sleeve, then stopped when he realized it was still
sodden with blood. There was a little less on his left arm, so he used that
instead. Now he could feel the sting of a half-dozen minor wounds, mostly
superficial cuts, and a couple of bone-bruises. He broke open the revolver,
ejected the spent brass and reloaded, then cleaned his saber a little, enough
to resheath it. A trooper swore from the pile of dead.
"This one is
alive, and he's one of ours!"
Raj moved over. His
brows rose; that looked like a minor miracle. The infantryman was even more
covered with blood than Raj, although—just like the stuff all over Raj—most of
it didn't seem to be his own. A huge bruise covered one side of his face; a
rifle lay beside him, the butt shattered and bayonet bent. The rings of a
half-dozen handbombs were still on his fingers.
Raj whistled silently,
and a number of the cavalry troopers nodded. He went on one knee and extended
his hand; someone put another canteen in it, and he used that and his neckcloth
to wipe some of the crusted blood from the man's face. He was young, no more
than his early twenties, and rather light-skinned.
corporal minatelli, Center supplied. enlisted in old residence two years ago.
literate, watch-stander. Details from the service record ran through his
mind with the icy certainty of the ancient computer's data-transfer.
Damn, if he's as good as
he looks, make that Ensign Minatelli, Raj thought.
The noncom's eyes
snapped open, and he started violently, hand reaching for the knife in his
boot. Raj caught it with irresistible strength.
"Easy there, fellow
soldier," he said.
Minatelli controlled a
dry retch. Raj checked his pupils; no noticeable difference in the dilation, so
the concussion couldn't be too bad. A day's weakness and a bad headache. Lucky:
any blow strong enough to knock you out was a real risk to life and limb.
"Sor," he
said. The situation seemed to be sinking in. "Anyone else, sor?" he
said hoarsely, with a clipped Spanjol accent under the Army dialect of
Sponglish.
Definitely
Ensign Minatelli, Raj decided. He looked up at the 1/591st junior officer
with a question in his face.
"One other,
sir—we're giving him first aid now. Looks fairly bad but he might make
it."
"Sorry, son,"
Raj said.
"Spirit,"
Minatelli whispered. "Did our best, sor, but t'ere was just too
many."
"You did fine,
soldier. You held them long enough for us to get here."
He slapped the young man
gently on the shoulder and rose. Teams of stretcher bearers were coming up the
stairs at a run, now that they were a little clearer. A messenger preceded
them.
"Ser. From Colonel
Staenbridge—wogs back on their sida t'wall. Same frum Major Belagez."
That was a relief,
though not unexpected. This had been the most dangerous penetration, the one
nearest to the main gate.
"Raj!"
He looked around
quickly; it was Suzette, with Fatima in tow and a Renunciate nun-doctor, who
was bending over the wounded men being loaded onto the stretchers. Raj looked
down at himself . . . well, it was a little alarming. She finished
helping tie off a bandage and picked up her kit, walking over to him with a
determined expression.
"It's not
mine," he said, slightly defensive.
"Well, what about this?"
she asked.
Raj looked down in
genuine surprise. There was a long slash down his right arm, starting just
above the wrist and running to his elbow. He worked the fingers. Not deep
enough to really hurt, and it was with the grain of the muscle anyway. The soft
scab broke and fresh blood oozed out along the path the scimitar had traced. Must
have been a good one, he thought absently. They had some really fine
swordsmiths in Al Kebir and Gedorosia, who made blades you could cut through a
floating scarf of torofib-silk with; ones that would keep the edge when
they hacked through bone.
"Take that jacket
off right now."
Suzette's voice was
determined. Raj obeyed automatically, and caught some of the soldiers
concealing grins. All part of the legend, he thought resignedly. Even
Horace had his place in it, and they all had to follow their roles willy-nilly.
He swore mildly as she swabbed out the cut with iodine and washed down the arm
before bringing out a roll of bandages.
"Is all that
necessary?" he said.
"It should
have some stitches," she said tartly. "Try not to use it too
hard."
"I'll try," he
promised. Then he smiled. "I couldn't let you be the only one to collect a
scar from this campaign, now could I? Think of my reputation."
She gave an unwilling
snort of laughter. "Your reputation will suffer even more if you get
killed doing a lieutenant's work. Let the younger men have a chance."
"When you stay home
and do embroidery, my dear, it's a deal."
He levered himself erect
from his seat on a ledge and looked up. 0900, he thought. Less than two
hours past dawn.
Looking down from the
fighting platform, he saw that the cleared ring inside the walls was mostly
empty. Except for the enemy dead, of course. Burial parties. He'd look
in on the wounded . . . Get those fires under control. The Colonial
shelling had started more; luckily, Sandoral was mostly a city of adobe, brick,
and stone with tiled roofs supported by arches—timber had always been expensive
here, and he'd ripped out most of it for the bridge.
"Back to
work," he said, and walked toward the staircase. Flies rose in a buzzing
cloud from the stone, amid the faint sweetish smell of blood beginning to rot
in the hot morning sun. A severed hand lay almost in his path; he started to
kick it aside, then shook his head and walked down the stairs.
The flags crackled in
the wind as his bannermen followed.
Suzette was pale. Fatima
looked up in alarm; neither of them was a stranger to field-hospitals after all
these years, so it couldn't be that. With a shudder, the Arab girl remembered
her first time here, the first battle, four years ago. Then there had
been huge wooden tubs set up at the feet of the operating tables, to hold the
amputated limbs. And they had been full, all that endless day. Bartin had lost
his hand that day; she'd held his shoulders down while the surgeon worked.
This was mild, by
comparison. Only a few dozen shattered limbs to come off, with plenty of time
to dose the worst cases with opium. A few hundred others, and more than half
would live. But Suzette did look ill as she walked among the cots set up
in the main chamber of Sandoral's cathedron. The air smelled of old incense and
wax, under the stink of disinfectant and blood.
She was still Messa
Whitehall. She finished the conversation, turned on her heel, and walked
without running to the door. Fatima followed, grabbing up a towel. Retching
sounds came from the cubicle; it was a priest's vesting room, in normal times.
Suzette knelt and vomited into a bucket. Fatima hurried up beside her and
handed her the towel, then went back for water.
"I don't understand
it," Suzette said, wiping her face and slumping back in the chair.
Fatima put a hand on her
forehead. "You're not running a fever, Messa."
"No, I'm not. And I
feel fine, most of the time; just these last couple of mornings I—" She
stopped. "What date is it?"
"Second of Huillio.
Why do you want to . . . oh!"
Suzette's eyes went
round. She turned her head slowly and met Fatima's gaze. The younger woman's
mouth dropped open; she squeaked before managing to get out a coherent word:
"I thought . . . I
thought you couldn't, that is—" She stopped in embarrassment.
"No, there wasn't
enough time," Suzette said dazedly. Then her face firmed. "This is not
to go beyond these walls, understand?"
"Of course,
Messa," Fatima said soothingly. "But wouldn't Messer Raj want to
know?"
"Not while he's got
so much to worry about," Suzette said.
* * *
The flat rooftop terrace
of Sandoral's District Offices made an excellent observation post, being close
to the river and higher than the tops of the maidan wall; it was also far
enough in from the defenses that Colonial shells were unlikely to land in the
vicinity. The noon sun pounded down, turning the blue tile of the floor pale,
drawing knife edges of shadow around the topiaries and pergolas. City
administrators had held their receptions here, amid the potted bougainvillea
and sambuca jasmine that had already begun to wilt without care. The iron heel
plates of the officers' boots sounded on the floors, harsh and metallic. A
heliograph station occupied one corner, and a map table and working desk had
been set up by the railing nearest the river.
"Well, he's not
wasting any time," Raj said.
Through the
tripod-mounted heavy binoculars the east bank showed plainly. Tewfik's
seal-of-Solomon banner waved from the highest ground; around it several
thousand men worked with pick and shovel.
Grammek Dinnalsyn was
using a telescope, also mounted; he made a few precise adjustments to the
screws and sketched on a pad.
"That's not
intended for his whole force," he said. "About three, four hundred
men, perhaps."
Raj nodded agreement and
took another bite of his sandwich. Which reminds me . . .
"Jorg," he
said. "You've had your men on half-rations while we were away?"
"Si. Mostly
hardtack and jerky, some fish and dried fruit."
"The whole command
is back on full rations as of now," he said. "Bait the dogs properly,
too. Muzzaf, get me a complete inventory of supplies. And fuel."
"Si,"
the little Komarite said. "Seyhor, I can tell you immediately—we
have less than a week's supply at that rate of expenditure."
"Excellent,"
Raj said with a smile. The others looked at him oddly. "I presume Ali
knows?"
"The
outlines," Menyez said. "We've had a few deserters, mostly from the
garrison units. Presumably they've 'taken the turban' and told him what they
know."
Raj nodded thoughtfully.
"Any the other way?"
"Three—two from
their transport corps, claim to be Star Church believers conscripted for
supplies. The other's a Zanj."
The Colony had conquered
some of the outlying city-states there, but was fiercely resented. The Zanj
were of different race than most of the Colonials, and followed a branch of
Islam the conquerors thought heretical.
"They're probably
spies, of course," Menyez concluded. "I've kept them in close
confinement."
"I'll talk to them;
I can usually get the truth out of a man," Raj said. He was conscious of
sidelong glances; another part of the myth, that it was impossible to lie to
Messer Raj. It is when Center's looking through my eyes, he thought.
"In any case, it doesn't matter what Ali knows. Or even what Tewfik
knows."
Barton Foley pointed.
"They're bringing men across."
Everyone raised their
glasses. An overloaded fishing skiff labored across the current, on a
trajectory that would land it just south of Sandoral's walls on the western
bank. Heads and V-marks of ripples showed where dogs on lead-halters swam in
the boat's wake. On the riverbank it had left, men were building an earth ramp
down to the water's edge and putting together a raft from bits and pieces,
date-palm logs and thin boards that looked as if they'd come from some sheep
fence.
"It'll take him a
while to get his men back to Ali," Gerrin Staenbridge said, examining his
nails. The way the Civil Government forces had scavenged up every small boat
and all available materials was handicapping their enemies badly. "You
have something in mind, don't you, mi heneral?"
Raj grinned at him.
"Possibly. Can you think what?"
Staenbridge shook his
head. Raj nodded amiably.
"And that's an
excellent thing too," he said. "Because you're an extremely
perceptive officer, and you have all the information. If you can't
figure it out, probably Tewfik can't either. Gentlemen, I want you to spend the
rest of today and tomorrow reorganizing. Don't let your men settle in too
tight—I want full readiness to move at a moment's notice. Those units that've
been hit hard, do the necessary shifting around immediately. Weapons
maintenance, ammunition issues, the lot—again, immediately, please.
Understood?"
Nods. "Grammeck,
this afternoon I want to go over some matters with you; bring the complete
plans for the pontoon bridge, please. If there aren't any questions,
Messers?"
There was obviously one
burning one, but nobody was going to ask it. Jorg Menyez remained when the
others had left the flat rooftop.
"Colonel?" Raj
asked. It wasn't like Jorg to talk for reassurance sake. He was obviously a
little embarrassed.
"Heneralissimo,"
he said. "Ah . . . I thought you'd want to know about Osterville."
"Osterville?"
Raj asked. It was an effort to remember the man; he hadn't thought of him since
Ain el-Hilwa. And good riddance. "It's enough that he isn't here,
making trouble."
"No, he won't be
doing that," Menyez said. "It was unpleasant, but as you said, it was
necessary."
Raj looked at him.
Menyez flushed. "All right, mi heneral. I destroyed the letter and
your seal, and he went into the Drangosh with a sixty-kilo roundshot tied to
his ankles . . . but I still don't like it."
Raj nodded. "Of
course, Jorg." Only Suzette has my seal. "I understand."
He shivered slightly,
despite the heat of the day.
* * *
A dot of red light
arched over the wall, trailing fire through the darkness. Thud. It
exploded among the vacant houses—hopefully vacant houses—and a column of fire
rose into the night. Another spark. Thud.
"That makes six the
past hour," Raj murmured to himself.
in the past fifty-five minutes thirty
seconds, Center added. harassing
fire.
"Ali's obviously
decided to starve us out," Raj agreed.
An image drifted across
his eyes: his own emaciated body, still living, naked and covered with weals
and burns. Pairs of dogs were hitched to chains attached to each ankle and
wrist. The drivers urged the dogs forward slowly, gradually taking up the
slack. Ali ibn'Jamal sat watching, pounding his fist on the arm of his portable
throne and laughing with pleasure, licking his full lips. Tewfik stood to one
side, arms crossed and a look of faint disgust on his face, echoed by most of
the noblemen and officers around him. Behind him a gallows stood skeletal
against the sky, with the bodies of the Companions dangling from it—by
meathooks through their ribs. Several of them were still writhing . . .
Raj made a grimace of
distaste. "Even by the standards of Mihwel the Terrible, Ali is a prime
case."
a subjective
judgment, but accurate. child-rearing practices among the colonial royal family
are conducive to severely dysfunctional personalities.
A step sounded on the
tiles behind him. There had been no challenge and response from the sentries on
the stair below, so it could be only one person.
Suzette leaned on the
railing beside him, looking out over the city and the glistening water.
"Full circle, my love," she said. "Sandoral, and a battle to
come."
"And men dying
unexpectedly," he said.
She turned her face
towards him, drawn and pale beneath the moons. "Osterville couldn't lead
and wouldn't follow and wouldn't get out of the way and let you work, either.
Can you imagine the sort of havoc he'd have created back here, with everything
depending on Jorg keeping things running smoothly? We'd have ended up swimming
across, while Osterville tried to make everyone do things his way."
"Jorg—"
"Jorg is good man
and a good officer, but he doesn't have your talent for facing men
down—especially not men higher on the chain of command. You know that." A
little anger crept into her voice: "How many better men have been killed
on this campaign so far?"
Raj smiled ruefully and
shook his head. "You always could out-argue me," he said. A shrug.
"I just don't like having a fellow officer killed like that. It's the sort
of thing Tzetzas does."
Suzette sighed. "I
don't like it either," she said quietly. "But it had to be
done."
Raj nodded. They watched
another Colonial shell come over the walls.
"It's cold,"
Suzette said in a small voice.
Raj extended his arm and
the long military cloak he wore. Suzette came under it and laid her cheek
against his chest.
"We can't afford
any mistakes this time, can we?" she said after a moment.
"No," Raj
replied. He looked up at the moons. They'd be rising late, tomorrow evening. Victory
or death, he thought. All men die, but this has to be done.
"Let's turn in."
* * *
"Precisely this bearing,"
Raj said.
He drew a line in the
dust with the stick. Behind him the artillerymen staked down their frame—two
sets of rigid beams at right angles, with a slanted piece across the arms. They
aligned it with the mark in the dust; once it was firmly in place, they pushed
the gun up the slanted fronting of the frame and tied off the wheels at a chalk
mark on the wood.
"Range is exactly
3,525 meters," Raj said. "Load contact, two-second delay."
"Sir," the
gunner said, giving him a glance.
How could you know? Raj read in his
face. And a trace of awe; men knew he didn't make empty boasts.
Raj walked on to the
next gun's position as the iron clang of the breechblock sounded behind him.
All fifty-eight surviving field guns were lined up just inside the north wall
of Sandoral, all up on the frames; all aligned along the precise vector he'd
drawn in the dirt for them. Every single one, as far as Center could judge, was
now aiming at the exact midpoint of earth above Ali's command bunker, behind
the Colonial outworks—where he invariably retired after the sunset prayer. All
the fortress guns in the fixed positions on the wall were aligned as well,
those of them that would bear on the target.
Irregularities—wear on
the rifling of guns, slight differentials in shell loading and drag,
whatever—would spread the projectiles. It ought to be an unpleasant surprise,
nonetheless.
Dinnalsyn looked back at
the long row of guns. "Think we'll get him, mi heneral?"
"No," Raj
said. "That's a very secure bunker. The last thing I want to do is put
Tewfik in full command. But it'll certainly get his attention, and Ali's got a
short temper. If I know my man, he'll do something stupid."
The limbers stood in a
row five meters behind the guns, the dog teams in traces and lying down.
"Are the rafts
ready?" Raj said.
"Ready and waiting,
sir," Dinnalsyn said. "The planking and decking from the pontoon
bridge was exactly as much as we needed . . . I suppose that's no
coincidence?"
"You might say
that," Raj replied. He clapped him on the shoulder. "Stay ready for
it."
The last of the cavalry
battalions on special duty were sitting by the wall, finishing their evening
meal: beans and pigmeat and onions, dished out from kettles over camp fires and
scooped up with tortillas. It was the 5th Descott. They were professionals
enough to concentrate on eating, but he could feel the tension crackling off
them. He walked over and made a beckoning gesture. They crowded around him and
crouched or sat at his hand signal; only about three hundred fifty left—and the
battalion had been at double strength when he took it west to fight the
Brigade.
"All right,
dog-brothers," he said quietly. That forced them to listen carefully and
lean closer; it also made each man feel as if he was talking to that one alone,
as an individual. "You've guessed that something's up. Two hours after
sundown—"
The sun was just
touching the western horizon.
"—the guns are
going to cut loose with a five-round stonk. The second the last gun fires—but
not before—you give the wogs five rounds rapid. Then you come back down from
the wall, ride your dogs to the docks, get on the rafts and off we go."
He paused a moment.
"You're all fighting men and all Descotters," he went on. "My
father and grandfather and great-grandfather fought the wogs, and so did
yours."
Nods; Descotter rancheros
held their land on military tenure, paying their tax in men rather than money.
Fathers and sons and brothers followed each other into the same battalions time
out of mind; comrades were neighbors at home, officers the squire's sons.
"There's a lot of
Descotter blood and bone buried around here. Now we have a chance to end
it." That caused a rustle, men coming forward in their crouch and leaning
on their rifles. "If we win this one, we break them—not just push them
back, but wreck them for all time. If we lose . . ." He grinned.
"Well, we haven't done much losing while we've been together, you and I,
have we?"
A low snarl of
agreement. "Everything depends on the wogs thinking we're still here, at
least for a while. You'll move back to the docks quickly and you'll do it
quietly, and with no foul-ups. Understood?"
Gerrin Staenbridge
stepped forward. "You can count on us, mi heneral," he said
solemnly. Another growl from the ranks.
* * *
"Keep it quiet,
keep it quiet," Ensign Minatelli said.
There were only fifteen
men left in his platoon, now—several of them lightly wounded—so it wasn't very
different from running his squad. The star on the front of his helmet still
felt like a weight of lead to his spirit, though. They formed up outside their
bivouac, in the forecourt of what had been a nobleman's house. Minatelli walked
down his platoon, giving everything a final check. The men's haversacks were
full, three days' rations—smoked pork and hardtack, dried apricots and figs—and
extra ammunition in their blanket rolls.
"Company G, fall
in."
The men found their
places by instinct, in column of twos back from the company pennant. It was dark
outside: the city gaslights were out, of course—nobody left to shovel coal and
tend the tank-farms—and all torches and fires had been forbidden.
Just as well, he thought. It
was frightening how few of them were left; the main Colonial attack had come
right over their sector of the wall yesterday. Forty men in the company, barely
a full platoon.
The battalion colors
came by, and Major Felasquez carrying a shuttered bull's-eye light. His one eye
gleamed a little as he turned, stopped for a brief murmur with Captain Pinya
and stepped closer to the men.
"All right,
lads," he said, a little louder.
Don't expect the wogs
could hear even if we shouted, Minatelli thought. On the other hand, it gets
everyone thinking quiet.
"We've had enough
from the towel-heads; now we're going to give it back, the way the monkey gave
it to the miller's wife, by surprise and from the rear. Mind your orders, do it
right, and with the Spirit's help and Messer Raj's plan, we'll whip them."
He stepped back. "24th Valencia Foot-Waymanos!"
The column moved forward
jerkily; it was strange to the point of being dizzying not to step off to the
beat of the drum, and the troops had been told not to march in step. The
uniform clash of hobnails on stone pavement was like nothing else on earth, and
it carried. Instead they walked, with an occasional quiet curse as somebody
stepped on the heels of the man ahead. Guides stood at intersections, their
lanterns the only light in the deserted city. Minatelli kept his hand on the
hilt of his new sword and ignored the eerie quietness.
Through the river gate
the darkness lifted a little; a one-quarter Miniluna and the stars reflected
off the rippled surface of the water. Gravel crunched, then planks boomed a
little under their boots. The column halted.
"24th
Valencia?" someone asked ahead, a dim figure against the water. "This
way."
They waited; the men
ahead melted away company by company. "Company G, this way."
The men scrambled
through the knee-high water and into the barge; it was one of the boxlike
constructs he'd helped to cobble together out of wood salvaged from wrecked
houses. A long steering-oar marked the notional stern, and there were men
standing to the sweeps on either side, six to a flank. They had only a single
shuttered lantern to work with, but despite the darkness and the crowding only
an occasional thump and oath marked someone tripping as they clambered down
from the planking to the hold of the crude vessel.
"You'll be pulling
the outermost raft," Captain Pinya said.
"That one,
sir?" Minatelli said, pointing.
"That's right,
Ensign."
Ensign. Spirit.
My folks will never believe it.
He shook himself back to
the present. There were so many more ways to fuck up at a higher rank.
Right now, that could get everyone killed.
He saluted and climbed
down himself, a little awkward with no rifle on his shoulder and a sword and
pistol at his belt. He turned around as soon as he was at the bow, making sure
everyone's equipment was blacked as ordered. Right. Nothing showing but
eyeballs.
"Cast off," he
said quietly.
The ropes were undone
and the barge began to drift. "That way," he said, pointing.
The rowers were from the
Sandoral District garrison; they'd all had some experience moving these damned
things around. They dug their clumsy oars into the water and heaved, grunting.
One step forward, lower the oar, haul it one step back. Minatelli thumped the
boards beside him softly to keep the beat, peering ahead to his target. It was
almost invisible until they were on top of it, two sections of the pontoon
bridge decking with some timbers in between.
"Halto," he said.
Hands and poles on the
raft fended them off and turned the barge around. Ropes were made fast to both
sides of the stern, and then the barge released to drift slowly downstream. It
halted with a slight jerk, held by the cables that anchored the row of rafts.
Minatelli looked back along them, back to the shore and the black silhouette of
the city wall. The sun had been down at least an hour and a half. More and more
of the pontoon barges and every other type of boat available on the Sandoral
docks—the ones that hadn't had a chance to get upstream when the news of the
invasion got here—put out into the darkening water, anchoring or sculling up to
the rafts. The docks were a moving carpet of men, helmets and furled banners
and the muzzles of slung rifles.
Not long now.
"Rest easy,
boys," he said. "Rest a bit."
* * *
"Gently,
gently," Suzette whispered.
The infantrymen assigned
as stretcher bearers were well-meaning but clumsy. There were enough of them to
manhandle the stretchers into the bottom of the barge and fit them into the
crude racks the carpenters had made, turning them into improvised bunk beds.
The wounded were dosed heavily with opium to dull the pain of movement, but now
and then a man would moan in his delirium. The Renunciates and priest-doctors
moved quickly among them, checking pulses.
"Spirit have mercy,
this one's dead," a nun said.
"Leave him
be," Suzette replied. Damn.
The final load came from
the carriages and handcarts they'd pressed into service as ambulances.
She looked west, towards
the ramparts.
* * *
"Drop it in, don't
throw it!" Jorg Menyez hissed.
An officer relayed the
order. Endless files of infantrymen passed sacks of hardtack and crates of
dried meat and fruit from hand to hand, out from the wagons to the end of the
pier. Once there, they knelt and let their burdens drop into the water. The
current caught them, the hardtack floating for a few minutes before
waterlogging dragged it down with a scatter of bubbles, the pierced casks and
boxes sinking faster.
A good thing
this is fresh water. There would be downdraggers in a feeding-frenzy if they
tried this in a harbor. Doubtless the plesiosauroids out in the deeper water
would be feeding full tonight, as it was.
"Colonel. Major
Tormidero sends 'is compliments, and is 'e to load tha wine?"
"No," Menyez
said, biting off the damned fool with an effort. "Tell him Ali's
men may drown their sorrows as they wish, if they don't fear Allah's
wrath."
But not a scrap
of food will they find in Sandoral, he thought with hard glee. He sneezed into his
handkerchief, not too badly; there weren't any dogs in the immediate
neighborhood. It was pitch black. He looked anxiously over the river to the
Colonial fortlet planted where the pontoon bridge had been. Evidently they
hadn't seen anything unusual, either. It's a siege. They don't expect anything
to happen.
"Spirit, but this
is a madman's gamble," he whispered to himself, lips barely moving. The
only chance at victory . . . but what a chance.
"And what a story
to tell the grandchildren, if we pull it off!"
If they didn't . . .
* * *
Ali ibn'Jamal took
another handful of rice and grilled lamb, belching politely. It was
surprisingly good, considering what the cooks had to work with; the army was on
preserved rations wagoned up from the bridgehead. His own cook had priority on
what little the foragers were bringing in, of course. The bunker had been made
quite homelike: silk tapestries and silk-and-gold thread Al Kebir carpets,
embroidered cushions about low tables of chiseled brass, incense in
crescent-shaped burners on tripods about the walls. The lamplight had been
turned down to a civilized level, and zebec and zither played melodiously from
behind a screen in one corner. Ali ate, and held out his hands for the slave to
wash with rosewater and towel dry.
"Your appetite
should be better, Tewfik my brother," he said, and belched again.
"Think of how the kaphar pigs within Sandoral's walls would drool
and slaver at the sight of such a feast!"
Tewfik turned from a
low-voiced conversation with his officers. "Indeed, Settler of the House
of Peace," he said. "They are very short of supplies. That is why I
fear some new trick of this Shaitan's-seed Whitehall."
Ali scowled for a
moment, then gestured expansively. "Whitehall is trapped," he said.
"He cannot sortie—our men outnumber his and are strongly entrenched; our
rear, even, is protected by great works, even though no relieving force of any
numbers can approach. He cannot build his bridge of boats again, with your fort
and its guns covering the opposite bank. What can he do but starve?"
"Commander of the
Faithful, I do not know what he can do. And that is what—"
"My lord." One
of the duty officers of the Settler's guard came up to Tewfik and bowed.
"You commanded that we notify you: the infidel have launched a signal
rocket from the walls. One blue starburst."
A gun boomed in the
distance. They all ignored it; the Colonial artillery was lobbing a steady
round every twenty minutes into Sandoral, to keep the infidels from sleeping
easily.
Another boom, and
another; and the explosion of a shell, far too close. Another junior officer
dashed down the stairs into the bunker.
"From the
walls!" he shouted. "Lords, all the kaphar guns are
firing from—"
* * *
"Fwego!"
Grammeck Dinnalsyn swept
his saber downward. POUMPH. The first of the field guns vomited a long tongue
of red flame into the night, backlighting the cloud of smoke that swirled away
from the muzzle. Like a ripple, the line of explosions swept down the row of
guns, repeated fifty-eight times. The noise was deafening, shock-waves echoing
back from the high flat surface of the city wall like pillows of hot air
smacking into face and chest. Already the stairways were showing running men,
the militia gunners; one per gun on the walls, each to pull the lanyard on a
weapon pre-laid on its target.
The first field gun had
already fired its second round by the time the last piece discharged at the
other end of the line. The crews moved with smooth, metronomic precision. The
guns couldn't recoil, up on the elevating frames—although he hated to see the
trails overstressed like this; it was asking for trouble later. Each piece had
a stack of five extra shells next to it, with preset fuses. Swing the lever and
wrench the breech aside; the brass shell clanged out, with a puff of
sulfur-reeking smoke. Loader shoved the next round in, breechman pushed the
interrupted-screw block home and slapped the lever down, master gunner clipped
his lanyard to the toggle, and fire.
Six rounds, and silence
except for the ringing of abused ears. The master gunners of the two central
pieces slashed the ties holding the wheels to the elevating frames with their
swords, and the pieces ran down the sloped timbers. The crews snatched up the
trails before the pieces could slow, running them back to the limbers and
slapping the locking-rings down. The pins went home with an iron clank, men
leaped into the saddle or swung onto the axletree seats, and the guns rumbled
off down toward the docks at a round trot. An instant later the sound changed
to a hard rattle as the metal rims of the wheels rose onto the cobblestones.
The maneuver was repeated again and again, each gun out from the first two
cutting loose and limbering up to follow.
Dinnalsyn neck-reined
his dog around. The guns were vanishing into the night, and small-arms fire
crackled from the ramparts above. Alone but for his aides and messengers, he
saluted the walls.
"Here's to you, heneralissimo,"
he said. "I don't know how the hell you manage it, but it's never dull. Waymanos!"
He clapped heels to his
dog.
* * *
Corporal M'Telgez was
acutely conscious of Messer Raj standing quietly behind him as the artillery
bellowed. It was blacker than a meter up a sauroid's butt here on the wall's
fighting platform; and it smelled of old death, rotting blood and bits of
bodies. He willed himself to ignore the smell, and the feeling of
confinement—he was a dog-and-saddle man, not a mole or a town-dweller—and the
far more nerve-wracking presence of the heneralissimo. Not that he was
one to interfere with a man doing his work, far from it. It was just a little
disconcerting to have Messer Raj and the Colonel and the Captain all pick your
spot to pause when the balloon went up. There was a gap in the gabions he'd
picked earlier for his first aiming point. Invisible in the darkness now, but
pretty soon-
"Fwego!"
The stubby mortars on
the towers chugged. Starshells burst over the wog entrenchments, throwing a
flickering blue-white magnesium light. He exhaled and squeezed the trigger. Crack.
His rifle punched his shoulder. He worked the lever and reached for one of the
rounds in the wooden holder beside his hand. Crack. A Colonial gun fired
from the forward trenches. He adjusted his sights and aimed for it, with any
luck a round might ricochet off the barrel and into one of the crew. Crack.
Crack. Crack.
"Cease fire!
Rearward, on the double!" he called out.
His squad was closest to
the staircase. They double-timed down it, through the hot dark and the faint
reflected light of the starshells, while the field guns blazed away to their
right. Eyes and teeth glimmered from the dogs crouching in neat rows in the
open space within the walls; they were too well trained to move when they'd
been told to stay, but the noise made them eager and uneasy. They rose with a
surge as their riders straddled them. M'Telgez's feet found the stirrups, and
he slid his rifle into the scabbard, taking the reins in tightly with his left
hand. More and more men poured down the stairways by the gates, until the whole
battalion was mounted.
No trumpet calls, but
the men fell in—every dog knew its place by smell, if nothing else. M'Telgez
saw the shadowy length of the battalion standard go by, and an arm flash up. He
tapped his heel to Pochita's flank, and the whole column broke into a fast walk
that turned into a slow loping trot. They moved south of the last of the guns,
under the arc of the last shells, then turned eastward toward the docks. The
sky ripped above them. M'Telgez felt his shoulders hunch; his hindbrain knew
what that meant, only too well.
CRUMP. A heavy shell
sledged into the empty space behind him. Seconds later dirt pattered down out
of the air. At least they weren't firing airburst; it must be too difficult
with no observation of the fall of shot. CRUMP. CRUMP. CRUMP. The last
one fell on a gun that was moving parallel to the column of the 5th Descott,
and the limber went up too in a huge ball of red-orange flame. Men screamed and
dogs wailed ahead of him. An officer rode out; his pistol cracked as the dogs
were put down, and the men swung up behind comrades, no time for first aid now.
CRUMP. CRUMP. CRUMP. More shells went by overhead and blasted into the
upper stories of empty houses. Adobe brick and fragments of roof tiles and
burning planks cataracted into the streets. He kept his head down and followed
the man ahead of him, hoping that the officers knew where they were going.
Shells were coming overhead in a continuous stream, but a whole city was a big
target.
Mother, he thought.
This was worse than a battle; then you could do something.
* * *
Horace knew he was being
ridden toward another boat ride. He turned nose-to-tail and circled. Raj
cursed, but he didn't bother yanking on the reins; you could pull until the
levers gouged a hole right through his cheeks, and Horace wouldn't pay much
attention. Instead he let the knotted reins fall on the pommel and leaned
forward, thumping the hound's neck with the flat of his hand.
"Come on,
you son of a bitch," he said firmly. "We've got places to go and
things to do. Stop this nonsense."
Horace lowered his ears
and head and turned, breaking into a shambling trot. Raj's banner snapped in
the night air; the Colonial shells went by overhead with their mechanical
wails, a continuous diminuendo punctuated by the crash of the bursting charges.
He pressed with his heels as a barricade of brick and burning rubble closed the
way. Horace took it in a single long leap, then checked a pace to let the
others come through. Heat slapped at him as they passed over the flame; a dog
yelped suddenly as it stepped on a hot ember.
Raj grinned into the
darkness. Well, we certainly got their attention, he thought.
all colonial guns are firing at maximum
speed, Center noted. even with
ample ammunition reserves, this will degrade performance and shorten the life
of the barrels.
Raj nodded. Wasteful. The
hotter a gun got, the worse the wear on the lands of the rifling. After a while
it had to be sent back to the foundry to have a new sleeve fitted into the
barrel and rifled, and it was never quite as good after that. The third time it
had to be scrapped.
* * *
"Want to do the
honors, mi heneral?" Jorg Menyez said.
He waved to the lines of
slowmatch that snaked away among the warehouses and boatyards of Sandoral's
docks. The raw smell of kerosene and gunpowder was thick in the air.
"Dinnalsyn assures
me that it will all go off at about the same time."
Raj looked around with
grim satisfaction. When the warehouses and shipyards went up, it would also
take all the remaining timber in Sandoral suitable for boats or rafts or
bridging materials. Ali might get the city, but he was damned if there'd be
anything immediately useful in it when he did. No food, no building materials.
"I wouldn't dream
of denying you the pleasure, Jorg," Raj said.
Menyez ceremoniously
puffed on his cigarillo and applied the end to the slowmatch. It lit with a
sullen hiss and trail of blue smoke.
"And now we bid
farewell to beauteous Sandoral: land of exotic giant cockroaches, intolerable
sticky heat-rash, and picturesque, hairy wogs with razor-sharp gelding
knives," the infantryman mock-quoted. East Residence had enough of a
middle class to support a tourist trade, mostly steamboat excursions to the Bay
Islands. Guidebooks were common, too. "Hadios, mi heneral."
It probably did the men
good to see their commanders relaxed and confident. It does me good. Jorg's
usually a worrier. Morale's probably as high as it should be. Possibly
higher than it should be . . . Now who's worrying?
"Hadios,
Jorg. See you downriver."
He turned Horace. Raft
after raft was heading downstream, casting off behind its towing-barge. Sweeps
tossed up small chuckling ripples of green water, a faint sheen under the
crescent of Miniluna. As each loosed its ties to the anchor cables, another
cluster of dogs and guns would trundle out across the linked rafts to the outermost.
War-dogs whined as chain staples fastened their bridles to pins in the decking;
the wheels of guns and limbers were lashed down, and another raft and barge
combination was under way. Beyond the rafts boats speckled the water, sloops
and ferries, and score after score of the pontoon barges.
Messengers trotted up,
reported, left. Damn. Amazing. Only one traffic jam. And that caused by
rubble blocking a street and the battalion assigned to it swerving into
another's route. Paws and feet and wheels filled the night with a low rumble of
purposeful noise, none of it as loud as the whistle and crash of two hundred
Colonial guns bombarding the city. More starshells lightened the sky to the
west, Colonial this time, put up so their artillery had better visibility.
* * *
"Shall I order a
cease-fire?"
"No, Hussein,"
Tewfik replied, also in a whisper.
The central roof of the
bunker had caved in, but the beams had not given way completely. They sagged to
the floor, their jagged breaks splintered, like bone-white teeth. Dry dirt
poured down still, pooling and spreading; soldiers dug bodies out of the pile,
some wounded and some dead, and carried them up the stairs. Ripped down and
stamped in a pile, the tapestries still smoldered from the burning kerosene
that falling lamps had sprayed across them—sprayed across men, as well.
Although not,
unfortunately, across my brother, Tewfik thought. It would be a disaster if Ali
died just now. It might be salvation if he were struck down by an
incapacitating injury; the longer, the better. There is no God but God, and
all things are accomplished according to the will of God. But sometimes it
was difficult to understand His tactics. He wrinkled his nose at the smell of
burning carpets. More waste. The cost of them was enough to pay a brigade of
cavalry for a year, and now they would be replaced. Transport would be
commandeered to replace them, while the guns ate a month's reserve of
ammunition.
"Amir, we
will lose guns soon if we keep up this rate of fire," the officer warned.
"The barrels are so hot we'll have cook-offs during reloading."
"Reduce the rate,
but not so much that he" —he nodded to the other chamber of the
bunker; Ali's sputtering curses could still be heard there, and occasionally a
woman's scream— "will notice. Better to shoot the lands out of the barrels
than have more executions."
The officer stroked his
beard and leaned close. "Amir, it is time to consider if the House
of Peace can stand, with this man at the head of it."
Tewfik stared into the
other man's face for a moment; the brown eyes met his single one unflinching. Good.
I have no cowards on my staff.
"He has no
sons," he said quietly. "Nor do I."
"The Prophet
Muhammed had no sons; but many rulers sprang from his daughters."
"And many wars
sprang from the claims of his daughters' descendants and the orthodox caliphs,
beginning with Kharballa," Tewfik pointed out. That had started a split
that echoed down millennia, not even ending with the Last Jihad. "There are
also too many nobles with enough of the Settler's blood to make a fair claim.
Ali is no fool, he's killed the only ones with indisputable claims or great
ability, or both. If we have civil war now, the kaphar and the Zanj and
the northern savages will race each other to pick our bones. We must
continue."
"For the
present."
"For the
present," Tewfik agreed. Until Ali alive becomes more a menace to the
House of Islam than Ali dead, went unspoken between them. "Now go, and
have the gunners reduce their rate of fire by one-third. On my authority."
I control the
Host of Peace, but I cannot rule, he knew bitterly. Not in his own name. If only
there were a male heir, a regency might be possible—but there was not. The
mullahs would not issue the Friday prayer for one-eyed Tewfik; men would not
obey, not without a soldier standing behind them. He would shatter what he most
wished to preserve, if he tried that.
"Insh'allah."
The acrid gloom of the
bunker was stifling. Left hand on the hilt of his yataghan, he strode up the stairs,
past the protective curves and the intermediate guardroom. The blue-white
sputtering light of starshells made him slit his eyes at the dark motionless
bulk of Sandoral's low-slung walls. They mocked him from behind the moat,
tantalized him. Men and dogs labored to bring the ammunition forward to the
siege guns from the bombproofs set behind the main line, along pathways sunk
into the ground with protective berms on either side. The gunners toiled,
stripped to the waist, their faces and torsos black with powder smoke. Many had
balls of cotton wool stuffed in their ears, but they courted deafness as well
as death with every shot. It did not stop the smooth choreographed sequence of
laying, swabbing, loading, ramming, firing.
A heavy shell bit a
section out of the firing parapet in a clap of orange flame and rumble of
sound. Water spurted up where the stone fell into the moat, leaving a ragged
gap in the concrete core. No fire replied from the city.
"Was that your
plan, Whitehall, to weaken our artillery? Did you know how my brother would
respond to your taunt?"
The stonk on the command
bunker had been wickedly well-placed. Whitehall was well served, good officers,
brave and well-trained troops, well equipped. Does he know us well enough to
predict that my brother would waste ammunition and guns like this? He
nodded. Certainly.
"Yet it cannot
affect the outcome of the war," he mused.
Could it be cover for
another raid? Unlikely. With a pontoon bridge for rapid withdrawal and a secure
fortified base, Whitehall had still been unable to do more than divert him
temporarily. Now the land across the river was unfit to support moving troops.
What could the infidel accomplish with the smaller number of men they could
smuggle across the river now?
That was the problem. He
did not know.
"Lord Amir.
The Settler requires your presence."
Tewfik ground his teeth.
He has beaten enough women to feel brave again, he thought. Now he must play at
commander. And waste my time!
With an enemy like
Whitehall, time was one thing you never had a surplus of. From all reports,
Barholm Clerett was almost as difficult a master to serve as Ali ibn'Jamal—but
at least he was far away.
* * *
The little galley Raj
was using as his HQ had been some rich merchant's toy before war came to Sandoral,
or perhaps belonged to a landowner with estates on the riverbank who wanted to
be able to commute to his townhouse in the district capital. For a moment Raj
wondered where he was, that little provincial oligarch. On the road west,
grumbling in his carriage with a nagging wife and the nurse fussing with the
children and a train of baggage carts behind? Perhaps already in East
Residence, imposing on some distant relative or dickering with a lodging-keeper
not at all impressed by anything from beyond the walls of the city. Or
caught on his country property by Colonial raiders, and now tumbled bones in a
ditch.
We must be making ten
klicks per hour, he thought.
a range of 9.7 to 10.1, averaging 9.9
overall, Center said.
Tonight and tomorrow to
reach their destination, traveling with the current. The men in the barges and
boats were sculling, but more to keep station and direction than for
propulsion. There were enough in each vessel to change off at frequent
intervals, too.
"Over to Major
Bellamy," Raj said, pointing.
The galley came about
sharply, bringing a protesting whine from Horace and Harbie on the foredeck.
The crew were all ex-boatmen and used to the shattering labor at the oars; one
side dug theirs in hard, the other feathered, and the man at the tiller pushed
it over. The slender boat turned in almost its own length and stroked eastward.
Beside a raft crowded with troops and dogs it halted; Raj leaned over the side,
one hand on the rail.
"There's your
destination, Major," he said, pointing southward, downstream.
"Remember the timing's crucial."
Bellamy waved back
wordlessly, his bowl-cut blond hair bright in the darkness. His rowers bent to
their work, and several of the other barges followed. Raj's galley curved back
toward the main body of the straggling armada, like a sheepdog with its flock.
More like a pack
of carnosauroids, Raj thought, watching the dull glint of moonlight on the
barrels of the field pieces on a raft.
Suzette came up beside
him, a cigarette glowing in its holder of carved sauroid ivory. "The
waiting's the hardest part," she said.
"No, just the
longest," Raj said. "Having to send others out, that's hardest."
She put an arm around
his waist and leaned her head on his shoulder.
"Stake the
dogs," Ludwig Bellamy said.
His second-in-command
blinked at him. "It's more than a kilometer to the objective," he
said in surprise.
"Ni,
migo," Bellamy said in Namerique. "Walking that far won't
kill us."
He shook his head as the
man walked away to spread the order by whisper. Messer Raj had taught his
Squadrone followers that fighting on foot was no disgrace, but they'd still
rather ride ten kilometers than walk one.
He squinted at his map;
an aide lit a match and held it over the paper. Messer Raj had penciled in the
route with his own hands. Yes. That's the gully. There was a roadway of
sorts along the river's edge, but it was entirely too visible from the other
side, back around Sandoral. His scouts gathered around, holding the reins of
their dogs.
"Lead the
way," he said, tracing out the branchings of wash and ravine. "It's
only a klick; but keep an eye out for wog pickets."
He looked up at the bulk
of the unit; nearly everyone was ashore from the beached barges and rafts,
although many were soaked to the waist. Water squelched in his own high boots.
The last few came in sight, holding their rifles and bandoliers over their
heads as they waded to the muddy riverbank.
"Fall them
in," he said quietly.
The 1st Mounted Cruisers
formed up in ranks four deep, and the rabble of militia gunners behind them.
They'd have no part in the immediate action, but they were important if
everything worked right.
"Migos,
Messer Raj trusts us to do this job right without holding our hands. Let's show
him he's right. Keep it quiet and move quickly."
"Right face. At the
double, forward march."
They swung off into the
night, rifles at the trail. Bellamy trotted up along the line to the head,
where the battalion banner was. His aide was leading his dog, back at the rear;
the men would march with a better will if they saw the commander on foot too.
Some of them grinned and shook their rifles in the air as he passed.
They're pumped, Bellamy
decided. This had all the earmarks of one of Messer Raj's
sauroid-out-of-the-helmet tricks. They trusted their leader's luck. And they
hated being cooped up inside walls, no matter how strong.
He looked ahead. You
have to earn your luck. It was much darker here, where most of the sky was
blocked out by the clay walls of the badlands on either side. They panted up
steep slopes, scrambled down others, slogged through sand and deep dust that
sucked at their boots, splashed through a few wet spots where water from the
spring floods still lay. Men panted, sweated, cursed in low voices. The ground
rose toward the hills where the road from the east met the river, where Tewfik
had planted his fortlet.
A scout came cantering
back and pulled his dog up on its haunches. "As you thought, Lord,"
he said, leaning down. He was one of the old-fashioned ones, with his hair
pulled up in a knot at the side of his head. "There is only a shallow
ditch and berm on the landward side—my dog could jump it. And all the cannon
point to the water."
Bellamy grunted with
relief. Messer Raj had said that was the logical thing for Tewfik to do, but
you couldn't count on an opponent having good sense.
He paced back along the
column, personally giving the command to halt. The battalion came to a stop
with a few lurches that ran one group of men onto another's heels, but nothing
major. The company commanders gathered around him.
"Come," he
said, leading them westward up a final line of ridge. Beyond was rolling open
ground, sparsely bushed with thorny native scrub and some cacti.
"There."
In the open, the
moonlight was enough to make the Colonial works plain enough. He used his
binoculars: not much of a ditch, and there were no obstacles—no timbers studded
with old sword-blades, no thorn zariba. Doubtless those would have been added
in time, but there had been no time. Across the water red specks crawled
through the air and the endless flat thudding of the bombardment continued.
There were enough fires in Sandoral now to cast a reddish glow across the great
river, expanding and uniting into columns of flame without men to fight them.
"Spread your men
out along this ridge, and order fixed bayonets," Bellamy said. "Every
man may load his rifle, but no reloading once we're into the enemy camp."
Nods, enthusiastic from
the Squadrones, less so from the Civil Government officers seconded to
the battalion. Fighting at close quarters in the dark, friendly fire would be a
greater threat than the enemy. Their repeaters gave them an advantage in a
close-range firefight, anyway. Better to rely on impetus and cold steel.
"Nothing
fancy," Bellamy said, repeating Messer Raj's words. "Just raise a
shout and go in on my signal."
Across two hundred
meters of open ground. But the Spirit was with them, and the initiative.
He lay on the ridgeline.
"Uncase the colors," he said to his bannermen; they pulled the
leather tubes off the standards and gently shook the heavy silk free, taking
care to keep both flags—the unit and the Civil Government blazon—below the ridgeline.
To either side came rustling, crunching sounds as the men filed up company by
company. Starlight glittered as they fixed their bayonets and then lay prone at
the word of command. He could see one or two praying, among those closer;
others were waiting, stolid or eager as their temperament took them.
And I don't
think of glory, he realized. A few years ago that would have been his
main concern in a situation like this; that men see him add honor to his name. Now
I'm just worried that nothing go wrong. Messer Raj was right: civilization
was contagious. It was more efficient than the old ways, but it took much of
the color out of life. He swallowed water and vinegar from his canteen and
loosened his sword in its scabbard, flipped open the cylinder of his revolver and
checked the loads.
Marie will enjoy
hearing about this. His Brigadero wife still thought war was glorious, and
envied warriors. She'd probably have made a good soldier if she'd been born
male—her cousin Teodore certainly did—provided she survived the seasoning. I'd
rather go through a battle than pregnancy, at that. Strange to think of
having children—legitimate children; byblows by peon girls didn't count.
Stranger still to think of them growing up in East Residence; nobody had said
he couldn't move back to the family estates in the Southern Territories, but he
could take the hint.
He grinned. That would
be terminally dull, anyway. At least Marie could sit out the war in a city with
plenty of balls and theater and opera, or bullfights and baseball stadiums.
If we win this
war, will there be wars for my sons to ride to? Possibly not; and was
that a good thing, or the end of all honor?
Thud. Thud.
Thud. There were explosions across the river, along the docks of Sandoral.
Plumes of red fire rose into the night, spreading with startling suddenness. In
less than thirty seconds the whole waterfront went up in a wall of flame, as
the time-fused incendiaries caught among kerosene-soaked wood and spilled
cooking oil. There was enough underlight to see the pillars of smoke, roiling
and black and red-tinged by the fires.
He took a deep breath.
"Gittem!" he roared, the old Squadron war shout. The
trumpeters were playing Charge, over and over again, a raw brazen
scream.
The flags went forward.
The 1st Mounted Cruisers rose to their feet and threw themselves forward at a
pounding run, their bayonets leveled. Ludwig Bellamy ran at their head, sword
held forward like a pointer.
"GITTEM!
GITTEM!" they bellowed.
Wogs all looking
at the show, he thought with hammering glee. The wall stayed empty
for long seconds. Then a few carbines began to crack, muzzle flashes like
fireflies in the night. Men fell, but not many. He jumped down into the ditch,
felt the jar as his boots landed in the muck at the bottom, scrambled in the
chunky raw adobe of the berm. It was less than man-height; a Colonial appeared
on the top, aiming a long-barreled revolver downward. It snapped a spike of
fire, and the bannerman with the battalion standard went down. Somebody else
grabbed it up, used the butt as a climbing-prop. Ludwig braced one hand on the
berm and chopped with his saber, felt the edge slam into ankle-bone. The
Colonial toppled and rolled down toward him, shrieking and trying to draw a
dagger. Ludwig slammed the guard of his sword into the man's face and climbed
over his body onto the top of the berm.
Cookfires lit the
interior of the fortlet, and the glare of burning Sandoral across the river.
Men in crimson djellabas streamed back from the gun line that faced the water,
firing as they came. Ludwig gave a quick glance to either side; the berm's
broad top was solid with his men. Company commanders were planting their
pennants, platoon officers taking three steps forward and turning to face their
men with outstretched arm and sword as a bar to give their commands the
dressing.
"Sound Kneel and
Stand," he snapped.
The front rank dropped
to one knee and leveled their rifles. The men behind them stood and aimed. Here
and there a trooper dropped as the Colonial fire began to thicken a little,
falling forward to tumble loose-limbed to the foot of the berm. He waited an
instant, until the target had time to thicken.
"Fwego!"
Ludwig shouted. Then: "Charge!"
BAM. One long sound,
like a single impossibly long shot. A bright comb of fire reached out towards
the dim shapes of the Colonials, five hundred threads of it. On the heels of
the volley the troopers ran forward through the thick curls of smoke, their
steel glinting red in the reflected light. The Colonials wavered, then ran back
the way they'd come, screaming their panic. A few stood and fought, emptying
their carbines and drawing their scimitars, but they died quickly—spitted on
dozens of points, beaten down with the butt, simply trampled.
Ludwig slashed at a man
crawling out of a pup tent, hurdled another. Up the slope to the gunline that
was this fortlet's main purpose, set here to command the river and prevent the
rebuilding of the pontoon bridge. The guns had been dug in, set in revetments
with V-shaped notches forward for their barrels. One group of Colonials, braver
or better-led than the rest, was trying frantically to manhandle a pom-pom around
to face the menace from the rear. He stopped, braced his legs and began to
fire. Crack. Crack. Crack. Crack. Crack. Two men down in the confusion
around the light gun, and then his troopers were past. Steel clashed on steel
for a moment, replaced by the butcher's-cleaver sound of metal slamming into
flesh.
Silence fell. 1st
Cruiser troopers were standing on top of the fortlet's western wall, firing
down—firing at the backs of the fleeing survivors of the post's garrison.
"Sound Rally,"
Ludwig said. "Benter," he went on to his younger brother. "To
Captain Marthinez, and his Company A is to man the parapet. Get me a count of
the casualties. Hederbert, find those militiamen and put them on the guns,
right now. Mauric, see that those dead wogs are all really dead."
He walked as he spoke,
over to the flagstaff before the Colonial commander's tent. The dead man lying
by the flagstaff was probably the tent's owner, by the scrollwork on his
djellaba; he'd been hit by three or four Armory 11mm rounds, and was very thoroughly
dead. The smell of death was spreading on the cool night air, like raw sewage
and a butcher's shop combined. Ludwig slashed the cord of the flagpole with his
saber. The green banner of Islam fluttered to the ground; he used it to clean
the sword before sliding it back into its scabbard.
His bannerman needed no
prompting. Seconds later, the blue-and-silver Starburst of Holy Federation
fluttered up the rough staff and streamed out, almost invisible in the
darkness.
Let Ali take a look at
that, when he gets tired of shelling an empty city, Ludwig thought, grinning.
The Cruisers cheered at
the sight of the flag, man after man taking it up, shaking their rifles in the
air or putting up their helmets on the points of their bayonets:
"Hail! Hail! Hail!
Hail! HAIL! HAIL!"
Ludwig felt a rush of
pride: less than six minutes from the moment he'd given the order to charge.
Then he looked up at the flag. The banner of the Gubernio Civil, he
thought. Four years ago most of these men had fought against the army that
Messer Raj led under that banner. There were perhaps half a dozen
Sponglish-speaking natives of the Civil Government in the 1st Mounted Cruisers;
the rest were MilGov and heretic to a man.
And here they were,
crying the banner hail as if . . . well, it is their own. Now.
Messer Raj had given them that.
* * *
Mustafa al-Kerouani
jerked himself awake and checked his watch. Good, it was still a few minutes
until the next status check. He bent to the eyepiece of the telescope and
waited. Nothing from the relay to the north, the second from the siege lines
around Sandoral. He frowned. They should give him three flashes from their
carbide lantern; that was regular procedure. Allah might be merciful if they
were all asleep, but neither their tabor commander nor Tewfik would.
Besides, there was the honor of the engineering corps to consider. What were
they, real soldiers or the fellaheen conscripts of infantry, who
couldn't be trusted to remember to wipe their arses with their left hands
unless an officer reminded them every time they shat?
He reached out and
squeezed the handgrip of his own lantern. The slotted shutters over the front
clacked open, revealing the brilliant chemical light amplified by the
hemisphere of mirror behind it. Three long, two short-acknowledge.
Nothing. He swore again,
looking around the little hilltop camp. A dozen men, eight of them sleeping,
around a low-coal campfire with a brass kave-pot standing over it on an
iron stand. Their riding- and pack-dogs, picketed out on a line. Two sentries,
the telescope, heliograph, lanterns for night work, and their personal baggage.
One of dozens strung between the bridgehead at Gurnyca and the Settler's
headquarters outside the kaphar city. Paralyzingly boring duty; there
weren't even any of the infidel fellaheen left around here, which meant
no fresh provender except for some sauroid meat, and no women.
Three long, two short.
Still no acknowledgment. Ibrahim ibn'Habib is a lazy, wine-swilling son of a
pig, but he isn't that negligent. Best send someone over to take a
look.
Mustafa blinked out into
the darkness where the sentry paced. The bright light killed his night vision,
but he could see the outline.
"Moshin?" he
said. The other man was Qahtan ash-Shabaai, and much taller. "Moshin, take
your dog and check those bastards on Post Three. They must be asleep, or
dead."
"Dead," Moshin
said—but it was not Moshin's voice, and the word was so thickly accented that
he could barely understand it.
Mustafa al-Kerounai
reached for his sidearm. He felt the bayonet that punched through his jaw,
tongue and palate only as a white flash of cold. Then the point grated through
brain and blood vessels within his skull, and the world ended in a blaze of
light.
Antin M'lewis withdrew
the blade with a jerk. Around him there was a flurry of movement; bayonets and
rifle butts struck, and the pick end of an entrenching tool went into the back
of a sleeping man's skull with the sound an axe made striking home in hard oak.
Talker stamped on a neck with an unpleasant crunching sound, like a bundle of
green branches snapping. Dogs wuffled and snarled, dragging at their picket
chain as they smelled death. He ignored them and swiveled telescope and signal
lantern around on their mountings. The alignment was marked in chalk on the
fixed baseplate of the equipment, and he had the code for acknowledge 0100
hours all is well on his pad. He clacked it out carefully and waited for
the return signal.
Good. There it was. They
still didn't suspect anything. He used one tail of his uniform jacket to
shield his hand and picked up the pot of kave, pouring a cup into his
messtin.
"Throw summat more
wood on t'fire," he said. It might arouse suspicion if the sentinel fire
went out during the night. He tossed aside the spiked Colonial helmet. "
'N git back ter yer dogs. We'ns'll see how many more of t' wogs is
overconfident."
* * *
"Fwego!"
BAM. The single massive
volley turned the supply convoy's night encampment into a mass of screaming men
and howling dogs, with the oxen's frantic bawling as accompaniment. Major
Peydro Belagez smiled, a cruel closed upturn of the lips. He could see the
scene quite well, with the watchfires as background.
BAM. Men rose from their
blankets and slapped backward instantly, punched down by the heavy Armory
bullets. BAM. Maddened by pain and the smell of blood, an ox-team pulled over
the wagon to which they'd been tethered and ran off into the night. The wagon's
tilt fell across a fire and the dry canvas flared up brightly.
"Forward, compaydres,"
he said.
The two companies of the
1st Rogor Slashers moved forward in line, with a crackle of platoon volleys.
Less than thirty Colonial troops had guarded the convoy, and they were
infantry—support troops, hardly fighting men at all. The few who lived ran into
the night, or knelt and raised their hands in surrender.
As Belagez watched, the
platoon commanders called the cease-fire. Two surviving Colonials bolted when
they saw the Civil Government troops more clearly; their dark complexions and
the shoulder-flashes made it clear they were Borderers, men whose feud with the
Colony was old and bitter. A bet was called, and two troopers stepped forward
and knelt, adjusting the sights of their rifles. The running Colonials jinked
and swerved as they fled; the two Slashers fired carefully. On the third shot
one of the Arabs flopped forward, shot through the base of the spine. His face
plowed into the dirt, mercifully hiding the exit wound. The other went down and
then rose again, hobbling and clutching his thigh as if to squeeze out the pain
of his wounds.
"Hingada
thes Ihorantes!" the first rifleman said. Death to the Infidel, the
Slashers' unit motto. "You should do better than that, Huan!"
"Malash. The Spirit
appoints our rising and our going down," the other man grunted. He
breathed out and squeezed the trigger. Crack. Measurable fractions of a
second later, dust spurted from the back of the Arab's djellaba. He went down
and sprawled in the dirt.
Meanwhile the others had
been rounded up. They sat, hands behind their heads, staring at their captors
with the wide-eyed look of men who wanted very badly to wake from an evil dream
and couldn't. The toppled wagon was burning fiercely now, with a thick flame
that stank like overdone fish three days dead to begin with-advocati, no
mistaking the stench. Sun-dried, they were oily enough to burn like naphtha.
Belagez pointed with his
saber. "Get moving—push the other wagons over and tip them into the fire.
Break open those crates, that'll be hardtack." The Colonial version came
in thin sheets about the size of a man's hand; it would burn too, in a hot
fire.
He switched to Arabic,
accented but fluent enough. "You, you unbelieving sons of whores. Get to
work."
The teamsters and
surviving guards joined his men in heaving more of the supplies onto the
growing blaze. Another wagon toppled onto it, and the smell of frying apricots
joined the stink, enough to make his stomach knot a little. The blaze would be
visible for kilometers, but there was nobody alive to witness it—not unless a
survivor or two from the last convoy they'd hit had run very fast. The
twenty-wagon parties had been spaced quite evenly at four-kilometer intervals
along the road, commendable march-discipline and very convenient for the
battalions the heneralissimo had landed on the west bank. He looked at
his watch; it was bright as day now, and hot enough to make him step back.
0300. This would be
their last, they'd have to ride hard to make the rendezvous with the river
flotilla by dawn. He certainly didn't want to miss the end of this campaign.
The fire grew swiftly; his men were in a hurry too, and the prisoners worked
very hard.
Idly, he wondered if
they knew they were building their own funeral pyres. Probably. Still, it was
the Spirit's blessing that men were reluctant to abandon hope while they still
breathed.
* * *
"Oh night that was my guide
Oh night more loving than the rising sun
Oh night that joined the lover
To the beloved one,
Transforming each of them into the other."
* * *
Raj opened his eyes,
then started awake. Suzette laid aside her gittar and smiled at him,
handing over a cup of kave.
"This yacht has all
the conveniences, my love," she said.
"What—"
"Absolutely nothing
has happened except what you said would. Belagez and the other landing parties
made rendezvous. The Colonials have no idea what's going on—we're moving faster
than the news. It's noon."
"Ah."
He took the cup and
sipped. He felt less jangled than usual on waking, less of the sense that
something catastrophic had happened and had to be turned around immediately. How
long has it been since I slept without worry? he thought.
Five years, one
month seven days. defining "worry" as your subtextual intent rendered
the term.
Thank you very
much, he thought. Aloud: "Thank you, my sweet. You must have fended them
off like a mother sauroid on a rookery."
Suzette smiled; not her
usual slight enigmatic curve of the lips, but widely as if at some private
joke. She shook her head.
"You've had five
years to train them, Raj; and they're good men. They wanted you to rest while
you could. They can carry out your orders, but we all want—need—you to be at
your best when you're needed. Besides" —she dimpled slightly— "you
look so young and vulnerable when you're asleep."
Raj laughed softly. I'm
committed, he realized. One turn of pitch and toss, winner take all.
It would either work or it wouldn't, and if it didn't he wouldn't be around to
worry about it. There was nothing behind them but Ali and his fifty thousand
men, barring the road to the border.
"What was that
song?" he asked, finishing the coffee. Suzette poured him another and
handed him breakfast—toasted hardtack, but she'd found some preserves for it,
somehow.
"Very old. My tutor
taught it me when I was a girl; Sister Maria, that was."
"Doesn't sound
religious," Raj said.
the song is derived from the devotional
poetry of st. john of the cross, Center said. the musical arrangement was made approximately two thousand four
hundred years ago on earth.
"Ahem." A
voice from behind the door of the little stern cabin, out on deck. "I hate
to interrupt this touching domestic scene, but . . ."
"Coming,
Gerrin," Raj said ruefully.
He stamped into his
boots and fastened on his equipment, then scooped up the map he'd been working
on late into the night. The sun outside was blinding, the shadow of the awning
above hard-edged and utter black by comparison. Raj blinked out over the
sparkling green waters of the Drangosh. For a kilometer either way, out of
sight behind bends in the high banks, it was covered with rafts and barges and
boats. With men and guns and ammunition . . . nine thousand men. Nine thousand,
to decide the fate of empires. Nine thousand men relying on me to
pull it off. The thought was less crushing than usual. If there was any
force this size on Earth-
bellevue.
—Bellevue, then,
you pedant, this was it.
Raj smiled. Staenbridge
and the other battalion commanders grinned back at him. Bartin Foley chuckled.
Raj raised his brows.
"Your thoughts, Captain?"
He spread the rolled
paper on the deck; the officers and Companions crowded around it, kneeling,
staking down the corners with daggers.
"Mi heneral,
I was just thinking how much less pleasant this morning must be for our
esteemed friend Tewfik, when he finds out we've left the party and stiffed him
with the drink tab."
A snarling ripple of
laughter went around the map. "True enough." Raj rested one hand on
his knee and spread the fingers of the other over the map. It was his drawing,
with Center supplying a holographic overlay for him to work with. "Gentlemen,
this is our latest intelligence on the enemy's bridgehead camp and the pontoon
bridge over the Drangosh. You'll note—"
Bompf. The little
mortar chugged, and a grapnel soared up through a puff of smoke.
Why? Tewfik thought.
The fires had raged all through the night, as if the kaphar did not care
that the city burned around their ears. No fire from the walls and towers, not
all through the night and the bombardment. Now they were ignoring his herald
under a flag of truce, for the whole hour since dawn. Since I could finally
free myself from my brother's whining and threats.
The sun was bright in
the east, eye-hurting. He shaded his eye with one hand, the other hooked
through the back of his sword belt. The breeze blew from the river and
fluttered his djellaba; it snapped out the blue-and-silver Starburst of the
Federation from the gate towers of Sandoral, as well. The air was heavy with
the sickly scent of things that should not burn—one of the constants of war. He
had smelled the same in Gurnyca, and in burnt-out cities down on the Zanj
coast. Worse, once, when they had shelled a warehouse full of holdouts in
Lamoru and the dried copra inside had caught fire.
"Lord Amir, a lucky
sniper from the wall—"
"I do not think
this is a plot to assassinate me, Hussein," Tewfik said. Allah alone
knows what it is, but not that, I think.
Men climbed up the cable
the mortar had thrown. The first of them had a stick with a white rag attached
to it thrust through the shoulder harness of his webbing gear; a flag of truce,
by the one and only God. Let Whitehall respect it; he had a name for being
scrupulous in such things.
The men climbed in
through a narrow window high above the bridge that carried the railway over the
moat and through the city wall. Tewfik waited with iron patience. A mirror
flashed from the parapet.
Tower apparently
empty, he read. He clawed at his forked beard, nostrils flaring instinctively as
if to smell out a trap. More silent waiting, until there came the muffled thud
of an explosion behind walls, and very faintly, a scream.
The officers around him
tensed. A half-minute later, the mirror blinked again.
Boobytrap, six
casualties. Tower deserted. Walls deserted. No enemy in sight.
A hubbub of oaths and
excitement broke out around him; the word spread along the siege lines as the
great gates swung open and revealed the dogleg passage beyond. A long slow roar
like heavy surf welled up, as men climbed out of the entrenchments and onto the
gabions, and others dashed from the tents and the cooking-fires behind.
"The city is
ours!" someone shouted. "The kaphar have fled!"
Tewfik felt a great hand
reach into his chest and squeeze. Azazrael's wings brushed darkness over his
eyes. Almost, he prayed that the dark angel would come for him now; surely this
would count as dying for the Faith, in the Holy War. Hussein and one of his
mamluks cried out in shock and rushed to support him; he brushed them aside and
staggered forward to the edge of the main works.
Fled? he thought.
"Fled? Where? Northeast, to the valleys of the Borderers? To hide in their
mud-built forts and make little raids, while we bottle them up with one-tenth
of our strength and march to the gates of East Residence with the rest?
Whitehall?"
"But . . ."
The aide's face was fluid with shock. "If not north, then where?" He
looked at his commander's face, and fear replaced the shock. "What is it,
Lord Amir?"
"Kismet,"
Tewfik said. "Fate. If not north, then south . . ."
"But, Lord Amir,
the message stations, the outposts along the road—we have heard nothing!"
"Exactly." He
whirled. "Hussein. Twenty men, each with three led dogs. Kill the dogs
with haste if they must, but make such speed as men may. To the commandant of
the railhead camp; maintain maximum alertness, enemy in your vicinity."
Hussein gaped. Tewfik
seized him by the shoulder-straps of his harness and shook him. "Fool born
of fools, the entire raid across the Drangosh was a diversion—their bridge a
disguise for boats and rafts to float their force south."
"May the Lovingkind
have mercy upon us!"
"Go!" He turned
to the others. "Sound the alert. Mobilize the cavalry, all of
it—"
"Lord Amir,"
one officer said urgently. "The Settler . . ."
The Settler, who
will delay for hours before he grasps the necessities. And with him every one
of the great noble houses, and the orders of the Maribbatein and ghazis, all of
whom will jealously insist on being consulted before a major move is made.
He raised his hands.
"Allah! One day! That is all I ask of You, one day."
Never had he prayed with
such sincerity.
"Messers, the
garrison is ten thousand men, not counting civilian laborers."
The Companions bent over
the sand-map for the last briefing. Antin M'lewis hung back slightly, although
his scouting this afternoon had provided the last-minute updates.
Considerations of social rank aside, he didn't have a line command; his men
would be split up and acting as trail guides for the actual units.
Raj went on, pointing
with his sword. The wet sand allowed a surprising amount of detail; he'd spent
about an hour getting it right, just possible with Center to overlay holograms
and make each motion perfectly efficient. The long shadows of evening brought
it out well.
"As you can see,
it's a square earth fort; two-meter ditch, two-meter palisade and earth rampart,
chevaux-de-frise in the ditch. Pentagonal bastions at each corner, gun lines
along the fighting parapet, and four gates at each of the compass points. The
railroad leads in from the east, and the pontoon bridge out from the west side.
There are ten-meter watchtowers on either side of each gate; the gates are
spiked timber barriers. Most of the artillery is concentrated in the bastions,
which are as usual higher than the main berm; they bear along each wall."
"Ten thousand
men," Jorg Menyez said thoughtfully. "Heneralissimo, that's a
Starless Dark of a lot of firepower."
Raj nodded. "If we
let them apply it, which we won't. They're line-of-communications troops,
railroad labor battalions and engineers and supply specialists. Also they're
not expecting us. We're not going to give them time to get ready, either; and
there's one last little surprise to distract them.
"We're here."
He moved his sword point north on the sand map, tapping a point on the east
bank of the Drangosh. "Less than two klicks north of the objective as the
pterosauroid flies. We'll move separately, by battalion columns, marching on
foot, as follows."
He named the battalions,
moving from left to right, east to west. "17th Kelden County Foot and the
24th Valencia on the extreme left—they'll have the farthest to go, but they're
better foot-marchers. Cavalry battalions in the center, Sandoral infantry on
the right, nearest the river. The 5th Descott and the 18th Komar will take the
median and assault the camp's north gate. Colonel Menyez, you will have overall
command of the left wing; Colonel Staenbridge, of the center; Major Gruder, of
the right. I'll accompany the central command.
"Colonel Dinnalsyn,
you'll split your guns into two Grand Batteries. One will accompany the 24th,
one the Sandoral garrison battalions. Your objective will be to neutralize the
enemy artillery in the corner bastions for the duration of the assault. One
fast hard stonk, then shift fire to support, and when our banners are over the
berm and palisade, cease fire and prepare to move up as directed.
Understood?"
The artillery commander
stroked his thin mustache with his thumb. "It can be done, mi heneral.
But to be effective, I'll need time for ranging fire."
"I'll provide
precise range data when we arrive," Raj said.
"That will be
satisfactory, of course, heneralissimo," Dinnalsyn said carefully,
the crisp East Residence vowels sounding a little strained. From the glances,
everyone knew what it meant: it's bloody eerie. "You have an
excellent eye for it."
Raj continued:
"Messers, your approaches will be by the following paths." His sword
sketched them out, through the maze of badland cliffs, naming the battalions.
"I hope I don't need to emphasize the absolute necessity of caution as you
approach the edge of the badland zone and the low country directly north of the
enemy camp. There's a company of the Rogor Slashers in place, guided by members
of the Scout Company. They'll take out the Colonial watchposts immediately
before you debouche into the plain, and there'll be very little time after
that—the attack, and the usual rocket, will be your signal. Come out of the
hills in column, deploy as you move, and hit the wall running. By that time,
the artillery will have the bastions under fire. Nothing fancy, gentlemen; we go
in with the bayonet and one round up the spout, climb the wall and sweep"
—his sword moved from north to south— "the wogs out of their camp. Then we
stop for the night."
He drew his watch and
opened the cover. "Synchronize, please. It's 1900 at . . . mark."
There was a subdued clicking as stems were pressed home. "Two and a half
hours to full dark. Colonel Dinnalsyn, move your guns out now. All battalions
will be on their way by 19:30. I expect the artillery preparation to begin at
20:15 and the troops to go in at 20:30. It's only a kilometer and the Scouts
have the paths clearly marked, so despite the night march that's plenty of
time. Questions?"
There were only one or
two, technical matters. The plan was simple—startlingly simple. It's the
strategy on this one that's complicated, he thought.
"Then it's all
settled bar the fighting. May the Spirit of Man be with us, Messers."
"It is,"
someone said softly. "The Sword of the Spirit of Man."
Embarrassed, Raj cleared
his throat and nodded curtly. The Companions slapped fists in a pyramid of arms
and moved away. Junior officers moved in to study the sand table for a few
moments, then returned to their units.
Raj walked down the
shoreline; it was hard here, rocks lacing the clay of the bank. The barges and
rafts were beached as high as human muscle and dogs dragging at the ends of
lariats could move them. They weren't planning to go any farther on the water.
Many of the men were preparing escalade ladders: simple balks from the rafts,
with crosspieces nailed along them, a spike at the top to hold the pole against
the sloping surface of an earth berm, and cross-braces at the bottom to keep it
from turning. Not very heavy—they hadn't far to go. One standard part of Civil
Government training was carrying logs cross-country, units competing against
each other—it taught teamwork on a very practical level.
The rest of the men were
waiting, some double-timing or stretching under the direction of their platoon
officers, getting out the kinks and stiffness of the long crowded voyage. Raj
stopped now and then, calling a man by name or slapping a shoulder.
"Ensign
Minatelli," he said to one very junior officer. The man's under-strength
platoon was twisting their torsos with their rifles held over their heads.
"Sir," the
young westerner said, bracing to attention. The men froze. He saluted with a
snap.
"No names, no pack
drill," Raj said easily. Serious, but that's all to the good, he
thought appraisingly. Lower middle-class, not a social grouping you found many
of in the Army and certainly not in the officer corps, but that was less of a
disadvantage in the infantry.
"Ready for your
first engagement at commissioned rank?" he said.
"Lot more to worry
about, sir," the young man blurted. His sincerity was transparent.
Raj nodded. "The
mental comfort level goes down as the rank goes up," he said. "If you
take your work to heart. Carry on, son."
He walked on, to where
detachments of the 5th were snapping the bridles of their dogs to a picket
line. The cavalry troopers straightened, but they didn't come to attention;
there was profound respect in their stance, but no formality.
"Bwenya Dai,
dog-brothers," Raj said.
He smoothed a hand over
the neck of one bitch-dog; it turned and snuffled at him, then licked its
chops, satisfied at the scent of Army that marked ultimate
pack-boundaries to a military dog.
"Nice beast,"
he said sincerely. Descotter farmbred, about a thousand pounds, lean and
agile-looking but with powerful shoulders and chest. "Fifteen hands?"
"Ah, the best, that
Pochita is, ser," the corporal said. "Frum m'own kin's ranchero.
Fifteen one, seven years old."
"Robbi
M'Telgez," Raj said. "Southern edge of Smythe Parish, yeoman-tenants
to Squire Fidalgo? Near Seven Skull Spring?"
"Yesser."
M'Telgez visibly expanded a little. " 'Tis true we're attackin' t' wog
supply base, ser?"
Raj nodded. "A
little stroll in the cool evening, and then we collect everything but Ali's
underwear. The wogs may not like us helping ourselves, though."
The troopers grinned;
catching the scent, the tethered dogs behind them showed their teeth in a
distinctly similar expression.
"Carry on," he
repeated.
Suzette was waiting
beside Harbie and Horace. Seven thousand dogs would take up an intolerable
amount of space in the strait confines of the badlands—that was why the
operation was going in on foot—but he and his senior officers needed the extra
mobility. Raj swung into the saddle and watched the last of the artillery
moving out, teams disappearing into the canyon southward. Dust smoked up behind
them, but not too much. Later in the summer it would have been a kilometer-high
plume. Another reason to send the men in on foot and by widely separated paths.
"This is it, isn't
it?" Suzette asked softly.
Raj nodded. "If it
works, it's all over bar the shouting. If not . . ." He shrugged.
"Well, we won't have to worry about that."
"And if it works,
there's Barholm. Raj, he'll kill you the minute he doesn't need you any
more."
Raj laughed, full and
rich. "My sweet, at the moment that is the last thing on Bellevue I'm
worrying about." I'm not worrying about anything. The operation was
underway, and now all he had to do was deal with the unexpected; think on his
feet and use his wits. He felt loose and easy, mind and body working together
at maximum efficiency.
His face went blank.
"Anyway, I'll have left some accomplishments behind, something that was
worth doing."
Suzette touched his
elbow; they'd reined a little aside from the bannermen and messengers.
"Raj, speaking of things left behind . . . there's something you should
know, just in case."
* * *
The boatman shivered. He
was naked save for his loincloth and covered in soot mixed with tallow, the
smell of the grease heavy about him. Ahead the little galley stroked its oars
again, then came alongside. He could just see it in the growing dusk, the water
lighter where the oars curled it into foam. Their careful stroke went shush
. . . shush . . . through the night.
The Army officer lit the
slowmatch and gave him a salute before vaulting over to the galley. It turned
and stroked rapidly back upstream. He knelt on a burlap sack folded on the
rough timbers of the raft and took the steering oar. It twisted in his hands,
the familiar living buck of the Drangosh, the substance of all his days. He'd
never steered a cargo like this before, though. The whole surface of the raft
was covered with kegs of gunpowder, lumpy under the dark tarpaulin that covered
them, outline broken by palm-fronds and branches. Iron hooks and spikes stood
out all around the square vessel, anchored in the main balks.
The current was fast
here in midstream, the banks just lines in the darkness to left and right. Somebody
had to steer, though; otherwise the raft might swirl in towards the banks. He
worked the oar carefully, never letting the end break free of the water. From a
distance, in the dark, the raft would look like just another piece of river
trash caught in the current. The fuse hissed.
There. Lights on the
east bank, to his left. The wog camp. A scattering to his right: the ruins of
Gurnyca. He bared his teeth. He'd had kin there, before the press-gang enlisted
him in the Army. That was why he'd volunteered for this—though the thousand
gold FedCreds and the land and the tax exemption for him and his family didn't
hurt. But you had to live to enjoy those; revenge was a dish you could eat in
advance.
And that Messer
Raj. The priest is right. The Spirit was with him, you could see it
in his eyes. For the Spirit, all men were the tools of Mankind.
A string of lights
across the water: sentinel-lanterns along the wog pontoon bridge. Much bigger
barges than the ones they'd used to build their own bridge up at Sandoral, with
real prows and neat planking. The torches were oil-soaked bundles of rag on the
ends of long sticks of ironwood, fastened to the railing of the roadway every
fifteen meters or so. He crouched lower, tasting sour bile at the back of his
mouth. There was a sheathed knife through the back of his loincloth, but that
was for himself if he looked like being captured.
Closer, and he could see
the spiked helmets and turbans of the soldiers pacing along the bridge. Cables
swooped up out of the water to anchor the upstream prows of the pontoons, dark
curves against dark water. Firelight glittered on patches of wave. He braced
one foot against a timber, bare callused toes gripping, and threw the weight of
back and shoulders against the tiller. The raft moved across the current,
slowly, always slowly. His breath tried to sob out past tight-clenched teeth.
One of the wogs was
singing, sounding like a man biting down on a cat's tail. It was hard dark
outside the circles of firelight the torches cast, both moons down, only the
arch of stars above. Yes. The raft was heading right between two
pontoons. It might have gone right through without him aboard.
He waited until the
shadow of the timbered deck above cut off the sky; there was reflected light
enough from the torch on one of the pontoons. Then he raised a pole whose other
end was set into the deck of the raft. The ironshod point sank deeply into the
timber balk above as the weight of the raft and the force of the current drove
it. Weight and current pushed the raft sideways, pivoting around the anchor
driven deep into the hardwood above. The hooks along the side grated into the
hull of the pontoon; he winced at the noise, but there was thick timber and
three feet of earth on the roadway above. The raft heeled a little beneath him
as they set fast and held against the long slow push of the water.
The boatman dove
overside into the water and let the current take him out the south side of the
pontoon bridge and a hundred meters downstream. Then he began to stroke in a
fast overarm crawl, and the Starless Dark take secrecy. He had less than a
minute to get out of killing range.
"Change off,"
Ensign Minatelli said.
The next platoon came up
and took the escalade ladder off his men's shoulders. The shuttered bull's-eye
lantern in his hand provided just enough light, although there were whispered
curses and cries of pain in the tight confines of the dry wash.
"Let's get
moving."
In a way it was
fortunate that the wash was so narrow; there wasn't any way to get lost. He
moved at a quick walk, stumbling occasionally over a clod or a rock. Men waited
at junctions, directing the traffic along the proper path. A few minutes later
he ran into the heels of the men ahead.
"Halto!" he hissed back.
Captain Pinya came down
the line, identifying himself with a quick flick of his own lantern under his
face. "We're there," he said. "Halt in place, prepare for
action. Wait for the signal, then we go out in column, deploy into line on the
move, and keep moving. There's a little more light out in the open."
I hope so.
He was starting to get
some idea of how complicated it was to get hundreds of men moving in the same
direction and have them arrive when you wanted them to. It was a lot more
difficult than it looked when all you had to do was march when someone said,
"By the left, forward."
All an ensign had to do
in a field action was relay the orders, though. He was very glad of that.
"Fix bayonets.
Load. Keep the muzzles up."
The last thing they
needed was somebody getting stuck or shot because they fell over their feet. It
was up to him to see that didn't happen.
Spirit.
* * *
1018. Raj shut his
watch with a snap.
Can't wait much
longer. With their outposts gone, the enemy camp would be waking up soon. A
last iron clank came from the artillery position to his left, about twenty
meters away; it was dark enough that he could only see vague traces of movement
there. The gunners moved with exaggerated care, setting the fuses behind a
screen of blankets that would conceal the brief flashes of light from the
enemy. They'd be firing blind, essentially, except for the directions he'd
given—Center had given—although the wogs were displaying a pleasant abundance
of lamps and watchfires.
Another messenger
trotted up.
"Major Gruder
reports right wing in position, ser." He handed over a note.
Raj flicked a match
between thumb and forefinger. This herd of handless cows is ready to
stampede, he read. Kaltin was not happy at having five battalions of
second-rate garrison infantry under his direction besides the 7th.
"Tsk."
Kaltin wouldn't expect
to get the best out of a force of Descotter cavalry with that attitude; why did
he think infantry would respond any better? A good tactician and very loyal,
but there were some jobs you just wouldn't give him. Raj grinned mirthlessly.
The chances were he wouldn't be giving anyone any jobs, after this.
He turned to look to the
right, toward the river. The tiny dots of the torches along the pontoon bridge
glittered like stars in the darkness. I would have left it farther south,
he thought. Better roads here, and what was left of Gurnyca gave a secure
anchorage for the western end, but putting a point-failure source closer to
your enemy was a terrible risk. Ali's doing. He tends to arrogance. He
began a gesture to the messenger beside him; there wasn't any more time.
Smaller torches were
running along the center section of the pontoon bridge. He pulled the
binoculars from their case on Horace's saddlebow and focused them. Men leaned
over the edge of the roadway, looking at the water below and pointing.
Raj turned his head
aside. Even looking away, the flash of the explosion was bright; it lit the
earthen walls of the Colonial fort the way a flash of lightning might, but for
much longer. When he looked back a huge section of the pontoon bridge was gone,
gone as if a vast mouth had bitten it away. There was a crater in the water,
foaming as the river rushed back to fill the hole the blast had momentarily
forced into it. Pieces of burning, shattered timber were describing parabolas
through the night for thousands of meters all around. The sound hit like a
giant rumbling thud, felt on the skin of the face and in the chest cavity as
well as through the ears.
An alarm siren began to
wail in the fort. More men were running out of it, heading through the west
gate and onto the pontoon bridge, or what was left of it—large sections on
either side of the gap had torn away their anchoring cables and were beginning
to drift southward with the current. That threw more and more stress on the
undamaged sections, cable and timber creaking and yielding as the two
unconnected segments bent back. He could hear the gunshot cracks of materials
yielding as they were pushed past their breaking strain. Parts of it were on
fire, too; the sections above water would be tinder-dry, in this climate.
The officer in command
of the base was probably an engineering specialist. His first thought would be
to save the bridge. As if to confirm the thought, a fire engine pulled by six
hitch of dogs thundered out onto the pontoon, dropped a hose overside and began
spurting steam-driven water at the fires. Men dropped overside with ropes, swimming
out for the anchor points. Others set up winches on the decking.
Raj chopped his hand
downward. An aide put his cigarette to the touchpaper of a signal rocket and
stepped back. The paper sizzled and the little rocket went skyward with a woosh,
popping into a blue starburst high overhead.
POUMPF. POUMPF. POUMPF.
POUMPF. Over and over again.
Tongues of fire shot
into the blackness. Fifty-five guns, massed in two grand batteries of
twenty-eight and twenty-seven pieces. Warm pillows of air slapped at his face
from the nearby position. The night filled with the whirring ripple of shell
fire, and seconds later the snapping crack of bursting charges and the
red firefly wink over the bastions at each corner of the fortress walls. At
three rounds a minute the shellbursts came at more than one per second over
each target, an endless ripple of fire. The second stonk contained a proportion
of contact-fused shells. The guns were firing at maximum elevation and nearly
maximum range, their shells dropping down out of the sky at high angles. Dirt
fountained up, and then a mammoth secondary explosion from the eastern bastion.
Somebody left
his ready reserve ammunition exposed, he thought. He could imagine the scene in the
redoubts, men running half-dressed from their bombproofs into the storm of
razor-edged, high-velocity metal as they tried to crew their pieces.
"Dinnalsyn's on
time and target," Raj said to himself, gathering the reins. "Hadelande."
He clapped heels to
Horace's side and swung into a loping gallop down the slope. The flags crackled
behind him, harness creaked, a bugle clanked rhythmically against the webbing
buckles on a signaler's chest. Rock and dust spurted up under the dogs' paws,
with a scent of bruised native scrub like bergamot. Trumpets sounded ahead of
him—no point in keeping quiet after this—as the battalions poured over the
ridgeline and down the last slope toward the flat fields. The routes he'd
picked left them widely spaced, to minimize collisions in the dark, and the
flaming chaos at each end of the north face of the Colonial base would help
with the alignment.
The dense columns of men
flowed forward onto the open ground, double-timing in battalion columns.
Starlight glittered on a forest of bayonet points, sheened on the silver Starbursts
at the top of the flagstaffs of their colors. He leaned back slightly, and
Horace shifted to a swinging trot; they were coming up on the 5th Descott's
position. The men gave a short roaring cheer as his flag went by to swing into
position near the battalion commander's, a harsh male undertone to the crash
and flicker of the guns.
He looked at his watch.
1040 hours. Nearly on time. Amazing. A memory prickled at him; nothing
he'd ever experienced, but one of the holographic scenarios from Earth's long history
of war that Center showed him. Not Hannibal this time, but someone else, and
the battle had also been against Arabs . . .
lieutenant-general garnet wolseley, Center said. tel el-kebir. twenty-five hundred years ago. A pause. the similarities are disquieting.
Why? Raj thought. This
fellow Wolseley won, didn't he? A night march and an attack on earthwork
fortifications, as he remembered.
i was programmed to believe that a
progressive improvement of human capacities is a priority, Center said. the fact that two such similar engagements
have occurred at this distance in time might support a cyclical rather than
linear explanation of human history.
Some things
never change.
that, raj
whitehall, is precisely the problem—and what we are attempting to change.
The 5th's buglers blew a
six-note call and repeated it. Raj turned in the saddle to watch; the fires on
the pontoon bridge were out of control, and the easternmost Colonial bastion
was a column of flame, giving enough light to turn the night to dusk. The solid
column of troops suddenly opened, like a man's outstretched hand when he flared
his fingers. Each of the four companies of the 5th turned at an angle to the
axis of advance and double-timed outward, following the pennant of the company
commander. Thirty seconds later the bugle sounded again, and the company
columns spread likewise into platoons, and the platoons flared out like opening
fans. In less than four minutes what had been a dense column of men was a
double line, rippling as the veterans dressed their ranks on the move with
unconscious skill.
This was what the
endless parade-ground drill was for: the movements had to be unconscious. So
instinctive that they could be done exhausted, or under killing fire—or here,
in darkness so bad you could barely see another man at twice arm's length. A
line of men couldn't advance at speed for long, not on anything but absolutely
flat table-top terrain. A column could maneuver, but it was a hideously
vulnerable target with no offensive capacity to speak of.
Gerrin Staenbridge
reined in beside him. "After that march, I'm never going to make a joke
about the blind leading the blind again, mi heneral. If it hadn't been
impossible to get lost, we would have."
There was strain in his
voice. The possibilities for confusion were enough to turn a man's hair gray .
. . which reminded Raj of the silver dusting he saw in his own every time he
shaved.
The splatguns had been
bouncing along behind the infantry. Now they trotted forward, drawing ahead.
One hundred meters, two, three, then the teams wheeled. The crews leapt down
and spun the elevating screws to maximum.
"About now,"
Raj said.
The cannonade lifted for
an instant, and starshells burst over the ramparts of the fort. Raj stood in
the stirrups and looked right and left, halfway between dread and hope under
the wavering blue-white light. All honor and glory to the Spirit of Man of
the Stars, he thought sincerely. No major units seemed to be missing, as
far as he could see—although the right flank was mostly hidden, and that was
the one he was most worried about. A long, wavering double line of men
stretched across the plain, with gaps of several hundred meters between
battalions. Several of the battalions were severely out of alignment
with their target, marching at angles that would have tangled them with their
neighbors eventually. As he watched they started to correct.
"Signaler," he
said. The man dropped out of the saddle and set two rockets. They hissed aloft
and burst.
Staenbridge drew his
sword. "Battalion—"
"Company—"
Manifold, down the line.
"Charge!"
The trumpets sounded and
kept up their shrilling, a long brass screaming in antiphonal chorus as all the
signalers caught up the note. A long swelling shout rose from one end of the
field to the other. Flags slanted forward as the whole formation broke into a
steady uniform trot.
Braaaaap. The splatguns
fired, shot arching down at extreme range to spray the parapet. They kept
firing over helmets as the troopers swept by. A pom-pom opened up from the wall
ahead, and the flicker of muzzle flashes showed there were some wogs on
the parapet, at least. The little quick-firer's shells went overhead with a
nasty whack-whack-whack as it emptied its clip, and burst on the soil
behind. Raj drew his revolver, tossed it to his left hand and drew his sword,
letting the reins fall to Horace's neck. The dog stepped up the pace to a slow
canter, keeping level with the men. The berm ahead loomed up with shocking
speed, and the skeletal shapes of the watchtowers on either side. Company A of
the 5th kept pace with them on either side, their boots crunching on the gravel
of the roadway that ran into the gate.
A carbide searchlight
flickered alight from one tower, stabbing into his eyes with hurting
brilliance. Seconds later it disintegrated in a shower of fragments as five or
six splatguns turned their attention to it. The observation platform at the top
of the wooden tower came apart in a shower of splinters and began to burn. The
trumpets shrilled on, and the men started to run.
They reached the edge of
the ditch. Fire stabbed down at them and some tumbled into it, to lie still or
shrieking on the spiked timbers there. More slid down into the ditch on their
backsides, clambered carefully through the obstacles and the mud, and began climbing
the steep slope on the other side. They scrambled in the heavy clay, chopping
their rifle butts into the dirt. Others brought up the escalade ladders,
setting their triangle-braced bases at the edge of the ditch and letting them
topple forward. The spikes at the upper end hammered into the dirt and men ran
up the crossbars, climbing one-handed with their rifles in the other.
"Not much
fire!" Raj said exultantly. We caught them with their pantaloons down,
and now it's too late! Surprise was the best force multiplier there was,
and it was working in his favor.
Staenbridge nodded. He
turned to Bartin Foley and laid a hand on his shoulder. "Now."
The younger man grinned
and leaned out of the saddle, extending his hook. One of his platoon commanders
dropped the loop of a leather satchel over it. Then he lit a length of
fuse-match that extended from under the buckled cover.
"Ha!"
Foley clapped his heels
into his dog's flanks, heading for the timber gate that barred the northern
entrance to the Colonial fort. Men were fighting hand-to-hand on the wall to
either side, shooting and stabbing and swinging clubbed rifles; there had to
have been Colonials on duty at the gate, at least, if not all around the walls.
Bodies tumbled down the steep slope of the berm, dead or wounded. Troopers in
Civil Government uniform shot through the stubby planks of the palisade at the
top, or joined to pull the wood aside, or boosted their comrades over the
pointed tops. Probably the towers on either side of the gate had held swivel
guns as well as searchlights, but they were both blazing torches now, burning
hard enough to make the heat noticeable at a hundred meters.
Foley covered the
distance to the gate in a few seconds. A mounted man drew attention, even in
the melee above him. Bullets kicked the gravel roadbed around him; once he
swayed in the saddle and Staenbridge stiffened beside Raj. The satchel arched
through the air and thumped into the dirt at the base of the gate, its momentum
wedging it under the palm-log timbers where they swung at ankle height above
the roadway. At the same instant he pulled the dog's head around; the beast
whirled so quickly that it reared almost upright on its hind legs, with Foley
hanging on like a jockey. It landed facing the way it had come, and running.
The rider's display of skill would have been worthy of attention in itself, in
any other context.
"Damned good
man," Raj said, easing back the hammer of his revolver with the thumb of
his right hand. Horace tensed under him.
". . . Five,
six," Staenbridge said. "Yes, he is, and I wish to the Starless Dark
he'd stop volunteering for this sort of shit, the hand's enough. Seven,
eight—"
Barton Foley had covered
three-quarters of the distance back to their position when the satchel charge
blew. There were twenty-five kilos of powder in it; the gates disappeared from
sight, and chunks of wood flew past them. Foley's dog yelped and leaped forward
so quickly that he had to slug the reins back with brutal force to stop it. A
splinter a double handspan long stuck out of one haunch; the animal kept trying
to turn and reach the wound with its tongue.
Two of Foley's troopers
grabbed the bridle while he dismounted; one of them threw a neckerchief over
the dog's eyes while the other pulled the splinter out with a single swift
yank. The dog's howl of agony was loud even by comparison with the noises of
battle.
"Go!"
Staenbridge barked. "Go, go, go."
The dust billowed away
from the gate, showing a shattered ruin that sagged back out of the way. Bartin
Foley was first through again, his riot gun in one hand; at his shouted
direction a dozen men threw their shoulders against the splintered wreckage and
walked it clear. Raj heeled Horace through a dozen paces, then drew him up with
the pressure of his knees.
The interior of the camp
was a checkerboard of stores in huge pyramids under tarpaulins, interspersed
with tents. Some of the tents were on fire, and there was also light from iron
baskets of burning greaseweed at the intersections. His head whipped left and
right. To the left the Civil Government troops were already over the wall and
down into the roadway that circled just inside it. The inner face of the berm
was sloped dirt, or broad steps cut into the clay and faced with palm logs. Men
poured down in, rallied around unit flags on the flat, moved off. There was a
thick scattering of dead Arabs on the roadway, a few on the inner slope, more
living ones running like blazes southward. To his right, toward the river, the
fighting was still on the parapet itself. In a few places Civil Government
banners waved from the parapet.
"All right,"
he said. Just what I expected. That section had had fewest of his
veterans, and most of the Sandoral garrison troops. "Gerrin, let's collect
some men and go help out. Waymanos!"
The issue of the day was
no longer in doubt. Now he'd make sure the butcher's bill wasn't any higher
than it had to be.
Breakfast was
astonishing. Well, we did just overrun a supply dump, Raj thought,
looking over the collection of delicacies.
He spooned up more
potted shrimp. Peydro Belagez was eating them mixed with candied dates, which
was something only a Borderer would do; Gerrin watched him with the horrified
fascination of a gourmet, or a priest witnessing blasphemy. The commanders were
seated at a long table in the huge pavilion tent that had been the base HQ. The
Colonial engineers, left with time on their hands, had gone a little berserk.
There were even baths, complete with kerosene-fired water heaters,
enough for several hundred men at a time.
The morning air was
fresh and hot, still a little smoky with the fires they'd spent half the night
putting out. A bugle sounded outside, and a pair of mounted troopers trotted by
with a long string of dogs on a leading rein: more of the force's mounts from
the site where they'd landed. The barges and rafts were mostly here by now too,
grounded on the riverbank or against the stub of the pontoon bridge that still
extended halfway across. On the tall flagpole outside the HQ tent the Starburst
banner snapped in the breeze.
The commander of the
Rogor Slashers went on:
"And they still
haven't stopped running, heneralissimo. They've split up into small
parties and none of them show fight." Belagez's dark leathery face showed
a combination of exhaustion and satisfaction. "Your instructions?"
"Ignore them,"
Raj said. "They weren't a problem in here, and they're not going to be one
out there, either."
He swallowed another
mouthful of excellent-quality kave—the Colony sat astride the
trade-route from Azania and kept the best for itself—and looked at Suzette. She
had peeled an orange and then set it aside untouched, looking a little pale. Damnation.
Think about that later.
"Casualties?"
"Less than two hundred,"
Staenbridge said, sounding slightly surprised. "That's not counting
walking wounded fit for duty. We only had twenty dead."
"Most of the live
ones will pull through," Suzette added. "There are plenty of medical
supplies here, and some excellent Colonial doctors, besides our own. Working
under guard, of course."
"Prisoners?"
Kerpatik thumbed through
his lists. "Over two thousand, heneralissimo. That is, two thousand
military personnel. There were substantial numbers of camp followers here as
well. The families of the soldiers have mostly fled. The, ah, commercial
elements—" he rubbed thumb and the first two fingers of his hand together,
"—they care little about the coinage as long as the metal is good."
Raj nodded. Where you
had a military base, you got knocking-shops. He'd be willing to bet there was
alcohol for sale too, Koranic prohibitions or not.
"Jorg, issue Guardia
armbands to some of your footsoldiers and get that under tight control. We're
still in the field, even if we've captured all the comforts of home. Let's not
let the troops relax just yet."
"What about the
prisoners?"
"Strip them down to
their loincloths and let them go; tell them to start walking south. Now, we
captured a good many documents here, including the daily logistics
summaries."
Several men exclaimed in
delight. That meant they would know the Colonial army's situation in detail,
right down to the names of the units and their muster strength.
"Evidently they've
been having problems getting the supplies from the railhead to the siege lines
outside Sandoral—plenty here, but they're short of draft oxen and fodder over
on the west bank."
Dinnalsyn nodded.
"They were trying to use locomotive engines to rig up a couple of spare
pontoons as steam tugboats, to pull raftloads up to Sandoral," he said.
"I had a look; it would have worked, more or less. Whoever was in charge
knew his business."
Raj nodded
acknowledgment. "In any case, the Colonials have virtually nothing in the
way of reserve with their field army. They were living from day to day on what
their convoys brought in, once the countryside was laid waste. Now, Messers,
here's what we'll do. Jorg, you're in charge here. How many dogs did we
capture?"
Muzzaf Kerpatik looked
up from a mass of papers. "Over twenty-five hundred, not counting gun
teams, sir," he said.
"Good. Jorg, I'm
leaving you all the infantry. Mount half of them—the best half—on the captured
dogs. You'll also have, hmmm, Poplanich's Own and the 21st Novy Haifa for
stiffening. And half the field guns. Move them north in parties of a couple of
hundred; keep in continuous contact. Your objective is to prevent Tewfik from
making any lodgment on the east bank. Shouldn't be difficult; there isn't much
in the way of boats over there, and it would take weeks to put enough material
together for another bridge. Which they couldn't build in the face of our
artillery, anyway—but keep a sharp lookout; we don't want to get as
overconfident as the previous tenants."
"Patrol the
vicinity?"
"Vigorously. The
infantry in good spirits?"
"Any better and
they'd want to march on Al Kebir, mi heneral. Their tails are up."
"Deservedly so.
Now, I'll take the rest of the cavalry, and the guns, over to the west bank.
There are probably still intact supply trains on the road north, and I want to
sweep those up immediately."
He rose, picking up his
sword belt from the back of the chair. "I want to be on the move in no
more than five hours. Tewfik is crazy like a ferenec, and Ali is just plain
crazy; let's not give them time to think up any way out of their predicament. Waymanos."
* * *
"That will not
work, Ali my brother," Tewfik said.
His voice was
dangerously calm, and he left out the honorifics. Ali turned his head slowly,
the great ruby that held the clasp of his turban winking in the stray beams of
light that came through ventilation slits in the ceiling of the pavilion high
above.
The nobles and officers
sitting on cushions around the carpet looked at Tewfik as well, mostly with the
same expression they might have used if a man kicked a carnosauroid in the
snout.
"Dog will not eat
dog," Tewfik went on. "This has been proven many times, as any fool
of a soldier would know. Rather," he corrected himself, "most dogs
will not. Nine in ten. So we will lose all our cavalry at once, and cannot
preserve a portion of our mobility by sacrificing the rest."
Ali's face went a
mottled color. It had been a very long time since anyone had dared to call him
a fool to his face, even by implication. Even his brother.
"Go!" he said,
pointing with a trembling hand. "You are dismissed from the durbar.
Return when you learn manners!"
Tewfik rose and bowed
deeply, hand going to brow and lips and chest; the other clenched on the plain,
brass-wired hilt of his scimitar.
His officers fell in
about him. That brought another round of silent glances around the council
carpet. It was also unheard-of for men to leave the Settler's presence without
word. And Ali looked suddenly thoughtful, conscious of the gaps. The nobles
remained, and the heads of the religious orders . . .
In the harsh sun
outside, Tewfik halted, beyond earshot of the mamluks who stood like ebony
statues around the Settler's tent.
"How long?" he
said, to an elderly officer with a green-dyed beard.
"There is no
reserve. None. The camp is on quarter-rations, but we have fifty thousand men,
as many dogs, and twenty thousand camp followers here. There was no food to be
had in Sandoral, none at all. I have set men to fashioning nets, and we may
gain a little fish by trolling the river; but the kaphar hold the fort
you planted on the eastern bank opposite the city, and the guns there command
much of the water surface. There will be hunger by sundown, starvation by
tomorrow's night. Our dogs will be too weak to carry men in three days, and
dying in six. By then the men will be dying as well."
Tewfik's hand withdrew
the scimitar a handspan, then rammed it home again. "If we lose this army,
our people will perish," he said. "And we cannot maintain discipline,
even, if we cannot feed the troops."
He looked around.
"Ibrahim, put the camp on one-quarter rations—and the camp followers are
to receive nothing. Confiscate all private supplies of food. Hussein,
mount ten thousand men and be ready to ride within the hour."
* * *
"Glad to be out of
the ruins," Staenbridge said, looking back at the walls of Gurnyca.
Raj nodded. The faint
stink of the piles of heads still clung to the inside of his nose, an oily
thing like overripe bananas. Almost as bad had been the rats and the scavenging
sauroids, rabbit-sized scuttling things all spidery limbs and teeth. One had
gone past him with a desiccated arm in its mouth, still wearing the lace-cuffed
sleeve of a lady's day-dress.
"That sort of thing
has to stop," he said quietly.
"I don't think the
wogs will be invading us again in the near future," the other man said
with a predatory smile.
Raj shook his head.
"I mean it's got to stop. We did pretty much the same to the
country around Ain el-Hilwa. Look at this!"
He gestured at the
territory around them. A few weeks before it had been among the richest land in
the Civil Government. Now the fields lay waste, empty except for the ragged
scraps of sheep and cattle that the scavengers had left. Burnt stumps marked
the remains of orchards, tall date palms and spreading citrus lying amid
drifting ash. The adobe of the roofless peasant huts was already crumbling; the
fired brick and stone of the burnt-out manors would last only a little longer.
Weirs and sluice-gates and the windmills that watered the higher land were
blackened wreckage as well. The long column of Civil Government troops rode
through silence, amid a hot wind laden with sand. The sand would reclaim
everything to the river's edge, in time.
"There are enough
barbarians to fight, without wrecking civilization," Raj said. "That's
why Ali has to be stopped. Barholm wants to unite the planet, even if it's only
so he can rule it himself. Ali's a sicklefoot and he destroys for the love of
it."
Staenbridge glanced
around instinctively, with the gesture anyone in East Residence—or in the
officer corps—learned to use when a too frank opinion of the Governor was
voiced. Raj nodded silently. Staenbridge had a family to protect.
Raj's lips tightened.
Suzette should be in no danger even if Barholm killed her husband; her family
was old and well-connected. A child, though . . .
* * *
"Well, this will
simplify our logistics," Bartin Foley said happily.
The wagons stood
abandoned but not empty in the middle of the road, their trek-chains lying limp
like dead snakes. From the sign, the teams had been driven on ahead with the
dogs of the escort, but no attempt had been made to damage the cargoes.
"Which is
fortunate," he murmured, taking off his helmet.
It was surprising; even
now he had to remind himself not to scratch his head with his left . . . well,
left hook. He juggled the bowl-shaped steel headpiece and ran a hand through
sweat-damp black curls. His scalp felt cooler for an instant, then hot again as
the noon sun struck it. He heeled his dog and rode slowly down the line of
wagons. Half the loads were ammunition, loads for heavy siege guns. Very
fortunate that the teamsters had been struck by blind panic. The other half was
wheat biscuit and bundles of dried advocati.
"Ser."
A plume of dust was
coming up the road from the south; the banner of the 5th and Messer Raj's
personal flag at its head. He kneed his mount over to the side of the road,
smiling to himself. Suzette wasn't along this time, and he suspected why. He
knew the signs. Fatima had borne her first in Sandoral, during the winter Raj
spent preparing to meet Jamal's invasion. The whole process was rather
disturbing, like a good many things female, but the end product was delightful.
It was also pleasant not
to be facing destruction at the hands of an army that outnumbered them seven to
one.
The command group pulled
up, the battalion fanning out into the fields on either side. "Drag it all
down to the river?" Gerrin said.
Foley shook his head.
"It's about half ammunition. If we push everything together and set a fuse
. . ."
Troopers came in by
squads and pulled out bales of advocati to bait their dogs, filling
their own haversacks with Colonial hard tack and strips of dried mutton. It was
a little past noon and intensely hot, the land and sky turned white in the
blaze of the sun.
"Ser." A much
smaller plume of dust this time, approaching from the north.
The officers corked
their canteens and waited with a stolid patience that ignored the discomfort.
Their dogs twitched ears and tails against the omnipresent Drangosh Valley
flies. Antin M'lewis pulled up at the head of ten of his Scouts.
"Ser," he
said, with a casual wave that approximated a salute. " 'Bout a thousand
wogs comin', all cavalry, six guns. Five klicks off an' closin' fast."
Raj nodded, wiping sweat
and dust from his face with his neckerchief. "We'll give them a
reception," he said. To a messenger: "My compliments to Majors
Bellamy and Gruder, and would they close up quickly, please." He looked
around at the terrain. "This should do; Gerrin, set up along this
crestline."
"Guns to the
left?" Staenbridge asked, pointing to the snags of a citrus orchard that
ran down the gentle slope east of the road.
"By all
means."
"I presume we don't
intend to stay here long."
"No," Raj
said. "The last thing we want is a general engagement; we'll just show
them they have to stay bunched up and slow them down."
He turned to Foley.
"Barton, how many wagon trains does this make?"
"Altogether?
Including the ones wrecked when we were coming downstream?" At Raj's nod
he continued: "Twenty-seven; four hundred twenty-two wagons of all sizes.
Mostly these standard models," he concluded, waving a hand at the ones in
the road.
"That means they
shouldn't have recovered more than twenty or thirty tons of supplies
altogether," he said. Softly: "Most excellent."
The messengers went out;
on either side the 5th's troopers fanned out, sending their dogs back and
unlimbering their entrenching tools for hasty heaped-earth sangars to
their front. A few minutes later Ludwig Bellamy and Kaltin Gruder trotted up
the roadway with their banners fluttering in the hot wind, the dust clouds of
their commands behind them.
"Mi heneral,"
Bellamy said, his beard-stubble golden against the brown tan of his face.
"Dispatches from Colonel Menyez."
Raj took them and broke
the seal; the wax was as soft as butter. "Ah. The Colonials are breaking
camp outside Sandoral. I think friend Ali has just realized how badly his
testicles are caught in the mangler."
The commanders grinned
like a group of carnosauroids contemplating a dying sheep.
"This is their
vanguard, then," Raj said, looking north. "All right. We'll punch
them back, then move southward—they'll be substantially slower, but I don't
want to take any chances with Tewfik. Messenger: to Colonel Menyez. I want
enough barges to take us off held in constant readiness. We can always duck
back across the river if they lunge."
"We'll have to keep
a very close eye on them," Staenbridge said thoughtfully.
Raj tapped his chin with
one thumb. "Constant patrols," he agreed. "I don't think they'll
want to wear down their dogs with skirmishing, hungry as they are."
The carnivore grins
widened. Gruder began to laugh; after a moment, the others joined in.
Center drew a graph
across Raj's vision, of consumption balanced against maximum possible reserves.
At the back of his consciousness there was a trace of feeling, a satisfaction
colder and more complete than a human mind could feel.
* * *
"Hold your
fire!" Raj snapped.
He blinked into the
setting sun; four days in the saddle had left his eyes red-rimmed and sore, the
Drangosh Valley was hell for dust. He wiped his sleeve across his face and brought
up his binoculars. Around him on the hillock the platoon of the 5th lowered
their rifles, and the crew of the splatgun looked up from their weapon. Horace
stood under the shade of the carob tree and panted, washcloth-sized tongue
hanging down, and drooping ears almost covering his eyes.
"Easy target,
ser," the gunner said, hopefully.
Raj raised his
binoculars. The main Colonial army was several kilometers away; this encampment
was notably more ragged than the last. Hardly an encampment at all, with no
baggage train; the animals had all been eaten, to judge from the cracked bones
left in their campfires. Most of their cavalry were walking and leading their
dogs behind them. Some were carrying the saddles as well.
It was the patrol riding
towards his men on the hilltop that interested him now. There were two banners
at its head, hanging limp in the hot still air. He waited patiently; a gust of
breeze flapped them out. One was pure white; the other, black with a Seal of
Solomon in red.
"Tewfik," Raj
whispered. The sweat down his spine turned clammy.
"Ensign," he
said. "We're staying for a moment; they're coming under a truce flag. Get
something white and wave it on a stick. Water the dogs, but keep a careful
look-out. And have someone set out a blanket, with a piece of hard-tack and
some salt."
They were out of extreme
field gun range of the Colonial camp, but you never knew.
"Sir," the
Ensign said, relaying the orders.
A detail trotted
downslope to the well in the courtyard of a burned-out steading. A trooper
unstrapped the rolled blanket from behind his saddle, spread it on the scraggly
twistgrass beneath the carob tree, and set out a canteen, two cups and a piece
of Colonial flat biscuit with a small twist of gray salt on it.
The men were looking at
Raj curiously. "What does it mean, sir?" the young officer asked.
"I think," Raj
said slowly, "it means the war is over. Escort our guest to me."
* * *
Raj saw Tewfik's eye widen
in surprise as he recognized the Civil Government commander. The Colonial was
much as Raj remembered him from the parley just before the first battle of
Sandoral five years ago, perhaps a little grayer. Looking a little gaunt from
five days on quarter-rations, but still stocky and strong. Like a scarred bull
in a pasture, confronting a younger rival and twitching his horns. Raj knew
that Tewfik would be seeing far greater changes in him.
"Salaam
aleikoum," the Arab said, bowing slightly.
"Aleikoum
es-salaam," Raj replied in accentless Arabic. Center had given him
that, and practice made it come smoothly. "And upon you, peace, Tewfik
ibn'Jamal."
"Shall it be peace,
then?"
"If the Spirit
wills. Come, let us talk."
Raj gestured, and the
troopers retreated down the slope, out of immediate earshot and with their
backs to the supreme commanders. The two men walked into the shade of the
carob. Tewfik's eye caught the bread and salt; also the fact that they hadn't
yet been offered to him. There was wary respect on his face as he turned to
face his enemy and let the saddlebags he carried over one shoulder drop to the
ground.
Carefully, carefully,
Raj told himself. Take no chances with this man.
indeed, Center said. A brief
vision flashed before Raj's eyes: the same meeting, but with the relative
positions reversed. if my
physical centrum had been located in al kebir, rather than east residence . . .
I'd be the one trying to
salvage something from the wreck, Raj acknowledged.
"I will not waste
words," Tewfik said abruptly, into the growing silence. "You have won
this campaign. Without even fighting a major battle. My compliments, young kaphar;
it is a feat for the manuals and the historians to chew over."
"More than the
campaign," Raj said quietly. "The war. And I would betray my ruler
and my State, if I did not use this advantage to ensure the Colony is no longer
a threat to the Civil Government. We have fought you every generation for
nearly a thousand years; it's irrelevant who was at fault in any given war. It must
cease."
Tewfik nodded, his face
still cat-calm. "Yet it is said that Heneralissimo Whitehall fights
also for the cause of civilization on Bellevue," he said. "We of the
House of Islam brought man to this world. We built its first cities. We
preserved much of what learning survived the Fall, and we are the other half of
civilized life on this world. Would you see our cities burn and the books with
them, while the howling peoples camp in the ruins?"
Raj inclined his head.
"You admit that the Colony is ruined if your army is destroyed?"
"That is as God
wills; but too many of our high nobles are with us, our best commanders and the
leadership needed to maintain the unity of our state. And our best troops; we
left nothing but garrison forces on the frontiers. If they do not return, there
will be civil war—fourscore separate civil wars; instead of one Settler, we
will have a hundred malik al'taifas, petty kings ruling factions. They
will not be able to maintain the irrigation canals, nor guard the frontiers against
the Skinners and the Zanj."
"Or us," Raj
pointed out.
Tewfik shook his head.
"Conquering a hundred splinter realms would be impossible. You would have
to garrison them heavily and there would be constant revolt; our people will
not tolerate direct rule by unbelievers, not without such punishment as would
destroy what you tried to govern."
"What do you
propose?"
The Arab nobleman took a
deep breath. "I cannot rule," he said, touching his eye. "And
Ali . . . he is my brother, but he is a disaster for all Muslims. One way or
another, sooner or later, he would have ruined the Colony. Already he has
killed many of our best men—and anyone else who was there at the wrong time.
"What I propose is
this: half our army to be disarmed and sent to East Residence. I suggest that
you use them to garrison the Southern and Western Territories; there they will
be hostages against the Colony's good behavior. I will take the other half back
with me to Al Kebir, and there rule as Vice-Governor in Barholm Clerett's name.
My daughter Chaba will go to East Residence and wed Governor Barholm."
He shrugged, and for the
first time smiled slightly. "I have no sons, and I fear I have been too
indulgent with her—even allowing her to be taught to read. Perhaps it will be
better for her thus."
Well, Raj thought,
slightly dazed. That's emphatic enough. Center's sensor-grid came down
over Tewfik's face, tracing blood flow, temperature, pupil-dilation.
subject tewfik is sincere, the
computer-angel said. probability
82%±7.
Raj was slightly
startled. Usually the percentage was much higher, one way or another.
subject tewfik
has an unusual degree of control over autonomic body functions. in your
vernacular, a poker face.
"A moment,"
Raj said.
He turned and looked out
over the dusty plain of the Drangosh. Then he turned back.
"That sounds
acceptable, in outline," he said. "We'll have to settle a few
details. Release of all Civil Government prisoners in the Colony, for instance;
and an annual tribute sufficient to pay the twenty-five thousand men you'll be
giving us. Customs, tariffs, that sort of thing the bureaucrats can
settle."
Tewfik nodded,
hesitated, then stroked his beard. "My offer, of course, would apply to
any other Governor as well," he hinted. "From all reports,
Governor Barholm is somewhat preferable to my brother Ali . . . but that is not
a strong recommendation."
Meaning, take the Chair
yourself and rule the world, Raj thought.
interpretation of subtext correct,
probability 98%±1, Center clarified.
"How do I know this
isn't a ploy to save Ali and half your army?" Raj said. "You could be
planning to write the other half off. It'd still be a larger force than I have
in the field, and campaigning down to the Drangosh delta would be a nightmare,
particularly with this area too devastated to use as a base."
Tewfik smiled grimly and
opened the saddlebag he'd brought. His curly-toed boot hooked it over to lie at
Raj's feet. A head rolled out; fairly fresh, although the flies were already
crawling around the hacked stump of the neck and the staring eyes. Raj did not
need the ruby-clasped turban that rolled from the shaven skull to identify it.
"That for
Ali," Tewfik said, and kicked the head to one side. "I should have
done that years ago."
Raj raised his brows
slightly. I shouldn't be surprised if he's . . . decisive, he decided.
He gestured to the blanket. They sat down across from each other cross-legged,
and shared the bread and salt. Raj laid the sword between them and Tewfik
touched his hand to the hilt and blade.
"There shall be
peace," Raj said. "I accept . . . in Governor Barholm's name."
"Wa sha'
a-l-lah," Tewfik said, the formula full of a tired sincerity. He
shrugged and spat on the head. "May God will it."
"All off!"
Raj swung down off the
train. The East Residence station was crowded, full of the heat and smoke and
steam of a busy summer's day. It felt humid after the Drangosh Valley; he
rested his eyes on the hints of green higher up the hill and the fleecy clouds
scattered across the sky. It was after 1900, near sunset, with Miniluna and
Maxiluna both up, huge translucent globes hanging in a purpling sky.
"Move it,
soldier!" the conductor said.
Raj smiled wryly and
hopped down, ignoring the wooden steps the Central Rail slave was putting by
the passenger car. He had a bandage over half his face, and he was dressed in
common soldier's clothing—as a Descotter cavalry sergeant, which was probably
what he'd have been if he hadn't been born to a noble family. The uniform
brought a few cheers and careful claps on the back as he walked out through the
station, a garrison bag slung over one shoulder.
That was unusual.
Questions flew at him:
"Is it true Heneralissimo
Whitehall cut off Ali's head with his own hand?"
"Are they going to
march the prisoners through the streets?"
He smiled lopsidedly and
pointed to his bandage; somebody thrust a goatskin of wine into his hand, and a
free ticket to the bullfights. He dropped both of them off at the porticoed
entrance to the train station—another of Barholm's construction projects—and
plunged into the streets. They were thick with people, even though it was still
normal working hours. Municipal flunkies were hanging ribbons and streamers
from the standards of the gaslights, and a great cheer went up as an ox-wagon piled
with huge wine casks halted at a corner.
The full
treatment, he thought wryly. He nodded as the crowd began to chant his name when the
wine cask was unloaded at the corner. Barholm's not going to ignore that
sort of thing. It was bad enough that he'd been popular with the troops.
Having the capital city mob on his side, no matter how he'd put down the
Victory riots six years ago, would be the final nail in the Governor's coffin. I
wonder if they know they're condemning me to death? he wondered.
Probably not. They'd
been very frightened, and the euphoria of relief would be all the stronger for
it.
Well, at least the
troops won't have any problems getting a drink and a lay when they get in. They
deserved that.
He was close enough to
hear two of the men dipping their cups into the head of the broached wine cask.
They wore the knee breeches, full-sleeved shirts, and leather aprons of
prosperous artisans; their shoes had good pewter buckles.
"To Messer Raj and
the damnation of all wogs," one said, drinking. "Ah, not bad."
"Looks like Barholm
pulled it off again," the other replied. "This'll keep the Chair
under his fundament until the day he dies."
"That might be
thirty years."
"Thirty more years
of Barholm. Spirit. Ah, his wine's good, anyway, and we deserve it—our taxes
paid for it. To Messer Raj, Mihwel."
"To the Sword of
the Spirit of Man—we won't see his like again, worse luck."
Raj ducked into the
tiled entrance of a public bathhouse. Where . . .
Center strobed an
indicator above one door. Not surprising that a bathhouse had a connection to
the catacombs; all this section of the city was underlain by the Ancient
tunnels.
* * *
"Raj!"
Thom Poplanich stirred
to life in the mirrored sphere that was Center's physical being.
He gripped his friend's
shoulders. "You did it!" His eyes noted the fresh creases, and the
leathery tan of the Drangosh Valley's sun and sand-laden wind. "You did
it!"
Raj returned the embrahzo.
"I did my
duty," he said quietly. He shook his head, as if the magnitude of it was
only now striking him. "I've reunited Earth—"
bellevue.
"—Bellevue under
Holy Federation and the Spirit of Man of the Stars."
"The Fall is
over," Thom whispered, awed. "After a thousand years, it's
over."
the next cycle has begun, Center
clarified. this is only a
beginning, but the direction of maximum probability has been reversed. there is
no longer a strong drive to maximum entropy here on bellevue; and from
bellevue, the human universe may be reclaimed in time. fifteen thousand years
of barbarism have been reduced to a maximum of another five centuries. beyond
that, stochastic analysis is no longer adequate. my projections indicate that
human capacities will have increased beyond my ability to analyze.
Raj laughed and ran a
hand through his gray-shot curls. "I feel like a man who's been running
down stairs and didn't notice that the staircase ended," he said.
"The troops and the Colonials are on their way back; it'll take a while,
but the first trains should arrive in hours. I came to say goodbye, before . .
."
Thom's smile died.
"Before what?" he asked sharply.
Raj looked up in
surprise at the tone of command in the other man's voice. "Before I report
to the Governor," he said.
"Who no longer
needs you. Who fears you," Thom said.
Raj shrugged. "I've
done my duty to the Spirit of Man. I'm not going to flinch at the end. Barholm
can't kill me deader than a Colonial bullet or a Brigadero's broadsword might
have. It's not a safe profession, soldiering."
Thom turned, a terrible
anger on his face. "There's no need for that! There's no need for that
now—and even if there was, a ruler who treats a faithful servant that way
doesn't deserve to rule, doesn't deserve to exist. Hasn't he done
enough? More than any other man could have done?"
The shout rang in the
strait confines of the sphere, then sank away as if the material had changed to
absorb it.
raj whitehall
has one further duty to the plan.
Raj put a comforting
hand on Thom's shoulder. "I know. I said I was willing to die."
not that.
Both men started.
for six years, i
have been training your friend here to rule as i trained you to fight. now it
is time to put him on the throne of the reunited planet. you should find that
easy, in comparison to the things you have already accomplished in my service.
The mirrored sphere
flashed and vanished. They were disembodied viewpoints watching a huge crowd
surge through the gardens of the Gubernatorial Palace, crying out and eddying
around the iron order of the troops who guarded it. Raj recognized the
shoulder-flashes of the 5th Descott and the Rogor Slashers, of Cruisers and
Brigaderos units . . . and Colonials, still in their crimson djellabas but
carrying Armory rifles.
The great ebony doors
with their hammered silver Starbursts swung open. Barholm Clerett came through;
bandaged and bruised, his hands bound before him. Gerrin Staenbridge walked
beside him with drawn pistol, Bartin Foley on the other side, and a file of
Descotters with fixed bayonets on either side. They hustled the blank-faced
Barholm into a closed carriage at the foot of the marble stairs. Mounted
troopers of the 1st Cruisers with drawn swords fell in around it, and the
driver touched the white greyhounds of the team into action. The crowd parted
reluctantly; a few rocks and lumps of dogshit flew at the carriage.
"To the frying post
with the tyrant Barholm!"
"Death to Barholm
the tax-eater!"
"Dig up Barholm's
bones!"
The clamor might have
turned to riot, but trumpeters blew a ceremonial fanfare from the balcony
above. Tall windows swung open, and Raj Whitehall walked out and halted, his
hands clasped behind his back.
Silence fell gradually,
although the noise of the crowd was like distant surf or the rustling of leaves
in dense forest.
Raj heard his own voice;
the superb acoustics of the semicircular frontage of the Palace carried it out
over the heads of the crowd.
"Citizens of Holy
Federation! The tyrant Barholm is de-Chaired!"
Massed cheering broke
over him like thunder, and cries hailing him governor. He raised his hand
again.
"I am the Sword of
the Spirit of Man, but not the Spirit's viceregent on Earth. Citizens, I give
you your Governor. Governor Poplanich, grandson of Governor Poplanich,
legitimate heir to the Chair."
In the slow, hieratic
pace that the regalia imposed, Thom Poplanich paced out to stand beside his
General. The sunlight blazed on metallized robes, on the Stylus and Keyboard in
his hands.
"My people—"
he began.
observe:
The sphere blinked. Raj
saw himself standing under the great dome of the Cathedron that Barholm had
built. A wedding was being held, a man and a woman standing in shimmering robes
before the Patriarchal Arch-Sysup of East Residence, their hands entwined and
bound with the sacred Cable. The man was Thom Poplanich; the woman was dark and
round-faced, plain, with intelligent black eyes that sparkled with excitement.
Raj saw himself step forward to give the groomsman's responses. It was
obviously a great occasion of state; besides the nobles and clerics, his
Companions were there, and Suzette . . .
Tewfik ibn'Jamal stood
on the other side of the couple, in the place reserved for the father of the
bride. His eye met the image-Raj's for an instant, and winked.
observe:
Chancellor Tzetzas stood
and contemptuously turned his face to the pockmarked brick wall. Behind him the
officer of the firing squad raised his sword. The rifles leveled and vomited
smoke . . .
observe:
Raj stood in a testing
room in the Armory, examining a rifle. He was older, his hair mostly gray. The
weapon in his hands was one the younger self did not recognize; chunky and
short, with a box-magazine protruding below the stock and a cocking-lever at
the side. He raised it and fired at the target downrange. The rifle fired again
and again, spitting spent brass to the right, without any motion but pulling
the trigger. And there was no smoke from the barrel . . .
observe:
A crowd of gaping peons
stood at the edge of a wheatfield—somewhere in the Central Provinces, from the
flat terrain and broad treeless horizons. Behind them were the mud hovels they
dwelt in; in front of them a huge clanking machine snorted and backed, then
surged out into the ripe grain. It moved slowly, a whirring contraption like a
skeletal cylinder of boards bending down the heads of the stalks. Beside it went
an ox-wagon, and threshed grain poured out of a spout into it as the machine
chewed its way into the wheat. As Raj watched, it reaped as much land as a
dozen peons could do in a day; from the sun, scarcely an hour had passed.
observe:
Sullen, shaven-headed
Skinner nomads surrendered their huge sauroid-killing rifles to an officer in
Civil Government uniform. A huge engine on linked treads of steel stood behind
the officer, quivering with mechanical life; the twin trails of its passage
stretched off into the distance, and weapons bristled from its armored hull.
Overhead a flying machine circled, with stiff wings like a soaring pterosauroid
and a buzzing propeller at the rear.
observe:
An older Raj stood in
the Cathedron once more. Suzette was with him, older as well, but smiling. The
groom walked to his place beneath the dome; for a moment Raj thought it was
Thom, but then he saw the differences, the darker complexion and the beak nose.
Thom's son, he realized.
The image of a Raj
twenty years older stepped forward, the bride's fingers resting on his arm. The
young woman's green eyes glowed.
observe:
Bartin Foley as an old
man, in a nobleman's formal civil clothes. He stood in the presentation room of
the Palace, and bowed his head as an official Raj didn't recognize placed a
gold-chain medallion over his head. Beside him on the table rested a book. On
the cover, embossed letters read: Raj Whitehall and His Times.
observe:
He was looking down from
the roof of a great shed. The dust motes in the air shook with the force of the
energies below. Incomprehensible machines crawled by on a conveyor-belt. Men
and women in overalls swarmed about them, fastening on parts with tools that
hummed and screeched and whirred and sent showers of sparks across the concrete
floor.
A siren whooped. The
noise ended as if cut off with a knife, and the workers downed tools and turned
to troop out of the huge building.
observe:
A crowd gathered around
a plinth in East Residence. They were just familiar enough to be disturbing,
men with their hair in pigtails, women in skirts scandalously short, to their
knees. A poster read: Elections to the Consultative Senate to be held.
Beneath: Vote Reform! The Anti-Peonage Act needs your support!
observe:
A train streaked by. Raj
thought it was a train. It floated above the tracks with no visible
support, and the locomotive was shaped more like a rifle bullet or an artillery
shell than anything he recognized. The hum of its passage lingered in the air
long after it had passed the horizon.
observe:
An avenue in East
Residence, with a view down to the harbor. Raj could recognize a few of the
buildings: the Cathedron, the Palace. Most of the rest had changed, in styles
totally foreign. Before him was a mausoleum. The viewpoint swooped closer. The
walls around the base were sculpted in bas-relief, and they showed his troops.
Marching, making camp, charging with leveled bayonets. The central column held
high-relief bronzes; here he recognized faces, Gerrin, Bartin, Kaltin—all his
Companions, and Suzette. Their clasped hands ringed the broad pillar.
Atop it was a statue. A
rider, on a great black hound. He was armed, but his outflung hand was empty,
pointing to the sky. Below in gold letters was set:
* * *
* * *
Beyond, from the bay
where East Residence's harbor lay, something huge was lifting toward the
heavens on pillars of pale fire.
Pigeons rose in a massed
flutter of wings about the statue as the thunder of the starship's drive rolled
across the plaza.